Falkenberg’s Legion
Falkenberg’s
Legion
Jerry
Pournelle
1990
This
book is the first of four novels, the next three being Prince of
Sparta, Go Tell The Spartans, and Prince Of Mercenaries.
When I finished reading the series I remembered a reviewer's comment
about H. Beam Piper's classic book Space Viking. "First you read
it for the story, then you read it for the characters, then you read
it to see how a civilization dies, then you read it to see how a
civilization is born." This is a ripping good yarn. Unlike many
writers who do military Science Fiction Jerry Pournelle has been
there, done that. The battle scenes have the ring of authenticity.
The details of conventional and unconventional warfare are presented
well and realistically. This is not a great literary classic that
will be taught in English LIt classes, but the characters are well
thought out and well written for an action adventure novel. By the
way, did anyone else catch the similarities between Skilly and Two
Knife and Modesty Blaise and Willie Garvin in the Modesty Blaise
stories by Peter O'Donnell? The fall of the CoDominion and what is
left of a stagnant Terran civilization is written in a manner that is
disturbingly dark and realistic. This is a world that might have
been. Jerry Pournele's vision of military adventures in the twilight
of empire owes much to history. The notorious stadium massacre on
Hadley is based on the Nike riots in Byzantium. If you want a really
good description of what happened in Byzantium read David Drake's
intro to his book Caught In The Crossfire, That's one of the best
descriptions I've run across. In his novel Jerry fleshes out the bare
facts with some political analysis which sheds some light on what may
have led to the riots in Byzantium. I've always been suspicious of
the official historical accounts. Finally this series shows how a
civilization can rise out of the ashes of a dying one. The fears,
hopes, actions, and motivations of the characters are well fleshed
out. They aren't two dimensional cardboard figures. Even the
antagonists have good reasons for what they do. These are people who
literally have their world dying about them. All in all I recommend
this series. It's a great read.
Chronology
1969 Neil Armstrong
sets foot on Earth's Moon.
1990-2000 Series of
treaties between U.S. and Soviet Union creates the CoDominium.
Military research and development outlawed.
1995 Nationalist
movements intensify.
1996 French Foreign
Legion forms the basic element of the CoDominium Armed Services.
2004 Alderson Drive
perfected at Cal Tech.
2008 First Alderson
Drive exploratory ships leave the Solar System.
2010-2100 CoDominium
Intelligence Services engage in serious effort to suppress all
research into technologies with military applications. They are aided
by zero-growth organizations. Most scientific research ceases.
2010 Inhabitable
planets discovered. Commercial exploitation begins.
2020 First
interstellar colonies are founded. The CoDominium Space Navy and
Marines are created, absorbing the original CoDominium Armed
Services.
2020 Great Exodus
period of colonization begins. First colonists are dissidents,
malcontents, and voluntary adventurers.
2030 Sergei
Lermontov is born in Moscow.
2040 Bureau of
Relocations begins mass outsystem shipment of involuntary colonists.
2043 John Christian
Falkenberg II is born in Rome, Italy.
2060 Nationalistic
revival movements continue.
Prologue
An oily, acrid smell
assaulted him, and the noise was incessant. Hundreds of thousands had
passed through the spaceport. Their odor floated through the
embarcation hall to blend with the yammer of the current victims
crammed into the enclosure.
The room was long
and narrow. White painted concrete walls shut out bright Florida
sunshine; but the walls were dingy with film and dirt that had been
smeared about and not removed by the Bureau of Relocation's convict
laborers. Cold luminescent panels glowed brightly above.
The smell and sounds
and glare blended with his own fears. He didn't belong here, but no
one would listen. No one wanted to. Anything he said was lost in the
brutal totality of shouted orders, growls of surly trustee guards in
their wire pen running the full length of the long hall; screaming
children; the buzz of frightened humanity.
They marched onward,
toward the ship that would take them out of the solar system and
toward an unknown fate. A few colonists blustered and argued. Some
suppressed rage until it might be of use. Most were ashen-faced,
shuffling forward without visible emotion, beyond fear.
There were red lines
painted on the concrete floor, and the colonists stayed carefully
inside them. Even the children had learned to cooperate with
BuRelock's guards. The colonists had a sameness about them: shabbily
dressed in Welfare Issue clothing mixed with finery cast off by
taxpayers and gleaned from Reclamation Stores or by begging or from a
Welfare District Mission.
John Christian
Falkenberg knew he didn't look much like a typical colonist. He was a
gangling youth, already at fifteen approaching six feet in height and
thin because he hadn't yet filled out to his latest spurt of growth.
No one would take him for a man, no matter how hard he tried to act
like one.
A forelock of
sand-colored hair fell across his forehead and threatened to blind
him, and he automatically brushed it aside with a nervous gesture.
His bearing and posture set him apart from the others, as did his
almost comically serious expression. His clothing was also unusual:
it was new, and fit well, and obviously not reclaimed. He wore a
brocaded tunic of real wool and cotton, bright flared trousers, a new
belt, and a tooled leather purse at his left hip. His clothes had
cost more than his father could afford, but they did him little good
here. Still he stood straight and tall, his lips set in defiance.
John stalked forward
to keep his place in the long line. His bag, regulation space duffel
without tags, lay in front of him and he kicked it forward rather
than stoop to pick it up. He thought it would look undignified to
bend over, and his dignity was all he had left.
Ahead of him was a
family of five, three screaming children and their apathetic parents
- or, possibly, he thought, not parents. Citizen families were never
very stable. BuRelock agents often farmed out their quotas, and their
superiors were seldom concerned about the precise identities of those
scooped up.
The disorderly
crowds moved inexorably toward the end of the room. Each line
terminated at a wire cage containing a plastisteel desk. Each family
group moved into a cage, the doors were closed, and their interviews
began.
The bored trustee
placement officers hardly listened to their clients, and the
colonists did not know what to say to them. Most knew nothing about
Earth's outsystem worlds. A few had heard that Tanith was hot,
Fulton's World cold, and Sparta a hard place to live, but free. Some
understood that Hadley had a good climate and was under the benign
protection of American Express and the Colonial Office. For those
sentenced to transportation without confinement, knowing that little
could make a lot of difference to their futures; most didn't know and
were shipped off to labor-hungry mining and agricultural worlds, or
the hell of Tanith, where their lot would be hard labor, no matter
what their sentences might read.
The fifteen-year-old
boy - he liked to consider himself a man, but he knew many of his
emotions were boyish no matter how hard he tried to control them -
had almost reached the interview cage. He felt despair.
Once past the
interview, he'd be packed into a BuRelock transportation ship. John
turned again toward the gray-uniformed guard standing casually behind
the large-mesh protective screen. "I keep trying to tell you,
there's been a mistake! I shouldn't - "
"Shut up,"
the guard answered. He motioned threateningly with the bell-shaped
muzzle of his sonic stunner. "It's a mistake for everybody,
right? Nobody belongs here. Tell the interview officer, sonny."
John's lip curled,
and he wanted to attack the guard, to make him listen. He fought to
control the rising flush of hatred. "Damn you, I - "
The guard raised the
weapon. The Citizen family in front of John huddled together, shoving
forward to get away from this mad kid who could get them all tingled.
John subsided and sullenly shuffled forward in the line.
Tri-V commentators
said the stunners were painless, but John wasn't eager to have it
tried on him. The Tri-V people said a lot of things. They said most
colonists were volunteers, and they said transportees were treated
with dignity by the Bureau of Relocation.
No one believed
them. No one believed anything the government told them. They did not
believe in the friendship among nations that had created the
Co-Dominium, or in the election figures, or -
He reached the
interview cage. The trustee wore the same uniform as the guards, but
his gray coveralls had numbers stenciled across back and chest. There
were wide gaps between the man's jaggedly pointed teeth, and the
teeth showed yellow stains when he smiled. He smiled often, but there
was no warmth in the expression.
"Whatcha got
for me?" the trustee asked. "Boy dressed like you can
afford anything he wants. Where you want to go, boy?"
"I'm not a
colonist," John insisted. His anger rose. The trustee was no
more than a prisoner himself - what right had he to speak this way?
"I demand to speak with a CoDominium officer."
"One of those,
huh?" The trustee's grin vanished. "Tanith for you."
He pushed a button and the door on the opposite side of the cage
opened. "Get on," he snapped. "Fore I call the
guards." His finger poised menacingly over the small console on
his desk.
John took papers out
of an inner pocket of his tunic. "I have an appointment to
CoDominium Navy Service," he said. "I was ordered to report
to Canaveral Embarcation Station for transport by BuRelock ship to
Luna Base."
"Get movin! -
uh?" The trustee stopped himself and the grin reappeared. "Let
me see that." He held out a grimy hand.
"No. "
John was more sure of himself now. "I'll show them to any CD
officer, but you won't get your hands on them. Now call an officer."
"Sure."
The trustee didn't move. "Cost you ten credits."
"What?"
"Ten credits.
Fifty bucks if you ain't got CD credits. Don't give me that look,
kid. You don't pay, you go on the Tanith ship. Maybe they'll put
things straight there, maybe they won't, but you'll be late
reporting. Best you slip me something."
John held out a
twenty-dollar piece. "That all you got?" the trustee
demanded. "OK, OK, have to do." He punched a code into the
phone, and a minute later a petty officer in blue CoDominium Space
Navy coveralls came into the cage.
"What you need,
Smiley?"
"Got one of
yours. New middy. Got himself mixed up with the colonists." The
trustee laughed as John struggled to control himself.
The petty officer
eyed Smiley with distaste. "Your orders, sir?" he said.
John handed him the
papers, afraid that he would never see them again. The Navy man
glanced through them. "John Christian Falkenberg?"
"Yes."
"Thank you,
sir." He turned to the trustee. "Gimme."
"Aw, he can
afford it."
"Want me to
call the Marines, Smiley?"
"Jesus, you
hardnosed - " The trustee took the coin from his pocket and
handed it over.
"This way,
please, sir," the Navy man said. He bent to pick up John's
duffel. "And here's your money, sir."
"Thanks. You
keep it."
The petty officer
nodded. "Thank you, sir. Smiley, you bite one of our people
again and I'll have the Marines look you up when you're off duty.
Let's go, sir.
John followed the
spacer out of the cubicle. The petty officer was twice his age, and
no one had ever called John "sir" before. It gave John
Falkenberg a sense of belonging, a sense of having found something he
had searched for all his life. Even the street gangs had been closed
to him, and friends he had grown up with had always seemed part of
someone else's life, not his own. Now, in seconds, he seemed to have
found - found what, he wondered.
They went through
narrow whitewashed corridors, then into the bright Florida sunshine.
A narrow gangway led to the forward end of an enormous winged landing
ship that floated at the end of a long pier crowded with colonists
and cursing guards.
The petty officer
spoke briefly to the Marine sentries at the officers' gangway, then
carefully saluted the officer at the head of the boarding gangway.
John wanted to do the same, but he knew that you didn't salute in
civilian clothing. His father had made him read books on military
history and the customs of the Service as soon as he decided to find
John an appointment to the Academy.
Babble from the
colonists filled the air until they were inside the ship. As the
hatch closed behind him the last sounds he heard were the curses of
the guards.
"If you please,
sir. This way." The petty officer led him through a maze of
steel corridors, airtight bulkheads, ladders, pipes, wire races, and
other unfamiliar sights. Although the CD Navy operated it, most of
the ship belonged to BuRelock, and she stank. There were no viewports
and John was lost after several turns in the corridors.
The petty officer
led on at a brisk pace until he came to a door that seemed no
different from any other. He pressed a button on a panel outside it.
"Come in,"
the panel answered.
The compartment held
eight tables, but only three men, all seated at a single booth. In
contrast to the gray steel corridors outside, the compartment was
almost cheerful, with paintings on the walls, padded furniture, and
what seemed like carpets.
The CoDominium seal
hung from the far wall - American eagle and Soviet sickle and hammer,
red, white, and blue, white stars and red stars.
The three men held
drinks and seemed relaxed. All wore civilian clothing not much
different from John's except that the older man wore a more
conservative tunic. The others seemed about John's age, perhaps a
year older; no more.
"One of ours,
sir," the petty officer announced. "New middy got lost with
the colonists."
One of the younger
men laughed, but the older cut him off with a curt wave. "All
right, Cox'n. Thank you. Come in, we don't bite."
"Thank you,
sir," John said. He shuffled uncertainly in the doorway,
wondering who these men were. Probably CD officers, he decided. The
petty officer wouldn't act that way toward anyone else. Frightened as
he was, his analytical mind continued to work, and his eyes darted
around the compartment.
Definitely CD
officers, he decided. Going back up to Luna Base after leave, or
perhaps a duty tour in normal gravity. Naturally they'd worn civilian
clothing. Wearing the CD uniform off duty earthside was an invitation
to be murdered.
"Lieutenant
Hartmann, at your service," the older man introduced himself.
"And Midshipmen Rolnikov and Bates. Your orders, please?"
"John Christian
Falkenberg, sir," John said. "Midshipman. Or I guess I'm a
midshipman. But I'm not sure. I haven't been sworn in or anything."
All three men
laughed at that. "You will be, Mister," Hartmann said. He
took John's orders. "But you're one of the damned all the same,
swearing in or no."
He examined the
plastic sheet, comparing John's face to the photograph, then reading
the bottom lines. He whistled. "Grand Senator Martin Grant.
Appointed by the Navy's friend, no less. With him to bat for you, I
wouldn't be surprised to see you outrank me in a few years."
"Senator Grant
is a former student of my father's," John said.
"I see,"
Hartmann returned the orders and motioned John to sit with them. Then
he turned to one of the other midshipmen. "As to you, Mister
Bates, I fail to see the humor. What is so funny about one of your
brother officers becoming lost among the colonists? You have never
been lost?"
Bates squirmed
uncomfortably. His voice was high-pitched, and John realized that
Bates was no older than himself. "Why didn't he show the guards
his taxpayer status card?" Bates demanded. "They would have
taken him to an officer. Wouldn't they?"
Hartman shrugged.
"I didn't have
one," John said.
"Um."
Hartmann seemed to withdraw, although he didn't actually move.
"Well," he said. "We don't usually get officers from
Citizen families - "
"We are not
Citizens," John said quickly. "My father is a CoDominium
University professor, and I was born in Rome."
"Ah,"
Hartman said. "Did you live there long?"
"No, sir.
Father prefers to be a visiting faculty member. We have lived in many
university towns." The lie came easily now, and John thought
that Professor Falkenberg probably believed it after telling it so
many times. John knew better: he had seen his father desperate to
gain tenure, but always, always making too many enemies.
He is too blunt and
too honest. One explanation. He is a revolving S.O.B. and can't get
along with anyone. That's another. I've lived with the situation so
long I don't care anymore. But, it would have been nice to have a
home, I think.
Hartmann relaxed
slightly, "Well, whatever the reason, Mister Falkenberg, you
would have done better to arrange to be born a United States
taxpayer. Or a Soviet party member. Unfortunately, you, like me, are
doomed to remain in the lower ranks of the officer corps."
There was a trace of
accent to Hartmann's voice, but John couldn't place it exactly.
German, certainly; there were many Germans in the CD fighting
services. This was not the usual German though; John had lived in
Heidelberg long enough to learn many shades of the German speech.
East German? Possibly.
He realized the
others were waiting for him to say something. "I thought, sir, I
thought there was equality within the CD services."
Hartmann shrugged.
"In theory, yes. In practice - the generals and admirals, even
the captains who command ships, always seem to be Americans or
Soviets. It is not the preference of the officer corps, Mister. We
have no countries of origin among ourselves and no politics. Ever.
The Fleet is our fatherland, and our only fatherland." He
glanced at his glass. "Mister Bates, we need more to drink, and
a glass for our new comrade. Hop it."
"Aye,
aye, sir." The pudgy middy left the compartment, passing
the unattended bar in the corner on his way. He returned a moment
later with a full bottle of American whiskey and an empty glass.
Hartmann poured the
glass full and pushed it toward John. "The Navy will teach you
many things, Mister Midshipman John Christian Falkenberg. One of them
is to drink. We all drink too much. Another thing we will teach you
is why we do, but before you learn why, you must learn to do it."
He lifted the glass.
When John raised his and took only a sip, Hartmann frowned. "More,"
he said. The tone made it an order.
John drank half the
whiskey. He had been drinking beer for years, but his father did not
often let him drink spirits. It did not taste good, and it burned his
throat and stomach.
"Now, why have
you joined our noble band of brothers?" Hartmann asked. His
voice carried a warning: he used bantering words, but under that was
a more serious mood - perhaps he was not mocking the Service at all
when he called it a band of brothers.
John hoped he was
not. He had never had brothers. He had never had friends, or a home,
and his father was a harsh schoolmaster, teaching him many things,
but never giving him any affection - or friendship. "I - "
"Honesty,"
Hartmann warned. "I will tell you a secret, the secret of the
Fleet. We do not lie to our own." He looked at the other two
midshipmen, and they nodded, Rolnikov slightly amused, Bates serious,
as if in church.
"Out there,"
Hartmann said, "out there they lie, and they cheat, and they use
each other. With us this is not true. We are used, yes. But we know
that we are used, and we are honest with each other. That is why the
men are loyal to us. And why we are loyal to the Fleet."
And that's
significant, John thought, because Hartmann had glanced at the
CoDominium banner on the wall, but he said nothing about the CD at
all. Only the Fleet. "I'm here because my father wanted me out
of the house and was able to get an appointment for me," John
blurted.
"You will find
another reason, or you will not stay with us," Hartmann said.
"Drink up."
"Yes, sir."
"The proper
response is 'aye aye, sir.' "
"Aye
aye, sir." John drained his glass.
Hartmann smiled.
"Very good." He refilled his glass, then the others. "What
is the mission of the CoDominium Navy, Mister Falkenberg?"
"Sir? To carry
out the will of the Grand Senate - "
"No. It is to
exist. And by existing, to keep some measure of peace and order in
this corner of the galaxy. To buy enough time for men to get far
enough away from Earth that when the damned fools kill themselves
they will not have killed the human race. And that is our only
mission."
"Sir?"
Midshipman Rolnikov spoke quietly and urgently. "Lieutenant,
sir, should you drink so much?"
"Yes. I
should," Hartmann replied. "I thank you for your concern,
Mister Rolnikov. But as you see, I am, at present, a passenger. The
Service has no regulation against drinking. None at all, Mister
Falkenberg. There is a strong prohibition against being unfit for
one's duties, but none against drinking. And I have no duties at the
moment." He raised his glass. "Save one. To speak to you,
Mister Falkenberg, and to tell you the truth, so that you will either
run from us or be damned with us for the rest of your life, for we
never lie to our own.
He fell silent for a
moment, and Falkenberg wondered just how drunk Hartmann was. The
officer seemed to be considering his words more carefully than his
father ever had when he was drinking.
"What do you
know of the history of the CoDominium Navy, Mister Falkenberg?"
Hartmann demanded.
Probably more than
you, John thought. Father's lecture on the growth of the CoDominium
was famous. "It began with detente. That collapsed, but was
revived, and soon there was a web of formal treaties between the
United States and the Soviet Union. The treaties did not end the
basic enmity between these great powers, but their common interest
was greater than their differences; for it was obviously better that
there be only two great powers, than for there to be ..." No.
Hartmann did not want to hear Professor Falkenberg's lecture. "Very
little, sir."
"We were
created out of the French Foreign Legion," Hartmann said. "A
legion of strangers, to fight for an artificial alliance of nations
that hate each other. How can a man give his soul and life to that,
Mister Falkenberg? What heart has an alliance? What power to inspire
men's loyalty?"
"I don't know,
sir."
"Nor do they."
Hartmann waved at the other middies, who were carefully leaning back
in their seats, acting as if they were listening, as if they were not
listening - John couldn't tell. Perhaps they thought Hartmann was
crazy drunk. Yet it had been a good question.
"I don't know,"
John repeated.
"Ah. But no one
knows, for there is no answer. Men cannot die for an alliance. Yet we
do fight. And we do die."
"At the
Senate's orders," Midshipman Rolnikov said quietly.
"But we do not
love the Senate," Hartmann said. "Do you love the Grand
Senate, Mister Rolnikov? Do you, Mister Bates? We know what the Grand
Senate is. Corrupt, politicians who lie to each other, and who use us
to gather wealth for themselves, power for their own factions. If
they can. They do not use us as much as they once did. Drink,
gentlemen. Drink."
The whiskey had
taken its effect, and John's head buzzed. He felt sweat break out at
his temples and in his armpits, and his stomach rebelled, but he
lifted the glass and drank again, in unison with Rolnikov and Bates,
and it was more meaningful than the Communion cup had ever been. He
tried to ask himself why, but there was only emotion, no thought. He
belonged here, with this man, with these men, and he was a man with
them.
As if he had read
John's thoughts, Lieutenant Hartmann put his arms out, across the
shoulders of the three boys, two on his left, John alone on his
right, and he lowered his voice to speak to all of them. "No. We
are here because the Fleet is our only fatherland, and our brothers
in the Service are our only family. And if the Fleet should ever
demand our lives, we give them as men because we have no other place
to go."
PART ONE: - THE
CODOMINIUM YEARS
I
Princeton, New
Jersey, United States of America
THE STUDENT LOUNGE
was noisy as usual. Students in bright tunics sipped coffee paid for
by their taxpayer parents, and spoke of the Rights of Man and the
Citizen. Others pretended to read while looking to see if anyone
interesting had come in. In one corner three young men and a girl -
she detested being called a 'young lady' - sat playing bridge. They
were typical students, children of taxpayers, well dressed in the
latest fashions of subdued colors. Their teeth were straight, their
complexions were good. Two of the boys wore contact lenses. The girl,
in keeping with fashion, wore large brightly colored glasses with
small jewels at the hinges. The remains of their afternoon snack
probably contained as many calories as the average Citizen would have
for the day.
"Three No
Trump, made four. That's game and rubber," Donald Etheridge
said. He scribbled for a moment on the score sheet. "Let's see,
I owe twenty-two fifty. Moishe, you owe eleven and a quarter. Richie
gets nine bucks, and Bonnie wins the rest."
"You always
win," Richard Larkin said accusingly.
Bonnie Dalrymple
smiled. "Comes of clean living."
"You?"
Donald smirked.
"Don't you just
wish," Richie said. He glanced at his watch. "Getting on
for class time. Visiting lecturer today."
Moishe Ellison
frowned. "Who?"
"Chap named
Falkenberg," Larkin said. "Professor at the CD University
in Rome. Going to lecture on problems of the CoDominium. Today it's
military leadership."
"Oh, I know
him," Bonnie Dalrymple said.
"Is he
interesting?" Moishe asked. "I've got a lot to do this
afternoon."
"He's dense,"
Bonnie said. She grinned at the blank looks. "Packs a lot into
what he says. Makes every paragraph count. I think you better come
listen."
"What did you
take from him?" Richard Larkin asked.
"Oh, I wasn't
old enough to take his classes. Actually, I didn't know Professor
Falkenberg very well, I used to be friends with his son. John
Christian Falkenberg the Third. It was when Daddy was stationed at
the Embassy in Rome. Johnny Falkenberg and I wandered all over the
city. He knew everything about it, it was really fun. The Capitoline
Hill, with the statues, and up there is the Tarpeian Rock where they
threw traitors off - it's not so high, really. And we'd go to the Via
Flaminia. We used to tramp down that and Johnny sang this old Roman
marching song. 'When you go by the Via Flaminia, by the Legion's road
from Rome - ' "
"Fun date."
"Wasn't really
dating. He was about fourteen and I was twelve, we were just kids out
playing around. But we had fun, really. I guess I was studious,
then."
"Heh. You still
are. You aced me in that last test," Moishe Ellison said.
"Well, if you'd
work more instead of running around with that girl - "
Ellison winked, and
the others laughed. They got up and walked together toward the
lecture hall. The smog was bad outside, but it always was, so they
didn't notice. "So how do you know about old man Falkenberg's
lectures?"
Bonnie laughed.
"Johnny used to take me to his house. Usually there wasn't
anyone there but this old black housekeeper, but sometimes the
Professor would come home early, and when he did, he'd ask where we'd
been. Then he'd tell us all about it. All about it, wherever we'd
been."
"Actually, it
was interesting. Rome was nice then, there were a lot of old
buildings I guess they've let fall down now, and the Professor knew
about all of them. But he wasn't as interesting as when Johnny told
me - I guess I had quite a crush on him." Bonnie laughed.
"That's what's
wrong with her," Richie said. "She's never got over her
youthful affair with - what was his name?"
"John Christian
Falkenberg, the Fourth." Moishe Ellison let the name roll off
his tongue.
"Third,"
Bonnie said. "And maybe you're right."
They reached Smith
Hall and went up the marble stairs to the lecture theatre.
Professor Falkenberg
was tall and thin, with a surprisingly deep voice that carried
authority. Hasn't changed a bit, Bonnie thought. He could read the
phone book and make it sound important.
Falkenberg nodded to
the students. "Good afternoon. I am pleased to see that there
are still a few students in the United States who are interested in
history.
"I wish to
examine the origins of the CoDominium. To do that, we will have to
look at just what happened to the United States and the Soviet Union
whose uneasy alliance has produced our modern world. Friends in the
Second World War, enemies in the Cold War - how did it happen that
these two divided the world between them?
"There are many
aspects to this problem. One is the decline of military power in both
nations. That in itself has many facets.
"Today we will
discuss military leadership, both as a general case and in the
specifics of the powers at the time of interest. I begin with a few
brief paragraphs by Joseph Maxwell Cameron, a writer of the last
century, who said, in his Anatomy of Military Merit:"
Professor Falkenberg
opened his pocket computer and touched a key, then began to read.
" 'Armies are
controlled by the actions of two classes of men in authority that are
distinct on the surface by levels of rank, but whose significant
difference is in the sources of their authority. One class acts on
the authority vested in it by the sovereign power. The other acts by
authority derived of appointment by the first. This is not a chance
relationship but one directed by a natural ruling principle. The
'commissioned' officer acts in the name of sovereign power and, or,
by order of its commissioned superiors to himself. The
'non-commissioned' officer exercises equally valid and at times
absolute authority, but he holds it from the commissioned officer who
appointed him and who can at his discretion remove the office. Few
controlling principles are as little understood in current times as
these that define the relationships of commissioned and
non-commissioned ranks to each other, the government, and to the
ordinary soldier. Promotion given as reward, rank seen as caste and
pay as incentive in the profession, occupation, or career in arms are
the villains that cloud the issues. A private soldier can prove
himself of equal value to a general officer, in fact has often done
so; and always by being the soldier who knew his business, whatever
his immediate motivation. A hierarchy of ranks invented to increase
prestige and pay can rob a military body of much of its power while
enjoying general approval of what are considered benefits. One of the
sure signs of a military system in decay is the appearance of an
excess ratio of persons in designated authority over the numbers of
those who serve to follow. The optimum ratio may vary a little
according to current armaments, but with little else.
" 'Because of
its specific roles and purposes an army has an optimum design and
structure of control mechanisms, instrumentation, and appendages. It
is at best simple, devoted to the smooth and graceful application of
power to motion and impact. In an almost totally industrial and
technocratic time, however, the existence of a natural pattern tends
to be forgotten as normal members and appendages are tortured and
distorted to conform to the caprices of machines. Military
monstrosities analogous to anencephalic and three legged children are
born and nursed toward ultimate impotence. They are quite horribly
obvious except to minds bemused by the magic of technology. . .
Falkenberg closed
his computer and smiled thinly. "Those words were written
shortly before the United States acquired, in what was supposed to be
peace time, approximately twice as many general officers as it had
employed during the conflict known as the Second World War, despite
having a much smaller military establishment. Nor was this all. The
ratio of officers to men began to creep upward, inexorably; and since
the optimum ratio is perhaps five percent, and some elite
organizations have done with less, it should be no surprise that as
the United States military establishment moved toward one officer for
each dozen men - and one general officer for each fifteen hundred -
the effectiveness of the system declined accordingly.
"Military
managers are easy enough to come by. Real leaders are rare."
"You were right
about the density," Moishe Ellison said.
Bonnie giggled. "He
hasn't changed much, that's for sure."
"And you only
heard him at home? Wonder his kid didn't go nuts. Whatever happened
to him, anyway?"
"He got in some
kind of trouble," Bonnie said.
"And no
wonder." Richie chuckled.
"I don't know
what it was," Bonnie said. "But the next thing I knew,
Johnny was off to the CoDominium Academy. We used to write, but when
he graduated and was sent off on a ship, well - "
"You sound like
you miss him," Moishe said.
"Yeah, hey, you
never get that tone of voice when you talk about me," Richie
said.
"That'll be the
day," Moishe said. "You ever hear from him?"
Bonnie shook her
head.
II
ANGELA NILES FOUGHT
for wakefulness. It seemed to take a long time. At one level she knew
she was dreaming, but it was still real: the crowded alleys of High
Shanghai, thousands of men and women in blue canvas clothing, not
quite uniforms but so alike they looked like blue ants. They were
shouting, screaming words she could not understand, but what they
intended was clear enough. The blue ants were coming to kill her. She
ran, and suddenly she wasn't alone, there were blue and gold
uniforms, a different blue, CoDominium blue, and the tiny squad of
CoDominium troops clustered around her. They pulled her away from the
mob, then turned, fired a volley, then another, and the blue ants
screamed and halted for a moment.
"Fall back."
The Navy lieutenant spoke calmly. "First squad. Fall back toward
the harbor. Kewney."
"Sir."
Cousin Harold. How
did Cousin Harold get here? But he was here, in the uniform of a Navy
middie.
"Can you fly
that boat?"
"No, sir."
"The cox'n was
killed."
"Yes, sir, I
know."
"Right. All
right, Midshipman. Fall back with the first squad. Halt while we're
still in sight, and take defensive positions. Signal when you're
ready. We'll hold here. Miss, you go with him - "
"But, yes, but,
Harold, what are you doing here, who is this, what - "
"No time,
Angie. Let's go!"
They ran, and now it
was certainly a dream, because she couldn't move, her legs wouldn't
work, she tried to run and couldn't -
"Try to
remember," a voice said. Whose? "What happened then?"
Running. A Marine
was holding her arm. Suddenly he stopped. His eyes grew very wide,
and he stood, stock still, in the middle of the street. A long thin
steel rod grew out of his chest, and blood came out of his mouth, and
he crumpled, slowly, slowly -
"Come on Angie,
run, dammit!"
Run. Then they were
at the end of the block, and turned the corner, and she could see the
harbor, not far away, with the long slender shape of the landing
craft, and three sailors at the landing with guns, and the turret on
top swiveled.
Harold touched his
sleeve and spoke rapidly into the communicator card. There was more
gunfire, and more people screaming, then the CoDominium lieutenant
and his party came running down the street.
"Almost there,"
Harold said.
"Get her into
the ship," the Lieutenant said.
"Sir, you can
fly the damn thing. You get her on the ship."
He was very young,
that lieutenant, no more than a boy, he looked so thin and so very
young, no older than Harold, "Three minutes," he said.
"Three minutes, Kewney, then run like hell."
Harold grinned. "You
know it. Ready? Go for it!"
And the lieutenant
took her hand and ran with her, pulling her along, and the turret
guns fired over their heads, and there was more shooting, and noise
everywhere. Something exploded close to them and one of the dockside
sailors went down. The lieutenant shouted into his sleeve mike.
"Mortars! Run for it, Kewney. NOW!" And dragged her on, to
the boarding port, threw her into the cabin.
"Sound Board
Ship!"
Recorded bugle notes
blared into the bright afternoon. The lieutenant ran forward and
moments later there were rumbles. Something exploded outside the
hatchway, and a swarm of angry bees came through the open hatch,
whipped past her and clattered against the bulkheads. There was
another explosion.
"We're hulled!"
a sailor shouted.
The engine sounds
were louder now. She ran to the hatchway to look out, and shouted for
Harold. She couldn't see anyone.
"Clear the
hatch!" someone shouted. There were whirs and the hatchway began
to close. She felt motion as the ship began to move.
"Harold!
Harold!" And there was Harold, only he was an old man, and his
face was melting, and then he was gone, and there was another man,
and the ship began to fade and she was in a white room in bed, a
hospital room, and the men beside the bed were a doctor in a white
coat and a CoDominium Navy Commander, very thin. She knew them both.
How? Who were they? Lermontov. That was his name. How did she know
that?
"Did you ever
see Midshipman Kewney again?" Commander Lermontov asked.
"No. I never
saw him after we left him at the corner, on the street of - the
Street of Three Moons." Her throat was dry, and her left arm
hurt. She couldn't move it, and when she looked she saw that it was
strapped to a board, and there was an IV inserted at the elbow. And
she remembered. Pentothal, something like that. They wanted to
question her. What had she told them?
"I've told you
everything," she said. "Three times, and whatever I said
when I was drugged. Why do we have to go over this again?"
"Your Uncle has
demanded thorough investigation," Commander Lermontov said. "And
that he will have." He used his stylus on the screen of his
pocket computer. "So. You last saw Midshipman Kewney at corner,
where he was ordered by Lieutenant Falkenberg to hold for three
minutes before retreating."
"Actually
Harold volunteered - "
"Yes. Thank
you. How long after that order was given did ship begin to move?"
"I don't know -
"
"Doctor says
you believe was less than three minutes."
"How does he
know?"
"I don't know,"
the white-coated man said. "I can only try to construct events
from your memories. Based on what we heard, I conclude that you don't
really know, but you suspect that Falkenberg took off as soon as he
got you to the ship."
"What does he
say?" Angela asked.
"You already
know that," Doctor Wittgenstein said.
"He told me
Harold was hit by mortar fire before we got to the boat."
"But you don't
believe him."
"I don't - I
don't know what to believe," she said.
"Boat lifted,"
Lermontov said. "It had not enough fuel to go to orbit, and was
damaged."
Angela shuddered.
"More damage than - I was shocked when we landed and I could
look. It was amazing that it would fly."
"Buna class
boat is designed to take damage. So. Falkenberg landed boat at
offshore island. What happened there?"
"Nothing. It
was perfectly safe there, the people were Thai, no Chinese. Very
friendly. It was - nice there, safe and peaceful. So we waited, three
weeks until the Navy could send another ship down with a repair crew.
Then I was taken to Government House, and John - Lieutenant
Falkenberg was sent to his ship. Nothing happened."
"Something
happened," Lermontov said.
She frowned at his
tone. "What do you mean?"
"Doctor - "
"Miss Niles,
you are a month pregnant."
"Oh."
"You do not
seem surprised. You took no precautions?"
She felt herself
blushing.
"Miss Niles, I
have daughter nearly your age," Lermontov said. "You took
no precautions?"
She tried to sound
casual. "I wasn't thinking about that at the time."
"Nor,
apparently, was Lieutenant," Lermontov said. "In this era
of disease you were perhaps foolhardy."
Angela shrugged.
"Actually, there were no precautions to take - "
"On Navy ship
there will always be kits," Lermontov said. "But you are in
fact correct. Medical cabinet was damaged along with much other
equipment."
"Commander, I
fail to see how my condition is relevant - "
"Your uncle
will not fail to see," Lermontov said. "Foolhardy young
Falkenberg, sacrifices promising Midshipman grandson of Grand
Senator, in order to save himself. Then seduces Grand Senator's
niece." Lermontov stared pointedly at her midriff. "Evidence
will be unmistakable in few weeks."
"Oh. Do you -
I guess Uncle Adrian would see it that way."
"At least
you're safe," Dr. Wittgenstein said. "That ought to make
him grateful."
Angela shook her
head. "I'm afraid he won't be, not very. He doesn't like my
mother much, and Harold was special. A niece is not a grandson,
Doctor. He'd have gladly traded me for Harold." She shrugged. "I
think he planned for Harold to become Grand Admiral one day."
"So. What will
you do now?" Lermontov asked.
"About - "
She rubbed her belly. "It takes getting used to. Does John -
does Lieutenant Falkenberg know?"
"Not unless you
told him," Dr. Wittgenstein said.
But I didn't know -
"You mean, he won't learn unless I tell him?"
Lermontov nodded. "I
was told you are intelligent."
"What is that
supposed to mean?"
"I think I need
not explain. What will Lieutenant Falkenberg do if he learns?"
She blushed again.
"I suppose - I suppose he'd marry me, if I wanted him to."
"Is my
prediction also," Lermontov said. "Under other
circumstances would be good thing for young man's career, marriage to
Bronson family. Now - "
"Now it would
be ruin for both of us," Angela said. "What - what should I
do?"
"You don't have
to be pregnant," Dr. Wittgenstein said.
"Damn you! I
was waiting for that! Why didn't - while I was still under, while you
had me out, why didn't you just do it then, and I'd never have known?
But no, you had to wake me up and tell me - "
"You want us to
make decision for you?" Lermontov said. When she didn't answer,
he turned to Wittgenstein. "Doctor, prepare operating room."
"Wait - no,
wait - " She felt tears welling up in her eyes. "What is
it?"
"What is what -
Oh," Wittgenstein said. "A girl."
"Commander - I
want to see John Falkenberg."
"I cannot
prevent," Lermontov said. "But I ask you do not. Not until
you have decided what you will do. He is not stupid - "
"Do you know
him?" she asked. "That's a strange thing to ask, isn't it?
Do you know the - father of my unborn daughter? We had three weeks. A
lifetime. I think I know him, but do I? I - oh, damn."
Lermontov's
expression softened. "He is - was - considered promising young
officer. Well regarded." He shrugged. "Pity no one sees
Midshipman Kewney die. Now I do not know what we can do for
Falkenberg."
"And I can't
help - I can only make it worse," she said. "Oh, damn -
what should I do?"
"Get rid of
it," Lermontov said. "Then, in year, two years, when
Senator has forgotten, you will meet again - "
"He'll never
forget. And we'll never meet again."
Lermontov was going
to speak but she cut him off. "You can't be sure, and I can't be
sure," she said. "The only thing that is sure is that - we
can kill my daughter."
"Fetus,"
Wittgenstein said. "Not - "
"I've studied
embryology," Angela said. "You don't need to tell me the
details." She was silent for a long time. Then she brushed the
tears from her eyes and looked directly at Lermontov. "Commander,
can you get me passage to Churchill?" "Yes, but why
Churchill?"
"I have
relatives there. My branch of the family didn't get the big money,
but we're not broke, you know. I'll get by - "
"If you do
this, I cannot permit you to see Falkenberg again."
"You couldn't
stop me if I demanded it, and you know it," she said. "But
- maybe it's better this way. Tell him - " The words caught in
her throat, and she felt the tears welling up again. "Tell him I
thank him for saving my life, and I wish him well."
The young man
marched stiffly into the compartment and saluted. "Lieutenant
Falkenberg reporting to Commander Lermontov as ordered, sir."
The thin man behind
the desk returned the salute. "Thank you. Have a seat."
"Sir?"
"I said, Sit
Down."
"Aye,
aye, sir." Falkenberg sat stiffly.
"You believe I
am calling you in for punishment?"
Falkenberg fingered
the dispatch case under his left arm. "I have orders - "
"I know,"
Lermontov interrupted. "Not orders I wished to issue, but there
is nothing to be done."
"So I'm leaving
the Fleet."
"No. Only
Navy," Lermontov said. "Unless you prefer to leave Fleet
entirely." The older man leaned forward and examined Falkenberg
minutely. "I could not blame you if you did, but I hope you will
not. I have arranged to transfer you to Marines. As lieutenant with
seniority and brevet captain. Also, I have sent message to Senator
Grant recommending that he obtain Grand Senate confirmation of Order
of Merit, First Class, for you. I expect that will ensure permanent
promotion to Marine captain." Lermontov sighed. "If we had
better communications, if I could speak to Grant directly, perhaps
none of this will be necessary. Perhaps. I do not gauge well the
politics of Grand Senate."
Falkenberg glanced
at his dispatch case. "Clearly I don't either. Sir."
"This is
obvious," Lermontov said. "Yet you did right. Losing one
squad of landing party to save others is difficult, but we are all
satisfied there was nothing else to be done." He shrugged. "Is
unfortunate that squad you lose is commanded by Bronson grandson, but
you cannot know this."
"He was a good
troop," Falkenberg said. "And actually I did know his
connection to - "
Lermontov held up a
hand, cutting him off. He glanced involuntarily around the room, then
eyed Falkenberg narrowly. "You will never admit that to anyone
else," he said. "That your actions cause this young man to
be killed is regrettable but justified, and perhaps Bronson will
forget. But if Grand Senator Bronson is reminded that you knew of his
interest in Midshipman Kewney, it will be much more serious. He will
never forget that. I suggest you avoid Senator in future."
"Yes, sir. Only
- "
"Sir, I have
asked about Miss Niles, and no one seems to know where she is."
"She requested
that she be sent to Churchill, where she has money and relatives. She
left two days ago on message boat to rendezvous with ship bound for
Churchill."
"Oh - I'd have
thought - Did she have a message for me?"
"She says she
is very grateful that you have saved her life."
"I see."
He was silent for a moment. "Sir, what is my assignment?"
Lermontov smiled
thinly. "You have several choices. As usual there is no end of
trouble which must be attended to."
III
Crofton's
Encyclopedia of Contemporary History and Social Issues (1st Edition)
THE EXODUS
THE ERA OF
exploration following the development of the Alderson Drive was
predictably followed by a wave of colonization. The initial colonists
tended to be both wealthy and discontented with Earth's civilization.
Many were motivated by religion: both the more traditional religions,
and the secular religion that grew out of what was known in the
Twentieth Century as "The Ecology Movement," or "The
Greens."
Many of the early
colonists were quite sophisticated, and had good reason to expect
success in establishing their cultures on new planets. Unfortunately,
they did not reckon with the intense pressures on the governments of
Earth . . .
2064 A.D.
The bright future
she sang of was already stiffened in blood, but Kathryn Malcolm
didn't know that, any more than she knew that the sun was orange-red
and too bright, or that the gravity was too low.
She had lived all of
her sixteen standard years on Arrarat, and although her grandfather
often spoke of Earth, humanity's birthplace was no home to her. Earth
was a place of machines and concrete roads and automobiles and great
cities, a place where people crowded together far from the land. When
she thought of Earth at all, it seemed an ugly place, hardly fit for
people to live on.
Mostly she wondered
how Earth would smell. With all those people huddled together -
certainly it must be different from Arrarat. She inhaled deeply,
filling her lungs with the pleasing smell of newly turned soil. The
land here was good. It felt right beneath her feet. Dark and crumbly,
moist enough to take hold of the seeds and nurture them, but not wet
and full of clods: good land, perfect land for the late-season crop
she was planting.
She walked steadily
behind the plow, using a long whip to guide the oxen. She flicked the
whip near the leaders, but never close enough to touch them. There
was no need for that. Horace and Star knew what she wanted. The whip
guided them and assured them that she was watching, but they knew the
spiral path as well as she did. The plow turned the soil inward so
that the center of the field would be higher than the edges. That
helped to drain the field and made it easier to harvest two crops
each year.
The early harvest
was already gathered into the stone barn. Wheat and corn, genetically
adapted for Arrarat; and in another part of the barn were Arrarat's
native breadfruit melons, full of sugar and ready to begin
fermentation. It had been a good year, with more than enough for the
family to eat. There would be a surplus to sell in town, and
Kathryn's mother had promised to buy a bolt of printed cloth for a
new dress that Kathryn could wear for Emil.
At the moment,
though, she wore coveralls and high boots, and she was glad enough
that Emil couldn't see her. He should know that she could plow as
straight a furrow as any man, and that she could ride as well as her
brother - but knowing it and seeing her here on the fields were two
different things entirely, and she was glad that he couldn't see her
just now. She laughed at herself when she thought this, but that
didn't stop the thoughts.
She twitched the
whip to move the oxen slightly outward, then frowned imperceptibly.
The second pair in the string had never pulled a wagon across the
plains, and Kathryn thought that she could no longer put off their
training. Emil would not want to live with Kathryn's grandfather. A
man wanted land of his own, even though there were more than a
thousand hectares in the Malcolm station.
The land here was
taken. If she and Emil were to have land of their own, they would
have to move westward, toward the other sea, where the satellite
pictures showed good land. We could go, she thought; go so far that
the convicts will never find us, and the city will be a place to see
once in a lifetime. It would be exciting, although she would hate to
leave this valley.
The field she plowed
lay among low hills. A small stream meandered along one edge. Most of
the crops and trees that she could see had come from Earth as seeds,
and they had few predators. Most crop-eaters left Earth plants alone,
especially if the fields were bordered with spearmints and marigolds
to give off odors that even Earth insects detested.
She thought of what
she would need if they struck west to found a new settlement. Seeds
they would have; and a mare and stallion, and two pairs of oxen;
chickens and swine; her grandfather was rich by local standards.
There would be her father's blacksmithing tools, which Emil could
learn to use.
They would need a
television. Those were rare. A television, and solar cells, and a
generator for the windmill; such manufactured goods had to be bought
in the city, and that took money. The second crop would be needed
this year, and a large one next spring, as well - and they would have
to keep all the money they earned. She thrust that thought away, but
her hand strayed toward the big sheath knife she wore on her belt.
We will manage, she
thought. We will find the money. Children should not go without
education. Television was not for entertainment. The programs relayed
by the satellites gave weather reports and taught farming, ecology,
engineering, metalwork - all the skills needed to live on Arrarat.
They also taught reading and mathematics. Most of Kathryn's neighbors
despised television and wouldn't have it in their houses, but their
children had to learn from others who watched the screen.
And yet, Kathryn
thought, there is cause for concern. First it is television. Then
light industry. Soon there is more. Mines are opened. Larger
factories are built, and around them grow cities. She thought of
Arrarat covered with cities and concrete, the animals replaced by
tractors and automobiles, the small villages grown into cities;
people packed together the way they were in Harmony and Garrison;
streams dammed and lakes dirty with sewage; and she shuddered. Not in
my time, or my grandchildren's. And perhaps we will be smarter than
they were on Earth, and it will never happen here. We know better
now. We know how to live with the land.
Her grandfather had
been a volunteer colonist, an engineer with enough money to bring
tools and equipment to Arrarat, and he was trying to show others how
to live with technology. He had a windmill for electricity. It
furnished power for the television and the radio. He had radio
communications with Denisburg, forty kilometers away, and although
the neighbors said they despised all technology, they were not too
proud to ask Amos Malcolm to send messages for them.
The Malcolm farm had
running water and an efficient system for converting sewage to
fertilizer. To Amos, technology was something to be used so long as
it did not use you, and he tried to teach his neighbors that.
The phone buzzed to
interrupt her thoughts, and Kathryn halted the team. The phone was in
the center of the plowed land, where it was plugged into a portable
solar reflector that kept its batteries charged. There were very few
radio-phones in the valley. They cost a great deal and could only be
bought in Harmony. Even her grandfather Amos couldn't manufacture the
phone's microcircuits, although he often muttered about buying the
proper tools and making something that would be as good. "After
all," he was fond of saying, "we do not need the very
latest. Only something that will do."
Before she reached
the phone, she heard the gunshots. They sounded for away, but they
came from the direction of her home. She looked toward the hill that
hid the ranch from her, and a red trail streaked skyward. It exploded
in a cloud of bright smoke. Amos had sent up a distress rocket. "God,
no!" Kathryn screamed. She ran for the phone, but she dropped it
in her haste. She scrabbled it up from the freshly plowed dirt and
shouted into it. "Yes!"
"Go straight to
the village, child," her grandfather's voice told her. He
sounded very old and tired. "Do not come home. Go quickly."
"Grandfather -
"
"Do as I say!
The neighbors will come, and you cannot help."
"But - "
"Kathryn."
He spoke urgently, but there were centuries in the voice. "They
are here. Many of them."
"Who?" she
demanded.
"Convicts. They
claim to be sheriffs, executing a writ for collection of taxes. I
will not pay. My house is strong, Kathryn, and the neighbors will
come. The convicts will not get in, and if they kill me now it is no
great matter - "
"And mother!"
Kathryn shouted.
"They will not
take her alive," Amos Malcolm said. "We have talked of
this, and you know what I will do. Please. Do not make my whole life
meaningless by letting them get you as well. Go to the village, and
God go with you. I must fight now."
There were more
sounds of firing in the distance. The phone was silent. Then there
were rifle shots, plus the harsh stammer of a machine gun. Amos had
good defenses for his stone ranch house.
Kathryn heard
grenades, sharp explosions, but not loud, and she prayed that she
would not hear the final explosion that meant Amos had set off the
dynamite under his house. He had often sworn that before he would let
anyone take his home, he would blow it and them to hell.
Kathryn ran back to
unhitch the oxen. They would be safe enough. The sounds of firing
would keep them from going home until the next day, and here on the
plains there were no animals large enough to be a threat to healthy
oxen. None except men.
She left the team
standing beside the plow, their eyes puzzled because the sun was high
and the field was not yet plowed, and she ran to the shade trees by
the creek. A horse and dog waited patiently there. The dog jumped up
playfully, but he sank onto the ground cringed as he sensed her mood.
Kathryn hurled the
saddle onto the horse and rumbled with the leather straps. Her hands
were moving so quickly that even familiar motions were difficult, and
she was clumsy in her haste. She tied the phone and solar reflector
in place behind the saddle and mounted. There was a rifle in the
saddle scabbard, and she took it out and fingered it longingly.
Then she hesitated.
The guns were still firing. She still heard her grandfather's machine
gun and more grenades, and that meant that Amos was alive. I should
help, she thought. I should go.
Emil will be there.
He was to plow the field next to our boundary, and he will have
heard. He will be there. She turned the horse toward the ranch.
One rider can do no
good, she realized. But though she knew that, she knew she must go to
her home before it was too late. They would have a good chance, Emil
and her grandfather. The house was strong, made of good stone, low to
the ground, much of it buried in the earth, sod roof above waterproof
plastic. It would withstand raiders. It had before, many times, but
there were very many rifles firing now and she could not remember
that large a raid before. Not here, and not anywhere.
The phone buzzed
again. "Yes!" she shouted. "What is happening?"
"Ride, girl!
Ride! Do not disobey my last command. You are all I have - " The
voice broke off before Amos said more, and Kathryn held the silent
phone and stared at it.
"All I have,"
Amos had said. Her mother and her brother were dead, then.
She screamed words
of hatred and rode toward the sound of the guns. As she crossed over
the creek she heard mortars firing, then louder explosions.
Two hundred riders
converged on the Malcolm ranch. They rode hard, their horses drenched
in sweat, and they came by families, some with their women, all with
their oldest boys. Brown dogs ran ahead of them. Their panting
tongues hung out between bared fangs as the dogs sensed the anger
their masters projected. As. the families of riders saw each other,
they waved and kicked their horses into an even faster pace.
The riders
approached the final rise before the Malcolm ranch and slowed to a
trot. There were no sounds from over the hill. Shouted commands sent
the dogs ahead. When the loping brown forms went over the hill
without halting, the riders kicked their horses back to the gallop
and rode on.
"He didn't use
the dynamite," George Woodrow said. "I heard explosions,
but not Amos's magazines." His neighbors didn't answer. They
rode down the hill toward the ranch house.
There was the smell
of explosives in the air, mixed with the bright copper smell of fresh
blood. The dogs loped among dead men who lay around the stone house.
The big front door stood open, and more dead lay in front of that. A
girl in bloodstained coveralls and muddy boots sat in the dirt by the
open door. She cradled a boy's head in her arms. She rocked gently,
not aware of the motion, and her eyes were dry and bright.
"My God!"
George Woodrow shouted. He dismounted and knelt beside her. His hand
reached out toward the boy, but he couldn't touch him. "Kathryn
- "
"They're all
dead," Kathryn said. "Grandfather, mother, my brother, and
Emil. They're all dead." She spoke calmly, telling George
Woodrow of his son's death as she might tell him that there would be
a dance at the church next Saturday.
George looked at his
dead son and the girl who would have borne his grandchildren. Then he
stood and leaned his face against his saddle. He remained that way
for a long time. Gradually he became aware that others were talking.
" - caught them
all outside except Amos," Harry Seeton said. He kept his voice
low, hoping that Kathryn and George Woodrow wouldn't hear. "I
think Amos shot Jeanine after they'd grabbed her. How in hell did
anyone sneak up on old Amos?"
"Found a dog
with an arrow in him back there," Wan Loo said. "A crossbow
bolt. Perhaps that is how."
"I still don't
understand it," Seeton insisted.
"Go after
them!" Kathryn stood beside her dead fiance. "Ride!"
"We will ride,"
Wan Loo said. "When it is time."
"Ride now!"
Kathryn demanded.
"No."
Harry Seeton shook his head sadly. "Do you think this was the
only place raided today? A dozen more. Most did not even fight. There
are hundreds more raiders, and they will have joined together by now.
We cannot ride until there are more of us."
"And then
what?" George Woodrow asked. His voice was bitter. "By the
time there are enough of us, they will be in the hills again."
He looked helplessly at the line of high foothills just at the
horizon. "God! Why?"
"Do not
blaspheme." The voice was strident. Roger Dornan wore dark
clothing, and his face was lean and narrow. He looks like an
undertaker, Kathryn thought. "The ways of the Lord are not to be
questioned," Dornan intoned.
"We don't need
that talk, Brother Dornan," Kathryn said. "We need revenge!
I thought we had men here! George, will you ride with me to hunt your
son's murderer?"
"Put your trust
in the Lord," Dornan said. "Lay this burden on His
shoulders."
"I cannot allow
you to ride," Wan Loo said. "You and George would be
killed, and for what? You gain no revenge by throwing yourself at
their guns." He motioned, and two of his sons went to hold
Kathryn's horse. Another took George Woodrow's mount and led it away.
"We need all our farmers," Wan Loo said. "And what
would become of George's other children? And his wife with the unborn
child? You cannot go."
"Got a live
one," a rider called. Two men lifted a still figure from the
ground. They carried him over to where the others had gathered around
Kathryn and George Woodrow, then dropped him into the dirt. Wan Loo
knelt and felt for the pulse. Then he seized the raider's hair and
lifted the head. Methodically he slapped the face. His fingers left
vivid red marks on the too-white flesh. Smack, smack! Forehand,
backhand, methodically, and the raider's head rocked with each blow.
"He's about
gone," Harry Seeton said.
"All the more
reason he should be awakened," Wan Loo said. He ignored the
spreading bloodstains on the raider's leather jacket, and turned him
face down into the dirt. He seized an arm and twisted violently. The
raider grunted.
The raider was no
older than twenty. He had a short scraggly beard, not well developed.
He wore dark trousers and a leather jacket and soft leather boots
much like Kathryn's. There were marks on his fingers, discol-orations
where rings had been, and his left earlobe was torn.
"They stripped
their own dead and wounded," Wood-row grunted. "What all
did they get?"
"The windmill
generator," Harry Seeton reported. "And all the livestock,
and some of the electronics. The phone's gone, too. Wonder why Amos
didn't blow the place?"
"Shaped charge
penetrated the wall," one of the riders said. "Killed Amos
at his gun."
"Leggo. Stop."
The young raider moaned. "That hurts."
"He is coming
awake," Wan Loo told them. "But he will not last long."
"Pity,"
George Woodrow said. He bent down and slapped the boy's face. "Wake
up, damn you! I want you to feel the rope around your neck! Harry,
get a rope."
"You must not,"
Brother Dornan said. "Vengeance is the Lord's - "
"We'll just
help the Lord out a bit," Woodrow said. "Get a rope!"
"Yeah,"
Seeton said. "I guess. Kathryn?"
"Get it. Give
it to me. I want to put it around his neck." She looked down at
the raider. "Why?" she demanded. "Why?"
For a moment the
boy's eyes met hers. "Why not?"
Three men dug graves
on the knoll above the valley. Kathryn came up the hill silently, and
they did not see her at first. When they did they stopped working,
but she said nothing, and after a while they dug again. Their shovels
bit into the rich soil.
"You're digging
too many graves," Kathryn said. "Fill one in."
"But - "
"My grandfather
will not be buried here," Kathryn said.
The men stopped
digging. They looked at the girl and her bloodstained coveralls, then
glanced out at the horizon where the rest of the commandos had gone.
There was dust out there. The riders were coming home. They wouldn't
have caught the raiders before they went into the hills.
One of the
gravediggers made a silent decision. Next spring he would take his
family and find new lands. It would be better than this. But he
wondered if the convicts would not follow wherever he went. When men
work the earth, others will come to kill and steal.
"Where?"
he asked finally.
"Bury Amos in
his doorway," Kathryn said.
"That is a
terrible thing, to bury a man in his own door. He will not rest - "
"I don't want
him to rest," Kathryn said. "I want him to walk! I want him
to walk and remind us all of what Earth has done to us!"
IV
"HEAR THIS. ALL
hands brace for reentry. Hear this."
"Seat straps,
Lieutenant," Sergeant Cernan said.
"Right." I
pulled the shoulder straps down into place and latched them, then
looked out at Arrarat.
The planet had a
bleak look, not like Earth. There were few clouds, and lots of
desert. There were also heavy jungle forests near the equator. The
only cultivated lands I could see were on a narrow strip at the
northern edge of a nearly landlocked sea. South of the sea was
another continent. It looked dry and dusty, desert land where men had
left no mark in passing - if anyone had ever been there at all.
Northward and
westward from the cultivated strip were hills and forests, high
desert plateaus, high mountains, and ragged canyons. There were
streaks through the forests and across the hills, narrow roads not
much more than tracks. When the troopship got lower I could see
villages and towns, and every one of them had walls or a stockade and
ditch. They looked like tiny fortresses.
The ship circled
until it had lost enough speed to make a landing approach. Then it
ran eastward, and we could see the city. My briefing folio said it
was the only city on Arrarat. It stood on a high bluff above the sea,
and it seemed huddled in on itself. It looked like a medieval walled
town, but it was made of modern concrete, and adobe with plastic
waterproofing, and other materials medieval craftsmen probably
wouldn't have used if they'd had them.
As the ship passed
over the city at two thousand meters, it became obvious that there
were really two cities run together, with only a wall between them.
Neither was very large. The oldest part of the city, Harmony, showed
little evidence of planning: there were little narrow streets running
at all angles, and the public squares were randomly placed. The
northern part, Garrison, was smaller, but it had streets at precise
right angles, and a big public plaza stood opposite the square fort
at the northern edge.
All the buildings
were low, with only a couple more than two stories high. The roofs
were red tile, and the walls were whitewashed. Harmony reminded me of
towns I'd seen in Mexico. Bright sun shone off the bay below the city
bluff. Garrison was a harsher place, all right angles, neat and
orderly, but everything strictly functional. There was a square
fortress at its northern edge. My new home.
I was a very junior
lieutenant of CoDominium Marines, only three months out of the
Academy and green as grass. It was Academy practice to commission the
top thirty graduates in each class. The rest went out as cadets and
midshipmen for more training. I was proud of the bars on my epaulets,
but I was also a bit scared. I'd never been with troops before, and
I'd never had any friends from the working classes, so I didn't know
much about the kind of people who enlist in the Line Marines. I knew
plenty of stories, of course. Men join to get away from their wives,
or because some judge gives them a chance to enlist before passing
sentence. Others are recruited out of Bureau of Relocation ships.
Most come from Citizen classes, and my family's always been taxpayer.
It was just as well
for me that my father was a taxpayer. I grew up in the American
Southwest, where things haven't changed so much since the CoDominium.
We still think we're free men. When my father died, Mom and I tried
to run the ranch the way he had, as if it still belonged to us. It
did, on paper, but we didn't have his contacts in the bureaucracy. We
didn't understand all the regulations and labor restrictions, and we
didn't know who to bribe when we broke the rules. When we got in real
trouble, I tried to keep the government people from taking
possession, and that wasn't too good an idea. The judge was an old
friend of my father's and offered to get me into the Academy. U.S.
courts don't have jurisdiction over CoDominium officers.
I didn't have a lot
of choices, and CD Fleet service looked pretty good just then. I'd
not only get out of trouble; I'd leave Earth. Mom was getting married
again, so she'd be all right. The government had the ranch and we'd
never get it back. I was young enough to think soldiering was a
romantic idea, and Judge Hamilton made it pretty clear I was going to
have to do something.
"Look, Hal,"
he told me, "your dad should have left. There's no place for
people like us. They want people who want security, who'll obey the
rules - people who like the welfare state, not ornery cusses like you
and your father. Even if I can get you off this time, you'll get in
trouble again. You're going to have to leave, and you'll be better
off as a CD officer than as a colonist."
He was right. I
wondered why he stayed. Same reason my father did, I supposed.
Getting older, used to his home, not ready to go make a new start
somewhere else. I hadn't said anything, but he must have guessed what
I was thinking.
"I can still do
some good here. I'm a judge for life - they can't take that away from
me without damned good reasons - and I can still help lads like you.
There's nothing here for you, Hal. The future's out there. New
worlds, new ones found every year. Serve out a hitch in the Fleet
service. See what's out there, and decide where you want your lads to
grow up. Someplace free."
I couldn't think of
anything else to do, so I let him get me into the Academy. It had
been all right there. The Fleet has its own brotherhood. I'd been a
loner most of my life, not because I wanted to be - God knows I would
have liked to have friends! - but because I didn't fit in anywhere.
The Academy was different.
It's hard to say
how. One thing, though, there aren't any incompetents whining to have
the world take care of them. Not that we didn't look out for each
other. If a classmate's soft on math, you help him, and if somebody
has trouble with electronics - I did - a sharper classmate sits up
nights boning up with him. But if after all that he can't cut it,
he's out. There's more to it than that, though. I can't explain the
Fleet's sense of brotherhood, but it's real enough, and it was what
I'd been looking for all my life.
I was there two and
a half years, and we worked all the time, cramming everything from
weapons maintenance to basic science to civil engineering and road
construction. I finished seventh in the class and got my commission.
After a month's leave to say goodbye to my mother and my girl - only
I didn't really have a girl; I just liked to pretend I did - I was on
an Olympic Lines passenger ship headed for another star system.
And now I'm here, I
thought. I looked down at the planet, trying to spot places I'd seen
on the maps in our briefing kit. I was also listening to the troopers
in the compartment. The instructors at the Academy had told us that
officers could learn a lot by listening to the men, and I hadn't had
much opportunity to listen to these. Three weeks before I'd been on
the passenger ship, and now I was at the end of nowhere on an ancient
troop carrier, with a detachment commander who'd kept us training so
hard there'd been no time for talk or anything else.
There were only a
few viewports in the compartment, and those were taken by officers
and senior enlisted men. Behind me, Sergeant Cernan was describing
what he saw. A number of younger Marines, recruits mostly, were
crowded around him. The older troopers were catching naps in their
seats.
"Not much
outside the city walls," Cernan said. "Trees, look like
scrub oaks. And I think those others are olives. There's palms, too.
Must be from Earth. Never saw palm trees that didn't come from
Earth."
"Hey, Sarge,
can you see the fort?" Corporal Roff asked.
"Yeah. Looks
like any CD post. You'll be right at home."
"Sure we will,"
Roff said. "Sure. Christ, why us?"
"Your birthday
present," Cernan said. "Just be damned glad you'll be
leavin' someday. Think of them poor bastards back aft in the can."
The ship circled the
harbor, then glided in on its stubby wings to settle into the chop
outside the breakwater. The waves were two meters high and more, and
the ship rolled badly. One of the new recruits was sick. His seatmate
handed him a plastic bag.
"Hey, Dietz!"
Roff called. "Want some fried bacon? A little salt pork?"
He grinned. "Maybe some sow belly - "
"Sergeant
Cernan."
"Sir!"
The captain didn't
say anything else. He sat forward, a dozen rows in front of me, and I
hadn't expected him to be listening, but I wasn't surprised. I'd
learned in the past three weeks that not much went on without Captain
John Christian Falkenberg finding out.
Behind me, Cernan
said, very tight-lipped, "Roff, one more word out of you - "
Dietz's buddy found
another bag. No one else kidded the sick recruits. Soon the shuttle
moved into the inner harbor, where there were no waves, and everyone
felt better. A lone tugboat came alongside and eased the spacecraft
toward a concrete pier. There was no other traffic in the harbor
except for a few small fishing boats.
A Navy officer came
into the compartment and looked around until he found Falkenberg.
"Sir, the Governor requests that you turn your men out under
arms to assist in the prisoner formation."
Falkenberg turned
toward the Navy man and raised an eyebrow. Then he nodded. "Sergeant
Major!"
"Sir!"
Ogilvie shouted from the rear of the compartment.
"Personal
weapons for all troops. Rifles and cartridge belts. And bayonets,
Sergeant Major. Bayonets, by all means."
"Sir."
There was a bustle of activity as Sergeant Major Ogilvie and his
weapons sergeants unlocked the arms chest and began passing out
rifles.
"What about our
other gear?" Falkenberg asked.
"You'll have to
make arrangements with the garrison," the ship's officer said.
"Right. That's
all, then?"
"Yes. That's
all, Major."
I grinned as the
Navyman left the compartment. To the Navy there's only one captain
aboard ship, and that's the skipper. Marine captains in transit get a
very temporary and utterly meaningless "promotion" to major
for the duration of the voyage.
Falkenberg went to
the forward hatchway. "Lieutenant Slater. A moment, please."
"Sir." I
went forward to join him. I hadn't really noticed the low gravity
until I stood up, but now it was obvious. It was only
eighty-five-percent Earth standard, and on the trip out, Falkenberg
had insisted the Navy skipper keep the outer rim of the old troopship
at 110 percent spin gravity for as much of the trip as possible. The
Navy hadn't liked it, but they'd done it, and Falkenberg had trained
us in the high-gravity areas. Now we felt as if we could float away
with no trouble.
I didn't know much
about Falkenberg. The Service List showed he'd had Navy experience,
then transferred to Fleet Marines. Now he was with a Line outfit.
Moving around like that, two transfers, should have meant he was
being run out, but then there was his rank. He also had a Military
Cross, but the List hadn't said what it was for. It did tell me he'd
gone into the Academy at fifteen and left as a midshipman.
I first saw him at
Betio Transfer Station, which is an airless rock the Fleet keeps as a
repair base and supply depot. It's convenient to several important
star systems, but there's nothing there. I'd been on my way from
graduation to Crucis Sector Headquarters, with assignment to the
Fleet Marines. I was proud of that. Of the three Marine branches,
Fleet is supposed to be the technical elite. Garrison outfits are
mostly for riot suppression. The Line Marines get the dirty jobs left
over. Line troops say theirs is the real elite, and they certainly do
more than their share of the actual fighting when things are tough. I
didn't know if we'd be fighting on Arrarat. I didn't even know why we
were sent here. I just knew that Falkenberg had authority to change
orders for all unassigned officers, and I'd been yanked off my
comfortable berth - first class, damn it! - to report to him at
Betio. If he knew what was up, he wasn't telling the junior officers.
Falkenberg wasn't a
lot older than I was. I was a few weeks past my twenty-first
birthday, and he was maybe five years older, a captain with the
Military Cross. He must have had something going for him - influence,
possibly, but if that was it, why was he with the Line Marines and
not on staff at headquarters? I couldn't ask him. He didn't talk very
much. He wasn't unfriendly, but he seemed cold and distant and didn't
encourage anyone to get close to him.
Falkenberg was tall,
but he didn't reach my height, which is 193 centimeters according to
my ID card. We called it six-four where I grew up. Falkenberg was
maybe two inches shorter. His eyes were indeterminate in color,
sometimes gray and sometimes green, depending on the light, and they
seemed very bright when he looked at you. He had short hair the color
of sand, and no moustache. Most officers grow them after they make
captain, but he hadn't.
His uniforms always
fit perfectly. I thought I cut a good military figure, but I found
myself studying the way Falkenberg dressed. I also studied his
mannerisms, wondering if I could copy any of them. I wasn't sure I
liked him or that I really wanted to imitate him, but I told myself
that anybody who could make captain before he was thirty was worth at
least a bit of study. There are plenty of forty-year-old lieutenants
in the service.
He didn't look big
or particularly strong, but I knew better. I'm no forty-four-kilo
weakling, but he threw me easily in unarmed combat practice, and that
was in 100 percent gravity.
He was grinning when
I joined him at the forward hatchway. "Ever think, Lieutenant,
that every military generation since World War One has thought theirs
would be the last to carry bayonets?" He waved toward where
Ogilvie was still passing out rifles.
"No, sir, I
never did."
"Few do,"
Falkenberg said. "My old man was a CoDominium University
professor, and he thought I ought to learn military history. Think
about it: a weapon originally designed to convert a musket into a
pike, and it's still around when we're going to war in starships."
"Yes, sir - "
"Because it's
useful, Lieutenant - as you'll find out someday." The grin
faded, and Falkenberg lowered his voice. "I didn't call you up
here to discuss military history, of course. I want the men to see us
in conference. Give them something to worry about. They know they're
going ashore armed."
"Yes, sir - "
"Tell me,
Harlan Slater, what do they call you?"
"Hal, sir."
We had been aboard ship for twenty-one days, and this was the first
time Falkenberg had asked. It says a lot about him.
"You're senior
lieutenant," Falkenberg said.
"Yes, sir."
Which wasn't saying much: the other lieutenants had all been
classmates at the Academy, and I outranked them only because I'd
graduated higher in the class.
"You'll collect
the other officers and stay here at the gangway while we go through
this prisoner formation. Then bring up the rear as we take the troops
up the hill to the fort. I doubt there's transport, so we'll have to
march."
"Yes, sir."
"You don't
understand. If you don't understand something, ask about it. Have you
noticed our troopers, Mr. Slater?"
"Frankly,
Captain, I haven't had enough experience to make any kind of
judgment," I said. "We have a lot of recruits - "
"Yes. I'm not
worried about them. Nor about the regulars I brought with me to
Betio. But for the rest, we've got the scrapings out of half the
guardhouses in the Sector. I doubt they'll desert during their first
hours ashore, but I'm going to make damned sure. Their gear will stay
aboard this ship, and we'll march them up in formation. By dark I'll
have turned this command over to Colonel Harrington and it will be
his worry, but until then I'm responsible, and I'll see that every
man gets to the fort."
"I see. Yes,
sir." And that's why he's a captain at his age, on independent
assignment at that. Efficient. I wanted to be like that, or thought I
did. I wasn't quite sure what I really wanted. The CD Armed Services
wasn't my idea, but now that I was in it, I wanted to do it right if
I could. I had my doubts about some of the things the CoDominium did
- I was glad that I hadn't been assigned to one of the regiments that
puts down riots on Earth - but I didn't know what ought to replace
the CD and the Grand Senate, either. After all, we did keep the
peace, and that has to be worth a lot.
"They're
opening the gangway," Falkenberg said. "Sergeant Major."
"Sir!"
"Column of
fours in company order, please."
"Sir."
Ogilvie began shouting orders. The troops marched down the gangway
and onto the concrete pier below. I went out onto the gangway to
watch.
It was hot outside
and within minutes I was sweating. The sun seemed red-orange, and
very bright. After the smells of the troopship, with men confined
with too little water for adequate washing, the planetary smells were
a relief. Arrarat had a peculiar odor, slightly sweet, like flowers,
with an undertone of wet vegetation. All that was mixed with the
stronger smells of a salt sea and the harbor.
There were few
buildings down at sea level. The city wall stood high above the
harbor at the top of its bluff. Down on the level strip just above
the sea were piers and warehouses, but the streets were wide and
there were large spaces between buildings.
My first alien
world. It didn't seem all that strange. I looked for something
exotic, like sea creatures, or strange plants, but there weren't any
visible from the gangway. I told myself all that would come later.
There was one larger
structure at sea level. It was two stories high, with no windows
facing us. It had big gates in the center of the wall facing the
ship, with a guard tower at each of its corners. It looked like a
prison, and I knew that was what it had to be, but there seemed no
point in that. The whole planet was a prison.
There was a squad of
local militiamen on the pier. They wore drab coveralls, which made
quite a contrast to the blue and scarlet undress of the CoDominium
Marines marching down the pier. Falkenberg talked with the locals for
a moment, and then Sergeant Major Ogilvie shouted orders, and the
Marines formed up in a double line that stretched up the dock to the
aft gangway. The line went from the gangway to the big gates in the
prison building. Ogilvie shouted more orders, and the Marines fixed
bayonets.
They did it well.
You'd never have known most of them were recruits. Even in the
cramped quarters of the troop carrier, Falkenberg had drilled them
into a smart-looking unit. The cost had been high. There were
twenty-eight suicides among the recruits, and another hundred had
been washed out and sent back among the convicts. They told us at the
Academy that the only way to make a good Marine is to work him in
training until he can have some pride in surviving it, and God knows
Falkenberg must have believed that. It had seemed reasonable enough
back in the lecture theater at Luna Base.
One morning we had
four suicides, and one had been an old Line regular, not a recruit at
all. I'd been duty officer when the troops found the body. It had
been cut down from where he'd hanged himself to a light fixture, and
the rope was missing. I tried to find the rope and even paraded all
the men in that compartment, but nobody was saying anything.
Later Sergeant Major
Ogilvie came to me in confidence. "You'll never find the rope,
Lieutenant," he said. "It's cut up in a dozen pieces by
now. That man had won the military medal. The rope he hanged himself
with? That's lucky, sir. They'll keep the pieces."
All of which
convinced me I had a lot to learn about Line Marines.
The forward
companionway opened, and the convicts came out. Officially they were
all convicts, or families of transportees who had voluntarily
accompanied a convict; but when we'd gone recruiting in the prison
section of the ship, we found a number of prisoners who'd never been
convicted of anything at all. They'd been scooped up in one of Bureau
of Relocation's periodic sweeps and put on the involuntary colonist
list.
The prisoners were
ragged and unwashed. Most wore BuRelock coveralls. Some carried
pathetically small bundles, everything they owned. They milled around
in confusion in the bright sunlight until ship's petty officers
screamed at them and they shuffled down the gangway and along the
pier. They tended to huddle together, shrinking away from the
bayonets of the lines of troops on either side. Eventually they were
herded through the big square gates of the prison building. I
wondered what would happen to them in there.
There were more men
than women, but there were plenty of women and girls. There were also
far more children than I liked to see in that condition. I didn't
like this. I hadn't joined the CoDominium Armed Services for this
kind of duty.
"Heavy price,
isn't it?" a voice said behind me. It was Deane Knowles. He'd
been a classmate at the Academy. He was a short chap, not much above
the minimum height for a commission, and had features so fine that he
was almost pretty. I had reason to know that women liked him, and
Deane liked them. He should have graduated second in the class, but
he'd accumulated so many demerits for sneaking off bounds to see his
girlfriends that he was dropped twenty-five places in class rank,
which was why I outranked him and would until one of us was promoted
above the other. I figured he'd make captain before I did.
"Heavy price
for what?" I asked.
"For clean air
and lower population and all the other goodies they have back on
Earth. Sometimes I wonder if it's worth it."
"But what
choices do we have?" I asked.
"None. Zero.
Nothing else to do. Ship out the surplus and let 'em make their own
way somewhere. In the long run it's not only all to the good, it's
all there is; but the run doesn't look so long when you're watching
the results. Look out. Here comes Louis."
Louis Bonneyman,
another classmate, joined us. Louis had finished a genuine
twenty-fourth in class rank. He was part French-Canadian, although
he'd been raised in the U.S. most of his life. Louis was a fanatic CD
loyalist and didn't like to hear any of us question CD policy,
although, like the rest of us in the service, it didn't really matter
what the policies were. "No politics in the Fleet" was
beaten into our heads at the Academy, and later the instructors made
it clear that what that really translated to was: "The Fleet is
Our Fatherland." We could question anything the Grand Senate did
- as long as we stood by our comrades and obeyed orders.
We stood there
watching as the colonists were herded into the prison building. It
took nearly an hour to get all two thousand of them inside. Finally
the gates were closed. Ogilvie gave more orders and the Marines
scabbarded their bayonets, then formed into a column of eight and
marched down the road.
"Well, fellow
musketeers," I said, "here we go. We're to follow up the
hill, and there's apparently no transport."
"What about my
ordnance?" Deane asked.
I shrugged.
"Apparently arrangements will be made. In any event, it's John
Christian Falkenberg's problem. Ours not to reason why - "
"Ours but to
watch for deserters," Louis Bonneyman said. "And we'd best
get at it. Is your sidearm loaded?"
"Oh, come on,
Louis," Deane said.
"Notice,"
Louis said. "See how Falkenberg has formed up the troops. Recall
that their baggage is still aboard. You may not like Falkenberg,
Deane, but you will admit that he is thorough."
"As it happens,
Louis is right," I said. "Falkenberg did say something
about deserters. But he didn't think there'd be any."
"There you
are," Louis said. "He takes no chances, that one."
"Except with
us," Deane Knowles said.
"What do you
mean by that?" Louis let the smile fade and lifted an eyebrow at
Deane.
"Oh, nothing,"
Deane said. "Not much Falkenberg could do about it, anyway. But
I don't suppose you chaps know what the local garrison commander
asked for?"
"No, of course
not," Louis said.
"How did you
find out?" I asked.
"Simple. When
you want to know something military, talk to the sergeants."
"Well?"
Louis demanded.
Deane grinned. "Come
on, we'll get too far behind. Looks as if we really will march all
the way up the hill, doesn't it? Not even transport for officers.
Shameful."
"Damn your
eyes, Deane!" I said. Knowles shrugged. "Well, the Governor
asked for a full regiment and a destroyer. Instead of a regiment and
a warship, he got us. Might be interesting if he really needed a
regiment, eh? Coming, fellows?"
V
"I'VE A HEAD
like a concertina, And I think I'm going to die, And I'm here in the
clink for a thunderin' drink, And blackin' the corporal's eye. ..."
"Picturesque,"
Louis said. "They sing well, don't they?"
"Shut up and
walk," Deane told him. "It's bloody hot."
I didn't find it so
bad. It was hot. No question about that, and undress blues were never
designed for route marches on hot planets. Still, it could have been
worse. We might have turned out in body armor.
There was no problem
with the troops. They marched and sang like regulars, even if half of
them were recruits and the rest were guardhouse cases. If any of them
had ideas of running, they never showed them.
"With another
man's cloak underneath of my head,
And a beautiful view
of the yard,
It's thirty day's
fine,
With bread and no
wine,
For Drunk and
Resistin' the Guard!
Mad-drunk and
Resistin' the Guard!"
"Curious,"
Louis said. "Half of them have never seen a guardhouse."
"I expect
they'll find out soon enough," Deane said. "Lord love us,
will you look at that?"
He gestured at a row
of cheap adobe houses along the riverbank. There wasn't much doubt
about what they sold. The girls were dressed for hot weather, and
they sat on the windowsills and waved at the troopers going by.
"I thought
Arrarat was full of holy Joes, Louis Bonneyman said. "Well, we
will have no difficulty finding any troopers who run - not for the
first night, anyway."
The harbor area was
just north of a wide river that fanned into a delta east of the city.
The road was just inland from the harbor, with the city a high bluff
to our right as we marched inland. It seemed a long way before we got
to the turnoff to the city gate.
There were
facilities for servicing the space shuttle, and some riverboat docks
and warehouses, but it seemed to me there wasn't a lot of activity,
and I wondered why. As far as I could remember, there weren't any
railroads on Arrarat, nor many highways, and I couldn't remember
seeing any airfields, either.
After a kilometer of
marching inland, we turned sharply right and followed another road up
the bluff. There was a rabbit warren of crumbling houses and alleys
along the bluff, then a clear area in front of the high city wall.
Militiamen in drab coveralls manned a guardhouse at the city gate.
Other militiamen patrolled the wall. Inside the gate was Harmony,
another warren of houses and shops not a lot different from those
outside, but a little better kept up.
The main road had
clear area for thirty meters on each side, and beyond that was chaos.
Market stalls, houses, tailor shops, electronics shops, a smithy with
hand bellows and forge, a shop that wound electric motors and another
that sold solar cells, a pottery with kick-wheel where a woman shaped
cups from clay, a silversmith, a scissors grinder - the variety was
overwhelming, and so was the contrast of modern and the kinds of
things you might see in Frontierland.
There were
anachronisms everywhere, but I was used to them. The military
services were shot through with contrasts. Part of it was the state
of development out in the colonies - many of them had no industrial
base, and some didn't want any to begin with. If you didn't bring it
with you, you wouldn't have it. There was another reason, too.
CoDominium Intelligence licensed all scientific research and tried to
suppress anything that could have military value. The U.S.-Soviet
alliance was on top and wasn't about to let any new discoveries upset
the balance. They couldn't stop everything, but they didn't have to,
so long as the Grand Senate controlled everyone's R&D budget and
could tinker with the patent laws.
We all knew it
couldn't last, but we didn't want to think about that. Back on Earth
the U.S. and Soviet governments hated each other. The only thing they
hated more was the idea that someone else - like the Chinese or
Japanese or United Emirates - would get strong enough to tell them
what to do. The Fleet guards an uneasy peace built on an uneasy
alliance.
The people of
Harmony came in all races and colors, and I heard a dozen languages
shouted from shop to shop. Everyone either worked outside his house
or had market stalls there. When we marched past, people stopped work
and waved at us. One old man came out of a tailor shop and took off
his broad-brimmed hat. "God bless you, soldiers!" he
shouted. "We love you!"
"Now, that's
what we joined up for," Deane said. "Not to herd a bunch of
losers halfway across the Galaxy."
"Twenty parsecs
isn't halfway across the Galaxy," I told him.
He made faces at me.
"I wonder why
they're all so glad to see us?" Louis asked. "And they look
hungry. How does one become so thin in an agricultural paradise?"
"Incredible,"
Deane said. "Louis, you really must learn to pay attention to
important details. Such as reading the station roster of the garrison
here."
"And when could
I have done that?" Bonneyman demanded. "Falkenberg had us
working twelve hours a day - "
"So you use the
other twelve," Deane said.
"And what, O
brilliant one, didst thou learn from the station roster?" I
asked.
"That the
garrison commander is over seventy, and he has one
sixty-three-year-old major on his staff, as well as a
sixty-two-year-old captain. Also, the youngest Marine officer on
Arrarat is over sixty, and the only junior officers are militia."
"Bah. A
retirement post," Bonneyman said. "So why did they ask for
a regiment?"
"Don't be
silly, Louis," Deane said. "Because they've run into
something they can't handle with their militia and their
superannuated officers, of course."
"Meaning we'll
have to," I said. Only, of course, we didn't have a regiment,
only less than a thousand Marines, three junior officers, a captain
with the Military Cross, and - well, and nothing, unless the local
militia were capable of something. "The heroes have arrived."
"Yes. Nice,
isn't it?" Deane said. "I expect the women will be
friendly."
"And is that
all you ever think about?" Louis demanded.
"What else is
there? Marching in the sun?"
A younger townman in
dark clerical clothing stood at his table under the awning of a
sidewalk cafe. He raised a hand in a gesture of blessing. There were
more cheers from a group of children.
"Nice to be
loved," Deane said.
Despite the way he
said it, Deane meant that. It was nice to be loved. I remembered my
last visit to Earth. There were a lot of places where CD officers
didn't dare go without a squad of troopers. Out here the people
wanted us. The paladins, I thought, and I laughed at myself because I
could imagine what Deane and Louis would say if I'd said that aloud,
but I wondered if they didn't think it, too.
"They don't
seem to have much transport," Louis said.
"Unless you
count those." Deane pointed to a watering trough where five
horses were tied. There were also two camels, and an animal that
looked like a clumsy combination of camel, moose, and mule, with big
splayed feet and silly antlers.
That had to be an
alien beast, the first thing I was certain was native to this planet.
I wondered what they called it, and how it had been domesticated.
There was almost no
motor transport: a few pickup trucks, and one old ground-effects car
with no top; everything else was animal transport. There were wagons,
and men on horseback, and two women dressed in coveralls and mounted
on mules.
Bonneyman shook his
head. "Looks as if they stirred up a brew from the American Wild
West, medieval Paris, and threw in scenes from the Arabian Nights."
We all laughed, but
Louis wasn't far wrong.
Arrarat was
discovered soon after the first private exploration ships went out
from Earth. It was an inhabitable planet, and although there are a
number of those in the regions near Earth, they aren't all that
common. A survey team was sent to find out what riches could be
taken.
There weren't any.
Earth crops would grow, and men could live on the planet, but no one
was going to invest money in agriculture. Shipping foodstuffs through
interstellar space is a simple way of going bankrupt unless there are
nearby markets with valuable minerals and no agriculture. This planet
had no nearby market at all.
The American Express
Company owned settlement rights through discovery. AmEx sold the
planet to a combine of churches. The World Federation of Churches
named it Arrarat and advertised it as "a place of refuge for the
unwanted of Earth." They began to raise money for its
development, and since this was before the Bureau of Relocation began
involuntary colonies, they had a lot of help. Charity, tithes,
government grants, all helped, and then the church groups hit on the
idea of a lottery. Prizes were free transportation to Arrarat for
winners and their families; and there were plenty of people willing
to trade Earth for a place where there was free land, plenty to eat,
hard work, no government harrassment, and no pollution. The World
Federation of Churches sold tens of millions of one-credit lottery
tickets. They soon had enough money to charter ships and sent people
out.
There was plenty of
room for colonists, even though the inhabitable portion of Arrarat is
comparatively small. The planet has a higher mean temperature than
Earth, and the regions near the equator are far too hot for men to
live in. At the very poles it is too cold. The southern hemisphere is
nearly all water. Even so, there is plenty of land in the north
temperate zone. The delta area where Harmony was founded was chosen
as the best of the lot. It had a climate like the Mediterranean
region of Earth. Rainfall was erratic, but the colony thrived.
The churches had
very little money, but the planet didn't need heavy industry. Animals
were shipped instead of tractors, on the theory that horses and oxen
can make other horses and oxen, but tractors make only oil refineries
and smog. Industry wasn't wanted; Arrarat was to be a place where
each man could prune his own vineyard and sit in the shade of his fig
tree. Some of the Federation of Churches' governing board actively
hated industrial technology, and none loved it; and there was no
need, anyway. The planet could easily support far more than the half
to three-quarters of a million people the churches sent out as
colonists.
Then the disaster
struck. A survey ship found thorium and other valuable metals in the
asteroid belt of Arrarat's system. It wasn't a disaster for everyone,
of course. American Express was happy enough, and so was Kennicott
Metals after they bought mining rights; but for the church groups it
was disaster enough. The miners came, and with them came trouble. The
only convenient place for the miners to go for recreation was
Arrarat, and the kinds of establishments asteroid miners liked
weren't what the Federation of Churches had in mind. The "Holy
Joes" and the "Goddamns" shouted at each other and
petitioned the Grand Senate for help, while the madams and gamblers
and distillers set up for business.
That wasn't the
worst of it. The Federation of Churches' petition to the CoDominium
Grand Senate ended up in the CD bureaucracy, and an official in
Bureau of Corrections noticed that a lot of empty ships were going
from Earth to Arrarat. They came back full of refined thorium, but
they went out deadhead . . . and BuCorrect had plenty of prisoners
they didn't know what to do with. It cost money to keep them. Why
not, BuCorrect reasoned, send the prisoners to Arrarat and turn them
loose? Earth would be free of them. It was humane. Better yet, the
churches could hardly object to setting captives free. . . .
The BuCorrect
official got a promotion, and Arrarat got over half a million
criminals and convicts, most of whom had never lived outside a city.
They knew nothing of farming, and they drifted to Harmony, where they
tried to live as best they could. The result was predictable. Harmony
soon had the highest crime rate in the history of man.
The situation was
intolerable for Kennicott Metals. Miners wouldn't work without planet
leave, but they didn't dare go to Harmony. Their union demanded that
someone do something, and Kennicott appealed to the Grand Senate. A
regiment of CoDominium Marines was sent to Arrarat. They couldn't
stay long, but they didn't have to. They built walls around the city
of Harmony, and for good measure they built the town of Garrison
adjacent to it. Then the Marines put all the convicts outside the
walls.
It wasn't intended
to be a permanent solution. A CoDominium Governor was appointed, over
the objections of the World Federation of Churches. The Colonial
Bureau began preparations for sending a government team of judges and
police and technicians and industrial-development specialists so that
Arrarat could support the streams of people BuCorrect had sent.
Before they arrived, Kennicott found an even more valuable source of
thorium in a system nearer to Earth, the Arrarat mines were put into
reserve, and there was no longer any reason for the CoDominium Grand
Senate to be interested in Arrarat. The Marine garrison pulled out,
leaving a cadre to help train colonial militia to defend the walls of
Harmony-Garrison.
"What are you
so moody about?" Deane asked.
"Just
remembering what was in the briefing they gave us. You aren't the
only one who studies up," I said.
"And what have
you concluded?"
"Not a lot. I
wonder how the people here like living in a prison. It's got to be
that way, convicts outside and citizens inside. Marvelous."
"Perhaps they
have a city jail," Louis said. "That would be a prison
within a prison."
"Funny,"
Deane said.
We walked along in
silence, listening to the tramp of the boots ahead of us, until we
came to another wall. There were guards at that gate, too. We passed
through into the smaller city of Garrison.
"And why
couldn't they have had transportation for officers?" Louis
Bonneyman said. "There are trucks here."
There weren't many,
but there were more than in Harmony. Most of the vehicles were
surplus military ground-effects troop carriers. There were also more
wagons.
"March or die,
Louis. March or die." Deane grinned.
Louis said something
under his breath. "March or Die" was a slogan of the old
French Foreign Legion, and the Line Marines were direct descendants
of the Legion, with a lot of their traditions. Bonneyman couldn't
stand the idea that he wasn't living up to the service's standards.
Commands rattled
down the ranks of marching men. "Look like Marines, damn you!"
Ogilvie shouted.
"Falkenberg's
showing off," Deane said.
"About time,
too," Louis told him. "The fort is just ahead."
"Sound off!"
Ogilvie ordered.
"We've left
blood in the dirt of twenty-five worlds,
We've built roads on
a dozen more,
And all that we have
at the end of our hitch
Buys a night with a
second-class whore.
The Senate decrees,
the Grand Admiral calls,
The orders come down
from on high.
It's 'On Full Kits'
and 'Sound Board Ships,'
We're sending you
where you can die."
Another Legion
tradition, I thought. Over every orderly room door in Line regiments
is a brass plaque. It says: YOU ARE LINE MARINES IN ORDER TO DIE, AND
THE FLEET WILL SEND YOU WHERE YOU CAN DIE. An inheritance from La
Legion Etrangère. The first time I saw it, I thought it was
dashing and romantic, but now I wondered if they meant it.
The troops marched
in the slow cadence of the Line Marines. It wasn't a fast pace, but
we could keep it up long after quick-marching troops keeled over from
exhaustion.
"The lands that
we take, the Senate gives back,
Rather more often
than not,
But the more that
are killed, the less share the loot,
And we won't be back
to this spot.
We'll break the
hearts of your women and girls,
We may break your
arse, as well,
Then the Line
Marines with their banners unfurled
Will follow those
banners to hell.
We know the devil,
his pomps, and his works,
Ah, yes! We know
them well!
When you've served
out your hitch in the Line Marines,
You can bugger the
Senate of Hell!"
"An opportunity
we may all have," Deane said. "Rather sooner than I'd like.
What do they want with us here?"
"I expect we'll
find out soon enough," I said.
"Then we'll
drink with our comrades and throw down our packs,
We'll rest ten years
on the flat of our backs,
Then it's 'On Full
Kits' and out of your racks,
You must build a new
road through Hell!
The Fleet is our
country, we sleep with a rifle,
No man ever begot a
son on his rifle,
They pay us in gin
and curse when we sin,
There's not one
that can stand us unless we're downwind,
We're shot when we
lose and turned out when we win,
But we bury our
comrades wherever they fall,
And there's none
that can face us, though we've nothing at all."
VI
OFFICERS' ROW
STRETCHED along the east side of the parade ground. The fort was
nothing special. It hadn't been built to withstand modern weapons,
and it looked a bit like something out of Beau Geste, which was
reasonable, since it was built of local materials by officers with no
better engineering education than mine. It's simple enough to lay out
a rectangular walled fort, and if that's enough for the job, why make
it more complicated?
The officers'
quarters seemed empty. The fort had been built to house a regimental
combat team with plenty of support groups, and now there were fewer
than a dozen Marine officers on the planet. Most of them lived in
family quarters, and the militia officers generally lived in homes in
the city. It left the rest of us with lots of room to rattle around
in. Falkenberg drew a suite meant for the regimental adjutant, and I
got a major's rooms myself.
After a work party
brought our personal gear up from the landing boat, I got busy and
unpacked, but when I finished, the place still looked empty. A
lieutenant's travel allowance isn't very large, and the rooms were
too big. I stowed my gear and wondered what to do next. It seemed a
depressing way to spend my first night on an alien world. Of course,
I'd been to the Moon, and Mars, but those are different. They aren't
worlds. You can't go outside, and you might as well be in a ship. I
wondered if we'd be permitted off post – I was still thinking
like a cadet, not an officer on field duty - and what I could do if
we were. We'd had no instructions, and I decided I'd better wait for
a briefing.
There was a quick
knock on my door, and then it opened. An old Line private came in. He
might have been my father. His uniform was tailored perfectly, but
worn in places. There were hash marks from wrist to elbow.
"Private Hartz
reporting, zur." He had a thick accent, but it wasn't pure
anything; a lot of different accents blended together. "Sergeant
Major sent me to be the lieutenant's dog-robber."
And what the hell do
I do with him? I wondered. It wouldn't do to be indecisive. I
couldn't remember if he'd been part of the detachment in the ship, or
if he was one of the garrison. Falkenberg would never be in that
situation. He'd know. The trooper was standing at attention in the
doorway. "At ease, Hartz," I said. "What ought I to
know about this place?"
"I don't know,
zur."
Which meant he was a
newcomer, or he wasn't spilling anything to officers, and I wasn't
about to guess which. "Do you want a drink?"
"Thank you,
yes, zur."
I found a bottle and
put it out on the dressing stand. "Always leave two for me.
Otherwise, help yourself," I told him.
He went to the
latrine for glasses. I hadn't known there were any there, but then I
wasn't all that familiar with senior officers' quarters. Maybe Hartz
was, so I'd gained no information about him. He poured a shot for
himself. "Is the lieutenant drinking?"
"Sure, I'll
have one." I took the glass from him. "Cheers."
"Prosit."
He poured the whiskey down in one gulp. "I see the lieutenant
has unpacked. I will straighten up now. By your leave, zur."
He wandered around
the room, moving my spare boots two inches to the left, switching my
combat armor from one side of the closet to the other, taking out my
dress uniform and staring at it inch by inch.
I didn't need an
orderly, but I couldn't just turn him out. I was supposed to get to
know him, since he'd be with me on field duty. If any, I thought. To
hell with it. "I'm going down to the officers' mess," I
told him. "Help yourself to the bottle, but leave me two shots
for tonight."
"Zur."
I felt like an
idiot, chased out of my own quarters by my own batman, but I couldn't
see what else to do. He was clearly not going to be satisfied until
he'd gone over every piece of gear I had. Probably trying to impress
me with how thorough he was. They pay dog-robbers extra, and it's
always good duty for a drinking man. I was pretty sure I could trust
him. I'd never crossed Ogilvie that I knew of. It takes a
particularly stupid officer to get on the wrong side of the sergeant
major.
It wasn't hard to
find the officers' club. Like everything else, it had been built for
a regiment, and it was a big building. I got a surprise inside. I was
met by a Marine corporal I recognized as one of the detachment we'd
brought with us. I started to go into the bar, where I saw a number
of militia officers, and the corporal stopped me.
"Excuse me,
sir. Marine club is that way." He pointed down the hall.
"I think I'd
rather drink with the militiamen, Corporal."
"Yes, sir.
Sergeant Major told me to be sure to tell all officers, sir."
"I see." I
didn't see, but I wasn't going to get into an argument with a
corporal, and there wasn't any point in being bullheaded. I went down
the hall to the Marine club. Deane Knowles was already there. He was
alone except for a waiter - another trooper from our detachment. In
the militia bar the waiters were civilians.
"Welcome to the
gay and merry life," Deane said. "Will you have whiskey? Or
there's a peach brandy that's endurable. For God's sake, sit down and
talk to me!"
"I take it you
were intercepted by Corporal Hansner," I said.
"Quite
efficiently. Now I know it is Fleet practice to carry the military
caste system to extremes, but this seems a bit much, even so. There
are, what, a dozen Marine officers here, even including our august
selves. So we immediately form our own club."
I shrugged. "Maybe
it's the militiamen who don't care for us?"
"Nonsense. Even
if they hated our guts, they'd want news from Earth. Meanwhile, we
find out nothing about the situation here. What's yours?"
"I'll try your
brandy," I told the waiter. "And who's the bartender when
you're not on duty?"
"Don't know,
sir. Sergeant Major sent me over - "
"Yes, of
course." I waited for the trooper to leave. "And Sergeant
Major takes care of us, he does, indeed. I have a truly formidable
orderly - "
Deane was laughing.
"One of the ancients? Yes. I thought so. As is mine. Monitor
Armand Kubiak, at my service, sir."
"I only drew a
private," I said.
"Well, at least
Ogilvie has some sense of propriety," Deane said. "Cheers."
"Cheers. That's
quite good, actually." I put the glass down and started to say
something else, but Deane wasn't listening to me. He was staring at
the door, and after a moment I turned to follow his gaze. "You
know, I think that's the prettiest girl I ever saw."
"Certainly a
contender," Deane said. "She's coming to our table."
"Obviously."
We got to our feet.
She was definitely
worth looking at. She wasn't very tall. Her head came about to my
chin, so that with the slight heels on her sandals she was just
taller than Deane. She wore a linen dress, blue to match her eyes,
and it looked as if she'd never been out in the sun at all. The dress
was crisp and looked cool. Few of the women we'd seen on the march in
had worn skirts, and those had been long, drab cotton things. Her
hair was curled into wisps around her shoulders. She had a big golden
seal ring on her right hand.
She walked in as if
she owned the place. She was obviously used to getting her own way.
"I hope you're
looking for us," Deane said.
"As a matter of
fact, I am." She had a very nice smile. An expensive smile, I
decided.
"Well, you've
excellent taste, anyway," Deane said.
I don't know how he
gets away with it. I think it's telepathy. There's no particular
cleverness to what he says to girls. I know, because I made a study
of his technique when we were in the Academy. I thought I could learn
it the way I was learning tactics, but it didn't work. What Deane
says doesn't matter, and how he says it doesn't seem important. He'll
chatter along, saying nothing, even being offensive, and the next
thing you know the girl's leaving with him. If she has to ditch a
date, that can happen, too.
I was damned if it
was going to happen this time, but I had a sinking feeling, because
I'd been determined before and it hadn't done me any good. I couldn't
think of one thing to say to her.
"I'm Deane
Knowles. And this is Lieutenant Slater," Deane said.
You rotten swine, I
thought. I tried to smile as she offered her hand.
"And I'm Irina
Swale."
"Surely you're
the Governor's daughter, then," Deane said.
"That's right.
May I sit down?"
"Please do."
Deane held her chair before I could get to it. It made me feel
awkward. We managed to get seated, and Private Donnelley came over.
"Jericho,
please," Irina said.
Donnelley looked
blankly at her.
"He came in
with us," I said. "He doesn't know what you've ordered."
"It's a wine,"
she said. "I'm sure there will be several bottles. It isn't
usually chilled."
"Yes, ma'am,"
Donnelley said. He went over to the bar and began looking at bottles.
"We were just
wondering what to do," Deane said. "You've rescued us from
terminal ennui."
She smiled at that,
but there was a shadow behind the smile. She didn't seem offended by
us, but she wasn't really very amused. I wondered what she wanted.
Donnelley brought
over a bottle and a wineglass. "Is this it, ma'am?"
"Yes. Thank
you."
He put the glass on
the table and poured. "If you'll excuse me a moment, Lieutenant
Knowles?"
"Sure,
Donnelley. Don't leave us alone too long, or we'll raid your bar."
"Yes, sir."
Donnelley went out into the hall.
"Cheers,"
Deane said. "Tell us about the night life on Arrarat."
"It's not very
pleasant," Irina said.
"Rather dull.
Well, I guess we expected that - "
"It's not so
much dull as horrible," Irina said. "I'm sorry. It's just
that ... I feel guilty when I think about my own problems. They're so
petty. Tell me, when are the others coming?"
Deane and I
exchanged glances. I started to say something, but Deane spoke first.
"They don't tell us very much, you know."
"Then it's true
- you are the only ones coming," she said.
"Now, I didn't
say that," Deane protested. "I said I didn't know - "
"You needn't
lie," she said. "I'm hardly a spy. You're all they sent,
aren't you? No warship, and no regiment. Just a few hundred men and
some junior officers."
"I'd have
thought you'd know more than we do," I said.
"I just don't
give up hope quite as quickly as my father does."
"I don't
understand any of this," I said. "The Governor sent for a
regiment, but nobody's told us what that regiment was supposed to
do."
"Clean up the
mess we've made of this planet," Irina said. "And I really
thought they'd do something. The CoDominium has turned Arrarat into
sheer hell, and I thought they'd have enough . . . what? Pride?
Shame? Enough elementary decency to put things right before we pull
out entirely. I see I was wrong."
"I take it
things are pretty bad outside the walls," Deane said.
"Bad? They're
horrible!" Irina said. "You can't even imagine what's
happening out there. Criminal gangs setting themselves up as
governments. And my father recognizes them as governments! We make
treaties with them. And the colonists are ground to pieces. Murder's
the least of it. A whole planet going to barbarism, and we don't even
try to help them."
"But surely
your militia can do something," Deane said.
"Not really."
She shook her head, slowly, and stared into the empty wineglass. "In
the first place, the militia won't go outside the walls. I don't
suppose I blame them. They aren't soldiers. Shopkeepers, mostly. Once
in a while they'll go as far as the big river bend, or down to the
nearest farmlands, but that doesn't do any good. We tried doing
something more permanent, but it didn't work. We couldn't protect the
colonists from the convict gangs. And now we recognize convict
gangsters as legal governments!"
Donnelley came back
in and went to the bar. Deane signaled for refills.
"I noticed
people came out to cheer us as we marched through the city," I
said.
Irina's smile was
bitter. "Yes. They think you're going to open up trade with the
interior, rescue their relatives out there. I wish you could."
Before we could say
anything else, Captain Falkenberg came in. "Good afternoon,"
he said. "May I join you?"
"Certainly,
sir," Deane said. "This is Captain Falkenberg. Irina Swale,
Captain, the Governor's daughter."
"I see. Good
afternoon. Brandy, please, Donnelley. And will the rest of you join
me? Excellent. Another round, please. Incidentally, my name is John.
First names in the mess, Deane - except for the colonel."
"Yes, sir.
Excuse me. John. Miss Swale has been telling us about conditions
outside the walls. They're pretty bad."
"I gather. I've
just spent the afternoon with the colonel. Perhaps we can do
something, Miss Swale."
"Irina. First
names in the mess." She laughed. It was a very nice laugh. "I
wish you could do something for those people, but - well, you only
have a thousand men.
"A thousand
Line Marines," Falkenberg said. "That's not quite the same
thing."
And we don't even
have a thousand Marines, I told myself. Lot of recruits with us. I
wondered what Falkenberg had in mind. Was he just trying to impress
the Governor's daughter? I hoped not, because the way he'd said it
made me feel proud.
"I gather you
sympathize with the farmers out there," Falkenberg said.
"I'd have to,
wouldn't I?" Irina said. "Even if they didn't come to me
after Hugo - my father - says he can't help them. And I've tried to
do something for the children. Do you really think - " She let
her voice trail off.
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Doubtless we'll try. We can put detachments out in some of the
critical areas. As you said, there's only so much a thousand men can
do, even a thousand Marines."
"And after you
leave?" Irina said. Her voice was bitter. "They are pulling
out, aren't they? You've come to evacuate us."
"The Grand
Senate doesn't generally discuss high policy with junior captains,"
Falkenberg said.
"No, I suppose
not. But I do know you brought orders from the Colonial Office, and
Hugo took them into his office to read them - and he hasn't spoken to
anyone since. All day he's been in there. It isn't hard to guess what
they say." Irina sipped at the wine and stared moodily at the
oak table. "Of course it's necessary to understand the big
picture. What's one little planet with fewer than a million people?
Arrarat is no threat to the peace, is it? But they are people, and
they deserve something better than - Sorry. I'm not always like
this."
"We'll have to
think of something to cheer you up," Deane said. "Tell me
about the gay social life of Arrarat."
She gave a half
smile. "Wild. One continuous whirl of grand balls and lewd
parties. Just what you'd expect on a church-settled planet."
"Dullsville,"
Deane said. "But now that we're here - "
"I expect we
can manage something," Irina said. "I tend to be Dad's
social secretary. John, isn't it customary to welcome new troops with
a formal party? We'll have to have one in the Governor's palace."
"It's
customary," Falkenberg said. "But that's generally to
welcome a regiment, not a random collection of replacements. On the
other hand, since the replacements are the only military unit here -
"
"Well, we do
have our militia," Irina said.
"Sorry. I meant
the only Line unit. I'm certain everyone would be pleased if you'd
invite us to a formal ball. Can you arrange it for, say, five days
from now?"
"Of course,"
she said. She looked at him curiously. So did the rest of us. It
hadn't occurred to me that Falkenberg would be interested in
something like that. "I'll have to get started right away,
though."
"If that's
cutting it too close," Falkenberg said, "we - "
"No, that will
be all right."
Falkenberg glanced
at his watch, then drained his glass. "One more round,
gentlemen, and I fear I have to take you away. Staff briefing. Irina,
will you need an escort?"
"No, of course
not."
We chatted for a few
minutes more, then Falkenberg stood. "Sorry to leave you alone,
Irina, but we do have work to do."
"Yes. I quite
understand."
"And I'll
appreciate it if you can get that invitation made official as soon as
possible," Falkenberg said. "Otherwise, we're likely to
have conflicting duties, but, of course, we could hardly refuse the
Governor's invitation."
"Yes, I'll get
started right now," she said.
"Good.
Gentlemen? We've a bit of work. Administration of the new troops and
such. Dull, but necessary."
VII
THE CONFERENCE ROOM
had a long table large enough for a dozen officers, with chairs at
the end for twice that many more. There were briefing screens on two
walls. The others were paneled in some kind of rich wood native to
Arrarat. There were scars on the paneling where pictures and banners
had hung. Now the panels were bare, and the room looked empty and
cold. The only decoration was the CoDominium flag, American eagle and
Soviet hammer and sickle. It stood between an empty trophy case and a
bare corner.
Louis Bonneyman was
already there. He got up as we came in.
"There won't be
many here," Falkenberg said. "You may as well take places
near the head of the table."
"Will you be
regimental adjutant or a battalion commander?" Deane asked me.
He pointed to senior officers' places.
"Battalion
commander, by all means," I said. "Line over staff any day.
Louis, you can be intelligence officer."
"That may not
seem quite so amusing in a few minutes," Falkenberg said. "Take
your places, gentlemen." He punched a button on the table's
console. "And give some thought to what you say."
I wondered what the
hell he meant by that. It hadn't escaped me that he'd known where to
find us. Donnelley must have called him. The question was, why?
"Ten-hut!"
We got up as Colonel
Harrington came in. Deane had told me Harrington was over seventy,
but I hadn't really believed it. There wasn't any doubt about it now.
Harrington was short and his face had a pinched look. The little hair
he had left was white.
Sergeant Major
Ogilvie came in with him. He looked enormous when he stood next to
the Colonel. He was almost as tall as Falkenberg, anyway, and a lot
more massive, a big man to begin with. Standing next to Harrington,
he looked liked a giant.
The third man was a
major who couldn't have been much younger than the Colonel.
"Be seated,
gentlemen," Harrington said. "Welcome to Arrarat. I'm
Harrington, of course. This is Major Lorca, my Chief of Staff. We
already know who you are."
We muttered some
kind of response while Harrington took his seat. He sat carefully,
the way you might in high gravity, only, of course, Arrarat isn't a
high-gravity planet. Old, I thought. Old and past retirement, even
with regeneration therapy and geriatric drugs.
"You're quite a
problem for me," the Colonel said. "We asked for a regiment
of military police. Garrison Marines. I didn't think we'd get a full
regiment, but I certainly didn't ask for Line troops. Now what am I
to do with you?"
Nobody said
anything.
"I cannot
integrate Line Marines into the militia," the Colonel said. "It
would be a disaster for both units. I don't even want your troops in
this city! That's all I need, to have Line troopers practicing system
D in Harmony!"
Deane looked blankly
at me, and I grinned. It was nice to know something he didn't. System
D is a Line troop tradition. The men organize themselves into small
units and go into a section of town where they all drink until they
can't hold any more. Then they tell the saloon owners they can't pay.
If any of them causes trouble, they wreck his place, with the others
converging onto the troublesome bar while more units delay the guard.
"I'm sorry, but
I want your Line troopers out of this city as soon as possible,"
Harrington said. "And I can't give you any officers. There's no
way I can put Marines under militia officers, and I can't spare any
of the few Fleet people I have. That's a break for you, gentlemen,
because the four of you will be the only officers in the 501st
Provisional Battalion. Captain Falkenberg will command, of course.
Mr. Slater, as senior lieutenant you will be his second, and I expect
you'll have to take a company, as well. You others will also be
company commanders. Major Lorca will be able to assist with logistics
and maintenance services, but for the rest of it, you'll be on your
own."
Harrington paused to
let that sink in. Deane was grinning at me, and I answered it with
one of my own. With any luck we'd do pretty well out of this
miserable place. Experience as company commanders could cut years off
our time as lieutenants.
"The next
problem is, what the hell can I do with you after you're organized?"
Harrington demanded. "Major Lorca, if you'll give them the
background?"
Lorca got up and
went to the briefing stand. He used the console to project a city map
on the briefing screen. "As you can see, the city is strongly
defended," he said. "We have no difficulty in holding it
with our militia. However, it is the only part of Arrarat that we
have ever been required to hold, and as a result there are a number
of competing gangs operating pretty well as they please in the
interior. Lately a group calling itself the River Pack has taken a
long stretch along the river-banks and is levying such high passage
fees that they have effectively cut this city off from supply. River
traffic is the only feasible way to move agricultural goods from the
farmlands to the city."
Lorca projected
another map showing the river stretching northwestward from
Harmony-Garrison. It ran through a line of hills; then upriver of
that were more farmlands. Beyond them was another mountain chain. "In
addition," Lorca said, "the raw materials for whatever
industries we have on this planet come from these mines." A
light pointer indicated the distant mountains. "It leaves us
with a delicate political situation."
The Colonel growled
like a dog. "Delicate. Hell, it's impossible!" he said.
"Tell 'em the rest of it, Lorca."
"Yes, Colonel.
The political responsibilities on this planet have never been
carefully defined. Few jurisdictions are clear-cut. For example, the
city of Garrison is under direct military authority, and Colonel
Harrington is both civil and military commander within its walls. The
city of Harmony is under direct CoDominium rule, with Governor Swale
as its head. That is clear, but Governor Swale also holds a
commission as planetary executive, which in theory subordinates
Colonel Harrington to him. In practice they work together well
enough, with the Governor taking civil authority and Colonel
Harrington exercising military authority. In effect we have
integrated Garrison and Harmony."
"And that's
about all we've agreed on," Harrington said. "There's one
other thing that's bloody clear. Our orders say we're to hold
Garrison at all costs. That, in practice, means we have to defend
Harmony as well, so we've an integrated militia force. There's plenty
enough strength to defend both cities against direct attack. Supply's
another matter."
"As I said, a
delicate situation," Major Lorca said. "We cannot hold the
city without supply, and we cannot supply the city without keeping
the river transport lines open. In the past, Governor Swale and
Colonel Harrington were agreed that the only way to do that was to
extend CoDominium rule to these areas along the river." The
light pointer moved again, indicating the area marked as held by the
River Pack.
"They resisted
us," Lorca said. "Not only the convicts, but the original
colonists as well. Our convoys were attacked. Our militiamen were
shot down by snipers. Bombs were thrown into the homes of militia
officers - the hostiles don't have many sympathizers inside the city,
but it doesn't take many to employ terror tactics. The Governor would
not submit to military rule in the city of Harmony, and the militia
could not sustain the effort needed to hold the riverbanks. On orders
from the Governor, all CoDominium-controlled forces were withdrawn to
within the walls of Harmony-Garrison."
"We abandoned
those people," Harrington said. "Well, they got what they
deserved. As you'd expect, there was a minor civil war out there.
When it was over, the River Pack was in control. Swale recognized
them as a legal government. Thought he could negotiate with them.
Horse puckey. Go on, Lorca. Give 'em the bottom line."
"Yes, sir. As
the Colonel said, the River Pack was recognized as a legal
government, and negotiations were started. They have not been
successful. The River Pack has made unacceptable demands as a
condition of opening the river supply lines. Since it is obvious to
the Governor that we cannot hold these cities without secure
supplies, the Governor directed Colonel Harrington to reopen the
supply lines by military force. The attempt was not successful."
"They beat our
arses," Harrington said. His lips were tightly drawn. "I've
got plenty of explanations for it. Militia are just the wrong kind of
troops for the job. That's all burned hydrogen anyway. The fact is,
they beat us, and we had to send back to Headquarters for Marine
reinforcements. I asked for a destroyer and a regiment of military
police. The warship and the Marines would have taken the goddam
riverbanks, and the MPs could hold it for us. Instead, I got you
people."
"Which seems to
have turned the trick," Major Lorca said. "At 1630 hours
this afternoon, Governor Swale received word that the River Pack
wishes to reopen negotiations. Apparently they have information
sources within the city - "
"In the city,
hell!" Harrington said. "In the Governor's palace, if you
ask me. Some of his clerks have sold out."
"Yes, sir,"
Lorca said. "In any event, they have heard that reinforcements
have come, and they wish to negotiate a settlement."
"Bastards,"
Colonel Harrington said. "Bloody criminal butchers. You can't
imagine what those swine have done out there. And His Excellency will
certainly negotiate a settlement that leaves them in control. I guess
he has to. There's not much doubt that with the 501st as a spearhead
we could retake that area, but we can't hold it with Line Marines!
Hell, Line troops aren't any use as military government. They aren't
trained for it and they won't do it."
Falkenberg cleared
his throat. Harrington glared at him for a moment. "Yes?"
"Question,
sir."
"Ask it."
"What would
happen if the negotiations failed so that the 501st was required to
clear the area by force? Would that produce a more desirable result?"
Harrington nodded,
and the glare faded. "I like the way you think. Actually,
Captain, it wouldn't, not really. The gangs would try to fight, but
when they saw it was hopeless, they'd take their weapons and run.
Melt into the bush and wait. Then we'd be back where we were a couple
of years ago, fighting a long guerrilla war with no prospect for
ending it. I had something like that in mind, Captain, but that was
when I was expecting MPs. I think we could govern with a regiment of
MPs."
"Yes, sir,"
Falkenberg said. "But even if we must negotiate a settlement
with the River Pack, surely we would like to be in as strong a
bargaining position as possible."
"What do you
have in mind, Falkenberg?" Harrington asked. He sounded puzzled,
but there was genuine interest in his voice.
"If I may,
sir." Falkenberg got up and went to the briefing screen. "At
the moment I take it we are technically in a state of war with the
River Pack?"
"It's not that
formal," Major Lorca said. "But, yes, that's about the
situation."
"I noticed that
there was an abandoned CD fort about 240 kilometers upriver,"
Falkenberg said. He used the screen controls to show that section of
the river. "You've said that you don't want Line Marines in the
city. It seemed to me that the old fort would make a good base for
the 501st, and our presence there would certainly help keep river
traffic open."
"All right. Go
on," Harrington said.
"Now we have
not yet organized the 501st Battalion, but no one here knows that. I
have carefully isolated my officers and troops from the militia.
Sergeant Major, have any of the enlisted men talked with anyone on
this post?"
"No, sir. Your
orders were pretty clear, sir."
"And I know the
officers have not," Falkenberg said. He glanced at us and we
nodded. "Therefore, I think it highly unlikely that we will run
into any serious opposition if we march immediately to our new base,"
Falkenberg said. "We may be able to do some good on the way. If
we move fast, we may catch some River Pack gangsters. Whatever
happens, we'll disrupt them and make it simpler to negotiate
favorable terms."
"Immediately,"
Harrington said. "What do you mean by immediately?"
"Tonight, sir.
Why not? The troops haven't got settled in. They're prepared to
march. Our gear is all packed for travel. If Major Lorca can supply
us with a few trucks for heavy equipment, we'll have no other
difficulties."
"By God,"
Harrington said. He looked thoughtful. "It's taking a hell of a
risk - " He looked thoughtful again. "But not so big a risk
as we'd have if you stayed around here. As you say. Right now nobody
knows what we've got. Let the troops get to talking, and it'll get
all over this planet that you've brought a random collection of
recruits, guardhouse soldiers, and newlies, That wouldn't be so
obvious if you hit the road."
"You'd be
pretty much on your own until we get the river traffic established
again," Major Lorca said.
"Yes, sir,"
Falkenberg answered. "But we'd be closer to food supply than you
are. I've got three helicopters and a couple of Skyhooks. We can
bring in military stores with those."
"By God, I like
it," Harrington said. "Right now those bastards have beaten
us. I wouldn't mind paying them out." He looked at us, then
shook his head. "What do you chaps think? I can spare only the
four of you. That stands. Can you do it?"
We all nodded. I had
my doubts, but I was cocky enough to think I could do anything. "It
will be a cakewalk, sir," I said. "I can't think a gang of
criminals wants to face a battalion of Line Marines."
"Honor of the
corps and all that," Harrington said. "I was never with
Line troops. You haven't been with 'em long enough to know anything
about them, and here you're talking like one of them already. All
right. Captain Falkenberg, you are authorized to take your battalion
to Fort Beersheba at your earliest convenience. Tell 'em what you can
give 'em, Lorca." The Colonel sounded ten years younger. That
defeat had hurt him, and he was looking forward to showing the River
Pack what regular troops could do.
Major Lorca told us
about logistics and transport. There weren't enough trucks to carry
more than a bare minimum of supplies. We could tow the artillery, and
there were two tanks we could have. For most of us it would be march
or die, but it didn't look to me as if there'd be very much dying.
Finally Lorca
finished. "Questions?" he said. He looked at Falkenberg.
"I'll reserve
mine for the moment, sir." Falkenberg was already talking like a
battalion commander.
"Sir, why is
there so little motor transport?" Louis Bonneyman asked.
"No
fuel facilities," Lorca told him. "No
petroleum refineries. We have a small supply of crude oil and
a couple of very primitive distillation plants, but nowhere near
enough to support any large number of motor vehicles. The original
colonists were quite happy about that. They didn't want them."
Lorca reminded me of one of the instructor officers at the Academy.
"What weapons
are we facing?" Deane Knowles asked.
Lorca shrugged.
"They're better armed than you think. Good rifles. Some rocket
launchers. A few mortars. Nothing heavy, and they tend to be
deficient in communications, in electronics in general, but there are
exceptions to that. They've captured gear from our militia" -
Colonel Harrington winced at that - "and, of course, anything we
sell to the farmers eventually ends up in the hands of the gangs. If
we refuse to let the farmers buy weapons, we condemn them. If we do
sell weapons, we arm more convicts. A vicious circle."
I studied the map
problem. It didn't look difficult. A thousand men need just over a
metric ton of dried food every day. There was plenty of water along
the route, though, and we could probably get local forage, as well.
We could do it, even with the inadequate transport Lorca could give
us. It did look like a cakewalk.
I worried with the
figures until I was satisfied, then suddenly realized it wasn't an
exercise for a class. This was real. In a few hours we'd be marching
into hostile territory. I looked over at my classmates. Deane was
punching numbers into his pocket computer and frowning at the result.
Louis Bonneyman was grinning like a thief. He caught my eye and
winked. I grinned back at him, and it made me feel better. Whatever
happened, I could count on them.
Lorca went through a
few more details on stores and equipment available from the garrison,
plus other logistic support available from the fort. We all took
notes, and of course the briefing was recorded. "That about sums
it up," he said.
Harrington stood,
and we got up. "I expect you'll want to organize the 501st
before you'll have any meaningful questions," Harrington said.
"I'll leave you to that. You may consider this meeting your
formal call on the commanding officer, although I'll be glad to see
any of you in my office if you've anything to say to me. That's all."
"Ten-hut!"
Ogilvie said. He stayed in the briefing room as Colonel Harrington
and Major Lorca left.
"Well. We've
work to do," Falkenberg said. "Sergeant Major."
"Sir!"
"Please run
through the organization we worked out."
"Sir!"
Ogilvie used the screen controls to flash charts onto the screens. As
the Colonel had said, I was second in command of the battalion, and
also A Company commander. My company was a rifle outfit. I noticed it
was heavy with experienced Line troopers, and I had less than my
share of recruits.
Deane had drawn the
weapons company, which figured. Deane had taken top marks in weapons
technology at the Academy, and he was always reading up on artillery
tactics. Louis Bonneyman had another rifle company with a heavy
proportion of recruits to worry about. Falkenberg had kept a large
headquarters platoon under his personal command.
"There are
reasons for this structure," Falkenberg said. "I'll explain
them later. For the moment, have any of you objections?"
"Don't know
enough to object, sir," I said. I was studying the organization
chart.
"All of you
will have to rely heavily on your NCO's," Falkenberg said.
"Fortunately, there are some good ones. I've given the best,
Centurion Lieberman, to A Company. Bonneyman gets Sergeant Cernan. If
he works out, we can get him a Centurion's badges. Knowles has
already worked with Gunner-Centurion Pniff. Sergeant Major Ogilvie
stays with Headquarters Platoon, of course. In addition to your
command duties, each of you will have to fill some staff slots.
Bonneyman will be intelligence." Falkenberg grinned slightly. "I
told you it might not seem such a joke."
Louis answered his
grin. He was already sitting in the regimental intelligence officer's
chair at the table. I wondered why Falkenberg had given that job to
Louis. Of the four of us, Louis had paid the least attention to his
briefing packet, and he didn't seem cut out for the job.
"Supply and
logistics stay with Knowles, of course," Falkenberg said. "I'll
keep training myself. Now, I have a proposition for you. The Colonel
has ordered us to occupy Fort Beersheba at the earliest feasible
moment. If we simply march there with no fighting and without
accomplishing much beyond getting there, the Governor will negotiate
a peace. We will be stationed out in the middle of nowhere, with few
duties beyond patrols. Does anyone see any problems with that?"
"Damned dull,"
Louis Bonneyman said.
"And not just
for us. What have you to say, Sergeant Major?"
Ogilvie shook his
head. "Don't like it, sir. Might be all right for the recruits,
but wouldn't recommend it for the old hands. Especially the ones you
took out of the brig. Be a lot of the bug, sir."
The bug. The Foreign
Legion called it le cafard, which means the same thing. It had been
the biggest single cause of death in the Legion, and it was still
that among Line Marines. Men with nothing to do. Armed men, warriors,
bored stiff. They get obsessed with the bug until they commit
suicide, or murder, or desert, or plot mutiny. The textbook remedy
for le cafard is a rifle and plenty of chances to use it. Combat.
Line troops on garrison duty lose more men to cafard than active
outfits lose in combat. So my instructors had told us, anyway.
"It will be
doubly bad in this case," Falkenberg said. "No regimental
pride. No accomplishments to brag about. No battles. I'd like to
avoid that."
"How, sir?"
Bonneyman asked.
Falkenberg seemed to
ignore him. He adjusted the map until the section between the city
and Fort Beersheba filled the screen. "We march up the Jordan,"
he said. "I suppose it was inevitable that the Federation of
Churches would call the planet's most important river 'Jordan,'
wasn't it? We march northwest, and what happens, Mr. Slater?"
I thought about it.
"They run, I suppose. I can't think they'll want to fight. We've
much better equipment than they have."
"Equipment and
men," Falkenberg said. "And a damned frightening
reputation. They already know we've landed, and they've asked for
negotiations. They've got sources inside the palace. You heard me
arrange for a social invitation for five days from now."
We all laughed.
Falkenberg nodded. "Which means that if we march tonight, we'll
achieve real surprise.
We can catch a
number of them unaware and disarm them. What I'd like to do, though,
is disarm the lot of them."
I was studying the
map, and I thought I saw what he meant. "They'll just about have
to retreat right past Fort Beersheba," I said. "Everything
narrows down there."
"Precisely,"
Falkenberg said. "If we held the fort, we could disarm everyone
coming through. Furthermore, it is our fort, and we've orders to
occupy it quickly. I remind you also that we're technically at war
with the River Pack."
"Yes, but how
do we get there?" I asked. "Also, Captain, if we're holding
the bottleneck, the rest of them will fight. They can't retreat."
"Not without
losing their weapons," Falkenberg said. "I don't think the
Colonel would be unhappy if we really pacified that area. Nor do I
think the militia would have all that much trouble holding it if we
defeated the River Pack and disarmed their survivors."
"But as Hal
asked, how do we get there?" Louis demanded.
Falkenberg said, "I
mentioned helicopters. Sergeant Major has found enough fuel to keep
them flying for a while."
"Sir, I believe
there was something in the briefing kit about losses from the militia
arsenal," Deane said. "Specifically including Skyhawk
missiles. Choppers wouldn't stand a chance against those."
"Not if anyone
with a Skyhawk knew they were coming," Falkenberg agreed. "But
why should they expect us? The gear's at the landing dock. Nothing
suspicious about a work party going down there tonight. Nothing
suspicious about getting the choppers set up and working. I can't
believe they expect us to take Beersheba tonight, not when they've
every reason to believe we'll be attending a grand ball in five
days."
"Yes, sir,"
Deane agreed. "But we can't put enough equipment into three
choppers! The men who take Beersheba will be doomed. Nobody can march
up that road fast enough to relieve them."
Falkenberg's voice
was conversational. He looked up at the ceiling. "I did mention
Skyhooks, didn't I? Two of them. Lifting capacity in this gravity and
atmosphere, six metric tons each. That's forty-five men with full
rations and ammunition. Gentlemen, by dawn we could have ninety
combat Marines in position at Fort Beer-sheba, with the rest of the
501st marching to their relief. Are you game?"
VIII
IT WAS COLD down by
the docks. A chill wind had blown in just after sundown, and despite
the previous heat of the day I was shivering. Maybe, I thought, it
isn't the cold.
The night sky was
clear, with what seemed like millions of stars. I could recognize
most of the constellations, and that seemed strange. It reminded me
that although we were so far from Earth that a man who began walking
in the time of the dinosaurs wouldn't have gotten here yet, it was
still an insignificant distance to the universe. That made me feel
small, and I didn't like it.
The troops were
turned out in work fatigues. Our combat clothing and armor were still
tucked away in the packs we were loading onto the Skyhook platforms.
We worked under bright lights, and anyone watching would never have
known we were anything but a work party. Falkenberg was sure that at
least one pair of night glasses was trained on us from the bluff
above.
The Skyhook
platforms were light aluminum affairs, just a flat plate eight meters
on a side with a meter-high railing around the perimeter. We stowed
packs onto them. We also piled on other objects: light machine guns,
recoilless cannon, mortars, and boxes of shells and grenades. Some of
the boxes had false labels on them, stenciled on by troops working
inside the warehouse, so that watchers would see what looked like
office supplies and spare clothing going aboard.
A truck came down
from the fort and went into the warehouse. It seemed to be empty, but
it carried rifles for ninety men. The rifles went into bags and were
stowed on the Skyhooks.
Arrarat has only one
moon, smaller than Earth's and closer. It was a bloody crescent
sinking into the highlands to the west, and it didn't give much
light. It would be gone in an hour. I wandered over to where Deane
was supervising the work on the helicopters.
"Sure you have
those things put together right?" I asked him.
"Nothing to
it."
"Yeah. I hope
not. It's going to be hard to find those landing areas."
"You'll be all
right." He wasn't really listening to me. He had two
communications specialists working on the navigation computers, and
he kept glaring at the squiggles on their scopes. "That's good,"
he said. "Now feed in the test problem."
When I left to go
find Falkenberg, Deane didn't notice I'd gone. Captain Falkenberg was
inside the warehouse. "We've about got the gear loaded, sir,"
I told him.
"Good. Come
have some coffee." One of the mess sergeants had set up the
makings for coffee in one corner of the big high-bay building. There
was also a map table, and Sergeant Major Ogilvie had a communications
center set up there. Falkenberg poured two cups of coffee and handed
one to me. "Nervous?" he asked me.
"Some."
"You can still
call it off. No discredit. I'll tell the others there were technical
problems. We'll still march in the morning."
"It'll be all
right, sir."
He looked at me over
the lip of his coffee cup. "I expect you will be. I don't like
sending you into this, but there's no other way we can do it."
"Yes, sir,"
I said.
"You'll be all
right. You've got steady troopers."
"Yes, sir."
I didn't know any of the men, of course. They were only names and
service records, not even that, just a statistical summary of service
records, a tape spewed out by the personal computer. Thirty had been
let out of the brig for voluntary service in Arrarat. Another twenty
were recruits. The rest were Line Marines, long service volunteers.
Falkenberg used the
controls to project a map of the area around Beersheba onto the map
table. "Expect you've got this memorized," he said.
"Pretty well,
sir."
He leaned over the
table and looked at the fort, then at the line of hills north of it.
"You've some margin for error, I think. I'll have to leave to
you the final decision on using the chopper in the actual assault.
You can risk one helicopter. Not both. I must have one helicopter
back, even if that costs you the mission. Is that understood?"
"Yes, sir."
I could feel a sharp ball in my guts, and I didn't like it. I hoped
it wouldn't show.
"Getting on for
time," Falkenberg said. "You'll need all the time you can
get. We could wait a day to get better prepared, but I think surprise
is your best edge."
I nodded. We'd been
through all this before. Was he talking because he was nervous, too?
Or to keep me talking so I wouldn't brood?
"You may get a
commendation out of this."
"If it's all
the same to you, I'd rather have a guarantee that you'll show up on
time." I grinned when I said it, to show I didn't mean it, but I
did. Why the hell wasn't he leading this assault? The whole damned
idea was his, and so was the battle plan. It was his show, and he
wasn't going. I didn't want to think about the reasons. I had to
depend on him to bail me out, and I couldn't even let myself think
the word "coward."
"Time to load
up," Falkenberg said.
I nodded and drained
the coffee cup. It tasted good. I wondered if that would be the last
coffee I'd ever drink. It was certain that some of us wouldn't be
coming back.
Falkenberg clapped
his hand on my shoulder. "You'll give them a hell of a shock,
Hal. Let's get on with it." "Right." But I sure wish
you were coming with me.
I found Centurion
Lieberman. We'd spent several hours together since Falkenberg's
briefing, and I was sure I could trust him. Lieberman was about
Falkenberg's height, built somewhere between wiry and skinny. He was
about forty-five, and there were scars on his neck. The scars ran
down under his tunic. He'd had a lot of regeneration therapy in his
time.
His campaign ribbons
made two neat rows on his undress blues. From his folder I knew he
was entitled to another row he didn't bother to wear.
"Load 'em up,"
I told him.
"Sir." He
spoke in a quiet voice, but it carried through the warehouse. "First
and second platoons A Company, take positions on the Skyhook
platforms."
The men piled in on
top of the gear. It was crowded on the platforms. I got in with one
group, and Lieberman boarded the other platform. I'd rather have been
up in the helicopter, flying it or sitting next to the pilot, but I
thought I was needed down here. Louis Bonneyman was flying my
chopper. Sergeant Doty of Headquarters Platoon had the other.
"Bags in
position," Gunner-Centurion Pniff said. "Stand ready to
inflate Number One." He walked around the platform looking
critically at the lines that led from it to the amorphous shape that
lay next to it. "Looks good. Inflate Number One."
There was a loud
hiss, and a great ghostly bag formed. It began to rise until it was
above my platform. The plastic gleamed in the artificial light
streaming from inside the warehouse. The bag billowed up until it was
huge above us, and still it grew as the compressed helium poured out
of the inflating cylinders. It looked bigger than the warehouse
before Pniff was satisfied. "Good," he said. "Belay!
Stand by to inflate Number Two."
"Jeez,"
one of the recruits said. "We going up in this balloon? Christ,
we don't have parachutes! We can't go up in a balloon!"
Some of the others
began to chatter. "Sergeant Ardwain," I said.
"Sir!"
I didn't say
anything else. Ardwain cursed and crawled over to the recruits. "No
chutes means we don't have to jump," he said. "Now shut
up."
Number Two Skyhook
was growing huge. It looked even larger than our own, because I could
see all of it, and all I could see of the bag above us was this
bloated thing filling the sky above me. The choppers started up, and
after a moment they lifted. One rose directly above us. The other
went to hover above the other Skyhook. The chopper looked dwarfed
next to that huge bag.
The choppers settled
onto the bags. Up on top the helicopter crews were floundering around
on the billowing stuff to make certain the fastenings were set right.
I could hear their reports in my helmet phones. Finally they had it
all right.
"Everything
ready aboard?" Falkenberg asked me. His voice was unemotional in
the phones. I could see him standing by the warehouse doors, and I
waved. "All correct, sir," I said.
"Good. Send
Number One along, Gunner."
"Sir!"
Pniff said. "Ground crews stand by. Let go Number One."
The troops outside
were grinning at us as they cut loose the tethers holding the
balloons. Nothing happened, of course; the idea of Skyhook is to have
almost neutral buoyancy, so that the lift from the gas bags just
balances the weight of the load. The helicopters provide all the
motive power.
The chopper engines
rose in pitch, and we lifted off. A gust of wind caught us and we
swayed badly as we lifted. Some of the troops cursed, and their
non-coms glared at them. Then we were above the harbor, rising to the
level of the city bluff, then higher than that. We moved northward
toward the fort, staying high above the city until we got to
Garrison's north edge, then dipping low at the fortress wall.
Anyone watching from
the harbor area would think we'd just ferried a lot of supplies up
onto the bluff. They might wonder about carrying men as well, but we
could be pretty sure they wouldn't suspect we were doing anything but
ferrying them.
We dropped low over
the fields north of the city and continued moving. Then we rose
again, getting higher and higher until we were at thirty-three
hundred meters.
The men looked at me
nervously. They watched the city lights dwindle behind us.
"All right,"
I said. It was strange how quiet it was. The choppers were
ultra-quiet, and what little noise they made was shielded by the gas
bag above us. The railings cut off most of the wind. "I want
every man to get his combat helmet on."
There was some
confused rooting around as the men found their own packs and got
their helmets swapped around. We'd been cautioned not to shift weight
on the platforms, and nobody wanted to make any sudden moves.
I switched my
command set to lowest power so it couldn't be intercepted more than a
kilometer away. We were over three klicks high, so I wasn't much
worried that anyone was listening. "By now you've figured that
we aren't going straight back to the fort," I said.
There were laughs
from the recruits. The older hands looked bored.
"We've got a
combat mission," I said. "We're going 250 klicks west of
the city. When we get there, we take a former CD fort, dig in, and
wait for the rest of the battalion to march out and bring us home."
A couple of troopers
perked up at that. I heard one tell his buddy, "Sure beats hell
out of marching 250 klicks."
"You'll get to
march, though," I said. "The plan is to land about eight
klicks from the fort and march overland to take it by surprise. I
doubt anyone is expecting us."
"Christ Johnny
strikes again," someone muttered. I couldn't see who had said
that.
"Sir?" a
corporal asked. I recognized him: Roff, the man who'd been riding the
seasick recruit in the landing boat.
"Yes, Corporal
Roff?"
"Question,
sir."
"Ask it."
"How long will
we be there, Lieutenant?"
"Until Captain
Falkenberg comes for us," I said.
"Aye, aye,
sir."
There weren't any
other questions. I thought that was strange. They must want to know
more. Some of you will get killed tonight, I thought. Why don't you
want to know more about it?
They were more
interested in the balloon. Now that it didn't look as if it would
fall, they wanted to look out over the edge. I had the non-coms
rotate the men so everyone got a chance.
I'd had my look over
the edge, and I didn't like it. Below the level of the railing it
wasn't so bad, but looking down was horrible. Besides, there wasn't
really anything to see, except a few lights, way down below, and far
behind us a dark shape that sometimes blotted out stars: Number Two,
about a klick away.
"Would the
lieutenant care for coffee?" a voice asked me. "I have
brought the flask."
I looked up to see
Hartz with my Thermos and a mess-hall cup. I'd seen him get aboard
with his communications gear, but I'd forgotten him after that.
"Thanks, I'll have some," I said.
It was about half
brandy. I nearly choked. Hartz didn't even crack a smile.
We took a roundabout
way so that we wouldn't pass over any of the river encampments. The
way led far north of the river, then angled southwest to our landing
zone. I turned to look over the edge again, and I hoped that Deane
had gotten the navigation computers tuned up properly, because there
wasn't anything to navigate by down there. Once in a while there was
an orange-yellow light, probably a farmhouse, possibly an outlaw
encampment, but otherwise all the hills looked the same.
This has got to be
the dumbest stunt in military history, I told myself, but I didn't
really believe it. The Line Marines had a long reputation for going
into battle in newly formed outfits with strange officers. Even so, I
doubted if any expedition had ever had so little going for it: a
newlie commander, men who'd never served together, and a captain
who'd plan the mission but wouldn't go on it. I told myself the time
to object had been back in the briefing. It was a bit late now.
I looked at my
watch. Another hour of flying time. "Sergeant Ardwain."
"Sir?"
"Get them out
of those work clothes and into combat leathers and armor. Weapons
check after everyone's dressed." Dressed to kill, I thought, but
I didn't say it. It was an old joke, never funny to begin with. I
wondered who thought of it first. Possibly some trooper outside the
walls of Troy.
Hartz already had my
leathers out of my pack. He helped me squirm out of my undress blues
and into the synthi-leather tunic and trousers. The platform rocked
as men tried to pull on their pants without standing up. It was hard
to dress because we were sprawled out on our packs and other
equipment. There was a lot of cursing as troopers moved around to
find their own packs and rifles.
"Get your
goddam foot out of my eye!"
"Shut up,
Traeger."
Finally everyone had
his armor on and his fatigues packed away. The troopers sat quietly
now. Even the old hands weren't joking. There's something about
combat armor that makes everything seem real.
They looked
dangerous in their bulky leathers and armor, and they were. The armor
alone gave us a big edge on anything we'd meet here. It also gives a
feeling of safety, and that can be dangerous. Nemourlon will stop
most fragments and even pistol bullets, but it won't stop a
high-velocity rifle slug.
"How you doing
down there?" Louis's voice in my phones startled me for a
moment.
"We're all
armored up," I told him. "You still think you know where
you're going?"
"Nope. But the
computer does. Got a radar check five minutes ago. Forking stream
that shows on the map. We're right on the button."
"What's our
ETA?" I asked.
"About twenty
minutes. Wind's nice and steady, not too strong. Piece of cake."
"Fuel supply?"
I asked.
"We're hip-deep
in spare cans. Not exactly a surplus, but there's enough. Quit
worrying."
"Yeah."
"You know,"
Louis said, "I never flew a chopper with one of those things
hanging off it."
"Now you tell
me."
"Nothing to
it," Louis said. "Handles a bit funny, but I got used to
it."
"You'd better
have."
"Just leave the
driving to us. Out."
The next twenty
minutes seemed like a week. I guarantee one way to stretch time is to
sit on an open platform at thirty-three hundred meters and watch the
night sky while you wait to command your first combat mission. I
tried to think of something cheerful to say, but I couldn't, and I
thought it was better just to be quiet. The more I talked, the more
chance I'd show some kind of strain in my voice.
"Your job is to
look confident," Falkenberg had told me. I hoped I was doing
that.
"Okay, you can
get your first look now," Louis said.
"Rojj." I
got my night glasses from Hartz. They were better than issue
equipment, a pair of ten-cm Leica light-amplifying glasses I bought
myself when I left the Academy. A lot of officers do, because Leica
makes a special offer for graduating cadets. I clipped them onto my
helmet and scanned the hillside. The landing zone was the top of a
peak which was the highest point on a ridge leading from the river. I
turned the glasses to full power and examined the area carefully.
It looked deserted.
There was some kind of scrubby chaparral growing all over it, and it
didn't look as if anybody had ever been to the peak.
"Looks good to
me," I told Louis. "What do you have?"
"Nothing on IR,
nothing on low-light TV," he said. "Nothing barring a few
small animals and some birds roosting in the trees. I like that. If
there're animals and birds, there's probably no people."
"Yeah - "
"Okay, that's
passive sensors. Should I take a sweep with K-band?"
I thought about it.
If there were anyone down there, and that theoretical someone had a
radar receiver, the chopper would give itself away with the first
pulse. Maybe that would be better. "Yes."
"Rojj,"
Louis said. He was silent a moment. "Hal, I get nothing. If
there's anybody down there, he's dug in good and expecting us."
"Let's go in,"
I said.
And now, I thought,
I'm committed.
IX
"OVER THE
SIDE!" Ardwain shouted. "Get those tethers planted! First
squad take perimeter guard! Move, damn you!"
The men scrambled
off the platform. Some of them had tether stakes, big aluminum
corkscrews, which they planted in the ground. Others lashed the
platform to the stakes. The first squad, two maniples, fanned out
around the area with their rifles ready.
There wasn't much
wind, but that big gas bag had a lot of surface area, and I was
worried about it. I got off and moved away to look at it. It didn't
seem to be too much strain on the tether stakes. The hillside was
quiet and dark. We'd set down on top of some low bushes with stiff
branches. The leaves felt greasy when they were crushed. I listened,
then turned my surveillance amplifier to high gain. Still nothing,
not even a bird. Nothing but my own troops moving about. I switched
to general command frequency. "Freeze," I said.
The noise stopped.
There was silence except for the low "whump!" of the
chopper blades, and a fainter sound from Number Two out there
somewhere.
"Carry on,"
I said.
Ardwain came up to
me. "Nobody here, sir. Area secure."
"Thank you."
I thumbed my command set onto the chopper's frequency. "You can
cut yourself loose, and bring in Number Two."
"Aye, aye,
sir," Louis said.
We began pulling
gear off the platform. After a few moments, Number Two chopper came
in. We couldn't see the helicopter at all, only the huge gas bag with
its platform dangling below it. The Skyhook settled onto the
chaparral and men bailed out with tether stakes. Centurion Lieberman
watched until he was sure the platform was secure, then ran over to
me. "All's well?" I asked him.
"Yes, sir."
His tone made it obvious he'd wanted to say "of course."
"Get
'em saddled up," I said. "We're moving out." "Aye,
aye, sir. I still think Ardwain would be all right here, sir."
"No.
I'll want an experienced man in case something happens. If we don't
send for the heavy equipment, or if something happens to me, call
Falkenberg for instructions. "
"Aye,
aye, sir.'" He still didn't like it. He wanted to come
with us. For that matter, I wanted him along, but I had to leave a
crew with the Skyhooks and choppers. If the wind came up so tethers
wouldn't hold, those things had to get airborne fast, and the rest of
us would be without packs and supplies. There were all kinds of
contingencies, and I wanted a reliable man I could trust to deal with
them.
"We're ready,
sir," Ardwain said. "Right. Let's move out." I
switched channels. "Here we go, Louis."
"I'll be
ready," Bonneyman said. "Thanks. Out." I moved up
toward the head of the column. Ardwain had already gone up. "Let's
get rolling," I said.
"Sir. Question,
sir," Ardwain said. "Yeah?"
"Men would
rather take their packs, sir. Don't like to leave their gear behind."
"Sergeant,
we've got eight kilometers to cover in less than three hours. No
way."
"Yes, sir.
Could we take our cloaks? Gets cold without 'em - "
"Sergeant
Ardwain, we're leaving Centurion Lieberman and four maniples of
troops here. Just what's going to happen to your gear? Get them
marching."
"Sir. All
right, you bastards, move out."
I could hear
grumbling as they started along the ridge. Crazy, I thought. They
want to carry packs in this.
The brush was thick,
and we weren't making any progress at all. Then the scouts found a
dry stream bed, and we moved into that. It was filled with boulders
the size of a desk, and we hopped from one to another, moving
slightly downhill. It was pitch-black, the boulders no more than
shapes I could barely see. This wasn't going to work. I was already
terrified.
But thank God for
all that exercise in high gravity, I thought. We'll make it, but
we've got to have light. I turned my set to low-power command
frequency. "NCO's turn on lowest-power infrared illumination,"
I said. "No visible light."
I pulled the IR
screen down in front of my eyes and snapped on my own IR helmet
light. The boulders became pale green shapes in front of me, and I
could just see them well enough to hop from one to another. Ahead of
me the screen showed bright green moving splotches, my scouts and
NCO's with their illuminators.
I didn't think
anybody would be watching this hill with IR equipment. It didn't seem
likely, and we were far from the fort where the only equipment would
be - if the River Pack had any to begin with. I told myself it would
take extremely good gear to spot us from farther than a klick.
Eight klicks to go
and three hours to do it. Shouldn't be hard. Men are in good
condition, no packs - damned fools wanted to carry them! - only
rifles and ammunition. And the weapons troops, of course. They'd be
slowest. Mortarmen with twenty-two kilos each to carry, and the
recoilless riflemen with twenty-four.
We were sweating in
no time. I opened all the vents in my armor and leathers and wondered
if I ought to tell the troops to do the same. Don't be stupid, I told
myself. Most of them have done this a dozen times. I can't tell them
anything they don't know.
But it's my command,
I kept thinking. Anything goes wrong, it's your responsibility, Hal
Slater. You asked for it, too, when you took the commission.
I kept thinking of
the millions of things that could go wrong. The plan didn't look
nearly so good from here as it had when we were studying maps. Here
we are, seventy-six men, about to try to take a fort that probably
has us outnumbered. Falkenberg estimated 125 men in there. I'd asked
him how he got the number.
"Privies, Mr.
Slater. Privies. Count the number of outhouses, guess the number of
bottoms per hole, and you've got a good estimate of the number of
men." He hadn't even cracked a grin.
One hell of a way to
guess, and Falkenberg wasn't coming along. We'd find out the hard way
how accurate his estimate was. -
I kept telling
myself what we had going for us. The satellite photos showed nobody
lived on this ridge. No privies, I thought, and grinned in the dark.
But I'd gone over the pix, and I hadn't seen any signs that people
were ever here. Why should they be? There was no water except for the
spring inside the fort itself. There was nothing up here, not even
proper firewood, only these pesky shrubs that stab at your ankles.
I came around a bend
in the stream bed and found a monitor waiting. His maniple stood
behind him. He had three recruits in it: one NCO, one long-term
private, and three recruits. The usual organization is only one or
two recruits to a maniple, and I wondered why Lieberman had set this
one up this way.
The monitor motioned
uphill. We had to leave the stream bed here. Far ahead of me I could
see the dull green glow of my lead men's lanterns. They were pulling
ahead of me, and I strained to keep up with them. I left the stream,
and after a few meters the only man near me was Hartz. He struggled
along with twenty kilos of communications gear on his back and a
rifle in his right hand, but if he had any trouble keeping up with
me, he didn't say anything. I was glad I didn't have to carry all
that load.
The ridge flattened
out after a hundred meters. The cover was only about waist-high. The
green lights went out on my IR screen as up ahead the scouts cut
their illuminators. I ordered the others turned off, as well. Then I
crouched under a bush and used the map projector to show me where we
were. The helmet projected the map onto the ground, a dim patch of
light that couldn't have been seen except from close up and directly
above.
I was surprised to
see we'd come better than halfway.
Fort Beersheba
hadn't been much to start with. It had a rectangle of low walls with
guard towers in the corners, a miniature of the larger fort at
Garrison. Then somebody had improved it, with a ditch and parapet out
in front of the walls, and a concertina of rusting barbed wire
outside of that. I couldn't see inside the walls, but I knew there
were four above-ground buildings and three large bunkers. The
buildings were adobe. The bunkers were logs and earth. They wouldn't
burn. The logs were a local wood with a high metallic content.
The bunkers were
going to be a problem, but they'd have to wait. Right now we had to
get inside the walls of the fort. There was a gate in the wall in
front of me. It was made of the same wood as the bunkers. It had a
ramp across the ditch, and it looked like our best bet, except that
inside the fort one of the bunkers faced the gate, and it would be
able to fire through the opening once the gate was gone.
I had seventy-five
men lying flat in the scrub brush three hundred meters from the fort.
The place looked deserted. My IR pickups didn't show anyone in the
guard towers or on the walls. Nothing. I glanced at my watch. Less
than an hour before dawn.
I hadn't the
faintest idea of what to do, but it was time to make up my mind.
"Don't get
fancy," Falkenberg had told me. "Get the men to the fort
and turn them loose. They'll take it for you."
Sure, I thought.
Sure. You're not here, you bloody coward, and I am, and it's my
problem, and I don't know what the hell I'm doing.
I didn't like the
looks of that ditch and barbed-wire concertina. It would take a while
getting through it. If we crawled up to the ditch, we'd be spotted.
They couldn't be that sloppy; if there weren't any guards, there had
to be a surveillance system. Body capacitance, maybe. Or radar.
Something. They'd have guards posted unless they had reason to
believe nobody could sneak up on them.
To hell with it.
We've got to do something, I thought. I nodded to Hartz and he handed
me a mike. His radio was set to a narrow-beam directional antenna,
and we'd left relays along the line of sight back to the landing
area. I could talk to the choppers without alerting the fort's
electronic watchdogs.
"Nighthawk,
this is Blackeagle," I said. "Blackeagle go."
"We can see the
place, Louis. Nothing moving at all. I'd say it was deserted if I
didn't know better." "Want me to come take a look?" It
was a thought. The chopper could circle high above the fort and scan
with IR and low-light TV. We'd know who was in the open. But there
was a good chance it would be spotted, and we'd throw away our best
shot. "Don't get fancy," Falkenberg had said. "Surprise
- that's your big advantage. Don't blow it."
But
he wasn't here. There didn't seem to be any right decision. "No,"
I told Louis. "That's a negative. Load up with troops and get
airborne, but stay out of line of sight. Be ready to dash. When I
want you, I'll want you bad." "Aye, aye,
sir."
"Blackeagle
out." I gave Hartz the mike. Okay, I told myself, this is it. I
waved forward to Sergeant Ardwain. He half rose from the ground and
waved. The line moved ahead, slowly. Behind us the mortar and
recoil-less rifle teams had set up their weapons and lay next to them
waiting for orders.
Corporal Roff was
just to my left. He was directly in front of the gate. He waved his
troops on and we crawled toward the gate.
We'd gotten to
within a hundred meters when there appeared a light at the top of the
wall by the gate. Someone up there was shining a spot out onto the
field. There was another light, and then another, all handheld
spotlights, powerful, but not very wide beams.
Corporal Roff stood
up and waved at them "Hello, there!" he shouted. "Whatcha
doin'?" He sounded drunk. I wanted to tell him to get down, but
it was too late.
"You guys okay
in there?" Roff shouted. "Got anything to drink?"
The others were
crouched now, up from a crawl, and running forward.
"Who the hell
are you?" someone on the wall demanded.
"Who the
flippin' hell are you?" Roff answered. "Gimme a drink!"
The lights converged toward him.
I thumbed on my
command set. "Nighthawk, this is Blackeagle. Come a-runnin'!"
"Roger dodger."
I switched to the
general channel. "Roff, hit the dirt! Fire at will. Charge!"
I was shouting into the helmet radio loud enough to deafen half the
command.
Roff dove sideways
into the dirt. There were orange spurts from all over the field as
the troopers opened fire. The lights tumbled off the walls. Two went
out. One stayed on. It lay in the dirt just outside the gate.
Troopers rose from
the field and ran screaming toward the fort. They sounded like
madmen. Then a light machine gun opened from behind me, then another.
Trumpet notes
sounded. I hadn't ordered it. I didn't even know we had a trumpet
with us. The sound seemed to spur the men on. They ran toward the
wire as the mortars fired their first rounds. Seconds later I saw
spurts of fire from inside the walls as the shells hit. Just as they
did, the recoilless opened behind me and I heard the shell pass not
more than a couple of meters to my left. It hit the gates and there
was a flash, then another hit the gates, and another. The trumpeter
was sounding the charge over and over again, while mortars dropped
more V.T. fused to go off a meter above ground into the fort itself.
The recoilless fired again.
The gates couldn't
take that punishment and fell open. There was smoke inside. One of
the mortarmen must have dropped smoke rounds between the gates and
the bunker. Streams of tracers came out of the gates, but the men
avoided them easily. They ran up on either side of the gates.
Others charged
directly at the wire. The first troopers threw themselves onto the
concertina. The next wave stepped on their backs and dived into the
ditch. More waves followed, and men in the ditches heaved their
comrades up onto the narrow strip between the ditch and the walls.
They stopped just
long enough to throw grenades over the wall. Then two men grabbed a
third and flung him up to where he could catch the top of the wall.
They stood and boosted him on until he pulled himself up and could
stand on top of it. More men followed, then leaned down to pull up
their mates from below. I couldn't believe it was happening so
quickly.
The men on the wire
were struggling to get loose before there was no one below to boost
them over. Those were recruits, I thought. Of course. The monitors
had sent the recruits first, with a simple job. Lie down and get
walked on.
The helicopter came
roaring in, pouring streams of twenty-mm cannon fire into the fort.
The tracers were bright against the night sky.
And I was still
standing there, watching, amazed at how fast it was all happening. I
shook myself and turned on my command set. "I.F.F. beacons on!
General order, turn on I.F.F. beacons." I changed channels.
"Night-hawk, this is Blackeagle. For God's sake, Louis, be
careful! Some of ours are already inside!"
"I see the
beacons," Louis said. "Relax, Hal, we watched them going
in."
The chopper looped
around the fort in a tight orbit, still firing into the fort. Then it
plunged downward.
"Mortarmen,
hold up on that stuff," Sergeant Ardwain's voice said. "We're
inside the fort now and the chopper's going in."
Christ, I thought,
something else I forgot. One hell of a commander I've made. I can't
even remember the most elementary things.
The chopper dropped
low and even before it vanished behind the walls it was spewing men.
I ran up to the
gate, staying to one side to avoid the tracers that were still coming
out. Corporal Roff was there ahead of me. "Careful here, sir."
He ducked around the gatepost and vanished. I followed him into the
smoke, running around to my right, where other troopers had gone over
the wall.
The scene inside was
chaotic. There were unarmored bodies everywhere, probably cut down by
the mortars. Men were running and firing in all directions. I didn't
think any of the defenders had helmets. "Anybody without a
helmet is a hostile," I said into the command set. Stupid. They
know that. "Give 'em hell, lads!" That was another silly
thing to say, but at least it was a better reason for shouting in
their ears than telling them something they already knew.
A satchel charge
went off at one of the bunkers. A squad rushed the entrance and threw
grenades into it. That was all I could see from where I stood, but
there was firing all over the enclosure.
Now what? I
wondered. Even as I did, the firing died out until there were only a
few rifle shots now and then, and the futile fire of the machine gun
in the bunker covering the gate.
"Lieutenant?"
It was Ardwain's voice.
"Yes,
Sergeant."
"There's some
people in that main bunker, sir. You can hear 'em talking in there.
Sound like women. We didn't want to blow it in, not just yet,
anyway."
"What about the
rest of the fort?"
"Cleared out,
sir. Bunkers and barracks, too. We got about twenty prisoners."
That quick. Like
automatic magic. "Sergeant, make sure there's nothing that can
fire onto the area northwest of the fort. I want to bring the Skyhook
in there."
"Aye, aye,
sir."
I thumbed my command
set to the chopper frequency. "We've got the place, all except
one bunker, and it'll be no problem. Bring Number Two in to land in
the area northwest of the fort, about three hundred meters out from
the wall. I want you to stay up there and cover Number Two. Anything
that might hit it, you take care of. Keep scanning. I can't believe
somebody won't come up here to see what's happening."
X
THAT WAS MY first
fire fight. I wasn't too proud of my part in it. I hadn't given a
single order once the rush started, and I was very nearly the last
man into the fort. Some leader.
But there was no
time to brood. Dawn was a bright smear off in the east. The first
thing was to check on the butcher's bill. Four men killed, two of
them recruits. Eleven wounded. After a quick conference with our
paramedic I sent three to the helicopters. The others could fight, or
said they could. Then I sent the two choppers east toward Harmony,
while we ferried the rest of our gear into the fort. We were on our
own.
Sergeant Doc Crisp
had another dozen patients, defenders who'd been wounded in the
assault. We had thirty prisoners, thirty-seven wounded, and over
fifty dead. One of the wounded was the former commander of the fort.
"Got bashed
with a rifle butt outside his quarters," Ardwain told me. "He's
able to talk now."
"I'll see him."
"Sir."
Ardwain went into the hospital bunker and brought out a man about
fifty, dark hair in a ring around a bald head. He had thin, watery
eyes. He didn't look like a soldier or an outlaw.
"He says his
name's Flawn, sir," Ardwain told me.
"Marines,"
Flawn said. "CoDominium Marines. Didn't know there were any on
the planet. Just why the hell is this place worth the Grand Senate's
attention again?"
"Shut up,"
Ardwain said.
"I've got a
problem, Flawn," I said. We were standing in the open area in
the center of the fort. "That bunker over there's still got some
of your people in it. It'd be no problem to blast it open, but the
troopers think they heard women talking in there."
"They did,"
Flawn said. "Our wives."
"Can you talk
them into coming out, or do we set fire to it?"
"Christ!"
he said. "What happens to us now?"
"Macht nichts
to me," I told him. "My orders are to disarm you people.
You're free to go anywhere you want to without weapons. Northwest if
you like."
"Without
weapons. You know what'll happen to us out there without weapons?"
"No, and I
don't really care."
"I know,"
Flawn said. "You bastards never have cared - "
"Mind how you
talk to the lieutenant," Ardwain said. He ground his rifle on
the man's instep. Flawn gasped in pain.
"Enough of
that, Sergeant," I said. "Flawn, you outlaws - "
"Outlaws.
Crap!" Flawn said. "Excuse me. Sir, you are mistaken."
He eyed Ardwain warily, his lip curled in contempt. "You brought
me here as a convict for no reason other than my opposition to the
CoDominium. You turned me loose with nothing. Nothing at all,
Lieutenant. So we try to build something. Politics here aren't like
at home. Or maybe they are, same thing, really, but here it's all out
in the open. I managed something, and now you've come to take it away
and send me off unarmed, with no more than the clothes on my back,
and you expect me to be respectful." He glanced up at the
CoDominium banner that flew high above the fort. "You'll excuse
me if I don't show 'more enthusiasm.’ "
"My orders are
to disarm you," I said. "Now, will you talk your friends
out of that bunker, or do we blow it in?"
"You'll let us
go?"
"Yes."
"Your word of
honor, Lieutenant?"
I nodded.
"Certainly."
"I guess I
can't ask for any other guarantees." Flawn looked at Sergeant
Ardwain and grimaced. "I wish I dared. All right, let me talk to
them."
By noon we had Fort
Beersheba to ourselves. Flawn and the others had left. They insisted
on carrying their wounded with them, even when Doc Crisp told them
most would probably die on the road. The women had been a varied
assortment, from teenagers to older women. All had gone with Flawn,
to my relief and the troopers' disappointment.
Centurion Lieberman
organized the defenses. He put men into the bunkers, set up
revetments for the mortars, found material to repair the destroyed
gates, stationed more men on the walls, got the mess tents put up,
put the liquor we'd found into a strong room and posted guards over
it -
I was feeling
useless again.
In another hour
there were parties coming up the road. I sent Sergeant Ardwain and a
squad down there to set up a roadblock. We could cover them from the
fort, and the mortars were set up to spray the road. The river was
about three hundred meters away and one hundred meters below us, and
the fort had a good field of fire all along the road for a klick in
either direction. It was easy to see why this bluff had been chosen
for a strong point.
As parties of
refugees came through, Ardwain disarmed them. At first they went
through, anyway, but after a while they began to turn back rather
than surrender their weapons. None of them caused any problems, and I
wouldn't let Ardwain pursue any that turned away. We had far too few
men to risk any in something senseless like that.
"Good work,"
Falkenberg told me when I made the afternoon report. "We've made
forty kilometers so far, and we've got a couple of hours of daylight
left. It's a bit hard to estimate how fast we'll be able to march."
"Yes, sir. The
first party we disarmed had three Skyhawk missiles. There were five
here at the fort, but nobody got them out in time to use them. Couple
of guys who tried were killed by the mortars. It doesn't look good
for helicopters in this area, though, not now that they're warned."
"Yes,"
Falkenberg said. "I suspected as much. We'll retire the choppers
for a while. You've done well, Slater. I caution you not to relax,
though. At the moment we've had no opposition worth mentioning, but
that will change soon enough, and after that there may be an effort
to break past your position. They don't seem to want to give up their
weapons."
"No, sir."
And who can blame them? I thought. Eric Flawn had worried me. He
hadn't seemed like an outlaw. I don't know what I'd expected here at
Beersheba. Kidnapped girls. Scenes of rape and debauchery, I suppose.
I'd never seen a thieves' government in operation. Certainly I hadn't
expected what I'd found, a group of middle-aged men in control of
troops who looked a lot like ours, only theirs weren't very well
equipped.
"I understand
you liberated some wine," Falkenberg said.
"Yes, sir."
"That'll help.
Daily ration of no more than half a liter per man, though."
"Sir? I wasn't
planning on giving them any of it until you got here."
"It's theirs,
Slater," Falkenberg said. "You could get away with holding
on to it, but it wouldn't be best. It's your command. Do as you think
you should, but if you want advice, give the troops half a liter
each."
"Yes, sir."
There's no regulation against drinking in the Line Marines, not even
on duty. There are severe penalties for rendering yourself unfit for
duty. Men have even been shot for it. "Half a liter with supper,
then."
"I think it's
wise," Falkenberg said. "Well, sounds as if you're doing
well. We'll be along in a few days. Out."
There were a million
other details. At noon I'd been startled to hear a trumpet sound mess
call, and I went out to see who was doing it. A corporal I didn't
recognize had a polished brass trumpet.
"Take me a few
days to get everyone's name straight, Corporal," I said.
"Yours?"
"Corporal
Brady, sir."
"You play that
well."
"Thank you,
sir."
I looked at him
again. I was sure his face was familiar. I thought I remembered that
he'd been on Tri-v. Had his own band and singing group. Nightclub
performances, at least one Tri-v special. I wondered what he was
doing as an enlisted man in the Line Marines, but I couldn't ask. I
tried to remember his real name, but that escaped me, too. It hadn't
been Brady, I was sure of that. "You'll be sounding all calls
here?"
"Yes, sir.
Centurion says I'm to do it."
"Right. Carry
on, Brady."
All through the
afternoon the trumpet calls sent men to other duties. An hour before
the evening meal there was a formal retreat. The CoDominium banner
was hauled down by a color guard while all the men not on sentry
watch stood in formation and Brady played Colors. As they folded the
banner I remembered a lecture in Leadership class back at the
Academy.
The instructor had
been a dried-up Marine major with one real and one artificial arm. We
were supposed to guess which was which, but we never did. The lecture
I remembered had been on ceremonials. "Always remember,"
he'd said, "the difference between an army and a mob is
tradition and discipline. You cannot enforce discipline on troops who
do not feel that they are being justly treated. Even the man who is
wrongly punished must feel that what he is accused of deserves
punishment. You cannot enforce discipline on a mob, and so your men
must be reminded that they are soldiers. Ceremonial is one of your
most powerful tools for doing that. It is true that we are
perpetually accused of wasting money. The Grand Senate annually
wishes to take away our dress uniforms, our badges and colors, and
all the so-called nonfunctional items we employ. They are fortunate,
because they have never been able to do that. The day that they do,
they will find themselves with an army that cannot defend them.
"Soldiers will
complain about ceremonials and spit-and-polish, and such like, but
they cannot live as an army without them. Men fight for pride, not
for money, and no service that does not give them pride will last
very long."
Maybe, I thought.
But with a thousand things to do, I could have passed up a formal
retreat on our first day at Fort Beersheba. I hadn't been asked about
it. By the time I knew it was to happen, Lieberman had made all the
arrangements and given the orders.
By suppertime we
were organized for the night. Ardwain had collected about a hundred
weapons, mostly obsolete rifles - there were even muzzle-loaders,
handmade here on Arrarat - and passed nearly three hundred people
through the roadblock.
We closed the road
at dusk. Searchlights played along it, and we had a series of
roadblocks made of log stacks. Ardwain and his troops were dug in
where they could cover the whole road area, and we could cover them
from the fort. It looked pretty good.
Tattoo sounded, and
Fort Beersheba began to settle in for the night.
I made my rounds,
looking into everything. The body-capacitance system the previous
occupants had relied on was smashed when we blew open their bunker,
but we'd brought our own surveillance gear. I didn't really trust
passive systems, but I needn't have worried. Lieberman had guards in
each of the towers. They were equipped with light-amplifying
binoculars. There were more men to watch the IR screens.
"We're safe
enough," Lieberman said. "If the lieutenant would care to
turn in, I'll see the guard's changed properly."
He followed me back
to my quarters. Hartz had already fixed the place up. There were
fresh adobe patches over the bullet holes in the walls. My gear was
laid out where I could get it quickly. Hartz had his cloak and pack
spread out in the anteroom.
There was even
coffee. A pot was kept warm over an alcohol lamp.
"You can leave
it to us," Lieberman said.
Hartz grinned.
"Sure. Lieutenants come out of the Academy without any calluses,
and we make generals out of them."
"That may take
some doing," I said. I invited Lieberman into my sitting room.
There was a table there, with a scale model of the fort on it. Flawn
had made it, but it hadn't done him much good. "Have a seat,
Centurion. Coffee?"
"Just a little,
sir. I'd best get back to my duties."
"Call me for
the next watch, Centurion."
"If the
lieutenant orders it."
"I just - what
the hell, Lieberman, why don't you want me to take my turn on guard?"
"No need, sir.
May I make a suggestion?"
"Sure."
"Leave it to
us, sir. We know what we're doing."
I nodded and stared
into my coffee cup. I didn't feel I was really in command here. They
tell you everything in the Academy: leadership, communications, the
precise form of a regimental parade, laser range-finding systems,
placement of patches on uniforms, how to compute firing patterns for
mortars, wine rations for the troops, how to polish a pair of boots,
servicing recoilless rifles, delivery of calling cards to all senior
officers within twenty-four hours of reporting to a new post,
assembly and maintenance of helicopters, survival on rocks with
poisonous atmosphere or no atmosphere at all, shipboard routines, and
a million other details. You have to learn them all, and they get
mixed up until you don't know what's trivial and what's important.
They're just things you have to know to pass examinations. "You
know what you're doing, Centurion, but I'm not sure I do."
"Sir, I've
noticed something about young officers," Lieberman said. "They
all take things too serious."
"Command's a
serious business." Damn, I thought. That's pompous. Especially
from a young kid to an older soldier.
He didn't take it
that way. "Yes, sir. Too damned serious to let details get in
the way. Lieutenant, if it was just things like posting the guard and
organizing the defense of this place, the service wouldn't need
officers. We can take care of that. What we need is somebody to tell
us what the hell to do. Once that's done, we know how."
I didn't say
anything. He looked at me closely, probably trying to figure out if I
was angry. He didn't seem very worried.
"Take me, for
instance," he said. "I don't know why the hell we came to
this place, and I don't care. Everybody's got his reasons for joining
up. Me, I don't know what else to do. I've found something I'm good
at, and I can do it. Officers tell me where to fight, and that's one
less damn thing to worry about."
The trumpet sounded
outside. Last Post. It was the second time we'd heard it today. The
first was when we'd buried our dead.
"Got my rounds
to make," Lieberman said. "By your leave, sir."
"Carry on,
Centurion." A few minutes later Hartz came in to help me get my
boots off. He wouldn't hear of letting me turn in wearing them.
"We'll hold 'em
off long enough to get your boots on, zur. Nobody's going to catch a
Marine officer in the sack."
He'd sleep with his
boots on so that I could take mine off. It didn't make a lot of
sense, but I wasn't going to win any arguments with him about it. I
rolled into the sack and stared at the ceiling. My first day of
command. I was still thinking about that when I went to sleep.
The attacks started
the next day. At first it was just small parties trying to force the
roadblock, and they never came close to doing that. We could put too
much fire onto them from the fort.
That night they
tried the fort itself. There were a dozen mortars out there. They
weren't very accurate, and our radar system worked fine. They would
get off a couple of rounds, and then we'd have them backtracked to
the origin point and our whole battery would drop in on them. We
couldn't silence them completely, but we could make it unhealthy for
the crews servicing their mortars, and after a while the fire
slackened. There were rifle attacks all through the night, but
nothing in strength.
"Just testing
you," Falkenberg said in the morning when I reported to him.
"We're pressing hard from this end. They'll make a serious try
before long."
"Yes, sir. How
are things at your end?"
"We're moving,"
Falkenberg said. "There's more resistance than the colonel
expected, of course. With you stopping up their bolt hole, they've
got no route to retreat through. Fight or give up - that's all the
choice we left them. You can look for their real effort to break past
you in a couple of days. By then we'll be close enough to really
worry them."
He was right. By the
fourth day we were under continuous attack from more than a thousand
hostiles.
It was a strange
situation. No one was really worried. We were holding them off. Our
ammunition stocks were running low, but Lieberman's answer to that
was to order the recruits to stop using their weapons. They were put
to serving mortars and recoilless rifles, with an experienced NCO in
charge to make sure there was a target worth the effort before they
fired. The riflemen waited for good shots and made each one count.
As long as the
ammunition held out, we were in no serious danger. The fort had a
clear field of fire, and we weren't faced by heavy artillery. The
best the enemy had was mortars, and our counterbattery radar and
computer system was more than a match for that.
"No
discipline," Lieberman said. "They got no discipline. Come
in waves, run in waves, but they never press the attack. Damned glad
there's no Marine deserters in that outfit. They'd have broke through
if they'd had good leadership."
"I'm worried
about our ammunition supplies," I said.
"Hell,
Lieutenant, Cap'n Falkenberg will get here. He's never let anybody
down yet."
"You've served
with him before?"
"Yes, sir, in
that affair on Domingo. Christian Johnny, we called him. He'll be
here."
Everyone acted that
way. It made the situation unreal. We were under fire. You couldn't
put your head above the wall or outside the gate. Mortars dropped in
at random intervals, sometimes catching men in the open and wounding
them despite their body armor. We had four dead and nine more in the
hospital bunker. We were running low on ammunition, and we faced
better than ten-to-one odds, and nobody was worried.
"Your job is to
look confident," Falkenberg had told me. Sure.
On the fifth day
things were getting serious for Sergeant Ardwain and his men at the
roadblock. They were running out of ammunition and water.
"Abandon it,
Ardwain," I told him. "Bring your troops up here. We can
keep the road closed with fire from the fort."
"Sir. I have
six casualties that can't walk, sir."
"How many
total?"
"Nine, sir -
two walking and one dead."
Nine out of a total
of twelve men. "Hold fast, Sergeant. We'll come get you."
"Aye, aye,
sir."
I wondered who I
could spare. There wasn't much doubt as to who was the most useless
man on the post. I sent for Lieberman.
"Centurion, I
want a dozen volunteers to go with me to relieve Ardwain's group.
We'll take full packs and extra ammunition and supplies."
"Lieutenant - "
"Damn it, don't
tell me you don't want me to go. You're capable enough. You told me
that you need officers to tell you what to do, not how to do it.
Fine. Your orders are to hold this post until Falkenberg comes. One
last thing - you will not send or take any relief forces down the
hill. I won't have this command further weakened. Is that
understood?"
"Sir."
"Fine. Now get
me a dozen volunteers."
I decided to go down
the hill just after moonset. We got the packs loaded and waited at
the gate. One of my volunteers was Corporal Brady. He stood at the
gate, chatting with the sentry there.
"Quiet
tonight," Brady said.
"They're still
there, though," the sentry said. "You'll know soon enough.
Bet you tomorrow's wine ration you don't make it down the hill."
"Done.
Remember, you said down the hill. I expect you to save that wine for
me."
"Yeah. Hey,
this is a funny place, Brady."
"How's that?"
"A holy Joe
planet, and no Marine chaplain."
"You want a
chaplain?"
The sentry shrugged.
He had a huge black beard that he fingered, as if feeling for lice.
"Good idea, isn't it?"
"They're all
right, but we don't need a chaplain. What we need is a good Satanist.
No Satanist in this battalion."
"What do you
need one of them for?"
Brady laughed.
"Stands to reason, don't it? God's good, right? He'll treat you
okay. It's the other guy you have to watch out for." He laughed
again. "Got three days on bread and no wine for saying that
once. Told it to Chaplain Major McCrory, back at Sector H.Q. He
didn't appreciate it."
"Time to move
out," I said. I shouldered my heavy pack.
"Do we run or
walk, zur?" Hartz asked.
"Walk until
they know we're there. And be quiet about it."
"Zur."
"Move out,
Brady. Quietly."
"Sir." The
sentry opened the gate, just a crack. Brady went through, then
another trooper, and another. Nothing happened, and finally it was my
turn. Hartz was last in the line.
The trail led
steeply down the side of the cliff. It was about two meters wide,
just a slanting ledge, really. We were halfway down when there was a
burst of machine-gun fire. One of the troopers went down.
"Move like
hell!" I said.
Two men grabbed the
fallen trooper and hauled him along. We ran down the cliff face,
jumping across shortcuts at the switchbacks. There was nothing we
could see to shoot at, but more bullets sent chips flying from the
granite cliff.
The walls above us
spurted flame. It looked like the whole company was up there covering
us. I hoped not. One of our recoilless men found a target and for a
few moments we weren't under fire. Then the rifles opened up.
Something zinged past my ear. Then I felt a hard punch in the gut and
went down.
I lay there sucking
air. Hartz grabbed one arm and shouted to another private. "Jersey!
Lieutenant's down. Give me a hand."
"I'm all
right," I said. I felt my stomach area. There wasn't any blood.
"Armor stopped it. Just knocked the wind out of me." I was
still gasping, and I couldn't get my breath.
They dragged me
along to Ardwain's command post. "How would we explain to the
Centurion if we didn't get you down?" Hartz asked.
The CP was a trench
roofed over with ironwood logs. There were three wounded men at one
end. Brady took our wounded trooper there. He'd been hit in both
legs. Brady put tourniquets on them.
Hartz had his own
ideas about first aid. He had a brandy flask. It was supposed to be a
universal cure. After he poured two shots down me, he went over to
the other end of the bunker to pass the bottle among the other
wounded.
"Only three of
them, Ardwain?" I said. I was still gasping for air. "I
thought you had six."
"Six who cannot
walk, sir. But three of them can still fight."
XI
"WE'RE NOT
GOING to get up that bluff Not carrying wounded," I said.
"No, sir."
Ardwain had runners carrying ammunition to his troopers. "We're
dug in good, sir. With the reinforcements you brought, we'll hold
out."
"We damned well
have to," I said.
"Not so bad,
sir. Most of our casualties came from recoilless and mortars. They've
stopped using them. Probably low on ammunition."
"Let's hope
they stay that way." I had another problem. The main defense for
the roadblock was mortar fire from the fort. Up above they were
running low on mortar shells. In another day we'd be on our own. No
point in worrying about it, I decided. We'll just have to do the best
we can.
The next day was the
sixth we'd been in the fort. We were low on rations. Down at the
roadblock we had nothing to eat but a dried meat that the men called
"monkey." It didn't taste bad, but it had the peculiar
property of expanding when you chewed it, so that after a while it
seemed as if you had a mouthful of rubber bands. It was said that
Line Marines could march a thousand kilometers if they had coffee,
wine, and monkey.
We reached
Falkenberg by radio at noon. He was still forty kilometers away, and
facing the hardest fighting yet. They had to go through villages
practically house by house.
"Can you hold?"
he asked me.
"The rest of
today and tonight, easily. By noon tomorrow we'll be out of mortar
shells. Sooner, maybe. When that happens, our outpost down at the
roadblock will be without support." I hadn't told him where I
was.
"Can you hold
until 1500 hours tomorrow?" he asked.
"The fort will
hold. Don't know about the roadblock."
"We'll see what
we can do," Falkenberg said. "Good luck."
"Christian
Johnny'll get us out," Brady said.
"You know him?"
"Yes, sir.
He'll get us out."
I wished I were as
sure as he was.
They tried
infiltrating during the night. I don't know how many crept up along
the riverbank, but there were a lot of them. Some went on past us.
The others moved in on our bunkers. The fighting was hand to hand,
with knives and bayonets and grenades doing most of the work, until
we got our foxholes clear and I was able to order the men down into
them. Then I had Lieberman drop mortar fire in on our own positions
for ten minutes. When it lifted, we went out to clear the area.
When morning came we
had three more dead, and every man in the section was wounded. I'd
got a grenade fragment in my left upper arm just below where the
armor left off. It was painful, but nothing to worry about.
There were twenty
dead in our area, and bloody trails were leading off where more
enemies had crawled away.
An hour after dawn
they rushed us again. The fort had few mortar shells left. We called
each one in carefully. They couldn't spare us too much attention,
though, because there was a general attack on the fort, as well. When
there were moments of quiet in the firing around Fort Beersheba, we
could hear more distant sounds to the east. Falkenberg's column was
blasting its way through another village.
Ardwain got it just
at noon. A rifle bullet in the neck. It looked bad. Brady dragged him
into the main bunker and put a compress on. Ardwain's breath rattled
in his throat, and his mouth oozed blood. That left Roff and Brady as
NCO's, and Roff was immobile, with fragments through his left leg.
At 1230 hours we had
four effectives, and no fire support from the fort. We'd lost the
troops down by the riverbank, and we could hear movement there.
"They're
getting past us, damn it!" I shouted. "All this for
nothing! Hartz, get me Lieberman."
"Zur."
Hartz was working one-handed. His right arm was in shreds. He
insisted on staying with me, but I didn't count him as one of my
effectives.
"Sergeant
Roszak," the radio said.
"Where's
Lieberman?"
"Dead, sir. I'm
senior NCO."
"What mortar
ammunition have you?"
"Fourteen
rounds, sir."
"Drop three
onto the riverbank just beyond us, and stand by to use more."
"Aye,
aye, sir. One moment." There was silence. Then he said,
"On the way."
"How is it up
there?"
"We're fighting
at the walls, sir. We've lost the north section, but the bunkers are
covering that area."
"Christ. You'll
need the mortars to hold the fort. But there's no point in holding
that fort if the roadblock goes. Stand by to use the last mortar
rounds at my command."
"Aye,
aye, sir. We can hold."
"Sure you can."
Sure.
I looked out through
the bunker's firing slit. There were men coming up the road. Dozens
of them. I had one clip left in my rifle, and I began trying to pick
them off with slow fire. Hartz used his rifle with his left hand,
firing one shot every two seconds, slow, aimed fire.
There were more
shots from off to my left. Corporal Brady was in a bunker over there,
but his radio wasn't working. Attackers moved toward his position. I
couldn't hear any others of my command.
Suddenly Brady's
trumpet sounded. The brassy notes cut through the battle noises. He
played "To Arms!," then settled into the Line Marine march.
"We've left blood in the dirt of twenty-five worlds - "
There was a movement
in the bunker. Recruit Dietz, hit twice in the stomach, had dragged
himself over to Sergeant Ardwain and found Ardwain's pistol. He
crawled up to the firing slit and began shooting. He coughed blood
with each round. Another trooper staggered out of the bush. He reeled
like a drunk as he lurched toward the road. He carried a rack of
grenades strung around his neck and threw them mechanically,
staggering forward and throwing grenades. He had only one arm. He was
hit a dozen times and fell, but his arm moved to throw the last
grenade before he died.
More attackers moved
toward Brady's bunker. The trumpet call wavered for a moment as Brady
fired, and then the notes came as clear as ever.
"Roszak! I've
got a fire mission," I said.
"Sir."
"Let me
describe the situation down here." I gave him the positions of
my CP, Brady's bunker, and the only other one I thought might have
any of our troops in it. "Everyplace else is full of hostiles,
and they're getting past us along the riverbank. I want you to drop a
couple of mortar rounds forty meters down the road from the CP, just
north of the road, but not too far north. Corporal Brady's in there
and it would be a shame to spoil his concert."
"We hear him up
here, sir. Wait one." There was silence. "On the way."
The mortar shells
came in seconds later. Brady was still playing. I remembered his name
now. It was ten years ago on Earth. He'd been a famous man until he
dropped out of sight. Roszak had left his mike open, and in the
background I could hear the men in the fort cheering wildly.
Roszak's voice came
in my ears. "General order from battalion headquarters, sir.
You're to stay in your bunkers. No one to expose himself. Urgent
general order, sir.
I wondered what the
hell Falkenberg was doing giving me general orders, but I used my
command set to pass them along. I doubted if anyone heard, but it
didn't matter. No one was going anywhere.
Suddenly the road
exploded. The whole distance from fifty meters away down as far as I
could see vanished in a line of explosions. They kept coming,
pounding the road; then the riverbank was lifted in great clods of
mud. The road ahead was torn to bits; then the pieces were lifted by
another salvo, and another. I drove into the bottom of the bunker and
held my ears while shells dropped all around me.
Finally it lifted. I
could hear noises in my phones, but my ears were ringing, and I
couldn't understand. It wasn't Roszak's voice. Finally it came
through. "Do you need more fire support, Mr. Slater?"
"No. Lord, what
shooting - "
"I'll tell the
gunners that," Falkenberg said. "Hang on, Hal. We'll be
another hour, but you'll have fire support from now on."
Outside, Brady's
trumpet sang out another march.
XII
THEY SENT ME back to
Garrison to get my arm fixed. There's a fungus infection on Arrarat
that makes even minor wounds dangerous. I spent a week in surgery
getting chunks cut out of my arm, then another week in regeneration
stimulation. I wanted to get back to my outfit, but the surgeon
wouldn't hear of it. He wanted me around to check up on the regrowth.
Sergeant Ardwain was
in the next bay. It was going to take a while to get him back
together, but he'd be all right. With Lieberman dead, Ardwain would
be up for a Centurion's badges.
It drove me crazy to
be in Garrison while my company, minus its only officer and both its
senior NCO's, was out at Fort Beersheba. The day they let me out of
sick bay I was ready to mutiny, but there wasn't any transportation,
and Major Lorca made it clear that I was to stay in Garrison until
the surgeon released me. I went to my quarters in a blue funk.
The place was all
fixed up. Private Hartz was there grinning at me. His right arm was
in an enormous cast, bound to his chest with what seemed like a mile
of gauze.
"How did you
get out before I did?" I asked him.
"No infection,
zur. I poured brandy on the wounds." He winced. "It was a
waste, but there was more than enough for the few of us left."
There was another
surprise. Irina Swale came out of my bedroom.
"Miss Swale has
been kind enough to help with the work here, zur," Hartz said.
He seemed embarrassed. "She insisted, zur. If the lieutenant
will excuse me, I have laundry to pick up, zur."
I grinned at him and
he left. Now what? I wondered. "Thanks."
"It's the least
I could do for Arrarat's biggest hero," Irina said.
"Hero? Nonsense
- "
"I suppose it's
nonsense that my father is giving you the military medal, and that
Colonel Harrington has put in for something else; I forget what, but
it can't be approved here - it has to come from Sector Headquarters."
"News to me,"
I said. "And I still don't think - "
"You don't have
to. Aren't you going to ask me to sit down? Would you like something
to drink? We have everything here. Private Hartz is terribly
efficient."
"So are you.
I'm not doing well, am I? Please have a seat. I'd get you a drink,
but I don't know where anything is."
"And you
couldn't handle the bottles, anyway. I'll get it." She went into
the other room and came out with two glasses. Brandy for me and that
Jericho wine she liked. Hartz at work, I thought. I'll be drinking
that damned brandy the rest of my life.
"It was pretty
bad, wasn't it?" she said. She sat on the couch that had
appeared while I was gone.
"Bad enough."
Out of my original ninety, there were only twelve who hadn't been
wounded. Twenty-eight dead, and another dozen who wouldn't be back on
duty for a long time. "But we held." I shook my head. "Not
bragging, Irina. Amazed, mostly. We held."
"I've been
wondering about something," she said. "I asked Louis
Bonneyman, and he wouldn't answer me. Why did you have to hold the
fort? It was much the hardest part of the campaign, wasn't it? Why
didn't Captain Falkenberg do it?"
"Had other
things to do, I suppose. They haven't let me off drugs long enough to
learn anything over in sick bay. What's happening out there?"
"It went
splendidly," she said. "The Harmony militia are in control
of the whole river. The boats are running again, grain prices have
fallen here in the city - "
"You don't
sound too happy."
"Is it that
obvious?" She sat quietly for a moment. She seemed to be trying
to control her face. Her lips were trembling. "My father says
you've accomplished your mission. He won't let Colonel Harrington
send you out to help the other farmers. And the River Pack weren't
the worst of the convict governments! In a lot of ways they weren't
even so bad. I thought ... I'd hoped you could go south, to the
farmlands, where things are really bad, but Hugo has negotiated a
steady supply of grain and he says it's none of our business."
"You're
certainly anxious to get us killed."
She looked at me
furiously. Then she saw my grin. "By the way," she said,
"you're expected at the palace for dinner tonight. I've already
cleared it with the surgeon. And this time I expect you to come! All
those plans for my big party, and it was nothing but a trick your
Captain Falkenberg had planned! You will come, won't you? Please?"
We ate alone.
Governor Swale was out in the newly taken territory trying to set up
a government that would last. Irina's mother had left him years
before, and her only brother was a Navy officer somewhere in Pleiades
Sector.
After dinner I did
what she probably expected me to. I kissed her, then held her close
to me and hoped to go to something a bit more intimate. She pushed me
away. "Hal, please."
"Sorry."
"Don't be. I
like you, Hal. It's just that - "
"Deane
Knowles," I said.
She gave me a
puzzled look. "No, of course not. But ... I do like your friend
Louis. Can't we be friends, Hal? Do we have to - "
"Of course we
can be friends."
I saw a lot of her
in the next three weeks. Friends. I found myself thinking about her
when I wasn't with her, and I didn't like that. The whole thing's
silly, I told myself. Junior officers have no business getting
involved with Governors' daughters. Nothing can come of it, and you
don't want anything to come of it to begin with. Your life's
complicated enough as it is.
I kept telling
myself that right up to the day the surgeon told me I could rejoin my
outfit. I was glad to go. It was still my company. I hadn't been with
most of them at all, and I'd been with the team at the fort only a
few days, but A Company was mine. Every man in the outfit thought so.
I wondered what I'd done right. It didn't seem to me that I'd made
any good decisions, or really any at all.
"Luck,"
Deane told me. "They think you're lucky." That explained
it. Line Marines are probably the most superstitious soldiers in
history. And we'd certainly had plenty of luck.
I spent the next six
weeks honing the troops into shape. By that time Ardwain was back,
with Centurion's badges. He was posted for light duty only, but that
didn't stop him from working the troops until they were ready to
drop. We had more recruits, recently arrived convicts, probably men
who’d been part of the River Pack at one time. It didn't
matter. The Marine Machine takes over, and if it doesn't break you,
you come out a Marine.
Falkenberg had a
simple solution to the problem of deserters. He offered a reward, no
questions asked, to anyone who brought in a deserter - and a larger
reward for anyone bringing in the deserter's head. It wasn't an
original idea, but it was effective.
Or had been
effective. As more weeks went by with nothing to do but make patrols
along the river, drill and train, stand formal retreat and parades
and inspections, men began to think of running.
They also went
berserk. They'd get drunk and shoot a comrade. Steal. We couldn't
drill them forever, and when we gave them any time off, they'd get
the bug.
The day the main
body had reached Fort Beersheba, the 501st had been combat-weary,
with a quarter of its men on the casualty list. It was an exhausted
battalion, but it had high spirits. Now, a few months later, it was
up to strength, trained to perfection, well-organized and well-fed -
and unhappy.
I found a trooper
painting I.H.T.F.P. on the orderly room wall. He dropped the paint
bucket and stood to attention as I came up.
"And what does
that mean, Hora?"
He stood straight as
a ramrod. "Sir, it means 'I Have Truly Found Paradise.' "
"And what's
going to happen to you if Sergeant Major truly finds Private Hora
painting on the orderly room wall?"
"Cells,
Lieutenant."
"If you're
lucky. More likely you'll get to dig a hole and live in it a week.
Hora, I'm going to the club for a drink. I don't expect to see any
paint on that wall when I come back."
Deane laughed when I
told him about it. "So they're doing that already. 'I hate this
fucking place.' He means it, too."
"Give us
another six weeks and I'll be painting walls," I said. "Only
I'll put mine on the Governor's palace."
"You'll have to
wait your turn," Deane said.
"Goddamn it,
Deane, what can we do? The NCO's have gotten so rough I think I'll
have to start noticing it, but if we relax discipline at all, things
will really come apart."
"Yeah. Have you
spoken to Falkenberg about it?"
"Sure I have,"
I told him. "But what can he do? What we need is some combat,
Deane. I never thought I'd say that. I thought that was all garbage
that they gave us at the Academy, that business about le cafard and
losing more men to it than to an enemy, but I believe it now."
"Cheer up,"
Deane said. "Louis is officer of the day, and I just heard the
word from him. We've got a break in the routine. Tomorrow Governor
Hugo Swale, Hisself, is coming to pay a visit to the gallant troops
of the 501st. He's bringing your medal, I make no doubt."
"How truly
good," I said. "I'd rather he brought us a good war."
"Give him
time," Deane said. "The way those damned merchants from
Harmony are squeezing the farmers, they're all ready to revolt."
"Just what we
need. A campaign to put down the farmers," I said. "Poor
bastards. They get it from everybody, don't they? Convicts that call
themselves tax collectors. Now you say the Harmony merchants - "
"Yeah,"
Deane said. "Welcome to the glory of CoDominium Service."
Sergeant Major
Ogilvie's baritone rang out across the Fort Beersheba parade ground.
"Battalion, attenhut! A Company color guard, front and center,
march!"
That was a surprise.
Governor Swale had just presented me with the military medal, which
isn't the Earth, but I was a bit proud of it. Now our color guard
marched across the hard adobe field to the reviewing stand.
"Attention to
orders," Ogilvie said. "For conspicuous gallantry in the
face of the enemy, A Company, 501st Provisional Battalion, is awarded
the Unit Citation of Merit. By order of Rear Admiral Sergei
Lermontov, Captain of the Fleet, Crucis Sector Headquarters. A
Company, pass in review!"
Bits of cloth and
metal, and men will die for them, I thought. The old military game.
It's all silly. And we held our heads high as we marched past the
reviewing stand.
Falkenberg had found
five men who could play bagpipes, or claimed they could - how can you
tell if they're doing it right? - and they had made their own pipes.
Now they marched around the table in the officers' mess at Fort
Beersheba. Stewards brought whiskey and brandy.
Governor Hugo Swale
sat politely, trying not to show any distress as the pipers thundered
past him. Eventually they stopped. "I think we should join the
ladies," Swale said. He looked relieved when Falkenberg stood.
We went into the
lounge. Irina had brought another girl, a visitor from one of the
farm areas. She was about nineteen, I thought, with red-brown hair
and blue eyes. She would have been beautiful if she didn't have a
perpetual haunted look. Irina had introduced her as Kathryn Malcolm.
Governor Swale was
obviously embarrassed to have her around. He was a strange little
man. There was no resemblance between him and Irina, nothing that
would make you think he was her father. He was short and dumpy,
almost completely bald, with wrinkles on his high forehead. He had a
quick nervous manner of speaking and gesturing. He so obviously
disliked Kathryn that I think only the bagpipes could have driven him
to want to get back to her company. I wondered why. There'd been no
chance to talk to any of them at dinner.
We sat around the
fireplace. Falkenberg gave a curt nod, and all the stewards left
except Monitor Lazar, Falkenberg's own orderly. Lazar brought a round
of drinks and went off into the pantry.
"Well. Here's
to A Company and its commander," Falkenberg said. I sat
embarrassed as the others stood and lifted their glasses.
"Good work,
indeed," Hugo Swale said. "Thanks to this young man, the
Jordan Valley is completely pacified. It will take a long time before
there's any buildup of arms here again. I want to thank you gentlemen
for doing such a thorough job."
I'd had a bit too
much to drink with dinner, and there'd been brandy afterward, and the
pipers with their wild war sounds. My head was buzzing. "Perhaps
too thorough," I muttered as the others sat down. I honestly
don't know whether I wanted the others to hear me or not. Deane and
Louis threw me sharp looks.
"What do you
mean, Hal?" Irina asked.
"Nothing."
"Spit it out,"
Falkenberg said. The tone made it an order.
"I've a dozen
good men in cells and three more in a worse kind of punishment, half
my company is on extra duty, and the rest of them are going slowly
mad," I said. "If we'd left a bit of the fighting to do,
we'd at least have employment." I tried to make it a joke.
Governor Swale took
it seriously. "It's as much a soldier's job to prevent trouble
as to fight," he said.
You pompous ass, I
thought. But of course he was right.
"There's plenty
that needs doing," Kathryn Malcolm said. "If your men are
spoiling to fight somebody, loan them to us for a while." She
wasn't joking at all.
Governor Swale
wasn't pleased at all. "That will do, Kathryn. You know we can't
do that."
"And why not?"
she demanded. "You're supposed to be Governor of this whole
planet, but the only people you care about are the merchants in
Harmony - those sanctimonious hymn-singers! You know the grain
they're buying is stolen. Stolen from us, by gangsters who claim to
be our government, and if we don't give them what they want, they
take it anyway, and kill everyone who tries to stop them. And then
you buy it from them!"
"There is
nothing I can do," Swale protested. "I don't have enough
troops to govern the whole planet. The Grand Senate explicitly
instructed me to deal with local governments - "
"The way you
did with the River Pack," Kathryn said. Her voice was bitter.
"All they did was try to make some money by charging tolls for
river traffic. They wouldn't deal with your damned merchants, so you
sent the Marines to bargain with them. Just how many people in the
Jordan Valley thanked you for that, Governor? Do they think you're
their liberator?"
"Kathryn,
that's not fair," Irina protested. "There are plenty of
people glad to be free of the River Pack. You shouldn't say things
like that."
"All I meant
was that the River Pack wasn't so bad.
Not compared to what
we have to live with. But his Excellency isn't concerned about us,
because his merchants can buy their grain at low prices. He doesn't
care that we've become slaves."
Swale's lips
tightened, but he didn't say anything.
"Local
governments," Kathryn said. "What you've done, Governor, is
recognize one gang. There's another gang, too, and both of them
collect taxes from us! It's bad enough with just one, but it can't
even protect us from the other! If you won't give us our land back,
can't you at least put down the rival gangsters so we only have one
set of crooks stealing from us?"
Swale kept his voice
under control. He was elaborately polite as he said, "There is
nothing we can do, Miss Malcolm. I wish there were. I suggest you
people help yourselves."
"That isn't
fair, either," Irina said. "You know it isn't. They didn't
ask for all those convicts to be sent here. I think Kathryn has a
very good idea. Loan her the 501st. Once those hills are cleaned out
and the gangsters are disarmed, the farmers can protect themselves.
Can't they, Kathryn?"
"I think so.
We'd be ready, this time."
"See? And Hal
says his men are spoiling for a good fight. Why not let them do it?"
"Irina, I have
to put up with that from Miss Malcolm because she is a guest, but I
do not have to take it from you, and I will not. Captain, I thought I
was an invited guest on this post."
Falkenberg nodded.
"I think we'd best change the subject," he said.
There was an
embarrassed silence. Then Kathryn got up and went angrily to the
door. "You needn't bother to see me to my room," she said.
"I can take care of myself. I've had to do it often enough. I'm
not surprised that Captain Falkenberg isn't eager to lead his troops
into the hills. I notice that he sent a newly commissioned lieutenant
to do the tough part of Governor Swale's dirty work. I'm not
surprised at all that he doesn't want any more fighting." She
left, slamming the door behind her.
Falkenberg acted as
if he hadn't heard her. I don't suppose there was anything else he
could do. The party didn't last much longer.
I went to my rooms
alone. Deane and Louis offered to stay with me, but I didn't want
them. I told them I'd had enough celebrating.
Hartz had left the
brandy bottle on the table, and I poured myself another drink,
although I didn't want it. The table was Arrarat ironwood, and God
knows how the troops had managed to cut planks out of it. My company
had built it, and a desk, and some other furniture, and put them in
my rooms while I was in hospital. I ran my hand along the polished
tabletop.
She should never
have said that, I thought. And I expect it's my fault. I remembered
Irina saying much the same thing back in Garrison, and I hadn't
protested. My damned fault. Falkenberg never explained anything about
himself, and I'd never learned why he hadn't come with us the night
we attacked the fort, but I was damned sure it wasn't cowardice.
Louis and Deane had straightened me out about that. No one who'd been
with him on the march up the river could even suspect it.
And why the hell
didn't I tell Irina that? I wondered. Cocky kid, trying to impress
the girl. Too busy being proud of himself to -
There was a knock on
the door. "Come in," I said.
It was Sergeant
Major Ogilvie. There were some others in the hall. "Yes,
Sergeant Major?"
"If we could
have a word with the lieutenant. We have a problem, sir."
"Come in."
Ogilvie came inside.
When his huge shoulders were out of the doorway, I saw Monitor Lazar
and Kathryn Malcolm behind him. They all came in, and Kathryn stood
nervously, her hands twisted together. "It's all my fault,"
she said.
Ogilvie ignored her.
"Sir, I have to report that Monitor Lazar has removed certain
orders from the battalion files without authorization."
"Why tell me?"
I asked. "He's Captain Falkenberg's orderly."
"Sir, if you'll
look at the papers. He showed them to this civilian. If you say we
should report it to the captain, we'll have to." Ogilvie's voice
was carefully controlled. He handed me a bound stack of papers.
They were orders
from Colonel Harrington to Falkenberg as commander of the 501st, and
they were dated the first day we'd arrived on Arrarat. I'd never seen
them myself. No reason I should, unless Falkenberg were killed and I
had to take over as his deputy.
Lazar stood at rigid
attention. He wasn't looking at me, but seemed fascinated with a spot
on the wall above me.
"You say Miss
Malcolm has read these, Sergeant Major?"
"Yes, sir."
"Then it will
do no harm if I read them, I suppose." I opened the order book.
The first pages were general orders commanding Falkenberg to organize
the 501st. There was more, about procedures for liaison with Major
Lorca and the Garrison supply depot. I'd seen copies of all those.
"Why the devil did you think Miss Malcolm would be interested in
this stuff, Lazar?" I asked.
"Not that,
sir," Ogilvie said. "Next page."
I thumbed through
the book again. There it was.
Captain John
Christian Falkenberg, Commanding Officer, 501st Provisional Battalion
of Line Marines:
1. These orders are
written confirmation of verbal orders issued in conference with
above-named officer.
2. The 501st Bn. is
ordered to occupy Fort Beersheba at earliest possible moment
consistent with safety of the command and at the discretion of Bn.
CO.
3. Immediate
airborne assault on Fort Beersheba is authorized, provided that
assault risks no more than 10% of effective strength of 501st Bn.
4. Any assault on
Fort Beersheba in advance of main body of 501st Bn. shall be
commanded by officer other than CO 501st Bn., and request of Captain
Falkenberg to accompany assault and return to Bn. after Fort
Beersheba is taken is expressly denied.
NOTE: It is the
considered judgment of undersigned that officers assigned to 501st
would not be competent to organize Bn. and accomplish main objective
of pacification of Jordan Valley without supervision of experienced
officer. It is further considered judgment of undersigned that
secondary objective of early capture of Fort Beersheba does not
justify endangering main mission of occupation of Jordan Valley.
Captain Falkenberg is therefore ordered to refrain from exposing
himself to combat risks until such time as primary mission is
assured.
By Order of
Planetary Military Commander
Nicholas Harrington,
Colonel, CoDominium Marines
"Lazar, I take
it you were listening to our conversation earlier," I said.
"No way to
avoid it, sir. The lady was shouting." Lazar's expression didn't
change.
I turned the book
over and over in my hands. "Sergeant Major."
"Sir."
"I'm finished
with this order book. Would you please see that it's returned to the
battalion safe? Also, I think I forgot to log it out. You may do as
you see fit about that."
"Sir."
"Thank you. You
and Lazar may go now. I see no reason why the captain should be
disturbed because I wanted a look at the order book."
"Yes, sir.
Let's go, Monitor." Ogilvie started to say something else, but
he stopped himself. They left, closing the door behind them.
"That was nice
of you," Kathryn said.
"About all I
could do," I said. "Would you like a drink?"
"No, thank you.
I feel like a fool - "
"You're not the
only one. I was just thinking the same thing, and for about the same
reasons, when Ogilvie knocked. Won't you sit down? I suppose we
should open the door."
"Don't be
silly." She pulled a chair up to the big table. She was wearing
a long plaid skirt, like a very long kilt, with a shiny blouse of
some local fabric, and a wool jacket that didn't close at the front.
Her hair was long, brown with red in it, but I thought it might be a
wig. A damned pretty girl, I thought. But there was that haunted look
in her eyes, and her hands were scarred, tiny scars that showed
regeneration therapy by unskilled surgeons.
"I think Irina
said you're a farmer. You don't look like a farmer."
She didn't smile. "I
own a farm ... or did. It's been confiscated by the government - one
of our governments." Her voice was bitter. "The Mission
Hills Protective Association. A gang of convicts. We used to fight
them. My grandfather and my mother and my brother and my fiance were
all killed fighting them. Now we don't do anything at all."
"How many of
these gangsters are there?"
She shrugged. "I
guess the Protectionists have about four thousand. Something like
that, anyway. Then there is the True Brotherhood. They have only a
few hundred, maybe a thousand. No one really knows. They aren't
really very well organized."
"Seems like
they'd be no problem."
"They wouldn't
be, if we could deal with them, but the Protective Association keeps
our farmers disarmed and won't let us go on commando against the
Brotherhood. They're afraid we'll throw the Association out, as well.
The Brotherhood isn't anything real - they're closer to savages than
human beings - but we can't do anything about them because the
Association won't let us."
"And how many
of you are there?"
"There are
twenty thousand farmers in the Valley," she said. "And
don't tell me we ought to be able to run both gangs off. I know we
should be able to. But we tried it, and it didn't work. Whenever they
raided one of our places, we'd turn out to chase them down, but
they'd run into the hills, where it would take weeks to find them.
Then they'd wait until we came down to grow crops again, then come
down and kill everyone who resisted them, families and all."
"Is that what
happened to your grandfather?"
"Yes. He'd been
one of the Valley leaders. They weren't really trying to loot his
place; they just wanted to kill him. I tried to organize resistance
after that, and then - " She looked at her hands. "They
caught me. I guess I will have that drink, after all."
"There's only
brandy, I'm afraid. Or coffee."
"Brandy is all
right."
I got another glass
and poured. Her hands didn't shake as she lifted it.
"Aren't you
going to ask?" she said. "Everyone wants to know, but
they're afraid to ask." She shuddered. "They don't want to
embarrass me. Embarrass!"
"Look, you
don't want to talk about - "
"I don't want
to, but I have to. Can you understand that?"
"Yes."
"Hal, there's
very little you can imagine that they didn't do to me. The only
reason I lived through it was that they wanted me to live. Afterward,
they put me in a cage in the village square. As an example. A
warning."
"I'd have
thought that would have the opposite effect." I was trying to
speak calmly, but inside I was boiling with hatred.
"No. I wish it
had. It would have been worth it. Maybe - I don't know. The second
night I was there, two men who'd been neighbors killed one of their
guards and got me out. The Protectionists shot thirty people the next
day in reprisal." She looked down at her hands. "My friends
got me to a safe place. The doctor wasn't very well trained, they
tell me. He left scars. If they could see what I was like when I got
to him, they wouldn't say that."
I didn't know what
to say. I didn't trust myself to say anything. I wanted to take her
in my arms and hold her, not anything else, just hold her and protect
her. And I wanted to get my hands on the people who'd done this, and
on anyone who could have stopped it and didn't. My God, what are
soldiers for, if not to put a stop to things like that? But all I
could do was pour her another drink. I tried to keep my voice calm.
"What will you do now?"
"I don't know.
When Father Reedy finally let me leave his place, I went to Harmony.
I guess I hoped I could get help. But . . . Hal, why won't Governor
Swale do something? Anything?"
"More a matter
of why should he," I said. "God, Kathryn, how can I say it?
From his view, things are quiet. He can report that all's well here.
They don't promote troublemakers in BuColonial, and Hugo Swale
doesn't strike me as the kind of man who wants to retire on Arrarat."
I drained my brandy glass. "Maybe I'm not being fair to him.
Somehow I don't even want to be."
"But you'd help
us if you could. Wouldn't you?"
"My God, yes.
At least you're safe now."
She had a sad little
smile. "Yes, nothing but a few scars. Come here. Please."
She stood. I went to her. "Put your hands on my shoulders,"
she said.
I reached out to
her. She stood rigidly. I could feel her trembling as I touched her.
"It happens
every time," she said. "Even now, and I like you. I ...
Hal, I'd give anything if I could just relax and let you hold me. But
I can't. It's all I can do to sit here and talk to you."
"Then I'd
better let you go."
"No. Please.
Please understand. I like you. I want to talk with you. I want to
show myself there are men I can trust. Just . . . don't expect too
much ... not for a while. I keep telling myself I'm going to get over
it. I don't want to be alone, but I'm afraid to be with anyone, and
I'm going to get over that."
XIII
WE HAD MORE weeks of
parades and training. Falkenberg had a new scheme. He bought two
hundred mules and assigned my company the job of learning to live
with them. The idea was to increase our marching capability by using
pack mules, and to teach the men to hang on to the pack saddles so
they could cover more kilometers each day. It worked fine, but it
only increased the frustration because there was nothing to march
toward.
Governor Swale had
gone back to Garrison, but Irina and Kathryn stayed as guests of the
battalion. The men were pleased to have them on the post, and there
was much less of a problem with discipline. They particularly adopted
Kathryn. She was interested in everything they did, and the troops
thought of her as a mascot. She was young and vulnerable, and she
didn't talk down to them, and they were half in love with her.
I was more than
that. I saw so much of her that Falkenberg thought it worthwhile to
remind me that the service does not permit lieutenants to marry. That
isn't strictly true, of course, but it might as well be. There's no
travel allowance and it takes an appeal to Saint Peter or perhaps an
even higher level to get married quarters. The rule is, "Captains
may marry, Majors should marry, Colonels must marry," and there
aren't many exceptions to it.
"Not much
danger of that," I told him.
"Yes?" He
raised an eyebrow. It was an infuriating gesture.
I blurted out her
story.
He only nodded. "I
was aware of most of it, Mr. Slater."
"How in God's
name can you be so cool about it?" I demanded. "I know you
don't like her after that outburst - "
"Miss Malcolm
has been very careful to apologize and to credit you with the
explanation," Falkenberg said. "And the next time you take
the order book out of the safe, I'll expect you to log it properly.
Now tell me why we have three men of your company sleeping under
their bunks without blankets."
He didn't really
want an explanation, of course, and for that matter he probably
already knew. There wasn't much about the battalion that he didn't
know. It made a smooth change of subject, but I wasn't having any. I
told him, off the record, what the charges would have been if I'd
officially heard what the men had done. "Centurion Ardwain
preferred not to report it," I said. "Captain, I still
cannot understand how you can be so calm when you know that not two
hundred kilometers from here - "
"Mr. Slater, I
remain calm because at the moment there is very little I can do. What
do you want? That we lead the 501st in a mutiny? If it is any comfort
to you, I do not think the situation will last. It is my belief that
Governor Swale is living in a fool's paradise. You cannot deal with
criminal gangs on any permanent basis, and I believe the situation
will explode. Until it does, there is not one damned thing we can do,
and I prefer not to be reminded of my helplessness."
"But, sir - "
"But nothing,
Mr. Slater. Shut up and soldier."
Falkenberg had
guessed right. Although we didn't know it, about the time we had that
conversation the Protective Association had decided to raise the
price of grain. Two weeks later they hiked the price again and held
up the shipments to show the Governor they meant it.
It wasn't long after
that the Governor paid another visit to Fort Beersheba.
Deane Knowles found
me in the club. "His Excellency has arrived," he said.
"He's really come with full kit this time. He's brought Colonel
Harrington and a whole company of militia."
"What the devil
are they for?" I asked.
"Search me."
"I thought you
knew everything, well, well. I suppose we will know soon enough.
There's Officers' Call."
The Governor,
Colonel Harrington, and Falkenberg were all in the staff conference
room. There was also a colonel of militia. He didn't look very
soldierly. His uniform was baggy, and he had a bulge around his
middle. The Governor introduced him as Colonel Trevor.
"I'll come
right to the point, gentlemen," Swale said. "Due to certain
developments in the southern areas, I am no longer confident that
food supply for the cities of Harmony and Garrison is assured. The
local government down there has not negotiated in good faith. It's
time to put some pressure on them."
"In other
words," Colonel Harrington said, "he wants to send the
Marines down to bash heads so the Harmony merchants won't have to pay
so much."
"Colonel, that
remark was not called for," Governor Swale said.
"Certainly it
was." There was no humor in Harrington's voice. "If we can
send my lads down to get themselves killed, we can tell them why
they're going. It's hardly a new mission for the Line Marines."
"Your orders
are to hold the cities," Swale said. "That cannot be done
without adequate food supplies. I think that justifies using your
troops for this campaign."
"Sure it does,"
Harrington said. "And after the CD pulls both of us out of here,
what happens? Doesn't that worry you a bit, Colonel Trevor?"
"The CoDominium
won't abandon Arrarat." Trevor sounded very positive.
"You're betting
a lot on that," Colonel Harrington told him.
"If you two are
quite through," Swale said. "Captain, how soon can your
battalion be ready to march?"
Falkenberg looked to
Colonel Harrington. "Are we to hold the Jordan area, as well,
sir?"
"You won't need
much here," Harrington said. "The militia can take over
now."
"And what
precisely are we to accomplish in the southern farm area?"
Falkenberg asked.
"I just told
you," Swale said. "Go down and put some pressure on the
Protective Association so they'll see reason."
"And how am I
to do that?"
"For heaven's
sake, Falkenberg, it's a punitive expedition. Go hurt them until
they're ready to give in."
"Burn farms and
towns. Shoot livestock. Destroy transport systems. That sort of
thing?"
"Well ... I'd
rather you didn't do it that way." "Then, Governor, exactly
what am I to do?" Falkenberg demanded. "I remind you that
the Protective Association is itself an occupying power. They don't
really care what we do to the farmers. They don't work that land;
they merely expropriate from those who do."
"Then confine
your punitive actions to the Protective Association - " Swale's
voice trailed off.
"I do not even
know how to identify them, sir. I presume that anyone I find actually
working the land is probably not one of the criminal element, but I
can hardly shoot everyone who happens to be idle at the moment I pass
through."
"You needn't be
sarcastic with me, Captain."
"Sir, I am
trying to point out the difficulties inherent in the orders you gave
me. If I have been impertinent, you have my apology."
Sure you do, I
thought. Deane and Louis grinned at each other and at me. Then we
managed to get our faces straight. I wondered what Falkenberg was
trying to do. I found out soon enough.
"Then what the
devil do you suggest?" Swale demanded.
"Governor,
there is a way I can assure you a reasonable and adequate grain
supply. It requires your cooperation. Specifically, you must withdraw
recognition from the Protective Association."
"And recognize
whom? An unorganized bunch of farmers who couldn't hold on to the
territory in the first place? Captain, I have sympathy for those
people, even if all of you here do suspect me of being a monster with
no feelings. My sympathy is of no matter. I must feed the people of
Harmony, and to do that I'll deal with the devil himself if that's
what it takes."
"And you very
nearly have," I muttered.
"What's that,
Lieutenant Slater?"
"Nothing,
Governor. Excuse me."
"I expect I
know what you said. Captain, let's suppose I do what you ask and
withdraw recognition from the Protective Association. Now what do I
do? We are not in the democracy-building business. My personal
sympathies may well lie with what we are pleased to call 'free and
democratic institutions,' but I happen to be an official of the
CoDominium, not of the United States. So, by the way, do you. If this
planet had been settled by Soviets, we wouldn't even be having this
conversation. There would be an assured grain supply, and no nonsense
about it."
"I hardly think
the situations are comparable," Colonel Harrington said.
"Nor I,"
Trevor added. That surprised me.
"I ask again,
what do we do?" the Governor said.
"Extend
CoDominium protection to the area," Harrington said. "It
needn't be permanent. I make no doubt that Colonel Trevor's people
have friends among the farmers. We may not be in the
democracy-building business, but there are plenty who'd like to try."
"You are asking
for all-out war on the Protective Association," Swale said.
"Colonel Harrington, have you any idea of what that will cost?
The Senate is very reluctantly paying the basic costs of keeping
these Marines on Arrarat. They have not sent one deci-credit to pay
for combat actions. How am I supposed to pay for this war?"
"You’ll
just have to tax the grain transactions, that's all," Harrington
said.
"I can't do
that."
"You're going
to have to do it. Captain Falkenberg is right. We can drive out the
Protective Association - with enough local cooperation - but we sure
as hell can't grow wheat for you. I suppose we could exterminate
everyone in the whole damned valley and repopulate it - "
"Now you're
being impertinent."
"My apologies,"
Harrington said. "Governor, just what do you want? Those farmers
aren't going to grow crops just to have a bunch of gangsters take the
profits. They'll move out first, or take the land out of cultivation.
Then what happens to your grain supply?"
"The situation
is more complex than you think, Colonel. Believe me, it is. Your
business is war and violence. Mine is politics, and I tell you that
things aren't always what they seem. The Protective Association can
keep Harmony supplied with grain at a reasonable price. That's what
we must have, and it's what you re going to get for me. Now you tell
me that my only alternatives are a war I can't pay for, or starvation
in the city. Neither is acceptable. I order you to send an
expeditionary force to Allansport. It will have the limited objective
of demonstrating our intent and putting sufficient pressure on the
Protective Association to make them reasonable, and that is the whole
objective."
Harrington studied
his fingernails for a moment. "Sir, I cannot accept the
responsibility."
"Damn you.
Captain Falkenberg, you will - "
"I can't accept
the responsibility, either, Governor."
"Then, by God,
I'll have Colonel Trevor lead it. Trevor, if you say you can't
accept responsibility, I damned well know a dozen militia officers
who can."
"Yes, sir.
Who'll command the Marines sir? They won't take orders from me. Not
directly."
"The
lieutenants will - " He stopped, because one by one, Deane,
Louis, and I all shook our heads.
"This is
blackmail! I'll have every one of you cashiered!"
Colonel Harrington
laughed. "Now, you know, I really doubt that. Me you might
manage to get at. But junior officers for refusing an assignment
their colonel turned down? Try peddling that to Admiral Lermontov and
he'll laugh like hell."
Swale sat down. He
struggled for a moment until he was in control of his voice. "Why
are you doing this?"
Colonel Harrington
shook his head slowly. "Governor, everything you said about the
service is true. We're used. They use us to bash heads so that some
senator's nephew can make a mega-credit. They hand people a raw deal
and then call on us to make the victims stay in the game. Most of the
time we have to take it. It doesn't mean we like it much. Once in a
while, just every now and then, the Fleet gets a chance to put
something right after you civilians mess it up. We don't pass up such
chances." Harrington's voice had been quiet, but now he let it
rise slightly. "Governor, just what the hell do you think men
become soldiers for? So that you can get promoted to a cushy job?"
"I have told
you, I would like to help those farmers. I can't do it. Cannot you
understand? We can't pay for a long campaign. Can't. Not won't.
Can't."
"Yes, sir,"
Colonel Harrington said. "I expect I'd better get back to
Garrison. The staffs going to have to work out a pretty strict
rationing plan."
"You think you
have won," the Governor said. "Not yet, Colonel. Not yet.
Colonel Trevor, I asked you to put a battalion of militia on
riverboats. How long will it take for them to get here?"
"Be here
tomorrow, sir."
"When they
arrive, I want you to have made arrangements for more fuel and
supplies. We are taking that battalion to Allansport, where I will
personally direct operations. I've no doubt we can make the
Protective Association see reason. As to the rest of you, you will
sit in this fort and rot for all I care. Good afternoon, gentlemen."
I told Kathryn about
the conference when I met her for supper that night. She listened
with bewilderment.
"I don't
understand, Hal," she finally blurted. "All that fuss about
costs. We'd pay for the campaign and be happy to do it."
"Do you think
the Governor knows that?" I asked.
"Of course he
knows it. I've told him, and I've brought him offers from some of the
other farmers. Don't you remember I asked him to loan us the 501st?"
"Sure, but you
weren't serious."
"I wasn't then,
but it sounded like such a good idea that later on we really tried to
hire you. He wasn't interested."
"Wasn't
interested in what?" Louis Bonneyman asked. "Is this an
intimate conversation, or may I join you?"
"Please do,"
Kathryn said. "We're just finishing - "
"I've had my
dinner, also," Louis said. "But I'll buy you a drink. Hal,
did you ever think old Harrington had that land of guts?"
"No. Surprised
me. So what happens next?"
"Beats me,"
Louis said. "But I'll give you a hint. I just finished helping
Sergeant Major cut orders putting this whole outfit on full field
alert as of reveille tomorrow."
"Figures. I
wonder just how much trouble His Excellency will get himself into."
Louis grinned. "With
any luck, he'll get himself killed and Colonel Harrington becomes
Acting Governor. Then we can really clean house."
"You can't wish
that on Irina's father," Kathryn protested. "I thought you
liked her, Louis."
"Her, yes. Her
old man I can live without. I'd have thought you'd share the
sentiment."
"He was kind
enough to let me live in his home," Kathryn said. "I don't
understand him at all. He seems like a good man. It's only when - "
"When he puts
on his Governor's hat," I said. "I keep wondering if we
blew it, Kathryn. If we'd taken the Governor up on his offer, we
could at least have gotten down there to do something. I might even
have caught the bastard that - You know who I mean."
"I'm glad you
didn't, Hal. It would have been horrible. Anything you did to those
gangsters they'd take out on my friends as soon as you'd left. I
wouldn't have helped you, and I don't think anyone else would,
because anybody that did would be signing death warrants for his
whole family, and all his friends, too."
"Sounds like a
rough gang," Louis said. "Thorough. If you're going to use
terror, go all the way. Unfortunately, it works."
Kathryn nodded.
"Yes. I've tried to explain it to Governor Swale. If he sends an
expedition there, a lot of my friends will try to help. They'll be
killed if he leaves those hoodlums in control when it's over. It
would be better if none of you ever went there."
"But the
Harmony merchants don't like the prices," Louis said. "They
want their grain cheaper, and Swale's got to worry about them, too. A
complaint from the Harmony city council wouldn't look too good on his
record. Somebody at BuColonial might take it seriously."
"Politics,"
Kathryn said. "Why can't - "
"Be your age,"
Louis said. "There's politics in the CoDominium, sure, but we
still keep the peace. And it's not all that bad, anyway. Swale was
appointed by Grand Senator Bronson's people."
"An unsavory
lot," I said.
"Maybe,"
Louis admitted. "Anyway, of course that means that Bronson's
enemies will be looking for reasons to discredit Swale. He's got to
be careful. The Harmony merchants still have friends at American
Express - and AmEx hates Bronson with a passion."
"I'd say our
Governor has problems, then," I said. "From the looks of
the troops he took with him, he won't scare the Association much. The
militia have pretty uniforms, but they're all city kids. All right
for holding walls and cruising along the Jordan now that we've
disarmed everybody here, but they're unlikely to scare anybody with
real combat experience."
XIV
WE PUT THE entire
battalion on ready alert, but nothing happened for a week. Colonel
Harrington stayed at Fort Beersheba and joined us in the officers'
mess in the evenings. Like Falkenberg, he liked bagpipes. To my
horror, so did Kathryn. I suppose every woman has some major failing.
"What the hell
is he doing?" Colonel Harrington demanded. "I'd have sworn
he'd have gotten himself into trouble by now. Maybe we've
overestimated the Mission Hills Protective Association. Why the hell
did they come up with that name? There aren't any Mission Hills on
this planet, to the best of my knowledge."
"They brought
the name with them, Colonel," Louis told him. "There's a
Southern California gang with that name. Been around for two or three
generations. A number of them happened to be on the same prison ship,
and they stuck together when they got there."
"How the hell
did you find that out?" Harrington demanded.
"Captain
Falkenberg insists that his people be thorough," Louis said. "It
was a matter of sifting through enough convicts until I found one who
knew, and then finding some corroboration."
"Well,
congratulations, Louis," Harrington said. "John, you've
done well with your collection of newlies."
"Thank you,
Colonel."
"Real test's
coming up now, though. What the hell is happening down there?
Steward, another whiskey, all around. If we can't fight, we can still
drink."
"Maybe Governor
Swale will come to terms with them," I said.
The colonel gave me
a sour look. "Doubt it, Hal. He's between a rock and a hard
place. The merchants won't stand for the prices those goons want, and
they think they've got him by the balls. They're not afraid of us,
you know. They've got a good idea of what's going on in Harmony. They
know damned well that Fleet isn't sending any more support to
Arrarat, and what the hell can a thousand men do? Even a thousand
Line Marines?"
"I hope they
think that way," Deane said. "If they'll stand and fight,
they're finished - "
"But they
won't," John Falkenberg said. "They're no fools. They won't
stand and fight, they'll run like hell as soon as we get close to
them. They've only to sit up in the hills and avoid us. Eventually
we'll have to leave, but they won't."
Harrington nodded.
"Yeah. In the long run those poor damned farmers will have to
cut it for themselves. Maybe they'll make it. At least we can try to
set things right for them. John, do you think the pipers have had
their drink by now?"
"I'm certain of
it, Colonel. Lazar! Have Pipe Major bring us a tune!"
Eight days after the
Governor left Fort Beersheba, we still had no word. That night there
was the usual drinking with the pipers in the mess. I excused myself
early and went up to my rooms with Kathryn. I still couldn't touch
her without setting her to trembling, but we were working on it. I'd
decided I was in love with her, and I could wait for the physical
aspects to develop. I didn't dare think very far ahead. We had no
real future that I could see, but for the moment just being together
was enough. It wasn't a situation either of us enjoyed, but we hated
to be separated.
The phone buzzed.
"Slater," I told it.
"Sergeant Major
Ogilvie, sir. You're wanted in the staff room immediately."
"Hallelujah. Be
right there, Sergeant Major." As I hung up, Brady's trumpet
sounded "On Full Kits." I turned to Kathryn. We were both
grinning like idiots. "This is it, sweetheart."
"Yes. Now that
it's happened, I'm scared."
"So am I. As
Falkenberg says, we're all scared, but it's an officer's job not to
show it. Be back when I can - "
"Just a
second." She came to me and put her hands on my shoulders. Her
arms went around me, and she pulled me against herself. "See?
I'm hardly shaking at all." She kissed me, quickly, then a long,
lingering kiss. "This is one hell of a time for a miraculous
psychiatric cure," I said.
"Shut up and
get out of here."
"Aye,
aye, ma'am." I went out quickly. Hartz was in the
hallway. "I will have our gear ready, zur," he said. "And
now we fight." "I hope so."
As I walked across
the parade ground, I wondered why I felt so good. We were about to go
kill and maim a lot of people, and give them the chance to do it to
us. For a million reasons we ought to have been afraid, and we ought
to dread what was coming, but we didn't.
Is it that what we
think we ought to do is so thoroughly alien to what we really feel? I
couldn't kid myself that this time was different because our cause
was just. We say we love peace, but it doesn't excite us. Even
pacifists talk more about the horrors of war than about the glories
of peace.
And you're not
supposed to solve the problems of the universe, I told myself. But
you do get to kill the man that raped your girl.
The others were
already in the conference room, with Colonel Harrington at the head
of the table.
"The expected
has happened," Harrington said. I knew for a fact that he'd
drunk four double whiskeys since supper, but there wasn't a trace of
it in his speech.
I'd swallowed two
quick-sober pills on the way over. I really hadn't needed them. I was
sure they hadn't had time to dissolve, but I felt fine.
"Our Governor
has managed to get himself besieged in Allansport," Harrington
said. "With half of his force outside the town. He wants us to
bail him out. I have told him we will march immediately - for a
price."
"Then he's
agreed to withdraw recognition of the Association?" Deane asked.
"Agreed to,
yes. He hasn't done it yet. I think he's afraid that the instant he
does, they will get really nasty. However, I have his word on it, and
I will hold him to it. Captain Falkenberg, the 501st is hereby
ordered to drive the Mission Hills Protective Association out of the
Allan River Valley by whatever means you think best. You may
cooperate with local partisan forces in the area and make reasonable
agreements with them. The entire valley is to be placed under
CoDominium protection."
"Aye,
aye, sir." Falkenberg's detached calm broke for a moment
and he let a note of triumph get into his voice.
"Now, Captain,
if you will be kind enough to review your battle plan,"
Harrington said.
"Sir."
Falkenberg used the console to project a map onto the briefing
screen.
I'd already
memorized the area, but I examined it again. About ten kilometers
upriver from Beersheba, the Jordan was joined by a tributary known as
the Allan River. The Allan runs southwest through forest lands for
about fifty kilometers, then turns and widens in a valley that lies
almost due north-south. The east side of the Allan Valley is narrow,
because no more than twenty klicks from the river there's a high
mountain range and east of that is high desert. Nobody lives there
and nobody would want to. The west side, though, is some of the most
fertile land on Arrarat. The valley is irregularly shaped, narrowing
to no more than twenty-five klicks wide in places, but opening out to
more than one hundred klicks in others. It reminded me of the San
Joaquin Valley of California, a big fertile bowl with rugged
mountains on both sides of it.
Allansport is 125
klicks upriver from where the Allan runs into the Jordan. Falkenberg
left the big valley map on one screen and projected a detail onto the
other. He fiddled with the console to bring red and green lines
representing friendly and hostile forces onto the map.
"As you can
see, Governor Swale and one company of militia have taken a defensive
position in Allansport," Falkenberg said. "The other two
militia companies are south of him, actually upriver. How the devil
he ever got himself into such a stupid situation, I cannot say."
"Natural
talent," Colonel Harrington muttered.
"No doubt,"
Falkenberg said. "We have two objectives. The minor, but most
urgent, is to rescue Governor Swale. The major objective is
pacification of the area. It seems very unlikely that we can
accomplish that without a general uprising of the locals in our
favor. Agreed?"
We were all silent
for a moment. "Mr. Bonneyman, I believe you're the junior,"
Colonel Harrington said.
"Agreed, sir,"
Louis said.
Deane and I spoke at
once. "Agreed."
"Excellent. I
remind you that this conference is recorded," Falkenberg said.
Of course, I
thought. All staff conferences are. It didn't seem like Falkenberg
and Harrington to spread responsibility around by getting our
opinions on record, but I was sure they had their reasons.
"The best way
to stimulate a general uprising would be to inflict an immediate and
major defeat on the Protective Association," Falkenberg said. "A
defeat, not merely driving them away, but bringing them to battle and
eliminating a large number of them. It is my view that this is
sufficiently important to justify considerable risks. Is that agreed
to?"
Aha! I thought.
Starting with Louis, we all stated our agreements.
"Then we can
proceed to the battle plan," Falkenberg said. "It is
complex, but I think it is worth a try. You will notice that there is
a pass into the hills west of Allensport. Our informants tell us that
this is the route the Association forces will take if they are forced
to retreat. Furthermore, there is a sizable militia force south of
Allansport. If the militia were strengthened with local partisans,
and if we can take the pass before the besieging hostiles realize
their danger, we will have them trapped. The main body of the
battalion will march upriver, approach from the north, and engage
them. We won't get them all, but we should be able to eliminate quite
a lot of them. With that kind of victory behind us, persuading the
other ranchers to rise up and join us should not be difficult."
As he talked he
illustrated the battle plan with lights on the map. He was right. It
was complex.
"Questions?"
Falkenberg asked.
"Sir," I
said, "I don't believe those two militia companies can take the
pass. I certainly wouldn't count on it."
"They can't,"
Harrington said. "But they're pretty steady on defense. Give 'em
a strong position to hold and those lads will give a good account of
themselves."
"Yes,"
Falkenberg said. "I propose to stiffen the militia outside the
city with two sections of Marines. We still have our Skyhooks, and I
see no reason why we can't use them again."
"Here we go
again," I muttered. "Even so, sir, it all depends on how
strongly that pass is held, and we don't know that. Or do we?"
"Only that it
will be defended," Falkenberg said. "The attack on the pass
will have to be in the nature of a probe, ready to be withdrawn if
the opposition is too stiff."
"I see." I
thought about that for a while. I'd never done anything like that, of
course. I might have a military medal, but I couldn't kid myself
about my combat experience. "I think I can manage that, sir,"
I said.
Falkenberg gave me
his half grin, the expression he used when he was springing one of
his surprises. "I'm afraid you won't have all the fun this time,
Mr. Slater. I intend to lead the Skyhook force myself. You'll have
command of the main body."
There was more to
his plan, including a part I didn't like at all. He was taking
Kathryn with him on the Skyhook. I couldn't really object. She'd
already volunteered. Falkenberg had called her in my rooms while I
was on the way over to the conference.
"I really have
little choice," Falkenberg said. "We must have someone
reliable who is known to the locals. The whole plan depends on
getting enough local assistance to seal off the valley to the south
of Allansport. Otherwise, there's no point to it."
I had to agree. I
didn't have to like it. I could imagine what she'd say if I tried to
stop her.
Falkenberg finished
with the briefing. "Any more questions? No? Then once again I'll
ask for your opinions."
"Looks all
right to me," Louis said. Of course he would. He was going with
Falkenberg in the Skyhooks.
"No problem
with heavy weapons," Deane said. "I like it."
"Mr. Slater?"
"My operation
looks straightforward enough. No problems."
"It's
straightforward," Colonel Harrington said, "but not
trivial. You've got the trickiest part of the job. You have to seal
off the northern escape route, engage the enemy, rescue the Governor,
and then swing around like a hammer to smash the hostiles against the
anvil Captain Falkenberg will erect at the passes. The timing is
critical."
"I have
confidence in Lieutenant Slater," Falkenberg said.
"So have I, or
I wouldn't approve this plan," Harrington said. "But don't
ignore what we're doing here. In order to carry out the major
objective of clearing the hostiles from the whole valley, we're
leaving Governor Swale in a rather delicate situation. If something
goes wrong, Sector will have our heads - with justice, I might add."
He stood, and we all got to our feet. "But I like it. No doubt
the Association thinks we'll be rushing directly to the Governor's
aid, and their people are prepared for that. I hate to be obvious."
"So do I,"
Falkenberg said.
Harrington nodded
curtly. "Gentlemen, you have your orders."
The riverboats
looked like something out of the American Civil War as they puffed
their way down the dark river. We'd had a rainstorm when we left the
fort, but now the sky was clear and dark, with bright stars overhead.
My rivercraft were really nothing more than barges with steam engines
and enough superstructure to get cargo under cover. They were made of
wood, of course; there wasn't enough of a metal industry on Arrarat
to build steel hulls, and not much reason to want to.
I had three barges,
each about fifty meters long and twenty wide, big rectangular
floating platforms with cabins whose roofs served as raised decks,
and a central bridge to control them. Every centimeter of available
space was covered with troops, mules, guns, supply wagons,
ammunition, tentage, and rations. The 501st was going to the Allan
Valley to stay.
The barges burned
wood, which we had to stop and cut with chain saws. In addition, I
had one amphibious hovercraft with light armor. It could make
fifty-five kilometers an hour compared to the eleven kilometers an
hour the barges got under full steam. Perched on top of the third
barge was Number Three helicopter, which could make a couple of
hundred kilometers an hour. The discrepancies in speeds would have
been amusing if they weren't so frustrating.
"One goddamned
DC-45," Deane said. "One. That's all, one Starlifter, and
we could be there in an hour."
"We make do
with what we got," I told him. "Besides, think how romantic
it all is. Pity we don't have a leadsman up in the bows singing out
the river depth, instead of a sonar depth finder."
The hovercraft ran
interference to be sure there weren't any nasty surprises waiting for
us. As we got closer to Allansport, I sent up the chopper to make a
high-altitude survey of the landing area. We were landing a good
twenty klicks downriver from Allansport. Not only were the banks a
lot steeper farther upriver, but we didn't want to scare the
Association off by landing too close. Governor Swale was screaming at
me hourly, of course. He wanted us in Allansport right now. When I
told him where we were putting ashore, he was almost hysterical.
"What the hell
are you doing?" he demanded. "All you have to do is show
up! They won't stand and fight you. This is all a political maneuver.
Put heavy pressure on them and they'll come to terms."
I didn't point out
that we didn't intend to come to terms with the Association. "Sir,
Colonel Harrington approved the battle plan."
"I don't care
if God the Father approved it!" Swale shouted. "What are
you doing? I know Falkenberg is south of here with troops he brought
in by helicopter, but he won't tell me what he's doing! And now he's
withdrawn the militia! I'm trapped in here, and you're playing some
kind of game! I demand to know what you intend!"
"Governor, I
don't know myself," I said. "I just know what my orders
are. We'll have you out of there in a few hours. Out." I
switched off the set and turned to Deane.
"Well," I
said, "we know Louis and Falkenberg are doing something down
south of us. Wish I knew how they're making out."
"If there's
something we need to know, they'll tell us," Deane said.
"Worried about Kathryn?"
"Some."
"Never get so
attached to anyone that you worry about her. Saves a lot of skull
sweat."
"Yeah, sure.
Helmsman, that looks like our landing area. Look sharp."
"Aye, aye,
sir."
"Hartz, get me
the chopper pilot."
"Zur."
Hartz fiddled with the radio for a moment, then handed me the mike.
"Sergeant
Stragoff, sir."
"Stragoff, I
want you to make a complete sweep of our landing area. There should
be two unarmed people there to meet us. They'll show you a blue
light. If they show any other color, spray the whole area and get the
hell out of there. If they show blue, tell me about it, but I still
want a complete survey."
"Aye, aye,
sir."
"And just who
is meeting us?" Deane asked.
"Don't know
their names," I said. "Falkenberg said he'd try to set up a
welcoming committee of local resistance types. If we're satisfied
with them, we help 'em arm some of their neighbors. That's why we
brought those extra rifles."
The radio came to
life again. "Two people with a blue light, sir. Nothing else on
radar or IR."
"Good. Okay,
now make a wider sweep. I don't want to find out there's an artillery
battery registered on our landing area."
"Sir."
"Sergeant
Major," I said.
"Sir."
"You can take
the hovercraft in to occupy the landing area. Treat the welcoming
committee politely, but keep an eye on them. When the area's secure,
we'll all go ashore."
"Sir."
I looked up at the
stars. There was no moon. About five hours to dawn. With any luck
we'd be deployed and ready for combat by first light. "Okay,
Deane, you're in charge," I said. "Hartz, you stay with
him."
"If the
lieutenant orders it."
"Damn it, I did
order it. Belay that. All right, come with me."
We went to the deck
level. The river was less than a meter below us. It wasn't a river to
swim in; there are aquatic snakes on Arrarat, and their poison will
finish off anything that has protein in it. It acts as a catalyst to
coagulate cell bodies. I had no real desire to be a hard rubber lump.
We had one canoe on
board. I'd already found troopers who knew something about handling
them. We had a dozen men familiar with the screwy watercraft, which
didn't surprise me. The story is that you can find any skill in a
Line Marine regiment, and it seems to be true. In my own company I
had two master masons, an artist, a couple of electronic techs
(possibly engineers, but they weren't saying), at least one disbarred
lawyer, a drunken psychiatrist, and a chap the men claimed was a
defrocked preacher.
Corporal Anuraro
showed me how to get into the canoe without swamping it. We don't
have those things in Arizona. As they paddled me ashore, I thought
about how silly the situation was. I was being paddled in a canoe, a
device invented at least ten thousand years ago. I was carrying a
pair of light-amplifying field glasses based on a principle not
discovered until after I was born. Behind me was a steamboat that
might have been moving up the Missouri River at the time of Custer's
last stand, and I got to this planet in a starship.
The current was
swift, and I was glad to have experienced men at the paddles. The
water flowed smoothly alongside. Sometimes an unseen creature made
riffles in it. Over on the shore the hovercraft had already landed,
and someone was signaling us with a light. When we got to the bank I
was glad to be on dry land.
"Where are our
visitors, Roszak?" I asked.
"Over here,
sir."
Two men, both
ranchers or farmers. One was Oriental. They looked to be about fifty
years old. As agreed, they weren't armed.
"I'm Lieutenant
Slater," I said.
The Oriental
answered. "I am Wan Loo. This is Harry Seeton."
"I've heard of
you. Kathryn says you helped her, once."
"Yes. To escape
from a cage," Wan Loo said.
"You're
supposed to prove something," I said.
Wan Loo smiled
softly. "You have a scar on your left arm. It is shaped like a
scimitar. When you were a boy you had a favorite horse named
Candybar."
"You've seen
Kathryn," I said. "Where is she?"
"South of
Allansport. She is trying to raise a force of ranchers to reinforce
Captain Falkenberg. We were sent here to assist you."
"We've done
pretty well," Harry Seeton added. "A lot of ranchers will
fight if you can furnish weapons. But there's something else."
"Yes?"
"Please do not
think we are not grateful," Wan Loo said. "But you must
understand. We have fought for years, and we cannot fight any longer.
We have an uneasy peace in this valley. It is the peace of
submission, and we do not care for it, but we will not throw it away
simply to help you. If you have not come to stay, please take your
soldiers, rescue your Governor, and go away without involving us."
"That's blunt
enough," I said.
"We have to be
blunt," Harry Seeton said. "Wan Loo isn't talking for us.
We're outlaws, anyway. We're with you no matter what happens. But we
can't go ask our friends to join if you people don't mean it when you
say you'll stay and protect them."
"It is an old
story," Wan Loo said. "You cannot blame the farmers. They
would rather have you than the Association, but if you are here only
for a little while, and the Association is here forever, what can
they do? My ancestors were faced with the same problem on Earth. They
chose to support the West, and when the Americans, who had little
stake in the war, withdrew their forces, my great-grandfather gave up
land his family had held for a thousand years to go with them. He had
no choice. Do you think he would have chosen the American side if he
had known that would happen?"
"The CoDominium
has extended protection to this valley," I said.
"Governments
have no honor," Wan Loo said. "Many people have none,
either, but at least it is possible for a man to have honor. It is
not possible for a government. Do you pledge that you will not
abandon our friends if we arouse them for you?"
"Yes."
"Then we have
your word. Kathryn says you are an honorable man. If you will help us
with transportation and radio, by noon tomorrow I believe we will
have five hundred people to assist you."
"And God help
'em if we lose," Seeton said. "God help 'em."
"We won't
lose," I said.
"A battle is
not a war," Wan Loo said. "And wars are not won by weapons,
but by the will to win them. We will go now."
XV
IT IS A basic
military maxim that no battle plan ever survives contact with the
enemy, but by noon it looked as if this operation would be an
exception. Falkenberg's combat team - two platoons of B Company,
brought down by Skyhook after we were aboard our barges - struck at
the passes just before dawn and in three hours of sharp fighting had
taken them over. He brought up two companies of militia to dig in and
hold them.
Meanwhile, the
ranchers in the south were armed and turned out on command to block
any southward retreat. I had only scattered reports from that sector,
but all seemed under control. Kathryn had raised a force of nearly
five hundred, which ought to be enough to hold the southern defensive
line.
Then it was my turn.
Two hours after dawn I had a skirmish line stretching eight
kilometers into the valley. My left flank was anchored on the river.
There'd be no problem there. The right flank was a different story.
"It bothers
me," I told Falkenberg when I reported by radio. "My right
flank is hanging in thin air. The only thing protecting us is Wan
Loo's ranchers, and there's no more than three hundred of them - if
that many." Wan Loo hadn't been as successful as Kathryn had
been. Of course, he'd had a lot less time.
"And just what
do you expect to hit you in the flank?" Falkenberg asked.
"I don't know.
I just don't like it when we have to depend on other people - and on
the enemy doing what we want them to do."
"Neither do I,
but do you have an alternative to suggest?"
"No, sir."
"Then carry out
your orders, Mr. Slater. Advance on Allansport."
"Aye, aye,
sir."
It wasn't an easy
battle line to control. I had units strung all across the valley,
with the major strength on the left wing that advanced along the
river. The terrain was open, gently rolling hills with lines of
hedges and eucalyptus trees planted as windbreaks. The fields were
recently harvested, and swine had been turned loose in the wheat
stubble. The fields were muddy, but spread as we were, we didn't
churn them up much.
The farmhouses were
scattered at wide intervals. These had been huge farm holdings. The
smallest were over a kilometer square, and some were much larger. A
lot of the land was unworked. The houses were stone and earth, partly
underground, built like miniature fortresses. Some had sections of
wall blown out by explosives.
Harry Seeton was
with me in my ground-effects caravan. When we came to a farmhouse,
he'd try to persuade the owner and his children and relatives to join
us. If they agreed, he'd send them off to join the growing number on
our right wing.
"Something
bothers me," I told Seeton. "Sure, you have big families
and everybody works, but how did you cultivate all this land? That
last place was at least five hundred hectares."
"Rainfall
here's tricky," Seeton said. "Half the time we've got
swamp, and the other half we have drought. The only fertilizer is
manure. We ve got to leave a lot of the land fallow, or planted in
legumes to be plowed under."
"It still seems
like a lot of work for just one family."
"Well, we had
hired help. Convicts, mostly. Ungrateful bastards joined the
Association gangs first chance they got. Tell me something,
Lieutenant."
"Yes?"
"Are your men
afraid they'll starve to death? I never saw anything like it, the way
they pick up anything they can find." He pointed to one B
Company trooper who was just ahead of us. He wasn't a large man to
begin with, and he had his pockets stuffed with at least three
chickens, several ears of corn, and a bottle he'd liberated
somewhere. There were bulges in his pack that couldn't have come from
regulation equipment, and he'd even strapped firewood on top of it so
that we couldn't see his helmet from behind him. "They're like a
plague of locusts," Seeton said.
"Not much I can
do about it," I said. "I can't be everywhere, and the Line
Marines figure anything that's not actually penned up and watched is
fair game. They'll eat well for a few days - it beats monkey and
greasy rice." I didn't add that if he thought things were bad
now, with the troops on the way to a battle, he'd really be horrified
after the troops had been in the field a few weeks.
There were shots
from ahead. "It's started," I said. "How many of these
farm areas are still inhabited by your people?"
"Not many, this
close to Allansport. The town itself is almost all Association
people. Or goddamned collaborators, which is the same thing. I expect
that's why they haven't blasted it down. They outnumber your
Governor's escort by quite a lot."
"Yeah."
That bothered me. Why hadn't the Association forces simply walked in
and taken Governor Swale? As Seeton said, Swale had only a couple of
companies of militia with him, yet the siege had been a stalemate. As
if they hadn't really wanted to capture him.
Of course, they had
problems no matter what they did. If they killed the Governor,
Colonel Harrington would be in control. I had to assume the
Protective Association had friends in Harmony, possibly even inside
the palace. Certainly there were plenty of leaks. They'd know that
Harrington was a tougher nut than Swale.
The resistance was
stronger as we approached Allansport. The Association forces were far
better armed than we'd expected them to be. They had mortars and
light artillery, and plenty of ammunition for both.
We had two close
calls with the helicopters. I'd sent them forward as gunships to
support the advancing infantry. We found out the Association had
target-seeking missiles, and the only reason they didn't get the
choppers was that their gunners were too eager. They fired while the
helicopters still had time to maneuver. I pulled the choppers back to
headquarters. I could use them for reconnaissance, but I wasn't going
to risk them in combat.
We silenced their
artillery batteries one by one. They had plenty of guns, but their
electronics were ineffective. Their counterbattery fire was pathetic.
We'd have a couple of exchanges, our radars would backtrack their
guns, and that would be the end of it.
"Where the hell
did they get all that stuff?" I asked Seeton.
"They've always
had a lot of equipment. Since the first time they came out of the
hills, they've been pretty well armed. Lately it's gotten a lot
worse. One reason we gave up."
"It had to come
from off-planet," I said. "How?"
"I don't know.
Ask your governor."
"I intend to.
That stuff had to come through the spaceport. Somebody's getting rich
selling guns to the Protective Association."
We moved up to the
outer fringes of Allensport. The town was spread across low hills
next to the river. It had a protective wall made of brick and adobe,
like the houses. Deane's artillery tore huge gaps in the wall and the
troops moved into the streets beyond. The fighting was fierce. Seeton
was right about the sentiments of the townspeople. They fought from
house to house, and the Marines had to move cautiously, with plenty
of artillery support. We were flattening the town as we moved into
it.
Governor Swale and
two companies of Harmony militia were dug in on the bluffs
overlooking the river, very nearly in the center of the semicircular
town. They held the riverfront almost to the steel bridge that
crossed the Allan. I'd hoped to reach the Governor by dark, but the
fighting in the town was too severe. At dusk I called to report that
I wouldn't reach him for another day.
"However, we're
within artillery range of your position," I told him. "We
can give you fire support if there's any serious attempt to take your
position by storm."
"Yes. You've
done well," he told me.
That was a surprise.
I'd expected him to read me off for not getting there sooner. Live
and learn, I told myself. "I'm bringing the right flank around
in an envelopment," I told Swale. "By morning we'll have
every one of them penned in Allansport, and we can deal with them at
our leisure."
"Excellent,"
Swale said. "My militia officers tell me the Association forces
have very little strength in the southern part of the town. You may
be able to take many of the streets during the night."
We halted at dark. I
sent Ardwain forward with orders to take A Company around the edges
of the town and occupy sections at the southern end. Then I had
supper with the troops. As Seeton had noticed, they'd provisioned
themselves pretty well. No monkey and rice tonight! We had roast
chicken and fresh corn.
After dark I went
back to my map table. I'd parked the caravan next to a stone
farmhouse two klicks from the outskirts of Allansport. Headquarters
platoon set up the C.P., and there were a million details to attend
to: supply, field hospitals, plans to evacuate wounded by helicopter,
shuffling ammunition around to make sure each unit had enough of the
right kind. The computers could handle a lot of it, but there were
decisions to be made and no one to make them but me. Finally I had
time to set up our positions into the map table computer and make new
plans. By feeding the computer the proper inputs, it would show the
units on the map, fight battles and display the probable outcomes,
move units around under fire and subtract our casualties. . . .
It reminded me of
the afternoon's battles. There'd been fighting going on, but I'd seen
almost none of it.
Just more lines on
the map table, and later the bloody survivors brought back to the
field hospital. Tri-V war, none of it real. The observation satellite
had made a pass over the Allan Valley just before dark, and the new
pictures were relayed from Garrison. They weren't very clear. There'd
been low clouds, enough to cut down the resolution and leave big gaps
in my data about the Association forces.
"Number One
chopper's coming in, sir," Sergeant Jaski reported. He was a
headquarters platoon communications expert, an elderly wizened chap
who ran the electronics section with smiles and affection until
something went wrong. Then he could be as rough as any NCO in the
Fleet.
Number One was
Falkenberg's. I wasn't surprised when the captain came in a few
minutes later. He'd said he might join the main body if things were
quiet up at the pass. I got up from the map table to give him the
command seat. It hadn't fit me too well, anyway; I was glad to have
someone else take charge.
"Just going
over the satellite pix," I told him.
"One reason I
came by. Things are going well. When that happens I wonder what I've
overlooked." He keyed the map table to give him the current
positions of our troops. "Ardwain having any problem with the
envelopment?" he asked.
"No, sir."
He grunted and
played with the console keys. Then he stared at the satellite
pictures. "Mr. Slater, why haven't the Association troops taken
the riverbank areas behind the Governor?"
"I don't know,
sir."
"Any why didn't
His Excellency withdraw by water? He could certainly have gotten out,
himself and a few men."
"Didn't want to
abandon the militia, sir?"
"Possibly."
I looked at the
time. Two hours after dark. The troops were well dug in along the
perimeter, except for Ardwain's mobile force moving toward the
southern edge of the town.
Falkenberg went
through the day's reports and looked up, frowning. "Mr. Slater,
why do I have the impression that there's something phony about this
whole situation?"
"In what way,
sir?"
"It's been too
easy. We've been told the Association is a tough outfit, but so far
the only opposition has been some infantry screens that withdrew
before you made real contact, and the first actual hard fighting was
when you reached the town."
"There were the
artillery duels, sir."
"Yes. All won
by a few exchanges of fire. Doesn't that seem strange?"
"No, sir."
I had good reason to know that Deane's lads could do some great
shooting. After the support they gave me at the roadblock below.
Beersheba, I was ready to believe they could do anything. "I
hadn't thought about it, sir, but now that you ask - well, it was
easy. A couple of exchanges and their guns are quiet."
Falkenberg was
nodding. "Knocked out, or merely taken out of action? Looking at
this map, I'd say you aren't ready for the second alternative."
"I - "
"You've done
well, Lieutenant. It's my nasty suspicious mind. I don't like
surprises. Furthermore, why hasn't the Governor asked to be evacuated
by water? Why is he sitting there in Allansport?"
"Sir - "
He wouldn't let me
finish. "I presume you've reported your positions and plans to
the Governor?"
"Certainly,
sir."
"And we took
the pass with very little effort. Next to no casualties. Yet the
Association is certainly aware that we hold it. Why haven't their
town forces done something? Run, storm the bluffs and take the
Governor for a hostage - something!" He straightened in
decision. "Sergeant Major!"
"Sir!"
I want a message
taken to Centurion Ardwain. I don't want any possibility of it being
intercepted."
"Sir."
"He's to hold
up on the envelopment. Send a couple of patrols forward to dig in
where they can observe, but keep our forces out of Allansport. He can
move around out there and make a lot of noise. I want them to think
we've continued the envelopment, but, in fact, Ardwain is to take his
troops northwest and dig in no closer than two klicks to the town.
They're to do that as quietly and invisibly as possible."
"Yes, sir."
Ogilvie went out.
"Insurance, Mr.
Slater," Falkenberg said. "Insurance. We didn't need your
envelopment."
"Yes, sir."
"Confused,
Mister?"
"Yes, sir."
"Just
preserving options, Lieutenant. I don't like to commit my forces
until I'm certain of my objectives."
"But the
objective is to trap the Association forces and neutralize them,"
I said. "The envelopment would have done that. We wouldn't have
to trust to the ranchers to keep them from escaping to the south."
"I understood
that, Lieutenant. Now, if you'll excuse me, we've both got work to
do."
"Yes, sir."
I left the caravan to find another place to work. There was plenty to
do. I set up shop in one of the farmhouse rooms and went back to
shuffling papers. About an hour later Deane Knowles came in.
"I got the
change of orders," he said. "What's up?"
"Damfino. Have
a seat? Coffee's over there."
"I'll have
some, thanks." He poured himself a cup and sat across from me.
The room had a big wooden table, rough-hewn from a single tree. That
table would have been worth a fortune on Earth. Except for a few
protected redwoods, I doubted there was a tree that size in the
United States.
"Don't you
think I ought to know what's going on?" Deane asked. His voice
was friendly, but there was a touch of sarcasm in it.
"Bug Falkenberg
if you really want answers," I said. "He doesn't tell me
anything, either. All I know is he's sent A Company out into the
boonies, and when I asked him to let me join my company, he said I
was needed here."
"Tell me about
it," Deane said.
I described what had
happened.
Deane blew on the
hot coffee, then took a sip. "You're telling me that Falkenberg
thinks we've put our heads in a trap."
"Yes. What do
you think?"
"Good point
about the artillery. I thought things were going too well myself.
Let's adopt his theory and see where it leads."
"You do
understand there's only one person who could have set this
theoretical trap," I said.
"Yes."
"What possible
motive could he have?" I demanded.
Deane shrugged.
"Even so, let's see where it leads. We assume for the purposes
of discussion that Governor Hugo Swale has entered into a conspiracy
with a criminal gang to inflict anything from a defeat to a disaster
on the 501st - "
"And you see
how silly it sounds," I said. "Too silly to discuss."
"Assume it,"
Deane insisted. "That means that the Protective Association is
fully aware of our positions and our plans. What could they do with
that information?"
"That's why
it's so stupid," I said. "So what if they know where we
are? If they come out and fight, they'll still get a licking. They
can't possibly expect to grind up professional troops! They may be
great against ranchers and women and children, but this is a
battalion of Line Marines."
"A provisional
battalion."
"Same thing."
"Is it? Be
realistic, Hal. We've had one campaign, a short one. Otherwise, we're
still what came here - a random assortment of troops, half of them
recruits, another quarter scraped out of guardhouses, commanded by
three newlie lieutenants and the youngest captain in the Fleet. Our
colonel's a superannuated military policeman, and we've not a quarter
of the equipment a regular line battalion carries."
"We're a match
for anything a criminal gang can put in the field - "
"A well-armed
criminal gang," Deane said. "Hold onto your regimental
pride, Hal. I'm not downgrading the 501st. The point is that we may
know we're a damned good outfit, but there's not much reason for
anyone else to believe it."
"They'll soon
have reason to think differently."
"Maybe."
Deane continued to study the maps. "Maybe."
XVI
THE NIGHT WAS quiet.
I went on patrol about midnight, not to inspect the guard - we could
depend on the NCO's for all that - but mostly to see what it was like
out there. The troops were cheerful, looking forward to the next
day's battles. Even the recruits grinned wolfishly. They were facing
a disorganized mob, and we had artillery superiority. They'd pitched
tents by maniples, and inside each tent they'd set up their tiny
field stoves so there was hot coffee and chicken stew - and they'd
found wine in some of the farmhouses. Our bivouac had more the
atmosphere of a campout than an army just before a battle.
Underneath it all
was the edge that men have when they're going to fight, but it was
well hidden. You're sure it's the other guy who'll buy the farm.
Never you. Deep down you know better, but you never talk about that.
An hour before dawn
every house along the southern edge of Allansport exploded in red
fire. In almost the next instant a time-on-target salvo fell just
outside the walls. The bombardment continued, sharp thunder in the
night, with red flashes barely visible through the thick mist rising
up off the river. I ran to the command caravan.
Falkenberg was
already there, of course. I doubt if he'd ever gone to bed. Sergeant
Jaski had gotten communications with one of the forward patrols.
"Corporal
Levine, sir. I'm dug in about five hundred meters outside the walls.
Looks like it was mines in the houses, Captain. Then they dropped a
hell of a load onto where we'd have been if we'd moved up last
night."
"What's your
situation, Levine?" Falkenberg demanded.
"Dug in deep,
sir. They killed a couple of my squad even so. It's thick out here,
sir. Big stuff. Not just mortars."
That was obvious
from the sound, even as far away as we were. No light artillery makes
that kind of booming sound.
"A moment,
Captain," Levine said. There was a long silence. "Can't
keep my head up long, Captain. They're still pounding the area. I see
movement in the town. Looks like assault troops coming out the gate.
The fire's lifting now. Yeah, those are assault troops. A lot of
'em."
"Sergeant
Major, put the battalion on alert for immediate advance,"
Falkenberg said. "Jaski, when's the next daylight pass of the
spy satellite over this area?"
"Seventy
minutes after daylight, sir."
"Thank you.
Levine, you still there?"
"Yes, Captain.
There's more troops moving out of Allansport. Goddamn, there's a
couple of tanks. Medium jobs. Suslov class, I'd say. I didn't know
them bastards had tanks! Where'd they get them?"
"Good question.
Levine, keep your head down and stay out of sight. I want you to stay
alive."
"Won't fight
over those orders, Captain."
"They're
breaking out toward the south," Falkenberg said. "Jaski,
get me Lieutenant Bonneyman."
"Sir."
"While you're
at it, see if you can raise Centurion Cernan at the pass."
"Aye,
aye, sir." Jaski worked at the radio for a moment. "No
answer from Mr. Bonneyman, sir. Here's Cernan."
"Thank you."
Falkenberg paused. "Mr. Slater, stay here for a moment. You'll
need instructions. Centurion Cernan, report."
"Not much to
report, Captain. Some movement up above us."
"Above you.
Hostiles coming down the pass?"
"Could be,
Captain, but I don't know. I have patrols up that way, but they
haven't reported yet."
"Dig in,
Cernan," Falkenberg said. "I'll try to send you some
reinforcements. You've got to hold that pass no matter which
direction it's attacked from."
"Aye, aye,
sir."
Falkenberg nodded.
The map board was crawling with symbols and lights as reports came in
to Jaski's people and they were programmed onto the display. "Wish
I had some satellite pix," Falkenberg said. "There's only
one logical move the Association can be making at this point."
He was talking to
himself. Maybe he wasn't. Maybe he thought I understood him, but I
didn't.
"In any event,
we have the only sizable military force on the entire planet,"
Falkenberg said. "We can't risk its destruction."
"But we've got
to relieve Bonneyman and the ranchers," I protested. I didn't
mention Kathryn. Falkenberg might think it was just a personal
problem. Maybe it was. "Those tanks are headed south, right for
their lines."
"I know. Jaski,
keep trying to get Bonneyman."
"Sir!"
Outside the trumpets
were sounding. "On Full Kits." Brady's sang louder than the
rest.
"And we must
rescue the Governor," Falkenberg said. "Indeed, we must."
He came to a decision. "Jaski, get me Mr. Wan Loo."
While Jaski used the
radio, Falkenberg said, "I want you to talk to him, Mr. Slater.
He has met you and he has never met me. His first impulse will be to
rush to the aid of his friends in the south. He must not do that. His
forces, what there are of them, will be far more useful as
reinforcements for Centurion Cernan at the pass."
"Mr. Wan Loo,
sir," Jaski said.
Falkenberg handed me
the mike.
"I don't have
time to explain," I said. "You're to take everything you've
got and move up to the pass. There are mixed Marine and militia units
holding it, and there's a chance Association forces are moving down
the pass toward them. Centurion Cernan is in command up there, and
he'll need help."
"But what is
happening?" Wan Loo asked.
"The
Association forces in Allansport have broken loose and are heading
south," I said.
"But our
friends to the south - "
Falkenberg took the
mike. "This is Captain John Christian Falkenberg. We'll assist
your friends, but we can do nothing if the forces coming down the
pass are not contained. The best way you can help your friends is to
see that no fresh Association troops get into this valley."
There was a long
pause. "You would not abandon us, Captain?"
"No. We won't
abandon you," Falkenberg said.
"Then I have
assurances from two honorable men. We will help your friends,
Captain. And go with God."
"Thank you.
Out." He gave the mike back to Jaski. "Me, I'd rather have
a couple of anti-tank guns - or, better still, tanks of our own.
How's Old Beastly?"
"Still running,
sir." Old Beastly was the 501st's only tank, a relic of the days
when CD regulars had come to Arrarat. It was kept going by constant
maintenance.
"Where the
devil are the Protective Association people getting fuel for tanks?"
Falkenberg said. "To hell with it. Sergeant Major, I want
Centurion Ardwain to take two platoons of A Company and Old Beastly.
Their mission is to link up with Governor Swale. They're to attack
through the north end of the town along the riverbank, and they're to
move cautiously."
"Captain,
that's my company," I said. "Shouldn't I go with them?"
"No. I have a
number of operations to perform, and I'll need help. Don't you trust
Ardwain?"
"Of course I
trust him, sir - "
"Then let him
do his job. Sergeant Major. Ardwain's mission is to simulate at least
a company. He's to keep the men spread out and moving around. The
longer it takes for the enemy to tumble to how small his force is,
the better. And he's not to take chances. If they gang up on him, he
can run like hell."
"Sir,"
Ogilvie said. He turned to a waiting runner.
"Ardwain's got
a radio, sir," I said.
"Sure he has."
Falkenberg's voice was conversational. "Know much about the
theory of the scrambler codes we use, Mr. Slater?"
"Well, no, sir
- "
"You know this
much: in theory any message can be recorded off the air and
unscrambled with a good enough computer."
"Yes, sir. But
the only computer on Arrarat that could do that is ours, in
Garrison."
"And the
Governor's in the palace at Harmony," Falkenberg said. "And
those two are the ones we know about."
"Sir, you're
saying that Governor - "
"No," he
interrupted. "I have said nothing at all. I merely choose to be
certain that my orders are not intercepted. Jaski, where the hell is
Bonneyman?"
"Still trying
to raise him, sir."
"Any word from
Miss Malcolm or the other ranchers in the southern area?"
"No, sir."
More information
appeared on the map board. Levine was still reporting. There were
only the two tanks, but a sizable infantry force had come out of
Allansport and was headed south along the riverbank. If Levine was
right, there'd been more troops in Allansport than we'd ever
suspected.
"I have
Lieutenant Bonneyman, sir."
"Thank God."
Falkenberg grabbed the mike. "Mr. Bonneyman, nearly one thousand
hostiles have broken free from Allansport and are moving south. They
have with them at least two medium tanks and an appreciable artillery
train. Are you well dug in?"
"Yes, sir.
We'll hold them."
"The devil, you
will. Not with riflemen against that."
"We have to
hold, sir," Louis said. "Miss Malcolm and an escort moved
about twenty kilometers south during the night in the hopes of
raising more reinforcements. She was not successful, but she has
reports of hostile activities south of us. At least two, possibly
more, groups of Association forces are moving north. We must hold
them or they'll break through and link up with the Allansport groups.
"One moment,"
Falkenberg said. "Sergeant Major, I want helicopter observation
of the area to the south of Lieutenant Bonneyman and his ranchers.
Send Stragoff. He's to stay at high altitude, but it's vital that I
find out what's coming north at us out of Denisburg. All right, Mr.
Bonneyman. At the moment you don't know what you're facing."
"No, sir, but
I'm in a pretty good position. Rifle pits, and we're strengthening
the southern perimeter."
"All right.
You're probably safer there than anywhere else. If you get into
trouble, your escape route is east, toward the river. I'm bringing
the 501st around the town. We'll skirt it wide to stay away from
their artillery. Then we'll cut in toward the river and stay right
along the bank until we reach your position. If necessary, our
engineers can throw up a pontoon bridge and we'll go out across the
river to escape."
"Do we need to
run, Captain?" Louis sounded dismayed.
"As I have
explained to Mr. Slater, our prime objective is to retain the 501st
as a fighting unit. Be prepared to withdraw eastward on command, Mr.
Bonneyman. Until then, you're to hold that position no matter what
happens, and it's likely to be rough."
"Can do,
Captain."
"Excellent.
Now, what about Miss Malcolm?"
"I don't know
where she is, sir. I can send a patrol - "
"No. You have
no forces to spare. If you can get a message to her, have her rejoin
you if that's possible.
Otherwise, she's on
her own. You understand your orders, Mister?"
"Yes, sir."
"Excellent.
Out."
"So Kathryn's
expendable," I said.
"Anyone is
expendable, Mister. Sergeant Major, have Stragoff listen on Miss
Malcolm's frequency. If he can locate her, he can try to evacuate her
from the southern area, but he is not to compromise the
reconnaissance mission in doing it."
"Sir."
"You are one
hard-nosed son-of-a-bitch," I said.
His voice was calm
as he said, "Mister, I get paid to take responsibilities, and at
the moment I'm earning my keep. I'll overlook that remark. Once."
And if I say
anything else, I'll be in arrest while my troops are fighting. Got
you. "What are my orders, sir?"
"For the moment
you're to lead the forward elements of the 501st. I want the
battalion to move in column around the town, staying outside
artillery range. When you've reached a point directly southwest of
Allansport, halt the lead elements and gather up the battalion as I
send it to you. I'll stay here until this has been accomplished. I
still must report to the Governor and I want the daylight satellite
pictures."
I looked at my
watch. Incredibly, it was still a quarter-hour before dawn. A lot had
happened in the last forty-five minutes. When I left the caravan,
Falkenberg was playing games on the map board. More bloodless
battles, with glowing lights and wriggling lines crawling across the
map at lightning speed, simulations of hours of bloody combat and
death and agony.
And what the hell
are you accomplishing? I thought. The computer can't give better
results than the input data, and your intelligence about the hostiles
is plain lousy. How many Association troops are coming down the pass
toward Centurion Cernan? No data. How many more are in those
converging columns moving toward Louis and Kathryn and their
ranchers? Make a guess What are their objectives? Another guess.
Guess and guess again, and Kathryn's out there, and instead of
rescuing her, we're keeping the battalion intact. I wanted to mutiny,
to go to Kathryn with all the men I could get to follow me, but I
wasn't going to do that. I blinked back tears. We had a mission, and
Falkenberg was probably right. He was going to the aid of the
ranchers, and that's what Kathryn would want. She'd pledged her honor
to those people, and it was up to us to make that good. Maybe
Stragoff will find her, I thought. Maybe.
I went to my room
and let Hartz hang equipment onto my uniform. It was time to move
out, and I was glad of something, anything, to do.
XVII
THE VALLEY WAS
filled with a thick white mist. The fog boiled out of the river and
flowed across the valley floor. In the two hours since dawn, the
501st had covered nine kilometers. The battalion was strung out in a
long column of men and mules and wagons on muddy tracks that had once
been roads and now had turned into sloppy gunk. The men strained at
ropes to pull the guns and ammunition wagons along, and when we found
oxen or mules in the fields, we hitched them up as well. The
rainstorm that had soaked us two days before at Beersheba had passed
across the Allan Valley, and the fields were squishy marshlands.
Out in the distance
we could hear the sound of guns: Ardwain's column, the Allansport
garrison trying to get through Louis's position - or someone else a
world away. In the fog we couldn't know. The sound had no direction,
and out here there was no battle, only mud.
There were no
enemies here in the valley. There weren't any friends, either. There
were only refugees, pathetic families with possessions piled on their
mules and oxen, or carried in their arms. They didn't know where they
were going, and I had no place to send them. Sometimes we passed
farms, and we could see women and children staring at us from the
partly open doors or from behind shuttered windows. Their eyes had no
expression in them. The sound of the guns over the horizon, and the
curses of the men as they fought to move our equipment through the
mud; more curses as men whipped oxen we'd found and hitched to the
wagons; shrill cries from farmers protesting the loss of their stock;
everything dripping wet in white swirling fog, all blended together
into a long nightmare of outraged feelings and senselessness. I felt
completely alone, alien to all this. Where were the people we'd come
to set free?
We reached the map
point Falkenberg had designated, and the troops rested in place while
the rest of the column caught up with us. The guns were just moving
in when Falkenberg's command caravan roared up. The ground-effects
machine could move across the muddy fields with no problems, while we
had to sweat through them.
He sent for Deane
Knowles and had us both come into the caravan. Then he sent out all
the NCO's and enlisted men. The three of us were alone with the map
table.
"I've held off
explaining what I've been doing until the last minute," he said.
"As it is, this is for your ears only. If something happens, I
want someone to know I haven't lost my mind."
"Yes, sir,"
I said. Deane and I looked at each other.
"Some
background," Falkenberg said. "There's been something
peculiar about the Allan Valley situation for years. The convict
groups have been too well armed, for a beginning. Governor Swale was
too eager to recognize them as a legitimate local government. I think
both of you have remarked on that before."
Deane and I looked
at each other again.
"This morning's
satellite pictures," Falkenberg said. "There's too much
mist to show any great details, but there are some clear patches.
This strip was taken in the area south of Mr. Bonneyman. I invite
your comments."
He handed us the
photos. Most were of patches of mist, with the ground below
completely invisible. Others showed patches where the mist was thin,
or there wasn't any. "Nothing at all," Deane said.
"Precisely,"
Falkenberg said. "Yet we have reports of troop movements in that
area. It is as if the hostiles knew when the satellite would be
overhead, and avoided clear patches."
"As well they
might," Deane said. "It shouldn't be hard to work out the
ephemeris of the spy-eye."
"Correct. Now
look at the high resolution enlargements of those clear areas."
We looked again.
"The roads are chewed up," I said. "Mud and ruts. A
lot of people and wagons have passed over them."
"And recently,
I'd say." Falkenberg nodded in satisfaction. If this had been a
test, we'd passed. "Now another datum. I have had Sergeant
Jaski's people monitoring all transmissions from Allansport. It may
or may not be significant that shortly after every communication
between 501st headquarters and outlying commands, there has been a
transmission from the Governor to the palace at Harmony - and, within
half an hour, a reply. Not an immediate reply, gentlemen, but a reply
within half an hour. And shortly after that, there is traffic on the
frequencies the Association forces use."
There wasn't
anything to say to that. The only explanation made no sense.
"Now, let's see
what the hostiles have in mind," Falkenberg said. "They
besiege the Governor in Allan-sport. Our initial orders are to send a
force to relieve him. We don't know what they would have done, but
instead we devised a complex plan to trap them. We take the initial
steps, and what happens? The hostiles invite us to continue. They do
nothing. Later we learn that a considerable force, possibly the major
part of their strength, is marching northward. Their evident
objective is Mr. Bonneyman's mixed group of Marines and ranchers. I
point out that the elimination of those ranchers would be significant
to the Association. They would not only be rid of potential
opposition to their rule, but I think it would in future be
impossible to persuade any significant group of ranchers to rise
against them. The Association would be the only possible government
in the Allan Valley."
"Yes, sir, but
why?" Deane said. "What could be ... why would Governor
Swale cooperate with them?"
"We'll leave
that for the moment, Mr. Knowles. One thing at a time. Now for the
present situation. Centurion Ardwain has done an excellent job of
simulating a large force cautiously advancing into Allansport from
the north. Governor Swale seems convinced that we've committed at
least half our strength there. I have further informed him that we
will now bring the balance of the 501st from its present position
directly east to the riverbank, where we will once again divide out
troops, half going south to aid Mr. Bonneyman, the other half moving
into the town. The Governor thought that a splendid plan. Have you an
opinion, Mr. Slater?"
"It's the
dumbest thing I ever heard of," I said. "Especially if he
thinks you've already divided the force! If you do that, you'll be
inviting defeat in detail."
"Precisely,"
Falkenberg said. "Of course Governor Swale has no military
background."
"He doesn't
need one to know that plan's a bust," I said. "Lousy
traitor - "
"No
accusations," Falkenberg said. "We've no proof of anything.
In any event, I am making the assumption that the Association is
getting decoded copies of all my transmissions. I don't need to know
how they get them. You'll remember that whenever you use radio
signals that might be overheard."
"Yes, sir."
Deane looked thoughtful. "That limits our communications
somewhat."
"Yes. I hope
that won't matter. Next problem. Under my assumption, the hostiles
expect me to send a force eastward toward the river. That expectation
must be met. I need Mr. Knowles to handle the artillery. It leaves
you, Mr. Slater. I want you to take a platoon and simulate two
companies with it. You'll send back a stream of reports, as if you're
the main body of the battalion reporting to me at a headquarters left
safely out of the combat zone." Falkenberg grinned slightly. "To
the best of my knowledge, Irina's opinion of me is shared by her
father. He won't find it at all hard to believe that I'm avoiding a
combat area."
"But what if I
really have a message?" I asked.
"You're
familiar with O'Grady drill?" Falkenberg asked.
"Yes, sir."
O'Grady drill is a form of torture devised by drill sergeants. You're
supposed to obey only the commands that begin with "O'Grady
says:." Then the sergeant snaps out a string of orders.
"We'll play
that little game," Falkenberg said. "Now your mission is to
get to the river, make a short demonstration, as if you're about to
attack the southern edge of Allansport, and then move directly south,
away from the town, until you link up with Mr. Bonneyman. You will
then aid in his defense until you are relieved."
"But - Captain,
you're assuming they know your orders."
He nodded. "Of
course they'll put out an ambush. In this fog it will be a natural
thing for them to do. Since they'll assume you have a much larger
force with you, they'll probably use all the force that left
Allansport this morning. I can't think they're stupid enough to try
it with less."
"And we're to
walk into it," I said.
"Yes. With your
eyes open, but walk into it. You're bait, Mr. Slater. Get out there
and wiggle."
I remembered an old
comic strip. I quoted a line from it. "Don't much matter whether
you catch a fish or not; once you been used for bait, you ain't much
good for nothing else nohow."
"Maybe,"
Falkenberg said. "Maybe. But I remind you that you'll be keeping
a major column of Association forces off Mr. Bonneyman's back."
"We will so
long as we survive - "
"Yes. So I'll
expect you to survive as long as possible."
"Can't quarrel
with those orders, Captain."
The fog was thicker
when we reached the river. The troops were strung out along almost a
full kilometer route, each maniple isolated from the others in the
dripping-white blanket that lay across the valley. The troops were
enjoying themselves, with monitors reporting as if they were platoon
sergeants, and corporals playing centurion. They kept up a steady
stream of chatter on the radio, while two men back at Falkenberg's
headquarters sent orders that we paid no attention to. So far it was
easy enough, because we hadn't run into anything at all.
"There's the
city wall." Roszak pointed leftward. I could barely see a darker
shape in the fog. "We'll take a quick look over. All right,
Lieutenant?"
"Yes. Be
careful."
"Always am,
sir. Brady, bring your squad. Let's see what's over there." They
vanished into the fog.
It seemed like
hours, but it was only a few minutes before Brady returned. "Nothing,
sir. Nothing and nobody, at least not close to the walls. May be a
lot of them farther in. I got a feeling."
Roszak's voice came
into my command set. "Moved fifty meters in. No change from what
Brady reported."
"Did he have
your feeling, Brady?" I asked.
"Yes, sir."
I switched the set
back on. "Thank you, Roszak. Rejoin your company."
"Aye, aye,
sir."
There were distant
sounds of firing from the north. Ardwain's group was doing a good job
of simulating a company. They were still moving into the town house
by house. I wondered if he was running into opposition, or if that
was all his own doing. He was supposed to go cautiously, and his men
might be shooting up everything in sight. They were making a lot of
noise. "Get me Falkenberg," I told Hartz.
"Yes, Mr.
Slater?"
"Captain,
Monitor O'Grady reports the south end of the town has been abandoned.
I can hear the A Company combat team up at the north end, but I don't
know what opposition they've encountered."
"Very light,
Mister. You leave a company to assist A Company just in case, and
continue south. Exactly as planned, Mr. Slater. No change. Got that?"
"Yes, sir."
"Having any
trouble with the guns?"
"A little, sir.
Roads are muddy. It's tough going, but we're moving."
"Excellent.
Carry on, then. Out."
And that, I told
myself, is that. I told off a monitor to dig in just outside the town
and continue making reports. "You've just become B Company
centurion," I said.
He grinned. "Yes,
sir. Save a few of 'em for me."
"I'll do that,
Yokura. Good luck." I waved the rest of my command down the
road. We were strung out in a long column. The fog was a little
thinner. Now I could see over twenty meters before the world was
blotted out in swirling white mist.
What's the safest
way to walk into an ambush? I asked myself. The safest way is not to
do it. Bar that solution and you don't have a lot of choices. I used
the helmet projector to show me a map of the route.
The first test was a
hill just outside of town: Hill 509, called the Rockpile, a warren of
jumbled boulders and flinty ledges. It dominated the road into the
southern gate of Allansport. Whoever owned it controlled traffic into
and out of the town.
If the Association
only wanted to block us from moving south, that's where they'd have
their strong point. If they were out to ambush the whole battalion,
they'd leave it bare and set the trap farther on. Either way, they'd
never expected me to go past it without having a look.
Four kilometers past
the Rockpile there was a string of low hills. The road ran through a
valley below them. It was an ideal place for an ambush. That's where
they'll be, I decided. Only they must know we'll expect them to be
along there somewhere. Bait should wiggle, but it shouldn't too
obviously be bait. How would I act if I really had most of a
battalion with me?
Send a strong
advance guard, of course. An advance guard about as strong as the
whole force I've got. Anything less won't make any sense.
"Roszak, start
closing them up. Leave the wagons and half a dozen men with radios
strung out along the line of march, and get everyone else up here.
We'll form up as an advance guard and move south."
"Aye, aye,
sir."
When I had the
troops assembled, I led them up on the Rockpile. Nothing there, of
course. I'd gauged it right. They were waiting for us up ahead.
Roszak nudged me and
turned his head slightly to the right. I nodded, carefully. "Don't
point, Sergeant. I saw something move up there myself."
We had reached the
hills.
"Christ, what
are they waiting for?" Roszak muttered.
"For the rest
of the battalion. They don't want us; they want the whole 501st."
"Yes, sir."
We moved on ahead.
The fog was lifting; visibility was over fifty meters already. It
wouldn't be long before it would be obvious there weren't any troops
following me, despite the loud curses and the squeals of wagon wheels
back there. It's amazing how much noise a couple of wagons can make
if the troops work at it.
To hell with it, I
thought. We've got to find a good position and try to hold it. It'll
do no good to keep walking farther into their trap. There was a rocky
area ahead. It wasn't perfect, but it was the best spot I'd seen in
half an hour. I nudged Roszak. "When we get up to there, start
waving the men off into the rocks. The fog's thicker there."
"What if
there's hostiles there already?" Roszak demanded.
"Then we'll
fight for the ground, but I doubt they'll be there. I expect they've
been moving out of our way as we advance. They still think there's a
column a whole klick long behind us." Sound confident, I told
myself. "We'll take up a defensive perimeter in there and wait
the war out."
"Sure."
Roszak moved to his right and spoke to the next man. The orders were
passed along the line.
Three more minutes,
I told myself. Three minutes and we'll at least have some cover. The
area I'd chosen was a saddle, a low pass between the hills to either
side of us. Not good, but better than the road. I could feel rifles
aimed at me from the rocks above, but I saw nothing but grotesque
shapes, boulders dripping in the fog. We climbed higher, moving
steadily toward the place I'd chosen.
Maybe there's nobody
up there watching at all. They may be on the other side of the
valley. You only saw one man. Maybe not even a man. Just something
moving. A wild animal. A dog. A blowing patch of fog.
Whatever it was, I
can't take this much longer. You don't have to. Another minute. That
boulder up there, the big one. When you reach it, you've finished.
Don't run. Keep it slow -
"All right, you
can fall out and take a break!" I shouted. "Hartz, tell the
column to rest in place. We'll take ten. Companies should close up
and gather in the stragglers. They'll assemble here after the break."
"Zur."
"Better get a
perimeter guard out, Sergeant."
"Sir,"
Roszak called.
"Corporal
Brady, how about a little coffee? You can set up the stove in the lee
of that rock."
"Right,
Lieutenant."
The men vanished
into the fog. There were scrambling noises as they found hiding
places. I moved out of the open and hunkered down in the rocks with
Corporal Brady. "You didn't really have to make coffee," I
said.
"Why not,
Lieutenant? We have a while to wait, don't we?"
"I hope so,
Corporal. I hope so. But that fog's lifting fast."
Ten minutes later we
heard the guns. It was difficult to tell the direction of the sound
in the thick fog, but I thought they were ahead of us, far to the
south. There was no way to estimate the range.
"O'Grady
message from Captain Falkenberg," Hartz said. "Lieutenant
Bonneyman's group is under heavy attack from the south."
"Acknowledge."
From the south. That meant the columns coming north out of Denisburg
had made contact with Louis's ranchers. Falkenberg had guessed that
much right. Maybe this whole screwy plan would work, after all.
"Anything new on Ardwain's situation?"
"No messages,
zur."
I thumbed my command
set to the general frequency. "All units of the 501st, there is
heavy fighting to the south. Assemble immediately. We'll be moving
south to provide fire support. Get those guns rolling right now."
There was a chorus
of radio answers. Only a dozen men, but they sounded like hundreds.
I'd have been convinced it was a battalion combat team. I was
congratulating myself when a shaft of sunlight broke through the mist
and fell on the ground at my feet.
XVIII
ONCE THE SUN had
broken through, the fog lifted fast. In seconds visibility went from
fifty meters to a hundred, then two hundred. In minutes the road for
a kilometer north of us was visible - and empty. One wagon struggled
along it, and far back in the distance a single man carried a radio.
"O'Grady says
hit the dirt!" I yelled. "Hartz, tell Falkenberg the
deception's over."
And still there was
nothing. I took out my glasses and examined the rocks above and
behind us. They were boiling with activity. "Christ," I
said. "Roszak, we've run into the whole Allansport outfit.
Damned near a thousand men! Dig in and get your heads down!"
A mortar shell
exploded on the road below. Then another, and then a salvo. Not bad
shooting, I said to myself. Of course it didn't hit anything, because
there was nothing to hit except the one wagon, but they had it
registered properly. If we'd been down there, we'd have had it.
Rifle bullets zinged
overhead. The Association troops were firing at last. I tried to
imagine the feelings of the enemy commander, and I found myself
laughing. He'd waited patiently all this time for us to walk into his
trap, and all he'd caught was something less than a platoon. He was
going to be mad.
He was also going to
chew up my sixty men, two mortars, and four light machine guns. It
would take him a little time, though. I'd picked a good spot to wait
for him. Now that the fog had cleared, I saw it was a better place
than I'd guessed from the map. We had reasonably clear fields of
fire, and the rocks were large and sturdy. They'd have to come in and
get us. All we had to do was keep our heads down.
No point in
deception anymore. "O'Grady says stay loose and let 'em come to
us."
There was a chorus
of shouted responses. Then Brady's trumpet sounded, beginning with
"On Full Kits" and running through half the calls in the
book before he settled onto the Line Marines' March. A favorite, I
thought. Damned right. Then I heard the whistle of incoming
artillery, and I dove for the tiny shelter between my rocks as
barrage after barrage of heavy artillery dropped onto our position.
Riflemen swarmed
down onto the road behind me. My radiomen and the two wagoneers were
cut down in seconds. At least a company of Association troops started
up the gentle slope toward us.
The Association
commander made his first mistake then. His artillery had been
effective enough for making us keep our heads down, but the rocks
gave us good cover and we weren't taking many casualties. When the
Association charged us, their troops held back until the artillery
fire lifted. It takes experienced non-coms and a lot of discipline to
get troops to take casualties from their own artillery. It pays off,
but our attackers didn't know or believe it.
They were too far
away when the artillery fire lifted. My lads were out of their hiding
places in an instant. They poured fire on the advancing troops -
rifles and the light machine guns, then both mortars. Few of the
enemy had combat armor, and our fire was devastating.
"Good men,"
Hartz grunted. "They keep coming."
They were, but not
for long. Too many of them were cut down. They swept to within fifty
meters, wavered, and dropped back, some dragging their wounded with
them, others running for it. When the attack was broken, we dropped
back into the rocks to wait for the next barrage. "Score one for
the Line Marines," I called.
Brady answered with
the final fanfare from the March. "And there's none that can
face us - "
"They won't try
that again," Roszak said. He grinned with satisfaction. "Lads
are doing right well, Mr. Slater."
"Well, indeed."
Our area was quiet,
but there were sounds of heavy fighting in the south: artillery,
rifle and machine gun fire, mortars and grenades. It sounded louder,
as if it were coming closer to us. Louis and his commando of ranchers
were facing big odds. I wondered if Kathryn were with him.
"They'll try
infiltration next," Roszak predicted.
"What makes you
think so?" Hartz asked.
"No discipline.
After what happened last time, they'll never get a full attack
going."
"No, they will
have one more try in force. Perhaps two," Hartz argued.
"Never. Bet on
it? Tomorrow's wine ration."
"Done,"
Hartz said. He was quiet for a moment, then handed me the handset.
"Captain Falkenberg."
"Thank you.
Yes, Captain?"
"O'Grady says
the O'Grady drill is over. Understood?"
"Yes, sir."
"What's your
situation?"
"We're in the
saddle notch of Hill 239, seven klicks south of Allansport," I
said. "Holding all right for now, but we're surrounded. Most of
the hostiles are between us and Allansport. They let us right through
for the ambush. They've tried one all-out attack and that didn't
work. Roszak and Hartz are arguing over what they'll try next."
"How long can
you hold?"
"Depends on
what losses they're willing to take to get us out of here."
"You don't have
to hold long," Falkenberg said. "A lot has happened.
Ardwain broke through to the Governor and brought him out, but he ran
into a strong force in Allansport. There's more coming over the
bridge from the east side of the river."
"Sounds like
they're bringing up everything they have."
"They are, and
we're beating all of it. The column that moved north from Denisburg
ran into Bonneyman's group. They deployed to break through that, and
we circled around to their west and hit them in the flank. They
didn't expect us. Your maneuver fooled them completely. They thought
the 501st was with you until it was too late. They know better now,
but we've broken them. Of course, there's a lot more of them than of
us, and we couldn't hold them. They've broken through between
Bonneyman and the river, and you're right in their path."
"How truly
good."
"I think you'd
do well to get out of their way," Falkenberg said. "I doubt
you can stop them."
"If they link
up with the Allansport force, they'll get away across the bridge. I
can't hold them, but if you can get some artillery support here, I
can spot for the guns. We might delay them."
"I was going to
suggest that," Falkenberg said, "I've sent Ardwain and the
Governor's escort toward that hill outside Allansport - the Rockpile.
It looks like a dominant position."
"It is, sir.
I've seen it. If we held that, we could keep this lot from getting
into Allansport. We might bag the whole lot."
"Worth a try,
anyway," Falkenberg said. "Provided you can hold on. It
will be nearly an hour before I can get artillery support to you."
"We'll hold,
sir."
"Good luck."
Roszak lost his wine
ration. They tried one more assault. Two squads of Association troops
got within twenty meters of our position before we threw them back.
Of my sixty men, I had fewer than thirty effectives when it was over.
That was their last
try, though. Shortly after, they regrouped. The elements which had
been south of us had already skirted around the hills to join the
main body, and now the whole group was moving north. They were headed
for Allansport.
The sounds of
fighting to the south were coming closer all the time. Falkenberg had
Deane moving parallel to the Association troops, racing to get close
enough to give us support, but it wouldn't arrive in time.
I sent our wounded
up the hill away from the road with orders to dig in and lie low. The
rest of us followed the retreating force. We were now sandwiched
between the group ahead of us and the Denisburg column behind.
The first elements
of Association forces were headed up the Rockpile when Deane came in
range. He was still six kilometers southeast of us, long range and
long time of flight, but we were in a good position to spot for him.
I called in the first salvo on the advancing Association troops. The
shells went beyond their target, and before I could walk them back
down the hill, the Association forces retreated.
"They'll send
another group around behind the hill," Roszak said. "We'll
never stop them."
"No." So
damned near. A few minutes' difference and we'd have bagged them all.
The column Falkenberg was chasing was now no more than two kilometers
south of us and moving fast.
"Hold one,"
Deane said. "I've got a Corporal Dangier calling in. Claims to
be in position to spot targets for me."
"He's one of
the wounded we left behind," I said. "He can see the road
from his position, all right, but he won't last long once they know
we've got a spotter in position to observe them."
"Do I fire the
mission?" Deane demanded.
"Yes."
Scratch Corporal Dangier, who had a girl in Harmony and a wife on
Earth.
"I'll leave one
gun at your disposal," Deane said. "I'm putting the rest on
Dangier's mission."
A few minutes later
we heard the artillery falling on the road behind us. That would play
hell with the Association retreat. It kept up for ten minutes; then
Deane called in again. "Can't raise Dangier any longer."
"No. There's
nothing we can do here. They're staying out of sight. I'll call in
some fire in places that might do some good, but it's shooting
blind."
I amused myself with
that for a while. It was frustrating. Once that force got to the top
of the Rockpile, the route into Allansport would be secure. I was
still cursing when Hartz shouted urgently.
"Centurion
Ardwain on the line, sir."
"Ardwain, where
are you?"
"Less than a
klick west of you, Lieutenant. We moved around the edge of the town.
Can't get inside without support. Militia won't try it, anyway."
"How many
Marines do you have?" I demanded.
"About eighty
effective. And Old Beastly."
"By God!
Ardwain, move in fast. We'll join you as you come by. We're going
right up to the top of the Rockpile and sit there until Falkenberg
gets here. With Deane's artillery support we can hold that hill."
"Aye,
aye, sir. We're coming."
"Let's go!"
I shouted. "Who's been hit and can't run?"
No one answered.
"Sergeant Roszak took one in the leg an hour ago, Lieutenant,"
Hartz said.
"I can still
travel," Roszak said.
"Bullshit.
You'll stay here and spot artillery for us. All the walking wounded
stay with him. The rest of you get moving. We want to be in position
when Centurion Ardwain comes."
"But - "
"Shut up and
soldier, Roszak." I waved and we moved down from our low
hilltop. We were panting when we got to the base of the Rockpile.
There were already Association forces up there. I didn't know how
many. We had to get up there before more joined them. The way up just
ahead of me was clear, because it was in direct view of Roszak and
his artillery spotters. We could use it and they couldn't.
I waved the men
forward. Even a dozen of us on top of the Rockpile might be enough if
Ardwain came up fast. We started up. Two men went down, then another,
and my troops began to look around for shelter. I couldn't blame
them, but I couldn't let them do it. Getting up that hill had become
the only thing in my life. I had to get them moving again.
"Brady!" I
shouted. "Corporal, sound the charge!" The trumpet notes
sang out. A monitor whipped out a banner and waved it above his head.
I shouted "Follow me!" and ran up the hill. Then a mortar
shell exploded two meters away. I had time to see bright red blotches
spurt across my trousers legs and to wonder if that was my own blood;
then I fell. The battle noises dimmed out.
"Lieutenant!
Mr. Slater!"
I was in the bottom
of a well. It was dark down there, and it hurt to look up at the
light. I wanted to sink back into the well, but someone at the top
was shouting at me. "Mr. Slater!"
"He's coming
around, Centurion."
"He's got to,
Crisp! Mr. Slater!"
There were people
all around me. I couldn't see them very clearly, but I could
recognize the voice. "Yes, Centurion."
"Mr. Slater,"
Ardwain said. "The Governor says we shouldn't take the hill!
What do we do, sir?"
It didn't make
sense. Where am I? I wondered. I had just sense enough not to ask.
Everybody asks that, I thought. Why does everybody ask that? But I
don't know -
I was pulled to a
sitting position. My eyes managed to focus again, just for a moment.
I was surrounded by people and rocks. Big rocks. Then I knew where I
was. I'd passed these rocks before. They were at the base of the
hill. Rocks below the Rockpile.
"What's that?
Don't take the hill?" I said.
"Yes, sir - "
"Lieutenant, I
have ordered your men to pull back. There are not enough to take this
hill, and there's no point in wasting them."
That wasn't the
Governor, but I'd heard the voice before. Trevor. Colonel Trevor of
the militia. He'd been with Swale at the staff meeting back at
Beersheba. Bits of the staff meeting came back to me, and I tried to
remember more of them. Then I realized that was silly.
The staff meeting
wasn't important, but I couldn't think. What was important? There was
something I had to do.
Get up the hill. I
had to get up the hill. "Get me on my feet, Centurion."
"Sir - "
"Do it!" I
was screaming. "I'm going up there. We have to take the
Rockpile."
"You heard the
company commander!" Ardwain shouted. "Move out!"
"Slater, you
don't know what you're saying!" Trevor shouted.
I ignored him. "I've
got to see," I said. I tried to get up, but my legs weren't
working. Nothing happened when I tried to move them. "Lift me
where I can see," I said.
"Sir - "
"Crisp, don't
argue with me. Do it."
"You're crazy,
Slater!" Trevor shouted. "Delirious. Sergeant Crisp, put
him down. You'll kill him."
The medics hauled me
to the edge of the boulder patch. Ardwain was leading men up the
hill. Not just Marines, I saw. The militia had followed, as well.
Insane, something whispered in the back of my mind. All insane. It's
a disease, and they've caught it, too. I pushed the thought away.
They were falling,
but they were still moving forward as they fell. I didn't know if
they'd get to the top.
"You wanted to
see!" Trevor shouted. "Now you've seen it! You can't send
them up there. It's suicide, and they won't even listen to me! You've
got to call them back, Slater. Make them retreat."
I looked at the
fallen men. Some were just ahead of me. They hadn't even gotten
twenty meters. There was one body blown in half. Something bright lay
near it. I saw what it was and turned to Trevor.
"Retreat,
Colonel? See that? Our trumpeter was killed sounding the charge. I
don't know how to order a retreat."
XIX
I WAS DEEP in the
well again, and it was dark, and I was afraid. They reached down into
it after me, trying to pull me up, and I wanted to come. I knew I'd
been in there a long time, and I wanted out, because I could hear
Kathryn calling for me. I reached for her hand, but I couldn't find
it. I remember shouting, but I don't know what I said. The nightmare
went on for a long time.
Then it was daytime.
The light was orange-red, very bright, and the walls were splashed
with the orange light. I tried to move my head.
"Doc!"
someone shouted. His voice was very loud.
"Hal?"
"I can't see
you," I said. "Where are you, Kathryn? Where are you?"
"I'm here, Hal.
I'll always be here."
And then it was dark
again, but it wasn't so lonely in there.
I woke up several
times after that. I couldn't talk much, and when I did I don't
suppose I made much sense, but finally things were clear. I was in
the hospital in Garrison, and I'd been there for weeks. I wasn't sure
just how long. Nobody would tell me anything, and they talked in
hushed tones so that I was sure I was dying, but I didn't.
"What the
hell's wrong with me?" I demanded.
"Just take it
easy, young fellow." He had a white coat, thick glasses, and a
brown beard with white hairs in it.
"Who the hell
are you?"
"That's Dr.
Cechi," Kathryn told me.
"Well, why
won't he tell me what's wrong with me?"
"He doesn't
want to worry you."
"Worry me? Do
you think not knowing gives peace of mind? Tell me."
"All right,"
Cechi said. "Nothing permanent. Understand that first. Nothing
permanent, although it's going to take a while to fix you up. We
almost lost you a couple of times, you know. Multiple perforations of
the gut, two broken vertebrae, compound fracture of the left femur,
and assorted scrapes, punctures, bruises, abrasions, and contusions.
Not to mention almost complete exsanguination when they brought you
in. It's nothing we can't fix, but you're going to be here a while,
Captain." He was holding my arm, and I felt pressure there, a
hypo-spray. "You just go to sleep and we'll tell you the rest
tomorrow."
"But - "
Whatever I was going to say never got out. I sank back, but it wasn't
into the well. It was just sleep, and I could tell the difference.
The next time I
awoke, Falkenberg was there. He grinned at me.
I grinned back. "Hi,
Captain."
"Major. You're
the captain."
"Uh? Run that
past - "
"Just brevet
promotions, but Harrington thinks they'll stick."
"We must have
won."
"Oh, yeah."
He sat where I could see him. His eyes looked pale blue in that
light. "Lieutenant Ardwain took the Rockpile, but he said it was
all your doing."
"Lieutenant
Ardwain. Lot of promotions out of this," I said.
"Some. The
Association no longer exists as an organized military force. Your
girl's friends are in control. Wan Loo is the acting president, or
supervisor, or whatever they call him. Governor Swale's not too happy
about it, but officially he has to be. He didn't like endorsing
Harrington's report, either, but he had no choice."
"But he's a
lousy traitor. Why's he still governor?"
"Act your age,
Captain." There wasn't any humor in Falkenberg's voice now. "We
have no proof. I know the story, if you'd like to hear it. In fact,
you'd better. You're popular enough with the Fleet, but there'll be
elements of the Grand Senate that'll hate your guts."
"Tell me."
"Swale has
always been part of the Bronson faction," Falkenberg said. "The
Bronson family is big in Dover Mineral Development Inc. Seems there's
more to this place than either American Express or Kennicott ever
knew. Dover found out and tried to buy mineral rights. The holy Joes
wouldn't sell - especially the farmers like Wan Loo and Seeton. They
don't want industrial development here, and it was obvious to Swale
that they wouldn't sell any mining rights to Dover. Swale's policy
has been to help groups like the Association in return for their
signatures on mining rights contracts. If enough of those outfits are
recognized as legitimate local governments, there won't be any
trouble over the contracts. You can probably figure out the rest."
"Maybe it's my
head," I told him, "but I can't. What the devil did he let
us into the valley for, then? Why did he go down there at all?"
"Just because
they signed over some mining rights didn't make them his slaves. They
were trying to jack up the grain prices. If the Harmony merchants
complained loud enough, Swale wouldn't be governor here, and what use
would he be to Dover then? He had to put some pressure on them -
enough to make them sell, not so much that they'd be thrown out."
"Only we threw
them out," I said.
"Only we threw
them out. This time. Don't imagine that it's over."
"It has to be
over," I said. "He couldn't pull that again."
"Probably he
won't. Bronson hasn't much use for failures. I expect Governor Swale
will shortly be on his way to a post as First Secretary on a mining
asteroid. There'll be another governor, and if he's not a Bronson
client, he'll be someone else's. I'm not supposed to depress you.
You've got a decision to make. I've been assigned to a regular Line
Regiment as adjutant. The 42nd. It's on Kennicott. Tough duty.
Probably a lot of fighting, good opportunities, regular troops. I've
got room on the staff. Want to come along? They tell me you'll be fit
to move by the time the next ship gets here."
"I'll think
about it."
"Do that.
You've got a good career ahead of you. Now you're the youngest
captain in the Fleet. Couldn't swing the Military Star, but you'll
get another medal."
"I'll think
about it. I have to talk with Kathryn - "
He shrugged.
"Certainly, Captain." He grinned and went out.
Captain. Captains
may marry, Majors should marry, Colonels must marry -
But that was soldier
talk, and I wasn't sure I was a soldier. Strange, I thought. Everyone
says I am. I've done well, and I have a great career, and it all
seems like a fit of madness. Corporal Brady won't be playing his
trumpet any longer because of me. Dangier, wounded but alive, until
he volunteered to be an artillery spotter. And all the others, Levine
and Lieberman and recruit - no, Private - Dietz, and the rest, dead
and blended together in my memory until I can't remember where they
died or what for, only that I killed them.
But we won. It was a
glorious victory. That was enough for Falkenberg. He had done his job
and done it well. Was it enough for me? Would it be in the future?
When I was up and
around, I couldn't avoid meeting Governor Swale. Irina was nursing
Louis Bonneyman. Louis was worse off than I was. Sometimes they can
grow you a new leg, but it takes time, and it's painful. Irina saw
him every day, and when I could leave the hospital she insisted that
I come to the palace. It was inevitable that I would meet the
Governor.
"I hope you're
proud of yourself," Swale said. "Everyone else is."
"Hugo, that's
not fair," Irina protested.
"Not fair?"
Swale said. "How isn't it fair?"
"I did the job
I was paid to do, sir," I said.
"Yes. You did,
indeed - and thereby made it impossible for me to do mine. Sit down,
Captain Slater. Your Major Falkenberg has told you plenty of stories
about me. Now let me tell you my side of it."
"There's no
need, Ggovernor," I said.
"No, there
isn't. Are you afraid to find out just what you've done?"
"No. I've
helped throw out a gang of convicts who pretended to be a government.
And I'm proud enough of that."
"Are you? Have
you been to the Allan Valley lately, Captain? Of course you haven't.
And I doubt Kathryn Malcolm has told you what's happening there - how
Wan Loo and Harry Seeton and a religious fanatic named Brother Dornan
have established commissions of deacons to inquire into the morals
and loyalties of everyone in the valley; how anyone they find
deficient is turned off the land to make room for their own people.
No, I don't suppose she told you any of that."
"I don't
believe you."
"Don't you? Ask
Miss Malcolm. Or would you believe Irina? She knows it's true."
I looked to Irina.
The pain in her eyes was enough. She didn't have to speak.
"I was governor
of the whole planet, Slater. Not just Harmony, not just the Jordan
and Allan valleys, but all of the planet. Only they gave me
responsibilities and no authority, and no means to govern. What am I
supposed to do with the convicts, Slater? They ship them here by the
thousands, but they give me nothing to feed them with. You've seen
them. How are they supposed to live?"
"They can work
- "
"At what? As
farmhands on ranches of five hundred hectares? The best land on the
planet, doled out as huge ranches with half the land not worked
because there's no fertilizer, no irrigation, not even decent
drainage systems. They sure as hell can't work in our nonexistent
industries. Don't you see that Arrarat must industrialize? It doesn't
matter what Allan Valley farmers want, or what the other holy Joes
want. It's industrialize or face famine, and, by God, there'll be no
famines while I can do something about them."
"So you were
willing to sell out the 501st. Help the Association defeat us. An
honorable way to achieve an honorable end."
"As honorable
as yours. Yours is to kill and destroy. War is honorable, but deceit
isn't. I prefer my way, Captain."
"I expect you
do."
Swale nodded
vigorously, to himself, not to me. "Smug. Proud and smug. Tell
me, Captain, just how are you better than the Protective Association?
They fought. Not for the honor of the corps, but for their land,
their families, for friends. They lost. You had better men, better
officers, better training. A lot better equipment. If you'd lost,
you'd have been returned to Garrison under terms. The Association
troops were shot out of hand. All of them. Be proud, Slater. But you
make me sick. I'll leave you now. I don't care to argue with my
daughter's guests."
"That's true
also, isn't it?" I asked Irina. "They shot all the
Association troops?"
"Not all,"
Irina said. "The ones that surrendered to Captain Falkenberg are
still alive. He even recruited some of them."
He would. The
battalion would need men after those battles. "What's happened
to the rest?"
"They're under
guard at Beersheba. It was after your Marines left the valley that
the real slaughter began."
"Sure. People
who wouldn't turn out to fight for their homes when we needed their
help got real patriotic after it was over," I said. "I'm
going back to my quarters, Irina. Thank you for having me over."
"But Kathryn is
coming. She'll be here - "
"I don't want
to see anyone just now. Excuse me." I left quickly and wandered
through the streets of Harmony. People nodded and smiled as I passed.
The Marines were still popular. Of course. We'd opened the trade
route up the Jordan, and we'd cleared out the Allan Valley. Grain was
cheap, and we'd held the convicts at bay. Why shouldn't the people
love us?
Tattoo sounded as I
entered the fort. The trumpets and drums sounded through the night,
martial and complex and the notes were sweet. Sentries saluted as I
passed. Life here was orderly and there was no need to think.
Hartz had left a
full bottle of brandy where I could find it. It was his theory that
the reason I wasn't healing fast was that I didn't drink enough. The
surgeons didn't share his opinion. They were chopping away at me,
then using the regeneration stimulators to make me grow better parts.
It was a painful process, and they didn't think liquor helped it
much.
To hell with them, I
thought, and poured a double. I hadn't finished it when Kathryn came
in.
"Irina said -
Hal, you shouldn't be drinking."
"I doubt that
Irina said that."
"You know -
what's the matter with you, Hal?"
"Why didn't you
tell me?" I asked.
"I was going
to. Later. But there never was a right time."
"And it's all
true? Your friends are driving the families of everyone who
cooperated with the Association out into the hills? And they've shot
all the prisoners?"
"It's - yes.
It's true."
"Why didn't you
stop them?"
"Should I have
wanted to?" She looked at the scars on her hands. "Should
I?"
There was a knock at
the door. "Come in," I said.
It was Falkenberg.
"Thought you were alone," he said.
"Come in. I'm
confused."
"I expect you
are. Got any more of that brandy?"
"Sure. What did
you mean by that?"
"I understand
you've just learned what's happening out in the Allan Valley."
"Crapdoodle!
Has Irina been talking to everyone in Garrison? I don't need a
convention of people to cheer me up."
"You don't eh?"
He made no move to leave. "Spit it out, Mister."
"You don't call
Captains 'Mister.' "
He grinned. "No.
Sorry. What's the problem, Hal? Finding out that things aren't as
simple as you'd like them to be?"
"John, what the
hell were we fighting for out there? What good do we do?"
He stretched a long
arm toward the brandy bottle and poured for both of us. "We
threw a gang of criminals out. Do you doubt that's what they were? Do
you insist that the people we helped be saints?"
"But the women.
And children. What will happen to them? And the Governor's right -
something's got to be done for the convicts. Poor bastards are sent
here, and we can't just drown them."
"There's land
to the west," Kathryn said. "They can have that. My
grandfather had to start from the beginning. Why can't the new
arrivals?"
"The Governor's
right about a lot of things," Falkenberg said. "Industry's
got to come to Arrarat someday. Should it come just to make the
Bronson family rich? At the expense of a bunch of farmers who bought
their land with one hell of a lot of hard work and blood? Hal, if
you're having second thoughts about the action here on Arrarat,
what'll you do when the Fleet's ordered to do something completely
raw?"
"I don't know.
That's what bothers me."
"You asked what
good we do," Falkenberg said. "We buy time. Back on Earth
they're ready to start a war that won't end until billions are dead.
The Fleet's the only thing preventing that. The only thing, Hal. Be
as cynical about the CoDominium as you like. Be contemptuous of Grand
Senator Bronson and his friends - yes, and most of his enemies, too,
damn it. But remember that the Fleet keeps the peace, and as long as
we do, Earth still lives. If the price of that is getting our hands
dirty out here on the frontiers, then it's a price we have to pay.
And while we're paying it, just once in a while we do something
right. I think we did that here. For all that they've been vicious
enough now that the battle's over, Wan Loo and his people aren't
evil. I'd rather trust the future to them than to people who'd do ...
that." He took Kathryn's hand and turned it over in his. "We
can't make things perfect, Hal. But we can damned sure end some of
the worst things people do to each other. If that's not enough, we
have our own honor, even if our masters have none. The Fleet is our
country, Hal, and it's an honorable fatherland." Then he laughed
and drained his glass. "Talking's dry work. Pipe Major's learned
three new tunes. Come and hear them. You deserve a night in the club,
and the drinks are on the battalion. You've friends here, and you've
not seen much of them."
He stood, the half
smile still on his lips. "Good evening, Hal. Kathryn."
"You're going
with him, aren't you?" Kathryn said when he'd closed the door.
"You know I
don't care all that much for bagpipes - "
"Don't be
flippant with me. He's offered you a place with his new regiment, and
you're going to take it."
"I don't know.
I've been thinking about it - "
"I know. I
didn't before, but I do now. I watched you while he was talking.
You're going."
"I guess I am.
Will you come with me?"
"If you'll have
me, yes. I can't go back to the ranch. I'll have to sell it. I
couldn't ever live there now. I'm not the same girl I was when this
started."
"I'll always
have doubts," I said. "I'll need - " I couldn't finish
the thought, but I didn't have to. She came to me, and she wasn't
trembling at all, not the way she'd been before, anyway. I held her
for a long time.
"We should go
now," she said finally. "They'll be expecting you."
"But - "
"We've plenty
of time, Hal. A long time."
As we left the room,
Last Post sounded across the fort.
PART TWO - MERCENARY
FROM THE LAST West
Point lecture by Professor John Christian Falkenberg, II, delivered
at the United States Military Academy immediately prior to the
reorganization of the Academy. After the Academy was restructured to
reflect rising nationalism in the United States, Falkenberg as a
CoDominium Professor was unwelcome in any event; but the content of
this lecture would have assured that anyway. Crofton's Essays and
Lectures in Military History, 2nd Edition.
"All large and
important institutions change slowly. It is probably as well that
this is true for the military; but well or not, it is inevitable. It
takes time to build history and traditions, and military
organizations with no history and traditions are generally
ineffective.
"There are of
course notable exceptions to this rule, although some of the more
popular cases do not bear examination. For example, Colonel Michael
Hoare's Fifth Commando in Katanga in the 1960s, while rightly studied
as a harbinger of the growth of mercenary organizations in this
century, owed much of its justly celebrated success to the
incompetence - including frequent drunkenness - of its opposition.
Moreover, Hoare, by recruiting most of his officers and non-coms, and
many of his troopers, from British veterans, was able to draw on the
long history and tradition of the British Army.
"I dare say
something of this sort will happen in the future, as many CoDominium
military units are disbanded. It is conceivable that entire units
will be hired on by one or another patron. Certainly a small cohesive
unit accustomed to working together would be preferable to a larger
group of mercenaries.
"The building
of the CoDominium military forces is itself an illustrative case;
once again, by incorporating disbanded units such as the French
L'egion E'trangère, [['denotes accent mark]] the Cameron
Highlanders, and the Cossack Adventurers, was able to appropriate to
itself considerable history and tradition. Even so, it has taken
decades to build the CoDominium Line Marines into the formidable
force they have become.
"However, I
bring up the subject of changing institutions for another reason. We
are seeing, I believe, the completion of yet another full cycle in
the history of violence and civilization. As late as the turn of the
Millennium, most military organizations were motivated by national
patriotism, and the 'Laws of War' were treated either as a joke, as
unwanted restrictions on military action, or, as in the case of the
infamous 'War Crimes' trials following World War II, as a means of
retaliation against a defeated enemy.
"Then, during
the course of this century, the Laws of War have become quite
important, and have often been observed; and where they are not
observed there is a good chance that the CoDominium Fleet will punish
those who violate them - particularly if the violation involves
CoDominium citizens, and inevitably if it involves a member of the
Fleet.
"Now I believe
we are entering a new period; one in which the nationalist forces
will pursue a new policy of expediency, while the CoDominium and
mercenary units continue to observe and insist on the Laws of War.
Now it would appear that the outcome of such a conflict is
predictable: that the organizations which recognize no limitations
save expediency will always triumph over those which restrict their
uses of military power. This is impossible. I do not believe it will
be inevitable.
However, many do
believe that the Laws of War will go the way of the Rights of
Neutrals in the last century.
After all, the
United States, having entered World War I ostensibly to protect the
rights of neutral vessels on the high seas, within days of entering
World War II declared unrestricted submarine warfare against Germany
and Japan; while the Allied powers, having denounced Japanese actions
against Nanking in the 1930s, had no scruples about bombing civilians
and open cities as the war progressed, culminating in Hiroshima,
Nagasaki, and the fire raids against Tokyo.
"By the end of
World War II, few observed any limits on the use of military power.
Allied units regularly took civilian hostages and exposed civilian
officials to danger as a means of discouraging partisan activity.
Most of these actions had been taken by the German Army and of course
had been denounced at the time.
"That expedient
view became so widespread that for decades no one could conceive of
another.
"However, it
has not always been thus. Prior to the present era there were at
least three periods in which war became stylized and subject to
rules. These eras have been described well enough by Martin Van
Creveld in his definitive Technology and War.
"The first such
era was the Hellenistic period from about 300 to 200 B.C. During that
time there were essentially no differences among the successor
states. Each was ruled by despotism built around a dynasty and
generally ruled by a single man. The ordinary citizen had no stake in
this government, and cared not a whit whether this man or that held
the throne. The military units were composed of professionals who had
no personal stake in the outcome of a campaign. As Creveld says:
" 'Accordingly,
there applied among those states a fairly strict code which dictated
what was and was not permissible in regard to the treatment of
prisoners, the enslavement of captured cities, the robbery for
military purposes of temples dedicated to the gods (this was
legitimate provided that restitution was subsequently made, or at any
rate promised), and so on.
" 'The
application of rules to warfare was, however, extended further than
this. While it would be imprecise to say that there existed an
explicit international agreement concerning the types of military
technology that might or might not be used, the various contestants
shared a common material civilization and knew what to expect of each
other. Since they fielded much the same weapons and equipment, but
also because commanders and technical experts frequently transferred
from one army to another, they found themselves operating on broadly
similar tactical and strategic codes . . .'
"The second
period of warfare treated as a game with rules was, of course, the
period of feudal chivalry, and probably quite enough has been said
about it in previous lectures. For the third, I quote again from
Creveld: " 'The play-element often present in armed conflict
was, however, probably never as pronounced as in the eighteenth
century, when war became popularly known as the game of kings. It was
an age in which, according to Voltaire, all Europeans lived under the
same kind of institutions, believed in the same kind of ideas, and
fornicated with the same kind of women. Most states were ruled by
absolute monarchs. Even those who were not so ruled neither expected
nor demanded the lump-in-the-throat type of allegiance later to be
associated with the nationalist states. Armies were commanded by
members of an international nobility who spoke French as their lingua
franca and switched sides as they saw fit. There were manned by
personnel who, often enlisted by trickery and kept in the ranks by
main force, cared nothing for honor, duty, or country ..."
" 'In each of
the three above periods, as well as in many others which witnessed
the same phenomenon, the transformation of war into something akin to
a game did not pass without comment. What some people took as a sign
of piety or reason or progress, other saw as proof of stupidity,
effeminacy, and degeneration. During the last years before the French
Revolution, Gibbons praised war for its moderation and expressed the
hope that it would soon disappear altogether. Simultaneously, a
French nobleman, the Comte de Guibet, was cutting a figure among the
ladies of the salons by denouncing the prevailing military practices
as degenerate and calling for a commander and a people who, to use
his own words, would tear apart the feeble constitution of Europe
like the north wind bending the reeds . . .'
"Gentlemen and
ladies, I invite you to reflect on this. We live in a time when the
major powers of the Earth are governed by what can only be called
self perpetuating oligarchies. While there is more ostensible
turnover in the compositions of the Congress of the United States and
the Supreme Soviet than there was in the last decade of the twentieth
century, there is not a lot more, and what turnover there is happens
to be meaningless; the new master is indistinguishable from the old.
"Nor is it
important that these oligarchs think themselves important doing
important work - indeed that they are important and do important
work. The effect has been to alienate the Citizen entirely; while the
taxpayer supports the present system only because he fears the loss
of his privileges - because he fears he will be cast into the lot of
the Citizen. The same is true in the Soviet system, where Party
Members have long ago lost confidence in the possibility of reform,
and now do no more than jealously hold onto their privileges.
"Yet - while it
is easy to denounce the CoDominium and its endless cynicism, it is
not so certain that whatever replaces it will be better. Indeed, we
must wonder just what would survive the collapse of the CoDominium
..."
Twenty years later
...
EARTH FLOATED
ETERNALLY lovely above bleak lunar mountains. Daylight lay across
California and most of the Pacific, and the glowing ocean made an
impossibly blue backgound for a vortex of bright clouds swirling in a
massive tropical storm. Beyond the lunar crags, man's home was a
fragile ball amidst the black star-studded velvet of space; a ball
that a man might reach out to grasp and crush in his bare hands.
Grand Admiral Sergei
Lermontov looked at the bright viewscreen image and thought how easy
it would be for Earth to die. He kept her image on the viewscreen to
remind himself of that every time he looked up.
"That's all we
can get you, Sergei." His visitor sat with hands carefully
folded in his lap. A photograph would have shown him in a relaxed
position, seated comfortably in the big visitor's chair covered with
leathers from animals that grew on planets a hundred light years from
Earth. Seen closer, the real man was not relaxed at all. He looked
that way from his long experience as a politician.
"I wish it
could be more." Grand Senator Martin Grant shook his head slowly
from side to side. "At least it's something."
"We will lose
ships and disband regiments. I cannot operate the Fleet on that
budget." Lermontov's voice was flat and precise. He adjusted his
rimless spectacles to a comfortable position on his thin nose. His
gestures, like his voice, were precise and correct, and it was said
in Navy wardrooms that the Grand Admiral practiced in front of a
mirror.
"You'll have to
do the best you can. It's not even certain the United Party can
survive the next election. God knows we won't be able to if we give
any more to the Fleet." "But there is enough money for
national armies." Lermontov looked significantly at Earth's
image on the viewscreen. "Armies that can destroy earth. Martin,
how can we keep the peace if you will not let us have ships and men?"
"You can't keep
the peace if there's no CoDominium." Lermontov frowned. "Is
there a real chance that the United Party will lose, then?"
Martin Grant's head
bobbed in an almost imperceptible movement. "Yes."
"And the United
States will withdraw from the CD." Lermontov thought of all that
would mean, for Earth and for the nearly hundred worlds where men
lived. "Not many of the colonies will survive without us. It is
too soon. If we did not suppress science and research it might be
different, but there are so few independent worlds - Martin, we are
spread thin across the colony worlds. The CoDominium must help them.
We created their problems with our colonial governments. We gave them
no chances at all to live without us. We cannot let them go
suddenly." Grant sat motionless, saying nothing. "Yes, I am
preaching to the converted. But it is the Navy that gave the Grand
Senate this power over the colonies. I cannot help feeling
responsible."
Senator Grant's head
moved slightly again, either a nod or a tremor. "I would have
thought there was a lot you could do, Sergei. The Fleet obeys you,
not the Senate. I know my nephew has made that clear enough. The
warriors respect another warrior, but they've only contempt for us
politicians." "You are inviting treason?"
"No. Certainly
I'm not suggesting that the Fleet try running the show. Military rule
hasn't worked very well for us, has it?" Senator Grant turned
his head slightly to indicate the globe behind him. Twenty nations on
Earth were governed by armies, none of them very well.
On the other hand,
the politicians aren't doing a much better job, he thought. Nobody
is. "We don't seem to have any goals, Sergei. We just hang on,
hoping that things will get better. Why should they?"
"I have almost
ceased to hope for better conditions," Lermontov replied. "Now
I only pray they do not get worse." His lips twitched slightly
in a thin smile. "Those prayers are seldom answered."
"I spoke with
my brother yesterday," Grant said. "He's threatening to
retire again. I think he means it this time."
"But he cannot
do that!" Lermontov shuddered. "Your brother is one of the
few men in the U.S. government who understands how desperate is our
need for time."
"I told him
that."
"And?"
Grant shook his
head. "It's the rat race, Sergei. John doesn't see any end to
it. It's all very well to play rear guard, but for what?"
"Isn't the
survival of civilization a worthwhile goal?"
"If that's
where we're headed, yes. But what assurance do we have that we'll
achieve even that?"
The Grand Admiral's
smile was wintry. "None, of course. But we may be sure that
nothing will survive if we do not have more time. A few years of
peace, Martin. Much can happen in a few years. And if nothing does -
why, we will have had a few years."
The wall behind
Lermontov was covered with banners and plaques. Centered among them
was the CoDominium Seal: American eagle, Soviet sickle and hammer,
red stars and white stars. Beneath it was the Navy's official motto:
PEACE IS OUR PROFESSION.
We chose that motto
for them, Grant thought. The Senate made the Navy adopt it. Except
for Lermontov I wonder how many Fleet officers believe it? What would
they have chosen if left to themselves?
There are always the
warriors, and if you don't give them something worthwhile to fight
for. . . . But we can't live without them, because there comes a time
when you have to have warriors. Like Sergei Lermontov.
But do we have to
have politicians like me? "I'll talk to John again. I've never
been sure how serious he is about retiring anyway. You get used to
power, and it's hard to lay it down. It only takes a little
persuasion, some argument to let you justify keeping it. Power's more
addicting than opiates."
"But you can do
nothing about our budget."
"No. Fact is,
there's more problems. We need Bronson's votes, and he's got
demands."
Lermontov's eyes
narrowed, and his voice was thick with distaste. "At least we
know how to deal with men like Bronson." And it was strange,
Lermontov thought, that despicable creatures like Bronson should be
so small as problems. They could be bribed. They expected to be
bought.
It was the men of
honor who created the real problems. Men like Harmon in the United
States and Kaslov in the Soviet Union, men with causes they would die
for - they had brought mankind to this.
But I would rather
know Kaslov and Harmon and their friends than Bronson's people who
support us.
"You won't like
some of what he's asked for," Grant said. "Isn't Colonel
Falkenberg a special favorite of yours?"
"He is one of
our best men. I use him when the situation seems desperate. His men
will follow him anywhere, and he does not waste lives in achieving
our objectives."
"He's
apparently stepped on Bronson's toes once too often. They want him
cashiered."
"No."
Lermontov's voice was firm.
Martin Grant shook
his head. Suddenly he felt very tired, despite the low gravity of the
moon. "There's no choice, Sergei. It's not just personal
dislike, although there's a lot of that too. Bronson's making up to
Harmon, and Harmon thinks Falkenberg's dangerous."
"Of course he
is dangerous. He is a warrior. But he is a danger only to enemies of
the CoDominium. ..."
"Precisely."
Grant sighed again. "Sergei, I know. We're robbing you of your
best tools and then expecting you to do the work without them."
"It is more
than that, Martin. How do you control warriors?"
"I beg your
pardon?"
"I asked, 'How
do you control warriors?' "Lermontov adjusted his spectacles
with the tips of the fingers of both hands. "By earning their
respect, of course. But what happens if that respect is forfeit?
There will be no controlling him; and you are speaking of one of the
best military minds alive. You may live to regret this decision,
Martin."
"Can't be
helped. Sergei, do you think I like telling you to dump a good man
for a snake like Bronson? But it doesn't matter. The Patriot Party's
ready to make a big thing out of this, and Falkenberg couldn't
survive that kind of political pressure anyway, you know that. No
officer can. His career's finished no matter what."
"You have
always supported him in the past."
"Goddamn it,
Sergei, I appointed him to the Academy in the first place. I cannot
support him, and you can't either. He goes, or we lose Bronson's vote
on the budget."
"But why?"
Lermontov demanded. "The real reason."
Grant shrugged.
"Bronson's or Harmon's? Bronson has hated Colonel Falkenberg
ever since that business on Kennicott. The Bronson family lost a lot
of money there, and it didn't help that Bronson had to vote in favor
of giving Falkenberg his medals either. I doubt there's any more to
it than that.
"Harmon's a
different matter. He really believes that Falkenberg might lead his
troops against Earth. And once he asks for Falkenberg's scalp as a
favor from Bronson - "
"I see. But
Harmon's reasons are ludicrous. At least at the moment they are
ludicrous - "
"If he's that
damned dangerous, kill him," Grant said. He saw the look on
Lermontov's face. "I don't really mean that, Sergei, but you'll
have to do something."
"I will."
"Harmon thinks
you might order Falkenberg to march on Earth."
Lermontov looked up
in surprise.
"Yes. It's come
to that. Not even Bronson's ready to ask for your scalp. Yet. But
it's another reason why your special favorites have to take a low
profile right now."
"You speak of
our best men."
Grant's look was
full of pain and sadness. "Sure. Anyone who's effective scares
hell out of the Patriots. They want the CD eliminated entirely, and
if they can't get that, they'll weaken it. They'll keep chewing away,
too, getting rid of our most competent officers, and there's not a
lot we can do. Maybe in a few years things will be better."
"And perhaps
they will be worse," Lermontov said.
"Yeah. There's
always that, too."
Sergei Lermontov
stared at the viewscreen long after Grand Senator Grant had left the
office. Darkness crept slowly across the Pacific, leaving Hawaii in
shadow, and still Lermontov sat without moving, his fingers drumming
restlessly on the polished wood desktop.
I knew it would come
to this, he thought. Not so soon, though, not so soon. There is still
so much to do before we can let go.
And yet it will not
be long before we have no choice. Perhaps we should act now.
Lermontov recalled
his youth in Moscow, when the Generals controlled the Presidium, and
shuddered. No, he thought. The military virtues are useless for
governing civilians. But the politicians are doing no better.
If we had not
suppressed scientific research. But that was done in the name of the
peace. Prevent development of new weapons. Keep control of technology
in the hands of the government, prevent technology from dictating
policy to all of us; it had seemed so reasonable, and besides, the
policy was very old now. There were few trained scientists, because
no one wanted to live under the restrictions of the Bureau of
Technology.
What is done is
done, he thought, and looked around the office. Open cabinets held
shelves covered with the mementos of a dozen worlds. Exotic shells
lay next to reptilian stuffed figures and were framed by gleaming
rocks that could bring fabulous prices if he cared to sell.
Impulsively he
reached toward the desk console and turned the selector switch.
Images flashed across the viewscreen until he saw a column of men
marching through a great open bubble of rock. They seemed dwarfed by
the enormous cave.
A detachment of
CoDominium Marines marching through the central area of Luna Base.
Senate chamber and government offices were far below the cavern,
buried so deeply into rock that no weapon could destroy the
CoDominium's leaders by surprise. Above them were the warriors who
guarded, and this group was marching to relieve the guard.
Lermontov turned the
sound pickup but heard no more than the precise measured tramp of
marching boots. They walked carefully in low gravity, their pace
modified to accommodate their low weight; and they would, he knew, be
just as precise on a high-gravity world.
They wore uniforms
of blue and scarlet, with gleaming buttons of gold, badges of the
dark rich bronze alloys found on Kennicott, berets made from some
reptile that swam in Tanith's seas. Like the Grand Admiral's office,
the CoDominium Marines showed the influence of worlds light years
away.
"Sound off!"
The order came
through the pickup so loud that it startled the Admiral, and he
turned down the volume as the men began to sing.
Lermontov smiled to
himself. That song was officially forbidden, and it was certainly not
an appropriate choice for the guard mount about to take posts outside
the Grand Senate chambers. It was also very nearly the official
marching song of the Marines. And that, Admiral Lermontov thought,
ought to tell something to any Senator listening.
If Senators ever
listened to anything from the military people.
The measured verses
came through, slowly, in time with the sinister gliding step of the
troops.
"We've left
blood in the dirt of twenty-five worlds, we've built roads on a dozen
more, and all that we have at the end our hitch, buys a night with a
second-class whore.
"The Senate
decrees, the Grand Admiral calls, the orders come down from on high,
It's 'On Full Kits'
and sound 'Board Ships,' We're sending you where you can die.
"The lands that
we take, the Senate gives back, rather more often than not, so the
more that are killed, the less share the loot, and we won't be back
to this spot.
"We'll break
the hearts of your women and girls, we may break your arse as well,
Then the Line Marines with their banners unfurled, will follow those
banners to Hell.
"We know the
devil, his pomps and his works, Ah yes! we know them well!
When we've served
out our hitch as Line Marines, we can bugger the Senate of Hell!
"Then we'll
drink with our comrades and lay down our packs, we'll rest ten years
on the flat of our backs, then it's 'On Full Kits' and 'Out of Your
Racks,' you must build a new road through Hell!
"The Fleet is
our country, we sleep with a rifle, no one ever begot a son on his
rifle, they pay us in gin and curse when we sin, there's not one that
can stand us unless we're down wind, we're shot when we lose and
turned out when we win, but we bury our comrades wherever they fall,
and there's none that can face us though we've nothing at all."
The verse ended with
a flurry of drums, and Lermontov gently changed the selector back to
the turning Earth.
Perhaps, he thought.
Perhaps there's hope, but only if we have time.
Can the politicians
buy enough time?
II
THE HONORABLE JOHN
Rogers Grant laid a palm across a winking light on his desk console
and it went out, shutting off the security phone to Luna Base. His
face held an expression of pleasure and distaste, as it always did
when he was through talking with his brother.
I don't think I've
ever won an argument with Martin, he thought. Maybe it's because he
knows me better than I know myself.
Grant turned toward
the Tri-V, where the speaker was in full form. The speech had begun
quietly as Harmon's speeches always did, full of resonant tones and
appeals to reason. The quiet voice had asked for attention, but now
it had grown louder and demanded it.
The background
behind him changed as well, so that Harmon stood before the stars and
stripes covering the hemisphere, with an American eagle splendid over
the Capitol. Harmon was working himself into one of his famous
frenzies, and his face was contorted with emotion.
"Honor? It is a
word that Lipscomb no longer understands! Whatever he might have been
- and my friends, we all know how great he once was - he is no longer
one of us! His cronies, the dark little men who whisper to him, have
corrupted even as great a man as President Lipscomb!
"And our nation
bleeds! She bleeds from a thousand wounds! People of America, hear
me! She bleeds from the running sores of these men and their
CoDominium!
"They say that
if we leave the CoDominium it will mean war. I pray God it will not,
but if it does, why these are hard times. Many of us will be killed,
but we would die as men! Today our friends and allies, the people of
Hungary, the people of Rumania, the Czechs, the Slovaks, the Poles,
all of them groan under the oppression of their Communist masters.
Who keeps them there? We do! Our CoDominium!
"We have become
no more than slavemasters. Better to die as men.
"But it will
not come to that. The Russians will never fight. They are soft, as
soft as we, their government is riddled with the same corruptions as
ours. People of America, hear me! People of America, listen!"
Grant spoke softly
and the Tri-V turned itself off. A walnut panel slid over the
darkened screen, and Grant spoke again.
The desk opened to
offer a smal bottle of milk. There was nothing he could do for his
ulcer despite the advances in medical science. Money was no problem,
but there was never time for surgery and weeks with the regeneration
stimulators.
He leafed through
papers on his desk. Most were reports with bright red security
covers, and Grant closed his eyes for a moment. Harmon's speech was
important and would probably affect the upcoming elections. The man
is getting to be a nuisance, Grant thought.
I should do
something about him.
He put the thought
aside with a shudder. Harmon had been a friend, once. Lord, what have
we come to? He opened the first report.
There had been a
riot at the International Federation of Labor convention. Three
killed and the smooth plans for the reelection of Matt Brady thrown
into confusion. Grant grimaced again and drank more milk. The
Intelligence people had assured him this one would be easy.
He dug through the
reports and found that three of Harvey Bertram's child crusaders were
responsible.
They'd bugged
Brady's suite. The idiot hadn't known better than to make deals in
his room. Now Bertram's people had enough evidence of sellouts to
inflame floor sentiment in a dozen conventions.
The report ended
with a recommendation that the government drop Brady and concentrate
support on MacKnight, who had a good reputation and whose file in the
CIA building bulged with information. MacKnight would be easy to
control. Grant nodded to himself and scrawled his signature on the
action form.
He threw it into the
"Top Secret: Out" tray and watched it vanish. There was no
point in wasting time. Then he wondered idly what would happen to
Brady. Matt Brady had been a good United Party man; blast Bertram's
people anyway.
He took up the next
file, but before he could open it his secretary came in. Grant looked
up and smiled, glad of his decision to ignore the electronics. Some
executives never saw their secretaries for weeks at a time.
"Your
appointment, sir," she said. "And it's time for your nerve
tonic."
He grunted. "I'd
rather die." But he let her pour a shot glass of evil-tasting
stuff, and he tossed it off and chased it with milk. Then he glanced
at his watch, but that wasn't necessary. Miss Ackridge knew the
travel time to every Washington office. There'd be no time to start
another report, which suited Grant fine.
He let her help him
into his black coat and brush off a few silver hairs. He didn't feel
sixty-five, but he looked it now. It happened all at once. Five years
ago he could pass for forty. John saw the girl in the mirror behind
him and knew that she loved him, but it wouldn't work.
And why the hell
not? he wondered. It isn't as if you're pining away for Priscilla. By
the time she died you were praying it would happen, and we married
late to begin with. So why the hell do you act as if the great love
of your life has gone out forever? All you'd have to do is turn
around, say five words, and - and what? She wouldn't be the perfect
secretary any longer, and secretaries are harder to find than
mistresses. Let it alone.
She stood there a
moment longer, then moved away. "Your daughter wants to see you
this evening," she told him. "She's driving down this
afternoon and says it's important."
"Know why?"
Grant asked. Ackridge knew more about Sharon than Grant did. Possibly
a lot more.
"I can guess. I
think her young man has asked her."
John nodded. It
wasn't unexpected, but still it hurt. So soon, so soon. They grow so
fast when you're an old man. John Jr. was a commander in the
CoDominium Navy, soon to be a captain with a ship of his own.
Frederick was dead in the same accident as his mother. And now
Sharon, the baby, had found another life . . . not that they'd been
close since he'd taken this job.
"Run his name
through CIA, Flora, I meant to do that months ago. They won't find
anything, but we'll need it for the records."
"Yes, sir.
You'd better be on your way now. Your drivers are outside."
He scooped up his
briefcase. "I won't be back tonight. Have my car sent around to
the White House, will you? I'll drive myself home tonight."
He acknowledged the
salutes of the driver and armed mechanic with a cheery wave and
followed them to the elevator at the end of the long corridor.
Paintings and photographs of ancient battles hung along both sides of
the hall, and there was carpet on the floor, but otherwise it was
like a cave. Blasted Pentagon, he thought for the hundredth time.
Silliest building ever constructed. Nobody can find anything, and it
can't be guarded at any price. Why couldn't someone have bombed it?
They took a surface
car to the White House. A flight would have been another detail to
worry about, and besides, this way he got to see the cherry trees and
flower beds around the Jefferson. The Potomac was a sludgy brown
mess. You could swim in it if you had a strong stomach, but the Army
Engineers had "improved" it a few administrations back.
They'd given it concrete banks. Now they were ripping them out, and
it brought down mudslides.
They drove through
rows of government buildings, some abandoned. Urban renewal had given
Washington all the office space the Government would ever need, and
more, so that there were these empty buildings as relics of the time
when D.C. was the most crime-ridden city in the world. Sometime in
Grant's youth, though, they'd hustled everyone out of Washington who
didn't work there, with bulldozers quickly following to demolish the
tenements. For political reasons the offices had gone in as quickly
as the other buildings were torn down.
They passed the
Population Control Bureau and drove around the Elipse and past Old
State to the gate. The guard carefully checked his identity and made
him put his palm on the little scanning plate. Then they entered the
tunnel to the White House basement.
The President stood
when Grant entered the Oval Office, and the others shot to their feet
as if they had ejection charges under them. Grant shook hands around
but looked closely at Lipscomb. The President was feeling the strain,
no question about it. Well, they all were.
The Secretary of
Defense wasn't there, but then he never was. The Secretary was a
political hack who controlled a bloc of Aerospace Guild votes and an
even larger bloc of aerospace industry stocks. As long as government
contracts kept his companies busy employing his men, he didn't give a
danm about policy. He could sit in on formal Cabinet sessions where
nothing was ever said, and no one would know the difference. John
Grant was Defense as much as he was CIA.
Few of the men in
the Oval Office were well known to the public. Except for the
President any one of them could have walked the streets of any city
except Washington without fear of recognition. But the power they
controlled, as assistants and deputies, was immense, and they all
knew it. There was no need to pretend here.
The servitor brought
drinks and Grant accepted Scotch. Some of the others didn't trust a
man who wouldn't drink with them. His ulcer would give him hell, and
his , doctor more, but doctors and ulcers didn't understand - the
realities of power. Neither, thought Grant, do I or any of us, but
we've got it.
"Mr. Karins,
would you begin?" the President asked. Heads swiveled to the
west wall where Karins stood at the briefing screen. To his right a
polar projection of Earth glowed with lights showing the status of
the forces that the President ordered, but Grant controlled.
Karins stood
confidently, his paunch spilling out over his belt. The fat was an
obscenity in so young a man. Herman Karins was the second youngest
man in the room, Assistant Director of the Office of Management and
Budget, and said to be one of the most brilliant economists Yale had
ever produced. He was also the best political technician in the
country, but he hadn't learned that at Yale.
He activated the
screen to show a set of figures. "I have the latest poll
results," Karins said too loudly. "This is the real stuff,
not the slop we give the press. It stinks."
Grant nodded. It
certainly did. The Unity Party was hovering around thirty-eight
percent, just about evenly divided between the Republican and
Democratic wings. Harmon's Patriot Party had just over twenty-five.
Millington's violently left wing Liberation Party had its usual ten,
but the real shocker was Bertram's Freedom Party. Bertram's
popularity stood at an unbelievable twenty percent of the population.
"These are
figures for those who have an opinion and might vote," Karins
said. "Of course there's the usual gang that doesn't give a
damn, but we know how they split off. They go to whomever got to 'em
last anyway. You see the bad news."
"You're sure of
this?" the Assistant Postmaster General asked. He was the leader
of the Republican wing of Unity, and it hadn't been six months since
he had told them they could forget Bertram.
"Yes, sir,"
Karins said. "And it's growing. Those riots at the labor
convention probably gave 'em another five points we don't show. Give
Bertram six months and he'll be ahead of us. How you like them
apples, boys and girls?"
"There is no
need to be flippant, Mr. Karins," the President said.
"Sorry, Mr.
President." Karins wasn't sorry at all and he grinned at the
Assistant Postmaster General with triumph. Then he flipped the
switches to show new charts.
"Soft and
hard," Karins said. "You'll notice Bertram's vote is pretty
soft, but solidifying. Harmon's is so hard you couldn't get 'em away
from him without you use nukes. And ours is a little like butter. Mr.
President, I can't even guarantee we'll be the largest party after
the election, much less that we can hold a majority."
"Incredible,"
the Chairman of the Joint Chiefs muttered.
"Worse than
incredible." The Commerce rep shook her head in disbelief. "A
disaster. Who will win?"
Karins shrugged.
"Toss-up, but if I had to say, I'd pick Bertram. He's getting
more of our vote than Harmon."
"You've been
quiet, John," the President said. "What are your thoughts
here?"
"Well, sir,
it's fairly obvious what the result will be no matter who wins as
long as it isn't us." Grant lifted his Scotch and sipped with
relish. He decided to have another and to hell with the ulcer. "If
Harmon wins, he pulls out of the CoDominium, and we have war. If
Bertram takes over, he relaxes security, Harmon drives him out with
his storm troopers, and we have war anyway."
Karins nodded. "I
don't figure Bertram could hold power more'n a year, probably not
that long. Man's too honest."
The President sighed
loudly. "I can recall a time when men said that about me, Mr.
Karins."
"It's still
true, Mr. President." Karins spoke hurriedly. "But you're
realistic enough to let us do what we have to do. Bertram wouldn't."
"So what do we
do about it?" the President asked gently.
"Rig the
election," Karins answered quickly. "I give out the
popularity figures here." He produced a chart indicating a
majority popularity for Unity. "Then we keep pumping out more
faked stuff while Mr. Grant's people work on the vote-counting
computers. Hell, it's been done before."
"Won't work
this time." They turned to look at the youngest man in the room.
Larry Moriarty, assistant to the President, and sometimes called the
"resident heretic," blushed at the attention. "The
people know better. Bertram's people are already taking jobs in the
computer centers, aren't they, Mr. Grant? They'll see it in a
minute."
Grant nodded. He'd
sent the report over the day before; interesting that Moriarty had
already digested it.
"You make this
a straight rigged election, and you'll have to use CoDominium Marines
to keep order," Moriarty continued.
"The day I need
CoDominium Marines to put down riots in the United States is the day
I resign," the President said coldly. "I may be a realist,
but there are limits to what I will do. You'll need a new chief,
gentlemen."
"That's easy to
say, Mr. President," Grant said. He wanted his pipe, but the
doctors had forbidden it. To hell with them, he thought, and took a
cigarette from a pack on the table. "It's easy to say, but you
can't do it."
The President
frowned. "Why not?"
Grant shook his
head. "The Unity Party supports the CoDominium, and the
CoDominium keeps the peace. An ugly peace, but by God, peace. I wish
we hadn't got support for the CoDominium treaties tied so thoroughly
to the Unity Party, but it is and that's that. And you know damn well
that even in the Party it's only a thin majority that supports the
CoDominium. Right, Harry?"
The Assistant
Postmaster General nodded. "But don't forget, there's support
for the CD in Bertram's group."
"Sure, but they
hate our guts," Moriarty said. "They say we're corrupt. And
they're right."
"So flipping
what if they're right?" Karins snapped. "We're in, they're
out. Anybody who's in for long is corrupt. If he isn't, he's not in."
"I fail to see
the point of this discussion," the President interrupted. "I
for one do not enjoy being reminded of all the things I have done to
keep this office. The question is, what are we going to do? I feel it
only fair to warn you that nothing could make me happier than to have
Mr. Bertram sit in this chair. I've been President for a long time,
and I'm tired. I don't want the job anymore."
III
EVERYONE SPOKE AT
once, shouting to the President, murmuring to their neighbors, until
Grant cleared his throat loudly. "Mr. President," he said
using the tone of command he'd been taught during his brief tour in
the Army Reserve. "Mr. President, if you will pardon me, that is
a ludicrous suggestion. There is no one else in the Unity Party who
has even a ghost of a chance of winning. You alone remain popular.
Even Mr. Harmon speaks as well of you as he does of anyone not in his
group. You cannot resign without dragging the Unity Party with you,
and you cannot give that chair to Mr. Bertram because he couldn't
hold it six months."
"Would that be
so bad?" President Lipscomb leaned toward Grant with the
confidential manner he used in his fireside chats to the people. "Are
we really so sure that only we can save the human race, John? Or do
we only wish to keep power?"
"Both, I
suppose," Grant said. "Not that I'd mind retiring myself."
"Retire!"
Karins snorted. "You let Bertram's clean babies in the files for
two hours, and none of us will retire to anything better'n a CD
prison planet. You got to be kidding, retire."
"That may be
true," the President said.
"There's other
ways," Karins suggested. "General, what happens if Harmon
takes power and starts his war?"
"Mr. Grant
knows better than I do," General Carpenter said. When the others
stared at him, Carpenter continued. "No one has ever fought a
nuclear war. Why should the uniform make me more of an expert than
you? Maybe we could win. Heavy casualties, very heavy, but our
defenses are good."
Carpenter gestured
at the moving lights on the wall projection. "We have better
technology than the Russia's. Our laser guns ought to get most of
their missiles. CD Fleet won't let either of us use space weapons. We
might win."
"We might."
Lipscomb was grim. "John?"
"We might not
win. We might kill more than half the human race. We might get more.
How in God's name do I know what happens when we throw nuclear
weapons around?"
"But the
Russians aren't prepared," Commerce said. "If we hit them
without warning - people never change governments in the middle of a
war."
President Lipscomb
sighed. "I am not going to start a nuclear war to retain power.
Whatever I have done, I have done to keep peace. That is my last
excuse. I could not live with myself if I sacrifice peace to keep
power."
Grant cleared his
throat gently. "We couldn't do it anyway. If we start converting
defensive missiles to offensive, CoDominium Intelligence would hear
about it in ten days. The Treaty prevents that, you know."
He lit another
cigarette. "We aren't the only threat to the CD, anyway. There's
always Kaslov."
Kaslov was a pure
Stalinist, who wanted to liberate Earth for Communism. Some called
him the last Communist, but of course he wasn't the last. He had
plenty of followers. Grant could remember a secret conference with
Ambassador Chernikov only weeks ago.
The Soviet was a
polished diplomat, but it was obvious that he wanted something
desperately. He wanted the United States to keep the pressure on, not
relax her defenses at the borders of the U.S. sphere of influence,
because if the Communist probes ever took anything from the U.S.
without a hard fight, Kaslov would gain more influence at home. He
might even win control of the Presidium.
"Nationalism
everywhere," the President sighed. "Why?"
No one had an answer
to that. Harmon gained power in the U.S. and Kaslov in the Soviet
Union; while a dozen petty nationalist leaders gained power in a
dozen other countries. Some thought it started with Japan's
nationalistic revival.
"This is all
nonsense," said the Assistant Postmaster General. "We
aren't going to quit and we aren't starting any wars. Now what does
it take to get the support away from Mr. Clean Bertram and funnel it
back to us where it belongs? A good scandal, right? Find Bertram's
dirtier than we are, right? Worked plenty of times before. You can
steal people blind if you scream loud enough about how the other
guy's a crook."
"Such as?"
Karins prompted.
"Working with
the Japs. Giving the Japs nukes, maybe. Supporting Meiji's
independence movement. I'm sure Mr. Grant can arrange something."
Karins nodded
vigorously. 'That might do it. Disillusion his organizers. The
pro-CoDominium people in his outfit would come to us like a shot."
Karins paused and
chuckled. "Course some of them will head for Millington's bunch,
too."
They all laughed. No
one worried about Millington's Liberation Party. His madmen caused
riots and kept the taxpayers afraid, and made a number of security
arrangements highly popular. The Liberation Party gave the police
some heads to crack, nice riots for Tri-V to keep the Citizens amused
and the taxpayers happy.
"I think we can
safely leave the details to Mr. Grant." Karins grinned broadly.
"What will you
do, John?" the President asked.
"Do you really
want to know, Mr. President?" Moriarty interrupted."I
don't."
"Nor do I, but
if I can condone it, I can at least find out what it is. What will
you do, John?"
"Frame-up, I
suppose. Get a plot going, then uncover it."
"That?"
Moriarty shook his head. "It's got to be good. The people are
beginning to wonder about all these plots."
Grant nodded. "There
will be evidence. Hard-core evidence. A secret arsenal of nuclear
weapons."
There was a gasp.
Then Karins grinned widely again. "Oh, man, that's tore it.
Hidden nukes. Real ones, I suppose?"
"Of course."
Grant looked with distaste at the fat youth. What would be the point
of fake nuclear weapons? But Karins lived in a world of deception, so
much so that fake weapons might be appropriate in it.
"Better have
lots of cops when you break that story," Karins said. "People
hear that, they'll tear Bertram apart."
True enough, Grant
thought. It was a point he'd have to remember. Protection of those
kids wouldn't be easy. Not since one militant group atom-bombed
Bakersfield, California, and a criminal syndicate tried to hold
Seattle for a hundred million ransom. People no longer thought of
private stocks of atomic weapons as something to laugh at.
"We won't
involve Mr. Bertram personally," the President said grimly. "Not
under any circumstances. Is that understood?"
"Yes, sir,"
John answered quickly. He hadn't liked the idea either. "Just
some of his top aides." Grant stubbed out the cigarette. It, or
something, had left a foul taste in his mouth. "I'll have them
end up with the CD for final custody. Sentenced to transportation. My
brother can arrange it so they don't have hard sentences."
"Sure. They can
be independent planters on Tanith if they'll cooperate," Karins
said. "You can see they don't suffer."
Like hell, Grant
thought. Life on Tanith was no joy under the best conditions.
"There's one
more thing," the President said. "I understand Grand
Senator Bronson wants something from the CD. Some officer was a
little too efficient at uncovering the Bronson family deals, and they
want him removed." The President looked as if he'd tasted sour
milk. "I hate this, John. I hate it, but we need Bronson's
support. Can you speak to your brother?"
"I already
have," Grant said."It will be arranged."
Grant left the
meeting a few minutes later. The others could continue in endless
discussion, but Grant saw no point to it. The action needed was
clear, and the longer they waited the more time Bertram would have to
assemble his supporters and harden his support. If something were to
be done, it should be now.
Grant had found all
his life that the wrong action taken decisively and in time was
better than the right action taken later. After he reached the
Pentagon he summoned his deputies and issued orders. It took no more
than an hour to set the machinery in motion.
Grant's colleagues
always said he was rash, too quick to take action without examining
the consequences. They also conceded that he was lucky. To Grant it
wasn't luck, and he did consider the consequences; but he anticipated
events rather than reacted to crisis. He had known that Bertram's
support was growing alarmingly for weeks and had made contingency
plans long before going to the conference with the President.
Now it was clear
that action must be taken immediately. Within days there would be
leaks from the conference. Nothing about the actions to be taken, but
there would be rumors about the alarm and concern. A secretary would
notice that Grant had come back to the Pentagon after dismissing his
driver. Another would see that Karins chuckled more than usual when
he left the Oval Office, or that two political enemies came out
together and went off to have a drink. Another would hear talk about
Bertram, and soon it would be all over Washington: the President was
worried about Bertram's popularity.
Since the leaks were
inevitable, he should act while this might work. Grant dismissed his
aides with a sense of satisfaction. He had been ready, and the crisis
would be over before it began. It was only after he was alone that he
crossed the paneled room to the teak cabinet and poured a double
Scotch.
The Maryland
countryside slipped past far below as , the Cadillac cruised on
autopilot. A ribbon antenna ran almost to Grant's house, and he
watched the twilight scene with as much relaxation as he ever
achieved lately. House lights blinked below, and a few surface cars
ran along the roads. Behind him was the sprawling mass of Columbia
Welfare Island where most of those displaced from Washington had
gone. Now the inhabitants were third generation and had never known
any other life.
He grimaced. Welfare
Islands were lumps of concrete buildings and roof parks, containers
for the seething resentment of useless lives kept placid by
Government furnished supplies of Tanith hashpot and borloi and
American cheap booze. A man born in one of those complexes could stay
there all his life, and many did.
Grant tried to
imagine what it would be like there, but he couldn't. Reports from
his agents gave an intellectual picture, but there was no way to
identify with those people. He could not feel the hopelessness and
dulled senses, burning hatreds, terrors, bitter pride of street
gangs.
Karins knew, though.
Karins had begun his life in a Welfare Island somewhere in the
Midwest. Karins clawed his way through the schools to a scholarship
and a ticket out forever. He'd resisted stimulants and dope and
Tri-V. Was it worth it? Grant wondered. And of course there was
another way out of Welfare, as a voluntary colonist; but so few took
that route now. Once there had been a lot of them.
The speaker on the
dash suddenly came to life cutting off Beethoven in mid bar.
"WARNING. YOU ARE APPROACHING A GUARDED AREA. UNAUTHORIZED CRAFT
WILL BE DESTROYED WITHOUT FURTHER WARNING. IF YOU HAVE LEGITIMATE
ERRANDS IN THIS RESTRICTED AREA, FOLLOW THE GUIDE BEAM TO THE POLICE
CHECK STATION. THIS IS A FINAL WARNING."
The Cadillac
automatically turned off course to ride the beam down to State Police
headquarters, and Grant cursed. He activated the mike and spoke
softly. "This is John Grant of Peachem's Bay. Something seems to
be wrong with my transponder."
There was a short
pause, then a soft feminine voice came from the dash speaker. "We
are very sorry, Mr. Grant. Your signal is correct. Our identification
unit is out of order. Please proceed to your home."
"Get that
damned thing fixed before it shoots down a taxpayer," Grant
said. Ann Arundel County was a Unity stronghold. How long would that
last after an accident like that? He took the manual controls and cut
across country, ignoring regulations. They could only give him a
ticket now that they knew who he was, and his banking computer would
pay it without bothering to tell him of it.
It brought a grim
smile to his face. Traffic regulations were broken, computers noted
it and levied fines, other computers paid them, and no human ever
became aware of them. It was only if there were enough tickets
accumulated to bring a warning of license suspension that a taxpayer
learned of the things - unless he liked checking his bank statements
himself.
His home lay ahead,
a big rambling early twentieth-century place on the cove. His yacht
was anchored offshore, and it gave him a guilty twinge. She wasn't
neglected, but she was too much in the hands of paid crew, too long
without attention from her owner.
Carver, the
chauffeur, rushed out to help Grant down from the Cadillac. Hapwood
was waiting in the big library with a glass of sherry. Prince
Bismark, shivering in the presence of his god, put his Doberman head
on Grant's lap, ready to leap into the fire at command.
There was irony in
the situation, Grant thought. At home he enjoyed the power of a
feudal lord, but it was limited by how strongly the staff wanted to
stay out of Welfare. But he only had to lift the Security phone in
the corner, and his real power, completely invisible and limited only
by what the President wanted to find out, would operate. Money gave
him the visible power, heredity gave him the power over the dog; what
gave him the real power of the Security phone?
"What time
would you like dinner, sir?" Hapwood asked. "And Miss
Sharon is here with a guest."
"A guest?"
"Yes, sir. A
young man, Mr. Allan Torrey, sir."
"Have they
eaten?"
"Yes, sir. Miss
Ackridge called to say that you would be late for dinner."
"All right,
Hapwood. I'll eat now and see Miss Grant and her guest afterwards."
"Very good,
sir. I will inform the cook." Hapwood left the room invisibly.
Grant smiled again.
Hapwood was another figure from Welfare and had grown up speaking a
dialect Grant would never recognize. For some reason he had been
impressed by English butlers he'd seen on Tri-V and cultivated their
manner - and now he was known all over the county as the perfect
household manager.
Hapwood didn't know
it, but Grant had a record of every cent his butler took in:
kickbacks from grocers and caterers, contributions from the
gardeners, and the surprisingly well-managed investment portfolio.
Hapwood could easily retire to his own house and live the life of a
taxpayer investor.
Why? Grant wondered
idly. Why does he stay on? It makes life easier for me, but why? It
had intrigued Grant enough to have his agents look into Hapwood, but
the man had no politics other than staunch support for Unity. The
only suspicious thing about his contacts was the refinement with
which he extracted money from every transaction involving Grant's
house. Hapwood had no children, and his sexual needs were satisfied
by infrequent visits to the fringe areas around Welfare.
Grant ate
mechanically, hurrying to be through and see his daughter, yet he was
afraid to meet the boy she had brought home. For a moment he thought
of using the Security phone to find out more about him, but he shook
his head angrily. Too much security thinking wasn't good. For once he
was going to be a parent, meeting his daughter's intended and nothing
more.
He left his dinner
unfinished without thinking how much the remnants of steak would have
cost, or that Hapwood would probably sell them somewhere, and went to
the library. He sat behind the massive Oriental fruitwood desk and
had a brandy.
Behind him and to
both sides the walls were lined with book shelves, immaculate
dust-free accounts of the people of dead empires. It had been years
since he had read one. Now all his reading was confined to reports
with bright red covers. The reports told live stories about living
people, but sometimes, late at night, Grant wondered if his country
was not as dead as the empires in his books.
Grant loved his
country but hated her people, all of them: Karins and the new breed,
the tranquilized Citizens in their Welfare Islands, the smug
taxpayers grimly holding onto their privileges. What, then, do I
love? he wondered. Only our history, and the greatness that once was
the United States, and that's found only in those books and in old
buildings, never in the security reports.
Where are the
patriots? All of them have become Patriots, stupid men and women
following a leader toward nothing. Not even glory.
Then Sharon came in.
She was a lovely girl, far prettier than her mother had ever been,
but she lacked her mother's poise. She ushered in a tall boy in his
early twenties.
Grant studied the
newcomer as they came toward him. Nice-looking boy. Long hair, neatly
trimmed, conservative mustache for these times. Blue and violet
tunic, red scarf ... a little flashy, but even John Jr. went in for
flashy clothes when he got out of CD uniform.
The boy walked
hesitantly, almost timidly, and Grant wondered if it were fear of him
and his position in the government, or only the natural nervousness
of a young man about to meet his fiancee's wealthy father. The tiny
diamond on Sharon's hand sparkled in the yellow light from the
fireplace, and she held the hand in an unnatural position.
"Daddy, I ...
I've talked so much about him, this is Allan. He's just asked me to
marry him!" She sparkled, Grant saw; and she spoke trustingly,
sure of his approval, never thinking he might object. Grant wondered
if Sharon weren't the only person in the country who didn't fear him.
Except for John Jr., who didn't have to be afraid. John was out of
the reach of Grant's Security phone. The CD Fleet takes care of its
own.
At least he's asked
her to marry him. He might have simply moved in with her. Or has he
already? Grant stood and extended his hand. "Hello, Allan."
Torrey's grip was
firm, but his eyes avoided Grant's. "So you want to marry my
daughter." Grant glanced pointedly at her left hand. "It
appears that she approves the idea."
"Yes, sir. Uh,
sir, she wanted to wait and ask you, but I insisted. It's my fault,
sir." Torrey looked up at him this time, almost in defiance.
"Yes."
Grant sat again. "Well, Sharon, as long as you're home for the
evening, I wish you'd speak to Hapwood about Prince Bismark. I do not
think the animal is properly fed."
"You mean right
now?" she asked. She tightened her small mouth into a pout.
"Really, Daddy, this is Victorian! Sending me out of the room
while you talk to my fiance!"
"Yes, it is,
isn't it?" Grant said nothing else, and finally she turned away.
Then: "Don't
let him frighten you, Allan. He's about as dangerous as that - as
that moosehead in the trophy room!" She fled before there could
be any reply.
IV
THEY SAT AWKWARDLY.
Grant left his desk to sit near the fire with Torrey. Drinks, offer
of a smoke, all the usual amenities - he did them all; but finally
Hapwood had brought their refreshments and the door was closed.
"All right,
Allan," John Grant began. "Let us be trite and get it over
with. How do you intend to support her?"
Torrey looked
straight at him this time. His eyes danced with what Grant was
certain was concealed amusement. "I expect to be appointed to a
good post in the Department of the Interior. I'm a trained engineer."
"Interior?"
Grant thought for a second. The answer surprised him - he hadn't
thought the boy was another office seeker. "I suppose it can be
arranged."
Torrey grinned. It
was an infectious grin, and Grant liked it. "Well, sir, it's
already arranged. I wasn't asking for a job."
"Oh?"
Grant shrugged. "I hadn't heard." "Deputy Assistant
Secretary for Natural Resources. I took a master's in ecology."
"That's
interesting, but I would have thought I'd have heard of your coming
appointment."
"It won't be
official yet, sir. Not until Mr. Bertram is elected President. For
the moment I'm on his staff." The grin was still there, and it
was friendly, not hostile. The boy thought politics was a game. He
wanted to win, but it was only a game.
And he's seen real
polls, Grant thought. "Just what do you do for Mr. Bertram,
then?"
Allan shrugged.
"Write speeches, carry the mail, run the Xerox - you've been in
campaign headquarters. I'm the guy who gets the jobs no one else
wants."
Grant laughed. "I
did start as a gopher, but I soon hired my own out of what I once
contributed to the Party. They did not try that trick again with me.
I don't suppose that course is open to you."
"No, sir. My
father's a taxpayer, but paying taxes is pretty tough just now - "
"Yes."
Well, at least he wasn't from a Citizen family. Grant would learn the
details from Ackridge tomorrow, for now the important thing was to
get to know the boy.
It was difficult,
Allan was frank and relaxed, and Grant was pleased to see that he
refused a third drink, but there was little to talk about. Torrey had
no conception of the realities of politics. He Was one of Bertram's
child crusaders, and he was out to save the United States from people
like John Grant, although he was too polite to say so.
And I was once that
young, Grant thought. I wanted to save the world, but it was so
different then. No one wanted to end the CoDominium when I was young.
We were too happy to have the Second Cold War over with. What
happened to the great sense of relief when we could stop worrying
about atomic wars? When I was young that was all we thought of, that
we would be the last generation. Now they take it for granted that
we'll have peace forever. Is peace such a little thing?
"There s so
much to do," Torrey was saying. "The Baja Project, thermal
pollution of the Sea of Cortez! They're killing off a whole ecology
just to create estates for the taxpayers.
"I know it
isn't your department, sir, you probably don't even know what they're
doing. But Lipscomb has been in office too long! Corruption, special
interests, it's time we had a genuine two-party system again instead
of things going back and forth between the wings of Unity. It's time
for a change, and Mr. Bertram's the right man, I know he is."
Grant's smile was
thin, but he managed it. "You'll hardly expect me to agree with
you," Grant said.
"No, sir."
Grant sighed. "But
perhaps you're right at that. I must say I wouldn't mind retiring, so
that I could live in this house instead of merely visiting it on
weekends."
What was the point?
Grant wondered. He'd never convince this boy, and Sharon wanted him.
Torrey would drop Bertram after the scandals broke.
And what
explanations were there anyway? The Baja Project was developed to aid
a syndicate of taxpayers in the six states of the old former Republic
of Mexico. The Government needed them, and they didn't care about
whales and fish. Shortsighted, yes, and Grant had tried to argue them
into changing the project, but they wouldn't, and politics is the art
of the possible.
Finally, painfully,
the interview ended. Sharon came in, grinning sheepishly because she
was engaged to one of Bertram's people, but she understood that no
better than Allan Torrey. It was only a game. Bertram would win and
Grant would retire, and no one would be hurt.
How could he tell
them that it didn't work that way any longer? Unity wasn't the
cleanest party in the world, but at least it had no fanatics - and
all over the world the causes were rising again. The Friends of the
People were on the move, and it had all happened before, it was all
told time and again in those aseptically clean books on the shelves
above him.
BERTRAM AIDES
ARRESTED BY INTERCONTINENTAL BUREAU OF INVESTIGATION!! IBI RAIDS
SECRET WEAPONS CACHE IN BERTRAM HEADQUARTERS. NUCLEAR WEAPONS
HINTED!!!
Chicago, May 15,
(UPI) - IBI agents here have arrested five top aides to Senator
Harvey Bertram in what government officials call one of the most
despicable plots ever discovered. . . .
Grant read the
transcript on his desk screen without satisfaction. It had all gone
according to plan, and there was nothing left to do, but he hated it.
At least it was
clean. The evidence was there. Bertram's people could have their
trial, challenge jurors, challenge judges. The Government would waive
its rights under the Thirty-first Amendment and let the case be tried
under the old adversary rules. It wouldn't matter. Then he read the
small type below. "Arrested were Gregory Kalamintor, nineteen,
press secretary to Bertram; Timothy Giordano, twenty-two, secretary;
Allan Torrey, twenty-two, executive assistant - " The page
blurred, and Grant dropped his face into his hands. "My God,
what have we done?" He hadn't moved when Miss Ackridge buzzed.
"Your daughter on four, sir. She seems upset."
"Yes."
Grant punched savagely at the button. Sharon's face swam into view.
Her makeup was ruined by long streaks of tears. She looked older,
much like her mother during one of their -
"Daddy! They've
arrested Allan! And I know it isn't true, he wouldn't have anything
to do with nuclear weapons! A lot of Mr. Bertram's people said there
would never be an honest election in this country. They said John
Grant would see to that! I told him they were wrong, but they
weren't, were they? You've done this to stop the election, haven't
you?"
There was nothing to
say because she was right. But who might be listening? "I don't
know what you're talking about. I've only seen the Tri-V casts about
Allan's arrest, nothing more. Come home, kitten, and we'll talk about
it."
"Oh no! You're
not getting me where Dr. Pollard can give me a nice friendly little
shot and make me forget about Allan! No! I'm staying with my friends,
and I won't be home, Daddy. And when I go to the newspapers, I think
they'll listen to me. I don't know what to tell them yet, but I'm
sure Mr. Bertram's people will think of something. How do you like
that, Mr. God?"
"Anything you
tell the press will be lies, Sharon. You know nothing." One of
his assistants had come in and now left the office.
"Lies? Where
did I learn to lie?" The screen went blank.
And is it that thin?
he wondered. All the trust and love, could it vanish that fast, was
it that thin? "Sir?" It was Hartman, his assistant. "Yes?"
"She was
calling from Champaign, Illinois. A Bertram headquarters they think
we don't know about. The phone had one of those guaranteed no-trace
devices."
"Trusting lot,
aren't they?" Grant said. "Have some good men watch that
house, but leave her alone." He stood and felt a wave of nausea
so strong that he had to hold the edge of the desk. "MAKE DAMNED
SURE THEY LEAVE HER ALONE. DO YOU UNDERSTAND?" he shouted.
Hartman went as pale
as Grant. The chief hadn't raised his voice to one of his own people
in five years. "Yes, sir, I understand."
"Then get out
of here." Grant spoke carefully, in low tones, and the cold
mechanical voice was more terrifying than the shout.
He sat alone and
stared at the telephone. What use was its power now?
What can we do? It
wasn't generally known that Sharon was engaged to the boy. He'd
talked them out of a formal engagement until the banns could be
announced in the National Cathedral and they could hold a big social
party. It had been something to do for them at the time, but . . .
But what? He
couldn't have the boy released. Not that boy. He wouldn't keep silent
as the price of his own freedom. He'd take Sharon to a newspaper
within five minutes of his release, and the resulting headlines would
bring down Lipscomb, Unity, the CoDominium - and the peace. Newsmen
would listen to the daughter of the top secret policeman in the
country.
Grant punched a code
on the communicator, then another. Grand Admiral Lermontov appeared
on the screen.
'Yes, Mr. Grant?"
"Are you alone?"
"Yes."
The conversation was
painful, and the long delay while the signals reached the moon and
returned didn't make it easier.
"When is the
next CD warship going outsystem? Not a colony ship, and most
especially not a prison ship. A warship."
Another long pause,
longer even than the delay. "I suppose anything could be
arranged," the Admiral said. "What do you need?"
"I want ..."
Grant hesitated, but there was no time to be lost. No time at all. "I
want space for two very important political prisoners. A married
couple. The crew is not to know their identity, and anyone who does
learn their identity must stay outsystem for at least five years. And
I want them set down on a good colony world, a decent place. Sparta,
perhaps. No one ever returns from Sparta. Can you arrange that?"
Grant could see the
changes in Lermontov's face as the words reached him. The Admiral
frowned. "It can be done if it is important enough. It will not
be easy."
"It's important
enough. My brother Martin will explain everything you'll need to know
later. The prisoners will be delivered tonight, Sergei. Please have
the ship ready. And - and it better not be Saratoga. My son's in that
one and he - he will know one of the prisoners." Grant swallowed
hard. "There should be a chaplain aboard. The kids will be
getting married."
Lermontov frowned
again, as if wondering if John Grant had gone insane. Yet he needed
the Grants, both of them, and certainly John Grant would not ask such
a favor if it were not vital.
"It will be
done," Lermontov said.
"Thank you.
I'll also appreciate it if you will see they have a good estate on
Sparta. They are not to know who arranged it. Just have it taken care
of and send the bill to me."
It was all so very
simple. Direct his agents to arrest Sharon and conduct her to CD
Intelligence. He wouldn't want to see her first. The attorney general
would send Torrey to the same place and announce that he had escaped.
It wasn't as neat as
having all of them convicted in open court, but it would do, and
having one of them a fugitive from justice would even help. It would
be an admission of guilt.
Something inside him
screamed again and again that this was his little girl, the only
person in the world who wasn't afraid of him, but Grant refused to
listen. He leaned back in the chair and almost calmly dictated his
orders.
He took the flimsy
sheet from the writer and his hand didn't tremble at all as he signed
it.
All right, Martin,
he thought. All right. I've bought the time you asked for, you and
Sergei Lermontov. Now can you do something with it?
2087 A.D.
V
THE LANDING BOAT
fell away from the orbiting warship. When it had drifted -to a safe
distance, retros fired, and after it had entered the thin reaches of
the planet's upper atmosphere, scoops opened in the bows. The thin
air was drawn in and compressed until the stagnation temperature in
the ramjet chamber was high enough for ignition.
The engines lit with
a roar of flame. Wings swung out to provide lift at hypersonic
speeds, and the spaceplane turned to streak over empty ocean toward
the continental land mass two thousand kilometers away.
The ship circled
over craggy mountains twelve kilometers high, then dropped low over
thickly forested plains. It slowed until it was no longer a danger to
the thin strip of inhabited lands along the ocean shores. The
planet's great ocean was joined to a smaller sea by a nearly
landlocked channel no more than five kilometers across at its widest
point, and nearly all of the colonists lived near the junction of the
waters.
Hadley's capital
city nestled on a long peninsula at the mouth of that channel, and
the two natural harbors, one in the sea, the other in the ocean, gave
the city the fitting name of Refuge. The name suggested a tranquility
the city no longer possessed.
The ship extended
its wings to their fullest reach and floated low over the calm water
of the channel harbor. It touched and settled in. Tugboats raced
across clear blue water. Sweating seamen threw lines and towed the
landing craft to the dock where they secured it.
A long line of
CoDominium Marines in garrison uniform marched out of the boat. They
gathered on the gray concrete piers into neat brightly colored lines.
Two men in civilian clothing followed the Marines from the flyer.
They blinked at the
unaccustomed blue-white of Hadley's sun. The sun was so far away that
it would have been only a small point if either of them were foolish
enough to look directly at it. The apparent small size was only an
illusion caused by distance; Hadley received as much illumination
from its hotter sun as Earth does from Sol.
Both men were tall
and stood as straight as the Marines in front of them, so that except
for their clothing they might have been mistaken for a part of the
disembarking battalion. The shorter of the two carried luggage for
both of them, and stood respectfully behind; although older he was
obvioualy a subordinate. They watched as two younger men came
uncertainly along the pier. The newcomers' unadorned blue uniforms
contrasted sharply with the bright reds and golds of the CoDominium
Marines milling around them. Already the Marines were scurrying back
into the flyer to carry out barracks bags, weapons, and all the other
personal gear of a light infantry battalion.
The taller of the
two civilians faced the uniformed newcomers. "I take it you're
here to meet us?" he asked pleasantly. His voice rang through
the noise on the pier, and it carried easily although he had not
shouted. His accent was neutral, the nearly universal English of
non-Russian officers in the CoDominium Service, and it marked his
profession almost as certainly as did his posture and the tone of
command.
The newcomers were
uncertain even so. There were a lot of ex-officers of the CoDominium
Space Navy on the beach lately. CD budgets were lower every year. "I
think so," one finally said. "Are you John Christian
Falkenberg?"
His name was
actually John Christian Falkenberg III, and he suspected that his
grandfather would have insisted on the distinction. "Right. And
Sergeant Major Calvin."
"Pleasure to
meet you, sir. I'm Lieutenant Banners, and this is Ensign Mowrer.
We're on President Budreau's staff." Banners looked around as if
expecting other men, but there were none except the uniformed
Marines. He gave Falkenberg a slightly puzzled look, then added, "We
have transportation for you, but I'm afraid your men will have to
walk. It's about eleven miles."
"Miles."
Falkenberg smiled to himself. This was out in the boondocks. "I
see no reason why ten healthy mercenaries can't march eighteen
kilometers, Lieutenant." He turned to face the black shape of
the landing boat's entry port and called to someone inside. "Captain
Fast. There is no transportation, but someone will show you where to
march the men. Have them carry all gear."
"Uh, sir, that
won't be necessary," the lieutenant protested. "We can get
- well, we have horse-drawn transport for baggage." He looked at
Falkenberg as if he expected him to laugh.
"That's hardly
unusual on colony worlds," Falkenberg said. Horses and mules
could be carried as frozen embryos, and they didn't require
high-technology industries to produce more, nor did they need an
industrial base to fuel them.
"Ensign Mowrer
will attend to it," Lieutenant Banners said. He paused again and
looked thoughtful as if uncertain how to tell Falkenberg something.
Finally he shook his head. "I think it would be wise if you
issued your men their personal weapons, sir. There shouldn't be any
trouble on their way to barracks, but - anyway, ten armed men
certainly won't have any problems."
"I see. Perhaps
I should go with my troops, Lieutenant. I hadn't known things were
quite this bad on Hadley." Falkenberg's voice was calm and even,
but he watched the junior officers carefully.
"No, sir. They
aren't, really. . . . But there's no point in taking chances."
He waved Ensign Mowrer to the landing craft and turned back to
Falkenberg. A large black shape rose from the water outboard of the
landing craft. It splashed and vanished. Banners seemed not to
notice, but the Marines shouted excitedly. "I'm sure the ensign
and your officers can handle the disembarkation, and the President
would like to see you immediately, sir."
"No doubt. All
right, Banners, lead on. I'll bring Sergeant Major Calvin with me."
He followed Banners down the pier.
There's no point to
this farce, Falkenberg thought. Anyone seeing ten armed men conducted
by a Presidential ensign will know they're mercenary troops, civilian
clothes or not. Another case of wrong information.
Falkenberg had been
told to keep the status of himself and his men a secret, but it
wasn't going to work. He wondered if this would make it more
difficult to keep his own secrets.
Banners ushered them
quickly through the bustling CoDominium Marine barracks, past bored
guards who half-saluted the Presidential Guard uniform. The Marine
fortress was a blur of activity, every open space crammed with packs
and weapons; the signs of a military force about to move on to
another station.
As they were leaving
the building, Falkenberg saw an elderly Naval officer. "Excuse
me a moment, Banners." He turned to the CoDominium Navy captain.
"They sent someone for me. Thanks, Ed."
"No problem.
I'll report your arrival to the Admiral. He wants to keep track of
you. Unofficially, of course. Good luck, John. God knows you need
some right now. It was a rotten deal."
"It's the way
it goes."
"Yeah, but the
Fleet used to take better care of its own than that. I'm beginning to
wonder if anyone is safe. Damn Senator - "
"Forget it,"
Falkenberg interrupted. He glanced back to be sure Lieutenant Banners
was out of earshot. "Pay my respects to the rest of your
officers. You run a good ship."
The captain smiled
thinly. "Thanks. From you that's quite a compliment." He
held out his hand and gripped John's firmly. "Look, we pull out
in a couple of days, no more than that. If you need a ride on
somewhere I can arrange it. The goddam Senate won't have to know. We
can fix you a hitch to anywhere in CD territory."
"Thanks, but I
guess I'll stay."
"Could be rough
here," the captain said.
"And it won't
be everywhere else in the CoDominium?" Falkenberg asked. "Thanks
again, Ed." He gave a half-salute and checked himself.
Banners and Calvin
were waiting for him, and Falkenberg turned away. Calvin lifted three
personal effects bags as if they were empty and pushed the door open
in a smooth motion. The CD captain watched until they had left the
building, but Falkenberg did not look back.
"Damn them,"
the captain muttered. "Damn the lot of them."
"The car's
here." Banners opened the rear door of a battered ground effects
vehicle of no discoverable make. It had been cannibalized from a
dozen other machines, and some parts were obviously cut-and-try jobs
done by an uncertain machinist. Banners climbed into the driver's
seat and started the engine. It coughed twice, then ran smoothly, and
they drove away in a cloud of black smoke.
They drove past
another dock where a landing craft with wings as large as the entire
Marine landing boat was unloading an endless stream of civilian
passengers. Children screamed, and long lines of men and women stared
about uncertainly until they were ungently hustled along by guards in
uniforms matching Banners'. The sour smell of unwashed humanity
mingled with the crisp clean salt air from the ocean beyond. Banners
rolled up the windows with an expression of distaste.
"Always like
that," Calvin commented to no one in particular. "Water
discipline in them CoDominium prison ships bein' what it is, takes
weeks dirtside to get clean again."
"Have you ever
been in one of those ships?" Banners asked.
"No, sir,"
Calvin replied. "Been in Marine assault boats just about as bad,
I reckon. But I can't say I fancy being stuffed into no cubicle with
ten, fifteen thousand civilians for six months."
"We may all see
the inside of one of those," Falkenberg said. "And be glad
of the chance. Tell me about the situation here, Banners."
"I don't even
know where to start, sir," the lieutenant answered. "I - do
you know about Hadley?"
"Assume I
don't," Falkenberg said. May as well see what kind of estimate
of the situation the President's officers can make, he thought. He
could feel the Fleet Intelligence report bulging in an inner pocket
of his tunic, but those reports always left out important details;
and the attitudes of the Presidential Guard could be important to his
plans.
"Yes, sir.
Well, to begin with, we're a long way from the nearest shipping lanes
- but I guess you knew that. The only real reason we had any merchant
trade was the mines. Thorium, richest veins known anywhere for a
while, until they started to run out.
"For the first
few years that's all we had. The mines are up in the hills, about
eighty miles over that way." He pointed to a thin blue line just
visible at the horizon.
"Must be pretty
high mountains," Falkenberg said. "What's the diameter of
Hadley? About eighty percent of Earth? Something like that. The
horizon ought to be pretty close."
"Yes, sir. They
are high mountains. Hadley is small, but we've got bigger and better
everything here." There was pride in the young officer's voice.
"Them bags seem
pretty heavy for a planet this small," Calvin said.
"Hadley's very
dense," Banners answered. "Gravity nearly ninety percent
standard. Anyway, the mines are over there, and they have their own
spaceport at a lake nearby. Refuge - that's this city - was founded
by the American Express Company. They brought in the first colonists,
quite a lot of them."
"Volunteers?"
Falkenberg asked.
"Yes. All
volunteers. The usual misfits. I suppose my father was typical
enough, an engineer who couldn't keep up with the rat race and was
tired of Bureau of Technology restrictions on what he could learn.
They were the first wave, and they took the best land. They founded
the city and got an economy going. American Express was paid back all
advances within twenty years." Banners' pride was evident, and
Falkenberg knew it had been a difficult job.
"That was,
what, fifty years ago?" Falkenberg asked.
"Yes."
They were driving
through crowded streets lined with wooden houses and a few stone
buildings. There were rooming houses, bars, sailors' brothels, all
the usual establishments of a dock street, but there were no other
cars on the road. Instead the traffic was all horses and oxen pulling
carts, bicycles, and pedestrians.
The sky above Refuge
was clear. There was no trace of smog or industrial wastes. Out in
the harbor tugboats moved with the silent efficiency of electric
power, and there were also wind-driven sailing ships, lobster boats
powered by oars, even a topsail schooner lovely against clean blue
water. She threw up white spume as she raced out to sea. A
three-masted, full-rigged ship was drawn up to a wharf where men
loaded her by hand with huge bales of what might have been cotton.
They passed a
wagonload of melons. A gaily dressed young couple waved cheerfully at
them, then the man snapped a long whip at the team of horses that
pulled thir wagon. Falkenberg studied the primitive scene and said,
"It doesn't look like you've been here fifty years."
"No."
Banners gave them a bitter look. Then he swerved to avoid a group of
shapeless teenagers lounging in the dockside street. He had to swerve
again to avoid the barricade of paving stones that they had masked.
The car jounced wildly. Banners gunned it to lift it higher and
headed for a low place in the barricade. It scraped as it went over
the top, then he accelerated away.
Falkenberg took his
hand from inside his shirt jacket.
Behind him Calvin
was inspecting a submachine gun that had appeared from the oversized
barracks bag he'd brought into the car with him. When Banners said
nothing about the incident, Falkenberg frowned and leaned back in his
seat, listening. The Intelligence reports mentioned lawlessness, but
this was as bad as a Welfare Island on Earth.
"No, we're not
much industrialized," Banners continued. "At first there
wasn't any need to develop basic industries. The mines made everyone
rich, so we imported everything we needed. The farmers sold fresh
produce to the miners for enormous prices. Refuge was a service
industry town. People who worked here could soon afford farm animals,
and they scattered out across the plains and into the forests."
Falkenberg nodded.
"Many of them wouldn't care for cities."
"Precisely.
They didn't want industry, they'd come here to escape it."
Banners drove in silence for a moment. "Then some blasted
CoDominium bureaucrat read the ecology reports about Hadley. The
Population Control Bureau in Washington decided this was a perfect
place for involuntary colonization. The ships were coming here for
the thorium anyway, so instead of luxuries and machinery they were
ordered to carry convicts. Hundreds of thousands of them, Colonel
Falkenberg. For the last ten years there have been better than fifty
thousand people a year dumped in on us."
"And you
couldn't support them all," Falkenberg said gently.
"No, sir."
Banners' face tightened. He seemed to be fighting tears. "God
knows we try. Every erg the fusion generators can make goes into
converting petroleum into basic protocarb just to feed them. But
they're not like the original colonists! They don't know anything,
they won't do anything! Oh, not really, of course. Some of them work.
Some of our best citizens are transport-ees. But there are so many of
the other kind."
"Why'n't you
tell 'em to work or starve?" Calvin asked bluntly. Falkenberg
gave him a cold look, and the sergeant nodded slightly and sank back
into his seat.
"Because the CD
wouldn't let us!" Banners shouted. "Damn it, we didn't have
self-government. The CD Bureau of Relocation people told us what to
do. They ran everything ..."
"We know,"
Falkenberg said gently. "We've seen the results of Humanity
League influence over BuRelock. My sergeant major wasn't asking you a
question, he was expressing an opinion. Nevertheless, I am surprised.
I would have thought your farms could support the urban population."
"They should be
able to, sir." Banners drove in grim silence for a long minute.
"But there's no transportation. The people are here, and most of
the agricultural land is five hundred miles inland. There's arable
land closer, but it isn't cleared. Our settlers wanted to get away
from Refuge and BuRelock. We have a railroad, but bandit gangs keep
blowing it up. We can't rely on Hadley's produce to keep Refuge
alive. There are a million people on Hadley, and half of them are
crammed into this one ungovernable city."
They were
approaching an enormous bowl-shaped structure attached to a massive
square stone fortress. Falkenberg studied the buildings carefully,
them asked what they were.
"Our stadium,"
Banners replied. There was no pride in his voice now. "The CD
built it for us. We'd rather have had a new fusion plant, but we got
a stadium that can hold a hundred thousand people."
"Built by the
GLC Construction and Development Company, I presume," Falkenberg
said.
"Yes . . . how
did you know?"
"I think I saw
it somewhere." He hadn't, but it was an easy guess: GLC was
owned by a holding company that was in turn owned by the Bronson
family. It was easy enough to understand why aid sent by the CD Grand
Senate would end up used for something GLC might participate in.
"We have very
fine sports teams and racehorses," Banners said bitterly. "The
building next to it is the Presidential Palace. Its architecture is
quite functional."
The Palace loomed up
before them, squat and massive; it looked more fortress than capital
building.
The city was more
thickly populated as they approached the Palace. The buildings here
were mostly stone and poured concrete instead of wood. Few were more
than three stories high, so that Refuge sprawled far along the shore.
The population density increased rapidly beyond the stadium-palace
complex. Banners was watchful as he drove along the wide streets, but
he seemed less nervous than he had been at dockside.
Refuge was a city of
contrasts. The streets were straight and wide, and there was
evidently a good waste-disposal system, but the lower floors of the
buildings were open shops, and the sidewalks were clogged with market
stalls. Clouds of pedestrians moved through the kiosks and shops.
There was still no
motor traffic and no moving ped-ways. Horse troughs and hitching
posts had been constructed at frequent intervals along with starkly
functional street lights and water distribution towers. The few signs
of technology contrasted strongly with the general primitive air of
the city.
A contingent of
uniformed men thrust their way through the crowd at a street
crossing. Falkenberg looked at them closely, then at Banners. "Your
troops?"
"No, sir.
That's the livery of Glenn Foster's household. Officially they're
unorganized reserves of the President's Guard, but they're household
troops all the same." Banners laughed bitterly. "Sounds
like something out of a history book, doesn't it? We're nearly back
to feudalism, Colonel Falkenberg. Anyone rich enough keeps hired
bodyguards. They have to. The criminal gangs are so strong the police
don't try to catch anyone under organized protection, and the judges
wouldn't punish them if they were caught."
"And the
private bodyguards become gangs in their own right, I suppose,"
Banners looked at
him sharply. "Yes, sir. Have you seen it before?"
"Yes. I've seen
it before." Banners was unable to make out the expression on
Falkenberg's lips.
VI
THEY DROVE INTO the
Presidential Palace and received the salutes of the blue uniformed
troopers. Falkenberg noted the polished weapons and precise drill of
the Presidential Guard. There were well-trained men on duty here, but
the unit was small. Falkenberg wondered if they could fight as well
as stand guard. They were local citizens, loyal to Hadley, and would
be unlike the CoDominium Marines he was accustomed to.
He was conducted
through a series of rooms in the stone fortress. Each had heavy metal
doors, and several were guardrooms. Falkenberg saw no signs of
government activity until they had passed through the outer layers of
the enormous palace into an open courtyard, and through that to an
inner building.
Here there was
plenty of activity. Clerks bustled through the halls, and girls in
the draped to gas fashionable years before on Earth sat at desks in
offices. Most seemed to be packing desk contents into boxes, and
other people scurried through the corridors. Some offices were empty,
their desks covered with fine dust, and there were plastiboard moving
boxes stacked outside them.
There were two
anterooms to the President's office. President Budreau was a tall,
thin man with a red pencil mustache and quick gestures. As they were
ushered into the overly ornate room the President looked up from a
sheaf of papers, but his eyes did not focus immediately on his
visitors. His face was a mask of worry and concentration.
"Colonel John
Christian Falkenberg, sir," Lieutenant Banners said. "And
Sergeant Major Calvin."
Budreau got to his
feet. "Pleased to see you, Falkenberg." His expression told
them differently; he looked at his visitors with faint distaste and
motioned Banners out of the room. When the door closed he asked, "How
many men did you bring with you?"
"Ten, Mr.
President. All we could bring aboard the carrier without arousing
suspicion. We were lucky to get that many. The Grand Senate had an
inspector at the loading docks to check for violation of the
anti-mercenary codes. If we hadn't bribed a port official to distract
him we wouldn't be here at all. Calvin and I would be on Tanith as
involuntary colonists."
"I see."
From his expression he wasn't surprised. John thought Budreau would
have been more pleased if the inspector had caught them. The
President tapped the desk nervously. "Perhaps that will be
enough. I understand the ship you came with also brought the Marines
who have volunteered to settle on Hadley. They should provide the
nucleus of an excellent constabulary. Good troops?"
"It was a
demobilized battalion," Falkenberg replied. "Those are the
troops the CD didn't want anymore. Could be the scrapings of every
guardhouse on twenty Planets. We'll be lucky if there's a real
trooper in the lot." Budreau's face relaxed into its former mask
of depression. Hope visibly drained from him.
"Surely you
have troops of your own," Falkenberg said.
Budreau picked up a
sheaf of papers. "It's all here. I was just looking it over when
you came in." He handed the report to Falkenberg. "There's
little encouragement in it, Colonel. I have never thought there was
any military solution to Hadley's problems, and this confirms that
fear. If you have only ten men plus a battalion of forced-labor
Marines, the military answer isn't even worth considering."
Budreau returned to
his seat. His hands moved restlessly over the sea of papers on his
desk. "If I were you, Falkenberg, I'd get back on that Navy boat
and forget Hadley."
"Why don't
you?"
"Because
Hadley's my home! No rabble is going to drive me off the plantation
my grandfather built with his own hands. They will not make me run
out." Budreau clasped his hands together until the knuckles were
white with the strain, but when he spoke again his voice was calm.
"You have no stake here. I do."
Falkenberg took the
report from the desk and leafed through the pages before handing it
to Calvin. "We've come a long way, Mr. President. You may as
well tell me what the problem is before I leave."
Budreau nodded
sourly. The red mustache twitched and he ran the back of his hand
across it. "It's simple enough. The ostensible reason you're
here, the reason we gave the Colonial Office for letting us recruit a
planetary constabulary, is the bandit gangs out in the hills. No one
knows how many of them there are, but they are strong enough to raid
farms. They also cut communications between Refuge and the
countryside whenever they want to."
"Yes."
Falkenberg stood in front of the desk because he hadn't been invited
to sit. If that bothered him it did not show. "Guerrilla
gangsters have no real chance if they've no political base."
Budreau nodded.
"But, as I am sure Vice President Bradford told you, they are
not the real problem." The President's voice was strong, but
there was a querulous note in it, as if he was accustomed to having
his conclusions argued against and was waiting for Falkenberg to
begin. "Actually, we could live with the bandits, but they get
political support from the Freedom Party. My Progressive Party is
larger than the Freedom Party, but the Progressives are scattered all
over the planet. The FP is concentrated right here in Refuge, and
they have God knows how many voters and about forty thousand
loyalists they can concentrate whenever they want to stage a riot."
"Do you have
riots very often?" John asked.
"Too often.
There's not much to control them with. I have three hundred men in
the Presidential Guard, but they're CD recruited and trained like
young Banners. They're not much use at riot control, and they're
loyal to the job, not to me, anyway. The FP's got men inside the
guard."
"So we can
scratch the President's Guard when it comes to controlling the
Freedom Party," John observed.
"Yes."
Budreau smiled without amusement. "Then there's my police force.
My police were all commanded by CD officers who are pulling out. My
administrative staff was recruited and trained by BuRelock, and all
the competent people have been recalled to Earth."
"I can see that
would create a problem."
"Problem? It's
impossible," Budreau said."There's nobody left with skill
enough to govern, but I've got the job and everybody else wants it. I
might be able to scrape up a thousand Progressive partisans and
another fifteen thousand party workers who would fight for us in a
pinch, but they have no training. How can they face the FP's forty
thousand?"
"You seriously
believe the Freedom Party will revolt?"
"As soon as the
CD's out, you can count on it. They've demanded a new constitutional
convention to assemble just after the CoDominium Governor leaves. If
we don't give them the convention they'll rebel and carry a lot of
undecided with them. After all, what's unreasonable about a
convention when the colonial governor has gone?"
"I see."
"And if we do
give them the convention they want, they'll drag things out until
there's nobody left in it but their people. My Party is composed of
working voters. How can they stay on day after day? The FR's
unemployed will sit it out until they can throw the Progressives out
of office. Once they get in they'll ruin the planet. Under the
circumstances I don't see what a military man can do for us, but Vice
President Bradford insisted that we hire you."
"Perhaps we can
think of something," Falkenberg said smoothly. "I've no
experience in administration as such, but Hadley is not unique. I
take it the Progressive Party is mostly old settlers?"
"Yes and no.
The Progressive Party wants to industrialize Hadley, and some of our
farm families oppose that. But we want to do it slowly. We'll close
most of the mines and take out only as much thorium as we have to
sell to get the basic industrial equipment. I want to keep the rest
for our own fusion generators, because we'll need it later.
"We want to
develop agriculture and transport, and cut the basic citizen ration
so that we'll have the fusion power available for our new industries.
I want to close out convenience and consumer manufacturing and keep
it closed until we can afford it." Budreau's voice rose and his
eyes shone; it was easier to see why he had become popular. He
believed in his cause.
"We want to
build the tools of a self-sustaining world and get along without the
CoDominium until we can rejoin the human race as equals!"
Budreau caught himself and frowned. "Sorry. Didn't mean to make
a speech. Have a seat, won't you?"
"Thank you."
Falkenberg sat in a heavy leather chair and looked around the room.
The furnishings were ornate, and the office decor had cost a fortune
to bring from Earth; but most of it was tasteless - spectacular
rather than elegant. The Colonial Office did that sort of thing a
lot, and Falkenberg wondered which Grand Senator owned the firm that
supplied office furnishings. "What does the opposition want?"
"I suppose you
really do need to know all this." Budreau frowned and his
mustache twitched nervously. He made an effort to relax, and John
thought the President had probably been an impressive man once. "The
Freedom Party's slogan is 'Service to the People.' Service to them
means consumer goods now. They want strip mining. That's got the
miners' support, you can bet. The FP will rape this planet to buy
goods from other systems, and to hell with how they're paid for.
Runaway inflation will be only one of the problems they'll create."
"They sound
ambitious."
"Yes. They even
want to introduce internal combustion engine economy. God knows how,
there's no support technology here, but there's oil. We'd have to buy
all that from off planet, there's no heavy industry here to make
engines even if the ecology could absorb them, but that doesn't
matter to the FP. They promise cars for everyone. Instant
modernization. More food, robotic factories, entertainment ... in
short, paradise and right now."
"Do they mean
it, or is that just slogans?" "I think most of them mean
it," Budreau answered. "It's hard to believe, but I think
they do." "Where do they say they'll get the money?"
"Soaking the rich, as if there were enough wealthy people here
to matter. Total confiscation of everything everyone owns wouldn't
pay for all they promise. Those people have no idea of the realities
of our situation, and their leaders are ready to blame anything
that's wrong on the Progressive Party, CoDominium administrators,
anything but admit that what they promise just isn't possible. Some
of the Party leaders may know better, but they don't admit it if they
do."
"I take it that
program has gathered support." "Of course it has,"
Budreau fumed. "And every BuRelock ship brings thousands more
ready to vote the FP line."
Budreau got up from
his desk and went to a cabinet on the opposite wall. He took out a
bottle of brandy and three glasses and poured, handing them to Calvin
and Falkenberg. Then he ignored the sergeant but waited for
Falkenberg to lift his glass.
"Cheers."
Budreau drained the glass at one gulp. "Some of the oldest
families on Hadley have joined the damned Freedom Party. They're
worried about the taxes I've proposed! The FP won't leave them
anything at all, but they still join the opposition in hopes of
making deals. You don't look surprised."
"No, sir. It's
a story as old as history, and a military man reads history."
Budreau looked up in
surprise. "Really?"
"A smart
soldier wants to know the causes of wars.
Also how to end
them. After all, war is the normal state of affairs, isn't it? Peace
is the name of the ideal we deduce from the fact that there have been
interludes between wars." Before Budreau could answer,
Falkenberg said, "No matter. I take it you expect armed
resistance immediately after the CD pulls out."
"I hoped to
prevent it. Bradford thought you might be able to do something, and
I'm gifted at the art of persuasion." The President sighed. "But
it seems hopeless. They don't want to compromise. They think they can
get a total victory."
"I wouldn't
think they'd have much of a record to run on," Falkenberg said.
Budreau laughed.
“The FP partisans claim credit for driving the CoDominium out,
Colonel."
They laughed
together. The CoDominium was leaving because the mines were no longer
worth enough to make it pay to govern Hadley. If the mines were as
productive as they'd been in the past, no partisans would drive the
Marines away.
Budreau nodded as if
reading his thoughts. "Well, they have people believing it
anyway. There was a campaign of terrorism for years, nothing very
serious. It didn't threaten the mine shipments, or the Marines would
have put a stop to it. But they have demoralized the capital police.
Out in the bush people administer their own justice, but here in
Refuge the FP gangs control a lot of the city."
Budreau pointed to a
stack of papers on one corner of the desk. "Those are
resignations from the force. I don't even know how many police I'll
have left when the CD pulls out." Budreau's fist tightened as if
he wanted to pound on the desk, but he sat rigidly still. "Pulls
out. For years they ran everything, and now they're leaving us to
clean up. I'm President by courtesy of the CoDominium. They put me in
office, and now they're leaving."
"At least
you're in charge," Falkenberg said. "The BuRelock people
wanted someone else. Bradford talked them out of it."
"Sure. And it
cost us a lot of money. For what? Maybe it would have been better the
other way."
"I thought you
said their policies would ruin Hadley."
"I did say
that. I believe it. But the policy issues came after the split, I
think." Budreau was talking to himself as much as to John. "Now
they hate us so much they oppose anything we want out of pure spite.
And we do the same thing."
"Sounds like
CoDominium politics. Russkis and U.S. in the Grand Senate. Just like
home." There was no humor in the polite laugh that followed.
Budreau opened a
desk drawer and took out a parchment. "I'll keep the agreement,
of course. Here's your commission as commander of the constabulary.
But I still think you might be better off taking the next ship out.
Hadley's problems can't be solved by military consultants."
Sergeant Major
Calvin snorted. The sound was almost inaudible, but Falkenberg knew
what he was thinking. Budreau shrank from the bald term "mercenary,"
as if "military consultant" were easier on his conscience.
John finished his drink and stood.
"Mr. Bradford
wants to see you," Budreau said. "Lieutenant Banners will
be outside to show you to his office."
"Thank you,
sir." Falkenberg strode from the big room. As he closed the door
he saw Budreau going back to the liquor cabinet.
Vice President
Ernest Bradford was a small man with a smile that never seemed to
fade. He worked at being liked, but it didn't always work. Still, he
had gathered a following of dedicated party workers, and he fancied
himself an accomplished politician.
When Banners showed
Falkenberg into the office, Bradford smiled even more broadly, but he
suggested that Banners should take Calvin on a tour of the Palace
guardrooms. Falkenberg nodded and let them go.
The Vice President's
office was starkly functional. The desks and chairs were made of
local woods with an indifferent finish, and a solitary rose in a
crystal vase provided the only color. Bradford was dressed in the
same manner, shapeless clothing bought from a cheap store.
"Thank God
you're here," Bradford said when the door was closed. "But
I'm told you only brought ten men. We can't do anything with just ten
men! You were supposed to bring over a hundred men loyal to us!"
He bounced up excitedly from his chair, then sat again. "Can you
do something?"
"There were ten
men in the Navy ship with me," Falkenberg said. "When you
show me where I'm to train the regiment I'll find the rest of the
mercenaries."
Bradford gave him a
broad wink and beamed. "Then you did bring more! We'll show them
- all of them. We'll win yet. What did you think of Budreau?"
"He seems
sincere enough. Worried, of course. I think I would be in his place."
Bradford shook his
head. "He can't make up his mind. About anything! He wasn't so
bad before, but lately he's had to be forced into making every
decision. Why did the Colonial Office pick him? I thought you were
going to arrange for me to be President. We gave you enough money."
"One thing at a
time," Falkenberg said. "The Undersecretary couldn't
justify you to the Minister. We can't get to everyone, you know. It
was hard enough for Professor Whitlock to get them to approve
Budreau, let alone you. We sweated blood just getting them to let go
of having a Freedom Party President."
Bradford's head
bobbed up and down like a puppet's. "I knew I could trust you,"
he said. His smile was warm, but despite all his efforts to be
sincere it did not come through. "You have kept your part of the
bargain, anyway. And once the CD is gone - "
"We'll have a
free hand, of course."
Bradford smiled
again. "You are a very strange man, Colonel Falkenberg. The talk
was that you were utterly loyal to the CoDominium. When Dr. Whitlock
suggested that you might be available I was astounded."
"I had very
little choice," Falkenberg reminded him.
"Yes."
Bradford didn't say that Falkenberg had little more now, but it was
obvious that he thought it. His smile expanded confidentially. "Well,
we have to let Mr. Hamner meet you now. He's the Second Vice
President. Then we can go to the Warner estate. I've arranged for
your troops to be quartered there, it's what you wanted for a
training ground. No one will bother you. You can say your other men
are local volunteers."
Falkenberg nodded.
"I'll manage. I'm getting rather good at cover stories lately."
"Sure."
Bradford beamed again. "By God, we'll win this yet." He
touched a button on his desk. "Ask Mr. Hamner to come in,
please." He winked at Falkenberg and said, "Can't spend too
long alone. Might give someone the idea that we have a conspiracy."
"How does
Hamner fit in?" Falkenberg asked.
"Wait until you
see him. Budreau trusts him, and he's dangerous. He represents the
technology people in the Progressive Party. We can't do without him,
but his policies are ridiculous. He wants to turn loose of
everything. If he has his way, there won't be any government. And his
people take credit for everything - as if technology was all there
was to government. He doesn't know the first thing about governing.
All the people we have to keep happy, the meetings, he thinks that's
all silly, that you can build a party by working like an engineer."
"In other
words, he doesn't understand the political realities,"
Falkenberg said. "Just so. I suppose he has to go, then."
Bradford nodded,
smiling again. "Eventually. But we do need his influence with
the technicians at the moment. And of course, he knows nothing about
any arrangements you and I have made."
"Of course."
Falkenberg sat easily and studied maps until the intercom announced
that Hamner was outside. He wondered idly if the office was safe to
talk in. Bradford was the most likely man to plant devices in other
people's offices, but he couldn't be the only one who'd benefit from
eavesdropping, and no place could be absolutely safe.
There isn't much I
can do if it is, Falkenberg decided. And it's probably clean.
George Hamner was a
large man, taller than Falkenberg and even heavier than Sergeant
Major Calvin. He had the relaxed movements of a big man, and much of
the easy confidence that massive size usually wins. People didn't
pick fights with George Hamner. His grip was gentle when they shook
hands, but he closed his fist relentlessly, testing Falkenberg
carefully. As he felt answering pressure he looked surprised, and the
two men stood in silence for a long moment before Hamner relaxed and
waved to Bradford.
"So you're our
new colonel of constabulary," Hamner said. "Hope you know
what you're getting into. I should say I hope you don't know. If you
know about our problems and take the job anyway, we'll have to wonder
if you're sane."
"I keep hearing
about how severe Hadley's problems are," Falkenberg said. "If
enough of you keep saying it, maybe I'll believe it's hopeless, but
right now I don't see it. So we're outnumbered by the Freedom Party
people. What kind of weapons do they have to make trouble with?"
Hamner laughed.
"Direct sort of guy, aren't you? I like that. There's nothing
spectacular about their weapons, just a lot of them. Enough small
problems make a big problem, right? But the CD hasn't permitted any
big stuff. No tanks or armored cars, hell, there aren't enough cars
of any kind to make any difference. No fuel or power distribution net
ever built, so no way cars would be useful. We've got a subway,
couple of monorails for in-city stuff, and what's left of the
railroad . . . you didn't ask for a lecture on transportation, did
you?"
"No."
Hamner laughed.
"It's my pet worry at the moment. We don't have enough. Let's
see, weapons. ..." The big man sprawled into a chair. He hooked
one leg over the arm and ran his fingers through thick hair just
receding from his large brows. "No military aircraft, hardly any
aircraft at all except for a few choppers. No artillery, machine
guns, heavy weapons in general.
Mostly light-caliber
hunting rifles and shotguns. Some police weapons. Military rifles and
bayonets, a few, and we have almost all of them. Out in the streets
you can find anything, Colonel, and I mean literally anything. Bows
and arrows, knives, swords, axes, hammers, you name it."
"He doesn't
need to know about obsolete things like that," Bradford said.
His voice was heavy with contempt, but he still wore his smile.
"No weapon is
ever really obsolete," Falkenberg said. "Not in the hands
of a man who'll use it. What about body armor? How good a supply of
Nemourlon do you have?"
Hamner looked
thoughtful for a second. "There's some body armor in the
streets, and the police have some. The President's Guard doesn't use
the stuff. I can supply you with Nemourlon, but you'll have to make
your own armor out of it. Can you do that?"
Falkenberg nodded.
"Yes. I brought an excellent technician and some tools.
Gentlemen, the situation's about what I expected. I can't see why
everyone is so worried. We have a battalion of CD Marines, not the
best Marines perhaps, but they're trained soldiers. With the weapons
of a light infantry battalion and the training I can give the
recruits we'll add to the battalion, I'll undertake to face your
forty thousand Freedom Party people. The guerrilla problem will be
somewhat more severe, but we control all the food distribution in the
city. With ration cards and identity papers it should not be
difficult to set up controls."
Hamner laughed. It
was a bitter laugh. "You want to tell him, Ernie?"
Bradford looked
confused. "Tell him what?"
Hamner laughed
again. "Not doing your homework. It's in the morning report for
a couple of days ago. The Colonial Office has decided, on the advice
of BuRelock, that Hadley does not need any military weapons. The CD
Marines will be lucky to keep their rifles and bayonets. All the rest
of their gear goes out with the CD ships."
"But this is
insane." Bradford protested. He turned to Falkenberg. "Why
would they do that?"
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Perhaps some Freedom Party manager got to a Colonial Office
official. I assume they are not above bribery?"
"Of course
not," Bradford said. "We've got to do something!"
"If we can. I
suspect it will not be easy." Falkenberg pursed his lips into a
tight line. "I hadn't counted on this. It means that if we
tighten up control through food rationing and identity documents, we
face armed rebellion. How well organized are these FP partisans,
anyway?"
"Well organized
and well financed," Hamner said. "And I'm not so sure about
ration cards being the answer to the guerrilla problem anyway. The
CoDominium was able to put up with a lot of sabotage because they
weren't interested in anything but the mines, but we can't live with
the level of terror we have right now in this city. Some way or other
we have to restore order - and justice, for that matter."
"Justice isn't
something soldiers ordinarily deal with," Falkenberg said.
"Order's another matter. That I think we can supply."
"With a few
hundred men?" Hamner's voice was incredulous. "But I like
your attitude. At least you don't sit around and whine for somebody
to help you. Or sit and think and never make up your mind."
"We will see
what we can do," Falkenberg said.
"Yeah."
Hamner got up and went to the door. "Well, I wanted to meet you,
Colonel. Now I have. I've got work to do. I'd think Ernie does too,
but I don't notice him doing much of it." He didn't look at them
again, but went out, leaving the door open.
"You see,"
Bradford said. He closed the door gently. His smile was knowing. "He
is useless. We'll find someone to deal with the technicians as soon
as you've got everything else under control."
"He seemed to
be right on some points," Falkenberg said. "For example, he
knows it won't be easy to get proper police protection established. I
saw an example of what goes on in Refuge on the way here, and if it's
that bad all over - "
"You'll find a
way," Bradford said. He seemed certain. "You can recruit
quite a large force, you know. And a lot of the lawlessness is
nothing more than teenage street gangs. They're not loyal to
anything. Freedom Party, us, the CD, or anything else. They merely
want to control the block they live on."
"Sure. But
they're hardly the whole problem." "No. But you'll find a
way. And forget Hamner. His whole group is rotten. They're not real
Progressives, that's all." His voice was emphatic, and his eyes
seemed to shine. Bradford lowered his voice and leaned forward.
"Hamner used to be in the Freedom Party, you know. He claims to
have broken with them over technology policies, but you can never
trust a man like that."
"I see.
Fortunately, I don't have to trust him." Bradford beamed.
"Precisely. Now let's get you started. You have a lot of work,
and don't forget now, you've already agreed to train some party
troops for me."
VII
THE ESTATE WAS
large, nearly five kilometers on a side, located in low hills a day's
march from the city of Refuge. There was a central house and barns,
all made of local wood that resembled oak. The buildings nestled in a
wooded bowl in the center of the estate.
"You're sure
you won't need anything more?" Lieutenant Banners asked.
"No, thank
you," Falkenberg said. "The few men we have with us carry
their own gear. We'll have to arrange for food and fuel when the
others come, but for now we'll make do."
"All right,
sir," Banners said. "I'll go back with Mowrer and leave you
the car, then. And you've the animals. ..."
"Yes. Thank
you, Lieutenant."
Banners saluted and
got into the car. He started to say something else, but Falkenberg
had turned away and Banners drove off the estate.
Calvin watched him
leave. "That's a curious one," he said. "Reckon he'd
like to know more about what we're doing."
Falkenberg's lips
twitched into a thin smile. "I expect he would at that. You will
see to it that he learns no more than we want him to."
"Aye
aye, sir. Colonel, what was that Mr. Bradford was saying about
Party troopers? We going to have many of them?"
"I think so."
Falkenberg walked up the wide lawn toward the big ranch house.
Captain Fast and several of the others were waiting on the porch, and
there was a bottle of whiskey on the table.
Falkenberg poured a
drink and tossed it off. "I think we'll have quite a few
Progressive Party loyalists here once we start, Calvin. I'm not
looking forward to it, but they were inevitable."
"Sir?"
Captain Fast had been listening quietly.
Falkenberg gave him
a half-smile. "Do you really think the governing authorities are
going to hand over a monopoly of military force to us?"
"You think they
don't trust us."
"Amos, would
you trust us?"
"No sir,"
Captain Fast said. "But we could hope."
"We will not
accomplish our mission on hope, Captain. Sergeant Major."
"Sir."
"I have an
errand for you later this evening. For the moment, find someone to
take me to my quarters and then see about our dinner." "Sir."
Falkenberg woke to a
soft rapping on the door of his room. He opened his eyes and put his
hand on the pistol under his pillow, but made no other movement.
The rap came again.
"Yes," Falkenberg called softly.
"I'm back,
Colonel," Calvin answered.
"Right, Come
in." Falkenberg swung his feet out of his bunk and pulled on his
boots. He was fully dressed otherwise.
Sergeant Major
Calvin came in. He was dressed in the light synthetic leather tunic
and trousers of the CD Marine battledress. The total black of a night
combat coverall protruded from the war bag slung over his shoulder.
He wore a pistol on his belt and a heavy trench knife was slung in a
holster on his left breast.
A short wiry man
with a thin brown mustache came in with Calvin.
"Glad to see
you," Falkenberg said. "Have any trouble?"
"Gang of toughs
tried to stir up something as we was coming through the city,
Colonel," Calvin replied. He grinned wolfishly. "Didn't
last long enough to set any records."
"Anyone hurt?"
"None that
couldn't walk away."
"Good. Any
problem at the relocation barracks?"
"No, sir,"
Calvin replied. "They don't guard them places. Anybody wants to
get away from BuRelock's charity, they let 'em go. Without ration
cards, of course. This was just involuntary colonists, not convicts."
As he took Calvin's
report, Falkenberg was inspecting the man who had come in with him.
Major Jeremy Savage looked tired and much older than his forty-five
years. He was thinner than John remembered him.
"Bad as I've
heard?" Falkenberg asked him.
"No picnic,"
Savage replied in the clipped accents he'd learned when he grew up on
Churchill. "Didn't expect it to be. We're here, John Christian."
"Yes, and thank
God. Nobody spotted you? The men behave all right?"
"Yes, sir. We
were treated no differently from any other involuntary colonists. The
men behaved splendidly, and a week or two of hard exercise should get
us all back in shape. Sergeant Major tells me the battalion arrived
intact."
"Yes. They're
still at Marine barracks. That's our weak link, Jeremy. I want them
out here where we control who they talk to, and as soon as possible."
"You've got the
best ones. I think they'll be all right."
Falkenberg nodded.
"But keep your eyes open, Jerry, and be careful with the men
until the CD pulls out. I've hired Dr. Whitlock to check things for
us. He hasn't reported in yet, but I assume he's on Hadley."
Savage acknowledged
Falkenberg's wave and sat in the room's single chair. He took a glass
of whiskey from Calvin with a nod of thanks.
"Going all out
hiring experts, eh? He's said to be the best available. . . . My,
that's good. They don't have anything to drink on those BuRelock
ships."
"When Whitlock
reports in we'll have a full staff meeting," Falkenberg said.
"Until then, stay with the plan. Bradford is supposed to send
the battalion out tomorrow, and soon after that he'll begin
collecting volunteers from his party. We're supposed to train them.
Of course, they'll all be loyal to Bradford. Not to the Party and
certainly not to us."
Savage nodded and
held out the glass to Calvin for a refill.
"Now tell me a
bit about those toughs you fought on the way here, Sergeant Major,"
Falkenberg said.
"Street gang,
Colonel. Not bad at individual fightin', but no organization. Hardly
no match for near a hundred of us."
"Street gang."
John pulled his lower lip speculatively, then grinned. "How many
of our battalion used to be punks just like them, Sergeant Major?"
"Half anyway,
sir. Includin' me."
Falkenberg nodded.
"I think it might be a good thing if the Marines got to meet
some of those kids, Sergeant Major. Informally, you know."
"Sir!"
Calvin's square face beamed with anticipation.
"Now,"
Falkenberg continued. "Recruits will be our real problem. You
can bet some of them will try to get chummy with the troops. They'll
want to pump the men about their backgrounds and outfits. And the men
will drink, and when they drink they talk. How will you handle that,
Top Soldier?"
Calvin looked
thoughtful. "Won't be no trick for a while. We'll keep the
recruits away from the men except drill instructors, and DI's don't
talk to recruits. Once they've passed basic it'll get a bit stickier,
but hell, Colonel, troops like to lie about their campaigns. We'll
just encourage 'em to fluff it up a bit. The stories'll be so tall
nobody'll believe 'em."
"Right. I don't
have to tell both of you we're skating on pretty thin ice for a
while."
"We'll manage,
Colonel." Calvin was positive. He'd been with Falkenberg a long
time, and although any man can make mistakes, it was Calvin's
experience that Falkenberg would find a way out of any hole they
dropped into.
And if they didn't -
well, over every CD orderly room door was a sign. It said, "You
are Marines in order to die, and the Fleet will send you where you
can die." Calvin had walked under that sign to enlist, and
thousands of times since.
"That's it,
then, Jeremy," Falkenberg said.
"Yes, sir,"
Savage said crisply. He stood and saluted. "Damned if it doesn't
feel good to be doing this again, sir." Years fell away from his
face.
"Good to have
you back aboard," Falkenberg replied. He stood to return the
salute. "And thanks, Jerry. For everything. ..."
The Marine battalion
arrived the next day. They were marched to the camp by regular CD
Marine officers, who turned them over to Falkenberg. The captain in
charge of the detail wanted to stay around and watch, but Falkenberg
found an errand for him and sent Major Savage along to keep him
company. An hour later there was no one in the camp but Falkenberg's
people.
Two hours later the
troops were at work constructing their own base camp.
Falkenberg watched
from the porch of the ranch house. "Any problems, Sergeant
Major?" he asked.
Calvin fingered the
stubble on his square jaw. He shaved twice a day on garrison duty,
and at the moment he was wondering if he needed his second. "Nothing
a trooper's blast won't cure, Colonel. With your permission I'll draw
a few barrels of whiskey tonight and let 'em tie one on before the
recruits come in."
"Granted."
"They won't be
fit for much before noon tomorrow, but we're on schedule now. The
extra work'll be good for 'em."
"How many will
run?"
Calvin shrugged.
"Maybe none, Colonel. We got enough to keep 'em busy, and they
don't know this place very well. Recruits'll be a different story,
and once they get in we may have a couple take off."
"Yes. Well, see
what you can do. We're going to need every man. You heard President
Budreau's assessment of the situation."
"Yes, sir.
That'll make the troops happy. Sounds like a good fight comin' up."
"I think you
can safely promise the men some hard fighting, Sergeant Major. They'd
also better understand that there's no place to go if we don't win
this one. No pickups on this tour."
"No pickups on
half the missions we've been on, Colonel. I better see Cap'n Fast
about the brandy. Join us about midnight, sir? The men would like
that."
"I'll be along,
Sergeant Major."
Calvin's prediction
was wrong: the troops were useless throughout the entire next day.
The recruits arrived the day after.
The camp was a
flurry of activity. The Marines re-learned lessons of basic training.
Each maniple of five men cooked for itself, did its own laundry, made
its own shelters from woven synthetics and rope, and contributed men
for work on the encampment revetments and palisades.
The recruits did the
same kind of work under the supervision of Falkenberg's mercenary
officers and NCO's. Most of the men who had come with Savage on the
BuRelock colony transport were officers, centurions, sergeants, and
technicians, while there was an unusual number of monitors and
corporals within the Marine battalion. Between the two groups there
were enough leaders for an entire regiment.
The recruits learned
to sleep in their military great-cloaks, and to live under field
conditions with no uniform but synthi-leather battledress and boots.
They cooked their own food and constructed their own quarters and
depended on no one outside the regiment. After two weeks they were
taught to fashion their own body armor from Nemourlon. When it was
completed they lived in it, and any man who neglected his duties
found his armor weighted with lead. Maniples, squads, and whole
sections of recruits and veterans on punishment marches became a
common sight after dark.
The volunteers had
little time to fraternize with the Marine veterans. Savage and Calvin
and the other cadres relentlessly drove them through drills, field
problems, combat exercises, and maintenance work. The recruit
formations were smaller each day as men were driven to leave the
service, but from somewhere there was a steady supply of new troops.
These were all
younger men who came in small groups directly to the camp. They would
appear before the regimental orderly room at reveille, and often they
were accompanied by Marine veterans. There was attrition in their
formations as well as among the Party volunteers, but far fewer left
the service - and they were eager for combat training.
After six weeks Vice
President Bradford visited the camp. He arrived to find the entire
regiment in formation, the recruits on one side of a square, the
veterans on the other.
Sergeant Major
Calvin was reading to the men.
"Today is April
30 on Earth." Calvin's voice boomed out; he had no need for a
bullhorn. "It is Camerone Day. On April 30, 1863, Captain Jean
Danjou of the Foreign Legion, with two officers and sixty-two
legionnaires, faced two thousand Mexicans at the farmhouse of
Camerone.
"The battle
lasted all day. The legionnaires had no food or water, and their
ammunition was low. Captain Danjou was killed. His place was taken by
Lieutenant Villain. He also was killed.
"At five in the
afternoon all that remained were Lieutenant Clement Maudet and four
men. They had one cartridge each. At the command each man fired his
last round and charged the enemy with the bayonet.
"There were no
survivors."
The troops were
silent. Calvin looked at the recruits. They stood at rigid attention
in the hot sun. Finally Calvin spoke. "I don't expect none of
you to ever get it. Not the likes of you. But maybe one of you'll
someday know what Camerone is all about.
"Every man will
draw an extra wine ration tonight. Combat veterans will also get a
half-liter of brandy. Now attention to orders."
Falkenberg took
Bradford inside the ranch house. It was now fitted out as the
Officers' Mess, and they sat in one corner of the lounge. A steward
brought drinks.
"And what was
all that for?" Bradford demanded. "These aren't Foreign
Legionnaires! You're supposed to be training a planetary
constabulary."
"A constabulary
that has one hell of a fight on its hands," Falkenberg reminded
him. "True, we don't have any continuity with the Legion in this
outfit, but you have to remember that our basic cadre are CD Marines.
Or were. If we skipped Camerone Day, we'd have a mutiny."
"I suppose you
know what you're doing." Bradford sniffed. His face had almost
lost the perpetual half-smile he wore, but there were still traces of
it. "Colonel, I have a complaint from the men we've assigned as
officers. My Progressive Party people have been totally segregated
from the other troops, and they don't like it. I don't like it."
Falkenberg shrugged.
"You chose to commission them before training, Mr. Bradford,
That makes them officers by courtesy, but they don't know anything.
They would look ridiculous if I mixed them with the veterans, or even
the recruits, until they've learned military basics."
"You've got rid
of a lot of them, too - "
"Same reason,
sir. You have given us a difficult assignment. We're outnumbered and
there's no chance of outside support. In a few weeks we'll face forty
thousand Freedom Party men, and I won't answer for the consequences
if we hamper the troops with incompetent officers."
"All right. I
expected that. But it isn't just the officers, Colonel. The
Progressive volunteers are being driven out as well. Your training is
too hard. Those are loyal men, and loyalty is important here!"
Falkenberg smiled
softly. "Agreed. But I'd rather have one battalion of good men I
can trust than a regiment of troops who might break under fire. After
I've a bare minimum of first-class troops, I'll consider taking on
others for garrison duties. Right now the need is for men who can
fight."
"And you don't
have them yet - those Marines seemed well disciplined."
"In ranks,
certainly. But do you really think the CD would let go of reliable
troops?"
"Maybe not,"
Bradford conceded. "OK. You're the expert. But where the hell
are you getting the other recruits? Jailbirds, kids with police
records. You keep them while you let my Progressives run!"
"Yes, sir."
Falkenberg signaled for another round of drinks. "Mr. Vice
President - "
"Since when
have we become that formal?" Bradford asked. His smile was back.
"Sorry. I
thought you were here to read me out."
"No, of course
not. But I've got to answer to President Budreau, you know. And
Hamner. I've managed to get your activities assigned to my
department, but it doesn't mean I can tell the Cabinet to blow it."
"Right,"
Falkenberg said. "Well, about the recruits. We take what we can
get. It takes time to train green men, and if the street warriors
stand up better than your party toughs, I can't help it. You can tell
the Cabinet that when we've a cadre we can trust, we'll be easier on
volunteers. We can even form some kind of part-time militia. But
right now the need is for men tough enough to win this fight coming
up, and I don't know any better way to do it."
After that
Falkenberg found himself summoned to report to the Palace every week.
Usually he met only Bradford and Hamner; President Budreau had made
it clear that he considered the military force as an evil whose
necessity was not established, and only Bradford's insistence kept
the regiment supplied.
At one conference
Falkenberg met Chief Horgan of the Refuge police.
"The Chiefs got
a complaint, Colonel," President Budreau said.
"Yes sir?"
Falkenberg asked.
"It's those
damned Marines," Horgan said. He rubbed the point of his chin.
"They're raising hell in the city at night. We've never hauled
any of them in because Mr. Bradford wants us to go easy, but it's
getting rough."
"What are they
doing?" Falkenberg asked.
"You name it.
They've taken over a couple of taverns and won't let anybody in
without their permission, for one thing. And they have fights with
street gangs every night.
"We could live
with all that, but they go to other parts of town, too. Lots of them.
They go into taverns and drink all night, then say they can't pay. If
the owner gets sticky, they wreck the place. ..."
"And they're
gone before your patrols get there," Falkenberg finished for
him. "It's an old tradition. They call it System D, and more
planning effort goes into that operation than I can ever get them to
put out in combat. I'll try to put a stop to System D, anyway."
"It would help.
Another thing. Your guys go into the roughest parts of town and start
fights whenever they can find anyone to mix with."
"How are they
doing?" Falkenberg asked interestedly.
Horgan grinned, then
caught himself after a stern look from Budreau. "Pretty well. I
understand they've never been beaten. But it raises hell with the
citizens, Colonel. And another trick of theirs is driving people
crazy! They march through the streets fifty strong at all hours of
the night playing bagpipes! Bagpipes in the wee hours, Colonel, can
be a frightening thing."
Falkenberg thought
he saw a tiny flutter in Horgan's left eye, and the police chief was
holding back a wry smile.
"I wanted to
ask you about that, Colonel," Second Vice President Hamner said.
"This is hardly a Scots outfit, why do they have bagpipes
anyway?"
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Pipes are standard with many Marine regiments. Since the Russki
CD outfits started taking up Cossack customs, the Western bloc
regiments adopted their own. After all, the Marines were formed out
of a number of old military units. Foreign Legion, Highlanders - a
lot of men like the pipes. I'll confess I do myself."
"Sure, but not
in my city in the middle of the night," Horgan said.
John grinned openly
at the chief of police. "I'll try to keep the pipers off the
streets at night. I can imagine they're not good for civilian morale.
But as to keeping the Marines in camp, how do I do it? We need every
one of them, and they're volunteers. They can get on the CD carrier
and ship out when the rest go, and there's not one damned thing we
can do about it."
"There's less
than a month until they haul down that CoDominium flag,"
Bradford added with satisfaction. He glanced at the CD banner on its
staff outside. Eagle with red shield and black sickle and hammer on
its breast; red stars and blue stars around it. Bradford nodded in
satisfaction. It wouldn't be long.
That flag meant
little to the people of Hadley. On Earth it was enough to cause riots
in nationalistic cities in both the U.S. and the Soviet Union, while
in other countries it was a symbol of the alliance that kept any
other nation from rising above second-class status. To Earth the
CoDominium Alliance represented peace at a high price, too high for
many.
For Falkenberg it
represented nearly thirty years of service ended by court martial.
Two weeks to go.
Then the CoDominium governor would leave, and Hadley would be
officially independent. Vice President Bradley visited the camp to
speak to the recruits.
He told them of the
value of loyalty to the government, and the rewards they would all
have as soon as the Progressive Party was officially in power. Better
pay, more liberties, and the opportunity for promotion in an
expanding army; bonuses and soft duty. His speech was full of
promises, and Bradford was quite proud of it.
When he had
finished, Falkenberg took the Vice President into a private room in
the Officers' Mess and slammed the door.
"Damn you, you
don't ever make offers to my troops without my permission." John
Falkenberg's face was cold with anger.
"I'll do as I
please with my army, Colonel," Bradford replied smugly. The
little smile on his face was completely without warmth. "Don't
get snappy with me, Colonel Falkenberg. Without my influence Budreau
would dismiss you in an instant."
Then his mood
changed, and Bradford took a flask of brandy from his pocket. "Here,
Colonel, have a drink." The little smile was replaced with
something more genuine. "We have to work together, John. There's
too much to do, even with both of us working it won't all get done.
Sorry, I'll ask your advice in future, but don't you think the
troops, should get to know me? I'll be President soon." He
looked to Falkenberg for confirmation.
"Yes, sir,"
John took the flask and held it up for a toast. "To the new
president of Hadley. I shouldn't have snapped at you, but don't make
offers to troops who haven't proved themselves. If you give men
reason to think they're good when they're not, you'll never have an
army worth its pay."
"But they've
done well in training. You said so."
"Sure, but you
don't tell them that. Work them until they've nothing more to give,
and let them know that's just barely satisfactory. Then one day
they'll give you more than they knew they had in them. That's the day
you can offer rewards, only by then you won't need to."
Bradford nodded
grudging agreement. "If you say so. But I wouldn't have thought
- "
"Listen,"
Falkenberg said.
A party of recruits
and their drill masters marched past outside. They were singing and
their words came in the open window.
"When you've
blue'd your last tosser, on the brothel and the booze, and you're out
in the cold on your ear, you hump your bundle on the rough, and tell
the sergeant that you're tough, and you'll do him the favor of his
life. He will cry and he will scream, and he'll curse his rotten
luck, and he'll ask why he was ever born. If you're lucky he will
take you, and he'll do his best to break you, and they'll feed you
rotten monkey on a knife."
"Double time,
heaow!" The song broke off as the men ran across the central
parade ground.
Bradford turned away
from the window. "That sort of thing is all very well for the
jailbirds, Colonel, but I insist on keeping my loyalists as well. In
future you will dismiss no Progressive without my approval. Is that
understood?"
Falkenberg nodded.
He'd seen this coming for some time. "In that case, sir, it
might be better to form a separate battalion. I will transfer all of
your people into the Fourth Battalion and put them under the officers
you've appointed. Will that be satisfactory?"
"If you'll
supervise their training, yes."
"Certainly,"
Falkenberg said.
"Good."
Bradford's smile broadened, but it wasn't meant for Falkenberg. "I
will also expect you to consult me about any promotions in that
battalion. You agree to that, of course."
"Yes, sir.
There may be some problems about finding locals to fill the senior
NCO slots. You've got potential monitors and corporals, but they've
not the experience to be sergeants and centurions."
"You'll find a
way, I'm sure," Bradford said carefully. "I have some
rather, uh, special duties for the Fourth Battalion, Colonel. I'd
prefer it to be entirely staffed by Party loyalists of my choosing.
Your men should only be there to supervise training, not as their
commanders. Is this agreed?"
"Yes, sir."
Bradford's smile was
genuine as he left the camp.
Day after day the
troops sweated in the bright blue-tinted sunlight. Riot control,
bayonet drill, use of armor in defense and attacks against men with
body armor; and more complex exercises as well. There were forced
marches under the relentless direction of Major Savage, the harsh
shouts of sergeants and centurions, Captain Amos Fast with his tiny
swagger stick and biting sarcasm. . . .
Yet the number
leaving the regiment was smaller now, and there was still a flow of
recruits from the Marine's nocturnal expeditions. The recruiting
officers could even be selective, although they seldom were. The
Marines, like the Legion before it, took anyone willing to fight; and
Falkenberg's officers were all Marine trained.
Each night groups of
Marines sneaked past sentries to drink and carouse with the field
hands of nearby ranchers. They gambled and shouted in local taverns,
and they paid little attention to their officers. There were many
complaints, and Bradford's protests became stronger.
Falkenberg always
gave the same answer. "They always come back, and they don't
have to stay here. How do you suggest I control them? Flogging?"
The constabulary
army had a definite split personality, with recruits treated harsher
than veterans. Meanwhile the Fourth Battalion grew larger each day.
VIII
GEORGE HAMNER TRIED
to get home for dinner every night, no matter what it might cost him
in night work later. He thought he owed at least that to his family.
His walled estate
was just outside the Palace district. It had been built hy his
grandfather with money borrowed from American Express. The old man
had been proud of paying back every cent before it was due. It was a
big comfortable place which cunningly combined local materials and
imported luxuries, and George was always glad to return there.
At home he felt he
was master of something, that at least one thing was under his
control. It was the only place in Refuge where he could feel that
way.
In less than a week
the CoDominium Governor would leave. Independence was near, and it
should be a time of hope, but George Hamner felt only dread. Problems
of public order were not officially his problem. He held the Ministry
of Technology, but the breakdown in law and order couldn't be
ignored. Already half of Refuge was untouched by government.
There were large
areas where the police went only in squads or not at all, and
maintenance crews had to be protected or they couldn't enter. For now
the CoDominium Marines escorted George's men, but what would it be
like when the Marines were gone?
George sat in the
paneled study and watched lengthening shadows in the groves outside.
They made dancing patterns through the trees and across neatly
clipped lawns. The outside walls spoiled the view of Raceway Channel
below, and Hamner cursed them.
Why must we have
walls? Walls and a dozen armed men to patrol them. I can remember
when I sat in this room with my father, I was no more than six, and
we could watch boats in the Channel. And later, we had such big
dreams for Hadley. Grandfather telling why he had left Earth, and
what we could do here. Freedom and plenty. We had a paradise, and
Lord, Lord, what have we done with it?
He worked for an
hour, but accomplished little. There weren't any solutions, only
chains of problems that led back into a circle. Solve one and all
would fall into place, but none were soluble without the others. And
yet, if we had a few years, he thought. A few years, but we aren't
going to get them.
In a few years the
farms will support the urban population if we can move people out to
the agricultural interior and get them working - but they won't leave
Refuge, and we can't make them do it.
If we could, though.
If the city's population could be thinned, the power we divert to
food manufacture can be used to build a transport net. Then we can
get more to live in the interior, and we can get more food into the
city. We could make enough things to keep country life pleasant, and
people will want to leave Refuge. But there's no way to the first
step. The people don't want to move and the Freedom Party promises
they won't have to.
George shook his
head. Can Falkenberg's army make them leave? If he gets enough
soldiers can he forcibly evacuate part of the city? Hamner shuddered
at the thought. There would be resistance, slaughter, civil war.
Hadley's independence can't be built on a foundation of blood. No.
His other problems
were similar. The government was bandaging Hadley's wounds, but no
more. Treating symptoms because there was never enough control over
events to treat causes.
He picked up a
report on the fusion generators. They needed spare parts, and he
wondered how long even this crazy standoff would last. He couldn't
really expect more than a few years even if everything went well. A
few years, and then famine because the transport net couldn't be
built fast enough. And when the generators failed, the city's food
supplies would be gone, sanitation services crippled . . . famine and
plague. Were those horsemen better than conquest and war?
He thought of his
interview with the Freedom Party leaders. They didn't care about the
generators because they were sure that Earth wouldn't allow famines
on Hadley. They thought Hadley could use her own helplessness as a
weapon to extract payments from the CoDominium.
George cursed under
his breath. They were wrong. Earth didn't care, and Hadley was too
far away to interest anyone. But even if they were right they were
selling Hadley's independence, and for what? Didn't real independence
mean anything to them?
Laura came in with a
pack of shouting children.
"Already time
for bed?" he asked. The four-year-old picked up his pocket
calculator and sat on his lap, punching buttons and watching the
numbers and lights flash.
George kissed them
all and sent them out, wondering as he did what kind of future they
had.
I should get out of
politics, he told himself. I'm not doing any good, and I'll get Laura
and the kids finished along with me. But what happens if we let go?
What future will they have then?
"You look
worried." Laura was back after putting the children to bed.
"It's only a few days - "
"Yeah."
"And what
really happens then?" she asked. "Not the promises we keep
hearing. What really happens when the CD leaves? It's going to be
bad, isn't it?"
He pulled her to
him, feeling her warmth, and tried to draw comfort from her nearness.
She huddled against him for a moment, then pulled away.
"George,
shouldn't we take what we can and go east? We wouldn't have much, but
you'd be alive."
"It won't be
that bad," he told her. He tried to chuckle, as if she'd made a
joke, but the sound was hollow. She didn't laugh with him.
"There'll be
time for that later," he told her. "If things don't work.
But it should be all right at first. We've got a planetary
constabulary. It should be enough to protect the government - but I'm
moving all of you into the palace in a couple of days."
"The army,"
she said with plenty of contempt. "Some army, Georgie.
Bradford's volunteers who'd kill you - and don't think he wouldn't
like to see you dead, either. And those Marines! You said yourself
they were the scum of space."
"I said it. I
wonder if I believe it. There's something strange happening here,
Laura. Something I don't understand."
She sat on the couch
near his desk and curled her legs under herself. He'd always liked
that pose. She looked up, her eyes wide with interest. She never
looked at anyone else that way.
"I went to see
Major Karantov today," George said. "Thought I'd presume on
an old friend to get a little information about this man Falkenberg.
Boris wasn't in his office, but one of the junior lieutenants, fellow
named Kleist - "
"I've met him,"
Laura said. "Nice boy. A little young."
"Yes. Anyway,
we got into a conversation about what happens after independence. We
discussed street fighting, and the mob riots, you know, and I said I
wished we had some reliable Marines instead of the demobilized outfit
they were leaving here. He looked funny and asked just what did I
want, the Grand Admiral's Guard?"
"That's
strange."
"Yes, and when
Boris came in and I asked what Kleist meant, Boris said the kid was
new and didn't know what he was talking about."
"And you think
he did?" Laura asked. "Boris wouldn't lie to you. Stop
that!" she added hastily. "You have an appointment."
"It can wait."
"With only a
couple of dozen cars on this whole planet and one of them coming for
you, you will not keep it waiting while you make love to your wife,
George Hamner!" Her eyes flashed, but not with anger. "Besides,
I want to know what Boris told you." She danced away from him,
and he went back to the desk.
"It's not just
that," George said. "I've been thinking about it. Those
troops don't look like misfits to me. Off duty they drink, and
they've got the field hands locking their wives and daughters up, but
you know, come morning they're out on that drill field. And
Falkenberg doesn't strike me as the type who'd put up with
undisciplined men."
"But - "
He nodded. "But
it doesn't make sense. And there's the matter of the officers. He's
got too many, and they're not from Hadley. That's why I'm going out
there tonight, without Bradford."
"Have you asked
Ernie about it?"
"Sure. He says
he's got some Party loyalists training as officers. I'm a little
slow, Laura, but I'm not that stupid. I may not notice everything,
but if there were fifty Progressives with military experience I'd
know. Bradford is lying, and why?"
Laura looked
thoughtful and pulled her lower lip in a gesture that Hamner hardly
noticed now, although he'd kidded her about it before they were
married. "He lies for practice," she said. "But his
wife has been talking about independence, and she let something slip
about when Ernie would be President she'd make some changes."
"Well, Ernie
expects to succeed Budreau."
"No,"
Laura said. "She acted like it would be soon. Very soon."
George Hamner shook
his massive head. "He hasn't the guts for a coup," he said
firmly. "And the technicians would walk out in a second. They
can't stand him and he knows it."
"Ernest
Bradford has never recognized any limitations," Laura said. "He
really believes he can make anyone like him if he'll just put out the
effort. No matter how many times he's kicked a man, he thinks a few
smiles and apologies will fix it. But what did Boris tell you about
Falkenberg?"
"Said he was as
good as we can get. A top Marine commander, started as a Navy man and
went over to Marines because he couldn't get fast enough promotions
in the Navy."
"An ambitious
man. How ambitious?"
"Don't know."
"Is he
married?"
"I gather he
once was, but not for a long time. I got the scoop on the court
martial. There weren't any slots open for promotion. But when a
review board passed Falkenberg over for a promotion that the admiral
couldn't have given him in the first place, Falkenberg made such a
fuss about it that he was dismissed for insubordination."
"Can you trust
him, then?" Laura asked. "His men may be the only thing
keeping you alive - "
"I know. And
you, and Jimmy, and Christie, and Peter. ... I asked Boris that, and
he said there's no better man available. You can't hire CD men from
active duty. Boris recommends him highly. Says troops love him, he's
a brilliant tactician, has experience in troop command and staff work
as well - "
"Sounds like
quite a catch."
"Yes. But
Laura, if he's all that valuable, why did they boot him out? My God,
it all sounds so trivial - "
The interphone
buzzed, and Hamner answered it absently. It was the butler to
announce that his car and driver were waiting. "I'll be late,
sweetheart. Don't wait up for me. But you might think about it ... I
swear Falkenberg is the key to something, and I wish I knew what."
"Do you like
him?" Laura asked.
"He isn't a man
who tries to be liked."
"I asked if you
like him."
"Yes. And
there's no reason to. I like him, but can I trust him?"
As he went out he
thought about that. Could he trust Falkenberg? With Laura's life ...
and the kids . . . and for that matter, with a whole planet that
seemed headed for hell and no way out.
The troops were
camped in an orderly square. Earth ramparts had been thrown up around
the perimeter, and the tents were pitched in lines that might have
been laid with a transit.
The equipment was
scrubbed and polished, blanket rolls were tight, each item in the
same place inside the two-man tents . . . but the men were milling
about, shouting, gambling openly in front of the campfires. There
were plenty of bottles in evidence even from the outer gates.
"Halt! Who's
there?"
Hamner started. The
car had stopped at the barricaded gate, but Hamner hadn't seen the
sentry. This was his first visit to the camp at night, and he was
edgy. "Vice President Hamner," he answered.
A strong light
played on his face from the opposite side of the car. Two sentries,
then, and both invisible until he'd come on them. "Good evening,
sir," the first sentry said. "I'll pass the word you're
here."
He raised a small
communicator to his lips. "Corporal of the Guard. Post Number
Five." Then he shouted the same thing, the call ringing clear in
the night. A few heads around campfires turned toward the gate, then
went back to their other activities.
Hamner was escorted
across the camp to officers' row. The huts and tent stood across a
wide parade ground from the densely packed company streets of the
troops and had their own guards.
Over in the company
area the men were singing, and Hamner paused to listen.
"I've a head
like a concertina, and I think I'm ready to die, and I'm here in the
clink for a thundrin' drink and blacking the Corporal's eye,
With another man's
cloak underneath of my head and a beautiful view of the yard, it's
the crapaud for me, and no more System D,
I was Drunk and
Resistin' the Guard!
Mad drunk and
resistin' the guard!
It's the crapaud for
me, and no more System D, I was Drunk and Resistin' the Guard."
Falkenberg came out
of his hut. "Good evening, sir. What brings you here?"
I'll just bet you'd
like to know, Hamner thought. "I have a few things to discuss
with you, Colonel. About the organization of the constabulary."
"Certainly."
Falkenberg was crisp and seemed slightly nervous. Hamner wondered if
he were drunk. "Shall we go to the Mess?" Falkenberg asked.
"More comfortable there, and I haven't got my quarters made up
for visitors."
Or you've got
something here I shouldn't see, George thought. Something or someone.
Local girl? What difference does it make? God, I wish I could trust
this man.
Falkenberg led the
way to the ranch house in the center of officers' row. The troops
were still shouting and singing, and a group was chasing each other
on the parade ground. Most were dressed in the blue and yellow
garrison uniforms Falkenberg had designed, but others trotted past in
synthi-leather battledress. They carried rifles and heavy packs.
"Punishment
detail," Falkenberg explained. "Not as many of those as
there used to be."
Sound crashed from
the Officers' Mess building: drums and bagpipes, a wild sound of war
mingled with shouted laughter. Inside, two dozen men sat at a long
table as white-coated stewards moved briskly about with whiskey
bottles and glasses.
Kilted bandsmen
marched around the table with pipes. Drummers stood in one corner.
The deafening noise stopped as Falkenberg entered, and everyone got
to his feet. Some were quite unsteady.
"Carry on,"
Falkenberg said, but no one did. They eyed Hamner nervously, and at a
wave from the mess president at the head of the table the pipers and
drummers went outside. Several stewards with bottles followed them.
The other officers sat and talked in low tones. After all the noise
the room seemed very quiet.
"We'll sit over
here, shall we?" the colonel asked. He led Hamner to a small
table in one corner. A steward brought two glasses of whiskey and set
them down.
The room seemed
curiously bare to Hamner. A few banners, some paintings; very little
else. Somehow, he thought, there ought to be more. As if they're
waiting. But that's ridiculous.
Most of the officers
were strangers, but George recognized half a dozen Progressives, the
highest rank a first lieutenant. He waved at the ones he knew and
received brief smiles that seemed almost guilty before the Party
volunteers turned back to their companions.
"Yes, sir?"
Falkenberg prompted.
"Just who are
these men?" George demanded. "I know they're not native to
Hadley. Where did they come from?"
"CoDominium
officers on the beach," Falkenberg answered promptly. "Reduction
in force. Lots of good men got riffed into early retirement. Some of
them heard I was coming here and chose to give up their reserve
ranks. They came out on the colony ship on the chance I'd hire them."
"And you did."
"Naturally I
jumped at the chance to get experienced men at prices we could
afford."
"But why all
the secrecy? Why haven't I heard about them before?"
Falkenberg shrugged.
"We've violated several of the Grand Senate's regulations on
mercenaries, you know. It's best not to talk about these things until
the CD has definitely gone. After that, the men are committed.
They'll have to stay loyal to Hadley." Falkenberg lifted his
whiskey glass. "Vice President Bradford knew all about it."
"I'll bet he
did." Hamner lifted his own glass. "Cheers."
"Cheers."
And I wonder what
else that little snake knows about, Hamner wondered. Without his
support Falkenberg would be out of here in a minute . . . and what
then?
"Colonel, your
organization charts came to my office yesterday. You've kept all the
Marines in one battalion with these newly hired officers. Then you've
got three battalions of locals, but all the Party stalwarts are in
the Fourth. The Second and Third are local recruits, but under your
own men."
"That's a fair
enough description, yes, sir," Falkenberg said.
And you know my
question, George thought. "Why, Colonel? A suspicious man would
say that you've got your own little army here, with a structure set
so that you can take complete control if there's ever a difference of
opinion between you and the government."
"A suspicious
man might say that," Falkenberg agreed. He drained his glass and
waited for George to do the same. A steward came over with freshly
filled glasses.
"But a
practical man might say something else," Falkenberg continued.
"Do you expect me to put green officers in command of those
guardhouse troops? Or your good-hearted Progressives in command of
green recruits?"
"But you've
done just that - "
"On Mr.
Bradford's orders I've kept the Fourth Battalion as free of my
mercenaries as possible. That isn't helping their training, either.
But Mr. Bradford seems to have the same complaint as you."
"I haven't
complained."
"I thought you
had," Falkenberg said. "In any event, you have your Party
force, if you wish to use it to control me. Actually you have all the
control you need anyway. You hold the purse strings. Without supplies
to feed these men and money to pay them, I couldn't hold them an
hour."
"Troops have
found it easier to rob the paymaster than fight for him before now,"
Hamner observed. "Cheers." He drained the glass, then
suppressed a cough. The stuff was strong, and he wasn't used to
drinking neat whiskey. He wondered what would happen if he ordered
something else, beer, or a mixed drink. Somehow it didn't seem to go
with the party.
"I might have
expected that remark from Bradford," Falkenberg said.
Hamner nodded.
Bradford was always suspicious of something. There were times when
George wondered if the First Vice President were quite sane, but that
was silly. Still, when the pressure was on, Ernie Bradford did manage
to get on people's nerves with his suspicions, and he would rather
see nothing done than give up control of anything.
"How am I
supposed to organize this coup?" Falkenberg demanded. "I
have a handful of men loyal to me. The rest are mercenaries, or your
locals. You've paid a lot to bring me and my staff here. You want us
to fight impossible odds with nonexistent equipment. If you also
insist on your own organization of forces, I cannot accept the
responsibility."
"I didn't say
that."
Falkenberg shrugged.
"If President Budreau so orders, and he would on your
recommendation, I'll turn command over to anyone he names."
And he'd name
Bradford, Hamner thought. I'd rather trust Falkenberg. Whatever
Falkenberg does will at least be competently done; with Ernie there
was no assurance he wasn't up to something, and none that he'd be
able to accomplish anything if he wasn't.
But. "What do
you want out of this, Colonel Falkenberg?"
The question seemed
to surprise the colonel. "Money, of course." Falkenberg
answered. "A little glory, perhaps, although that's not a word
much used nowadays. A position of responsibility commensurate with my
abilities. I've always been a soldier, and I know nothing else."
"And why didn't
you stay with the CD?"
"It is in the
record," Falkenberg said coldly. "Surely you know."
"But I don't."
Hamner was calm, but the whiskey was enough to make him bolder than
he'd intended to be, even in this camp surrounded by Falkenberg's
men. "I don't know at all. It makes no sense as I've been told
it. You had no reason to complain about promotions, and the admiral
had no reason to prefer charges. It looks as if you had yourself
cashiered."
Falkenberg nodded.
"You're nearly correct. Astute of you." The soldier's lips
were tight and his gray eyes bored into Hamner. "I suppose you
are entitled to an answer. Grand Senator Bronson has sworn to ruin me
for reasons you needn't know. If I hadn't been dismissed for a
trivial charge of technical insubordination, I'd have faced a series
of trumped-up charges. At least this way I'm out with a clean
record."
A clean record and a
lot of bitterness. "And that's all there is to it?"
"That's all."
It was plausible. So
was everything else Falkenberg said. Yet Hamner was sure that
Falkenberg was lying. Not lying directly, but not telling everything
either. Hamner felt that if he knew the right questions he could get
the answers, but there weren't any questions to ask.
And, Hamner thought,
I must either trust this man or get rid of him; and to irritate him
while keeping him is the stupidest policy of all.
The pipers came back
in, and the mess president looked to Falkenberg. "Something
more?" Falkenberg asked.
"No."
"Thank you."
The colonel nodded to the junior officer. The mess president waved
approval to the pipe major. Pipe major raised his mace, and the drums
crashed. The pipers began, standing in place at first, then marching
around the table. Officers shouted, and the room was filled with
martial cries. The party was on again.
George looked for
one of his own appointees and discovered that every Progressive
officer in the room was one of his own. There wasn't a single man
from Bradford's wing of the Party. Was that significant?
He rose and caught
the eye of a Progressive lieutenant. "I'll let Farquhar escort
me out, Colonel," Hamner said.
"As you
please."
The noise followed
them out of the building and along the regimental street. There were
more sounds from the parade ground and the camp beyond. Fires burned
brightly in the night.
"All right,
Jamie, what's going on here?" Hamner demanded.
"Going on, sir?
Nothing that I know of. If you mean the party, we're celebrating the
men's graduation from basic training. Tomorrow they'll start advanced
work."
"Maybe I meant
the party," Hamner said. "You seem pretty friendly with the
other officers."
"Yes, sir."
Hamner noted the enthusiasm in Jamie Farquhar's voice. The boy was
young enough to be caught up in the military mystique, and George
felt sorry for him. "They're good men," Jamie said.
"Yes, I suppose
so. Where are the others? Mr. Bradford's people?"
"They had a
field problem that kept them out of camp until late," Farquhar
said. "Mr. Bradford came around about dinner time and asked that
they be sent to a meeting somewhere. He spends a lot of time with
them."
"I expect he
does," Hamner said. "Look, you've been around the Marines,
Jamie. Where are those men from? What CD outfits?"
"I really don't
know, sir. Colonel Falkenberg has forbidden us to ask. He says that
the men start with a clean record here."
Hamner noted the
tone Farquhar used when he mentioned Falkenberg. More than respect.
Awe, perhaps. "Have any of them served with the colonel before?"
"I think so,
yes, sir. They don't like him. Curse the colonel quite openly. But
they're afraid of that big sergeant major of his. Calvin has offered
to whip any two men in the camp, and they can choose the rules. A few
of the newcomers tried it, but none of the Marines would. Not one."
"And you say
the colonel's not popular with the men?"
Farquhar was
thoughtful for a moment. "I wouldn't say he was popular, no
sir."
Yet, Hamner thought,
Boris had said he was. Whiskey buzzed in George's head. "Who is
popular?"
"Major Savage,
sir. The men like him. And Captain Fast, the Marines particularly
respect him. He's the adjutant."
"All right.
Look, can this outfit fight? Have we got a chance after the CD
leaves?" They stood and watched the scenes around the campfires.
Men were drinking heavily, shouting and singing and chasing each
other through the camp. There was a fist fight in front of one tent,
and no officer moved to stop it.
"Do you allow
that?" Hamner demanded.
"We try not to
interfere too much." Farquhar said. "The colonel says half
an officer's training is learning what not to see. Anyway, the
sergeants have broken up the fight, see?"
"But you let
the men drink."
"Sir, there's
no regulation against drinking. Only against being unfit for duty.
And these men are tough. They obey orders and they can fight. I think
we'll do rather well."
Pride. They've put
some pride into Jamie Farquhar, and maybe into some of those
jailbirds out there too. "All right, Jamie. Go back to your
party. I'll find my driver."
As he was driven
away, George Hamner felt better about Hadley's future, but he was
still convinced something was wrong; and he had no idea what it was.
IX
THE STADIUM HAD been
built to hold one hundred thousand people. There were at least that
many jammed inside it now, and an equal number swarmed about the
market squares and streets adjacent to it. The full CoDominium Marine
garrison was on duty to keep order, but it wasn't needed.
The celebration was
boisterous, but there wouldn't be any trouble today. The Freedom
Party was as anxious to avoid an incident as the Marines on this, the
greatest day for Hadley since Discovery. The CoDominium was turning
over power to local authority and getting out; and nothing must spoil
that.
Hamner and
Falkenberg watched from the upper tiers of the Stadium. Row after row
of plastisteel seats cascaded like a giant staircase down from their
perch to the central grassy field below. Every seat was filled, so
that the Stadium was a riot of color.
President Budreau
and Governor Flaherty stood in the Presidential box directly across
from Falkenberg and Hamner. The President's Guard, in blue uniforms,
and the CoDominium Marines, in their scarlet and gold, stood at rigid
attention around the officials.
The President's box
was shared by Vice President Bradford, the Freedom Party opposition
leaders, Progressive officials, officers of the retiring CoDominium
government, and everyone else who could beg an invitation. George
knew that some of them were wondering where he had got off to.
Bradford would
particularly notice Hamner's absence. He might, George thought, even
think the Second Vice President was out stirring up opposition or
rebellion. Ernie Bradford had lately been accusing Hamner of every
kind of disloyalty to the Progressive Party, and it wouldn't be long
before he demanded that Budreau dismiss him.
To the devil with
the little man! George thought. He hated crowds, and the thought of
standing there and listening to all those speeches, of being polite
to party officials whom he detested, was just too much. When he'd
suggested watching from another vantage point, Falkenberg had quickly
agreed. The soldier didn't seem to care too much for formal
ceremonies either. Civilian ceremonies, Hamner corrected himself;
Falkenberg seemed to like military parades.
The ritual was
almost over. The CD Marine bands had marched through the field, the
speeches had been made, presents delivered and accepted. A hundred
thousand people had cheered, and it was an awesome sound. The raw
power was frightening.
Hamner glanced at
his watch. As he did the Marine band broke into a roar of drums. The
massed drummers ceased to beat one by one until there was but a
single drum roll that went on and on and on, until finally it too
stopped. The entire Stadium waited.
One trumpet, no
more. A clear call, plaintive but triumphant, the final salute to the
CoDominium banner above the Palace. The notes hung in Hadley's air
like something tangible, and slowly, deliberately, the crimson and
blue banner floated down from the flagpole as Hadley's blazing gold
and green arose.
Across the city
uniformed men saluted these flags, one rising, the other setting. The
blue uniforms of Hadley saluted with smiles, the red-uniformed
Marines with indifference. The CoDominium banner rose and fell across
two hundred light years and seventy worlds in this year of Grace;
what difference would one minor planet make?
Hamner glanced at
John Falkenberg. The colonel had no eyes for the rising banners of
Hadley. His rigid salute was given to the CD flag, and as the last
note of the final trumpet salute died away Hamner thought he saw
Falkenberg wipe his eyes.
The gesture was so
startling that George looked again, but there was nothing more to
see, and he decided that he had been mistaken.
"That's it,
then," Falkenberg snapped. His voice was strained. "I
suppose we ought to join the party. Can't keep His Nibs waiting."
Hamner nodded. The
Presidential box connected directly to the Palace, and the officials
would arrive at the reception quickly while Falkenberg and Hamner had
the entire width of the crowded Stadium to traverse. People were
already streaming out to join the festive crowds on the grass in the
center of the bowl.
"Let's go this
way," George said. He led Falkenberg to the top of the Stadium
and into a small alcove where he used a key to open an inconspicuous
door. "Tunnel system takes us right into the Palace, across and
under the Stadium," he told Falkenberg. "Not exactly
secret, but we don't want the people to know about it because they'd
demand we open it to the public. Built for maintenance crews,
mostly." He locked the door behind them and waved expressively
at the wide interior corridor. "Place was pretty well designed,
actually."
The grudging tone of
admiration wasn't natural to him. If a thing was well done, it was
well done . . . but lately he found himself talking that way about
CoDominium projects. He resented the whole CD administration and the
men who'd dumped the job of governing after creating problems no one
could solve.
They wound down
stairways and through more passages, then up to another set of locked
doors. Through those was the Palace courtyard. The celebrations were
already under way, and it would be a long night.
George wondered what
would come now. In the morning the last CD boat would rise, and the
CoDominium would be gone. Tomorrow, Hadley would be alone with her
problems.
"Tensh-Hut!"
Sergeant Major Calvin's crisp command cut through the babble.
"Please be
seated, gentlemen." Falkenberg took his place at the head of the
long table in the command room of what had been the central
headquarters for the CoDominium Marines.
Except for the
uniforms and banners there were few changes from what people already
called "the old days." The officers were seated in the
usual places for a regimental staff meeting. Maps hung along one
wall, and a computer output screen dominated another. Stewards in
white coats brought coffee and discreetly retired behind the armed
sentries outside.
Falkenberg looked at
the familiar scene and knew the constabulary had occupied the Marine
barracks for two days; the Marines had been there twenty years.
A civilian lounged
in the seat reserved for the regimental intelligence officer. His
tunic was a riot of colors; he was dressed in current Earth fashions,
with a brilliant cravat and baggy sleeves. A long sash took the place
of a belt and concealed his pocket calculator. Hadley's upper classes
were only just beginning to wear such finery.
"You all know
why we're here," Falkenberg told the assembled officers. "Those
of you who've served with me before know I don't hold many staff
councils. They are customary among mercenary units, however. Sergeant
Major Calvin will represent the enlisted personnel of the regiment."
There were faint
titters. Calvin had been associated with John Falkenberg for eighteen
standard years. Presumably they had differences of opinion, but no
one ever saw them. The idea of the RSM opposing his colonel in the
name of the troops was amusing. On the other hand, no colonel could
afford to ignore the views of his sergeants' mess.
Falkenberg's frozen
features relaxed slightly as if he appreciated his own joke. His eyes
went from face to face. Everyone in the room was a former Marine, and
all but a very few had served with him before. The Progressive
officers were on duty elsewhere - and it had taken careful planning
by the adjutant to accomplish that without suspicion.
Falkenberg turned to
the civilian. "Dr. Whitlock, you've been on Hadley for
sixty-seven days. That's not very long to make a planetary study, but
it's about all the time we have. Have you reached any conclusions?"
"Yeah."
Whitlock spoke with an exaggerated drawl that most agreed was
affected. "Not much different from Fleet's evaluation, Colonel.
Can't think why you went to the expense of bringin' me out here. Your
Intelligence people know their jobs about as well as I know mine."
Whitlock sprawled
back in his seat and looked very relaxed and casual in the midst of
the others' military formality. There was no contempt in his manner.
The military had one set of rules and he had another, and he worked
well with soldiers.
"Your
conclusions are similar to Fleet's, then," Falkenberg said.
"With the
limits of analysis, yes, sir. Doubt any competent man could reach a
different conclusion. This planet's headed for barbarism within a
generation."
There was no sound
from the other officers but several were startled. Good training kept
them from showing it.
Whitlock produced a
cigar from a sleeve pocket and inspected it carefully. "You want
the analysis?" he asked.
"A summary,
please." Falkenberg looked at each face again. Major Savage and
Captain Fast weren't surprised; they'd known before they came to
Hadley. Some of the junior officers and company commanders had
obviously guessed.
"Simple
enough," Whitlock said. "There's no self-sustaining
technology for a population half this size. Without imports the
standard of livin's bound to fall. Some places they could take that,
but not here.
"Here, when
they can't get their pretty gadgets, 'stead of workin' the people
here in Refuge will demand the Government do something about it.
Guv'mint's in no position to refuse, either. Not strong enough.
"So they'll
have to divert investment capital into consumer goods. There'll be a
decrease in technological efficiency, and then fewer goods, leadin'
to more demands, and another cycle just like before. Hard to predict
just what comes after that, but it can't be good.
"Afore long,
then, they won't have the technological resources to cope even if
they could get better organized. It's not a new pattern, Colonel.
Fleet saw it comin' a while back. I'm surprised you didn't take their
word for it."
Falkenberg nodded.
"I did, but with something this important I thought I better get
another opinion. You've met the Freedom Party leaders, Dr. Whitlock.
Is there any chance they could keep civilization if they governed?"
Whitlock laughed. It
was a long drawn-out laugh, relaxed, totally out of place in a
military council. " 'Bout as much chance as for a 'gator to turn
loose of a hog, Colonel. Even assumin' they know what to do, how can
they do it? Suppose they get a vision and try to change their
policies? Somebody'll start a new party along the lines of the
Freedom Party's present thinkin'.
"Colonel, you
will never convince all them people there's things the Guv'mint just
cain't do. They don't want to believe it, and there's always goin' to
be slick talkers willin' to say it's all a plot. Now, if the
Progressive Party, which has the right ideas already, was to set up
to rule strong, they might be able to keep something goin' a while
longer."
"Do you think
they can?" Major Savage asked.
"Nope. They
might have fun tryin'," Whitlock answered. "Problem is that
independent countryside. There's not enough support for what they'd
have to do in city or country. Eventually that's all got to change,
but the revolution that gives this country a real powerful
government's going to be one bloody mess, I can tell you. A long
drawn-out bloody mess at that."
"Haven't they
any hope at all?" The questioner was a junior officer newly
promoted to company commander.
Whitlock sighed.
"Every place you look, you see problems. City's vulnerable to
any sabotage that stops the food plants, for instance. And the fusion
generators ain't exactly eternal, either. They're runnin' 'em hard
without enough time off for maintenance. Hadley's operating on its
capital, not its income, and pretty soon there's not goin' to be any
capital to operate off of."
"And that's
your conclusion," Falkenberg said. "It doesn't sound
precisely like the perfect place for us to retire to."
"Sure doesn't,"
Whitlock agreed. He stretched elaborately. "Cut it any way you
want to, this place isn't going to be self-sufficient without a lot
of blood spilled."
"Could they ask
for help from American Express?" the junior officer asked.
"They could
ask, but they won't get it," Whitlock said. "Son, this
planet was neutralized by agreement way back when the CD Governor
came aboard. Now the Russians aren't going to let a U.S. company like
AmEx take it back into the U.S. sphere, same as the U.S. won't let
the Commies come in and set up shop. Grand Senate would order a
quarantine on this system just like that." The historian snapped
his fingers. "Whole purpose of the CoDominium."
"One thing
bothers me," Captain Fast said. "You've been assuming that
the CD will simply let Hadley revert to barbarism. Won't BuRelock and
the Colonial Office come back if things get that desperate?"
"No."
"You seem
rather positive," Major Savage observed.
"I'm positive."
Dr. Whitlock said. "Budgets got cut again this year. They don't
have the resources to take on a place like Hadley. BuRelock's got its
own worries."
"But - "
The lieutenant who'd asked the questions earlier sounded worried.
"Colonel, what could happen to the Bureau of Relocation?"
"As Dr.
Whitlock says, no budget," Falkenberg answered. "Gentlemen,
I shouldn't have to tell you about that. You've seen what the Grand
Senate did to the Fleet. That's why you're demobilized. And Kaslov's
people have several new seats on the Presidium next year, just as
Harmon's gang has won some minor elections in the States. Both those
outfits want to abolish the CD, and they've had enough influence to
get everyone's appropriations cut to the bone."
"But population
control has to ship people out, sir," the lieutenant protested.
"Yes."
Falkenberg's face was grim; perhaps he was recalling his own
experiences with population control's methods. "But they have to
employ worlds closer to Earth, regardless of the problems that may
cause for the colonists. Marginal exploitation ventures like Hadley's
mines are being shut down. This isn't the only planet the CD's
abandoning this year." His voice took on a note of thick irony.
"Excuse me. Granting independence."
"So they can't
rely on CoDominium help," Captain Fast said.
"No. If
Hadley's going to reach takeoff, it's got to do it on its own."
"Which Dr.
Whitlock says is impossible," Major Savage observed. "John,
we've got ourselves into a cleft stick, haven't we?"
"I said it was
unlikely, not that it was impossible," Whitlock reminded them.
"It'll take a government stronger than anything Hadley's liable
to get, though. And some smart people making the right moves. Or
maybe there'll be some luck. Like a good, selective plague. Now
that'd do it. Plague to kill off the right people - but if it got too
many, there wouldn't be enough left to take advantage of the
technology, so I don't suppose that's the answer either."
Falkenberg nodded
grimly. "Thank you, Dr. Whitlock. Now, gentlemen, I want
battalion commanders and headquarters officers to read Dr. Whitlock's
report. Meanwhile, we have another item. Major Savage will shortly
make a report to the Progressive Party Cabinet, and I want you to pay
attention. We will have a critique after his presentation. Major?"
Savage stood and
went to the readout screen. "Gentlemen." He used the wall
console to bring an organization chart onto the screen.
"The regiment
consists of approximately two thousand officers and men. Of these,
five hundred are former Marines, and another five hundred are
Progressive partisans organized under officers appointed by Mr. Vice
President Bradford.
"The other
thousand are general recruits. Some of them are passable mercenaries,
and some are local youngsters who want to play soldier and would be
better off in a national guard. All recruits have received basic
training comparable to CD Marine ground basic without assault, fleet,
or jump schooling. Their performance has been somewhat better than we
might expect from a comparable number of Marine recruits in CD
service.
"This morning,
Mr. Bradford ordered the Colonel to remove the last of our officers
and noncoms from the Fourth Battalion, and as of this P.M. the Fourth
will be totally under the control of officers appointed by First Vice
President Bradford. He has not informed us of the reason for this
order."
Falkenberg nodded.
"In your estimate, Major, are the troops ready for combat
duties?" Falkenberg listened idly as he drank coffee. The
briefing was rehearsed, and he knew what Savage would answer. The men
were trained, but they did not as yet make up a combat unit.
Falkenberg waited until Savage had finished the presentation.
"Recommendations?"
"Recommended
that the Second Battalion be integrated with the First, sir. Normal
practice is to form each maniple with one recruit, three privates,
and a monitor in charge. With equal numbers of new men and veterans
we will have a higher proportion of recruits, but this will give us
two battalions of men under our veteran NCO's, with Marine privates
for leavening.
"We will thus
break up the provisional training organization and set up the
regiment with a new permanent structure, First and Second Battalions
for combat duties, Third composed of locals with former Marine
officers to be held in reserve. The Fourth will not be under our
command."
"Your reasons
for this organization?" Falkenberg asked.
"Morale, sir.
The new troops feel discriminated against. They're under harsher
discipline than the former Marines, and they resent it. Putting them
in the same maniples with the Marines will stop that."
"Let's see the
new structure. "
Savage manipulated
the input console and charts swam across the screen. The
administrative structure was standard, based in part on the CD
Marines and the rest on the national armies of Churchill. That wasn't
the important part. It wasn't obvious, but the structure demanded
that all the key posts be held by Falkenberg's mercenaries.
The best Progressive
appointees were either in the Third or Fourth Battalions, and there
were no locals with the proper command experience; so went the
justification. It looked good to Falkenberg, and there was no sound
military reason to question it. Bradford would be so pleased about
his new control of the Fourth that he wouldn't look at the rest; not
yet, anyway. The others didn't know enough to question it.
Yes, Falkenberg
thought. It ought to work. He waited until Savage was finished and
thanked him, then addressed the others. "Gentlemen, if you have
criticisms, let's hear them now. I want a solid front when we get to
the Cabinet meeting tomorrow, and I want every one of you ready to
answer any question. I don't have to tell you how important it is
that they buy this."
They all nodded.
"And another
thing," Falkenberg said. "Sergeant Major."
"As soon as the
Cabinet has bought off on this new organization plan, I want this
regiment under normal discipline."
"Break it to
'em hard, Top Soldier. Tell the Forty-second the act's over. From
here on recruits and old hands get treated alike, and the next man
who gives me trouble will wish he hadn't been born."
"Sir!"
Calvin smiled happily. The last months had been a strain for
everyone. Now the colonel was taking over again, thank God. The men
had lost some of the edge, but he'd soon put it back again. It was
time to take off the masks, and Calvin for one was glad of it.
X
THE SOUND OF fifty
thousand people shouting in unison can be terrifying. It raises fears
at a level below thought; creates a panic older than the fear of
nuclear weapons and the whole panoply of technology. It is raw, naked
power from a cauldron of sound.
Everyone in the
Palace listened to the chanting crowd. The Government people were
outwardly calm, but they moved quietly through the halls, and spoke
in low tones - or shouted for no reason. The Palace was filled with a
nameless fear.
The Cabinet meeting
started at dawn and continued until late in the morning. It had gone
on and on without settling anything. Just before noon Vice President
Bradford stood at his place at the council table with his lips tight
in rage. He pointed a trembling finger at George Hamner.
"It's your
fault!" Bradford shouted. "Now the technicians have joined
in the demand for a new constitution, and you control them. I've
always said you were a traitor to the Progressive Party!"
"Gentlemen,
please," President Budreau insisted. His voice held infinite
weariness. "Come now, that sort of language - "
"Traitor?"
Hamner demanded. "If your blasted officials would pay a little
attention to the technicians, this wouldn't have happened. In three
months you've managed to convert the techs from the staunchest
supporters of this Party into allies of the rebels despite everything
I could do."
"We need strong
government," Bradford said. His voice was contemptuous, and the
little half-smile had returned.
George Hamner made a
strong effort to control his anger. "You won't get it this way.
You've herded my techs around like cattle, worked them overtime for
no extra pay, and set those damned soldiers of yours onto them when
they protested. It's worth a man's life to have your constabulary mad
at him."
"Resisting the
police," Bradford said. "We can't permit that."
"You don't know
what government is!" Hamner said. His control vanished and he
stood, towering above Bradford. The little man retreated a step, and
his smile froze. "You've got the nerve to call me a traitor
after all you've done! I ought to break your neck!"
"Gentlemen!"
Budreau stood at his place at the head of the table. "Stop it!"
There was a roar from the Stadium. The Palace seemed to vibrate to
the shouts of the constitutional convention.
The Cabinet room
became silent for a moment. Wearily, Budreau continued. "This
isn't getting us anywhere. I suggest we adjourn for half an hour to
allow tempers to cool."
There was murmured
agreement from the others. "And I want no more of these
accusations and threats when we convene again," President
Budreau said. "Is that understood?"
Grudgingly the
others agreed. Budreau left alone. Then Bradford, followed by a
handful of his closest supporters. Other ministers rushed to be seen
leaving with him, as if it might be dangerous to be thought in
opposition to the First Vice President.
George Hamner found
himself alone in the room. He shrugged, and went out. Ernest Bradford
had been joined by a man in uniform. Hamner recognized Lieutenant
Colonel Cordova, commander of the Fourth Battalion of constabulary,
and a fanatic Bradford supporter. Hamner remembered when Bradford had
first proposed a commission for Cordova, and how unimportant it had
seemed then.
Bradford's group
went down the hall. They seemed to be whispering something together
and making a point of excluding the Second Vice President. Hamner
merely shrugged.
"Buy you a
coffee?" The voice came from behind and startled George. He
turned to see Falkenberg.
"Sure. Not that
it's going to do any good. We're in trouble, Colonel."
"Anything
decided?" Falkenberg asked. "It's been a long wait."
"And a useless
one. They ought to invite you into the Cabinet meetings. You might
have some good advice. There's sure as hell no reason to keep you
waiting in an anteroom while we yell at each other. I've tried to
change that policy, but I'm not too popular right now." There
was another shout from the Stadium.
"Whole
government's not too popular," Falkenberg said. "And when
that convention gets through ..."
"Another thing
I tried to stop last week," George told him. "But Budreau
didn't have the guts to stand up to them. So now we've got fifty
thousand drifters, with nothing better to do, sitting as an assembly
of the people. That ought to produce quite a constitution."
Falkenberg shrugged.
He might have been about to say something, George thought, but if he
were, he changed his mind. They reached the executive dining room and
took seats near one wall. Bradford's group had a table across the
room from them, and all of Bradford's people looked at them with
suspicion.
"You'll get
tagged as a traitor for sitting with me, Colonel." Hamner
laughed, but his voice was serious. "I think I meant that, you
know. Bradford's blaming me for our problems with the techs, and
between us he's also insisting that you aren't doing enough to
restore order in the city."
Falkenberg ordered
coffee. "Do I need to explain to you why we haven't?"
"No."
George Hamner's huge hand engulfed a water glass. "God knows
you've been given almost no support the last couple of months.
Impossible orders, and you've never been allowed to do anything
decisive. I see you've stopped the raids on rebel headquarters."
Falkenberg nodded.
"We weren't catching anyone. Too many leaks in the Palace. And
most of the time the Fourth Battalion had already muddied the water.
If they'd let us do our job instead of having to ask permission
through channels for every operation we undertake, maybe the enemy
wouldn't know as much about what we're going to do. Now I've quit
asking."
"You've done
pretty well with the railroad."
"Yes. That's
one success, anyway. Things are pretty quiet out in the country where
we're on our own. Odd, isn't it, that the closer we are to the expert
supervision of the government, the less effective my men seem to be?"
"But can't you
control Cordova's men? They're causing more people to desert us for
the rebels than you can count. I can't believe unrestrained brutality
is useful."
"Nor I. Unless
there's a purpose to it, force isn't a very effective instrument of
government. But surely you know, Mr. Hamner, that I have no control
over the Fourth. Mr. Bradford has been expanding it since he took
control, and it's now almost as large as the rest of the regiment -
and totally under his control, not mine."
"Bradford
accused me of being a traitor," Hamner said carefully. "With
his own army, he might have something planned. ..."
"You once
thought that of me," Falkenberg said.
"This is very
serious," Hamner said. "Ernie Bradford has built an army
only he controls, and he's making wild accusations."
Falkenberg smiled
grimly. "I wouldn't worry about it too much."
"You wouldn't?
No. You wouldn't. But I'm scared, Colonel. I've got my family to
think of, and I'm plenty scared." Well, George thought, now it's
out in the open; can I trust him not to be Ernie Bradford's man?
"You believe
Bradford is planning an illegal move?" Falkenberg asked.
"I don't know."
Suddenly George was afraid again.
He saw no sympathy
in the other man's eyes. And just who can I trust? Who? Anyone?
"Would you feel
safer if your family were in our regimental barracks?"
Falkenberg asked. "It could be arranged."
"It's about
time we had something out," George said at last. "Yes, I'd
feel safer with my wife and children under protection. But I'd feel
safer yet if you'd level with me."
"About what?"
Falkenberg's expression didn't change.
"Those Marines
of yours, to begin with," George said. "Those aren't penal
battalion men. I've watched them, they're too well disciplined. And
the battle banners they carry weren't won in any peanut actions, on
this planet or anywhere else. Just who are those men, Colonel?"
John Falkenberg
smiled thinly. "I've been wondering when you'd ask. Why haven't
you brought this up with President Budreau?"
"I don't know.
I think because I trust you more than Bradford, and the President
would only ask him . . . besides, if the President dismissed you
there'd be nobody able to oppose Ernie. If you will oppose him that
is - but you can stand up to him, anyway."
"What makes you
think I would?" Falkenberg asked. "I obey the lawful orders
of the civilian government - "
"Yeah, sure.
Hadley's going downhill so fast another conspiracy more or less can't
make any difference anyway ... you haven't answered my question."
"The battle
banners are from the Forty-second CD Marine Regiment,"
Falkenberg answered slowly. "It was decommissioned as part of
the budget cuts."
Forty-second, Hamner
thought for a second. He searched through his mental files to find
the information he'd seen on Falkenberg. "That was your
regiment."
"Certainly."
"You brought it
with you."
"A battalion of
it," John Falkenberg agreed. "Their women are waiting to
join them when we get settled. When the Forty-second was
decommissioned, the men decided to stay together if they could."
"So you brought
not only the officers, but the men as well."
"Yes."
There was still no change in Falkenberg's expression, although Hamner
searched the other man's face closely.
George felt both
fear and relief. If those were Falkenberg's men - "What is your
game, Colonel? You want more than just pay for your troops. I wonder
if I shouldn't be more afraid of you than of Bradford."
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Decisions you have to make, Mr. Hamner. I could give you my
word that we mean you no harm, but what would that be worth? I will
pledge to take care of your family. If you want us to."
There was another
shout from the Stadium, louder this time. Bradford and Lieutenant
Colonel Cordova left their table, still talking in low tones. The
conversation was animated, with violent gestures, as if Cordova were
trying to talk Bradford into something. As they left, Bradford
agreed.
George watched them
leave the room. The mob shouted again, making up his mind for him.
"I'll send Laura and the kids over to your headquarters this
afternoon."
"Better make it
immediately," Falkenberg said calmly.
George frowned. "You
mean there's not much time? Whatever you've got planned, it'll have
to be quick, but this afternoon?"
John shook his head.
"You seem to think I have some kind of master plan, Mr. Vice
President. No. I suggest you get your wife to our barracks before I'm
ordered not to undertake her protection, that's all. For the rest,
I'm only a soldier in a political situation."
"With Professor
Whitlock to advise you," Hamner said. He looked closely at
Falkenberg.
"Surprised you
with that one, didn't I?" Hamner demanded. "I've seen
Whitlock moving around and wondered why he didn't come to the
President. He must have fifty political agents in the convention
right now."
"You do seem
observant," Falkenberg said.
"Sure."
Hamner was bitter. "What the hell good does it do me? I don't
understand anything that's going on, and I don't trust anybody. I see
pieces of the puzzle, but I can't put them together. Sometimes I
think I should use what influence I've got left to get you out of the
picture anyway."
"As you will."
Falkenberg's smile was coldly polite. "Whom do you suggest as
guards for your family after that? The Chief of Police? Listen."
The Stadium roared
again in an angry sound that swelled in volume.
"You win,"
Hamner left the table and walked slowly back to the council room. His
head swirled.
Only one thing stood
out clearly. John Christian Falkenberg controlled the only military
force on Hadley that could oppose Bradford's people - and the Freedom
Party gangsters, who were the original enemies in the first place.
Can't forget them just because I'm getting scared of Ernie, George
thought.
He turned away from
the council room and went downstairs to the apartment he'd been
assigned. The sooner Laura was in the Marine barracks, the safer he'd
feel.
But am I sending her
to my enemies? O God, can I trust anyone at all? Boris said he was an
honorable man. Keep remembering that, keep remembering that. Honor.
Falkenberg has honor, and Ernie Bradford has none.
And me? What have I
got for leaving the Freedom Party and bringing my technicians over to
the Progressives? A meaningless title as Second Vice President, and -
The crowd screamed
again. "POWER TO THE PEOPLE!"
George heard and
walked faster.
Bradford's grin was
back. It was the first thing George noticed as he came into the
council chamber. The little man stood at the table with an amused
smile. It seemed quite genuine, and more than a little frightening.
"Ah, here is
our noble Minister of Technology and Second Vice President,"
Bradford grinned. "Just in time. Mr. President, that gang out
there is threatening the city. I am sure you will all be pleased to
know that I've taken steps to end the situation."
"What have you
done?" George demanded.
Bradford's smile
broadened even more. "At this moment, Colonel Cordova is
arresting the leaders of the opposition. Including, Mr. President,
the leaders of the Engineers' and Technicians' Association who have
joined them. This rebellion will be over within the hour."
Hamner stared at the
man. "You fool! You'll have every technician in the city joining
the Freedom Party gang! And the techs control the power plants, our
last influence over the crowd. You bloody damned fool!"
Bradford spoke with
exaggerated politeness. "I thought you would be pleased, George,
to see the rebellion end so easily. Naturally I've sent men to secure
the power plants. Ah, listen."
The crowd outside
wasn't chanting anymore. There was a confused babble, then a welling
of sound that turned ugly. No coherent words reached them, only the
ugly, angry roars. Then there was a rapid fusillade of shots.
"My God!"
President Budreau stared wildly in confusion. "What's happening?
Who are they shooting at? Have you started open war?"
"It takes stern
measures, Mr. President," Bradford said. "Perhaps too stern
for you?" He shook his head slightly. "The time has come
for harsh measures, Mr. President. Hadley cannot be governed by
weak-willed men. Our future belongs to those who have the will to
grasp it!"
George Hamner turned
toward the door. Before he could reach it, Bradford called to him.
"Please, George." His voice was filled with concern. "I'm
afraid you can't leave just yet. It wouldn't be safe for you. I took
the liberty of ordering Colonel Cordova's men to, uh, guard this room
while my troops restore order."
An uneasy quiet had
settled on the Stadium, and they waited for a long time. Then there
were screams and more shots.
The sounds moved
closer, as if they were outside the Stadium as well as in it.
Bradford frowned, but no one said anything. They waited for what
seemed a lifetime as the firing continued. Guns, shouts, screams,
sirens, and alarms - those and more, all in confusion.
The door burst open.
Cordova came in. He now wore the insignia of a full colonel. He
looked around the room until he found Bradford. "Sir, could you
come outside a moment, please?"
"You will make
your report to the Cabinet," President Budreau ordered. Cordova
glanced at Bradford. "Now, sir."
Cordova still looked
to Bradford. The Vice President nodded slightly.
"Very well,
sir," the young officer said. "As directed by the Vice
President, elements of the Fourth Battalion proceeded to the Stadium
and arrested some fifty leaders of the so-called constitutional
convention.
"Our plan was
to enter quickly and take the men out through the Presidential box
and into the Palace. However, when we attempted to make the arrests
we were opposed by armed men, many in the uniforms of household
guards. We were told there were no weapons in the Stadium, but this
was in error.
"The crowd
overpowered my officers and released their prisoners. When we
attempted to recover them, we were attacked by the mob and forced to
fight our way out of the Stadium."
"Good Lord,"
Budreau sighed. "How many hurt?"
"The power
plants! Did you secure them?" Hamner demanded.
Cordova looked
miserable. "No, sir. My men were not admitted. A council of
technicians and engineers holds the power plants, and they threaten
to destroy them if we attempt forcible entry. We have tried to seal
them off from outside support, but I don't think we can keep order
with only my battalion. We will need all the constabulary army to - "
"Idiot."
Hamner clutched at his left fist with his right, and squeezed until
it hurt. A council of technicians. I'll know most of them. My
friends. Or they used to be. Will any of them trust me now? At least
Bradford didn't control the fusion plants.
"What is the
current status outside?" President Budreau demanded. They could
still hear firing in the streets.
"Uh, there's a
mob barricaded in the market, and another in the theater across from
the Palace, sir. My troops are trying to dislodge them."
Cordova's voice was apologetic.
"Trying. I take
it they aren't likely to succeed." Budreau rose and went to the
anteroom door. "Colonel Falkenberg?" he called.
"Yes, sir?"
Falkenberg entered the room as the President beckoned.
"Colonel, are
you familiar with the situation outside?"
"Yes, Mr.
President."
"Damn it, man,
can you do something?"
"What does the
President suggest I do?" Falkenberg looked at the Cabinet
members. "For three months we have attempted to preserve order
in this city. We were not able to do so even with the cooperation of
the technicians."
"It wasn't my
fault - " Lieutenant Colonel Cordova began.
"I did not
invite you to speak." Falkenberg's lips were set in a grim line.
"Gentlemen, you now have open rebellion and simultaneously have
alienated one of the most powerful blocs within your Party. We no
longer control either the power plants or the food processing
centers. I repeat, what does the President suggest I do?"
Budreau nodded. "A
fair enough criticism."
He was interrupted
by Bradford. "Drive that mob off the streets! Use those precious
troops of yours to fight, that's what you're here for."
"Certainly,"
Falkenberg said. "Will the President sign a proclamation of
martial law?"
Budreau nodded
reluctantly. "I suppose I have to."
"Very well,"
Falkenberg said.
Hamner looked up
suddenly. What had he detected in Falkenberg's voice and manner?
Something important?
"It is standard
for politicians to get themselves into a situation that only the
military can get them out of. It is also standard for them to blame
the military afterwards," Falkenberg said. "I am willing to
accept responsibility for enforcing martial law, but I must have
command of all government forces. I will not attempt to restore order
when some of the troops are not responsive to my policies."
"No!"
Bradford leaped to his feet. The chair crashed to the floor behind
him. "I see what you're doing! You're against me too! That's why
it was never time to move, never time for me to be President, you
want control of this planet for yourself! Well, you won't get away
with it, you cheap dictator. Cordova, arrest that man!"
Cordova licked his
lips and looked at Falkenberg. Both soldiers were armed. Cordova
decided not to chance it. "Lieutenant Hargreave!" he
called. The door to the anteroom opened wide.
No one came in.
"Hargreave!" Cordova shouted again. He put his hand on the
pistol bolstered at his belt. "You're under arrest, Colonel
Falkenberg."
"Indeed?"
"This is
absurd," Budreau shouted. "Colonel Cordova, take your hand
off that weapon! I will not have my Cabinet meeting turned into a
farce."
For a moment nothing
happened. The room was very still, and Cordova looked from Budreau to
Bradford, wondering what to do now.
Then Bradford faced
the President. "You too, old man? Arrest Mr. Budreau as well,
Colonel Cordova. As for you, Mr. Traitor George Hamner, you'll get
what's coming to you. I have men all through this Palace. I knew I
might have to do this."
"You knew -
what is this, Ernest?" President Budreau seemed bewildered, and
his voice was plaintive. "What are you doing?"
"Oh, shut up,
old man," Bradford snarled. "I suppose you'll have to be
shot as well."
"I think we
have heard enough," Falkenberg said distinctly. His voice rang
through the room although he hadn't shouted. "And I refuse to be
arrested."
"Kill him!"
Bradford shouted. He reached under his tunic.
Cordova drew his
pistol. It had not cleared the holster when there were shots from the
doorway. Their sharp barks filled the room, and Hamner's ears rang
from the muzzle blast.
Bradford spun toward
the door with a surprised look. Then his eyes glazed and he slid to
the floor, the half-smile still on his lips. There were more shots
and the crash of automatic weapons, and Cordova was flung against the
wall of the council chamber. He was held there by the smashing
bullets. Bright red blotches spurted across his uniform.
Sergeant Major
Calvin came into the room with three Marines in battle dress, leather
over bulging body armor. Their helmets were dull in the bright
blue-tinted sunlight streaming through the chamber's windows.
Falkenberg nodded
and holstered his pistol. "All secure, Sergeant Major?"
"Sir!"
Falkenberg nodded
again. "To quote Mr. Bradford, I took the liberty of securing
the corridors, Mr. President. Now, sir, if you will issue that
proclamation, I'll see to the situation in the streets outside.
Sergeant Major."
"Sir!"
"Do you have
the proclamation of martial law that Captain Fast drew up?"
"Sir."
Calvin removed a rolled document from a pocket of his leather tunic.
Falkenberg took it and laid it on the table in front of President
Budreau.
"But - "
Budreau's tone was hopeless. "All right. Not that there's much
chance." He looked at Bradford's body and shuddered. "He
was ready to kill me." Budreau muttered. The President seemed
confused. Too much had happened, and there was too much to do.
The battle sounds
outside were louder, and the council room was filled with the sharp
copper odor of fresh blood. Budreau drew the parchment toward himself
and glanced at it, then took out a pen from his pocket.
He scrawled his
signature across it and handed it to Hamner to witness.
"You'd better
speak to the President's Guard," Falkenberg said. "They
won't know what to do."
"Aren't you
going to use them in the street fight?" Hamner asked.
Falkenberg shook his
head. "I doubt if they'd fight. They have too many friends among
the rebels. They'll protect the Palace, but they won't be reliable
for anything else."
"Have we got a
chance?" Hamner asked.
Budreau looked up
from his reverie at the head of the table. "Yes. Have we?"
"Possibly,"
Falkenberg said. "Depends on how good the people we're fighting
are. If their commander is half as good as I think he is, we won't
win this battle."
XI
"GODDAMN it, we
won't do it!" Lieutenant Martin Latham stared in horror at
Captain Fast. "That market's a death trap. These men didn't join
to attack across open streets against rioters in safe positions - "
"No. You joined
to be glorified police," Captain Fast said calmly. "Now
you've let things get out of hand. Who better to put them right
again?"
"The Fourth
Battalion takes orders from Colonel Cordova, not you." Latham
looked around for support. Several squads of the Fourth were within
hearing, and he felt reassured.
They stood in a deep
indentation of the Palace wall. Just outside and around the corner of
the indentation they could hear sporadic firing as the other units of
the regiment kept the rebels occupied. Latham felt safe here, but out
there -
"No," he
repeated. "It's suicide."
"So is refusal
to obey orders," Amos Fast said quietly. "Don't look around
and don't raise your voice. Now, glance behind me at the Palace
walls."
Latham saw them. A
flash from a gun barrel; blurs as leather-clad figures settled in on
the walls and in the windows overlooking the niche.
"If you don't
make the attack, you will be disarmed and tried for cowardice in the
face of the enemy," Fast said quietly. "There can be only
one outcome of that trial. And only one penalty. You're better off
making the assault. We'll support you in that."
"Why are you
doing this?" Martin Latham demanded.
"You caused the
problem," Fast said. "Now get ready. When you've entered
the market square the rest of the outfit will move up in support."
The assault was
successful, but it cost the Fourth heavily. After that came another
series of fierce attacks. When they were finished the rioters had
been driven from the immediate area of the Palace, but Falkenberg's
regiment paid for every meter gained.
Whenever they took a
building, the enemy left it blazing. When the regiment trapped one
large group of rebels, Falkenberg was forced to abandon the assault
to aid in evacuating a hospital that the enemy put to the torch.
Within three hours, fires were raging all around the Palace.
There was no one in
the council chamber with Budreau and Hamner. The bodies had been
removed, and the floor mopped, but it seemed to George Hamner that
the room would always smell of death; and he could not keep his eyes
from straying from time to time, from staring at the neat line of
holes stitched at chest height along the rich wood paneling.
Falkenberg came in.
"Your family is safe, Mr. Hamner." He turned to the
President. "Ready to report, sir."
Budreau looked up
with haunted eyes. The sound of gunfire was faint, but still audible.
"They have good
leaders," Falkenberg reported. "When they left the Stadium
they went immediately to the police barracks. They took the weapons
and distributed them to their allies, after butchering the police."
"They murdered
- "
"Certainly,"
Falkenberg said. "They wanted the police building as a fortress.
And we are not fighting a mere mob out there, Mr. President. We have
repeatedly run against well-armed men with training. Household
forces. I will attempt another assault in the morning, but for now,
Mr. President, we don't hold much more than a kilometer around the
Palace."
The fires burned all
night, but there was little fighting. The regiment held the Palace,
with bivouac in the courtyard; and if anyone questioned why the
Fourth was encamped in the center of the courtyard with other troops
all around them, they did so silently.
Lieutenant Martin
Latham might have had an answer for any such questioner, but he lay
under Hadley's flag in the honor hall outside the hospital.
In the morning the
assaults began again. The regiment moved out in thin streams,
infiltrating weak spots, bypassing strong, until it had cleared a
large area outside the Palace again. Then it came against another
well-fortified position.
An hour later the
regiment was heavily engaged against rooftop snipers, barricaded
streets, and everywhere burning buildings. Maniples and squads
attempted to get through and into the buildings beyond but were
turned back.
The Fourth was
decimated in repeated assaults against the barricades.
George Hamner had
come with Falkenberg and stood in the field headquarters. He watched
another platoon assault of the Fourth beaten back. "They're
pretty good men," he mused.
"They'll do.
Now," Falkenberg said.
"But you've
used them up pretty fast."
"Not entirely
by choice," Falkenberg said. "The President has ordered me
to break the enemy resistance. That squanders soldiers. I'd as soon
use the Fourth as blunt the fighting edge of the rest of the
regiment."
"But we're not
getting anywhere."
"No. The
opposition's too good, and there are too many of them. We can't get
them concentrated for a set battle, and when we do catch them they
set fire to part of the city and retreat under cover of the flames."
A communications
corporal beckoned urgently, and Falkenberg went to the low table with
its array of electronics. He took the offered earphone and listened,
then raised a mike.
"Fall back to
the Palace," Falkenberg ordered.
"You're
retreating?" Hamner demanded.
Falkenberg shrugged.
"I have no choice. I can't hold this thin a perimeter, and I
have only two battalions. Plus what's left of the Fourth."
"Where's the
Third? The Progressive partisans? My people?"
"Out at the
power plants and food centers," Falkenberg answered. "We
can't break in without giving the techs time to wreck the place, but
we can keep any more rebels from getting in. The Third isn't as well
trained as the rest of the regiment - and besides, the techs may
trust them."
They walked back
through burned-out streets. The sounds of fighting followed them as
the regiment retreated. Civilian workers fought the fires and cared
for the wounded and dead.
Hopeless, George
Hamner thought. Hopeless. I don't know why I thought Falkenberg would
pull some kind of rabbit out of the hat once Bradford was gone. What
could he do? What can anyone do?
Worried-looking
Presidential Guards let them into the Palace and swung the heavy
doors shut behind them. The guards held the Palace, but would not go
outside.
President Budreau
was in his ornate office with Lieutenant Banners. "I was going
to send for you," Budreau said. "We can't win this, can
we?"
"Not the way
it's going," Falkenberg answered. Hamner nodded agreement.
Budreau nodded
rapidly, as if to himself. His face was a mask of lost hopes. "That's
what I thought. Pull your men back to barracks, Colonel. I'm going to
surrender."
"But you
can't," George protested. "Everything we've dreamed of ...
You'll doom Hadley. The Freedom Party can't govern."
"Precisely. And
you see it too, don't you, George? How much governing are we doing?
Before it came to an open break, perhaps we had a chance. Not now.
Bring your men back to the Palace, Colonel Falkenberg. Or are you
going to refuse?"
"No, sir. The
men are retreating already. They'll be here in half an hour."
Budreau sighed
loudly. "I told you the military answer wouldn't work here,
Falkenberg."
"We might have
accomplished something in the past months if we'd been given the
chance."
"You might."
The President was too tired to argue. "But putting the blame on
poor Ernie won't help. He must have been insane.
"But this isn't
three months ago, Colonel. It's not even yesterday. I might have
reached a compromise before the fighting started, but I didn't, and
you've lost. You're not doing much besides burning down the city ...
at least I can spare Hadley that. Banners, go tell the Freedom Party
leaders I can't take anymore."
The Guard officer
saluted and left, his face an unreadable mask. Budreau watched him
leave the office. His eyes focused far beyond the walls with their
Earth decorations.
"So you're
resigning," Falkenberg said slowly.
Budreau nodded.
"Have you
resigned, sir?" Falkenberg demanded.
"Yes, blast
you. Banners has my resignation."
"And what will
you do now?" George Hamner asked. His voice held both contempt
and amazement. He had always admired and respected Budreau. And now
what had Hadley's great leader left them?
"Banners has
promised to get me out of here," Budreau said. "He has a
boat in the harbor. We'll sail up the coast and land, then go inland
to the mines. There'll be a starship there next week, and I can get
out on that with my family. You'd better come with me, George."
The President put both hands over his face, then looked up. "There's
a lot of relief in giving in, did you know? What will you do, Colonel
Falkenberg?"
"We'll manage.
There are plenty of boats in the harbor if we need one. But it is
very likely that the new government will need trained soldiers."
"The perfect
mercenary," Budreau said with contempt. He sighed, then sent his
eyes searching around the office, lingering on familiar objects.
"It's a relief. I don't have to decide things anymore." He
stood and his shoulders were no longer stooped. "I'll get the
family. You'd better be moving too, George."
"I'll be along,
sir. Don't wait for us. As the Colonel says, there are plenty of
boats." He waited until Budreau had left the office, then turned
to Falkenberg. "All right, what now?"
"Now we do what
we came here to do," Falkenberg said. He went to the President's
desk and examined the phones, but rejected them for a pocket
communicator. He lifted it and spoke at length.
"Just what are
you doing?" Hamner demanded.
"You're not
president yet," Falkenberg said. "You won't be until you're
sworn in, and that won't happen until I've finished. And there's
nobody to accept your resignation, either."
"What the
hell?" Hamner looked closely at Falkenberg, but he could not
read the officer's expression. "You do have an idea. Let's hear
it."
"You're not
president yet," Falkenberg said. "Under Budreau's
proclamation of martial law, I am to take whatever actions I think
are required to restore order in Refuge. That order is valid until a
new President removes it. And at the moment there's no President."
"But Budreau's
surrendered! The Freedom Party will elect a President."
"Under Hadley's
constitution only the Senate and Assembly in joint session can alter
the order of succession. They're scattered across the city and their
meeting chambers have been burned."
Sergeant Major
Calvin and several of Falkenberg's aides came to the door. They
stood, waiting.
"I'm playing
guardhouse lawyer," Falkenberg said. "But President Budreau
doesn't have the authority to appoint a new president. With Bradford
dead, you're in charge here, but not until you appear before a
magistrate and take the oath of office."
"This doesn't
make sense," Hamner protested. "How long do you think you
can stay in control here, anyway?" "As long as I have to."
Falkenberg turned to an aide. "Corporal, I want Mr. Hamner to
stay with me and you with him. You will treat him with respect, but
he goes nowhere and sees no one without my permission. Understood?"
"Sir!"
"And now what?"
Hamner asked. "And now we wait," John Falkenberg said
softly. "But not too long ..."
George Hamner sat in
the council chambers with his back to the stained and punctured wall.
He tried to forget those stains, but he couldn't.
Falkenberg was
across from him, and his aides sat at the far end of the table.
Communications gear had been spread across one side table, but there
was no situation map; Falkenberg had not moved his command post here.
From time to time
officers brought him battle reports, but Falkenberg hardly listened
to them. However, when one of the aides reported that Dr. Whitlock
was calling, Falkenberg took the earphones immediately.
George couldn't hear
what Whitlock was saying and Falkenberg's end of the conversation
consisted of monosyllables. The only thing George was sure of was
that Falkenberg was very interested in what his political agent was
doing.
The regiment had
fought its way back to the Palace and was now in the courtyard. The
Palace entrances were held by the Presidential Guard, and the
fighting had stopped. The rebels left the guardsmen alone, and an
uneasy truce settled across the city of Refuge.
"They're going
into the Stadium, sir," Captain Fast reported. "That cheer
you heard was when Banners gave 'em the President's resignation."
"I see. Thank
you, Captain." Falkenberg motioned for more coffee. He offered a
cup to George, but the Vice President didn't want any.
"How long does
this go on?" George demanded.
"Not much
longer. Hear them cheering?"
They sat for another
hour, Falkenberg with outward calm, Hamner with growing tension. Then
Dr. Whitlock came to the council room.
The tall civilian
looked at Falkenberg and Hamner, then sat easily in the President's
chair. "Don't reckon I'll have another chance to sit in the seat
of the mighty," he grinned.
"But what is
happening?" Hamner demanded.
Whitlock shrugged.
"It's 'bout like Colonel Falkenberg figured. Mob's moved right
into the Stadium. Nobody wants to be left out now they think they've
won. They've rounded up what senators they could find and now they're
fixin' to elect themselves a new president."
"But that
election won't be valid," Hamner said.
"No, suh, but
that don't seem to slow 'em down a bit. They figure they won the
right, I guess. And the Guard has already said they're goin' to honor
the people's choice." Whitlock smiled ironically.
"How many of my
technicians are out there in that mob?" Hamner asked. "They'd
listen to me, I know they would."
"They might at
that," Whitlock said. "But there's not so many as there
used to be. Most of 'em couldn't stomach the burnin' and looting.
Still, there's a fair number."
"Can you get
them out?" Falkenberg asked.
"Doin' that
right now," Whitlock grinned. "One reason I come up here
was to get Mr. Hamner to help with that. I got my people goin' round
tellin' the technicians they already got Mr. Hamner as President, so
why they want somebody else? It's workin' too, but a few words from
their leader here might help."
"Right,"
Falkenberg said. "Well, sir?"
"I don't know
what to say," George protested.
Falkenberg went to
the wall control panel. "Mr. Vice President, I can't give you
orders, but I'd suggest you simply make a few promises. Tell them you
will shortly assume command, and that things will be different. Then
order them to go home or face charges as rebels. Or ask them to go
home as a favor to you. Whatever you think will work."
It wasn't much of a
speech, and from the roar outside the crowd did not hear much of it
anyway. George promised amnesty for anyone who left the Stadium and
tried to appeal to the Progressives who were caught up in the
rebellion. When he put down the microphone, Falkenberg seemed
pleased.
"Half an hour,
Dr. Whitlock?" Falkenberg asked.
"About that,"
the historian agreed. "All that's leavin will be gone by then."
"Let's go, Mr.
President." Falkenberg was insistent.
"Where?"
Hamner asked.
"To see the end
of this. Do you want to watch, or would you rather join your family?
You can go anywhere you like except to a magistrate - or to someone
who might accept your resignation."
"Colonel, this
is ridiculous! You can't force me to be president, and I don't
understand what's going on."
Falkenberg's smile
was grim. "Nor do I want you to understand. Yet. You'll have
enough trouble living with yourself as it is. Let's go."
George Hamner
followed. His throat was dry, and his guts felt as if they'd knotted
themselves into a tight ball.
The First and Second
Battalions were assembled in the Palace courtyard. The men stood in
ranks. Their synthileather battledress was stained with dirt and
smoke from the street fighting. Armor bulged under their uniforms.
The men were silent,
and Hamner thought they might have been carved from stone.
"Follow me,"
Falkenberg ordered. He led the way to the Stadium entrance.
Lieutenant Banners stood in the doorway.
"Halt,"
Banners commanded.
"Really,
Lieutenant? Would you fight my troops?" Falkenberg indicated the
grim lines behind him.
Lieutenant Banners
gulped. Hamner thought the Guard officer looked very young. "No,
sir," Banners protested. "But we have barred the doors. The
emergency meeting of the Assembly and Senate is electing a new
President out there, and we will not permit your mercenaries to
interfere."
"They have not
elected anyone," Falkenberg said.
"No, sir, but
when they do, the Guard will be under his command."
"I have orders
from Vice President Hamner to arrest the leaders of the rebellion,
and a valid proclamation of martial law," Falkenberg insisted.
"I'm sorry,
sir." Banners seemed to mean it. "Our Council of officers
has decided that President Budreau's surrender is valid. We intend to
honor it."
"I see,"
Falkenberg withdrew. He motioned to his aides, and Hamner joined the
group. No one objected.
"Hadn't
expected this," Falkenberg said. "It would take a week to
fight through those guardrooms." He thought for a moment. "Give
me your keys," he snapped at Hamner.
Bewildered, George
took them out. Falkenberg grinned widely. "There's another way
into there, you know. Major Savage! Take G and H Companies of Second
Battalion to secure the Stadium exits. Dig yourselves in and set up
all weapons. Arrest anyone who comes out."
"Sir."
"Dig in pretty
good, Jeremy. They may be coming out fighting. But I don't expect
them to be well organized."
"Do we fire on
armed men?"
"Without
warning, Major. Without warning. Sergeant Major, bring the rest of
the troops with me. Major, you'll have twenty minutes."
Falkenberg led his
troops across the courtyard to the tunnel entrance and used Hamner's
keys to unlock the doors. Falkenberg ignored him. He led the troops
down the stairway and across, under the field.
George Hamner stayed
close to Falkenberg. He could hear the long column of armed men tramp
behind him. They moved up stairways on the other side, marching
briskly until George was panting. The men didn't seem to notice.
Gravity difference, Hamner thought. And training.
They reached the top
and deployed along the passageways. Falkenberg stationed men at each
exit and came back to the center doors. Then he waited. The tension
grew.
"But - "
Falkenberg shook his
head. His look demanded silence. He stood, waiting, while the seconds
ticked past.
"MOVE OUT!"
Falkenberg commanded.
The doors burst
open. The armed troopers moved quickly across the top of the Stadium.
Most of the mob was below, and a few unarmed men were struck down
when they tried to oppose the regiment. Rifle butts swung, then there
was a moment of calm. Falkenberg took a speaker from his corporal
attendant.
"ATTENTION.
ATTENTION. YOU ARE UNDER ARREST BY THE AUTHORITY OF THE MARTIAL LAW
PROCLAMATION OF PRESIDENT BUDREAU. LAY DOWN ALL WEAPONS AND YOU WILL
NOT BE HARMED. IF YOU RESIST, YOU WILL BE KILLED."
There was a moment
of silence, then shouts as the mob realized what Falkenberg had said.
Some laughed. Then shots came from the field and the lower seats of
the Stadium. Hamner heard the flat snap of a bullet as it rushed past
his ear. Then he heard the crack of the rifle.
One of the leaders
on the field below had a speaker. He shouted to the others. "ATTACK
THEM! THERE AREN'T MORE THAN A THOUSAND OF THEM, WE'RE THIRTY
THOUSAND STRONG. ATTACK, KILL THEM!" There were more shots. Some
of Falkenberg's men fell. The others stood immobile, waiting for
orders.
Falkenberg raised
the speaker again. "PREPARE FOR VOLLEY FIRE. MAKE READY. TAKE
AIM. IN VOLLEY, FIRE!"
Seven hundred rifles
crashed as one.
"FIRE!"
Someone screamed, a long drawn-out cry, a plea without words.
"FIRE!"
The line of men
clambering up the seats toward them wavered and broke. Men screamed,
some pushed back, dove under seats, tried to hide behind their
friends, tried to get anywhere but under the unwavering muzzles of
the rifles.
"FIRE!"
It was like one
shot, very loud, lasting far longer than a rifle shot ought to, but
it was impossible to hear individual weapons. "FIRE!"
There were more
screams from below. "In the name of God - "
"THE
FORTY-SECOND WILL ADVANCE. FIX BAYONETS. FORWARD, MOVE. FIRE. FIRE AT
WILL."
Now there was a
continuous crackle of weapons. The leather-clad lines moved forward
and down, over the stadium seats, flowing down inexorably toward the
press below on the field.
"Sergeant
Major!"
"SIR!"
"Marksmen and
experts will fall out and take station. They will fire on all armed
men."
"Sir!"
Calvin spoke into
his communicator. Men dropped out of each section and took position
behind seats. They began to fire, carefully but rapidly. Anyone below
who raised a weapon died. The regiment advanced onward.
Hamner was sick. The
screams of wounded could be heard everywhere. God, make it stop, make
it stop, he prayed.
"GRENADIERS
WILL PREPARE TO THROW." Falkenberg's voice boomed from the
speaker. "THROW!"
A hundred grenades
arched out from the advancing line. They fell into the milling crowds
below. The muffled explosions were masked by screams of terror.
"IN VOLLEY,
FIRE!"
The regiment
advanced until it made contact with the mob. There was a brief
struggle. Rifles fired, and bayonets flashed red. The line halted but
momentarily. Then it moved on, leaving behind a ghastly trail.
Men and women jammed
in the Stadium exits. Others frantically tried to get out, clambering
over the fallen, tearing women out of their way to push past,
trampling each other in their scramble to escape. There was a rattle
of gunfire from outside. Those in the gates recoiled, to be crushed
beneath others trying to get out.
"You won't even
let them out!" Hamner screamed at Falkenberg.
"Not armed. And
not to escape." The Colonel's face was hard and cold, the eyes
narrowed to slits. He watched the slaughter impassively, looking at
the entire scene without expression.
"Are you going
to kill them all?"
"All who
resist."
"But they don't
deserve this!" George Hamner felt his voice breaking. "They
don't!"
"No one does,
George. SERGEANT MAJOR!"
"SIR!"
"Half the
marksmen may concentrate on the leaders now."
"SIR!"
Calvin spoke quietly into his command set. The snipers concentrated
their fire on the Presidential box across from them. Centurions ran
up and down the line of hidden troops, pointing out targets. The
marksmen kept up a steady fire.
The leather lines of
armored men advanced inexorably. They had almost reached the lower
tier of seats. There was less firing now, but the scarlet-painted
bayonets flashed in the afternoon sun.
Another section fell
out of line and moved to guard a tiny number of prisoners at the end
of the Stadium. The rest of the line moved on, advancing over seats
made slick with blood.
When the regiment
reached ground level their progress was slower. There was little
opposition, but the sheer mass of people in front of them held up the
troopers. There were a few pockets of active resistance, and flying
squads rushed there to reinforce the line. More grenades were thrown.
Falkenberg watched the battle calmly, and seldom spoke into his
communicator. Below, more men died.
A company of
troopers formed and rushed up a stairway on the opposite side of the
Stadium. They fanned out across the top. Then their rifles leveled
and crashed in another terrible series of volleys.
Suddenly it was
over. There was no opposition. There were only screaming crowds. Men
threw away weapons to run with their hands in the air. Others fell to
their knees to beg for their lives. There was one final volley, then
a deathly stillness fell over the Stadium.
But it wasn't quiet,
Hamner discovered. The guns were silent, men no longer shouted
orders, but there was sound. There were screams from the wounded.
There were pleas for help, whimpers, a racking cough that went on and
on as someone tried to clear punctured lungs.
Falkenberg nodded
grimly. "Now we can find a magistrate, Mr. President. Now."
"I - Oh my
God!" Hamner stood at the top of the Stadium. He clutched a
column to steady his weakened legs. The scene below seemed unreal.
There was too much blood, rivers of blood, blood cascading down the
steps, blood pouring down stairwells to soak the grassy field below.
"It's over,"
Falkenberg said gently. "For all of us. The regiment will be
leaving as soon as you're properly in command. You shouldn't have any
trouble with your power plants. Your technicians will trust you now
that Bradford's gone. And without their leaders, the city people
won't resist.
"You can ship
as many as you have to out to the interior. Disperse them among the
loyalists where they won't do you any harm. That amnesty of yours -
it's only a suggestion, but I'd renew it."
Hamner turned dazed
eyes toward Falkenberg. "Yes. There's been too much slaughter
today. Who are you, Falkenberg?"
"A mercenary
soldier, Mr. President. Nothing more."
"But - then who
are you working for?"
"That's the
question nobody asked before. Grand Admiral Lermontov."
"Lermontov? But
you were drummed out of the CO-Dominium! You mean that you were hired
- by the admiral? As a mercenary?"
"More or less."
Falkenberg nodded coldly. "The Fleet's a little sick of being
used to mess up people's lives without having a chance to - to leave
things in working order."
"And now you're
leaving?"
"Yes. We
couldn't stay here, George. Nobody is going to forget today. You
couldn't keep us on and build a government that works. I'll take
First and Second Battalions, and what's left of the Fourth. There's
more work for us."
"And the
others?"
"Third will
stay on to help you," Falkenberg said. "We put all the
married locals, the solid people, in Third, and sent it off to the
power plants. They weren't involved in the fighting." He looked
across the Stadium, then back to Hamner. "Blame it all on us,
George. You weren't in command. You can say Bradford ordered this
slaughter and killed himself in remorse. People will want to believe
that. They'll want to think somebody was punished for - for this."
He waved toward the field below. A child was sobbing out there
somewhere.
"It had to be
done," Falkenberg insisted. "Didn't it? There was no way
out, nothing you could do to keep civilization. ... Dr. Whitlock
estimated a third of the population would die when things collapsed.
Fleet Intelligence put it higher than that. Now you have a chance."
Falkenberg was
speaking rapidly, and George wondered whom he was trying to convince.
"Move them
out," Falkenberg said. "Move them out while they're still
dazed. You won't need much help for that. They won't resist now. And
we got the railroads running for you. Use the railroads and ship
people out to the farms. It'll be rough with no preparation, but it's
a long time until winter - "
"I know what to
do," Hamner interrupted. He leaned against the column, and
seemed to gather new strength from the thought. Yes. I do know what
to do. Now. "I've known all along what had to be done. Now we
can get to it. We won't thank you for it, but - you've saved a whole
world, John."
Falkenberg looked at
him grimly, then pointed to the bodies below. "Damn you, don't
say that!" he shouted. His voice was almost shrill. "I
haven't saved anything. All a soldier can do is buy time. I haven't
saved Hadley. You have to do that. God help you if you don't."
XII
Crofton's
Encyclopedia of Contemporary History and Social Issues (2nd Edition)
MERCENARY FORCES
PERHAPS THE MOST
disturbing development arising from CoDominium withdrawal from most
distant colony worlds (see Independence Movements) has been the rapid
growth of purely mercenary military units. The trend was predictable
and perhaps inevitable, although the extent has exceeded
expectations.
Many of the former
colony worlds do not have planetary governments. Consequently, these
new nations do not possess sufficient population or industrial
resources to maintain large and effective national military forces.
The disbanding of numerous CoDominium Marine units left a surplus of
trained soldiers without employment, and it was inevitable that some
of them would band together into mercenary units.
The colony
governments are thus faced with a cruel and impossible dilemma. Faced
with mercenary troops specializing in violence, they have had little
choice but to reply in kind. A few colonies have broken this cycle by
creating their own national armies, but have then been unable to pay
for them.
Thus, in addition to
the purely private mercenary organizations such as Falkenberg's
Mercenary Legion, there are now national forces hired out to reduce
expenses to their parent governments. A few former colonies have
found this practice so lucrative that the export of mercenaries has
become their principal source of income, and the recruiting and
training of soldiers their major industry.
The CoDominium Grand
Senate has attempted to maintain its presence in the former colonial
areas through promulgation of the so-called Laws of War (q.v.), which
purport to regulate the weapons and tactics mercenary units may
employ. Enforcement of these regulations is sporadic. When the Senate
orders Fleet intervention to enforce the Laws of War the suspicion
inevitably arises that other CoDominium interests are at stake, or
that one or more Senators have undisclosed reasons for their
interest.
Mercenary units
generally draw their recruits from the same sources as the CoDominium
Marines, and training stresses loyalty to comrades and commanders
rather than to any government. The extent to which mercenary
commanders have successfully separated their troops from all normal
social intercourse is both surprising and alarming.
The best-known
mercenary forces are described in separate articles. See: Covenant;
Friedland; Xanadu; Falkenbergs Mercenary Legion; Nouveau Legion
Etran-gere; Katanga Gendarmerie; Moolman's Commandos . . .
FALKENBERG'S MERCENARY
LEGION
Purely private
military organization formed from the former Forty-second CoDominium
Line Marines under Colonel John Christian Falkenberg III. Falkenberg
was cashiered from the CoDominium Fleet under questionable
circumstances, and his regiment disbanded shortly thereafter. A large
proportion of former Forty-second officers and men chose to remain
with Falkenberg.
Falkenberg's Legion
appears to have been first employed by the government of the then
newly independent former colony of Hadley (q.v.) for suppression of
civil disturbances. There have been numerous complaints that
excessive violence was used by both sides in the unsuccessful
rebellion following CoDominium withdrawal, but the government of
Hadley has expressed satisfaction with Falkenberg's efforts there.
Following its
employment on Hadley, Falkenberg's Legion took part in numerous small
wars of defense and conquest on at least five planets, and in the
process gained a reputation as one of the best-trained and most
effective small military units in existence.
It was then engaged
by the CoDominium Governor on the CD prison planet of Tanith.
This latter
employment caused great controversy in the Grand Senate, as Tanith
remains under CD control. However, Grand Admiral Lermontov pointed
out that his budget did not permit his stationing regular Marine
forces on Tanith owing to other commitments mandated by the Grand
Senate; after lengthy debate the employment was approved as an
alternative to raising a new regiment of CD Marines.
At last report
Falkenberg's Legion remains on Tanith. Its contract with the Governor
there is said to have expired.
Tanith's bright
image had replaced Earth's on Grand Admiral Lermontov's view screen.
The planet might have been Earth: it had bright clouds obscuring the
outlines of land and sea, and they swirled in typical cyclonic
patterns.
A closer look showed
differences. The sun was yellow: Tanith's star was not as hot as Sol,
but Tanith was closer to it. There were fewer mountains, and more
swamplands steaming in the yellow-orange glare.
Despite its
miserable climate, Tanith was an important world. It was first and
foremost a convenient dumping ground for Earth's disinherited. There
was no better way to deal with criminals than to send them off to
hard - and useful - labor on another planet. Tanith received them
all: the rebels, the criminals, the malcontents, victims of
administrative hatred; all the refuse of a civilization that could no
longer afford misfits.
Tanith was also the
main source of borloi, which the World Pharmaceutical Society called
"the perfect intoxicating drug." Given large supplies of
borloi the lid could be kept on the Citizens in their Welfare
Islands. The happiness the drug induced was artificial, but it was
none the less real.
"And so I am
trading in drugs," Lermontov told his visitor. "It is
hardly what I expected when I became Grand Admiral."
"I'm sorry,
Sergei." Grand Senator Martin Grant had aged; in ten years he
had come to look forty years older. "The fact is, though, you're
better off with Fleet ownership of some of the borloi plantations
than you are relying on what I can get for you out of the Senate."
Lermontov nodded in
disgust. "It must end, Martin. Somehow, somewhere, it must end.
I cannot keep a fighting service together on the proceeds of drug
sales - drugs grown by slaves! Soldiers do not make good
slavemasters."
Grant merely
shrugged.
"Yes, it is
easy to think, is it not?" The admiral shook his head in
disgust. "But there are vices natural to the soldier and the
sailor. We have those, in plenty, but they are not vices that corrupt
his ability as a fighting man. Slaving is a vice that corrupts
everything it touches."
"If you feel
that way, what can I say?" Martin Grant asked. "I can't
give you an alternative."
"And I cannot
let go," Lermontov said. He punched viciously at the console
controls and Tanith faded from the screen. Earth, bluer and to
Lermontov far more lovely, swam out of the momentary blackness. "They
are fools down there," Sergei Lermontov muttered. "And we
are no better. Martin, I ask myself again and again, why can we not
control - anything? Why are we caught like chips in a rushing stream?
Men can guide their destinies. I know that. So why are we so
helpless?"
"You don't ask
yourself more often than I do," Senator Grant said. His voice
was low and weary. "At least we still try. Hell, you've got more
power than I have. You've got the Fleet, and you've got the secret
funds you get from Tanith - Christ, Sergei, if you can't do
something with that - "
"I can urinate
on fires," Lermontov said. "And little else." He
shrugged. "So, if that is all I can do, then I will continue to
make water. Will you have a drink?"
"Thanks."
Lermontov went to
the sideboard and took out bottles. His conversations with Grand
Senator Grant were never heard by anyone else, not even his orderlies
who had been with him for years.
"Prosit."
"Prosit!"
They drank. Grant
took out a cigar. "By the way, Sergei, what are you going to do
with Falkenberg now that the trouble on Tanith is finished?"
Lermontov smiled
coldly. "I was hoping that you would have a solution to that. I
have no more funds - "
"The Tanith
money - "
"Needed
elsewhere, just to keep the Fleet together," Lermontov said
positively.
"Then
Falkenberg'll just have to find his own way. Shouldn't be any
problem, with his reputation," Grant said. "And even if it
is, he's got no more troubles than we have."
XIII
HEAT BEAT DOWN on
sodden fields. Two hours before the noon of Tanith's fifteen plus
hours of sunshine the day was already hot; but all of Tanith's days
are hot. Even in midwinter the jungle steams in late afternoon.
The skies above the
regiment's camp were yellow-gray. The ground sloped off to the west
into inevitable swamp, where Weem's Beasts snorted as they burrowed
deeper into protective mud. In the camp itself the air hung hot and
wet, heavy, with a thick smell of yeast and decay.
The regiment's camp
was an island of geometrical precision in the random tumble of
jungles and hilltops. Each yellow rammed-earth barrack was set in an
exact relationship with every other, each company set in line from
its centurion's hut at one end to the senior platoon sergeant's at
the other.
A wide street
separated Centurion's Row from the Company Officers Line, and beyond
that was the shorter Field Officers Line, the pyramid narrowing
inevitably until at its apex stood a single building where the
colonel lived. Other officers lived with their ladies, and married
enlisted men's quarters formed one side of the compound; but the
colonel lived alone.
The visitor stood
with the colonel to watch a mustering ceremony evolved in the days of
Queen Anne's England when regimental commanders were paid according
to the strength of their regiments, and the Queen's muster masters
had to determine that each man drawing pay could indeed pass muster -
or even existed.
The visitor was an
amateur historian and viewed the parade with wry humor. War had
changed and men no longer marched in rigid lines to deliver volleys
at word of command - but colonels were again paid according to the
forces they could bring into battle.
"Report!"
The adjutant's command carried easily across the open parade field to
the rigidly immobile blue and gold squares.
"First
Battalion, B Company on patrol. Battalion present or accounted for,
sir!"
"Second
Battalion present or accounted for, sir." "Third Battalion
present or accounted for, sir!"
"Fourth
Battalion, four men absent without leave, sir."
"How
embarrassing," the visitor said sotto voce. The colonel tried to
smile but made a bad job of it.
"Artillery
present or accounted for, sir!" "Scout Troop all present,
sir!" "Sappers all present, sir!"
"Weapons
Battalion, Aviation Troop on patrol. Battalion present or accounted
for, sir!"
"Headquarters
Company present or on guard, sir!"
The adjutant
returned each salute, then wheeled crisply to salute the colonel.
"Regiment has four men absent without leave, sir."
Colonel Falkenberg
returned the salute. "Take your post."
Captain Fast pivoted
and marched to his place. "Pass in review!"
"Sound off!"
The band played a
military march that must have been old in the twentieth century as
the regiment formed column to march around the field. As each company
reached the reviewing stand and men snapped their heads in unison,
guidons and banners lowered in salute, and officers and centurions
whirled sabers with flourishes.
The visitor nodded
to himself. No longer very appropriate. In the eighteenth century,
demonstrations of the men's ability to march in ranks, and of the
noncoms and officers to use a sword with skill, were relevant to
battle capabilities. Not now. Still, it made an impressive ceremony.
"Attention to
orders!" The sergeant major read from his clipboard. Promotions,
duty schedules, the daily activities of the regiment, while the
visitor sweated.
"Very
impressive, Colonel," he said. "Our Washingtonians couldn't
look that sharp on their best day."
John Christian
Falkenberg nodded coldly. "Implying that they mightn't be as
good in the field. Mr. Secretary? Would you like another kind of
demonstration?"
Howard Bannister
shrugged. "What would it prove, Colonel? You need employment
before your regiment goes to hell. I can't imagine chasing escapees
on the CoDominium prison planet has much attraction for good
soldiers."
"It doesn't.
When we first came things weren't that simple."
"I know that
too. The Forty-second was one of the best outfits of the CD Marine -
I've never understood why it was disbanded instead of one of the
others. I'm speaking of your present situation with your troops stuck
here without transport - surely you're not intending to make Tanith
your lifetime headquarters?"
Sergeant Major
Calvin finished the orders of the day and waited patiently for
instructions. Colonel Falkenberg studied his bright-uniformed men as
they stood rigidly in the blazing noon of Tanith. A faint smile might
have played across his face for a moment. There were few of the four
thousand whose names and histories he didn't know.
Lieutenant Farquhar
was a party hack forced on him when the Forty-second was hired to
police Hadley. He became a good officer and elected to ship out after
the action. Private Alcazar was a brooding giant with a raging
thirst, the slowest man in K Company, but he could lift five times
his own mass and hide in any terrain. Dozens, thousands of men, each
with his own strengths and weaknesses, adding up to a regiment of
mercenary soldiers with no chance of going home, and an unpleasant
future if they didn't get off Tanith.
"Sergeant
Major."
"Sir!"
"You will stay
with me and time the men. Trumpeter, sound Boots and Saddles, On Full
Kits, and Ready to Board Ship."
"Sir!" The
trumpeter was a grizzled veteran with corporal's stripes. He lifted
the gleaming instrument with its blue and gold tassels, and martial
notes poured across the parade ground. Before they died away the
orderly lines dissolved into masses of running men.
There was less
confusion than Howard Bannister had expected. It seemed an incredibly
short time before the first men fell back in. They came from their
barracks in small groups, some in each company, then more, a rush,
and finally knots of stragglers. Now in place of bright colors there
was the dull drab of synthetic leather bulging over Nemourlon body
armor. The bright polish was gone from the weapons. Dress caps were
replaced by bulging combat helmets, shining boots by softer leathers.
As the regiment formed, Bannister turned to the colonel.
"Why trumpets?
I'd think that's rather out of date."
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Would you prefer shouted orders? You must remember, Mr.
Secretary, mercenaries live in garrison as well as in combat.
Trumpets remind them that they're soldiers."
"I suppose."
"Time, Sergeant
Major," the adjutant demanded.
"Eleven
minutes, eighteen seconds, sir."
"Are you trying
to tell me the men are ready to ship out now?" Bannister asked.
His expression showed polite disbelief.
"It would take
longer to get the weapons and artillery battalion equipment together,
but the infantry could board ship right now."
"I find that
hard to believe - of course the men know this is only a drill."
"How would they
know that?"
Bannister laughed.
He was a stout man, dressed in expensive business clothes with cigar
ashes down the front. Some of the ash floated free when he laughed.
"Well, you and the sergeant major are still in parade uniform."
"Look behind
you," Falkenberg said.
Bannister turned.
Falkenberg's guards and trumpeter were still in their places, their
blue and gold dress contrasting wildly with the grim synthi-leathers
of the others who had formed up with them. "The headquarters
squad has our gear," Falkenberg explained. "Sergeant
Major."
"Sir!"
"Mr. Bannister
and I will inspect the troops."
"Sir!" As
Falkenberg and his visitor left the reviewing stand Calvin fell in
with the duty squad behind him.
"Pick a couple
at random," Falkenberg advised. "It's hot out here. Forty
degrees anyway."
Bannister was
thinking the same thing. "Yes. No point in being too hard on the
men. It must be unbearable in their armor."
"I wasn't
thinking of the men," Falkenberg said.
The Secretary for
War chose L Company of Third Battalion for review. The men all looked
alike, except for size. He looked for something to stand out - a
strap not buckled, something to indicate an individual difference -
but he found none. Bannister approached a scarred private who looked
forty years old. With regeneration therapy he might have been half
that again. "This one."
"Fall out,
Wiszorik!" Calvin ordered. "Lay out your kit."
"Sir!"
Private Wiszorik might have smiled thinly, but if he did Bannister
missed it. He swung the packframe easily off his shoulders and stood
it on the ground. The headquarters squad helped him lay out his nylon
shelter cloth, and Wiszorik emptied the pack, placing each item just
so.
Rifle: a New
Aberdeen seven-mm semi-automatic, with ten-shot clip and fifty-round
box magazine, both full and spotlessly clean like the rifle. A
bandolier of cartridges. Five grenades. Nylon belt with bayonets,
canteen, spoon, and stainless cup that served as a private's entire
mess kit. Great-cloak and poncho, string net underwear, layers of
clothing -
"You'll note
he's equipped for any climate," Falkenberg commented. "He'd
expect to be issued special gear for a non-Terran environment, but he
can live on any inhabitable world with what he's got."
"Yes."
Bannister watched interestedly. The pack hadn't seemed heavy, but
Wiszorik kept withdrawing gear from it. First aid kit, chemical
warfare protection drugs and equipment, concentrated field rations,
soup and beverage powders, a tiny gasoline-burning field stove -
"What's that?" Bannister asked. "Do all the men carry
them?"
"One to each
maniple, sir," Wiszorik answered.
"His share of
five men's community equipment," Falkenberg explained. "A
monitor, three privates, and a recruit make up the basic combat unit
of this outfit, and we try to keep the maniples self-sufficient."
More gear came from
the pack. Much of it was light alloys or plastic, but Bannister
wondered about the total weight. Trowel, tent pegs, nylon cordage, a
miniature cutting torch, more group equipment for field repairs to
both machinery and the woven Nemourion armor, night sights for the
rifle, a small plastic tube half a meter long and eight centimeters
in diameter - "And that?" Bannister asked.
"Anti-aircraft
rocket," Falkenberg told him. "Not effective against fast
jets, but it'll knock out a chopper ninety-five percent of the time.
Has some capability against tanks, too. We don't like the men too
dependent on heavy weapons units."
"I see. Your
men seem well equipped, Colonel," Bannister commented. "It
must weight them down badly."
"Twenty-one
kilograms in standard g field," Falkenberg answered. "More
here, less by a lot on Washington. Every man carries a week's
rations, ammunition for a short engagement, and enough equipment to
live in the field."
"What's the
little pouch on his belt?" Bannister asked interestedly.
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Personal possessions. Probably everything he owns. You'll have
to ask Wiszorik's permission if you want to examine that."
"Never mind.
Thank you, Private Wiszorik." Howard Bannister produced a
brightly colored bandanna from an inner pocket and mopped his brow.
"All right, Colonel. You're convincing - or your men are. Let's
go to your office and talk about money."
As they left,
Wiszorik and Sergeant Major Calvin exchanged knowing winks, while
Monitor Hartzinger breathed a sigh of relief. Just suppose that
visiting panjandrum had picked Recruit Latterby! Hell, the kid
couldn't find his arse with both hands.
XIV
FALKENBERG'S OFFICE
WAS hot. It was a large room, and a ceiling fan tried without success
to stir up a breeze. Everything was damp from Tanith's wet jungle
air. Howard Bannister thought he saw fungus growing in the narrow
space between a file cabinet and the wall.
In contrast to the
room itself, the furniture was elaborate. It had been hand carved and
was the product of hundreds of hours' labor by soldiers who had
little else but time to give their commanding officer. They'd taken
Sergeant Major Calvin into a conspiracy, getting him to talk
Falkenberg into going on an inspection tour while they scrapped his
functional old field gear and replaced it with equipment as light and
useful, but hand carved with battle scenes.
The desk was large
and entirely bare. To one side a table, in easy reach, was covered
with papers. On the other side a two-meter star cube portrayed the
known stars with inhabited planets. Communication equipment was built
into a spindly legged sideboard that also held whiskey. Falkenberg
offered his visitor a drink.
"Could we have
something with ice?"
"Certainly."
Falkenberg turned toward his sideboard and raised his voice, speaking
with a distinct change in tone. "Orderly, two gin and tonics,
with much ice, if you please. Will that be satisfactory, Mr.
Secretary?"
"Yes, thank
you." Bannister wasn't accustomed to electronics being so
common. "Look, we needn't spar about. I need soldiers and you
need to get off this planet. It's as simple as that."
"Hardly,"
Falkenberg replied. "You've yet to mention money."
Howard shrugged. "I
don't have much. Washington has damned few exports. Franklin's dried
those up with the blockade. Your transport and salaries will use up
most of what we've got. But you already know this, I suppose - I'm
told you have access to Fleet Intelligence sources."
Falkenberg shrugged.
"I have my ways. You're prepared to put our return fare on
deposit with Dayan, of course.
"Yes."
Bannister was startled. "Dayan? You do have sources. I thought
our negotiations with New Jerusalem were secret. All right - we have
arrangements with Dayan to furnish transportation. It took all our
cash, so everything else is contingency money. We can offer you
something you need, though. Land, good land, and a permanent base
that's a lot more pleasant than Tanith. We can also offer - well, the
chance to be part of a free and independent nation, though I'm not
expecting that to mean much to you."
Falkenberg nodded.
"That's why you - excuse me." He paused as the orderly
brought in a tray with tinkling glasses. The trooper wore
battledress, and his rifle was slung across his shoulder.
"Will you be
wanting the men to perform again?" Falkenberg asked.
Bannister hesitated.
"I think not."
"Orderly, ask
Sergeant Major to sound recall. Dismissed." He looked back to
Bannister. "Now. You chose us because you've nothing to offer.
The New Democrats on Friedland are happy enough with their base, as
are the Scots on Covenant. Xanadu wants hard cash before they throw
troops into action. You could find some scrapings on Earth, but we're
the only first-class outfit down on its luck at the moment - what
makes you think we're that hard up, Mr. Secretary? Your cause in
Washington is lost, isn't it?"
"Not for us."
Howard Bannister sighed. Despite his bulk he seemed deflated. "All
right. Franklin's mercenaries have defeated the last organized field
army we had. The resistance is all guerrilla operations, and we both
know that won't win. We need an organized force to rally around, and
we haven't got one." Dear God, we haven't got one. Bannister
remembered rugged hills and forests, weathered mountains with snow on
their tops, and in the valleys were ranches with the air crisp and
cool. He remembered plains golden with mutated wheat and the swaying
tassels of Washington's native corn plant rippling in the wind. The
Patriot army marched again to the final battle.
They'd marched with
songs in their hearts. The cause was just and they faced only
mercenaries after defeating Franklin's regular army. Free men against
hirelings in one last campaign.
The Patriots entered
the plains outside the capital city, confident that the mercenaries
could never stand against them - and the enemy didn't run. The
humorless Covenant Scots regiments chewed through their infantry,
while Friedland armor squadrons cut across the flank and far into the
rear, destroying their supply lines and capturing the headquarters.
Washington's army had not so much been defeated as dissolved, turned
into isolated groups of men whose enthusiasm was no match for the
iron discipline of the mercenaries. In three weeks they'd lost
everything gained in two years of war.
But yet - the planet
was still only thinly settled. The Franklin Confederacy had few
soldiers and couldn't afford to keep large groups of mercenaries on
occupation duty. Out in the mountains and across the plains the
settlements were seething, and ready to revolt again. It would only
take a tiny spark to arouse them.
"We've a
chance, Colonel. I wouldn't waste our money and risk my people's
lives if I didn't think so. Let me show you. I've a map in my gear."
"Show me on
this one." Falkenberg opened a desk drawer to reveal a small
input panel. He touched keys and the translucent gray of his desk top
dissolved into colors. A polar projection of Washington formed.
There was only one
continent, an irregular mass squatting at the top of the planet. From
25° North to the South Pole there was nothing but water. The land
above that was cut by huge bays and nearly landlocked seas. Towns
showed as a network of red dots across a narrow band of land jutting
down to the 30° to 50° level.
"You sure don't
have much land to live on," Falkenberg observed. "A strip a
thousand kilometers wide by four thousand long - why Washington,
anyway?"
"Original
settlers had ancestors in Washington state. The climate's similar
too. Franklin's the companion planet. It's got more industry than we
do, but even less agricultural land. Settled mostly by Southern U.S.
people - they call themselves the Confederacy. Washington's a
secondary colony from Franklin."
Falkenberg chuckled.
"Dissidents from a dissident colony. You must be damned
independent chaps."
"So independent
that we're not going to let Franklin run our lives! They treat us
like a wholly owned subsidiary, and we are not going to take it!"
"You'll take it
if you can't get somebody to fight for you," Falkenberg reminded
him brutally. "Now, you are offering us transport out, a deposit
against our return, minimum troop pay, and land to settle on?"
"Yes, that's
right. You can use the return deposit to transport your noncombatants
later. Or cash it in. But it's all the money we can offer, Colonel."
And be damned to you. You don't care at all, but I have to deal with
you. For now.
"Yeah."
Falkenberg regarded the map sourly. "Are we facing nukes?"
"They've got
some but so do we. We concealed ours in Franklin's capital to make it
a standoff."
"Uh-huh."
Falkenberg nodded. The situation wasn't that unusual. The CD Fleet
still tried to enforce the ban for that matter. "Do they still
have those Covenant Highlanders that whipped you last time?"
Bannister winced at
the reminder. "Goddamn it, good men were killed in that fight,
and you've got no right to - "
"Do they still
have the Covenanters, Mr. Secretary?" Falkenberg repeated.
"Yes. Plus a
brigade of Friedland armor and another ten thousand Earth mercenaries
on garrison duty."
Falkenberg snorted.
No one thought much of Earth's cannon fodder. The best Earth recruits
joined the growing national armies. Bannister nodded agreement. "Then
there are about eight thousand Confederate troops, native Franklin
soldiers who'd be no match for our Washingtonians."
"You hope.
Don't play Franklin down. They're putting together the nucleus of a
damned good fighting force, Mr. Bannister - as you know. It is my
understanding that they have plans for further conquests once they've
consolidated their hold on New Washington. "
Bannister agreed
carefully. "That's the main reason we're so desperate, Colonel.
We won't buy peace by giving in to the Confederacy because they're
set to defy the CoDominium when they can build a fleet. I don't
understand why the CD Navy hasn't put paid to Franklin's little
scheme, but it's obvious Earth isn't going to do anything. In a few
years the Confederates will have their fleet and be as strong as
Xanadu or Danube, strong enough to give the CD a real fight."
"You're too
damn isolated," Falkenberg replied. "The Grand Senate won't
even keep the Fleet up to enough strength to protect what the CD's
already got - let alone find the money to interfere in your sector.
The shortsighted bastards run around putting out fires, and the few
Senators who look ten years ahead don't have any influence." He
shook his head suddenly. "But that's not our problem. Okay, what
about landing security? I don't have any assault boats, and I doubt
you've the money to hire those from Dayan."
"It's tough,"
Bannister admitted. "But blockade runners can get through. Tides
on New Washington are enormous, but we know our coasts. The Dayan
captain can put you down at night here, or along there ..." The
rebel war secretary indicated a number of deep bays and fiords on the
jagged coast, bright blue spatters on the desk map. "You'll have
about two hours of slack water. That's all the time you'd have anyway
before the Confederate spy satellites detect the ship."
XV
ROGER HASTINGS DREW
his pretty brunette wife close to him and leaned against the barbecue
pit. It made a nice pose and the photographers took several shots.
They begged for more, but Hastings shook his head. "Enough,
boys, enough! I've only been sworn in as mayor of Allansport - you'd
think I was Governor General of the whole planet!"
"But give us a
statement," the reporters begged. "Will you support the
Confederacy's rearmament plans? I understand the smelter is tooling
up to produce naval armament alloys - "
"I said
enough," Roger commanded. "Go have a drink." The
reporters reluctantly scattered. "Eager chaps," Hastings
told his wife. "Pity there's only the one little paper."
Juanita laughed.
"You'd make the capital city Times if there was a way to get the
pictures there. But it was a fair question, Roger. What are you going
to do about Franklin's war policies? What will happen to Harley when
they start expanding the Confederacy?" The amusement died from
her face as she thought of their son in the army.
"There isn't
much I can do. The mayor of Allansport isn't consulted on matters of
high policy. Damn it, sweetheart, don't you start in on me too. It's
too nice a day."
Hastings' quarried
stone house stood high on a hill above Nanaimo Bay. The city of
Allansport sprawled across the hills below them, stretching almost to
the high water mark running irregularly along the sandy beaches
washed by endless surf. At night they could hear the waves crashing.
They held hands and
watched the sea beyond the island that formed Allansport Harbor.
"Here it comes!" Roger said. He pointed to a wall of
rushing water two meters high. The tide bore swept around the end of
Waada Island, then curled back toward the city.
"Pity the poor
sailors," Juanita said.
Roger shrugged. "The
packet ship's anchored well enough."
They watched the
150-meter cargo vessel tossed about by the tidal force. The tide bore
caught her nearly abeam and she rolled dangerously before swinging on
her chains to head into the flowing tide water. It seemed nothing
could hold her, but those chains had been made in Roger's foundries,
and he knew their strength.
"It has been a
nice day." Juanita sighed. Their house was on one of the large
greensward commons running up the hill from Allansport, and the
celebrations had spilled out of their yard, across the greens, and
into their neighbors' yards as well. Portable bars manned by Roger's
campaign workers dispensed an endless supply of local wines and
brandies.
To the west New
Washington's twin companion, Franklin, hung in its eternal place.
When sunset brought New Washington's twenty hours of daylight to an
end it passed from a glowing ball in the bright day sky to a gibbous
sliver in the darkness, then rapidly widened. Reddish shadows danced
on Franklin's cloudy face.
Roger and Juanita
stood in silent appreciation of the stars, the planet, the sunset.
Allansport was a frontier town on an unimportant planet, but it was
home and they loved it.
The inauguration
party had been exhaustingly successful. Roger gratefully went to the
drawing room while Juanita climbed the stairs to put their sleepy
children to bed. As manager of the smelter and foundry, Roger had a
home that was one of the finest on all the Ranier Peninsula. It stood
tall and proud - a big stone Georgian mansion with wide entry hall
and paneled rooms. Now, he was joined by Martine Ardway in his
favorite, the small conversation-sized drawing room.
"Congratulations
again, Roger," Colonel Ardway boomed. "We'll all be behind
you." The words were more than the usual inauguration day
patter. Although Ardway's son Johann was married to Roger's daughter,
the Colonel had opposed Hastings' election, and Ardway had a large
following among the hard-line Loyalists in Allansport. He was also
commander of the local militia. Johann held a captain's commission.
Roger's own boy Harley was only a lieutenant, but in the Regulars.
"Have you told
Harley about your winning?" Ardway asked.
"Can't. The
communications to Vancouver are out. As a matter of fact, all our
communications are out right now."
Ardway nodded
phlegmatically. Allansport was the only town on a peninsula well over
a thousand kilometers from the nearest settlements. New Washington
was so close to its red dwarf sun that loss of communications was
standard through much of the planet's fifty-two standard-day year. An
undersea cable to Preston Bay had been planned when the rebellion
broke out, and now that it was over work could start again.
"I mean it
about being with you," Ardway repeated. "I still think
you're wrong, but there can't be more than one policy about this. I
just hope it works."
"Look, Martine,
we can't go on treating the rebels like traitors. We need'em too
much. There aren't many rebels here, but if I enforce the
confiscation laws it'll cause resentment in the East. We've had
enough bloody war." Roger stretched and yawned. "Excuse me.
It's been a hard day and it's a while since I was a rock miner. There
was once a time when I could dig all day and drink all night."
Ardway shrugged.
Like Hastings, he had once been a miner, but unlike the mayor he
hadn't kept in shape. He wasn't fat, but he had become a large,
balding, round man with a paunch that spilled over his wide garrison
belt. It spoiled his looks when he wore military uniform, which he
did whenever possible. "You're in charge, Roger. I won't get in
your way. Maybe you can even get the old rebel families on your side
against this stupid imperialistic venture Franklin's pushing. God
knows we've enough problems at home without looking for more. I
think. What in hell's going on out there?"
Someone was yelling
in the town below. "Good God, were those shots?" Roger
asked. "We better find out." Reluctantly he pushed himself
up from the leather easy chair. "Hello - hello - what's this?
The phone is out, Martine. Dead."
"Those were
shots," Colonel Ardway said. "I don't like this - rebels?
The packet came in this afternoon, but you don't suppose there were
rebels on board her? We better go down and see to this. You sure the
phone's dead?"
"Very dead,"
Hastings said quietly. "Lord, I hope it's not a new rebellion.
Get your troops called out, though."
"Right."
Ardway took a pocket communicator from his belt pouch. He spoke into
it with increasing agitation. "Roger, there is something wrong!
I'm getting nothing but static. Somebody's jamming the whole
communications band."
"Nonsense.
We're near periastron. The sunspots are causing it." Hastings
sounded confident, but he was praying silently. Not more war. It
wouldn't be a threat to Allansport and the Peninsula - there weren't
more than a handful of rebels out here, but they'd be called on for
troops to go east and fight in rebel areas like Ford Heights and the
Columbia Valley. It was so damn rotten! He remembered burning ranches
and plantations during the last flareup.
"Goddamn it,
don't those people know they lose more in the wars than Franklin's
merchants are costing them?" But he was already speaking to an
empty room. Colonel Ardway had dashed outside and was calling to the
neighbors to fall out with military equipment.
Roger followed him
outside. To the west Franklin flooded the night with ten thousand
times Luna's best efforts on Earth. There were soldiers coming up the
broad street from the main section of town.
"Who in hell -
those aren't rebels," Hastings shouted. They were men in
synthi-leather battledress, and they moved too deliberately. Those
were Regulars.
There was a roar of
motors. A wave of helicopters passed overhead. Roger heard ground
effects cars on the greensward, and at least two hundred soldiers
were running purposefully up the street toward his house. At each
house below a knot of five men fell out of the open formation.
"Turn out!
Militia turn out! Rebels!" Colonel Ardway was shouting. He had a
dozen men, none in armor, and their best weapons were rifles.
"Take cover!
Fire at will!" Ardway screamed. His voice carried determination
but it had an edge of fear. "Roger, get the hell inside, you
damn fool!"
"But - "
The advancing troops were no more than a hundred meters away. One of
Ardway's militia fired an automatic rifle from the house next door.
The leather-clad troops scattered and someone shouted orders.
Fire lashed out to
rake the house. Roger stood in his front yard, dazed, unbelieving, as
under Franklin's bright reddish light the nightmare went on. The
troops advanced steadily again and there was no more resistance from
the militia.
It all happened so
quickly. Even as Roger had that thought, the leather lines of men
reached him. An officer raised a megaphone.
"I CALL ON YOU
TO SURRENDER IN THE NAME OF THE FREE STATES OF WASHINGTON. STAY IN
YOUR HOMES AND DO NOT TRY TO RESIST. ARMED MEN WILL BE SHOT WITHOUT
WARNING."
A five-man
detachment ran past Roger Hastings and through the front door of his
home. It brought him from his daze. "Juanita!" He screamed
and ran toward his house.
"HALT! HALT OR
WE FIRE! YOU MAN, HALT!"
Roger ran on
heedlessly.
"SQUAD FIRE."
"BELAY THAT
ORDER!"
As Roger reached the
door he was grabbed by one of the soldiers and flung against the
wall. "Hold it right there," the trooper said grimly.
"Monitor, I have a prisoner."
Another soldier came
into the broad entryway. He held a clipboard and looked up at the
address of the house, checking it against his papers. "Mr. Roger
Hastings?" he asked.
Roger nodded
dazedly. Then he thought better of it.
"No. I'm - "
"Won't do,"
the soldier said. "I've your picture, Mr. Mayor." Roger
nodded again. Who was this man? There had been many accents, and the
officer with the clipboard had yet another. "Who are you?"
he demanded.
"Lieutenant
Jaimie Farquhar of Falkenberg's Mercenary Legion, acting under
authority of the Free States of Washington. You're under military
detention, Mr. Mayor."
There was more
firing outside. Roger's house hadn't been touched. Everything looked
so absolutely ordinary. Somehow that added to the horror.
A voice called from
upstairs. "His wife and kids are up here, Lieutenant."
"Thank you,
Monitor. Ask the lady to come down, please. Mr. Mayor, please don't
be concerned for your family. We do not make war on civilians."
There were more shots from the street.
A thousand questions
boiled in Roger's mind. He stood dazedly trying to sort them into
some order. "Have you shot Colonel Ardway? Who's fighting out
there?"
"If you mean
the fat man in uniform, he's safe enough. We've got him in custody.
Unfortunately, some of your militia have ignored the order to
surrender, and it's going to be hard on them."
As if in emphasis
there was the muffled blast of a grenade, then a burst from a machine
pistol answered by the slow deliberate fire of an automatic rifle.
The battle noises swept away across the brow of the hill, but sounds
of firing and shouted orders carried over the pounding surf.
Farquhar studied his
clipboard. "Mayor Hastings and Colonel Ardway. Yes, thank you
for identifying him. I've orders to take you both to the command
post. Monitor!"
"Sir!"
"Your maniple
will remain here on guard. You will allow no one to enter this house.
Be polite to Mrs. Hastings, but keep her and the children here. If
there is any attempt at looting you will prevent it. This street is
under the protection of the Regiment. Understood?"
"Sir!"
The slim officer
nodded in satisfaction. "If you'll come with me, Mr. Mayor,
there's a car on the greensward." As Roger followed numbly he
saw the hall clock. He had been sworn in as mayor less than eleven
hours ago.
The Regimental
Command Post was in the city council meeting chambers, with
Falkenberg's office in a small connecting room. The council room
itself was filled with electronic gear and bustled with runners,
while Major Savage and Captain Fast controlled the military conquest
of Allansport. Falkenberg watched the situation develop in the maps
displayed on his desk top.
"It was so
fast!" Howard Bannister said. The pudgy secretary of war shook
his head in disbelief. "I never thought you could do it."
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Light infantry can move, Mr. Secretary. But it cost us. We had
to leave the artillery train in orbit with most of our vehicles. I
can equip with captured stuff, but we're a bit short on transport."
He watched lights flash confusedly for a second on the display before
the steady march of red lights blinking to green resumed.
"But now you're
without artillery," Bannister said. "And the Patriot army's
got none."
"Can't have it
both ways. We had less than an hour to offload and get the Dayan
boats off planet before the spy satellites came over. Now we've got
the town and nobody knows we've landed. If this goes right the first
the Confederates'll know about us is when their spy snooper stops
working."
"We had some
luck," Bannister said. "Boat in harbor, communications out
to the mainland - "
"Don't confuse
luck with decision factors," Falkenberg answered. "Why
would I take an isolated hole full of Loyalists if there weren't some
advantages?" Privately he knew better. The telephone exchange
taken by infiltrating scouts, the power plant almost unguarded and
falling to three minutes' brief combat - it was all luck you could
count on with good men, but it was luck. "Excuse me." He
touched a stud in response to a low humming note. "Yes?"
"Train coming
in from the mines, John Christian," Major Savage reported. "We
have the station secured, shall we let it go past the block outside
town?"
"Sure, stick
with the plan, Jerry. Thanks." The miners coming home after a
week's work on the sides of Ranier Crater were due for a surprise.
They waited until
all the lights changed to green. Every objective was taken. Power
plants, communications, homes of leading citizens, public buildings,
railway station and airport, police station . . . Allansport and its
eleven thousand citizens were under control. A timer display ticked
off the minutes until the spy satellite would be overhead.
Falkenberg spoke to
the intercom. "Sergeant Major, we have twenty-nine minutes to
get this place looking normal for this time of night. See to it."
"Sir!"
Calvin's unemotional voice was reassuring.
"I don't think
the Confederates spend much time examining pictures of the boondocks
anyway," Falkenberg told Bannister. "But it's best not to
take any chances." Motors roared as ground cars and choppers
were put under cover. Another helicopter flew overhead looking for
telltales.
"As soon as
that thing's past get the troops on the packet ship," Falkenberg
ordered. "And send in Captain Svoboda, Mayor Hastings, and the
local militia colonel - Ardway, wasn't it?"
"Yes, sir,"
Calvin answered. "Colonel Martine Ardway. I'll see if he's up to
it, Colonel."
"Up to it,
Sergeant Major? Was he hurt?"
"He had a
pistol, Colonel. Twelve millimeter thing, big slug, slow bullet,
couldn't penetrate armor but he bruised hell out of two troopers.
Monitor Badnikov laid him out with a rifle butt. Surgeon says he'll
be all right."
"Good enough.
If he's able to come I want him here."
"Sir."
Falkenberg turned
back to the desk and used the computer to produce a planetary map.
"Where would the supply ship go from here, Mr. Bannister?"
The secretary traced
a course. "It would - and will - stay inside this island chain.
Nobody but a suicide takes ships into open water on this planet. With
no land to interrupt them the seas go sixty meters in storms."
He indicated a route from Allansport to Cape Titan, then through an
island chain in the Sea of Mariners. "Most ships stop at Preston
Bay to deliver metalshop goods for the ranches up on Ford Heights
Plateau. The whole area's Patriot territory and you could liberate it
with one stroke."
Falkenberg studied
the map, then said, "No. So most ships stop there - do some go
directly to Astoria?" He pointed to a city eighteen hundred
kilometers east of Preston Bay.
"Yes, sometimes
- but the Confederates keep a big garrison in Astoria, Colonel. Much
larger than the one in Preston Bay. Why go twenty-five hundred
kilometers to fight a larger enemy force when there's good Patriot
country at half the distance?"
"For the same
reason the Confederates don't put much strength at Preston Bay. It's
isolated. The Ford Heights ranches are scattered - look, Mr.
Secretary, if we take Astoria we have the key to the whole Columbia
River Valley. The Confederates won't know if we're going north to
Doak's Ferry, east to Grand Forks and on into the capital plains, or
west to Ford Heights. If I take Preston Bay first they'll know what I
intend because there's only one thing a sane man could do from
there."
"But the
Columbia Valley people aren't reliable! You won't get good recruits -
"
They were
interrupted by a knock. Sergeant Major Calvin ushered in Roger
Hastings and Martine Ardway. The militiaman had a lump over his left
eye, and his cheek was bandaged.
Falkenberg stood to
be introduced and offered his hand, which Roger Hastings ignored.
Ardway stood rigid for a second, then extended his own. "I won't
say I'm pleased to meet you, Colonel Falkenberg, but my compliments
on an operation well conducted."
"Thank you,
Colonel. Gentlemen, please be seated. You have met Captain Svoboda,
my Provost?" Falkenberg indicated a lanky officer in battledress
who'd come in with them. "Captain Svoboda will be in command of
this town when the Forty-second moves out."
Ardway's eyes
narrowed with interest. Falkenberg smiled. "You'll see it soon
enough, Colonel. Now, the rules of occupation are simple. As
mercenaries, gentlemen, we are subject to the CoDominium's Laws of
War. Public property is seized in the name of the Free States.
Private holdings are secure, and any property requisitioned will be
paid for. Any property used to aid resistance, whether directly or as
a place to make conspiracy, will be instantly confiscated."
Ardway and Hastings
shrugged. They'd heard all this before. At one time the CD tried to
suppress mercenaries. When that foiled the Fleet rigidly enforced the
Grand Senate's Laws of War, but now the Fleet was weakened by budget
cuts and a new outbreak of U.S.Soviet hatred. New Washington was
isolated and it might be years before CD Marines appeared to enforce
rules the Grand Senate no longer cared about.
"I have a
problem, gentlemen," Falkenberg said. "This city is
Loyalist, and I must withdraw my regiment. There aren't any Patriot
soldiers yet. I'm leaving enough force to complete the conquest of
this peninsula, but Captain Svoboda will have few troops in
Allansport itself. Since we cannot occupy the city, it can
legitimately be destroyed to prevent it from becoming a base against
me."
"You can't!"
Hastings protested, jumping to his feet, shattering a glass ashtray.
"I was sure all that talk about preserving private property was
a lot of crap!" He turned to Bannister. "Howard, I told you
last time all you'd succeed in doing was burning down the whole
goddamn planet! Now you import soldiers to do it for you! What in
God's name can you get from this war?"
"Freedom,"
Bannister said proudly. "Allansport is a nest of traitors
anyway."
"Hold it,"
Falkenberg said gently.
"Traitors!"
Bannister repeated. "You'll get what you deserve, you - "
"TENSH-HUT!"
Sergeant Major Calvin's command startled them. "The Colonel said
you was to hold it."
"Thank you,"
Falkenberg said quietly. The silence was louder than the shouts had
been. "I said I could burn the city, not that I intended to.
However, since I won't I must have hostages." He handed Roger
Hastings a computer typescript. "Troops are quartered in homes
of these persons. You will note that you and Colonel Ardway are at
the top of my list. All will be detained, and anyone who escapes will
be replaced by members of his family. Your property and ultimately
your lives are dependent on your cooperation with Captain Svoboda
until I send a regular garrison here. Is this understood?"
Colonel Ardway
nodded grimly. "Yes, sir. I agree to it."
"Thank you,"
Falkenberg said."And you, Mr. Mayor?"
"I understand."
"And?"
Falkenberg prompted.
"And what? You
want me to like it? What kind of sadist are you?"
"I don't care
if you like it, Mr. Mayor. I am waiting for you to agree."
"He doesn't
understand, Colonel," Martine Ardway said. "Roger, he's
asking if you agree to serve as a hostage for the city. The others
will be asked as well. If he doesn't get enough to agree he'll burn
the city to the ground."
"Oh."
Roger felt a cold knife of fear. What a hell of a choice.
"The question
is," Falkenberg said, "will you accept the responsibilities
of the office you hold and keep your damn people from making
trouble?"
Roger swallowed
hard. I wanted to be mayor so I could erase the hatreds of the
rebellion. "Yes. I agree,"
"Excellent.
Captain Svoboda."
"Sir."
"Take the mayor
and Colonel Ardway to your office and interview the others. Notify me
when you have enough hostages to ensure security."
"Yes, sir.
Gentlemen?" It was hard to read his expression as he showed them
to the door. The visor of his helmet was up, but Svoboda's angular
face remained in shadow. As he escorted them from the room the
intercom buzzed.
"The
satellite's overhead," Major Savage reported. "All correct,
John Christian. And we've secured the passengers off that train."
The office door
closed. Roger Hastings moved like a robot across the bustling city
council chamber room, only dimly aware of the bustle of headquarters
activities around him. The damn war, the fools, the bloody damned
fools - couldn't they ever leave things alone?
XVI
A DOZEN MEN in
camouflage battledress led a slim pretty girl across hard-packed
sands to the water's edge. They were glad to get away from the softer
sands above the highwater mark nearly a kilometer from the pounding
surf. Walking in that had been hell, with shifting powder sands
infested with small burrowing carnivores too stupid not to attack a
booted man.
The squad climbed
wordlessly into the waiting boat while their leader tried to assist
the girl. She needed no help. Glenda Ruth wore tan nylon coveralls
and an equipment belt, and she knew this planet and its dangers
better than the soldiers. Glenda Ruth Horton had been taking care of
herself for twenty-four of her twenty-six years.
White sandy beaches
dotted with marine life exposed by the low tide stretched in both
directions as far as they could see. Only the boat and its crew
showed that the planet had human life. When the coxswain started the
boat's water jet the whirr sent clouds of tiny sea birds into frantic
activity.
The fast packet
Maribell lay twelve kilometers offshore, well beyond the horizon.
When the boat arrived deck cranes dipped to seize her and haul the
flat-bottomed craft to her davits. Captain lan Frazer escorted Glenda
Ruth to the chart room.
Falkenberg's battle
staff waited there impatiently, some sipping whiskey, others staring
at charts whose information they had long since absorbed. Many showed
signs of seasickness: the eighty-hour voyage from Allansport had been
rough, and it hadn't helped that the ship pushed along at
thirty-three kilometers an hour, plowing into big swells among the
islands.
lan saluted, then
took a glass from the steward and offered it to Glenda Ruth. "Colonel
Falkenberg, Miss Horton. Glenda Ruth is the patriot leader in the
Columbia Valley. Glenda Ruth, you'll know Secretary Bannister."
She nodded coldly as
if she did not care for the rebel minister, but she put out her hand
to Falkenberg and shook his in a thoroughly masculine way. She had
other masculine gestures, but even with her brown hair tucked neatly
under a visored cap no one would mistake her for a man. She had a
heart-shaped face and large green eyes, and her weathered tan might
have been envied by the great ladies of the CoDominium.
"My pleasure,
Miss Horton," Falkenberg said perfunctorily. "Were you
seen?"
lan Frazer looked
pained. "No, sir. We met the rebel group and it seemed safe
enough, so Centurion Michaels and I borrowed some clothing from the
ranchers and let Glenda Ruth take us to town for our own look."
lan moved to the chart table.
"The fort's up
here on the heights." Frazer pointed to the coastal chart.
"Typical wall and trench system. Mostly they depend on the
Friedlander artillery to control the city and river mouth."
"What's in
there, lan?" Major Savage asked.
"Worst thing is
artillery," the Scout Troop commander answered. "Two
batteries of 105's and a battery of 155's, all self-propelled. As
near as we can figure it's a standard Friedland detached battalion."
"About six
hundred Friedlanders, then," Captain Rottermill said
thoughtfully. "And we're told there's a regiment of Earth
mercenaries. Anything else?"
lan glanced at
Glenda Ruth. "They moved in a squadron of Confederate Regular
Cavalry last week," she said. "Light armored cars. We think
they're due to move on, because there's nothing for them to do here,
but nobody knows where they're going."
"That is odd,"
Rottermill said. "There's not a proper petrol supply for them
here - where would they go?"
Glenda Ruth regarded
him thoughtfully. She had little use for mercenaries. Freedom was
something to be won, not bought and paid for. But they needed these
men, and at least this one had done his homework. "Probably to
the Snake Valley. They've got wells and refineries there." She
indicated the flatlands where the Snake and Columbia merged at Doak's
Ferry six hundred kilometers to the north. "That's Patriot
country and cavalry could be useful to supplement the big fortress at
the Ferry."
"Damn bad luck
all the same, Colonel," Rottermill said. "Nearly three
thousand men in that damned fortress and we've not a lot more. How's
the security, lan?"
Frazer shrugged.
"Not tight. The Earth goons patrol the city, doing MP duty,
checking papers. No trouble avoiding them."
"The Earthies
make up most of the guard details too," Glenda Ruth added.
"They've got a whole rifle regiment of them."
"We'll not take
that place by storm, John Christian," Major Savage said
carefully. "Not without losing half the regiment."
"And just what
are your soldiers for?" Glenda Ruth demanded. "Do they
fight sometimes?"
"Sometimes."
Falkenberg studied the sketch his scout commander was making. "Do
they have sentries posted, Captain?"
"Yes, sir.
Pairs in towers and walking guards. There are radar dishes every
hundred meters, and I expect there are body capacitance wires strung
outside as well." "I told you," Secretary Bannister
said smugly. There was triumph in his voice, in contrast to the grim
concern of Falkenberg and his officers. "You'll have to raise an
army to take that place. Ford Heights is our only chance, Colonel.
Astoria's too strong for you."
"No!"
Glenda Ruth's strong, low-pitched voice commanded attention. "We've
risked everything to gather the Columbia Valley Patriots. If you
don't take Astoria now, they'll go back to their ranches. I was
opposed to starting a new revolution, Howard Bannister. I don't think
we can stand another long war like the last one. But I've organized
my father's friends, and in two days I'll command a fighting force.
If we scatter now I'll never get them to fight again."
"Where is your
army - and how large is it?" Falkenberg asked.
"The assembly
area is two hundred kilometers north of here. I have six hundred
riflemen now and another five thousand coming. A force that size
can't hide!" She regarded Falkenberg without enthusiasm. They
needed a strong organized nucleus to win, but she was trusting her
friends' lives to a man she'd never met. "Colonel, my ranchers
can't face Confederate Regulars or Friedland armor without support,
but if you take Astoria we'll have a base we can hold."
"Yes."
Falkenberg studied the maps as he thought about the girl. She had a
more realistic appreciation of irregular forces than Bannister - but
how reliable was she? "Mr. Bannister, we can't take Astoria
without artillery even with your Ford Heights ranchers. I need
Astoria's guns, and the city's the key to the whole campaign anyway.
With it in hand
there's a chance to win this war quickly."
"But it can't
be done!" Bannister insisted.
"Yet it must be
done," Falkenberg reminded him. "And we do have surprise.
No Confederate knows we're on this planet and won't for - " he
glanced at his pocket computer - "twenty-seven hours, when
Weapons Detachment knocks down the snooper. Miss Horton, have you
made trouble for Astoria lately?"
"Not for
months," she said. Was this mercenary, this man Falkenberg,
different? "I only came this far south to meet you."
Captain Frazer's
sketch of the fort lay on the table like a death warrant. Falkenberg
watched in silence as the scout drew in machine-gun emplacements
along the walls.
"I forbid you
to risk the revolution on some mad scheme!" Bannister shouted.
"Astoria's far too strong. You said so yourself."
Glenda Ruth's rising
hopes died again. Bannister was giving the mercenaries a perfect out.
Falkenberg
straightened and took a brimming glass from the steward. "Who's
junior man here?" He looked around the steel-riveted chart room
until he saw an officer near the bulkhead. "Excellent.
Lieutenant Fuller was a prisoner on Tanith, Mr. Bannister. Until we
caught him - Mark, give us a toast."
"A toast,
Colonel?"
"Montrose's
toast, Mister. Montrose's toast."
Fear clutched
Bannister's guts into a hard ball. Montrose! And Glenda Ruth stared
uncomprehendingly, but there was reborn hope in her eyes. . . .
"Aye
aye, Colonel." Fuller raised his glass. "He either
fears his fate too much, or his desserts are small, who dares not put
it to the touch, to win or lose it all."
Bannister's hands
shook as the officers drank. Falkenberg's wry smile, Glenda Ruth's
answering look of comprehension and admiration - they were all crazy!
The lives of all the patriots were at stake, and the man and the
girl, both of them, they were insane!
Maribell swung to
her anchors three kilometers offshore from Astoria. The fast-moving
waters of the Columbia swept around her toward the ocean some nine
kilometers downstream, where waves crashed in a line of breakers five
meters high. Getting across the harbor bar was a tricky business, and
even in the harbor itself the tides were too fierce for the ship to
dock.
Maribell's cranes
hummed as they swung cargo lighters off her decks. The air-cushion
vehicles moved grace-lessly across the water and over the sandy
beaches to the corrugated aluminum warehouses, where they left cargo
containers and picked up empties.
In the fortress
above Astoria the officer of the guard dutifully logged the ship's
arrival into his journal. It was the most exciting event in two
weeks. Since the rebellion had ended there was little for his men to
do.
He turned from the
tower to look around the encampment. Blasted waste of good armor, he
thought. No point in having self-propelled guns as harbor guards. The
armor wasn't used, since the guns were in concrete revetments. The
lieutenant had been trained in mobile war, and though he could
appreciate the need for control over the mouth of New Washington's
largest river, he didn't like this duty. There was no glory in
manning an impregnable fortress.
Retreat sounded and
all over the fort men stopped to face the flags. The Franklin
Confederacy colors fluttered down the staff to the salutes of the
garrison. Although as guard officer he wasn't supposed to, the
lieutenant saluted as the trumpets sang.
Over by the guns men
stood at attention, but they didn't salute. Friedland mercenaries,
they owed the Confederacy no loyalty that hadn't been bought and paid
for. The lieutenant admired them as soldiers, but they were not
likable. It was worth knowing them, though, since nobody else could
handle armor like them. He had managed to make friends with a few.
Someday, when the Confederacy was stronger, they would dispense with
mercenaries, and until then he wanted to learn all he could. There
were rich planets in this sector of space, planets that Franklin
could add to the Confederacy now that the rebellion was over. With
the CD Fleet weaker every year, opportunities at the edges of
inhabited space grew, but only for those ready for them.
When retreat ended
he turned back to the harbor. An ugly cargo lighter was coming up the
broad roadway to the fort. He frowned, puzzled, and climbed down from
the tower.
When he reached the
gate the lighter had halted there. Its engine roared, and it was very
difficult to understand the driver, a broad-shouldered
seaman-stevedore who was insisting on something.
"I got no
orders," the Earth mercenary guardsman was protesting. He turned
to the lieutenant in relief.
"Sir, they say
they have a shipment for us on that thing."
"What is it?"
the lieutenant shouted. He had to say it again to be heard over the
roar of the motors. "What is the cargo?"
"Damned if I
know," the driver said cheerfully. "Says on the manifest
'Astoria Fortress, attention supply officer.' Look, Lieutenant, we
got to be moving. If the captain don't catch the tide he can't cross
the harbor bar tonight and he'll skin me for squawrk bait! Where's
the supply officer?"
The lieutenant
looked at his watch. After retreat the men dispersed rapidly and
supply officers kept short hours. "There's nobody to offload,"
he shouted.
"Got a crane
and crew here," the driver said. "Look, just show me where
to put this stuff. We got to sail at slack water."
"Put it out
here," the lieutenant said.
"Right. You'll
have a hell of a job moving it though." He turned to his
companion in the cab. "OK, Charlie, dump it!"
The lieutenant
thought of what the supply officer would say when he found he'd have
to move the ten-by-five-meter containers. He climbed into the bed of
the cargo lighter. In the manifest pocket of each container was a
ticket reading "COMMISSARY SUPPLIES."
"Wait," he
ordered. "Private, open the gates. Driver, take this over
there." He indicated a warehouse near the center of the camp.
"Offload at the big doors."
"Right. Hold
it, Charlie," Sergeant Major Calvin said cheerfully. "The
lieutenant wants the stuff inside." He gave his full attention
to driving the ungainly GEM.
The lighter crew
worked the crane efficiently, stacking the cargo containers by the
warehouse doors. "Sign here," the driver said.
"I - perhaps I
better get someone to inventory the cargo."
"Aw, for
Christ's sake," the driver protested. "Look, you can see
the seals ain't broke - here, I'll write it in. 'Seals intact, but
cargo not inspected by recip - ' How you spell 'recipient,'
Lieutenant?"
"Here, I'll
write it for you" He did, and signed with his name and rank.
"Have a good voyage?"
"Naw. Rough out
there, and getting worse. We got to scoot, more cargo to offload."
"Not for us!"
"Naw, for the
town. Thanks, Lieutenant." The GEM pivoted and roared away as
the guard lieutenant shook his head. What a mess. He climbed into the
tower to write the incident up in the day book. As he wrote he
sighed. One hour to dark, and three until he was off duty. It had
been a long, dull day.
Three hours before
dawn the cargo containers silently opened, and Captain lan Frazer led
his scouts onto the darkened parade ground. Wordlessly they moved
toward the revetted guns. One squad formed ranks and marched toward
the gates, rifles at slope arms.
The sentries turned.
"What the hell?" one said. "It's not time for our
relief, who's there?"
"Can it,"
the corporal of the squad said. "We got orders to go out on some
goddam perimeter patrol. Didn't you get the word?"
"Nobody tells
me anythin' - uh." The sentry grunted as the corporal struck him
with a leather bag of shot. His companion turned quickly, but too
late. The squad had already reached him.
Two men stood erect
in the starlight at the posts abandoned by the sentries. Astoria was
far over the horizon from Franklin, and only a faint red glow to the
west indicated the companion planet.
The rest of the
squad entered the guardhouse. They moved efficiently among the
sleeping relief men, and when they finished the corporal took a
communicator from his belt. "Laertes."
On the other side of
the parade ground, Captain Frazer led a group of picked men to the
radar control center. There was a silent flurry of bayonets and rifle
butts. When the brief struggle ended lan spoke into his communicator.
"Hamlet."
There was no answer,
but he hadn't expected one.
Down in the city
other cargo containers opened in darkened warehouses. Armed men
formed into platoons and marched through the dockside streets. The
few civilians who saw them scurried for cover; no one had much use
for the Earthling mercenaries the Confederates employed.
A full company
marched up the hill to the fort. On the other side, away from the
city, the rest of the regiment crawled across plowed fields, heedless
of radar alarms but careful of the sentries on the walls above. They
passed the first line of capacitance wires and Major Savage held his
breath. Ten seconds, twenty. He sighed in relief and motioned the
troops to advance.
The marching company
reached the gate. Sentries challenged them while others in guard
towers watched in curiosity. When the gates swung open the tower
guards relaxed. The officer of the watch must have had special orders
. . .
The company moved
into the armored car park. Across the parade ground a sentry peered
into the night. Something out there? "Halt! Who's there?"
There was only silence.
"See something,
Jack?" his companion asked.
"Dunno - look
out there. By the bushes. Somethin' - My God, Harry! The field's full
of men! CORPORAL OF THE GUARD! Turn out the Guard!" He hesitated
before taking the final step, but he was sure enough to risk his
sergeant's scathing displeasure. A stabbing finger hit the red alarm
button, and lights blazed around the camp perimeter. The sirens
hooted, and he had time to see a thousand men in the field near the
camp; then a burst of fire caught him, and he fell.
The camp erupted
into confusion. The Friedland gunners woke first. They wasted less
than a minute before their officers realized the alarm was real. Then
the gunners boiled out of the barracks to save their precious armor,
but from each revetment, bursts of machine-gun fire cut into them.
Gunners fell in heaps as the rest scurried for cover. Many had not
brought personal weapons in their haste to serve the guns, and they
lost time going back for them.
Major Savage's men
'reached the walls and clambered over. Alternate sections kept the
walls under a ripple of fire, and despite their heavy battle armor
the men climbed easily in Washington's lower gravity. Officers sent
them to the parade ground where they added their fire to that of the
men in the revetments. Hastily set machine guns isolated the
artillery emplacements with a curtain of fire.
That artillery was
the fort's main defense. Once he was certain it was secure, Major
Savage sent his invaders by waves into the camp barracks. They burst
in with grenades and rifles ready, taking whole companies before
their officers could arrive with the keys to their weapons racks.
Savage took the Confederate Regulars that way, and only the
Freidlanders had come out fighting; but their efforts were directed
toward their guns, and there they had no chance.
Meanwhile the Earth
mercenaries, never very steady troops at best, called for quarter;
many had not fired a shot. The camp defenders fought as disorganized
groups against a disciplined force whose communications worked
perfectly.
At the fortress
headquarters building the alarms woke Commandant Albert Morris. He
listened in disbelief to the sounds of battle, and although he rushed
out half-dressed, he was too late. His command was engulfed by nearly
four thousand screaming men. Morris stood a moment in indecision,
torn by the desire to run to the nearest barracks and rally what
forces he could, but he decided his duty was in the communications
room. The Capital must be told. Desperately he ran to the radio
shack.
Everything seemed
normal inside, and he shouted orders to the duty sergeant before he
realized he had never seen the man before. He turned to face a squad
of leveled rifles. A bright light stabbed from a darker corner of the
room.
"Good morning,
sir," an even voice said.
Commandant Morris
blinked, then carefully raised his hands in surrender. "I've no
sidearms. Who the hell are you, anyway?"
"Colonel John
Christian Falkenberg, at your service. Will you surrender this base
and save your men?"
Morris nodded
grimly. He'd seen enough outside to know the battle was hopeless. His
career was finished too, no matter what he did, and there was no
point in letting the Friedlanders be slaughtered. "Surrender to
whom?"
The light flicked
off and Morris saw Falkenberg. There was a grim smile on the
Colonel's lips. "Why, to the Great Jehovah and the Free States
of Washington, Commandant. ..."
Albert Morris, who
was no historian, did not understand the reference. He took the
public address mike the grim troopers handed him. Fortress Astoria
had fallen.
Twenty-three hundred
kilometers to the west at Allansport, Sergeant Sherman White slapped
the keys to launch three small solid rockets. They weren't very
powerful birds, but they could be set up quickly, and they had the
ability to loft a hundred kilos of tiny steel cubes to 140
kilometers. White had very good information on the Confederate
satellite's ephemeris; he'd observed it for its past twenty orbits.
The target was
invisible over the horizon when Sergeant White launched his
interceptors. As it came overhead the small rockets had climbed to
meet it. Their radar fuses sought the precise moment, then they
exploded in a cloud of shot that rose as it spread. It continued to
climb, halted, and began to fall back toward the ground. The
satellite detected the attack and beeped alarms to its masters. Then
it passed through the cloud at fourteen hundred meters per second
relative to the shot. Four of the steel cubes were in its path.
XVII
FALKENBERG STUDIED
THE manuals on the equipment in the Confederate command car as it
raced northward along the Columbia Valley road toward Doak's Ferry.
Captain Frazer's scouts were somewhere ahead with the captured
cavalry equipment and behind Falkenberg the regiment was strung out
piecemeal. There were men on motorcycles, in private trucks,
horse-drawn wagons, and on foot.
There'd be more
walking soon. The captured cavalry gear was a lucky break, but the
Columbia Valley wasn't technologically developed. Most local
transport was by animal power, and the farmers relied on the river to
ship produce to the deepwater port at Astoria. The river boats and
motor fuel were the key to the operation. There wasn't enough of
either.
Glenda Ruth Horton
had surprised Falkenberg by not arguing about the need for haste, and
her ranchers were converging on all the river ports, taking heavy
casualties in order to seize boats and fuel before the scattered
Confederate occupation forces could destroy them. Meanwhile
Falkenberg had recklessly flung the regiment northward.
"Firefight
ahead," his driver said. "Another of them one battery
posts."
"Right."
Falkenberg fiddled with the unfamiliar controls until the map came
into sharper focus, then activated the comm circuit.
"Sir,"
Captain Frazer answered. "They've got a battery of 105's and an
MG Company in there. More than I can handle."
"Right, pass it
by. Let Miss Horton's ranchers keep it under siege. Found any more
fuel?"
Frazer laughed
unpleasantly. "Colonel, you can adjust the carburetors in these
things to handle a lot, but Christ, they bloody well won't run on
paraffin. There's not even farm machinery out here! We're running on
fumes now, and damned low-grade fumes at that."
"Yeah."
The Confederates were getting smarter. For the first hundred
kilometers they took fueling stations intact, but now, unless the
patriots were already in control, the fuel was torched before
Frazer's fast-moving scouts arrived. "Keep going as best you
can, Captain."
"Sir. Out."
"We got some
reserve fuel with the guns," Sergeant Major Calvin reminded him.
The big RSM sat in the turret of the command caravan and at frequent
intervals fondled the thirty-mm cannon there. It wasn't much of a
weapon, but it had been a long time since the RSM was gunner in an
armored vehicle. He was hoping to get in some fighting.
"No. Those guns
have to move east to the passes. They're sure to send a reaction
force from the capital, Top Soldier."
But would they?
Falkenberg wondered. Instead of moving northwest from the capital to
reinforce the fortress at Doak's Ferry, they might send troops by sea
to retake Astoria. It would be a stupid move, and Falkenberg counted
on the Confederates acting intelligently. As far as anyone knew, the
Astoria Fortress guns dominated the river mouth.
A detachment of
Weapons Battalion remained there with antiaircraft rockets to keep
reconnaissance at a distance, but otherwise Astoria was held only by
a hastily raised Patriot force stiffened with a handful of
mercenaries. The Friedlander guns had been taken out at night.
If Falkenberg's plan
worked, by the time the Confederates knew what they faced, Astoria
would be strongly held by Valley Patriot armies, and other Patriot
forces would have crossed the water to hold Allansport. It was a
risky battle plan, but it had one merit: it was the only one that
could succeed.
Leading elements of
the regiment covered half the six hundred kilometers north to Doak's
Ferry in ten hours. Behind Falkenberg's racing lead groups the main
body of the regiment moved more ponderously, pausing to blast out
pockets of resistance where that could be quickly done, otherwise
bypassing them for the Patriot irregulars to starve into submission.
The whole Valley was rising, and the further north Falkenberg went
the greater the number of Patriots he encountered. When they reached
the four-hundred-kilometer point, he sent Glenda Ruth Horton eastward
toward the passes to join Major Savage and the Friedland artillery.
Like the regiment, the ranchers moved by a variety of means:
helicopters, GEM's, trucks, mules, and on foot.
"Real boot
straps," Hiram Black said. Black was a short, wind-browned
rancher commissioned colonel by the Free States Council and sent with
Falkenberg to aid in controlling rebel forces. Falkenberg liked the
man's dry humor and hard realism. "General Falkenberg, we got
the damnedest collection in the history of warfare."
"Yes."
There was nothing more to say. In addition to the confused transport
situation, there was no standardization of weapons: they had hunting
pieces, weapons taken from the enemy, the regiment's own equipment,
and stockpiles of arms smuggled in by the Free States before
Falkenberg's arrival. "That's what computers are for,"
Falkenberg said.
"Crossroad
coming up," the driver warned. "Hang on." The crossing
was probably registered by the guns of an untaken post eight
kilometers ahead. Frazer's cavalry had blinded its hilltop
observation radars before passing it by, but the battery would have
had brief sights of the command car.
The driver suddenly
halted. There was a sharp whistle, and an explosion rocked the
caravan. Shrapnel rattled off the armored sides. The car bounded into
life and accelerated.
"Ten credits
you owe me, Seregant Major," the driver said. "Told you
they'd expect me to speed up."
"Think I wanted
to win the bet, Carpenter?" Calvin asked.
They drove through
rolling hills covered with the golden tassels of corn plants. Genetic
engineering had made New Washington's native grain one of the most
valuable food crops in space. Superficially similar to Earth maize,
this corn had a growing cycle of two local years. Toward the end of
the cycle hydrostatic pressures built up until it exploded, but if
harvested in the dry period New Washington corn was high-protein
dehydrated food energy, palatable when cooked in water, and good
fodder for animals as well.
"Ought to be
getting past the opposition now," Hiram Black said. "Expect
the Feddies'll be pulling back to the fort at Doak's Ferry from here
on."
His estimate was
confirmed a half hour later when Falkenberg's comm set squawked into
action. "We're in a little town called Madselin, Colonel,"
Frazer said. "Used to be a garrison here, but they're running up
the road. There's a citizen's committee to welcome us."
"To hell with
the citizen's committee," Falkenberg snapped. "Pursue the
enemy!"
"Colonel, I'd
be very pleased to do so, but I've no petrol at all."
Falkenberg nodded
grimly. "Captain Frazer, I want the scouts as far north as they
can get. Isn't there any transport?"
There was a long
silence. "Well, sir, there are bicycles ..."
"Then use
bicycles, by God! Use whatever you have to, Captain, but until you
are stopped by the enemy you will continue the advance, bypassing
concentrations. Snap at their heels. lan, they're scared. They don't
know what's chasing them, and if you keep the pressure on they won't
stop to find out. Keep going, laddie. I'll bail you out if you get in
trouble."
"Aye,
aye, Colonel. See you in Doak's Ferry."
"Correct. Out."
"Can you keep
that promise, General?" Hiram Black asked.
Falkenberg's pale
blue eyes stared through the rancher. "That depends on how
reliable your Glenda Ruth Horton is, Colonel Black. Your ranchers are
supposed to be gathering along the Valley. With that threat to their
flanks the Confederates will not dare form a defense line south of
Doak's Ferry. If your Patriots don't show up then it's another story
entirely." He shrugged. Behind him the Regiment was strung out
along three hundred kilometers of roads, its only flank protection
its speed and the enemy's uncertainties. "It's up to her in more
ways than one," Falkenberg continued. "She said the main
body of Friedland armor was in the capital area."
Hiram Black sucked
his teeth in a very unmilitary way. "General, if Glenda Ruth's
sure of something, you can damn well count on it."
Sergeant Major
Calvin grunted. The noise spoke his thoughts better than words. It
was a hell of a thing when the life of the Forty-second had to depend
on a young colonial girl.
"How did she
come to command the Valley ranchers, anyway?" Falkenberg asked.
"Inherited it,"
Black answered. "Her father was one hell of a man, General. Got
himself killed in the last battle of the first revolution. She'd been
his chief of staff. Old Josh trusted her more'n he did most of his
officers. So would I, if I was you, General." -
"I already do."
To Falkenberg the regiment was more than a mercenary force. Like any
work of art, it was an instrument perfectly forged - its existence
and perfection its own reason for existence.
But unlike any work
of art, because the regiment was a military unit, it had to fight
battles and take casualties. The men who died in battle were mourned.
They weren't the regiment, though, and it would exist when every man
now in it was dead. The Forty-second had faced defeat before and
might find it again - but this time the regiment itself was at
hazard. Falkenberg was gambling not merely their lives, but the
Forty-second itself.
He studied the
battle maps as they raced northward. By keeping the enemy off
balance, one regiment could do the work of five. Eventually, though,
the Confederates would no longer retreat. They were falling back on
their fortress at Doak's Ferry, gathering strength and concentrating
for a battle that Falkenberg could never win. Therefore that battle
must not be fought until the ranchers had concentrated. Meanwhile,
the regiment must bypass Doak's Ferry and turn east to the mountain
passes, closing them before the Friedland armor and Covenant
Highlanders could debauch onto the western plains.
"Think you'll
make it?" Hiram Black asked. He watched as Falkenberg
manipulated controls to move symbols across the map tank in the
command car. "Seems to me the Friedlanders will reach the pass
before you can."
"They will,"
Falkenberg said. "And if they get through, we're lost." He
twirled a knob, sending a bright blip representing Major Savage with
the artillery racing diagonally from Astoria to Hillyer Gap, while
the main force of the regiment continued up the Columbia, then turned
east to the mountains, covering two legs of a triangle. "Jerry
Savage could be there first, but he won't have enough force to stop
them." Another set of symbols crawled across the map. Instead of
a distinctly formed body, this was a series of rivulets coming
together at the pass. "Miss Horton has also promised to be there
with reinforcements and supplies - enough to hold in the first
battle, anyway. If they delay the Friedlanders long enough for the
rest of us to get there, we'll own the entire agricultural area of
New Washington. The revolution will be better than half over."
"And what if
she can't get there - or they can't hold the Friedlanders and
Covenant boys?" Hiram Black asked.
Sergeant Major
Calvin grunted again.
XVIII
HILLYER GAP WAS a
six-kilometer-wide hilly notch in the high mountain chain. The Aldine
Mountains ran roughly northwest to southeast, and were joined at
their midpoint by the southward stretching Temblors. Just at the join
was the Gap that connected the capital city plain to the east with
the Columbia Valley to the west.
Major Jeremy Savage
regarded his position with satisfaction. He not only had the
twenty-six guns taken from the Friedlanders at Astoria, but another
dozen captured in scattered outposts along the lower Columbia, and
all were securely dug in behind hills overlooking the Gap. Forward of
the guns were six companies of infantry, Second Battalion and half of
Third, with a thousand ranchers behind in reserve.
"We won't be
outflanked, anyway," Centurion Bryant observed. "Ought to
hold just fine, sir."
"We've a
chance," Major Savage agreed. "Thanks to Miss Horton. You
must have driven your men right along."
Glenda Ruth
shrugged. Her irregulars had run low on fuel 180 kilometers west of
the Gap, and she'd brought them on foot in one forced march of thirty
hours, after sending her ammunition supplies ahead with the last
drops of gasoline. "I just came on myself, Major. Wasn't a
question of driving them, the men followed right enough."
Jeremy Savage looked
at her quickly. The slender girl was not very pretty at the moment,
with her coveralls streaked with mud and grease, her hair falling in
strings from under her cap, but he'd rather have seen her just then
than the current Miss Universe. With her troops and ammunition
supplies he had a chance to hold this position. "I suppose they
did at that." Centurion Bryant turned away quickly with
something caught in his throat.
"Can we hold
until Colonel Falkenberg gets here?" Glenda Ruth asked. "I
expect them to send everything they've got."
"We sincerely
hope they do," Jeremy Savage answered. "It's our only
chance, you know. If that armor gets onto open ground ..."
"There's no
other way onto the plains, Major," she replied. "The
Temblors go right on down to the Matson swamplands, and nobody's fool
enough to risk armor there. Great Bend's Patriot country. Between the
swamps and the Patriot irregulars it'd take a week to cross the
Matson. If they're comin' by land, they're comin' through here."
"And they'll be
coming," Savage finished for her. "They'll want to relieve
the Doak's Ferry fortress before we can get it under close siege. At
least that was John Christian's plan, and he's usually right."
Glenda Ruth used her
binoculars to examine the road. There was nothing out there - yet.
"This colonel of yours. What's in this for him? Nobody gets rich
on what we can pay."
"I should think
you'd be glad enough we're here," Jeremy said.
"Oh, I'm glad
all right. In 240 hours Falkenberg's isolated every Confederate
garrison west of the Temblors. The capital city forces are the only
army left to fight - you've almost liberated the planet in one
campaign."
"Luck,"
Jeremy Savage murmured."Lots of it, all good."
"Heh."
Glenda Ruth was contemptuous. "I don't believe in that, no more
do you. Sure, with the Confederates scattered out on occupation duty
anybody who could get troops to move fast enough could cut the
Feddies up before they got into big enough formations to resist. The
fact is, Major, nobody believed that could be done except on maps.
Not with real troops - and he did it. That's not luck, that's
genius."
Savage shrugged. "I
wouldn't dispute that."
"No more would
I. Now answer this - just what is a real military genius doing
commanding mercenaries on a jerkwater agricultural planet? A man like
that should be Lieutenant General of the CoDominium."
"The CD isn't
interested in military genius, Miss Horton. The Grand Senate wants
obedience, not brilliance."
"Maybe. I
hadn't heard Lermontov was a fool, and they made him Grand Admiral.
O. K, the CoDominium had no use for Falkenberg. But why Washington,
Major? With that regiment you could take anyplace but Sparta and give
the Brotherhoods a run for it there." She swept the horizon with
the binoculars, and Savage could not see her eyes.
This girl disturbed
him. No other Free State official questioned the good fortune of
hiring Falkenberg. "The regimental council voted to come here
because we were sick of Tanith, Miss Horton."
"Sure."
She continued to scan the bleak foothills in front of them. "Look,
I'd better get some rest if we've got a fight coming - and we do.
Look just at the horizon on the left side of the road." As she
turned away Centurion Bryant's communicator buzzed. The outposts had
spotted the scout elements of an armored task force.
As Glenda Ruth
walked back to her bunker, her head felt as if it would begin
spinning. She had been born on New Washington and was used to the
planet's forty-hour rotation period, but lack of sleep made her
almost intoxicated even so.
Walking on pillows,
she told herself. That had been Harley Hastings' description of how
they felt when they didn't come in until dawn.
Is Harley out there
with the armor? she wondered.
She hoped not. It
would never have worked, but he's such a good boy. Too much of a boy
though, trying to act like a man. While it's nice to be treated like
a lady sometimes, he could never believe I could do anything for
myself at all. . . .
Two ranchers stood
guard with one of Falkenberg's corporals at her bunker. The corporal
came to a rigid present; the ranchers called a greeting. Glenda Ruth
made a gesture, halfway between a wave and a return of the corporal's
salute and went inside. The contrast couldn't have been greater, she
thought. Her ranchers weren't about to make themselves look silly,
with present arms, and salutes, and the rest of it.
She stumbled inside
and wrapped herself in a thin blanket without undressing. Somehow the
incident outside bothered her. Falkenberg's men were military
professionals. All of them. What were they doing on New Washington?
Howard Bannister
asked them here. He even offered them land for a permanent settlement
and he had no right to do that. There's no way to control a military
force like that without keeping a big standing army, and the cure is
worse than the disease.
But without
Falkenberg the revolution's doomed.
And what happens if
we win it? What will Falkenberg do after it's over? Leave? I'm afraid
of him because he's not the type to just leave.
And, she thought, to
be honest Falkenberg's a very attractive man. I liked just the way he
toasted. Howard gave him the perfect out, but he didn't take it.
She could still
remember him with his glass lifted, an enigmatic smile on his lips -
and then he went into the packing crates himself, along with lan and
his men.
But courage isn't
anything special. What we need here is loyalty, and that he's never
promised at all ...
There was no one to
advise her. Her father was the only man she'd ever really respected.
Before he was killed, he'd tried to tell her that winning the war was
only a small part of the problem. There were countries on Earth that
had gone through fifty bloody revolutions before they were lucky
enough to have a tyrant gain control and stop them. Revolution's the
easy part, as her father used to say. Ruling afterwards - that's
something else entirely.
As she fell asleep
she saw Falkenberg in a dream. What if Falkenberg wouldn't let them
keep their revolution? His hard features softened in a swirling mist.
He was wearing military uniform and sat at a desk, Sergeant Major
Calvin at his side.
"These can
live. Kill those. Send these to the mines," Falkenberg ordered.
The big sergeant
moved tiny figures that looked like model soldiers, but they weren't
all troops. One was her father. Another was a group of her ranchers.
And they weren't models at all. They were real people reduced to
miniatures whose screams could barely be heard as the stern voice
continued to pronounce their dooms. . . .
Brigadier Wilfred
von Mellenthin looked up the hill toward the rebel troop
emplacements, then climbed back down into his command caravan to wait
for his scouts to report. He had insisted that the Confederacy send
his armor west immediately after the news arrived that Astoria had
fallen, but the General Staff wouldn't let him go.
Fools, he thought.
The staff said it was too big a risk. Von Mellenthin's Friedlander
armored task force was the Confederacy's best military unit, and it
couldn't be risked in a trap.
Now the General
Staff was convinced that they faced only one regiment of mercenaries.
One regiment, and that must have taken heavy casualties in storming
Astoria. So the staff said. Von Mellenthin studied the map table and
shrugged.
Someone was holding
the Gap, and he had plenty of respect for the New Washington
ranchers. Given rugged terrain like that in front of him, they could
put up a good fight. A good enough fight to blunt his force. But, he
decided, it was worth it. Beyond the Gap was open terrain, and the
ranchers would have no chance there.
The map changed and
flowed as he watched. Scouts reported, and Von Mellenthin's staff
officers checked the reports, correlated the data, and fed it onto
his displays. The map showed well-dug-in infantry, far more of it
than von Mellenthin had expected. That damned Falkenberg. The man had
an uncanny ability to move troops.
Von Mellenthin
turned to the Chief of Staff. "Horst, do you think he has heavy
guns here already?"
Oberst Carnap
shrugged. "Weiss nicht, Brigadier. Every hour gives Falkenberg
time to dig in at the Gap, and we have lost many hours."
"Not
Falkenberg," von Mellenthin corrected. "He is now investing
the fortress at Doak's Ferry. We have reports from the commandant
there. Most of Falkenberg's force must be far to the west."
He turned back to
his maps. They were as complete as they could be without closer
observation.
As if reading his
mind, Carnap asked, "Shall I send scouting forces, Brigadier?"
Von Mellenthin
stared at the map as if it might tell him one more detail, but it
would not. "No. We go through with everything," he said in
sudden decision. "Kick their arses, don't pee on them."
"Jawohl."
Carnap spoke quietly into the command circuit. Then he looked up
again. "It is my duty to point out the risk, Brigadier. We will
take heavy losses if they have brought up artillery."
"I know. But if
we fail to get through now, we may never relieve the fortress in
time. Half the war is lost when Doak's Ferry is taken. Better heavy
casualties immediately than a long war. I will lead the attack
myself. You will remain with the command caravan."
"Jawohl,
Brigadier."
Von Mellenthin
climbed out of the heavy caravan and into a medium tank. He took his
place in the turret, then spoke quietly to the driver. "Forward."
The armor brushed
the infantry screens aside as if they had not been there. Von
Mellenthin's tanks and their supporting infantry cooperated perfectly
to pin down and root out the opposition. The column moved swiftly
forward to cut the enemy into disorganized fragments for the
following Covenanter infantry to mop up.
Von Mellenthin was
chewing up the blocking force piecemeal as his brigade rushed deeper
into the Gap. It was all too easy, and he thought he knew why.
The sweating tankers
approached the irregular ridge at the very top of the pass. Suddenly
a fury of small arms and mortar fire swept across them. The tanks
moved on, but the infantry scrambled for cover. Armor and infantry
were separated for a moment, and at that instant his lead tanks
reached the mine fields.
Brigadier von
Mellenthin began to worry. Logic told him the mine fields couldn't be
wide or dense, and if he punched through he would reach the soft
headquarters areas of his enemies. Once there his tanks would make
short work of the headquarters and depots, the Covenanter infantry
would secure the pass, and his brigade could charge across the open
fields beyond.
But - if the
defenders had better transport than the General Staff believed, and
thus had thousands of mines, he was dooming his armor.
"Evaluation,"
he demanded. The repeater screen in his command tank swam, then
showed the updated maps. His force was bunched up, and his supporting
infantry was pinned and taking casualties. "Recommendation?"
"Send scouting
forces," Oberst Carnap's voice urged.
Von Mellenthin
considered it for a moment. Compromises in war are often worse than
either course of action. A small force could be lost without gaining
anything. Divided forces can be defeated in detail. He had only
moments to reach a decision. "Boot, don't spatter," he
said. "We go forward."
They reached the
narrowest part of the Gap. His force now bunched together even more,
and his drivers, up to now automatically avoiding terrain features
that might be registered by artillery, had to approach conspicuous
landmarks. Brigadier von Mellenthin gritted his teeth.
The artillery salvo
was perfectly delivered. The brigade had less than a quarter-minute
warning as the radars picked up the incoming projectiles. Then the
shells exploded all at once, dropping among his tanks to brush away
the last of the covering infantry.
As the barrage
lifted, hundreds of men appeared from the ground itself. A near
perfect volley of infantry-carried anti-tank rockets slammed into his
tanks. Then the radars showed more incoming mail - and swam in
confusion.
"Ja, that too,"
von Mellenthin muttered. His counter-battery screens showed a shower
of gunk.
The defenders were
firing chaff, hundreds of thousands of tiny metal chips which slowly
drifted to the ground. Neither side could use radar to aim indirect
fire, but von Mellenthin's armor was under visual observation, while
the enemy guns had never been precisely located.
Another
time-on-target salvo landed. "Damned good shooting," von
Mellenthin muttered to his driver. There weren't more than five
seconds between the first and the last shell's arrival.
The brigade was
being torn apart on this killing ground. The lead elements ran into
more mine fields. Defending infantry crouched in holes and ditches,
tiny little groups that his covering infantry could sweep aside in a
moment if it could get forward, but the infantry was cut off by the
barrages falling behind and around the tanks.
There was no room to
maneuver and no infantry support, the classic nightmare of an armor
commander. The already rough ground was strewn with pits and ditches.
High explosive antitank shells fell all around his force. There were
not many hits yet, but any disabled tanks could be pounded to pieces,
and there was nothing to shoot back at. The lead tanks were under
steady fire, and the assault slowed.
The enemy expended
shells at a prodigal rate. Could they keep it up? If they ran out of
shells it was all over. Von Mellenthin hesitated. Every moment kept
his armor in hell.
Doubts undermined
his determination. Only the Confederate General Staff told him he
faced no more than Falkenberg's Legion, and the staff had been wrong
before. Whatever was out there had taken Astoria before the
commandant could send a single message. At almost the same moment the
observation satellite was killed over Allansport. Every fortress
along the Columbia was invested within hours. Surely not even
Falkenberg could do that with no more than one regiment!
What was he
fighting? If he faced a well-supplied force with transport enough to
continue this bombardment for hours, not minutes, the brigade was
lost. His brigade, the finest armor in the worlds, lost to the faulty
intelligence of these damned colonials!
"Recall the
force. Consolidate at Station Hildebrand." The orders flashed
out, and the tanks fell back, rescuing the pinned infantry and
covering their withdrawal. When the brigade assembled east of the
Gap, von Mellenthin had lost an eighth of his tanks, and he doubted
if he would recover any of them.
XIX
THE HONOR GUARD
presented arms as the command caravan unbuttoned. Falkenberg
acknowledged their salutes and strode briskly into the staff bunker.
"Tensh-Hut!" Sergeant Major Calvin commanded.
"Carry on,
gentlemen. Major Savage, you'll be pleased to know I've brought the
regimental artillery. We landed it yesterday. Getting a bit thin,
wasn't it?"
"That it was,
John Christian," Jeremy Savage answered grimly. "If the
battle had lasted another hour we'd have been out of everything. Miss
Morton, you can relax now - the colonel said carry on."
"I wasn't
sure," Glenda Ruth huffed. She glanced outside where the honor
guard was dispersing and scowled in disapproval. "I'd hate to be
shot for not bowing properly."
Officers and
troopers in the CP tensed, but nothing happened. Falkenberg turned to
Major Savage. "What were the casualties, Major?"
"Heavy, sir. We
have 283 effectives remaining in Second Battalion."
Falkenberg's face
was impassive. "And how many walking wounded?"
"Sir, that
includes the walking wounded."
"I see."
Sixty-five percent casualties, not including the walking wounded.
"And Third?"
"I couldn't put
together a corporal's guard from the two companies. The survivors are
assigned to headquarters duties."
"What's holding
the line out there, Jerry?" Falkenberg demanded.
"Irregulars and
what's left of Second Battalion, Colonel. We are rather glad to see
you, don't you know?"
Glenda Ruth Horton
had a momentary struggle with herself. Whatever she might think about
all the senseless militaristic rituals Falkenberg was addicted to,
honesty demanded that she say something. "Colonel, I owe you an
apology. I'm sorry I implied that your men wouldn't fight at
Astoria."
"The question
is, Miss Horton, will yours? I have two batteries of the
Forty-second's artillery, but I can add nothing to the line itself.
My troops are investing Doaks Ferry, my cavalry and First Battalion
are on Ford Heights, and the regiment will be scattered for three
more days. Are you saying your ranchers can't do as well as my
mercenaries?"
She nodded
unhappily. "Colonel, we could never have stood up to that
attack. The Second's senior centurion told me many of his mortars
were served by only one man before the battle ended. We'll never have
men that steady."
Falkenberg looked
relieved. "Centurion Bryant survived, then."
"Why - yes."
"Then the
Second still lives." Falkenberg nodded to himself in
satisfaction.
"But we can't
stop another attack by that armor!" Glenda Ruth protested.
"But maybe we
won't have to," Falkenberg said. "Miss Horton, I'm betting
that von Mellenthin won't risk his armor until the infantry has
cleared a hole. From his view he's tried and run into something he
can't handle. He doesn't know how close it was.
"Meanwhile,
thanks to your efforts in locating transport, we have the artillery
partly resupplied. Let's see what we can do with what we've got."
Three hours later
they looked up from the maps. "That's it, then," Falkenberg
said.
"Yes."
Glenda Ruth looked over the troop dispositions. "Those forward
patrols are the key to it all," she said carefully.
"Of course."
He reached into his kit bag. "Have a drink?"
"Now?" But
why not? "Thank you, I will." He poured two mess cups
partly full of whiskey and handed her one. "I can't stay long,
though," she said.
He shrugged and
raised the glass. "A willing foe. But not too willing," he
said.
She hesitated a
moment, then drank. "It's a game to you, isn't it?"
"Perhaps. And
to you?"
"I hate it. I
hate all of it. I didn't want to start the rebellion again." She
shuddered. "I've had enough of killing and crippled men and
burned farms - "
"Then why are
you here?" he asked. There was no mockery in his voice - and no
contempt. The question was genuine.
"My friends
asked me to lead them, and I couldn't let them down."
"A good
reason," Falkenberg said.
"Thank you."
She drained the cup."I've got to go now. I have to get into my
battle armor."
"That seems
reasonable, although the bunkers are well built."
"I won't be in
a bunker, Colonel. I'm going on patrol with my ranchers."
Falkenberg regarded
her critically. "I wouldn't think that wise, Miss Horton.
Personal courage in a commanding officer is an admirable trait, but -
"
"I know."
She smiled softly. "But it needn't be demonstrated because it is
assumed, right? Not with us. I can't order the ranchers, and I don't
have years of tradition to keep them - that's the reason for all the
ceremonials, isn't it?" she asked in surprise.
Falkenberg ignored
the question. "The point is, the men follow you. I doubt they'd
fight as hard for me if you're killed."
"Irrelevant,
Colonel. Believe me, I don't want to take this patrol out, but if I
don't take the first one, there may never be another. We're not used
to holding lines, and it's taking some doing to keep my troops
steady."
"And so you
have to shame them into going out."
She shrugged. "If
I go, they will."
"I'll lend you
a Centurion and some headquarters' guards."
"No. Send the
same troops with me that you'll send with any other Patriot force."
She swayed for a moment. Lack of sleep and the whiskey and the knot
of fear in her guts combined for a moment. She held the edge of the
desk for a second while Falkenberg looked at her.
"Oh damn,"
she said. Then she smiled slightly. "John Christian Falkenberg,
don't you see why it has to be this way?"
He nodded. "I
don't have to like it. All right, get your final briefing from the
sergeant major in thirty-five minutes. Good luck, Miss Horton."
"Thank you."
She hesitated but there was nothing more to say.
The patrol moved
silently through low scrub brush. Something fluttered past her face;
a flying squirrel, she thought. There were a lot of gliding creatures
on New Washington.
The low hill smelled
of toluenes from the shells and mortars that had fallen there in the
last battle. The night was pitch dark, with only Franklin's dull red
loom at the far western horizon, so faint that it was sensed, not
seen. Another flying fox chittered past, darting after insects and
screeching into the night.
A dozen ranchers
followed in single file. Behind them came a communications maniple
from the Forty-second's band. Glenda wondered what they did with
their instruments when they went onto combat duty, and wished she'd
asked. The last man on the trail was a Sergeant Hruska, who'd been
sent along by Sergeant Major Calvin at the last minute. Glenda Ruth
had been glad to see him, although she felt guilty about having him
along.
And that's silly,
she told herself. Men think that way. I don't have to. I'm not trying
to prove anything.
The ranchers carried
rifles. Three of Falkenberg's men did also. The other two had
communications gear, and Sergeant Hruska had a submachine gun. It
seemed a pitifully small force to contest ground with Covenant
Highlanders.
They passed through
the final outposts of her nervous ranchers and moved into the valleys
between the hills. Glenda Ruth felt completely alone in the silence
of the night. She wondered if the others felt it too. Certainly the
ranchers did. They were all afraid. What of the mercenaries? she
wondered. They weren't alone, anyway. They were with comrades who
shared their meals and their bunkers.
As long as one of
Falkenberg's men was alive, there would be someone to care about
those lost. And they do care, she told herself. Sergeant Major
Calvin, with his gruff dismissal of casualty reports. "Bah.
Another trooper," he'd said when they told him an old messmate
had bought it in the fight with the armor. Men.
She tried to imagine
the thoughts of a mercenany soldier, but it was impossible. They were
too alien.
Was Falkenberg like
the rest of them?
They were nearly a
kilometer beyond the lines when she found a narrow gulley two meters
deep. It meandered down the hillsides along the approaches to the
outposts behind her, and any attacking force assaulting her sector
would have to pass it. She motioned the men into the ditch.
Waiting was hardest
of all. The ranchers continually moved about, and she had to crawl
along the gulley to whisper them into silence. Hours went by, each an
agony of waiting. She glanced at her watch to see that no time had
elapsed since the last time she'd looked, and resolved not to look
again for a full fifteen minutes.
After what seemed
fifteen minutes, she waited for what was surely another ten, then
looked to see that only eleven minutes had passed altogether. She
turned in disgust to stare into the night, blinking against the
shapes that formed; shapes that couldn't be real.
Why do I keep
thinking about Falkenberg? And why did I call him by his first name?
The vision of him in
her dream still haunted her as well. In the starlit gloom she could
almost see the miniature figures again. Falkenberg's impassive orders
rang in her ears. "Kill this one. Send this one to the mines."
He could do that, she thought. He could -
The miniatures were
joined by larger figures in battle armor. With a sudden start she
knew they were real. Two men stood motionless in the draw below her.
She touched Sergeant
Hruska and pointed. The trooper looked carefully and nodded. As they
watched, more figures joined the pair of scouts, until soon there
were nearly fifty of them in the fold of the hill two hundred meters
away. They were too far for her squad's weapons to have much effect,
and a whispered command sent Hruska crawling along the gulley to
order the men to stay down and be silent.
The group continued
to grow. She couldn't see them all, and since she could count nearly
a hundred she must be observing the assembly area of a full company.
Were these the dreaded Highlanders? Memories of her father's defeat
came unwanted, and she brushed them away. They were only hired men -
but they fought for glory, and somehow that was enough to make them
terrible.
After a long time
the enemy began moving toward her.
They formed a
V-shape with the point aimed almost directly at her position, and she
searched for the ends of the formation. What she saw made her gasp.
Four hundred meters
to her left was another company of soldiers in double file. They
moved silently and swiftly up the hill, and the lead elements were
already far beyond her position. Frantically she looked to the right,
focusing the big electronic light-amplifying glasses - and saw
another company of men half a kilometer away. A full Highlander
Battalion was moving right up her hill in an inverted M, and the
group in front of her was the connecting sweep to link the assault
columns. In minutes they would be among the ranchers in the defense
line.
Still she waited,
until the dozen Highlanders of the point were ten meters from her.
She shouted commands. "Up and at them! Fire!" From both
ends of her ditch the mercenaries' automatic weapons chattered, then
their fire was joined by her riflemen. The point was cut down to a
man, and Sergeant Hruska directed fire on the main body, while Glenda
Ruth shouted into her communicator.
"Fire Mission.
Flash Uncle Four!"
There was a moment's
delay which seemed like years. "Flash Uncle Four." Another
long pause. "On the way," an unemotional voice answered.
She thought it sounded like Falkenberg, but she was too busy to care.
"Reporting,"
she said. "At least one battalion of light infantry in assault
columns is moving up Hill 905 along ridges Uncle and Zebra."
"They're
shifting left." She looked up to see Hruska. The noncom pointed
to the company in front of her position. Small knots of men curled
leftward. They hugged the ground and were visible only for seconds.
"Move some men
to that end of the gulley," she ordered. It was too late to
shift artillery fire. Anyway, if the Highlanders ever got to the top
of the ridge, the ranchers wouldn't hold them. She held her breath
and waited.
There was the scream
of incoming artillery, then the night was lit by bright flashes. VT
shells fell among the distant enemy on the left flank. "Pour it
on!" she shouted into the communicator. "On target!"
"Right. On the
way."
She was sure it was
Falkenberg himself at the other end. Catlike she grinned in the dark.
What was a colonel doing as a telephone orderly? Was he worried about
her? She almost laughed at the thought. Certainly he was, the
ranchers would be hard to handle without her.
The ridge above
erupted in fire. Mortars and grenades joined the artillery pounding
the leftward assault column. Glenda Ruth paused to examine the
critical situation to the right. The assault force five hundred
meters away was untouched and continued to advance toward the top of
the ridge. It was going to be close.
She let the
artillery hold its target another five minutes while her riflemen
engaged the company in front of her, then took up the radio again.
The right-hand column had nearly reached the ridges, and she wondered
if she had waited too long.
"Fire mission.
Flash Zebra Nine."
"Zebra Nine,"
the emotionless voice replied. There was a short delay, then, "On
the way." The fire lifted from the left flank almost
immediately, and two minutes later began to fell five hundred meters
to the right.
"They're
flanking us, Miss," Sergeant Hruska reported. She'd been so busy
directing artillery at the assaults against the ridge line that she'd
actually forgotten her twenty men were engaged in a firefight with
over a hundred enemies. "Shall we pull back?" Hruska asked.
She tried to think,
but it was impossible in the noise and confusion. The assault columns
were still moving ahead, and she had the only group that could
observe the entire attack. Every precious shell had to count "No.
We'll hold on here."
"Right, Miss."
The sergant seemed to be enjoying himself. He moved away to direct
the automatic weapons and rifle fire. How long can we hold? Glenda
Ruth wondered.
She let the
artillery continue to pound the right-hand assault force for twenty
minutes. By then the Highlanders had nearly surrounded her and were
ready to assault from the rear. Prayerfully she lifted the radio
again.
"Fire Mission.
Give me everything you can on Jack Five - and for God's sake don't go
over. We're at Jack Six."
"Flash Jack
Five," the voice acknowledged immediately. There was a pause.
"On the way." They were the most beautiful words she'd ever
heard.
Now they waited. The
Highlanders rose to charge. A wild sound filled the night. MY GOD,
PIPES! She thought. But even as the infantry moved the pipes were
drowned by the whistle of artillery. Glenda Ruth dove to the bottom
of the gulley and saw that the rest of her command had done the same.
The world erupted in
sound. Millions of tiny fragments at enormous velocity filled the
night with death. Cautiously she lifted a small periscope to look
behind her.
The Highlander
company had dissolved. Shells were falling among dead men, lifting
them to be torn apart again and again as the radar-fused shells fell
among them. Glenda Ruth swallowed hard and swept the glass around.
The left assault company had reformed and was turning back to attack
the ridge. "Fire Flash Uncle Four," she said softly.
"Interrogative."
"FLASH UNCLE
FOUR!"
"Uncle Four. On
the way."
As soon as the fire
lifted from behind them her men returned to the lip of the gulley and
resumed firing, but the sounds began to die away.
"We're down to
the ammo in the guns now, Miss," Hruska reported. "May I
have your spare magazines?"
She realized with a
sudden start that she had yet to fire a single shot.
The night wore on.
Whenever the enemy formed up to assault her position he was cut apart
by the merciless artillery. Once she asked for a box barrage all
around her gulley - by that time the men were down to three shots in
each rifle, and the automatic weapons had no ammo at all. The
toneless voice simply answered, "On the way."
An hour before dawn
nothing moved on the hill.
XX
THE THIN NOTES of a
military trumpet sounded across the barren hills of the Gap. The
ridges east of Falkenberg's battle line lay dead, their foliage cut
to shreds by shell fragments, the very earth thrown into crazy-quilt
craters partly burying the dead. A cool wind blew through the Gap,
but it couldn't dispel the smells of nitro and death.
The trumpet sounded
again. Falkenberg's glasses showed three unarmed Highlander officers
carrying a white flag. An ensign was dispatched to meet them, and the
young officer returned with a blindfolded Highlander major.
"Major MacRae,
Fourth Covenant Infantry," the officer introduced himself after
the blindfold was removed. He blinked at the bright lights of the
bunker. "You'll be Colonel Falkenberg."
"Yes. What can
we do for you, Major?"
"I've orders to
offer a truce for burying the dead. Twenty hours, Colonel, if that's
agreeable."'
"No. Four days
and nights - 160 hours, Major," Falkenberg said.
"A hundred
sixty hours, Colonel?" The burly Highlander regarded Falkenberg
suspiciously. "You'll want that time to complete your defenses."
"Perhaps. But
twenty hours is not enough time to transfer the wounded men. I'll
return all of yours - under parole, of course. It's no secret I'm
short of medical supplies, and they'll receive better care from their
own surgeons."
The Highlander's
face showed nothing, but he paused. "You wouldn't tell me how
many there be?" He was silent for a moment, then speaking very
fast, he said, "The time you set is within my discretion,
Colonel." He held out a bulky dispatch case. "My
credentials and instructions. " 'Twas a bloody battle, Colonel.
How many of my laddies have ye killed?"
Falkenberg and
Glenda Ruth glanced at each other. There is a bond between those who
have been in combat together, and it can include those of the other
side. The Covenant officer stood impassively, unwilling to say more,
but his eyes pleaded with them.
"We counted 409
bodies, Major," Glenda Ruth told him gently. "And - "
she looked at Falkenberg, who nodded. "We brought in another 370
wounded." The usual combat ratio is four men wounded to each
killed; nearly sixteen hundred Covenanters must have been taken out
of action in the assault. Toward the end the Highlanders were losing
men in their efforts to recover their dead and wounded.
"Less than four
hundred," the major said sadly. He stood to rigid attention.
"Hae your men search the ground well, Colonel. There's aye more
o' my lads out there." He saluted and waited for the blindfold
to be fixed again. "I thank you, Colonel."
As the mercenary
officer was led away Falkenberg turned to Glenda Ruth with a wistful
smile. "Try to bribe him with money and he'd challenge me, but
when I offer him his men back - " He shook his head sadly.
"Have they
really given up?" Glenda Ruth asked.
"Yes. The truce
finishes it. Their only chance was to break through before we brought
up more ammunition and reserves, and they know it."
"But why? In
the last revolution they were so terrible, and now - why?"
"It's the
weakness of mercenaries," Falkenberg explained crisply. "The
fruits of victory belong to our employers, not us. Friedland can't
lose her armor and Covenant can't lose her men, or they've nothing
more to sell."
"But they
fought before!"
"Sure, in a
fluid battle of maneuver. A frontal assault is always the most costly
kind of battle. They tried to force the passage, and we beat them
fairly. Honor is satisfied. Now the Confederacy will have to bring up
its own Regulars if they want to force a way through the Gap. I don't
think they'll squander men like that, and anyway it takes time.
Meanwhile we've got to go to Allansport and deal with a crisis."
"What's wrong
there?" she asked.
This came in
regimental code this morning." He handed her a message flimsy.
FALKENBERG FROM
SVOBODA BREAK PATRIOT ARMY LOOTING ALLANSPORT STOP REQUEST COURT OF
INQUIRY INVESTIGATE POSSIBLE VIOLATIONS OF LAWS OF WAR STOP EXTREMELY
INADVISABLE FOR ME TO COMPLY WITH YOUR ORDERS TO JOIN REGIMENT STOP
PATRIOT ARMY ACTIONS PROVOKING SABOTAGE AND REVOLT AMONG TOWNSPEOPLE
AND MINERS STOP MY SECURITY FORCES MAY BE REQUIRED TO HOLD THE CITY
STOP AWAIT YOUR ORDERS STOP RESPECTFULLY ANTON SVOBODA BREAK BREAK
MESSAGE ENDSXXX
She read it twice.
"My God, Colonel - what's going on there?"
"I don't know,"
he said grimly. "I intend to find out. Will you come with me as
a representative of the Patriot Council?"
"Of course -
but shouldn't we send for Howard Bannister? The Council elected him
President."
"If we need him
we'll get him. Sergeant Major."
"Sir!"
"Put Miss
Horton's things on the troop carrier with mine. I'll take the
Headquarters Guard platoon to Allansport."
"Sir. Colonel,
you'll want me along." "Will I? I suppose so, Sergeant
Major. Get your gear aboard."
"Sir."
"It's probably
already there, of course. Let's move out."
The personnel
carrier took them to a small airfield where a jet waited. It was one
of forty on the planet, and it would carry a hundred men; but it
burned fuel needed for ammunition transport. Until the oil fields
around Doak's Ferry could be secured it was fuel they could hardly
afford.
The plane flew
across Patriot-held areas, staying well away from the isolated
Confederate strongpoints remaining west of the Gap. Aircraft had
little chance of surviving in a combat environment when any
infantryman could carry target-seeking rockets, while trucks could
carry equipment to defeat airborne countermea-sures. They crossed the
Columbia Valley and turned southwest over the broad forests of Ford
Heights Plateau, then west again to avoid Preston Bay where pockets
of Confederates remained after the fall of the main fortress.
"You do the
same thing, don't you?" Glenda Ruth said suddenly. "When we
assaulted Preston Bay you let my people take the casualties."
Falkenberg nodded.
"For two reasons. I'm as reluctant to lose troops as the
Highlanders - and without the regiment you'd not hold the Patriot
areas a thousand hours. You need us as an intact force, not a pile of
corpses."
"Yes." It
was true enough, but those were her friends who'd died in the
assault. Would the outcome be worth it? Would Falkenberg let it be
worth it?
Captain Svoboda met
them at the Allansport field. "Glad to see you, sir. It's pretty
bad in town."
"Just what
happened, Captain?" Svoboda looked critically at Glenda Ruth,
but Falkenberg said, "Report."
"Yes, sir. When
the provisional governor arrived I turned over administration of the
city as ordered. At that time the peninsula was pacified, largely due
to the efforts of Mayor Hastings, who wants to avoid damage to the
city. Hastings believes Franklin will send a large army from the home
planet and says he sees no point in getting Loyalists killed and the
city burned in resistance that won't change the final outcome
anyway."
"Poor Roger -
he always tries to be reasonable, and it never works," Glenda
Ruth said. "But Franklin will send troops."
"Possibly,"
Falkenberg said. "But it takes time for them to mobilize and
organize transport. Continue, Captain Svoboda."
"Sir. The
Governor posted a list of proscribed persons whose property was
forfeit. If that wasn't enough, he told his troops that if they found
any Confederate government property, they could keep half its value.
You'll see the results when we get to town, Colonel. There was
looting and fire that my security forces and the local fire people
only barely managed to control."
"Oh, Lord,"
Glenda Ruth murmured. "Why?"
Svoboda curled his
lip. "Looters often do that, Miss Horton. You can't let troops
sack a city and not expect damage. The outcome was predictable,
Colonel. Many townspeople took to the hills, particularly the miners.
They've taken several of the mining towns back."
Captain Svoboda
shrugged helplessly. "The railway is cut. The city itself is
secure, but I can't say how long. You only left me 150 troops to
control eleven thousand people, which I did with hostages. The
Governor brought another nine hundred men and that's not enough to
rule their way. He's asked Preston Bay for more soldiers."
"Is that where
the first group came from?" Glenda Ruth asked.
"Yes, Miss. A
number of them, anyway."
"Then its
understandable if not excusable, Colonel," she said. "Many
ranches on Ford Heights were burned out by Loyalists in the first
revolution. I suppose they think they're paying the Loyalists back."
Falkenberg nodded.
"Sergeant Major!"
"Sir!"
"Put the Guard
in battle armor and combat weapons. Captain, we are going to pay a
call on your provisional governor. Alert your men."
"Colonel!"
Glenda Ruth protested. "You - what are you going to do?"
"Miss Horton, I
left an undamaged town, which is now a nest of opposition. I'd like
to know why. Let's go, Svoboda."
City Hall stood
undamaged among burned-out streets. The town smelled of scorched wood
and death, as if there'd been a major battle fought in the downtown
area. Falkenberg sat impassive as Glenda Ruth stared unbelievingly at
what had been the richest city outside the capital area.
"I tried,
Colonel," Svoboda muttered. He blamed himself anyway. "I'd
have had to fire on the Patriots and arrest the governor. You were
out of communication, and I didn't want to take that responsibility
without orders. Should I have, sir?"
Falkenberg didn't
answer. Possible violations of mercenary contracts were always
delicate situations. Finally he said, "I can hardly blame you
for not wanting to involve the regiment in war with our sponsors."
The Patriot
irregular guards at City Hall protested as Falkenberg strode briskly
toward the Governor's office. They tried to bar the way, but when
they saw his forty guardsmen in battle armor they moved aside.
The governor was a
broad-shouldered former rancher who'd done well in commodities
speculation. He was a skilled salesman, master of the friendly grip
on the elbow and pat on the shoulder, the casual words in the right
places, but he had no experience in military command. He glanced
nervously at Sergeant Major Calvin and the grimfaced guards outside
his office as Glenda introduced Falkenberg.
"Governor Jack
Silana," she said. "The governor was active in the first
revolution, and without his financial help we'd never have been able
to pay your passage here, Colonel."
"I see."
Falkenberg ignored the governor's offered hand. "Did you
authorize more looting, Governor?" he asked. "I see some's
still going on."
"Your
mercenaries have all the tax money," Silana protested. He tried
to grin."My troops are being ruined to pay you. Why shouldn't
the Fedsymps contribute to the war? Anyway, the real trouble began
when a town girl insulted one of my soldiers. He struck her. Some
townspeople interfered, and his comrades came to help. A riot started
and someone called out the garrison to stop it - "
"And you lost
control," Falkenberg said.
"The traitors
got no more than they deserve anyway! Don't think they didn't loot
cities when they won, Colonel. These men have seen ranches burned
out, and they know Allansport's a nest of Fedsymp traitors."
"I see."
Falkenberg turned to his Provost. "Captain, had you formally
relinquished control to Governor Silana before this happened?"
"Yes, sir. As
ordered."
"Then it's none
of the regiment's concern. Were any of our troops involved?"
Svoboda nodded
unhappily. "I have seven troopers and Sergeant Magee in arrest,
sir. I've held summary court on six others myself."
"What charges
are you preferring against Magee?" Falkenberg had personally
promoted Magee once. The man had a mean streak, but he was a good
soldier.
"Looting. Drunk
on duty. Theft. And conduct prejudicial. "
"And the
others?"
"Three rapes,
four grand theft, and one murder, sir. They're being held for a
court. I also request an inquiry into my conduct as commander."
"Granted.
Sergeant Major."
"Sir!"
"Take custody
of the prisoners and convene a General Court. What officers have we
for an investigation?"
"Captain
Greenwood's posted for light duty only by the surgeon, sir."
"Excellent.
Have him conduct a formal inquiry into Captain Svoboda's
administration of the city."
"Sir."
"What will happen to those men?" Glenda Ruth asked.
"The rapists
and murderer will be hanged if convicted. Hard duty for the rest."
"You'd hang
your own men?" she asked. She didn't believe it, and her voice
showed it.
"I cannot allow
rot in my regiment," Falkenberg snapped. "In any event the
Confederacy will protest this violation of the Laws of War to the
CD."
Governor Silana
laughed. "We protested often enough in the last revolution, and
nothing came of it. I think we can chance it."
"Perhaps. I
take it you will do nothing about this?"
"I'll issue
orders for the looting to stop."
"Haven't you
done so already?"
"Well, yes,
Colonel - but the men, well, they're about over their mad now, I
think."
"If previous
orders haven't stopped it, more won't. You'll have to be prepared to
punish violators. Are you?"
"I'll be damned
if I'll hang my own soldiers to protect traitors!"
"I see.
Governor, how do you propose to pacify this area?"
"I've sent for
reinforcements - "
"Yes. Thank
you. If you'll excuse us, Governor, Miss Horton and I have an
errand." He hustled Glenda Ruth out of the office. "Sergeant
Major, bring Mayor Hastings and Colonel Ardway to Captain Svoboda's
office."
"They shot
Colonel Ardway," Svoboda said. "The mayor's in the city
jail."
"Jail?"
Falkenberg muttered.
"Yes, sir. I
had the hostages in the hotel, but Governor Silana - "
"I see. Carry
on, Sergeant Major."
"Sir!"
"What do you
want now, you bloody bastard?" Hastings demanded ten minutes
later. The mayor was haggard, with several days' growth of stubble,
and his face and hands showed the grime of confinement without proper
hygiene facilities.
"One thing at a
time, Mr. Mayor. Any trouble, Sergeant Major?"
Calvin grinned. "Not
much, sir. The officer didn't want no problems with the Guard -
Colonel, they got all them hostages crammed into cells."
"What have you
done with my wife and children?" Roger Hastings demanded
frantically. "I haven't heard anything for days."
Falkenberg looked
inquiringly at Svoboda but got only a headshake. "See to the
mayor's family, Sergeant Major. Bring them here. Mr. Hastings, do I
understand that you believe this is my doing?"
"If you hadn't
taken this city ..."
"That was a
legitimate military operation. Have you charges to bring against my
troops?"
"How would I
know?" Hastings felt weak. He hadn't been fed properly for days,
and he was sick with worry about his family. As he leaned against the
desk he saw Glenda Ruth for the first time. "You too, eh?"
"It was none of
my doing, Roger." He had almost become her father-in-law. She
wondered where young Lieutenant Harley Hastings was. Although she'd
broken their engagement long ago, their disagreements had mostly been
political, and they were still friends. "I'm sorry."
"It was your
doing, you and the damned rebels. Oh, sure, you don't like burning
cities and killing civilians, but it happens all the same - and you
started the war. You can't shed the responsibility."
Falkenberg
interrupted him. "Mr. Mayor, we have mutual interests still.
This peninsula raises little food, and your people cannot survive
without supplies, I'm told over a thousand of your people were killed
in the riots, and nearly that many are in the hills. Can you get the
automated factories and smelters operating with what's left?"
"After all this
you expect me to - I won't do one damn thing for you, Falkenberg!"
"I didn't ask
if you would, only if it could be done."
"What
difference does it make?"
"I doubt you
want to see the rest of your people starving, Mr. Mayor. Captain,
take the mayor to your quarters and get him cleaned up. By the time
you've done that Sergeant Major Calvin will know what happened to his
family." Falkenberg nodded dismissal and turned to Glenda Ruth.
"Well, Miss Horton? Have you seen enough?"
"I don't
understand."
"I am
requesting you to relieve Silana of his post and return
administration of this city to the regiment. Will you do it?"
Good Lord! she
thought. "I haven't the authority."
"You've got
more influence in the Patriot army than anyone else. The Council may
not like it, but they'll take it from you. Meanwhile, I'm sending for
the Sappers to rebuild this city and get the foundries going."
Everything moves so
fast. Not even Joshua Horton had made things happen like this man.
"Colonel, what is your interest in Allansport?"
"It's the only
industrial area we control. There will be no more military supplies
from off planet. We hold everything west of the Temblors. The Matson
Valley is rising in support of the revolution, and we'll have it
soon. We can follow the Matson to Vancouver and take that - and then
what?"
"Why - then we
take the capital city! The revolution's over!"
"No. That was
the mistake you made last time. Do you really think your farmers,
even with the Forty-second, can move onto level, roaded ground and
fight set-piece battles? We've no chance under those conditions."
"But - "
He was right. She'd always known it. When they defeated the
Friedlanders at the Gap she'd dared hope, but the capital plains were
not Hillyer Gap. "So it's back to attrition."
Falkenberg nodded.
"We do hold all the agricultural areas. The Confederates will
begin to feel the pinch soon enough. Meanwhile we chew around the
edges. Franklin will have to let go - there's no profit in keeping
colonies that cost money. They may try landing armies from the home
world, but they'll not take us by surprise and they don't have that
big an army. Eventually we'll wear them down."
She nodded sadly. It
would be a long war after all, and she'd have to be in it, always
raising fresh troops as the ranchers began to go home again - it
would be tough enough holding what they had when people realized what
they were in for. "But how do we pay your troops in a long war?"
"Perhaps you'll
have to do without us." "You know we can't. And you've
always known it. What do you want?"
"Right now I
want you to relieve Silana. Immediately." "What's the
hurry? As you say, it's going to be a long war.
"It'll be
longer if more of the city is burned." He almost told her more,
and cursed himself for the weakness of temptation. She was only a
girl, and he'd known thousands of them since Grace left him all those
years ago. The bond of combat wouldn't explain it, he'd known other
girls who were competent officers, many of them - so why was he
tempted at all? "I'm sorry," he said gruffly. "I must
insist. As you say, you can't do without us."
Glenda Ruth had
grown up among politicians and for four years had been a
revolutionary leader herself. She knew Falkenberg's momentary
hesitation was important, and that she'd never find out what it
meant.
What was under that
mask? Was there a man in there making all those whirlwind decisions?
Falkenberg dominated every situation he fell into, and a man like
that wanted more than money. The vision of Falkenberg seated at a
desk pronouncing dooms on her people haunted her still.
And yet. There was
more. A warrior leader of warriors who had won the adoration of
uneducated privates - and men like Jeremy Savage as well. She'd never
met anyone like him.
"I'll do it."
She smiled and walked across the room to stand next to him. "I
don't know why, but I'll do it. Have you got any friends, John
Christian Falkenberg?"
The question
startled him. Automatically he answered. "Command can have no
friends, Miss Horton."
She smiled again.
"You have one now. There's a condition to my offer. From now on,
you call me Glenda Ruth. Please?"
A curious smile
formed on the soldier's face. He regarded her with amusement, but
there was something more as well. "It doesn't work, you know."
"What doesn't
work?"
"Whatever
you're trying. Like me, you've command responsibilities. It's lonely,
and you don't like that. The reason command has no friends, Glenda
Ruth, is not merely to spare the commander the pain of sending
friends to their death. If you haven't learned the rest of it, learn
it now, because some day you'll have to betray either your friends or
your command, and that's a choice worth avoiding."
What am I doing? Am
I trying to protect the revolution by getting to know him better - or
is he right, I've no friends either, and he's the only man I ever met
who could be - She let the thought fade out, and laid her hand on
his for a brief second. "Let's go tell Governor Silana, John
Christian. And let the little girl worry about her own emotions, will
you? She knows what she's doing."
He stood next to
her. They were very close and for a moment she thought he intended to
kiss her. "No, you don't."
She wanted to
answer, but he was already leaving the room and she had to hurry to
catch him.
XXI
"I SAY WE only
gave the Fedsymp traitors what they deserved!" Jack Silana
shouted. There was a mutter of approval from the delegates, and open
cheers in the bleachers overlooking the gymnasium floor. "I have
great respect for Glenda Ruth, but she is not old Joshua,"
Silana continued. "Her action in removing me from a post given
by President Bannister was without authority. I demand that the
Council repudiate it." There was more applause as Silana took
his seat.
Glenda Ruth remained
at her seat for a moment. She looked carefully at each of the thirty
men and women at the horseshoe table, trying to estimate just how
many votes she had. Not a majority, certainly, but perhaps a dozen.
She wouldn't have to persuade more than three or four to abandon the
Bannister-Silana faction, but what then? The bloc she led was no more
solid than Bannister's coalition. Just who would govern the Free
States?
More men were seated
on the gymnasium floor beyond the council table. They were witnesses,
but their placement at the focus of the Council's attention made it
look as if Falkenberg and his impassive officers might be in the
dock. Mayor Hastings sat with Falkenberg, and the illusion was
heightened by the signs of harsh treatment he'd received. Some of his
friends looked even worse.
Beyond the witnesses
the spectators chattered among themselves as if this were a
basketball game rather than a solemn meeting of the supreme authority
for three-quarters of New Washington. A gymnasium didn't seem a very
dignified place to meet anyway, but there was no larger hall in
Astoria Fortress.
Finally she stood.
"No, I am not my father," she began. "He would have
had Jack Silana shot for his actions!"
"Give it to
'em, Glenda Ruth!" someone shouted from the balcony.
Howard Bannister
looked up in surprise. "We will have order here!"
"Hump it, you
Preston Bay bastard!" the voice replied. The elderly rancher was
joined by someone below. "Damn right, Ford Heights don't control
the Valley!" There were cheers at that.
"Order! Order!"
Bannister's commands drowned the shouting as the technicians turned
up the amplifiers to full volume. "Miss Horton, you have the
floor."
"Thank you.
What I was trying to say is that we did not start this revolution to
destroy New Washington! We must live with the Loyalists once it is
over, and - "
"Fedsymp! She
was engaged to a Feddie soldier!" "Shut up and let her
talk!" "Order! ORDER!"
Falkenberg sat
motionless as the hall returned to silence, and Glenda Ruth tried to
speak again. "Bloody noisy lot," Jeremy Savage murmured.
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Victory does that to politicians."
Glenda Ruth
described the conditions she'd seen in Allansport. She told of the
burned-out city, hostages herded into jail cells -
"Serves the
Fedsymps right!" someone interrupted, but she managed to
continue before her supporters could answer.
"Certainly they
are Loyalists. Over a third of the people in the territory we control
are. Loyalists are a majority in the capital city. Will it help if we
persecute their friends here?"
"We won't ever
take the capital the way we're fighting!" "Damn right! Time
we moved on the Feddies." "Send the mercenaries in there,
let 'em earn the taxes we pay!"
This time Bannister
made little effort to control the crowd. They were saying what he had
proposed to the Council, and one reason he supported Silana was
because he needed the governor's merchant bloc with him on the war
issue. After the crowd had shouted enough about renewing the war,
Bannister used the microphone to restore order and let Glenda Ruth
speak.
The Council
adjourned for the day without deciding anything. Falkenberg waited
for Glenda Ruth and walked out with her. "I'm glad we didn't get
a vote today," she told him. "I don't think we'd have won."
"Noisy
beggars," Major Savage observed again.
"Democracy at
work," Falkenberg said coldly. "What do you need to
convince the Council that Silana is unfit as a governor?"
"That's not the
real issue, John," she answered. "It's really the war. No
one is satisfied with what's being done."
"I should have
thought we were doing splendidly," Savage retorted. "The
last Confederate thrust into the Matson ran into your ambush as
planned."
"Yes, that was
brilliant," Glenda Ruth said.
"Hardly. It was
the only possible attack route," Falkenberg answered. "You're
very quiet, Mayor Hastings." They had left the gymnasium and
were crossing the parade ground to the barracks where the
Friedlanders had been quartered. Falkenberg's troops had it now, and
they kept the Allansport officials with them.
"I'm afraid of
that vote," Hastings said. "If they send Silana back, we'll
lose everything."
"Then support
me!" Falkenberg snapped. "My engineers already have the
automated factories and mills in reasonable shape. With some help
from you they'd be running again. Then I'd have real arguments
against Silana's policies."
"But that's
treason," Hastings protested. "You need the Allansport
industry for your war effort. Colonel, it's a hell of a way to thank
you for rescuing my family from that butcher, but I can't do it."
"I suppose
you're expecting a miracle to save you?" Falkenberg asked.
"No. But what
happens if you win? How long will you stay on the Ranier Peninsula?
Bannister's people will be there one of these days - Colonel, my only
chance is for the Confederacy to bring in Franklin troops and crush
the lot of you!"
"And you'll be
ruled from Franklin," Glenda Ruth said. "They won't give
you as much home rule as you had last time."
"I know,"
Roger said miserably. "But what can I do? This revolt ruined our
best chance. Franklin might have been reasonable in time - I was
going to give good government to everyone. But you finished that."
"All of
Franklin's satraps weren't like you, Roger," Glenda Ruth said.
"And don't forget their war policies! They'd have got us sucked
into their schemes and eventually we'd have been fighting the
CoDominum itself. Colonel Falkenberg can tell you what it's like to
be victim of a CD punitive expedition!"
"Christ, I
don't know what to do," Roger said unhappily.
Falkenberg muttered
something which the others didn't catch, then said, "Glenda
Ruth, if you will excuse me, Major Savage and I have administrative
matters to discuss. I would be pleased if you'd join me for dinner in
the Officers' Mess at nineteen hundred hours."
"Why - thank
you, John. I'd like to, but I must see the other delegates tonight.
We may be able to win that vote tomorrow."
Falkenberg shrugged.
"I doubt it. If you can't win it, can you delay it?"
"For a few
days, perhaps - why?"
"It might help,
that's all. If you can't make dinner, the regiment's officers are
entertaining guests in the mess until quite late. Will you join us
when you're done with politics?"
"Thank you.
Yes, I will." As she crossed the parade ground to her own
quarters, she wished she knew what Falkenberg and Savage were
discussing. It wouldn't be administration - did it matter what the
Council decided?
She looked forward
to seeing John later, and the anticipation made her feel guilt. What
is there about the man that does this to me? He's handsome enough,
broad shoulders and thoroughly military - nonsense. I am damned if
I'll believe in some atavistic compulsion to fall in love with
warriors, I don't care what the anthropologists say. So why do I want
to be with him? She pushed the thought away. There was something more
important to think about. What would Falkenberg do if the Council
voted against him? And beyond that, what would she do when he did it?
Falkenberg led Roger
Hastings into his office. "Please be seated, Mr. Mayor."
Roger sat
uncomfortably. "Look, Colonel, I'd like to help, but - "
"Mayor
Hastings, would the owners of the Allansport industries rather have
half of a going concern, or all of nothing?"
"What's that
supposed to mean?"
"I will
guarantee protection of the foundries and smelters in return for a
half interest in them." When Hastings looked up in astonishment,
Falkenberg continued. "Why not? Silana will seize them anyway.
If my regiment is part owner, I may be able to stop him."
"It wouldn't
mean anything if I granted it," Hastings protested. "The
owners are on Franklin."
"You are the
ranking Confederate official for the entire Ranier Peninsula,"
Falkenberg said carefully. "Legal or not, I want your signature
on this grant." He handed Roger a sheaf of papers.
Hastings read them
carefully. "Colonel, this also confirms a land grant given by
the rebel government! I can't do that!"
"Why not? It's
all public land - and that is in your power. The document states that
in exchange for protection of lives and property of the citizens of
Allansport you are awarding certain lands to my regiment. It notes
that you don't consider a previous grant by the Patriot Government to
be valid. There's no question of treason - you do want Allansport
protected against Silana, don't you?"
"Are you
offering to double-cross the Patriots?"
"No. My
contract with Bannister specifically states that I cannot be made
party to violations of the Laws of War. This document hires me to
enforce them in an area already pacified. It doesn't state who might
violate them."
"You're skating
on damned thin ice, Colonel. If the Council ever saw this paper
they'd hang you for treason!" Roger read it again. "I see
no harm in signing, but I tell you in advance the Confederacy won't
honor it. If Franklin wins this they'll throw you off this planet -
if they don't have you shot."
"Let me worry
about the future, Mr. Mayor. Right now your problem is protecting
your people. You can help with that by signing."
"I doubt it,"
Hastings said. He reached for a pen. "So long as you know there
isn't a shadow of validity to this because I'll be countermanded from
the home world - " he scrawled his name and title across the
papers and handed them back to Falkenberg.
Glenda Ruth could
hear the regimental party across the wide parade ground. As she
approached with Hiram Black they seemed to be breasting their way
upstream through waves of sound, the crash of drums, throbbing,
wailing bagpipes, mixed with off-key songs from intoxicated male
baritones.
It was worse inside.
As they entered a flashing saber swept within inches of her face. A
junior captain saluted and apologized in a stream of words. "I
was showing Oberleutnant Marcks a new parry I learned on Sparta,
Miss. Please forgive me?" When she nodded the captain drew his
companion to one side and the saber whirled again.
"That's a
Friedland officer - all the Friedlanders are here," Glenda Ruth
said. Hiram Black nodded grimly. The captured mercenaries wore dress
uniform, green and gold contrasting with the blue and gold of
Falkenberg's men. Medals flashed in the bright overhead lights. She
looked across the glittering room and saw the colonel at a table on
the far side.
Falkenberg and his
companion stood when she reached the table after a perilous journey
across the crowded floor. Pipers marched past pouring out more sound.
Falkenberg's face
was flushed, and she wondered if he were drunk. "Miss Morton,
may I present Major Oscar von Thoma," he said formally. "Major
von Thoma commands the Friedland artillery battalion."
"I - " She
didn't know what to say. The Friedlanders were enemies, and
Falkenberg was introducing her to the officer as his guest. "My
pleasure," she stammered. "And this is Colonel Hiram
Black."
Von Thoma clicked
his heels The men stood stiffly until she was seated next to
Falkenberg. That kind of chivalry had almost vanished, but somehow it
seemed appropriate here. As the stewards brought glasses von Thoma
turned to Falkenberg. "You ask too much," he said.
"Besides, you may have fired the lands from the barrels by
then."
"If we have
we'll reduce the price," Falkenberg said cheerfully. He noted
Glenda Ruth's puzzled expression. "Major von Thoma has asked if
he can buy his guns back when the campaign is ended. He doesn't care
for my terms."
Hiram Black observed
drily, "Seems to me the Council's goin' to want a say in fixin'
that price, General Falkenberg."
Falkenberg snorted
contemptuously. "No."
He is drunk, Glenda
Ruth thought. It doesn't show much, but - do I know him that well
already?
"Those guns
were taken by the Forty-second without Council help. I will see to it
that they aren't used against Patriots, and the Council has no
further interest in the matter." Falkenberg turned to Glenda
Ruth. "Will you win the vote tomorrow?"
"There won't be
a vote tomorrow."
"So you can't
win," Falkenberg muttered. "Expected that. What about the
war policy vote?"
"They'll be
debating for the next two days - " she looked nervously at Major
von Thoma. "I don't want to be impolite, but should we discuss
that with him at the table?"
"I understand."
Von Thoma got unsteadily to his feet. "We will speak of this
again, Colonel. It has been my pleasure, Miss Horton. Colonel Black."
He bowed stiffly to each and went to the big center table where a
number of Friedland officers were drinking with Falkenberg's.
"John, is this
wise?" she asked. "Some of the Councillors are already
accusing you of not wanting to fight - "
"Hell, they're
callin' him a traitor," Black interrupted. "Soft on
Fedsymps, consortin' with the enemy - they don't even like you
recruitin' new men to replace your losses." Black hoisted a
glass of whiskey and drained it at one gulp. "I wish some of 'em
had been ridin' up the Valley with us! Glenda Ruth, that was some
ride. And when Captain Frazer runs out of fuel, Falkenberg tells him,
cool as you please, to use bicycles!" Black chuckled in
rememberance.
"I'm serious!"
Glenda Ruth protested. "John, Bannister hates you. I think he
always has." The stewards brought whiskey for Falkenberg. "Wine
or whiskey, Miss?" one asked.
"Wine - John,
please, they're going to order you to attack the capital!"
"Interesting."
His features tightened suddenly, and his eyes became alert. Then he
relaxed and let the whiskey take effect. "If we obey those
orders I'll need Major von Thoma's good offices to get my equipment
back. Doesn't Bannister know what will happen if we let them catch us
on those open plains?"
"Howie
Bannister knows his way 'round a conspiracy better'n he does a
battlefield, General," Black observed. "We give him the
secretary of war title 'cause we thought he'd drive a hard bargain
with you, but he's not much on battles."
"I've noticed,"
Falkenberg said. He laid his hand on Glenda Ruth's arm and gently
stroked it. It was the first time he'd ever touched her, and she sat
very still. "This is supposed to be a party," Falkenberg
laughed. He looked up and caught the mess president's eye.
"Lieutenant, have Pipe Major give us a song!"
The room was
instantly still. Glenda Ruth felt the warmth of Falkenberg's hand.
The soft caress promised much more, and she was suddenly glad, but
there was a stab of fear as well. He'd spoken so softly, yet all
those people had stopped their drinking, the drums ceased, the pipes,
everything, at his one careless nod. Power like that was frightening.
The burly Pipe Major
selected a young tenor. One pipe and a snare drum played as he began
to sing. "Oh Hae ye nae heard o' the false Sakeld, Hae ye nae
heard o' the keen Lord Scroop? For he ha' ta'en the Kinmont Willie,
to Haribee for to hang him up . . ."
"John, please
listen," she pleaded.
"They hae ta'en
the news to the Bold Bacleugh, in Branksome Ha where he did lay, that
Lord Scroop has ta'en the Kinmont Willie, between the hours of night
and day.
He has ta'en the
table wi' his hand, he has made the red wine spring on hie. Now
Christ's curse be on my head, he said, but avenged of Lord Scroop I
will be."
"John, really."
"Perhaps you
should listen," he said gently. He raised his glass as the young
voice rose and the tempo gathered.
"O is my basnet
a widow's curch?
Or my lance the Wand
o' the willow tree?
And is my hand a
lady's lilly hand,
That this English
lord should lightly me?"
The song ended.
Falkenberg signaled to the steward. "We'll have more to drink,"
he said. "And no more talk of politics."
They spent the rest
of the evening enjoying the party. Both the Friedlanders and
Falkenberg's mercenary officers were educated men, and it was a very
pleasant evening for Glenda Ruth to have a room full of warriors
competing to please her. They taught her the dances and wild songs of
a dozen cultures, and she drank far too much.
Finally he stood.
"I'll see you back to your quarters," Falkenberg told her.
"All right."
She took his arm, and they went through the thinning crowd. "Do
you often have parties like this?" she asked.
"When we can."
They reached the door. A white-coated private appeared from nowhere
to open it for them. He had a jagged scar across his face that ran
down his neck until it disappeared into his collar, and she thought
she would be afraid to meet him anywhere else.
"Good night,
Miss," the private said. His voice had a strange quality, almost
husky, as if he were very concerned about her.
They crossed the
parade ground. The night was clear, and the sky was full of stars.
The sounds of the river rushing by came faintly up to the old
fortress.
"I didn't want
it ever to end," she said.
"Why?"
"Because -
you've built an artificial world in there. A wall of glory to shut
out the realities of what we do. And when it ends we go back to the
war." And back to whatever you meant when you had that boy sing
that sinister old border ballad.
"That's well
put. A wall of glory. Perhaps that's what we do."
They reached the
block of suites assigned to the senior officers. Her door was next to
his. She stood in front of it, reluctant to go inside. The room would
be empty, and tomorrow there was the Council, and - she turned to him
and said bitterly, "Does it have to end? I was happy for a few
minutes. Now - "
"It doesn't
have to end, but do you know what you're doing?"
"No." She
turned away from her own door and opened his. He followed, but didn't
go inside. She stood in the doorway for a moment, then laughed. "I
was going to say something silly. Something like, 'Let's have a last
drink.' But I wouldn't have meant that, and you'd have known it, so
what's the point of games?"
"There is no
point to games. Not between us. Games are for soldiers' girls and
lovers."
"John - my God,
John, are you as lonely as I am?"
"Yes. Of
course."
"Then we can't
let the party end. Not while there's a single moment it can go on."
She went inside his room.
After a few moments
he followed and closed the door.
During the night she
was able to forget the conflict between them, but when she left his
quarters in the morning the ballad returned to haunt her.
She knew she must do
something, but she couldn't warn Bannister. The Council, the
revolution, independence, none of them had lost their importance; but
though she would serve those causes she felt apart from them.
"I'm a perfect
fool," she told herself. But fool or not, she could not warn
Bannister. Finally she persuaded the President to meet John away from
the shouting masses of the Council Chamber.
Bannister came
directly to the point. "Colonel, we can't keep a large army in
the field indefinitely. Miss Morton's Valley ranchers may be willing
to pay these taxes, but most of our people can't."
"Just what did
you expect when you began this?" Falkenberg asked.
"A long war,"
Bannister admitted. "But your initial successes raised hopes,
and we got a lot of supporters we hadn't expected. They demand an
end."
"Fair-weather
soldiers." Falkenberg snorted: "Common enough, but why did
you let them gain so much influence in your Council?"
"Because there
were a lot of them."
And they all support
you for President, Glenda Ruth thought. While my friends and I were
out at the front, you were back here organizing the newcomers,
grabbing for power . . . you're not worth the life of one of those
soldiers. John's or mine.
"After all,
this is a democratic government," Bannister said.
"And thus quite
unable to accomplish anything that takes sustained effort. Can you
afford this egalitarian democracy of yours?"
"You were not
hired to restructure our government!" Bannister shouted.
Falkenberg activated
his desktop map. "Look. We have the plains ringed with troops.
The irregulars can hold the passes and swamps practically forever.
Any real threat of a breakthrough can be held by my regiment in
mobile reserve. The Confederates can't get at us - but we can't risk
a battle in the open with them."
"So what can we
do?" Bannister demanded. "Franklin is sure to send
reinforcements. If we wait, we lose."
"I doubt that.
They've no assault boats either. They can't land in any real force on
our side of the line, and what good does it do them to add to their
force in the capital? Eventually we starve them out. Franklin itself
must be hurt by the loss of the corn shipments. They won't be able to
feed their army forever."
"A mercenary
paradise," Bannister muttered. "A long war and no fighting.
Damn it, you've got to attack while we've still got troops! I tell
you, our support is melting away."
"If we put our
troops out where von Mellenthin's armor can get at them with room to
maneuver, they won't melt, they'll burn."
"You tell him,
Glenda Ruth," Bannister said. "He won't listen to me."
She looked at
Falkenberg's impassive face and wanted to cry. "John, he may be
right. I know my people, they can't hold on forever. Even if they
could, the Council is going to insist ..."
His look didn't
change. There's nothing I can say, she thought, nothing I know that
he doesn't, because he's right but he's wrong too. These are only
civilians in arms. They're not iron men. All the time my people are
guarding those passes their ranches are going to ruin.
Is Howard right? Is
this a mercenary paradise, and you're not even trying? But she didn't
want to believe that.
Unwanted, the vision
she'd had that lonely night at the pass returned. She fought it with
the memory of the party, and afterwards . . .
"Just what the
hell are you waiting on, Colonel Falkenberg?" Bannister
demanded.
Falkenberg said
nothing, and Glenda Ruth wanted to cry; but she did not.
XXII
THE COUNCIL HAD not
voted six days later. Glenda Ruth used every parliamentary trick her
father had taught her during the meetings, and after they adjourned
each day she hustled from delegate to delegate. She made promises she
couldn't keep, exploited old friends and made new ones, and every
morning she was sure only that she could delay a little longer.
She wasn't sure
herself why she did it. The war vote was linked to the reappointment
of Silana as governor in Allansport, and she did know that the man
was incompetent; but mostly, after the debates and political
meetings, Falkenberg would come for her, or send a junior officer to
escort her to his quarters - and she was glad to go. They seldom
spoke of politics, or even talked much at all. It was enough to be
with him - but when she left in the mornings, she was afraid again.
He'd never promised her anything.
On the sixth night
she joined him for a late supper. When the orderlies had taken the
dinner cart she sat moodily at the table. "This is what you
meant, isn't it?" she asked.
"About what?"
"That I'd have
to betray either my friends or my command - but I don't even know if
you're my friend. John, what am I going to do?"
Very gently he laid
his hand against her cheek. "You're going to talk sense - and
keep them from appointing Silana in Allansport."
"But what are
we waiting for?"
He shrugged. "Would
you rather it came to an open break? There'll be no stopping them if
we lose this vote. The mob's demanding your arrest right now - for
the past three days Calvin has had the Headquarters Guard on full
alert in case they're fool enough to try it."
She shuddered, but
before she could say more he lifted her gently to her feet and
pressed her close to him. Once again her doubts vanished but she knew
they'd be back. Who was she betraying? And for what?
The crowd shouted
before she could speak. "Mercenary's whore!" someone
called. Her friends answered with more epithets, and it was five
minutes before Bannister could restore order.
How long can I keep
it up? At least another day or so, I suppose. Am I his whore? If I'm
not, I don't know what I am. He's never told me. She carefully took
papers from her briefcase, but there was another interruption. A
messenger strode quickly, almost running, across the floor to hand a
flimsy message to Howard Bannister. The pudgy President glanced at
it, then began to read more carefully.
The hall fell silent
as everyone watched Bannister's face. The President showed a gamut of
emotions: surprise, bewilderment, then carefully controlled rage. He
read the message again and whispered to the messenger, who nodded.
Bannister lifted the microphone.
"Councillors, I
have - I suppose it would be simpler to read this to you.
'PROVISIONAL GOVERNMENT FREE STATES OF WASHINGTON FROM CDSN CRUISER
INTREPID BREAK BREAK WE ARE IN RECEIPT OF DOCUMENTED COMPLAINT FROM
CONFEDERATE GOVERNMENT THAT FREE STATES ARE IN VIOLATION OF LAWS OF
WAR STOP THIS VESSEL ORDERED TO INVESTIGATE STOP LANDING BOAT ARRIVES
ASTORIA SIXTEEN HUNDRED HOURS THIS DAY STOP PROVISIONAL GOVERNMENT
MUST BE PREPARED TO DISPATCH ARMISTICE COMMISSION TO MEET WITH
DELEGATES FROM CONFEDERACY AND CODOMINIUM INVESTIGATING OFFICERS
IMMEDIATELY UPON ARRIVAL OF LANDING BOAT STOP COMMANDING OFFICERS ALL
MERCENARY FORCES ORDERED TO BE PRESENT TO GIVE EVIDENCE STOP BREAK
BREAK JOHN GRANT CAPTAIN CODOMINIUM SPACE NAVY BREAK MESSAGE ENDS' "
There was a moment
of hushed silence, then the gymnasium erupted in sound. "Investigate
us?" "Goddamn CD is - " "Armistice hell!"
Falkenberg caught
Glenda Ruth's eye. He gestured toward the outside and left the hall.
She joined him minutes later. "I really ought to stay, John.
We've got to decide what to do."
"What you
decide has just become unimportant," Falkenberg said. "Your
Council doesn't hold as many cards as it used to."
"John, what
will they do?"
He shrugged. "Try
to stop the war now that they're here. I suppose it never occurred to
Silana that a complaint from Franklin industrialists is more likely
to get CD attention than a similar squawk from a bunch of farmers.
..."
"You expected
this! Was this what you were waiting for?"
"Something like
this."
"You know more
than you're saying! John, why won't you tell me? I know you don't
love me, but haven't I a right to know?"
He stood at stiff
attention in the bright reddish-tinted sunlight for a long time.
Finally he said, "Glenda Ruth, nothing's certain in politics and
war. I once promised something to a girl, and I couldn't deliver it."
"But - "
"We've each
command responsibilities - and each other. Will you believe me when I
say I've tried to keep you from having to choose - and keep myself
from the same choice? You'd better get ready. A CD Court of Inquiry
isn't in the habit of waiting for people, and they're due in little
more than an hour."
The Court was to be
held aboard Intrepid. The four-hundred-meter bottle-shaped warship in
orbit around New Washington was the only neutral territory available.
When the Patriot delegates were piped aboard, the Marines in the
landing dock gave Bannister the exact honors they'd given the
Confederate Governor General, then hustled the delegation through
gray steel corridors to a petty officer's lounge reserved for them.
"Governor
General Forrest of the Confederacy is already aboard, sir," the
Marine sergeant escort told them. "Captain would like to see
Colonel Falkenberg in his cabin in ten minutes."
Bannister looked
around the small lounge. "I suppose it's bugged," he said.
"Colonel, what happens now?"
Falkenberg noted the
artficially friendly tone Bannister had adopted, "The Captain
and his advisors will hear each of us privately. If you want
witnesses summoned, hell take care of that. When the Court thinks the
time proper, he'll bring both parties together. The CD usually tries
to get everyone to agree rather than impose some kind of settlement."
"And if we
can't agree?"
Falkenberg shrugged.
"They might let you fight it out. They might order mercenaries
off planet and impose a blockade. They could even draw up their own
settlement and order you to accept it."
"What happens
if we just tell them to go away? What can they do?" Bannister
demanded.
Falkenberg smiled
tightly. "They can't conquer the planet because they haven't
enough Marines to occupy it - but there's not a lot else they can't
do, Mr. President. There's enough power aboard this cruiser to make
New Washington uninhabitable.
"You don't have
either planetary defenses or a fleet. I'd think a long time before I
made Captain Grant angry - and on that score, I've been summoned to
his cabin." Falkenberg saluted. There was no trace of mockery in
the gesture, but Bannister grimaced as the soldier left the lounge.
Falkenberg was
conducted past Marine sentries to the captain's cabin. The orderly
opened the door and let him in, then withdrew.
John Grant was a
tall, thin officer with premature graying hair that made him look
older than he was. As Falkenberg entered, Grant stood and greeted him
with genuine warmth. "Good to see you, John Christian." He
extended his hand and looked over his visitor with pleasure. "You're
keeping fit enough."
"So are you,
Johnny." Falkenberg's smile was equally genuine. "And the
family's well?"
"Inez and the
kids are fine. My father's dead."
"Sorry to hear
that."
Captain Grant
brought his chair from behind his desk and placed it facing
Falkenberg's. Unconsciously he dogged it into place. "It was a
release for him, I think. Single-passenger flier accident."
Falkenberg frowned,
and Grant nodded. "Coroner said accident," the Captain
said. "But it could have been suicide. He was pretty broken up
about Sharon. But you don't know that story, do you? No matter. My
kid sister's fine. They've got a good place on Sparta."
Grant reached to his
desk to touch a button. A steward brought brandy and glasses. The
Marine set up a collapsible table between them, then left.
"The Grand
Admiral all right?" Falkenberg asked.
"He's hanging
on." Grant drew in a deep breath and let it out quickly. "Just
barely, though. Despite everything Uncle Martin could do the budget's
lower again this year. I can't stay here long, John. Another patrol,
and it's getting harder to cover these unauthorized missions in the
log. Have you accomplished your job?"
"Yeah. Went
quicker than I thought. I've spent the last hundred hours wishing
we'd arranged to have you arrive sooner." He went to the screen
controls on the cabin bulkhead.
"Got that
complaint signaled by a merchantman as we came in," Grant said.
"Surprised hell out of me. Here, let me get that, they've
improved the damned thing and it's tricky." He played with the
controls until New Washington's inhabited areas showed on the screen.
"OK?"
"Right."
Falkenberg spun dials to show the current military situation on the
planet below. "Stalemate," he said. "As it stands. But
once you order all mercenaries off planet, we won't have much trouble
taking the capital area."
"Christ, John,
I can't do anything as raw as that! If the Friedlanders go, you have
to go as well. Hell, you've accomplished the mission. The rebels may
have a hell of a time taking the capital without you, but it doesn't
really matter who wins. Neither one of 'em's going to build a fleet
for a while after this war's over. Good work."
Falkenberg nodded.
"That was Sergei Lermontov's plan. Neutralize this planet with
minimum CD investment and without destroying the industries.
Something came up, though, Johnny, and I've decided to change it a
bit. The regiment's staying."
"But I - "
"Just hold on,"
Falkenberg said. He grinned broadly. "I'm not a mercenary within
the meaning of the act. We've got a land grant, Johnny. You can leave
us as settlers, not mercenaries."
"Oh, come off
it." Grant's voice showed irritation. "A land grant by a
rebel government not in control? Look, nobody's going to look too
dose at what I do, but Franklin can buy one Grand Senator anyway. I
can't risk it, John. Wish I could."
"What if the
grant's confirmed by the local Loyalist government?" Falkenberg
asked impishly.
"Well, then
it'd be OK - how in hell did you manage that?" Grant was
grinning again. "Have a drink and tell me about it." He
poured for both of them. "And where do you fit in?"
Falkenberg looked up
at Grant and his expression changed to something like astonishment.
"You won't believe this, Johnny."
"From the look
on your face you don't either."
"Not sure I do.
Johnny, I've got a girl. A soldier's girl, and I'm going to marry
her. She's leader of most of the rebel army. There are a lot of
politicians around who think they count for something, but - "
He made a sharp gesture with his right hand.
"Marry the
queen and become king, uh?"
"She's more
like a princess. Anyway, the Loyalists aren't going to surrender to
the rebels without a fight. That complaint they sent was quite
genuine. There's no rebel the Loyalists will trust, not even Glenda
Ruth."
Grant nodded
comprehension. "Enter the soldier who enforced the Laws of War.
He's married to the princess and commands the only army around.
What's your real stake here, John Christian?"
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Maybe the princess won't leave the kingdom. Anyway. Lermontov's
trying to keep the balance of power. God knows, somebody's got to.
Fine. The Grand Admiral looks ten years ahead - but I'm not sure the
CoDominium's going to last ten years, Johnny."
Grant slowly nodded
agreement. His voice fell and took on a note of awe. "Neither am
I. It's worse just in the last few weeks. The Old Man's going out of
his mind. One thing, though. There are some Grand Senators trying to
hold it together. Some of them have given up the Russki-American
fights to stand together against their own governments."
"Enough? Can
they do it?"
"I wish I
knew." Grant shook his head in bewilderment. "I always
thought the CoDominium was the one stable thing on old Earth,"
he said wonderingly. "Now it's all we can do to hold it
together. The nationalists keep winning, John, and nobody knows how
to stop them." He drained his glass. "The Old Man's going
to hate losing you."
"Yeah. We've
worked together a long time." Falkenberg looked wistfully around
the cabin. Once he'd thought this would be the high point of his
life, to be captain of a CD warship. Now he might never see one
again.
Then he shrugged.
"There's worse places to be, Johnny," Falkenberg said. "Do
me a favor, will you? When you get back to Luna Base, ask the admiral
to see that all copies of that New Washington mineral survey are
destroyed. I'd hate for somebody to learn there really is something
here worth grabbing."
"OK. You're a
long way from anything, John."
"I know. But if
things break up around Earth, this may be the best place to be. Look,
Johnny, if you need a safe base some day, we'll be here. Tell the Old
Man that."
"Sure."
Grant gave Falkenberg a twisted grin. "Can't get over it. Going
to marry the girl are you? I'm glad for both of you."
"Thanks."
"King John I.
What kind of government will you set up, anyway?"
"Hadn't
thought. Myths change. Maybe people are ready for monarchy again at
that. We'll think of something, Glenda Ruth and I."
"I just bet you
will. She must be one hell of a girl."
"She is that."
"A toast to the
bride, then." They drank, and Grant refilled their glasses. Then
he stood. "One last, eh? To the CoDominium."
Falkenberg stood and
raised his glass. They drank the toast while below them New
Washington turned, and a hundred parsecs away Earth armed for her
last battle.
The End
Falkenberg’s Legion
Falkenberg’s
Legion
Jerry
Pournelle
1990
This
book is the first of four novels, the next three being Prince of
Sparta, Go Tell The Spartans, and Prince Of Mercenaries.
When I finished reading the series I remembered a reviewer's comment
about H. Beam Piper's classic book Space Viking. "First you read
it for the story, then you read it for the characters, then you read
it to see how a civilization dies, then you read it to see how a
civilization is born." This is a ripping good yarn. Unlike many
writers who do military Science Fiction Jerry Pournelle has been
there, done that. The battle scenes have the ring of authenticity.
The details of conventional and unconventional warfare are presented
well and realistically. This is not a great literary classic that
will be taught in English LIt classes, but the characters are well
thought out and well written for an action adventure novel. By the
way, did anyone else catch the similarities between Skilly and Two
Knife and Modesty Blaise and Willie Garvin in the Modesty Blaise
stories by Peter O'Donnell? The fall of the CoDominion and what is
left of a stagnant Terran civilization is written in a manner that is
disturbingly dark and realistic. This is a world that might have
been. Jerry Pournele's vision of military adventures in the twilight
of empire owes much to history. The notorious stadium massacre on
Hadley is based on the Nike riots in Byzantium. If you want a really
good description of what happened in Byzantium read David Drake's
intro to his book Caught In The Crossfire, That's one of the best
descriptions I've run across. In his novel Jerry fleshes out the bare
facts with some political analysis which sheds some light on what may
have led to the riots in Byzantium. I've always been suspicious of
the official historical accounts. Finally this series shows how a
civilization can rise out of the ashes of a dying one. The fears,
hopes, actions, and motivations of the characters are well fleshed
out. They aren't two dimensional cardboard figures. Even the
antagonists have good reasons for what they do. These are people who
literally have their world dying about them. All in all I recommend
this series. It's a great read.
Chronology
1969 Neil Armstrong
sets foot on Earth's Moon.
1990-2000 Series of
treaties between U.S. and Soviet Union creates the CoDominium.
Military research and development outlawed.
1995 Nationalist
movements intensify.
1996 French Foreign
Legion forms the basic element of the CoDominium Armed Services.
2004 Alderson Drive
perfected at Cal Tech.
2008 First Alderson
Drive exploratory ships leave the Solar System.
2010-2100 CoDominium
Intelligence Services engage in serious effort to suppress all
research into technologies with military applications. They are aided
by zero-growth organizations. Most scientific research ceases.
2010 Inhabitable
planets discovered. Commercial exploitation begins.
2020 First
interstellar colonies are founded. The CoDominium Space Navy and
Marines are created, absorbing the original CoDominium Armed
Services.
2020 Great Exodus
period of colonization begins. First colonists are dissidents,
malcontents, and voluntary adventurers.
2030 Sergei
Lermontov is born in Moscow.
2040 Bureau of
Relocations begins mass outsystem shipment of involuntary colonists.
2043 John Christian
Falkenberg II is born in Rome, Italy.
2060 Nationalistic
revival movements continue.
Prologue
An oily, acrid smell
assaulted him, and the noise was incessant. Hundreds of thousands had
passed through the spaceport. Their odor floated through the
embarcation hall to blend with the yammer of the current victims
crammed into the enclosure.
The room was long
and narrow. White painted concrete walls shut out bright Florida
sunshine; but the walls were dingy with film and dirt that had been
smeared about and not removed by the Bureau of Relocation's convict
laborers. Cold luminescent panels glowed brightly above.
The smell and sounds
and glare blended with his own fears. He didn't belong here, but no
one would listen. No one wanted to. Anything he said was lost in the
brutal totality of shouted orders, growls of surly trustee guards in
their wire pen running the full length of the long hall; screaming
children; the buzz of frightened humanity.
They marched onward,
toward the ship that would take them out of the solar system and
toward an unknown fate. A few colonists blustered and argued. Some
suppressed rage until it might be of use. Most were ashen-faced,
shuffling forward without visible emotion, beyond fear.
There were red lines
painted on the concrete floor, and the colonists stayed carefully
inside them. Even the children had learned to cooperate with
BuRelock's guards. The colonists had a sameness about them: shabbily
dressed in Welfare Issue clothing mixed with finery cast off by
taxpayers and gleaned from Reclamation Stores or by begging or from a
Welfare District Mission.
John Christian
Falkenberg knew he didn't look much like a typical colonist. He was a
gangling youth, already at fifteen approaching six feet in height and
thin because he hadn't yet filled out to his latest spurt of growth.
No one would take him for a man, no matter how hard he tried to act
like one.
A forelock of
sand-colored hair fell across his forehead and threatened to blind
him, and he automatically brushed it aside with a nervous gesture.
His bearing and posture set him apart from the others, as did his
almost comically serious expression. His clothing was also unusual:
it was new, and fit well, and obviously not reclaimed. He wore a
brocaded tunic of real wool and cotton, bright flared trousers, a new
belt, and a tooled leather purse at his left hip. His clothes had
cost more than his father could afford, but they did him little good
here. Still he stood straight and tall, his lips set in defiance.
John stalked forward
to keep his place in the long line. His bag, regulation space duffel
without tags, lay in front of him and he kicked it forward rather
than stoop to pick it up. He thought it would look undignified to
bend over, and his dignity was all he had left.
Ahead of him was a
family of five, three screaming children and their apathetic parents
- or, possibly, he thought, not parents. Citizen families were never
very stable. BuRelock agents often farmed out their quotas, and their
superiors were seldom concerned about the precise identities of those
scooped up.
The disorderly
crowds moved inexorably toward the end of the room. Each line
terminated at a wire cage containing a plastisteel desk. Each family
group moved into a cage, the doors were closed, and their interviews
began.
The bored trustee
placement officers hardly listened to their clients, and the
colonists did not know what to say to them. Most knew nothing about
Earth's outsystem worlds. A few had heard that Tanith was hot,
Fulton's World cold, and Sparta a hard place to live, but free. Some
understood that Hadley had a good climate and was under the benign
protection of American Express and the Colonial Office. For those
sentenced to transportation without confinement, knowing that little
could make a lot of difference to their futures; most didn't know and
were shipped off to labor-hungry mining and agricultural worlds, or
the hell of Tanith, where their lot would be hard labor, no matter
what their sentences might read.
The fifteen-year-old
boy - he liked to consider himself a man, but he knew many of his
emotions were boyish no matter how hard he tried to control them -
had almost reached the interview cage. He felt despair.
Once past the
interview, he'd be packed into a BuRelock transportation ship. John
turned again toward the gray-uniformed guard standing casually behind
the large-mesh protective screen. "I keep trying to tell you,
there's been a mistake! I shouldn't - "
"Shut up,"
the guard answered. He motioned threateningly with the bell-shaped
muzzle of his sonic stunner. "It's a mistake for everybody,
right? Nobody belongs here. Tell the interview officer, sonny."
John's lip curled,
and he wanted to attack the guard, to make him listen. He fought to
control the rising flush of hatred. "Damn you, I - "
The guard raised the
weapon. The Citizen family in front of John huddled together, shoving
forward to get away from this mad kid who could get them all tingled.
John subsided and sullenly shuffled forward in the line.
Tri-V commentators
said the stunners were painless, but John wasn't eager to have it
tried on him. The Tri-V people said a lot of things. They said most
colonists were volunteers, and they said transportees were treated
with dignity by the Bureau of Relocation.
No one believed
them. No one believed anything the government told them. They did not
believe in the friendship among nations that had created the
Co-Dominium, or in the election figures, or -
He reached the
interview cage. The trustee wore the same uniform as the guards, but
his gray coveralls had numbers stenciled across back and chest. There
were wide gaps between the man's jaggedly pointed teeth, and the
teeth showed yellow stains when he smiled. He smiled often, but there
was no warmth in the expression.
"Whatcha got
for me?" the trustee asked. "Boy dressed like you can
afford anything he wants. Where you want to go, boy?"
"I'm not a
colonist," John insisted. His anger rose. The trustee was no
more than a prisoner himself - what right had he to speak this way?
"I demand to speak with a CoDominium officer."
"One of those,
huh?" The trustee's grin vanished. "Tanith for you."
He pushed a button and the door on the opposite side of the cage
opened. "Get on," he snapped. "Fore I call the
guards." His finger poised menacingly over the small console on
his desk.
John took papers out
of an inner pocket of his tunic. "I have an appointment to
CoDominium Navy Service," he said. "I was ordered to report
to Canaveral Embarcation Station for transport by BuRelock ship to
Luna Base."
"Get movin! -
uh?" The trustee stopped himself and the grin reappeared. "Let
me see that." He held out a grimy hand.
"No. "
John was more sure of himself now. "I'll show them to any CD
officer, but you won't get your hands on them. Now call an officer."
"Sure."
The trustee didn't move. "Cost you ten credits."
"What?"
"Ten credits.
Fifty bucks if you ain't got CD credits. Don't give me that look,
kid. You don't pay, you go on the Tanith ship. Maybe they'll put
things straight there, maybe they won't, but you'll be late
reporting. Best you slip me something."
John held out a
twenty-dollar piece. "That all you got?" the trustee
demanded. "OK, OK, have to do." He punched a code into the
phone, and a minute later a petty officer in blue CoDominium Space
Navy coveralls came into the cage.
"What you need,
Smiley?"
"Got one of
yours. New middy. Got himself mixed up with the colonists." The
trustee laughed as John struggled to control himself.
The petty officer
eyed Smiley with distaste. "Your orders, sir?" he said.
John handed him the
papers, afraid that he would never see them again. The Navy man
glanced through them. "John Christian Falkenberg?"
"Yes."
"Thank you,
sir." He turned to the trustee. "Gimme."
"Aw, he can
afford it."
"Want me to
call the Marines, Smiley?"
"Jesus, you
hardnosed - " The trustee took the coin from his pocket and
handed it over.
"This way,
please, sir," the Navy man said. He bent to pick up John's
duffel. "And here's your money, sir."
"Thanks. You
keep it."
The petty officer
nodded. "Thank you, sir. Smiley, you bite one of our people
again and I'll have the Marines look you up when you're off duty.
Let's go, sir.
John followed the
spacer out of the cubicle. The petty officer was twice his age, and
no one had ever called John "sir" before. It gave John
Falkenberg a sense of belonging, a sense of having found something he
had searched for all his life. Even the street gangs had been closed
to him, and friends he had grown up with had always seemed part of
someone else's life, not his own. Now, in seconds, he seemed to have
found - found what, he wondered.
They went through
narrow whitewashed corridors, then into the bright Florida sunshine.
A narrow gangway led to the forward end of an enormous winged landing
ship that floated at the end of a long pier crowded with colonists
and cursing guards.
The petty officer
spoke briefly to the Marine sentries at the officers' gangway, then
carefully saluted the officer at the head of the boarding gangway.
John wanted to do the same, but he knew that you didn't salute in
civilian clothing. His father had made him read books on military
history and the customs of the Service as soon as he decided to find
John an appointment to the Academy.
Babble from the
colonists filled the air until they were inside the ship. As the
hatch closed behind him the last sounds he heard were the curses of
the guards.
"If you please,
sir. This way." The petty officer led him through a maze of
steel corridors, airtight bulkheads, ladders, pipes, wire races, and
other unfamiliar sights. Although the CD Navy operated it, most of
the ship belonged to BuRelock, and she stank. There were no viewports
and John was lost after several turns in the corridors.
The petty officer
led on at a brisk pace until he came to a door that seemed no
different from any other. He pressed a button on a panel outside it.
"Come in,"
the panel answered.
The compartment held
eight tables, but only three men, all seated at a single booth. In
contrast to the gray steel corridors outside, the compartment was
almost cheerful, with paintings on the walls, padded furniture, and
what seemed like carpets.
The CoDominium seal
hung from the far wall - American eagle and Soviet sickle and hammer,
red, white, and blue, white stars and red stars.
The three men held
drinks and seemed relaxed. All wore civilian clothing not much
different from John's except that the older man wore a more
conservative tunic. The others seemed about John's age, perhaps a
year older; no more.
"One of ours,
sir," the petty officer announced. "New middy got lost with
the colonists."
One of the younger
men laughed, but the older cut him off with a curt wave. "All
right, Cox'n. Thank you. Come in, we don't bite."
"Thank you,
sir," John said. He shuffled uncertainly in the doorway,
wondering who these men were. Probably CD officers, he decided. The
petty officer wouldn't act that way toward anyone else. Frightened as
he was, his analytical mind continued to work, and his eyes darted
around the compartment.
Definitely CD
officers, he decided. Going back up to Luna Base after leave, or
perhaps a duty tour in normal gravity. Naturally they'd worn civilian
clothing. Wearing the CD uniform off duty earthside was an invitation
to be murdered.
"Lieutenant
Hartmann, at your service," the older man introduced himself.
"And Midshipmen Rolnikov and Bates. Your orders, please?"
"John Christian
Falkenberg, sir," John said. "Midshipman. Or I guess I'm a
midshipman. But I'm not sure. I haven't been sworn in or anything."
All three men
laughed at that. "You will be, Mister," Hartmann said. He
took John's orders. "But you're one of the damned all the same,
swearing in or no."
He examined the
plastic sheet, comparing John's face to the photograph, then reading
the bottom lines. He whistled. "Grand Senator Martin Grant.
Appointed by the Navy's friend, no less. With him to bat for you, I
wouldn't be surprised to see you outrank me in a few years."
"Senator Grant
is a former student of my father's," John said.
"I see,"
Hartmann returned the orders and motioned John to sit with them. Then
he turned to one of the other midshipmen. "As to you, Mister
Bates, I fail to see the humor. What is so funny about one of your
brother officers becoming lost among the colonists? You have never
been lost?"
Bates squirmed
uncomfortably. His voice was high-pitched, and John realized that
Bates was no older than himself. "Why didn't he show the guards
his taxpayer status card?" Bates demanded. "They would have
taken him to an officer. Wouldn't they?"
Hartman shrugged.
"I didn't have
one," John said.
"Um."
Hartmann seemed to withdraw, although he didn't actually move.
"Well," he said. "We don't usually get officers from
Citizen families - "
"We are not
Citizens," John said quickly. "My father is a CoDominium
University professor, and I was born in Rome."
"Ah,"
Hartman said. "Did you live there long?"
"No, sir.
Father prefers to be a visiting faculty member. We have lived in many
university towns." The lie came easily now, and John thought
that Professor Falkenberg probably believed it after telling it so
many times. John knew better: he had seen his father desperate to
gain tenure, but always, always making too many enemies.
He is too blunt and
too honest. One explanation. He is a revolving S.O.B. and can't get
along with anyone. That's another. I've lived with the situation so
long I don't care anymore. But, it would have been nice to have a
home, I think.
Hartmann relaxed
slightly, "Well, whatever the reason, Mister Falkenberg, you
would have done better to arrange to be born a United States
taxpayer. Or a Soviet party member. Unfortunately, you, like me, are
doomed to remain in the lower ranks of the officer corps."
There was a trace of
accent to Hartmann's voice, but John couldn't place it exactly.
German, certainly; there were many Germans in the CD fighting
services. This was not the usual German though; John had lived in
Heidelberg long enough to learn many shades of the German speech.
East German? Possibly.
He realized the
others were waiting for him to say something. "I thought, sir, I
thought there was equality within the CD services."
Hartmann shrugged.
"In theory, yes. In practice - the generals and admirals, even
the captains who command ships, always seem to be Americans or
Soviets. It is not the preference of the officer corps, Mister. We
have no countries of origin among ourselves and no politics. Ever.
The Fleet is our fatherland, and our only fatherland." He
glanced at his glass. "Mister Bates, we need more to drink, and
a glass for our new comrade. Hop it."
"Aye,
aye, sir." The pudgy middy left the compartment, passing
the unattended bar in the corner on his way. He returned a moment
later with a full bottle of American whiskey and an empty glass.
Hartmann poured the
glass full and pushed it toward John. "The Navy will teach you
many things, Mister Midshipman John Christian Falkenberg. One of them
is to drink. We all drink too much. Another thing we will teach you
is why we do, but before you learn why, you must learn to do it."
He lifted the glass.
When John raised his and took only a sip, Hartmann frowned. "More,"
he said. The tone made it an order.
John drank half the
whiskey. He had been drinking beer for years, but his father did not
often let him drink spirits. It did not taste good, and it burned his
throat and stomach.
"Now, why have
you joined our noble band of brothers?" Hartmann asked. His
voice carried a warning: he used bantering words, but under that was
a more serious mood - perhaps he was not mocking the Service at all
when he called it a band of brothers.
John hoped he was
not. He had never had brothers. He had never had friends, or a home,
and his father was a harsh schoolmaster, teaching him many things,
but never giving him any affection - or friendship. "I - "
"Honesty,"
Hartmann warned. "I will tell you a secret, the secret of the
Fleet. We do not lie to our own." He looked at the other two
midshipmen, and they nodded, Rolnikov slightly amused, Bates serious,
as if in church.
"Out there,"
Hartmann said, "out there they lie, and they cheat, and they use
each other. With us this is not true. We are used, yes. But we know
that we are used, and we are honest with each other. That is why the
men are loyal to us. And why we are loyal to the Fleet."
And that's
significant, John thought, because Hartmann had glanced at the
CoDominium banner on the wall, but he said nothing about the CD at
all. Only the Fleet. "I'm here because my father wanted me out
of the house and was able to get an appointment for me," John
blurted.
"You will find
another reason, or you will not stay with us," Hartmann said.
"Drink up."
"Yes, sir."
"The proper
response is 'aye aye, sir.' "
"Aye
aye, sir." John drained his glass.
Hartmann smiled.
"Very good." He refilled his glass, then the others. "What
is the mission of the CoDominium Navy, Mister Falkenberg?"
"Sir? To carry
out the will of the Grand Senate - "
"No. It is to
exist. And by existing, to keep some measure of peace and order in
this corner of the galaxy. To buy enough time for men to get far
enough away from Earth that when the damned fools kill themselves
they will not have killed the human race. And that is our only
mission."
"Sir?"
Midshipman Rolnikov spoke quietly and urgently. "Lieutenant,
sir, should you drink so much?"
"Yes. I
should," Hartmann replied. "I thank you for your concern,
Mister Rolnikov. But as you see, I am, at present, a passenger. The
Service has no regulation against drinking. None at all, Mister
Falkenberg. There is a strong prohibition against being unfit for
one's duties, but none against drinking. And I have no duties at the
moment." He raised his glass. "Save one. To speak to you,
Mister Falkenberg, and to tell you the truth, so that you will either
run from us or be damned with us for the rest of your life, for we
never lie to our own.
He fell silent for a
moment, and Falkenberg wondered just how drunk Hartmann was. The
officer seemed to be considering his words more carefully than his
father ever had when he was drinking.
"What do you
know of the history of the CoDominium Navy, Mister Falkenberg?"
Hartmann demanded.
Probably more than
you, John thought. Father's lecture on the growth of the CoDominium
was famous. "It began with detente. That collapsed, but was
revived, and soon there was a web of formal treaties between the
United States and the Soviet Union. The treaties did not end the
basic enmity between these great powers, but their common interest
was greater than their differences; for it was obviously better that
there be only two great powers, than for there to be ..." No.
Hartmann did not want to hear Professor Falkenberg's lecture. "Very
little, sir."
"We were
created out of the French Foreign Legion," Hartmann said. "A
legion of strangers, to fight for an artificial alliance of nations
that hate each other. How can a man give his soul and life to that,
Mister Falkenberg? What heart has an alliance? What power to inspire
men's loyalty?"
"I don't know,
sir."
"Nor do they."
Hartmann waved at the other middies, who were carefully leaning back
in their seats, acting as if they were listening, as if they were not
listening - John couldn't tell. Perhaps they thought Hartmann was
crazy drunk. Yet it had been a good question.
"I don't know,"
John repeated.
"Ah. But no one
knows, for there is no answer. Men cannot die for an alliance. Yet we
do fight. And we do die."
"At the
Senate's orders," Midshipman Rolnikov said quietly.
"But we do not
love the Senate," Hartmann said. "Do you love the Grand
Senate, Mister Rolnikov? Do you, Mister Bates? We know what the Grand
Senate is. Corrupt, politicians who lie to each other, and who use us
to gather wealth for themselves, power for their own factions. If
they can. They do not use us as much as they once did. Drink,
gentlemen. Drink."
The whiskey had
taken its effect, and John's head buzzed. He felt sweat break out at
his temples and in his armpits, and his stomach rebelled, but he
lifted the glass and drank again, in unison with Rolnikov and Bates,
and it was more meaningful than the Communion cup had ever been. He
tried to ask himself why, but there was only emotion, no thought. He
belonged here, with this man, with these men, and he was a man with
them.
As if he had read
John's thoughts, Lieutenant Hartmann put his arms out, across the
shoulders of the three boys, two on his left, John alone on his
right, and he lowered his voice to speak to all of them. "No. We
are here because the Fleet is our only fatherland, and our brothers
in the Service are our only family. And if the Fleet should ever
demand our lives, we give them as men because we have no other place
to go."
PART ONE: - THE
CODOMINIUM YEARS
I
Princeton, New
Jersey, United States of America
THE STUDENT LOUNGE
was noisy as usual. Students in bright tunics sipped coffee paid for
by their taxpayer parents, and spoke of the Rights of Man and the
Citizen. Others pretended to read while looking to see if anyone
interesting had come in. In one corner three young men and a girl -
she detested being called a 'young lady' - sat playing bridge. They
were typical students, children of taxpayers, well dressed in the
latest fashions of subdued colors. Their teeth were straight, their
complexions were good. Two of the boys wore contact lenses. The girl,
in keeping with fashion, wore large brightly colored glasses with
small jewels at the hinges. The remains of their afternoon snack
probably contained as many calories as the average Citizen would have
for the day.
"Three No
Trump, made four. That's game and rubber," Donald Etheridge
said. He scribbled for a moment on the score sheet. "Let's see,
I owe twenty-two fifty. Moishe, you owe eleven and a quarter. Richie
gets nine bucks, and Bonnie wins the rest."
"You always
win," Richard Larkin said accusingly.
Bonnie Dalrymple
smiled. "Comes of clean living."
"You?"
Donald smirked.
"Don't you just
wish," Richie said. He glanced at his watch. "Getting on
for class time. Visiting lecturer today."
Moishe Ellison
frowned. "Who?"
"Chap named
Falkenberg," Larkin said. "Professor at the CD University
in Rome. Going to lecture on problems of the CoDominium. Today it's
military leadership."
"Oh, I know
him," Bonnie Dalrymple said.
"Is he
interesting?" Moishe asked. "I've got a lot to do this
afternoon."
"He's dense,"
Bonnie said. She grinned at the blank looks. "Packs a lot into
what he says. Makes every paragraph count. I think you better come
listen."
"What did you
take from him?" Richard Larkin asked.
"Oh, I wasn't
old enough to take his classes. Actually, I didn't know Professor
Falkenberg very well, I used to be friends with his son. John
Christian Falkenberg the Third. It was when Daddy was stationed at
the Embassy in Rome. Johnny Falkenberg and I wandered all over the
city. He knew everything about it, it was really fun. The Capitoline
Hill, with the statues, and up there is the Tarpeian Rock where they
threw traitors off - it's not so high, really. And we'd go to the Via
Flaminia. We used to tramp down that and Johnny sang this old Roman
marching song. 'When you go by the Via Flaminia, by the Legion's road
from Rome - ' "
"Fun date."
"Wasn't really
dating. He was about fourteen and I was twelve, we were just kids out
playing around. But we had fun, really. I guess I was studious,
then."
"Heh. You still
are. You aced me in that last test," Moishe Ellison said.
"Well, if you'd
work more instead of running around with that girl - "
Ellison winked, and
the others laughed. They got up and walked together toward the
lecture hall. The smog was bad outside, but it always was, so they
didn't notice. "So how do you know about old man Falkenberg's
lectures?"
Bonnie laughed.
"Johnny used to take me to his house. Usually there wasn't
anyone there but this old black housekeeper, but sometimes the
Professor would come home early, and when he did, he'd ask where we'd
been. Then he'd tell us all about it. All about it, wherever we'd
been."
"Actually, it
was interesting. Rome was nice then, there were a lot of old
buildings I guess they've let fall down now, and the Professor knew
about all of them. But he wasn't as interesting as when Johnny told
me - I guess I had quite a crush on him." Bonnie laughed.
"That's what's
wrong with her," Richie said. "She's never got over her
youthful affair with - what was his name?"
"John Christian
Falkenberg, the Fourth." Moishe Ellison let the name roll off
his tongue.
"Third,"
Bonnie said. "And maybe you're right."
They reached Smith
Hall and went up the marble stairs to the lecture theatre.
Professor Falkenberg
was tall and thin, with a surprisingly deep voice that carried
authority. Hasn't changed a bit, Bonnie thought. He could read the
phone book and make it sound important.
Falkenberg nodded to
the students. "Good afternoon. I am pleased to see that there
are still a few students in the United States who are interested in
history.
"I wish to
examine the origins of the CoDominium. To do that, we will have to
look at just what happened to the United States and the Soviet Union
whose uneasy alliance has produced our modern world. Friends in the
Second World War, enemies in the Cold War - how did it happen that
these two divided the world between them?
"There are many
aspects to this problem. One is the decline of military power in both
nations. That in itself has many facets.
"Today we will
discuss military leadership, both as a general case and in the
specifics of the powers at the time of interest. I begin with a few
brief paragraphs by Joseph Maxwell Cameron, a writer of the last
century, who said, in his Anatomy of Military Merit:"
Professor Falkenberg
opened his pocket computer and touched a key, then began to read.
" 'Armies are
controlled by the actions of two classes of men in authority that are
distinct on the surface by levels of rank, but whose significant
difference is in the sources of their authority. One class acts on
the authority vested in it by the sovereign power. The other acts by
authority derived of appointment by the first. This is not a chance
relationship but one directed by a natural ruling principle. The
'commissioned' officer acts in the name of sovereign power and, or,
by order of its commissioned superiors to himself. The
'non-commissioned' officer exercises equally valid and at times
absolute authority, but he holds it from the commissioned officer who
appointed him and who can at his discretion remove the office. Few
controlling principles are as little understood in current times as
these that define the relationships of commissioned and
non-commissioned ranks to each other, the government, and to the
ordinary soldier. Promotion given as reward, rank seen as caste and
pay as incentive in the profession, occupation, or career in arms are
the villains that cloud the issues. A private soldier can prove
himself of equal value to a general officer, in fact has often done
so; and always by being the soldier who knew his business, whatever
his immediate motivation. A hierarchy of ranks invented to increase
prestige and pay can rob a military body of much of its power while
enjoying general approval of what are considered benefits. One of the
sure signs of a military system in decay is the appearance of an
excess ratio of persons in designated authority over the numbers of
those who serve to follow. The optimum ratio may vary a little
according to current armaments, but with little else.
" 'Because of
its specific roles and purposes an army has an optimum design and
structure of control mechanisms, instrumentation, and appendages. It
is at best simple, devoted to the smooth and graceful application of
power to motion and impact. In an almost totally industrial and
technocratic time, however, the existence of a natural pattern tends
to be forgotten as normal members and appendages are tortured and
distorted to conform to the caprices of machines. Military
monstrosities analogous to anencephalic and three legged children are
born and nursed toward ultimate impotence. They are quite horribly
obvious except to minds bemused by the magic of technology. . .
Falkenberg closed
his computer and smiled thinly. "Those words were written
shortly before the United States acquired, in what was supposed to be
peace time, approximately twice as many general officers as it had
employed during the conflict known as the Second World War, despite
having a much smaller military establishment. Nor was this all. The
ratio of officers to men began to creep upward, inexorably; and since
the optimum ratio is perhaps five percent, and some elite
organizations have done with less, it should be no surprise that as
the United States military establishment moved toward one officer for
each dozen men - and one general officer for each fifteen hundred -
the effectiveness of the system declined accordingly.
"Military
managers are easy enough to come by. Real leaders are rare."
"You were right
about the density," Moishe Ellison said.
Bonnie giggled. "He
hasn't changed much, that's for sure."
"And you only
heard him at home? Wonder his kid didn't go nuts. Whatever happened
to him, anyway?"
"He got in some
kind of trouble," Bonnie said.
"And no
wonder." Richie chuckled.
"I don't know
what it was," Bonnie said. "But the next thing I knew,
Johnny was off to the CoDominium Academy. We used to write, but when
he graduated and was sent off on a ship, well - "
"You sound like
you miss him," Moishe said.
"Yeah, hey, you
never get that tone of voice when you talk about me," Richie
said.
"That'll be the
day," Moishe said. "You ever hear from him?"
Bonnie shook her
head.
II
ANGELA NILES FOUGHT
for wakefulness. It seemed to take a long time. At one level she knew
she was dreaming, but it was still real: the crowded alleys of High
Shanghai, thousands of men and women in blue canvas clothing, not
quite uniforms but so alike they looked like blue ants. They were
shouting, screaming words she could not understand, but what they
intended was clear enough. The blue ants were coming to kill her. She
ran, and suddenly she wasn't alone, there were blue and gold
uniforms, a different blue, CoDominium blue, and the tiny squad of
CoDominium troops clustered around her. They pulled her away from the
mob, then turned, fired a volley, then another, and the blue ants
screamed and halted for a moment.
"Fall back."
The Navy lieutenant spoke calmly. "First squad. Fall back toward
the harbor. Kewney."
"Sir."
Cousin Harold. How
did Cousin Harold get here? But he was here, in the uniform of a Navy
middie.
"Can you fly
that boat?"
"No, sir."
"The cox'n was
killed."
"Yes, sir, I
know."
"Right. All
right, Midshipman. Fall back with the first squad. Halt while we're
still in sight, and take defensive positions. Signal when you're
ready. We'll hold here. Miss, you go with him - "
"But, yes, but,
Harold, what are you doing here, who is this, what - "
"No time,
Angie. Let's go!"
They ran, and now it
was certainly a dream, because she couldn't move, her legs wouldn't
work, she tried to run and couldn't -
"Try to
remember," a voice said. Whose? "What happened then?"
Running. A Marine
was holding her arm. Suddenly he stopped. His eyes grew very wide,
and he stood, stock still, in the middle of the street. A long thin
steel rod grew out of his chest, and blood came out of his mouth, and
he crumpled, slowly, slowly -
"Come on Angie,
run, dammit!"
Run. Then they were
at the end of the block, and turned the corner, and she could see the
harbor, not far away, with the long slender shape of the landing
craft, and three sailors at the landing with guns, and the turret on
top swiveled.
Harold touched his
sleeve and spoke rapidly into the communicator card. There was more
gunfire, and more people screaming, then the CoDominium lieutenant
and his party came running down the street.
"Almost there,"
Harold said.
"Get her into
the ship," the Lieutenant said.
"Sir, you can
fly the damn thing. You get her on the ship."
He was very young,
that lieutenant, no more than a boy, he looked so thin and so very
young, no older than Harold, "Three minutes," he said.
"Three minutes, Kewney, then run like hell."
Harold grinned. "You
know it. Ready? Go for it!"
And the lieutenant
took her hand and ran with her, pulling her along, and the turret
guns fired over their heads, and there was more shooting, and noise
everywhere. Something exploded close to them and one of the dockside
sailors went down. The lieutenant shouted into his sleeve mike.
"Mortars! Run for it, Kewney. NOW!" And dragged her on, to
the boarding port, threw her into the cabin.
"Sound Board
Ship!"
Recorded bugle notes
blared into the bright afternoon. The lieutenant ran forward and
moments later there were rumbles. Something exploded outside the
hatchway, and a swarm of angry bees came through the open hatch,
whipped past her and clattered against the bulkheads. There was
another explosion.
"We're hulled!"
a sailor shouted.
The engine sounds
were louder now. She ran to the hatchway to look out, and shouted for
Harold. She couldn't see anyone.
"Clear the
hatch!" someone shouted. There were whirs and the hatchway began
to close. She felt motion as the ship began to move.
"Harold!
Harold!" And there was Harold, only he was an old man, and his
face was melting, and then he was gone, and there was another man,
and the ship began to fade and she was in a white room in bed, a
hospital room, and the men beside the bed were a doctor in a white
coat and a CoDominium Navy Commander, very thin. She knew them both.
How? Who were they? Lermontov. That was his name. How did she know
that?
"Did you ever
see Midshipman Kewney again?" Commander Lermontov asked.
"No. I never
saw him after we left him at the corner, on the street of - the
Street of Three Moons." Her throat was dry, and her left arm
hurt. She couldn't move it, and when she looked she saw that it was
strapped to a board, and there was an IV inserted at the elbow. And
she remembered. Pentothal, something like that. They wanted to
question her. What had she told them?
"I've told you
everything," she said. "Three times, and whatever I said
when I was drugged. Why do we have to go over this again?"
"Your Uncle has
demanded thorough investigation," Commander Lermontov said. "And
that he will have." He used his stylus on the screen of his
pocket computer. "So. You last saw Midshipman Kewney at corner,
where he was ordered by Lieutenant Falkenberg to hold for three
minutes before retreating."
"Actually
Harold volunteered - "
"Yes. Thank
you. How long after that order was given did ship begin to move?"
"I don't know -
"
"Doctor says
you believe was less than three minutes."
"How does he
know?"
"I don't know,"
the white-coated man said. "I can only try to construct events
from your memories. Based on what we heard, I conclude that you don't
really know, but you suspect that Falkenberg took off as soon as he
got you to the ship."
"What does he
say?" Angela asked.
"You already
know that," Doctor Wittgenstein said.
"He told me
Harold was hit by mortar fire before we got to the boat."
"But you don't
believe him."
"I don't - I
don't know what to believe," she said.
"Boat lifted,"
Lermontov said. "It had not enough fuel to go to orbit, and was
damaged."
Angela shuddered.
"More damage than - I was shocked when we landed and I could
look. It was amazing that it would fly."
"Buna class
boat is designed to take damage. So. Falkenberg landed boat at
offshore island. What happened there?"
"Nothing. It
was perfectly safe there, the people were Thai, no Chinese. Very
friendly. It was - nice there, safe and peaceful. So we waited, three
weeks until the Navy could send another ship down with a repair crew.
Then I was taken to Government House, and John - Lieutenant
Falkenberg was sent to his ship. Nothing happened."
"Something
happened," Lermontov said.
She frowned at his
tone. "What do you mean?"
"Doctor - "
"Miss Niles,
you are a month pregnant."
"Oh."
"You do not
seem surprised. You took no precautions?"
She felt herself
blushing.
"Miss Niles, I
have daughter nearly your age," Lermontov said. "You took
no precautions?"
She tried to sound
casual. "I wasn't thinking about that at the time."
"Nor,
apparently, was Lieutenant," Lermontov said. "In this era
of disease you were perhaps foolhardy."
Angela shrugged.
"Actually, there were no precautions to take - "
"On Navy ship
there will always be kits," Lermontov said. "But you are in
fact correct. Medical cabinet was damaged along with much other
equipment."
"Commander, I
fail to see how my condition is relevant - "
"Your uncle
will not fail to see," Lermontov said. "Foolhardy young
Falkenberg, sacrifices promising Midshipman grandson of Grand
Senator, in order to save himself. Then seduces Grand Senator's
niece." Lermontov stared pointedly at her midriff. "Evidence
will be unmistakable in few weeks."
"Oh. Do you -
I guess Uncle Adrian would see it that way."
"At least
you're safe," Dr. Wittgenstein said. "That ought to make
him grateful."
Angela shook her
head. "I'm afraid he won't be, not very. He doesn't like my
mother much, and Harold was special. A niece is not a grandson,
Doctor. He'd have gladly traded me for Harold." She shrugged. "I
think he planned for Harold to become Grand Admiral one day."
"So. What will
you do now?" Lermontov asked.
"About - "
She rubbed her belly. "It takes getting used to. Does John -
does Lieutenant Falkenberg know?"
"Not unless you
told him," Dr. Wittgenstein said.
But I didn't know -
"You mean, he won't learn unless I tell him?"
Lermontov nodded. "I
was told you are intelligent."
"What is that
supposed to mean?"
"I think I need
not explain. What will Lieutenant Falkenberg do if he learns?"
She blushed again.
"I suppose - I suppose he'd marry me, if I wanted him to."
"Is my
prediction also," Lermontov said. "Under other
circumstances would be good thing for young man's career, marriage to
Bronson family. Now - "
"Now it would
be ruin for both of us," Angela said. "What - what should I
do?"
"You don't have
to be pregnant," Dr. Wittgenstein said.
"Damn you! I
was waiting for that! Why didn't - while I was still under, while you
had me out, why didn't you just do it then, and I'd never have known?
But no, you had to wake me up and tell me - "
"You want us to
make decision for you?" Lermontov said. When she didn't answer,
he turned to Wittgenstein. "Doctor, prepare operating room."
"Wait - no,
wait - " She felt tears welling up in her eyes. "What is
it?"
"What is what -
Oh," Wittgenstein said. "A girl."
"Commander - I
want to see John Falkenberg."
"I cannot
prevent," Lermontov said. "But I ask you do not. Not until
you have decided what you will do. He is not stupid - "
"Do you know
him?" she asked. "That's a strange thing to ask, isn't it?
Do you know the - father of my unborn daughter? We had three weeks. A
lifetime. I think I know him, but do I? I - oh, damn."
Lermontov's
expression softened. "He is - was - considered promising young
officer. Well regarded." He shrugged. "Pity no one sees
Midshipman Kewney die. Now I do not know what we can do for
Falkenberg."
"And I can't
help - I can only make it worse," she said. "Oh, damn -
what should I do?"
"Get rid of
it," Lermontov said. "Then, in year, two years, when
Senator has forgotten, you will meet again - "
"He'll never
forget. And we'll never meet again."
Lermontov was going
to speak but she cut him off. "You can't be sure, and I can't be
sure," she said. "The only thing that is sure is that - we
can kill my daughter."
"Fetus,"
Wittgenstein said. "Not - "
"I've studied
embryology," Angela said. "You don't need to tell me the
details." She was silent for a long time. Then she brushed the
tears from her eyes and looked directly at Lermontov. "Commander,
can you get me passage to Churchill?" "Yes, but why
Churchill?"
"I have
relatives there. My branch of the family didn't get the big money,
but we're not broke, you know. I'll get by - "
"If you do
this, I cannot permit you to see Falkenberg again."
"You couldn't
stop me if I demanded it, and you know it," she said. "But
- maybe it's better this way. Tell him - " The words caught in
her throat, and she felt the tears welling up again. "Tell him I
thank him for saving my life, and I wish him well."
The young man
marched stiffly into the compartment and saluted. "Lieutenant
Falkenberg reporting to Commander Lermontov as ordered, sir."
The thin man behind
the desk returned the salute. "Thank you. Have a seat."
"Sir?"
"I said, Sit
Down."
"Aye,
aye, sir." Falkenberg sat stiffly.
"You believe I
am calling you in for punishment?"
Falkenberg fingered
the dispatch case under his left arm. "I have orders - "
"I know,"
Lermontov interrupted. "Not orders I wished to issue, but there
is nothing to be done."
"So I'm leaving
the Fleet."
"No. Only
Navy," Lermontov said. "Unless you prefer to leave Fleet
entirely." The older man leaned forward and examined Falkenberg
minutely. "I could not blame you if you did, but I hope you will
not. I have arranged to transfer you to Marines. As lieutenant with
seniority and brevet captain. Also, I have sent message to Senator
Grant recommending that he obtain Grand Senate confirmation of Order
of Merit, First Class, for you. I expect that will ensure permanent
promotion to Marine captain." Lermontov sighed. "If we had
better communications, if I could speak to Grant directly, perhaps
none of this will be necessary. Perhaps. I do not gauge well the
politics of Grand Senate."
Falkenberg glanced
at his dispatch case. "Clearly I don't either. Sir."
"This is
obvious," Lermontov said. "Yet you did right. Losing one
squad of landing party to save others is difficult, but we are all
satisfied there was nothing else to be done." He shrugged. "Is
unfortunate that squad you lose is commanded by Bronson grandson, but
you cannot know this."
"He was a good
troop," Falkenberg said. "And actually I did know his
connection to - "
Lermontov held up a
hand, cutting him off. He glanced involuntarily around the room, then
eyed Falkenberg narrowly. "You will never admit that to anyone
else," he said. "That your actions cause this young man to
be killed is regrettable but justified, and perhaps Bronson will
forget. But if Grand Senator Bronson is reminded that you knew of his
interest in Midshipman Kewney, it will be much more serious. He will
never forget that. I suggest you avoid Senator in future."
"Yes, sir. Only
- "
"Sir, I have
asked about Miss Niles, and no one seems to know where she is."
"She requested
that she be sent to Churchill, where she has money and relatives. She
left two days ago on message boat to rendezvous with ship bound for
Churchill."
"Oh - I'd have
thought - Did she have a message for me?"
"She says she
is very grateful that you have saved her life."
"I see."
He was silent for a moment. "Sir, what is my assignment?"
Lermontov smiled
thinly. "You have several choices. As usual there is no end of
trouble which must be attended to."
III
Crofton's
Encyclopedia of Contemporary History and Social Issues (1st Edition)
THE EXODUS
THE ERA OF
exploration following the development of the Alderson Drive was
predictably followed by a wave of colonization. The initial colonists
tended to be both wealthy and discontented with Earth's civilization.
Many were motivated by religion: both the more traditional religions,
and the secular religion that grew out of what was known in the
Twentieth Century as "The Ecology Movement," or "The
Greens."
Many of the early
colonists were quite sophisticated, and had good reason to expect
success in establishing their cultures on new planets. Unfortunately,
they did not reckon with the intense pressures on the governments of
Earth . . .
2064 A.D.
The bright future
she sang of was already stiffened in blood, but Kathryn Malcolm
didn't know that, any more than she knew that the sun was orange-red
and too bright, or that the gravity was too low.
She had lived all of
her sixteen standard years on Arrarat, and although her grandfather
often spoke of Earth, humanity's birthplace was no home to her. Earth
was a place of machines and concrete roads and automobiles and great
cities, a place where people crowded together far from the land. When
she thought of Earth at all, it seemed an ugly place, hardly fit for
people to live on.
Mostly she wondered
how Earth would smell. With all those people huddled together -
certainly it must be different from Arrarat. She inhaled deeply,
filling her lungs with the pleasing smell of newly turned soil. The
land here was good. It felt right beneath her feet. Dark and crumbly,
moist enough to take hold of the seeds and nurture them, but not wet
and full of clods: good land, perfect land for the late-season crop
she was planting.
She walked steadily
behind the plow, using a long whip to guide the oxen. She flicked the
whip near the leaders, but never close enough to touch them. There
was no need for that. Horace and Star knew what she wanted. The whip
guided them and assured them that she was watching, but they knew the
spiral path as well as she did. The plow turned the soil inward so
that the center of the field would be higher than the edges. That
helped to drain the field and made it easier to harvest two crops
each year.
The early harvest
was already gathered into the stone barn. Wheat and corn, genetically
adapted for Arrarat; and in another part of the barn were Arrarat's
native breadfruit melons, full of sugar and ready to begin
fermentation. It had been a good year, with more than enough for the
family to eat. There would be a surplus to sell in town, and
Kathryn's mother had promised to buy a bolt of printed cloth for a
new dress that Kathryn could wear for Emil.
At the moment,
though, she wore coveralls and high boots, and she was glad enough
that Emil couldn't see her. He should know that she could plow as
straight a furrow as any man, and that she could ride as well as her
brother - but knowing it and seeing her here on the fields were two
different things entirely, and she was glad that he couldn't see her
just now. She laughed at herself when she thought this, but that
didn't stop the thoughts.
She twitched the
whip to move the oxen slightly outward, then frowned imperceptibly.
The second pair in the string had never pulled a wagon across the
plains, and Kathryn thought that she could no longer put off their
training. Emil would not want to live with Kathryn's grandfather. A
man wanted land of his own, even though there were more than a
thousand hectares in the Malcolm station.
The land here was
taken. If she and Emil were to have land of their own, they would
have to move westward, toward the other sea, where the satellite
pictures showed good land. We could go, she thought; go so far that
the convicts will never find us, and the city will be a place to see
once in a lifetime. It would be exciting, although she would hate to
leave this valley.
The field she plowed
lay among low hills. A small stream meandered along one edge. Most of
the crops and trees that she could see had come from Earth as seeds,
and they had few predators. Most crop-eaters left Earth plants alone,
especially if the fields were bordered with spearmints and marigolds
to give off odors that even Earth insects detested.
She thought of what
she would need if they struck west to found a new settlement. Seeds
they would have; and a mare and stallion, and two pairs of oxen;
chickens and swine; her grandfather was rich by local standards.
There would be her father's blacksmithing tools, which Emil could
learn to use.
They would need a
television. Those were rare. A television, and solar cells, and a
generator for the windmill; such manufactured goods had to be bought
in the city, and that took money. The second crop would be needed
this year, and a large one next spring, as well - and they would have
to keep all the money they earned. She thrust that thought away, but
her hand strayed toward the big sheath knife she wore on her belt.
We will manage, she
thought. We will find the money. Children should not go without
education. Television was not for entertainment. The programs relayed
by the satellites gave weather reports and taught farming, ecology,
engineering, metalwork - all the skills needed to live on Arrarat.
They also taught reading and mathematics. Most of Kathryn's neighbors
despised television and wouldn't have it in their houses, but their
children had to learn from others who watched the screen.
And yet, Kathryn
thought, there is cause for concern. First it is television. Then
light industry. Soon there is more. Mines are opened. Larger
factories are built, and around them grow cities. She thought of
Arrarat covered with cities and concrete, the animals replaced by
tractors and automobiles, the small villages grown into cities;
people packed together the way they were in Harmony and Garrison;
streams dammed and lakes dirty with sewage; and she shuddered. Not in
my time, or my grandchildren's. And perhaps we will be smarter than
they were on Earth, and it will never happen here. We know better
now. We know how to live with the land.
Her grandfather had
been a volunteer colonist, an engineer with enough money to bring
tools and equipment to Arrarat, and he was trying to show others how
to live with technology. He had a windmill for electricity. It
furnished power for the television and the radio. He had radio
communications with Denisburg, forty kilometers away, and although
the neighbors said they despised all technology, they were not too
proud to ask Amos Malcolm to send messages for them.
The Malcolm farm had
running water and an efficient system for converting sewage to
fertilizer. To Amos, technology was something to be used so long as
it did not use you, and he tried to teach his neighbors that.
The phone buzzed to
interrupt her thoughts, and Kathryn halted the team. The phone was in
the center of the plowed land, where it was plugged into a portable
solar reflector that kept its batteries charged. There were very few
radio-phones in the valley. They cost a great deal and could only be
bought in Harmony. Even her grandfather Amos couldn't manufacture the
phone's microcircuits, although he often muttered about buying the
proper tools and making something that would be as good. "After
all," he was fond of saying, "we do not need the very
latest. Only something that will do."
Before she reached
the phone, she heard the gunshots. They sounded for away, but they
came from the direction of her home. She looked toward the hill that
hid the ranch from her, and a red trail streaked skyward. It exploded
in a cloud of bright smoke. Amos had sent up a distress rocket. "God,
no!" Kathryn screamed. She ran for the phone, but she dropped it
in her haste. She scrabbled it up from the freshly plowed dirt and
shouted into it. "Yes!"
"Go straight to
the village, child," her grandfather's voice told her. He
sounded very old and tired. "Do not come home. Go quickly."
"Grandfather -
"
"Do as I say!
The neighbors will come, and you cannot help."
"But - "
"Kathryn."
He spoke urgently, but there were centuries in the voice. "They
are here. Many of them."
"Who?" she
demanded.
"Convicts. They
claim to be sheriffs, executing a writ for collection of taxes. I
will not pay. My house is strong, Kathryn, and the neighbors will
come. The convicts will not get in, and if they kill me now it is no
great matter - "
"And mother!"
Kathryn shouted.
"They will not
take her alive," Amos Malcolm said. "We have talked of
this, and you know what I will do. Please. Do not make my whole life
meaningless by letting them get you as well. Go to the village, and
God go with you. I must fight now."
There were more
sounds of firing in the distance. The phone was silent. Then there
were rifle shots, plus the harsh stammer of a machine gun. Amos had
good defenses for his stone ranch house.
Kathryn heard
grenades, sharp explosions, but not loud, and she prayed that she
would not hear the final explosion that meant Amos had set off the
dynamite under his house. He had often sworn that before he would let
anyone take his home, he would blow it and them to hell.
Kathryn ran back to
unhitch the oxen. They would be safe enough. The sounds of firing
would keep them from going home until the next day, and here on the
plains there were no animals large enough to be a threat to healthy
oxen. None except men.
She left the team
standing beside the plow, their eyes puzzled because the sun was high
and the field was not yet plowed, and she ran to the shade trees by
the creek. A horse and dog waited patiently there. The dog jumped up
playfully, but he sank onto the ground cringed as he sensed her mood.
Kathryn hurled the
saddle onto the horse and rumbled with the leather straps. Her hands
were moving so quickly that even familiar motions were difficult, and
she was clumsy in her haste. She tied the phone and solar reflector
in place behind the saddle and mounted. There was a rifle in the
saddle scabbard, and she took it out and fingered it longingly.
Then she hesitated.
The guns were still firing. She still heard her grandfather's machine
gun and more grenades, and that meant that Amos was alive. I should
help, she thought. I should go.
Emil will be there.
He was to plow the field next to our boundary, and he will have
heard. He will be there. She turned the horse toward the ranch.
One rider can do no
good, she realized. But though she knew that, she knew she must go to
her home before it was too late. They would have a good chance, Emil
and her grandfather. The house was strong, made of good stone, low to
the ground, much of it buried in the earth, sod roof above waterproof
plastic. It would withstand raiders. It had before, many times, but
there were very many rifles firing now and she could not remember
that large a raid before. Not here, and not anywhere.
The phone buzzed
again. "Yes!" she shouted. "What is happening?"
"Ride, girl!
Ride! Do not disobey my last command. You are all I have - " The
voice broke off before Amos said more, and Kathryn held the silent
phone and stared at it.
"All I have,"
Amos had said. Her mother and her brother were dead, then.
She screamed words
of hatred and rode toward the sound of the guns. As she crossed over
the creek she heard mortars firing, then louder explosions.
Two hundred riders
converged on the Malcolm ranch. They rode hard, their horses drenched
in sweat, and they came by families, some with their women, all with
their oldest boys. Brown dogs ran ahead of them. Their panting
tongues hung out between bared fangs as the dogs sensed the anger
their masters projected. As. the families of riders saw each other,
they waved and kicked their horses into an even faster pace.
The riders
approached the final rise before the Malcolm ranch and slowed to a
trot. There were no sounds from over the hill. Shouted commands sent
the dogs ahead. When the loping brown forms went over the hill
without halting, the riders kicked their horses back to the gallop
and rode on.
"He didn't use
the dynamite," George Woodrow said. "I heard explosions,
but not Amos's magazines." His neighbors didn't answer. They
rode down the hill toward the ranch house.
There was the smell
of explosives in the air, mixed with the bright copper smell of fresh
blood. The dogs loped among dead men who lay around the stone house.
The big front door stood open, and more dead lay in front of that. A
girl in bloodstained coveralls and muddy boots sat in the dirt by the
open door. She cradled a boy's head in her arms. She rocked gently,
not aware of the motion, and her eyes were dry and bright.
"My God!"
George Woodrow shouted. He dismounted and knelt beside her. His hand
reached out toward the boy, but he couldn't touch him. "Kathryn
- "
"They're all
dead," Kathryn said. "Grandfather, mother, my brother, and
Emil. They're all dead." She spoke calmly, telling George
Woodrow of his son's death as she might tell him that there would be
a dance at the church next Saturday.
George looked at his
dead son and the girl who would have borne his grandchildren. Then he
stood and leaned his face against his saddle. He remained that way
for a long time. Gradually he became aware that others were talking.
" - caught them
all outside except Amos," Harry Seeton said. He kept his voice
low, hoping that Kathryn and George Woodrow wouldn't hear. "I
think Amos shot Jeanine after they'd grabbed her. How in hell did
anyone sneak up on old Amos?"
"Found a dog
with an arrow in him back there," Wan Loo said. "A crossbow
bolt. Perhaps that is how."
"I still don't
understand it," Seeton insisted.
"Go after
them!" Kathryn stood beside her dead fiance. "Ride!"
"We will ride,"
Wan Loo said. "When it is time."
"Ride now!"
Kathryn demanded.
"No."
Harry Seeton shook his head sadly. "Do you think this was the
only place raided today? A dozen more. Most did not even fight. There
are hundreds more raiders, and they will have joined together by now.
We cannot ride until there are more of us."
"And then
what?" George Woodrow asked. His voice was bitter. "By the
time there are enough of us, they will be in the hills again."
He looked helplessly at the line of high foothills just at the
horizon. "God! Why?"
"Do not
blaspheme." The voice was strident. Roger Dornan wore dark
clothing, and his face was lean and narrow. He looks like an
undertaker, Kathryn thought. "The ways of the Lord are not to be
questioned," Dornan intoned.
"We don't need
that talk, Brother Dornan," Kathryn said. "We need revenge!
I thought we had men here! George, will you ride with me to hunt your
son's murderer?"
"Put your trust
in the Lord," Dornan said. "Lay this burden on His
shoulders."
"I cannot allow
you to ride," Wan Loo said. "You and George would be
killed, and for what? You gain no revenge by throwing yourself at
their guns." He motioned, and two of his sons went to hold
Kathryn's horse. Another took George Woodrow's mount and led it away.
"We need all our farmers," Wan Loo said. "And what
would become of George's other children? And his wife with the unborn
child? You cannot go."
"Got a live
one," a rider called. Two men lifted a still figure from the
ground. They carried him over to where the others had gathered around
Kathryn and George Woodrow, then dropped him into the dirt. Wan Loo
knelt and felt for the pulse. Then he seized the raider's hair and
lifted the head. Methodically he slapped the face. His fingers left
vivid red marks on the too-white flesh. Smack, smack! Forehand,
backhand, methodically, and the raider's head rocked with each blow.
"He's about
gone," Harry Seeton said.
"All the more
reason he should be awakened," Wan Loo said. He ignored the
spreading bloodstains on the raider's leather jacket, and turned him
face down into the dirt. He seized an arm and twisted violently. The
raider grunted.
The raider was no
older than twenty. He had a short scraggly beard, not well developed.
He wore dark trousers and a leather jacket and soft leather boots
much like Kathryn's. There were marks on his fingers, discol-orations
where rings had been, and his left earlobe was torn.
"They stripped
their own dead and wounded," Wood-row grunted. "What all
did they get?"
"The windmill
generator," Harry Seeton reported. "And all the livestock,
and some of the electronics. The phone's gone, too. Wonder why Amos
didn't blow the place?"
"Shaped charge
penetrated the wall," one of the riders said. "Killed Amos
at his gun."
"Leggo. Stop."
The young raider moaned. "That hurts."
"He is coming
awake," Wan Loo told them. "But he will not last long."
"Pity,"
George Woodrow said. He bent down and slapped the boy's face. "Wake
up, damn you! I want you to feel the rope around your neck! Harry,
get a rope."
"You must not,"
Brother Dornan said. "Vengeance is the Lord's - "
"We'll just
help the Lord out a bit," Woodrow said. "Get a rope!"
"Yeah,"
Seeton said. "I guess. Kathryn?"
"Get it. Give
it to me. I want to put it around his neck." She looked down at
the raider. "Why?" she demanded. "Why?"
For a moment the
boy's eyes met hers. "Why not?"
Three men dug graves
on the knoll above the valley. Kathryn came up the hill silently, and
they did not see her at first. When they did they stopped working,
but she said nothing, and after a while they dug again. Their shovels
bit into the rich soil.
"You're digging
too many graves," Kathryn said. "Fill one in."
"But - "
"My grandfather
will not be buried here," Kathryn said.
The men stopped
digging. They looked at the girl and her bloodstained coveralls, then
glanced out at the horizon where the rest of the commandos had gone.
There was dust out there. The riders were coming home. They wouldn't
have caught the raiders before they went into the hills.
One of the
gravediggers made a silent decision. Next spring he would take his
family and find new lands. It would be better than this. But he
wondered if the convicts would not follow wherever he went. When men
work the earth, others will come to kill and steal.
"Where?"
he asked finally.
"Bury Amos in
his doorway," Kathryn said.
"That is a
terrible thing, to bury a man in his own door. He will not rest - "
"I don't want
him to rest," Kathryn said. "I want him to walk! I want him
to walk and remind us all of what Earth has done to us!"
IV
"HEAR THIS. ALL
hands brace for reentry. Hear this."
"Seat straps,
Lieutenant," Sergeant Cernan said.
"Right." I
pulled the shoulder straps down into place and latched them, then
looked out at Arrarat.
The planet had a
bleak look, not like Earth. There were few clouds, and lots of
desert. There were also heavy jungle forests near the equator. The
only cultivated lands I could see were on a narrow strip at the
northern edge of a nearly landlocked sea. South of the sea was
another continent. It looked dry and dusty, desert land where men had
left no mark in passing - if anyone had ever been there at all.
Northward and
westward from the cultivated strip were hills and forests, high
desert plateaus, high mountains, and ragged canyons. There were
streaks through the forests and across the hills, narrow roads not
much more than tracks. When the troopship got lower I could see
villages and towns, and every one of them had walls or a stockade and
ditch. They looked like tiny fortresses.
The ship circled
until it had lost enough speed to make a landing approach. Then it
ran eastward, and we could see the city. My briefing folio said it
was the only city on Arrarat. It stood on a high bluff above the sea,
and it seemed huddled in on itself. It looked like a medieval walled
town, but it was made of modern concrete, and adobe with plastic
waterproofing, and other materials medieval craftsmen probably
wouldn't have used if they'd had them.
As the ship passed
over the city at two thousand meters, it became obvious that there
were really two cities run together, with only a wall between them.
Neither was very large. The oldest part of the city, Harmony, showed
little evidence of planning: there were little narrow streets running
at all angles, and the public squares were randomly placed. The
northern part, Garrison, was smaller, but it had streets at precise
right angles, and a big public plaza stood opposite the square fort
at the northern edge.
All the buildings
were low, with only a couple more than two stories high. The roofs
were red tile, and the walls were whitewashed. Harmony reminded me of
towns I'd seen in Mexico. Bright sun shone off the bay below the city
bluff. Garrison was a harsher place, all right angles, neat and
orderly, but everything strictly functional. There was a square
fortress at its northern edge. My new home.
I was a very junior
lieutenant of CoDominium Marines, only three months out of the
Academy and green as grass. It was Academy practice to commission the
top thirty graduates in each class. The rest went out as cadets and
midshipmen for more training. I was proud of the bars on my epaulets,
but I was also a bit scared. I'd never been with troops before, and
I'd never had any friends from the working classes, so I didn't know
much about the kind of people who enlist in the Line Marines. I knew
plenty of stories, of course. Men join to get away from their wives,
or because some judge gives them a chance to enlist before passing
sentence. Others are recruited out of Bureau of Relocation ships.
Most come from Citizen classes, and my family's always been taxpayer.
It was just as well
for me that my father was a taxpayer. I grew up in the American
Southwest, where things haven't changed so much since the CoDominium.
We still think we're free men. When my father died, Mom and I tried
to run the ranch the way he had, as if it still belonged to us. It
did, on paper, but we didn't have his contacts in the bureaucracy. We
didn't understand all the regulations and labor restrictions, and we
didn't know who to bribe when we broke the rules. When we got in real
trouble, I tried to keep the government people from taking
possession, and that wasn't too good an idea. The judge was an old
friend of my father's and offered to get me into the Academy. U.S.
courts don't have jurisdiction over CoDominium officers.
I didn't have a lot
of choices, and CD Fleet service looked pretty good just then. I'd
not only get out of trouble; I'd leave Earth. Mom was getting married
again, so she'd be all right. The government had the ranch and we'd
never get it back. I was young enough to think soldiering was a
romantic idea, and Judge Hamilton made it pretty clear I was going to
have to do something.
"Look, Hal,"
he told me, "your dad should have left. There's no place for
people like us. They want people who want security, who'll obey the
rules - people who like the welfare state, not ornery cusses like you
and your father. Even if I can get you off this time, you'll get in
trouble again. You're going to have to leave, and you'll be better
off as a CD officer than as a colonist."
He was right. I
wondered why he stayed. Same reason my father did, I supposed.
Getting older, used to his home, not ready to go make a new start
somewhere else. I hadn't said anything, but he must have guessed what
I was thinking.
"I can still do
some good here. I'm a judge for life - they can't take that away from
me without damned good reasons - and I can still help lads like you.
There's nothing here for you, Hal. The future's out there. New
worlds, new ones found every year. Serve out a hitch in the Fleet
service. See what's out there, and decide where you want your lads to
grow up. Someplace free."
I couldn't think of
anything else to do, so I let him get me into the Academy. It had
been all right there. The Fleet has its own brotherhood. I'd been a
loner most of my life, not because I wanted to be - God knows I would
have liked to have friends! - but because I didn't fit in anywhere.
The Academy was different.
It's hard to say
how. One thing, though, there aren't any incompetents whining to have
the world take care of them. Not that we didn't look out for each
other. If a classmate's soft on math, you help him, and if somebody
has trouble with electronics - I did - a sharper classmate sits up
nights boning up with him. But if after all that he can't cut it,
he's out. There's more to it than that, though. I can't explain the
Fleet's sense of brotherhood, but it's real enough, and it was what
I'd been looking for all my life.
I was there two and
a half years, and we worked all the time, cramming everything from
weapons maintenance to basic science to civil engineering and road
construction. I finished seventh in the class and got my commission.
After a month's leave to say goodbye to my mother and my girl - only
I didn't really have a girl; I just liked to pretend I did - I was on
an Olympic Lines passenger ship headed for another star system.
And now I'm here, I
thought. I looked down at the planet, trying to spot places I'd seen
on the maps in our briefing kit. I was also listening to the troopers
in the compartment. The instructors at the Academy had told us that
officers could learn a lot by listening to the men, and I hadn't had
much opportunity to listen to these. Three weeks before I'd been on
the passenger ship, and now I was at the end of nowhere on an ancient
troop carrier, with a detachment commander who'd kept us training so
hard there'd been no time for talk or anything else.
There were only a
few viewports in the compartment, and those were taken by officers
and senior enlisted men. Behind me, Sergeant Cernan was describing
what he saw. A number of younger Marines, recruits mostly, were
crowded around him. The older troopers were catching naps in their
seats.
"Not much
outside the city walls," Cernan said. "Trees, look like
scrub oaks. And I think those others are olives. There's palms, too.
Must be from Earth. Never saw palm trees that didn't come from
Earth."
"Hey, Sarge,
can you see the fort?" Corporal Roff asked.
"Yeah. Looks
like any CD post. You'll be right at home."
"Sure we will,"
Roff said. "Sure. Christ, why us?"
"Your birthday
present," Cernan said. "Just be damned glad you'll be
leavin' someday. Think of them poor bastards back aft in the can."
The ship circled the
harbor, then glided in on its stubby wings to settle into the chop
outside the breakwater. The waves were two meters high and more, and
the ship rolled badly. One of the new recruits was sick. His seatmate
handed him a plastic bag.
"Hey, Dietz!"
Roff called. "Want some fried bacon? A little salt pork?"
He grinned. "Maybe some sow belly - "
"Sergeant
Cernan."
"Sir!"
The captain didn't
say anything else. He sat forward, a dozen rows in front of me, and I
hadn't expected him to be listening, but I wasn't surprised. I'd
learned in the past three weeks that not much went on without Captain
John Christian Falkenberg finding out.
Behind me, Cernan
said, very tight-lipped, "Roff, one more word out of you - "
Dietz's buddy found
another bag. No one else kidded the sick recruits. Soon the shuttle
moved into the inner harbor, where there were no waves, and everyone
felt better. A lone tugboat came alongside and eased the spacecraft
toward a concrete pier. There was no other traffic in the harbor
except for a few small fishing boats.
A Navy officer came
into the compartment and looked around until he found Falkenberg.
"Sir, the Governor requests that you turn your men out under
arms to assist in the prisoner formation."
Falkenberg turned
toward the Navy man and raised an eyebrow. Then he nodded. "Sergeant
Major!"
"Sir!"
Ogilvie shouted from the rear of the compartment.
"Personal
weapons for all troops. Rifles and cartridge belts. And bayonets,
Sergeant Major. Bayonets, by all means."
"Sir."
There was a bustle of activity as Sergeant Major Ogilvie and his
weapons sergeants unlocked the arms chest and began passing out
rifles.
"What about our
other gear?" Falkenberg asked.
"You'll have to
make arrangements with the garrison," the ship's officer said.
"Right. That's
all, then?"
"Yes. That's
all, Major."
I grinned as the
Navyman left the compartment. To the Navy there's only one captain
aboard ship, and that's the skipper. Marine captains in transit get a
very temporary and utterly meaningless "promotion" to major
for the duration of the voyage.
Falkenberg went to
the forward hatchway. "Lieutenant Slater. A moment, please."
"Sir." I
went forward to join him. I hadn't really noticed the low gravity
until I stood up, but now it was obvious. It was only
eighty-five-percent Earth standard, and on the trip out, Falkenberg
had insisted the Navy skipper keep the outer rim of the old troopship
at 110 percent spin gravity for as much of the trip as possible. The
Navy hadn't liked it, but they'd done it, and Falkenberg had trained
us in the high-gravity areas. Now we felt as if we could float away
with no trouble.
I didn't know much
about Falkenberg. The Service List showed he'd had Navy experience,
then transferred to Fleet Marines. Now he was with a Line outfit.
Moving around like that, two transfers, should have meant he was
being run out, but then there was his rank. He also had a Military
Cross, but the List hadn't said what it was for. It did tell me he'd
gone into the Academy at fifteen and left as a midshipman.
I first saw him at
Betio Transfer Station, which is an airless rock the Fleet keeps as a
repair base and supply depot. It's convenient to several important
star systems, but there's nothing there. I'd been on my way from
graduation to Crucis Sector Headquarters, with assignment to the
Fleet Marines. I was proud of that. Of the three Marine branches,
Fleet is supposed to be the technical elite. Garrison outfits are
mostly for riot suppression. The Line Marines get the dirty jobs left
over. Line troops say theirs is the real elite, and they certainly do
more than their share of the actual fighting when things are tough. I
didn't know if we'd be fighting on Arrarat. I didn't even know why we
were sent here. I just knew that Falkenberg had authority to change
orders for all unassigned officers, and I'd been yanked off my
comfortable berth - first class, damn it! - to report to him at
Betio. If he knew what was up, he wasn't telling the junior officers.
Falkenberg wasn't a
lot older than I was. I was a few weeks past my twenty-first
birthday, and he was maybe five years older, a captain with the
Military Cross. He must have had something going for him - influence,
possibly, but if that was it, why was he with the Line Marines and
not on staff at headquarters? I couldn't ask him. He didn't talk very
much. He wasn't unfriendly, but he seemed cold and distant and didn't
encourage anyone to get close to him.
Falkenberg was tall,
but he didn't reach my height, which is 193 centimeters according to
my ID card. We called it six-four where I grew up. Falkenberg was
maybe two inches shorter. His eyes were indeterminate in color,
sometimes gray and sometimes green, depending on the light, and they
seemed very bright when he looked at you. He had short hair the color
of sand, and no moustache. Most officers grow them after they make
captain, but he hadn't.
His uniforms always
fit perfectly. I thought I cut a good military figure, but I found
myself studying the way Falkenberg dressed. I also studied his
mannerisms, wondering if I could copy any of them. I wasn't sure I
liked him or that I really wanted to imitate him, but I told myself
that anybody who could make captain before he was thirty was worth at
least a bit of study. There are plenty of forty-year-old lieutenants
in the service.
He didn't look big
or particularly strong, but I knew better. I'm no forty-four-kilo
weakling, but he threw me easily in unarmed combat practice, and that
was in 100 percent gravity.
He was grinning when
I joined him at the forward hatchway. "Ever think, Lieutenant,
that every military generation since World War One has thought theirs
would be the last to carry bayonets?" He waved toward where
Ogilvie was still passing out rifles.
"No, sir, I
never did."
"Few do,"
Falkenberg said. "My old man was a CoDominium University
professor, and he thought I ought to learn military history. Think
about it: a weapon originally designed to convert a musket into a
pike, and it's still around when we're going to war in starships."
"Yes, sir - "
"Because it's
useful, Lieutenant - as you'll find out someday." The grin
faded, and Falkenberg lowered his voice. "I didn't call you up
here to discuss military history, of course. I want the men to see us
in conference. Give them something to worry about. They know they're
going ashore armed."
"Yes, sir - "
"Tell me,
Harlan Slater, what do they call you?"
"Hal, sir."
We had been aboard ship for twenty-one days, and this was the first
time Falkenberg had asked. It says a lot about him.
"You're senior
lieutenant," Falkenberg said.
"Yes, sir."
Which wasn't saying much: the other lieutenants had all been
classmates at the Academy, and I outranked them only because I'd
graduated higher in the class.
"You'll collect
the other officers and stay here at the gangway while we go through
this prisoner formation. Then bring up the rear as we take the troops
up the hill to the fort. I doubt there's transport, so we'll have to
march."
"Yes, sir."
"You don't
understand. If you don't understand something, ask about it. Have you
noticed our troopers, Mr. Slater?"
"Frankly,
Captain, I haven't had enough experience to make any kind of
judgment," I said. "We have a lot of recruits - "
"Yes. I'm not
worried about them. Nor about the regulars I brought with me to
Betio. But for the rest, we've got the scrapings out of half the
guardhouses in the Sector. I doubt they'll desert during their first
hours ashore, but I'm going to make damned sure. Their gear will stay
aboard this ship, and we'll march them up in formation. By dark I'll
have turned this command over to Colonel Harrington and it will be
his worry, but until then I'm responsible, and I'll see that every
man gets to the fort."
"I see. Yes,
sir." And that's why he's a captain at his age, on independent
assignment at that. Efficient. I wanted to be like that, or thought I
did. I wasn't quite sure what I really wanted. The CD Armed Services
wasn't my idea, but now that I was in it, I wanted to do it right if
I could. I had my doubts about some of the things the CoDominium did
- I was glad that I hadn't been assigned to one of the regiments that
puts down riots on Earth - but I didn't know what ought to replace
the CD and the Grand Senate, either. After all, we did keep the
peace, and that has to be worth a lot.
"They're
opening the gangway," Falkenberg said. "Sergeant Major."
"Sir!"
"Column of
fours in company order, please."
"Sir."
Ogilvie began shouting orders. The troops marched down the gangway
and onto the concrete pier below. I went out onto the gangway to
watch.
It was hot outside
and within minutes I was sweating. The sun seemed red-orange, and
very bright. After the smells of the troopship, with men confined
with too little water for adequate washing, the planetary smells were
a relief. Arrarat had a peculiar odor, slightly sweet, like flowers,
with an undertone of wet vegetation. All that was mixed with the
stronger smells of a salt sea and the harbor.
There were few
buildings down at sea level. The city wall stood high above the
harbor at the top of its bluff. Down on the level strip just above
the sea were piers and warehouses, but the streets were wide and
there were large spaces between buildings.
My first alien
world. It didn't seem all that strange. I looked for something
exotic, like sea creatures, or strange plants, but there weren't any
visible from the gangway. I told myself all that would come later.
There was one larger
structure at sea level. It was two stories high, with no windows
facing us. It had big gates in the center of the wall facing the
ship, with a guard tower at each of its corners. It looked like a
prison, and I knew that was what it had to be, but there seemed no
point in that. The whole planet was a prison.
There was a squad of
local militiamen on the pier. They wore drab coveralls, which made
quite a contrast to the blue and scarlet undress of the CoDominium
Marines marching down the pier. Falkenberg talked with the locals for
a moment, and then Sergeant Major Ogilvie shouted orders, and the
Marines formed up in a double line that stretched up the dock to the
aft gangway. The line went from the gangway to the big gates in the
prison building. Ogilvie shouted more orders, and the Marines fixed
bayonets.
They did it well.
You'd never have known most of them were recruits. Even in the
cramped quarters of the troop carrier, Falkenberg had drilled them
into a smart-looking unit. The cost had been high. There were
twenty-eight suicides among the recruits, and another hundred had
been washed out and sent back among the convicts. They told us at the
Academy that the only way to make a good Marine is to work him in
training until he can have some pride in surviving it, and God knows
Falkenberg must have believed that. It had seemed reasonable enough
back in the lecture theater at Luna Base.
One morning we had
four suicides, and one had been an old Line regular, not a recruit at
all. I'd been duty officer when the troops found the body. It had
been cut down from where he'd hanged himself to a light fixture, and
the rope was missing. I tried to find the rope and even paraded all
the men in that compartment, but nobody was saying anything.
Later Sergeant Major
Ogilvie came to me in confidence. "You'll never find the rope,
Lieutenant," he said. "It's cut up in a dozen pieces by
now. That man had won the military medal. The rope he hanged himself
with? That's lucky, sir. They'll keep the pieces."
All of which
convinced me I had a lot to learn about Line Marines.
The forward
companionway opened, and the convicts came out. Officially they were
all convicts, or families of transportees who had voluntarily
accompanied a convict; but when we'd gone recruiting in the prison
section of the ship, we found a number of prisoners who'd never been
convicted of anything at all. They'd been scooped up in one of Bureau
of Relocation's periodic sweeps and put on the involuntary colonist
list.
The prisoners were
ragged and unwashed. Most wore BuRelock coveralls. Some carried
pathetically small bundles, everything they owned. They milled around
in confusion in the bright sunlight until ship's petty officers
screamed at them and they shuffled down the gangway and along the
pier. They tended to huddle together, shrinking away from the
bayonets of the lines of troops on either side. Eventually they were
herded through the big square gates of the prison building. I
wondered what would happen to them in there.
There were more men
than women, but there were plenty of women and girls. There were also
far more children than I liked to see in that condition. I didn't
like this. I hadn't joined the CoDominium Armed Services for this
kind of duty.
"Heavy price,
isn't it?" a voice said behind me. It was Deane Knowles. He'd
been a classmate at the Academy. He was a short chap, not much above
the minimum height for a commission, and had features so fine that he
was almost pretty. I had reason to know that women liked him, and
Deane liked them. He should have graduated second in the class, but
he'd accumulated so many demerits for sneaking off bounds to see his
girlfriends that he was dropped twenty-five places in class rank,
which was why I outranked him and would until one of us was promoted
above the other. I figured he'd make captain before I did.
"Heavy price
for what?" I asked.
"For clean air
and lower population and all the other goodies they have back on
Earth. Sometimes I wonder if it's worth it."
"But what
choices do we have?" I asked.
"None. Zero.
Nothing else to do. Ship out the surplus and let 'em make their own
way somewhere. In the long run it's not only all to the good, it's
all there is; but the run doesn't look so long when you're watching
the results. Look out. Here comes Louis."
Louis Bonneyman,
another classmate, joined us. Louis had finished a genuine
twenty-fourth in class rank. He was part French-Canadian, although
he'd been raised in the U.S. most of his life. Louis was a fanatic CD
loyalist and didn't like to hear any of us question CD policy,
although, like the rest of us in the service, it didn't really matter
what the policies were. "No politics in the Fleet" was
beaten into our heads at the Academy, and later the instructors made
it clear that what that really translated to was: "The Fleet is
Our Fatherland." We could question anything the Grand Senate did
- as long as we stood by our comrades and obeyed orders.
We stood there
watching as the colonists were herded into the prison building. It
took nearly an hour to get all two thousand of them inside. Finally
the gates were closed. Ogilvie gave more orders and the Marines
scabbarded their bayonets, then formed into a column of eight and
marched down the road.
"Well, fellow
musketeers," I said, "here we go. We're to follow up the
hill, and there's apparently no transport."
"What about my
ordnance?" Deane asked.
I shrugged.
"Apparently arrangements will be made. In any event, it's John
Christian Falkenberg's problem. Ours not to reason why - "
"Ours but to
watch for deserters," Louis Bonneyman said. "And we'd best
get at it. Is your sidearm loaded?"
"Oh, come on,
Louis," Deane said.
"Notice,"
Louis said. "See how Falkenberg has formed up the troops. Recall
that their baggage is still aboard. You may not like Falkenberg,
Deane, but you will admit that he is thorough."
"As it happens,
Louis is right," I said. "Falkenberg did say something
about deserters. But he didn't think there'd be any."
"There you
are," Louis said. "He takes no chances, that one."
"Except with
us," Deane Knowles said.
"What do you
mean by that?" Louis let the smile fade and lifted an eyebrow at
Deane.
"Oh, nothing,"
Deane said. "Not much Falkenberg could do about it, anyway. But
I don't suppose you chaps know what the local garrison commander
asked for?"
"No, of course
not," Louis said.
"How did you
find out?" I asked.
"Simple. When
you want to know something military, talk to the sergeants."
"Well?"
Louis demanded.
Deane grinned. "Come
on, we'll get too far behind. Looks as if we really will march all
the way up the hill, doesn't it? Not even transport for officers.
Shameful."
"Damn your
eyes, Deane!" I said. Knowles shrugged. "Well, the Governor
asked for a full regiment and a destroyer. Instead of a regiment and
a warship, he got us. Might be interesting if he really needed a
regiment, eh? Coming, fellows?"
V
"I'VE A HEAD
like a concertina, And I think I'm going to die, And I'm here in the
clink for a thunderin' drink, And blackin' the corporal's eye. ..."
"Picturesque,"
Louis said. "They sing well, don't they?"
"Shut up and
walk," Deane told him. "It's bloody hot."
I didn't find it so
bad. It was hot. No question about that, and undress blues were never
designed for route marches on hot planets. Still, it could have been
worse. We might have turned out in body armor.
There was no problem
with the troops. They marched and sang like regulars, even if half of
them were recruits and the rest were guardhouse cases. If any of them
had ideas of running, they never showed them.
"With another
man's cloak underneath of my head,
And a beautiful view
of the yard,
It's thirty day's
fine,
With bread and no
wine,
For Drunk and
Resistin' the Guard!
Mad-drunk and
Resistin' the Guard!"
"Curious,"
Louis said. "Half of them have never seen a guardhouse."
"I expect
they'll find out soon enough," Deane said. "Lord love us,
will you look at that?"
He gestured at a row
of cheap adobe houses along the riverbank. There wasn't much doubt
about what they sold. The girls were dressed for hot weather, and
they sat on the windowsills and waved at the troopers going by.
"I thought
Arrarat was full of holy Joes, Louis Bonneyman said. "Well, we
will have no difficulty finding any troopers who run - not for the
first night, anyway."
The harbor area was
just north of a wide river that fanned into a delta east of the city.
The road was just inland from the harbor, with the city a high bluff
to our right as we marched inland. It seemed a long way before we got
to the turnoff to the city gate.
There were
facilities for servicing the space shuttle, and some riverboat docks
and warehouses, but it seemed to me there wasn't a lot of activity,
and I wondered why. As far as I could remember, there weren't any
railroads on Arrarat, nor many highways, and I couldn't remember
seeing any airfields, either.
After a kilometer of
marching inland, we turned sharply right and followed another road up
the bluff. There was a rabbit warren of crumbling houses and alleys
along the bluff, then a clear area in front of the high city wall.
Militiamen in drab coveralls manned a guardhouse at the city gate.
Other militiamen patrolled the wall. Inside the gate was Harmony,
another warren of houses and shops not a lot different from those
outside, but a little better kept up.
The main road had
clear area for thirty meters on each side, and beyond that was chaos.
Market stalls, houses, tailor shops, electronics shops, a smithy with
hand bellows and forge, a shop that wound electric motors and another
that sold solar cells, a pottery with kick-wheel where a woman shaped
cups from clay, a silversmith, a scissors grinder - the variety was
overwhelming, and so was the contrast of modern and the kinds of
things you might see in Frontierland.
There were
anachronisms everywhere, but I was used to them. The military
services were shot through with contrasts. Part of it was the state
of development out in the colonies - many of them had no industrial
base, and some didn't want any to begin with. If you didn't bring it
with you, you wouldn't have it. There was another reason, too.
CoDominium Intelligence licensed all scientific research and tried to
suppress anything that could have military value. The U.S.-Soviet
alliance was on top and wasn't about to let any new discoveries upset
the balance. They couldn't stop everything, but they didn't have to,
so long as the Grand Senate controlled everyone's R&D budget and
could tinker with the patent laws.
We all knew it
couldn't last, but we didn't want to think about that. Back on Earth
the U.S. and Soviet governments hated each other. The only thing they
hated more was the idea that someone else - like the Chinese or
Japanese or United Emirates - would get strong enough to tell them
what to do. The Fleet guards an uneasy peace built on an uneasy
alliance.
The people of
Harmony came in all races and colors, and I heard a dozen languages
shouted from shop to shop. Everyone either worked outside his house
or had market stalls there. When we marched past, people stopped work
and waved at us. One old man came out of a tailor shop and took off
his broad-brimmed hat. "God bless you, soldiers!" he
shouted. "We love you!"
"Now, that's
what we joined up for," Deane said. "Not to herd a bunch of
losers halfway across the Galaxy."
"Twenty parsecs
isn't halfway across the Galaxy," I told him.
He made faces at me.
"I wonder why
they're all so glad to see us?" Louis asked. "And they look
hungry. How does one become so thin in an agricultural paradise?"
"Incredible,"
Deane said. "Louis, you really must learn to pay attention to
important details. Such as reading the station roster of the garrison
here."
"And when could
I have done that?" Bonneyman demanded. "Falkenberg had us
working twelve hours a day - "
"So you use the
other twelve," Deane said.
"And what, O
brilliant one, didst thou learn from the station roster?" I
asked.
"That the
garrison commander is over seventy, and he has one
sixty-three-year-old major on his staff, as well as a
sixty-two-year-old captain. Also, the youngest Marine officer on
Arrarat is over sixty, and the only junior officers are militia."
"Bah. A
retirement post," Bonneyman said. "So why did they ask for
a regiment?"
"Don't be
silly, Louis," Deane said. "Because they've run into
something they can't handle with their militia and their
superannuated officers, of course."
"Meaning we'll
have to," I said. Only, of course, we didn't have a regiment,
only less than a thousand Marines, three junior officers, a captain
with the Military Cross, and - well, and nothing, unless the local
militia were capable of something. "The heroes have arrived."
"Yes. Nice,
isn't it?" Deane said. "I expect the women will be
friendly."
"And is that
all you ever think about?" Louis demanded.
"What else is
there? Marching in the sun?"
A younger townman in
dark clerical clothing stood at his table under the awning of a
sidewalk cafe. He raised a hand in a gesture of blessing. There were
more cheers from a group of children.
"Nice to be
loved," Deane said.
Despite the way he
said it, Deane meant that. It was nice to be loved. I remembered my
last visit to Earth. There were a lot of places where CD officers
didn't dare go without a squad of troopers. Out here the people
wanted us. The paladins, I thought, and I laughed at myself because I
could imagine what Deane and Louis would say if I'd said that aloud,
but I wondered if they didn't think it, too.
"They don't
seem to have much transport," Louis said.
"Unless you
count those." Deane pointed to a watering trough where five
horses were tied. There were also two camels, and an animal that
looked like a clumsy combination of camel, moose, and mule, with big
splayed feet and silly antlers.
That had to be an
alien beast, the first thing I was certain was native to this planet.
I wondered what they called it, and how it had been domesticated.
There was almost no
motor transport: a few pickup trucks, and one old ground-effects car
with no top; everything else was animal transport. There were wagons,
and men on horseback, and two women dressed in coveralls and mounted
on mules.
Bonneyman shook his
head. "Looks as if they stirred up a brew from the American Wild
West, medieval Paris, and threw in scenes from the Arabian Nights."
We all laughed, but
Louis wasn't far wrong.
Arrarat was
discovered soon after the first private exploration ships went out
from Earth. It was an inhabitable planet, and although there are a
number of those in the regions near Earth, they aren't all that
common. A survey team was sent to find out what riches could be
taken.
There weren't any.
Earth crops would grow, and men could live on the planet, but no one
was going to invest money in agriculture. Shipping foodstuffs through
interstellar space is a simple way of going bankrupt unless there are
nearby markets with valuable minerals and no agriculture. This planet
had no nearby market at all.
The American Express
Company owned settlement rights through discovery. AmEx sold the
planet to a combine of churches. The World Federation of Churches
named it Arrarat and advertised it as "a place of refuge for the
unwanted of Earth." They began to raise money for its
development, and since this was before the Bureau of Relocation began
involuntary colonies, they had a lot of help. Charity, tithes,
government grants, all helped, and then the church groups hit on the
idea of a lottery. Prizes were free transportation to Arrarat for
winners and their families; and there were plenty of people willing
to trade Earth for a place where there was free land, plenty to eat,
hard work, no government harrassment, and no pollution. The World
Federation of Churches sold tens of millions of one-credit lottery
tickets. They soon had enough money to charter ships and sent people
out.
There was plenty of
room for colonists, even though the inhabitable portion of Arrarat is
comparatively small. The planet has a higher mean temperature than
Earth, and the regions near the equator are far too hot for men to
live in. At the very poles it is too cold. The southern hemisphere is
nearly all water. Even so, there is plenty of land in the north
temperate zone. The delta area where Harmony was founded was chosen
as the best of the lot. It had a climate like the Mediterranean
region of Earth. Rainfall was erratic, but the colony thrived.
The churches had
very little money, but the planet didn't need heavy industry. Animals
were shipped instead of tractors, on the theory that horses and oxen
can make other horses and oxen, but tractors make only oil refineries
and smog. Industry wasn't wanted; Arrarat was to be a place where
each man could prune his own vineyard and sit in the shade of his fig
tree. Some of the Federation of Churches' governing board actively
hated industrial technology, and none loved it; and there was no
need, anyway. The planet could easily support far more than the half
to three-quarters of a million people the churches sent out as
colonists.
Then the disaster
struck. A survey ship found thorium and other valuable metals in the
asteroid belt of Arrarat's system. It wasn't a disaster for everyone,
of course. American Express was happy enough, and so was Kennicott
Metals after they bought mining rights; but for the church groups it
was disaster enough. The miners came, and with them came trouble. The
only convenient place for the miners to go for recreation was
Arrarat, and the kinds of establishments asteroid miners liked
weren't what the Federation of Churches had in mind. The "Holy
Joes" and the "Goddamns" shouted at each other and
petitioned the Grand Senate for help, while the madams and gamblers
and distillers set up for business.
That wasn't the
worst of it. The Federation of Churches' petition to the CoDominium
Grand Senate ended up in the CD bureaucracy, and an official in
Bureau of Corrections noticed that a lot of empty ships were going
from Earth to Arrarat. They came back full of refined thorium, but
they went out deadhead . . . and BuCorrect had plenty of prisoners
they didn't know what to do with. It cost money to keep them. Why
not, BuCorrect reasoned, send the prisoners to Arrarat and turn them
loose? Earth would be free of them. It was humane. Better yet, the
churches could hardly object to setting captives free. . . .
The BuCorrect
official got a promotion, and Arrarat got over half a million
criminals and convicts, most of whom had never lived outside a city.
They knew nothing of farming, and they drifted to Harmony, where they
tried to live as best they could. The result was predictable. Harmony
soon had the highest crime rate in the history of man.
The situation was
intolerable for Kennicott Metals. Miners wouldn't work without planet
leave, but they didn't dare go to Harmony. Their union demanded that
someone do something, and Kennicott appealed to the Grand Senate. A
regiment of CoDominium Marines was sent to Arrarat. They couldn't
stay long, but they didn't have to. They built walls around the city
of Harmony, and for good measure they built the town of Garrison
adjacent to it. Then the Marines put all the convicts outside the
walls.
It wasn't intended
to be a permanent solution. A CoDominium Governor was appointed, over
the objections of the World Federation of Churches. The Colonial
Bureau began preparations for sending a government team of judges and
police and technicians and industrial-development specialists so that
Arrarat could support the streams of people BuCorrect had sent.
Before they arrived, Kennicott found an even more valuable source of
thorium in a system nearer to Earth, the Arrarat mines were put into
reserve, and there was no longer any reason for the CoDominium Grand
Senate to be interested in Arrarat. The Marine garrison pulled out,
leaving a cadre to help train colonial militia to defend the walls of
Harmony-Garrison.
"What are you
so moody about?" Deane asked.
"Just
remembering what was in the briefing they gave us. You aren't the
only one who studies up," I said.
"And what have
you concluded?"
"Not a lot. I
wonder how the people here like living in a prison. It's got to be
that way, convicts outside and citizens inside. Marvelous."
"Perhaps they
have a city jail," Louis said. "That would be a prison
within a prison."
"Funny,"
Deane said.
We walked along in
silence, listening to the tramp of the boots ahead of us, until we
came to another wall. There were guards at that gate, too. We passed
through into the smaller city of Garrison.
"And why
couldn't they have had transportation for officers?" Louis
Bonneyman said. "There are trucks here."
There weren't many,
but there were more than in Harmony. Most of the vehicles were
surplus military ground-effects troop carriers. There were also more
wagons.
"March or die,
Louis. March or die." Deane grinned.
Louis said something
under his breath. "March or Die" was a slogan of the old
French Foreign Legion, and the Line Marines were direct descendants
of the Legion, with a lot of their traditions. Bonneyman couldn't
stand the idea that he wasn't living up to the service's standards.
Commands rattled
down the ranks of marching men. "Look like Marines, damn you!"
Ogilvie shouted.
"Falkenberg's
showing off," Deane said.
"About time,
too," Louis told him. "The fort is just ahead."
"Sound off!"
Ogilvie ordered.
"We've left
blood in the dirt of twenty-five worlds,
We've built roads on
a dozen more,
And all that we have
at the end of our hitch
Buys a night with a
second-class whore.
The Senate decrees,
the Grand Admiral calls,
The orders come down
from on high.
It's 'On Full Kits'
and 'Sound Board Ships,'
We're sending you
where you can die."
Another Legion
tradition, I thought. Over every orderly room door in Line regiments
is a brass plaque. It says: YOU ARE LINE MARINES IN ORDER TO DIE, AND
THE FLEET WILL SEND YOU WHERE YOU CAN DIE. An inheritance from La
Legion Etrangère. The first time I saw it, I thought it was
dashing and romantic, but now I wondered if they meant it.
The troops marched
in the slow cadence of the Line Marines. It wasn't a fast pace, but
we could keep it up long after quick-marching troops keeled over from
exhaustion.
"The lands that
we take, the Senate gives back,
Rather more often
than not,
But the more that
are killed, the less share the loot,
And we won't be back
to this spot.
We'll break the
hearts of your women and girls,
We may break your
arse, as well,
Then the Line
Marines with their banners unfurled
Will follow those
banners to hell.
We know the devil,
his pomps, and his works,
Ah, yes! We know
them well!
When you've served
out your hitch in the Line Marines,
You can bugger the
Senate of Hell!"
"An opportunity
we may all have," Deane said. "Rather sooner than I'd like.
What do they want with us here?"
"I expect we'll
find out soon enough," I said.
"Then we'll
drink with our comrades and throw down our packs,
We'll rest ten years
on the flat of our backs,
Then it's 'On Full
Kits' and out of your racks,
You must build a new
road through Hell!
The Fleet is our
country, we sleep with a rifle,
No man ever begot a
son on his rifle,
They pay us in gin
and curse when we sin,
There's not one
that can stand us unless we're downwind,
We're shot when we
lose and turned out when we win,
But we bury our
comrades wherever they fall,
And there's none
that can face us, though we've nothing at all."
VI
OFFICERS' ROW
STRETCHED along the east side of the parade ground. The fort was
nothing special. It hadn't been built to withstand modern weapons,
and it looked a bit like something out of Beau Geste, which was
reasonable, since it was built of local materials by officers with no
better engineering education than mine. It's simple enough to lay out
a rectangular walled fort, and if that's enough for the job, why make
it more complicated?
The officers'
quarters seemed empty. The fort had been built to house a regimental
combat team with plenty of support groups, and now there were fewer
than a dozen Marine officers on the planet. Most of them lived in
family quarters, and the militia officers generally lived in homes in
the city. It left the rest of us with lots of room to rattle around
in. Falkenberg drew a suite meant for the regimental adjutant, and I
got a major's rooms myself.
After a work party
brought our personal gear up from the landing boat, I got busy and
unpacked, but when I finished, the place still looked empty. A
lieutenant's travel allowance isn't very large, and the rooms were
too big. I stowed my gear and wondered what to do next. It seemed a
depressing way to spend my first night on an alien world. Of course,
I'd been to the Moon, and Mars, but those are different. They aren't
worlds. You can't go outside, and you might as well be in a ship. I
wondered if we'd be permitted off post – I was still thinking
like a cadet, not an officer on field duty - and what I could do if
we were. We'd had no instructions, and I decided I'd better wait for
a briefing.
There was a quick
knock on my door, and then it opened. An old Line private came in. He
might have been my father. His uniform was tailored perfectly, but
worn in places. There were hash marks from wrist to elbow.
"Private Hartz
reporting, zur." He had a thick accent, but it wasn't pure
anything; a lot of different accents blended together. "Sergeant
Major sent me to be the lieutenant's dog-robber."
And what the hell do
I do with him? I wondered. It wouldn't do to be indecisive. I
couldn't remember if he'd been part of the detachment in the ship, or
if he was one of the garrison. Falkenberg would never be in that
situation. He'd know. The trooper was standing at attention in the
doorway. "At ease, Hartz," I said. "What ought I to
know about this place?"
"I don't know,
zur."
Which meant he was a
newcomer, or he wasn't spilling anything to officers, and I wasn't
about to guess which. "Do you want a drink?"
"Thank you,
yes, zur."
I found a bottle and
put it out on the dressing stand. "Always leave two for me.
Otherwise, help yourself," I told him.
He went to the
latrine for glasses. I hadn't known there were any there, but then I
wasn't all that familiar with senior officers' quarters. Maybe Hartz
was, so I'd gained no information about him. He poured a shot for
himself. "Is the lieutenant drinking?"
"Sure, I'll
have one." I took the glass from him. "Cheers."
"Prosit."
He poured the whiskey down in one gulp. "I see the lieutenant
has unpacked. I will straighten up now. By your leave, zur."
He wandered around
the room, moving my spare boots two inches to the left, switching my
combat armor from one side of the closet to the other, taking out my
dress uniform and staring at it inch by inch.
I didn't need an
orderly, but I couldn't just turn him out. I was supposed to get to
know him, since he'd be with me on field duty. If any, I thought. To
hell with it. "I'm going down to the officers' mess," I
told him. "Help yourself to the bottle, but leave me two shots
for tonight."
"Zur."
I felt like an
idiot, chased out of my own quarters by my own batman, but I couldn't
see what else to do. He was clearly not going to be satisfied until
he'd gone over every piece of gear I had. Probably trying to impress
me with how thorough he was. They pay dog-robbers extra, and it's
always good duty for a drinking man. I was pretty sure I could trust
him. I'd never crossed Ogilvie that I knew of. It takes a
particularly stupid officer to get on the wrong side of the sergeant
major.
It wasn't hard to
find the officers' club. Like everything else, it had been built for
a regiment, and it was a big building. I got a surprise inside. I was
met by a Marine corporal I recognized as one of the detachment we'd
brought with us. I started to go into the bar, where I saw a number
of militia officers, and the corporal stopped me.
"Excuse me,
sir. Marine club is that way." He pointed down the hall.
"I think I'd
rather drink with the militiamen, Corporal."
"Yes, sir.
Sergeant Major told me to be sure to tell all officers, sir."
"I see." I
didn't see, but I wasn't going to get into an argument with a
corporal, and there wasn't any point in being bullheaded. I went down
the hall to the Marine club. Deane Knowles was already there. He was
alone except for a waiter - another trooper from our detachment. In
the militia bar the waiters were civilians.
"Welcome to the
gay and merry life," Deane said. "Will you have whiskey? Or
there's a peach brandy that's endurable. For God's sake, sit down and
talk to me!"
"I take it you
were intercepted by Corporal Hansner," I said.
"Quite
efficiently. Now I know it is Fleet practice to carry the military
caste system to extremes, but this seems a bit much, even so. There
are, what, a dozen Marine officers here, even including our august
selves. So we immediately form our own club."
I shrugged. "Maybe
it's the militiamen who don't care for us?"
"Nonsense. Even
if they hated our guts, they'd want news from Earth. Meanwhile, we
find out nothing about the situation here. What's yours?"
"I'll try your
brandy," I told the waiter. "And who's the bartender when
you're not on duty?"
"Don't know,
sir. Sergeant Major sent me over - "
"Yes, of
course." I waited for the trooper to leave. "And Sergeant
Major takes care of us, he does, indeed. I have a truly formidable
orderly - "
Deane was laughing.
"One of the ancients? Yes. I thought so. As is mine. Monitor
Armand Kubiak, at my service, sir."
"I only drew a
private," I said.
"Well, at least
Ogilvie has some sense of propriety," Deane said. "Cheers."
"Cheers. That's
quite good, actually." I put the glass down and started to say
something else, but Deane wasn't listening to me. He was staring at
the door, and after a moment I turned to follow his gaze. "You
know, I think that's the prettiest girl I ever saw."
"Certainly a
contender," Deane said. "She's coming to our table."
"Obviously."
We got to our feet.
She was definitely
worth looking at. She wasn't very tall. Her head came about to my
chin, so that with the slight heels on her sandals she was just
taller than Deane. She wore a linen dress, blue to match her eyes,
and it looked as if she'd never been out in the sun at all. The dress
was crisp and looked cool. Few of the women we'd seen on the march in
had worn skirts, and those had been long, drab cotton things. Her
hair was curled into wisps around her shoulders. She had a big golden
seal ring on her right hand.
She walked in as if
she owned the place. She was obviously used to getting her own way.
"I hope you're
looking for us," Deane said.
"As a matter of
fact, I am." She had a very nice smile. An expensive smile, I
decided.
"Well, you've
excellent taste, anyway," Deane said.
I don't know how he
gets away with it. I think it's telepathy. There's no particular
cleverness to what he says to girls. I know, because I made a study
of his technique when we were in the Academy. I thought I could learn
it the way I was learning tactics, but it didn't work. What Deane
says doesn't matter, and how he says it doesn't seem important. He'll
chatter along, saying nothing, even being offensive, and the next
thing you know the girl's leaving with him. If she has to ditch a
date, that can happen, too.
I was damned if it
was going to happen this time, but I had a sinking feeling, because
I'd been determined before and it hadn't done me any good. I couldn't
think of one thing to say to her.
"I'm Deane
Knowles. And this is Lieutenant Slater," Deane said.
You rotten swine, I
thought. I tried to smile as she offered her hand.
"And I'm Irina
Swale."
"Surely you're
the Governor's daughter, then," Deane said.
"That's right.
May I sit down?"
"Please do."
Deane held her chair before I could get to it. It made me feel
awkward. We managed to get seated, and Private Donnelley came over.
"Jericho,
please," Irina said.
Donnelley looked
blankly at her.
"He came in
with us," I said. "He doesn't know what you've ordered."
"It's a wine,"
she said. "I'm sure there will be several bottles. It isn't
usually chilled."
"Yes, ma'am,"
Donnelley said. He went over to the bar and began looking at bottles.
"We were just
wondering what to do," Deane said. "You've rescued us from
terminal ennui."
She smiled at that,
but there was a shadow behind the smile. She didn't seem offended by
us, but she wasn't really very amused. I wondered what she wanted.
Donnelley brought
over a bottle and a wineglass. "Is this it, ma'am?"
"Yes. Thank
you."
He put the glass on
the table and poured. "If you'll excuse me a moment, Lieutenant
Knowles?"
"Sure,
Donnelley. Don't leave us alone too long, or we'll raid your bar."
"Yes, sir."
Donnelley went out into the hall.
"Cheers,"
Deane said. "Tell us about the night life on Arrarat."
"It's not very
pleasant," Irina said.
"Rather dull.
Well, I guess we expected that - "
"It's not so
much dull as horrible," Irina said. "I'm sorry. It's just
that ... I feel guilty when I think about my own problems. They're so
petty. Tell me, when are the others coming?"
Deane and I
exchanged glances. I started to say something, but Deane spoke first.
"They don't tell us very much, you know."
"Then it's true
- you are the only ones coming," she said.
"Now, I didn't
say that," Deane protested. "I said I didn't know - "
"You needn't
lie," she said. "I'm hardly a spy. You're all they sent,
aren't you? No warship, and no regiment. Just a few hundred men and
some junior officers."
"I'd have
thought you'd know more than we do," I said.
"I just don't
give up hope quite as quickly as my father does."
"I don't
understand any of this," I said. "The Governor sent for a
regiment, but nobody's told us what that regiment was supposed to
do."
"Clean up the
mess we've made of this planet," Irina said. "And I really
thought they'd do something. The CoDominium has turned Arrarat into
sheer hell, and I thought they'd have enough . . . what? Pride?
Shame? Enough elementary decency to put things right before we pull
out entirely. I see I was wrong."
"I take it
things are pretty bad outside the walls," Deane said.
"Bad? They're
horrible!" Irina said. "You can't even imagine what's
happening out there. Criminal gangs setting themselves up as
governments. And my father recognizes them as governments! We make
treaties with them. And the colonists are ground to pieces. Murder's
the least of it. A whole planet going to barbarism, and we don't even
try to help them."
"But surely
your militia can do something," Deane said.
"Not really."
She shook her head, slowly, and stared into the empty wineglass. "In
the first place, the militia won't go outside the walls. I don't
suppose I blame them. They aren't soldiers. Shopkeepers, mostly. Once
in a while they'll go as far as the big river bend, or down to the
nearest farmlands, but that doesn't do any good. We tried doing
something more permanent, but it didn't work. We couldn't protect the
colonists from the convict gangs. And now we recognize convict
gangsters as legal governments!"
Donnelley came back
in and went to the bar. Deane signaled for refills.
"I noticed
people came out to cheer us as we marched through the city," I
said.
Irina's smile was
bitter. "Yes. They think you're going to open up trade with the
interior, rescue their relatives out there. I wish you could."
Before we could say
anything else, Captain Falkenberg came in. "Good afternoon,"
he said. "May I join you?"
"Certainly,
sir," Deane said. "This is Captain Falkenberg. Irina Swale,
Captain, the Governor's daughter."
"I see. Good
afternoon. Brandy, please, Donnelley. And will the rest of you join
me? Excellent. Another round, please. Incidentally, my name is John.
First names in the mess, Deane - except for the colonel."
"Yes, sir.
Excuse me. John. Miss Swale has been telling us about conditions
outside the walls. They're pretty bad."
"I gather. I've
just spent the afternoon with the colonel. Perhaps we can do
something, Miss Swale."
"Irina. First
names in the mess." She laughed. It was a very nice laugh. "I
wish you could do something for those people, but - well, you only
have a thousand men.
"A thousand
Line Marines," Falkenberg said. "That's not quite the same
thing."
And we don't even
have a thousand Marines, I told myself. Lot of recruits with us. I
wondered what Falkenberg had in mind. Was he just trying to impress
the Governor's daughter? I hoped not, because the way he'd said it
made me feel proud.
"I gather you
sympathize with the farmers out there," Falkenberg said.
"I'd have to,
wouldn't I?" Irina said. "Even if they didn't come to me
after Hugo - my father - says he can't help them. And I've tried to
do something for the children. Do you really think - " She let
her voice trail off.
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Doubtless we'll try. We can put detachments out in some of the
critical areas. As you said, there's only so much a thousand men can
do, even a thousand Marines."
"And after you
leave?" Irina said. Her voice was bitter. "They are pulling
out, aren't they? You've come to evacuate us."
"The Grand
Senate doesn't generally discuss high policy with junior captains,"
Falkenberg said.
"No, I suppose
not. But I do know you brought orders from the Colonial Office, and
Hugo took them into his office to read them - and he hasn't spoken to
anyone since. All day he's been in there. It isn't hard to guess what
they say." Irina sipped at the wine and stared moodily at the
oak table. "Of course it's necessary to understand the big
picture. What's one little planet with fewer than a million people?
Arrarat is no threat to the peace, is it? But they are people, and
they deserve something better than - Sorry. I'm not always like
this."
"We'll have to
think of something to cheer you up," Deane said. "Tell me
about the gay social life of Arrarat."
She gave a half
smile. "Wild. One continuous whirl of grand balls and lewd
parties. Just what you'd expect on a church-settled planet."
"Dullsville,"
Deane said. "But now that we're here - "
"I expect we
can manage something," Irina said. "I tend to be Dad's
social secretary. John, isn't it customary to welcome new troops with
a formal party? We'll have to have one in the Governor's palace."
"It's
customary," Falkenberg said. "But that's generally to
welcome a regiment, not a random collection of replacements. On the
other hand, since the replacements are the only military unit here -
"
"Well, we do
have our militia," Irina said.
"Sorry. I meant
the only Line unit. I'm certain everyone would be pleased if you'd
invite us to a formal ball. Can you arrange it for, say, five days
from now?"
"Of course,"
she said. She looked at him curiously. So did the rest of us. It
hadn't occurred to me that Falkenberg would be interested in
something like that. "I'll have to get started right away,
though."
"If that's
cutting it too close," Falkenberg said, "we - "
"No, that will
be all right."
Falkenberg glanced
at his watch, then drained his glass. "One more round,
gentlemen, and I fear I have to take you away. Staff briefing. Irina,
will you need an escort?"
"No, of course
not."
We chatted for a few
minutes more, then Falkenberg stood. "Sorry to leave you alone,
Irina, but we do have work to do."
"Yes. I quite
understand."
"And I'll
appreciate it if you can get that invitation made official as soon as
possible," Falkenberg said. "Otherwise, we're likely to
have conflicting duties, but, of course, we could hardly refuse the
Governor's invitation."
"Yes, I'll get
started right now," she said.
"Good.
Gentlemen? We've a bit of work. Administration of the new troops and
such. Dull, but necessary."
VII
THE CONFERENCE ROOM
had a long table large enough for a dozen officers, with chairs at
the end for twice that many more. There were briefing screens on two
walls. The others were paneled in some kind of rich wood native to
Arrarat. There were scars on the paneling where pictures and banners
had hung. Now the panels were bare, and the room looked empty and
cold. The only decoration was the CoDominium flag, American eagle and
Soviet hammer and sickle. It stood between an empty trophy case and a
bare corner.
Louis Bonneyman was
already there. He got up as we came in.
"There won't be
many here," Falkenberg said. "You may as well take places
near the head of the table."
"Will you be
regimental adjutant or a battalion commander?" Deane asked me.
He pointed to senior officers' places.
"Battalion
commander, by all means," I said. "Line over staff any day.
Louis, you can be intelligence officer."
"That may not
seem quite so amusing in a few minutes," Falkenberg said. "Take
your places, gentlemen." He punched a button on the table's
console. "And give some thought to what you say."
I wondered what the
hell he meant by that. It hadn't escaped me that he'd known where to
find us. Donnelley must have called him. The question was, why?
"Ten-hut!"
We got up as Colonel
Harrington came in. Deane had told me Harrington was over seventy,
but I hadn't really believed it. There wasn't any doubt about it now.
Harrington was short and his face had a pinched look. The little hair
he had left was white.
Sergeant Major
Ogilvie came in with him. He looked enormous when he stood next to
the Colonel. He was almost as tall as Falkenberg, anyway, and a lot
more massive, a big man to begin with. Standing next to Harrington,
he looked liked a giant.
The third man was a
major who couldn't have been much younger than the Colonel.
"Be seated,
gentlemen," Harrington said. "Welcome to Arrarat. I'm
Harrington, of course. This is Major Lorca, my Chief of Staff. We
already know who you are."
We muttered some
kind of response while Harrington took his seat. He sat carefully,
the way you might in high gravity, only, of course, Arrarat isn't a
high-gravity planet. Old, I thought. Old and past retirement, even
with regeneration therapy and geriatric drugs.
"You're quite a
problem for me," the Colonel said. "We asked for a regiment
of military police. Garrison Marines. I didn't think we'd get a full
regiment, but I certainly didn't ask for Line troops. Now what am I
to do with you?"
Nobody said
anything.
"I cannot
integrate Line Marines into the militia," the Colonel said. "It
would be a disaster for both units. I don't even want your troops in
this city! That's all I need, to have Line troopers practicing system
D in Harmony!"
Deane looked blankly
at me, and I grinned. It was nice to know something he didn't. System
D is a Line troop tradition. The men organize themselves into small
units and go into a section of town where they all drink until they
can't hold any more. Then they tell the saloon owners they can't pay.
If any of them causes trouble, they wreck his place, with the others
converging onto the troublesome bar while more units delay the guard.
"I'm sorry, but
I want your Line troopers out of this city as soon as possible,"
Harrington said. "And I can't give you any officers. There's no
way I can put Marines under militia officers, and I can't spare any
of the few Fleet people I have. That's a break for you, gentlemen,
because the four of you will be the only officers in the 501st
Provisional Battalion. Captain Falkenberg will command, of course.
Mr. Slater, as senior lieutenant you will be his second, and I expect
you'll have to take a company, as well. You others will also be
company commanders. Major Lorca will be able to assist with logistics
and maintenance services, but for the rest of it, you'll be on your
own."
Harrington paused to
let that sink in. Deane was grinning at me, and I answered it with
one of my own. With any luck we'd do pretty well out of this
miserable place. Experience as company commanders could cut years off
our time as lieutenants.
"The next
problem is, what the hell can I do with you after you're organized?"
Harrington demanded. "Major Lorca, if you'll give them the
background?"
Lorca got up and
went to the briefing stand. He used the console to project a city map
on the briefing screen. "As you can see, the city is strongly
defended," he said. "We have no difficulty in holding it
with our militia. However, it is the only part of Arrarat that we
have ever been required to hold, and as a result there are a number
of competing gangs operating pretty well as they please in the
interior. Lately a group calling itself the River Pack has taken a
long stretch along the river-banks and is levying such high passage
fees that they have effectively cut this city off from supply. River
traffic is the only feasible way to move agricultural goods from the
farmlands to the city."
Lorca projected
another map showing the river stretching northwestward from
Harmony-Garrison. It ran through a line of hills; then upriver of
that were more farmlands. Beyond them was another mountain chain. "In
addition," Lorca said, "the raw materials for whatever
industries we have on this planet come from these mines." A
light pointer indicated the distant mountains. "It leaves us
with a delicate political situation."
The Colonel growled
like a dog. "Delicate. Hell, it's impossible!" he said.
"Tell 'em the rest of it, Lorca."
"Yes, Colonel.
The political responsibilities on this planet have never been
carefully defined. Few jurisdictions are clear-cut. For example, the
city of Garrison is under direct military authority, and Colonel
Harrington is both civil and military commander within its walls. The
city of Harmony is under direct CoDominium rule, with Governor Swale
as its head. That is clear, but Governor Swale also holds a
commission as planetary executive, which in theory subordinates
Colonel Harrington to him. In practice they work together well
enough, with the Governor taking civil authority and Colonel
Harrington exercising military authority. In effect we have
integrated Garrison and Harmony."
"And that's
about all we've agreed on," Harrington said. "There's one
other thing that's bloody clear. Our orders say we're to hold
Garrison at all costs. That, in practice, means we have to defend
Harmony as well, so we've an integrated militia force. There's plenty
enough strength to defend both cities against direct attack. Supply's
another matter."
"As I said, a
delicate situation," Major Lorca said. "We cannot hold the
city without supply, and we cannot supply the city without keeping
the river transport lines open. In the past, Governor Swale and
Colonel Harrington were agreed that the only way to do that was to
extend CoDominium rule to these areas along the river." The
light pointer moved again, indicating the area marked as held by the
River Pack.
"They resisted
us," Lorca said. "Not only the convicts, but the original
colonists as well. Our convoys were attacked. Our militiamen were
shot down by snipers. Bombs were thrown into the homes of militia
officers - the hostiles don't have many sympathizers inside the city,
but it doesn't take many to employ terror tactics. The Governor would
not submit to military rule in the city of Harmony, and the militia
could not sustain the effort needed to hold the riverbanks. On orders
from the Governor, all CoDominium-controlled forces were withdrawn to
within the walls of Harmony-Garrison."
"We abandoned
those people," Harrington said. "Well, they got what they
deserved. As you'd expect, there was a minor civil war out there.
When it was over, the River Pack was in control. Swale recognized
them as a legal government. Thought he could negotiate with them.
Horse puckey. Go on, Lorca. Give 'em the bottom line."
"Yes, sir. As
the Colonel said, the River Pack was recognized as a legal
government, and negotiations were started. They have not been
successful. The River Pack has made unacceptable demands as a
condition of opening the river supply lines. Since it is obvious to
the Governor that we cannot hold these cities without secure
supplies, the Governor directed Colonel Harrington to reopen the
supply lines by military force. The attempt was not successful."
"They beat our
arses," Harrington said. His lips were tightly drawn. "I've
got plenty of explanations for it. Militia are just the wrong kind of
troops for the job. That's all burned hydrogen anyway. The fact is,
they beat us, and we had to send back to Headquarters for Marine
reinforcements. I asked for a destroyer and a regiment of military
police. The warship and the Marines would have taken the goddam
riverbanks, and the MPs could hold it for us. Instead, I got you
people."
"Which seems to
have turned the trick," Major Lorca said. "At 1630 hours
this afternoon, Governor Swale received word that the River Pack
wishes to reopen negotiations. Apparently they have information
sources within the city - "
"In the city,
hell!" Harrington said. "In the Governor's palace, if you
ask me. Some of his clerks have sold out."
"Yes, sir,"
Lorca said. "In any event, they have heard that reinforcements
have come, and they wish to negotiate a settlement."
"Bastards,"
Colonel Harrington said. "Bloody criminal butchers. You can't
imagine what those swine have done out there. And His Excellency will
certainly negotiate a settlement that leaves them in control. I guess
he has to. There's not much doubt that with the 501st as a spearhead
we could retake that area, but we can't hold it with Line Marines!
Hell, Line troops aren't any use as military government. They aren't
trained for it and they won't do it."
Falkenberg cleared
his throat. Harrington glared at him for a moment. "Yes?"
"Question,
sir."
"Ask it."
"What would
happen if the negotiations failed so that the 501st was required to
clear the area by force? Would that produce a more desirable result?"
Harrington nodded,
and the glare faded. "I like the way you think. Actually,
Captain, it wouldn't, not really. The gangs would try to fight, but
when they saw it was hopeless, they'd take their weapons and run.
Melt into the bush and wait. Then we'd be back where we were a couple
of years ago, fighting a long guerrilla war with no prospect for
ending it. I had something like that in mind, Captain, but that was
when I was expecting MPs. I think we could govern with a regiment of
MPs."
"Yes, sir,"
Falkenberg said. "But even if we must negotiate a settlement
with the River Pack, surely we would like to be in as strong a
bargaining position as possible."
"What do you
have in mind, Falkenberg?" Harrington asked. He sounded puzzled,
but there was genuine interest in his voice.
"If I may,
sir." Falkenberg got up and went to the briefing screen. "At
the moment I take it we are technically in a state of war with the
River Pack?"
"It's not that
formal," Major Lorca said. "But, yes, that's about the
situation."
"I noticed that
there was an abandoned CD fort about 240 kilometers upriver,"
Falkenberg said. He used the screen controls to show that section of
the river. "You've said that you don't want Line Marines in the
city. It seemed to me that the old fort would make a good base for
the 501st, and our presence there would certainly help keep river
traffic open."
"All right. Go
on," Harrington said.
"Now we have
not yet organized the 501st Battalion, but no one here knows that. I
have carefully isolated my officers and troops from the militia.
Sergeant Major, have any of the enlisted men talked with anyone on
this post?"
"No, sir. Your
orders were pretty clear, sir."
"And I know the
officers have not," Falkenberg said. He glanced at us and we
nodded. "Therefore, I think it highly unlikely that we will run
into any serious opposition if we march immediately to our new base,"
Falkenberg said. "We may be able to do some good on the way. If
we move fast, we may catch some River Pack gangsters. Whatever
happens, we'll disrupt them and make it simpler to negotiate
favorable terms."
"Immediately,"
Harrington said. "What do you mean by immediately?"
"Tonight, sir.
Why not? The troops haven't got settled in. They're prepared to
march. Our gear is all packed for travel. If Major Lorca can supply
us with a few trucks for heavy equipment, we'll have no other
difficulties."
"By God,"
Harrington said. He looked thoughtful. "It's taking a hell of a
risk - " He looked thoughtful again. "But not so big a risk
as we'd have if you stayed around here. As you say. Right now nobody
knows what we've got. Let the troops get to talking, and it'll get
all over this planet that you've brought a random collection of
recruits, guardhouse soldiers, and newlies, That wouldn't be so
obvious if you hit the road."
"You'd be
pretty much on your own until we get the river traffic established
again," Major Lorca said.
"Yes, sir,"
Falkenberg answered. "But we'd be closer to food supply than you
are. I've got three helicopters and a couple of Skyhooks. We can
bring in military stores with those."
"By God, I like
it," Harrington said. "Right now those bastards have beaten
us. I wouldn't mind paying them out." He looked at us, then
shook his head. "What do you chaps think? I can spare only the
four of you. That stands. Can you do it?"
We all nodded. I had
my doubts, but I was cocky enough to think I could do anything. "It
will be a cakewalk, sir," I said. "I can't think a gang of
criminals wants to face a battalion of Line Marines."
"Honor of the
corps and all that," Harrington said. "I was never with
Line troops. You haven't been with 'em long enough to know anything
about them, and here you're talking like one of them already. All
right. Captain Falkenberg, you are authorized to take your battalion
to Fort Beersheba at your earliest convenience. Tell 'em what you can
give 'em, Lorca." The Colonel sounded ten years younger. That
defeat had hurt him, and he was looking forward to showing the River
Pack what regular troops could do.
Major Lorca told us
about logistics and transport. There weren't enough trucks to carry
more than a bare minimum of supplies. We could tow the artillery, and
there were two tanks we could have. For most of us it would be march
or die, but it didn't look to me as if there'd be very much dying.
Finally Lorca
finished. "Questions?" he said. He looked at Falkenberg.
"I'll reserve
mine for the moment, sir." Falkenberg was already talking like a
battalion commander.
"Sir, why is
there so little motor transport?" Louis Bonneyman asked.
"No
fuel facilities," Lorca told him. "No
petroleum refineries. We have a small supply of crude oil and
a couple of very primitive distillation plants, but nowhere near
enough to support any large number of motor vehicles. The original
colonists were quite happy about that. They didn't want them."
Lorca reminded me of one of the instructor officers at the Academy.
"What weapons
are we facing?" Deane Knowles asked.
Lorca shrugged.
"They're better armed than you think. Good rifles. Some rocket
launchers. A few mortars. Nothing heavy, and they tend to be
deficient in communications, in electronics in general, but there are
exceptions to that. They've captured gear from our militia" -
Colonel Harrington winced at that - "and, of course, anything we
sell to the farmers eventually ends up in the hands of the gangs. If
we refuse to let the farmers buy weapons, we condemn them. If we do
sell weapons, we arm more convicts. A vicious circle."
I studied the map
problem. It didn't look difficult. A thousand men need just over a
metric ton of dried food every day. There was plenty of water along
the route, though, and we could probably get local forage, as well.
We could do it, even with the inadequate transport Lorca could give
us. It did look like a cakewalk.
I worried with the
figures until I was satisfied, then suddenly realized it wasn't an
exercise for a class. This was real. In a few hours we'd be marching
into hostile territory. I looked over at my classmates. Deane was
punching numbers into his pocket computer and frowning at the result.
Louis Bonneyman was grinning like a thief. He caught my eye and
winked. I grinned back at him, and it made me feel better. Whatever
happened, I could count on them.
Lorca went through a
few more details on stores and equipment available from the garrison,
plus other logistic support available from the fort. We all took
notes, and of course the briefing was recorded. "That about sums
it up," he said.
Harrington stood,
and we got up. "I expect you'll want to organize the 501st
before you'll have any meaningful questions," Harrington said.
"I'll leave you to that. You may consider this meeting your
formal call on the commanding officer, although I'll be glad to see
any of you in my office if you've anything to say to me. That's all."
"Ten-hut!"
Ogilvie said. He stayed in the briefing room as Colonel Harrington
and Major Lorca left.
"Well. We've
work to do," Falkenberg said. "Sergeant Major."
"Sir!"
"Please run
through the organization we worked out."
"Sir!"
Ogilvie used the screen controls to flash charts onto the screens. As
the Colonel had said, I was second in command of the battalion, and
also A Company commander. My company was a rifle outfit. I noticed it
was heavy with experienced Line troopers, and I had less than my
share of recruits.
Deane had drawn the
weapons company, which figured. Deane had taken top marks in weapons
technology at the Academy, and he was always reading up on artillery
tactics. Louis Bonneyman had another rifle company with a heavy
proportion of recruits to worry about. Falkenberg had kept a large
headquarters platoon under his personal command.
"There are
reasons for this structure," Falkenberg said. "I'll explain
them later. For the moment, have any of you objections?"
"Don't know
enough to object, sir," I said. I was studying the organization
chart.
"All of you
will have to rely heavily on your NCO's," Falkenberg said.
"Fortunately, there are some good ones. I've given the best,
Centurion Lieberman, to A Company. Bonneyman gets Sergeant Cernan. If
he works out, we can get him a Centurion's badges. Knowles has
already worked with Gunner-Centurion Pniff. Sergeant Major Ogilvie
stays with Headquarters Platoon, of course. In addition to your
command duties, each of you will have to fill some staff slots.
Bonneyman will be intelligence." Falkenberg grinned slightly. "I
told you it might not seem such a joke."
Louis answered his
grin. He was already sitting in the regimental intelligence officer's
chair at the table. I wondered why Falkenberg had given that job to
Louis. Of the four of us, Louis had paid the least attention to his
briefing packet, and he didn't seem cut out for the job.
"Supply and
logistics stay with Knowles, of course," Falkenberg said. "I'll
keep training myself. Now, I have a proposition for you. The Colonel
has ordered us to occupy Fort Beersheba at the earliest feasible
moment. If we simply march there with no fighting and without
accomplishing much beyond getting there, the Governor will negotiate
a peace. We will be stationed out in the middle of nowhere, with few
duties beyond patrols. Does anyone see any problems with that?"
"Damned dull,"
Louis Bonneyman said.
"And not just
for us. What have you to say, Sergeant Major?"
Ogilvie shook his
head. "Don't like it, sir. Might be all right for the recruits,
but wouldn't recommend it for the old hands. Especially the ones you
took out of the brig. Be a lot of the bug, sir."
The bug. The Foreign
Legion called it le cafard, which means the same thing. It had been
the biggest single cause of death in the Legion, and it was still
that among Line Marines. Men with nothing to do. Armed men, warriors,
bored stiff. They get obsessed with the bug until they commit
suicide, or murder, or desert, or plot mutiny. The textbook remedy
for le cafard is a rifle and plenty of chances to use it. Combat.
Line troops on garrison duty lose more men to cafard than active
outfits lose in combat. So my instructors had told us, anyway.
"It will be
doubly bad in this case," Falkenberg said. "No regimental
pride. No accomplishments to brag about. No battles. I'd like to
avoid that."
"How, sir?"
Bonneyman asked.
Falkenberg seemed to
ignore him. He adjusted the map until the section between the city
and Fort Beersheba filled the screen. "We march up the Jordan,"
he said. "I suppose it was inevitable that the Federation of
Churches would call the planet's most important river 'Jordan,'
wasn't it? We march northwest, and what happens, Mr. Slater?"
I thought about it.
"They run, I suppose. I can't think they'll want to fight. We've
much better equipment than they have."
"Equipment and
men," Falkenberg said. "And a damned frightening
reputation. They already know we've landed, and they've asked for
negotiations. They've got sources inside the palace. You heard me
arrange for a social invitation for five days from now."
We all laughed.
Falkenberg nodded. "Which means that if we march tonight, we'll
achieve real surprise.
We can catch a
number of them unaware and disarm them. What I'd like to do, though,
is disarm the lot of them."
I was studying the
map, and I thought I saw what he meant. "They'll just about have
to retreat right past Fort Beersheba," I said. "Everything
narrows down there."
"Precisely,"
Falkenberg said. "If we held the fort, we could disarm everyone
coming through. Furthermore, it is our fort, and we've orders to
occupy it quickly. I remind you also that we're technically at war
with the River Pack."
"Yes, but how
do we get there?" I asked. "Also, Captain, if we're holding
the bottleneck, the rest of them will fight. They can't retreat."
"Not without
losing their weapons," Falkenberg said. "I don't think the
Colonel would be unhappy if we really pacified that area. Nor do I
think the militia would have all that much trouble holding it if we
defeated the River Pack and disarmed their survivors."
"But as Hal
asked, how do we get there?" Louis demanded.
Falkenberg said, "I
mentioned helicopters. Sergeant Major has found enough fuel to keep
them flying for a while."
"Sir, I believe
there was something in the briefing kit about losses from the militia
arsenal," Deane said. "Specifically including Skyhawk
missiles. Choppers wouldn't stand a chance against those."
"Not if anyone
with a Skyhawk knew they were coming," Falkenberg agreed. "But
why should they expect us? The gear's at the landing dock. Nothing
suspicious about a work party going down there tonight. Nothing
suspicious about getting the choppers set up and working. I can't
believe they expect us to take Beersheba tonight, not when they've
every reason to believe we'll be attending a grand ball in five
days."
"Yes, sir,"
Deane agreed. "But we can't put enough equipment into three
choppers! The men who take Beersheba will be doomed. Nobody can march
up that road fast enough to relieve them."
Falkenberg's voice
was conversational. He looked up at the ceiling. "I did mention
Skyhooks, didn't I? Two of them. Lifting capacity in this gravity and
atmosphere, six metric tons each. That's forty-five men with full
rations and ammunition. Gentlemen, by dawn we could have ninety
combat Marines in position at Fort Beer-sheba, with the rest of the
501st marching to their relief. Are you game?"
VIII
IT WAS COLD down by
the docks. A chill wind had blown in just after sundown, and despite
the previous heat of the day I was shivering. Maybe, I thought, it
isn't the cold.
The night sky was
clear, with what seemed like millions of stars. I could recognize
most of the constellations, and that seemed strange. It reminded me
that although we were so far from Earth that a man who began walking
in the time of the dinosaurs wouldn't have gotten here yet, it was
still an insignificant distance to the universe. That made me feel
small, and I didn't like it.
The troops were
turned out in work fatigues. Our combat clothing and armor were still
tucked away in the packs we were loading onto the Skyhook platforms.
We worked under bright lights, and anyone watching would never have
known we were anything but a work party. Falkenberg was sure that at
least one pair of night glasses was trained on us from the bluff
above.
The Skyhook
platforms were light aluminum affairs, just a flat plate eight meters
on a side with a meter-high railing around the perimeter. We stowed
packs onto them. We also piled on other objects: light machine guns,
recoilless cannon, mortars, and boxes of shells and grenades. Some of
the boxes had false labels on them, stenciled on by troops working
inside the warehouse, so that watchers would see what looked like
office supplies and spare clothing going aboard.
A truck came down
from the fort and went into the warehouse. It seemed to be empty, but
it carried rifles for ninety men. The rifles went into bags and were
stowed on the Skyhooks.
Arrarat has only one
moon, smaller than Earth's and closer. It was a bloody crescent
sinking into the highlands to the west, and it didn't give much
light. It would be gone in an hour. I wandered over to where Deane
was supervising the work on the helicopters.
"Sure you have
those things put together right?" I asked him.
"Nothing to
it."
"Yeah. I hope
not. It's going to be hard to find those landing areas."
"You'll be all
right." He wasn't really listening to me. He had two
communications specialists working on the navigation computers, and
he kept glaring at the squiggles on their scopes. "That's good,"
he said. "Now feed in the test problem."
When I left to go
find Falkenberg, Deane didn't notice I'd gone. Captain Falkenberg was
inside the warehouse. "We've about got the gear loaded, sir,"
I told him.
"Good. Come
have some coffee." One of the mess sergeants had set up the
makings for coffee in one corner of the big high-bay building. There
was also a map table, and Sergeant Major Ogilvie had a communications
center set up there. Falkenberg poured two cups of coffee and handed
one to me. "Nervous?" he asked me.
"Some."
"You can still
call it off. No discredit. I'll tell the others there were technical
problems. We'll still march in the morning."
"It'll be all
right, sir."
He looked at me over
the lip of his coffee cup. "I expect you will be. I don't like
sending you into this, but there's no other way we can do it."
"Yes, sir,"
I said.
"You'll be all
right. You've got steady troopers."
"Yes, sir."
I didn't know any of the men, of course. They were only names and
service records, not even that, just a statistical summary of service
records, a tape spewed out by the personal computer. Thirty had been
let out of the brig for voluntary service in Arrarat. Another twenty
were recruits. The rest were Line Marines, long service volunteers.
Falkenberg used the
controls to project a map of the area around Beersheba onto the map
table. "Expect you've got this memorized," he said.
"Pretty well,
sir."
He leaned over the
table and looked at the fort, then at the line of hills north of it.
"You've some margin for error, I think. I'll have to leave to
you the final decision on using the chopper in the actual assault.
You can risk one helicopter. Not both. I must have one helicopter
back, even if that costs you the mission. Is that understood?"
"Yes, sir."
I could feel a sharp ball in my guts, and I didn't like it. I hoped
it wouldn't show.
"Getting on for
time," Falkenberg said. "You'll need all the time you can
get. We could wait a day to get better prepared, but I think surprise
is your best edge."
I nodded. We'd been
through all this before. Was he talking because he was nervous, too?
Or to keep me talking so I wouldn't brood?
"You may get a
commendation out of this."
"If it's all
the same to you, I'd rather have a guarantee that you'll show up on
time." I grinned when I said it, to show I didn't mean it, but I
did. Why the hell wasn't he leading this assault? The whole damned
idea was his, and so was the battle plan. It was his show, and he
wasn't going. I didn't want to think about the reasons. I had to
depend on him to bail me out, and I couldn't even let myself think
the word "coward."
"Time to load
up," Falkenberg said.
I nodded and drained
the coffee cup. It tasted good. I wondered if that would be the last
coffee I'd ever drink. It was certain that some of us wouldn't be
coming back.
Falkenberg clapped
his hand on my shoulder. "You'll give them a hell of a shock,
Hal. Let's get on with it." "Right." But I sure wish
you were coming with me.
I found Centurion
Lieberman. We'd spent several hours together since Falkenberg's
briefing, and I was sure I could trust him. Lieberman was about
Falkenberg's height, built somewhere between wiry and skinny. He was
about forty-five, and there were scars on his neck. The scars ran
down under his tunic. He'd had a lot of regeneration therapy in his
time.
His campaign ribbons
made two neat rows on his undress blues. From his folder I knew he
was entitled to another row he didn't bother to wear.
"Load 'em up,"
I told him.
"Sir." He
spoke in a quiet voice, but it carried through the warehouse. "First
and second platoons A Company, take positions on the Skyhook
platforms."
The men piled in on
top of the gear. It was crowded on the platforms. I got in with one
group, and Lieberman boarded the other platform. I'd rather have been
up in the helicopter, flying it or sitting next to the pilot, but I
thought I was needed down here. Louis Bonneyman was flying my
chopper. Sergeant Doty of Headquarters Platoon had the other.
"Bags in
position," Gunner-Centurion Pniff said. "Stand ready to
inflate Number One." He walked around the platform looking
critically at the lines that led from it to the amorphous shape that
lay next to it. "Looks good. Inflate Number One."
There was a loud
hiss, and a great ghostly bag formed. It began to rise until it was
above my platform. The plastic gleamed in the artificial light
streaming from inside the warehouse. The bag billowed up until it was
huge above us, and still it grew as the compressed helium poured out
of the inflating cylinders. It looked bigger than the warehouse
before Pniff was satisfied. "Good," he said. "Belay!
Stand by to inflate Number Two."
"Jeez,"
one of the recruits said. "We going up in this balloon? Christ,
we don't have parachutes! We can't go up in a balloon!"
Some of the others
began to chatter. "Sergeant Ardwain," I said.
"Sir!"
I didn't say
anything else. Ardwain cursed and crawled over to the recruits. "No
chutes means we don't have to jump," he said. "Now shut
up."
Number Two Skyhook
was growing huge. It looked even larger than our own, because I could
see all of it, and all I could see of the bag above us was this
bloated thing filling the sky above me. The choppers started up, and
after a moment they lifted. One rose directly above us. The other
went to hover above the other Skyhook. The chopper looked dwarfed
next to that huge bag.
The choppers settled
onto the bags. Up on top the helicopter crews were floundering around
on the billowing stuff to make certain the fastenings were set right.
I could hear their reports in my helmet phones. Finally they had it
all right.
"Everything
ready aboard?" Falkenberg asked me. His voice was unemotional in
the phones. I could see him standing by the warehouse doors, and I
waved. "All correct, sir," I said.
"Good. Send
Number One along, Gunner."
"Sir!"
Pniff said. "Ground crews stand by. Let go Number One."
The troops outside
were grinning at us as they cut loose the tethers holding the
balloons. Nothing happened, of course; the idea of Skyhook is to have
almost neutral buoyancy, so that the lift from the gas bags just
balances the weight of the load. The helicopters provide all the
motive power.
The chopper engines
rose in pitch, and we lifted off. A gust of wind caught us and we
swayed badly as we lifted. Some of the troops cursed, and their
non-coms glared at them. Then we were above the harbor, rising to the
level of the city bluff, then higher than that. We moved northward
toward the fort, staying high above the city until we got to
Garrison's north edge, then dipping low at the fortress wall.
Anyone watching from
the harbor area would think we'd just ferried a lot of supplies up
onto the bluff. They might wonder about carrying men as well, but we
could be pretty sure they wouldn't suspect we were doing anything but
ferrying them.
We dropped low over
the fields north of the city and continued moving. Then we rose
again, getting higher and higher until we were at thirty-three
hundred meters.
The men looked at me
nervously. They watched the city lights dwindle behind us.
"All right,"
I said. It was strange how quiet it was. The choppers were
ultra-quiet, and what little noise they made was shielded by the gas
bag above us. The railings cut off most of the wind. "I want
every man to get his combat helmet on."
There was some
confused rooting around as the men found their own packs and got
their helmets swapped around. We'd been cautioned not to shift weight
on the platforms, and nobody wanted to make any sudden moves.
I switched my
command set to lowest power so it couldn't be intercepted more than a
kilometer away. We were over three klicks high, so I wasn't much
worried that anyone was listening. "By now you've figured that
we aren't going straight back to the fort," I said.
There were laughs
from the recruits. The older hands looked bored.
"We've got a
combat mission," I said. "We're going 250 klicks west of
the city. When we get there, we take a former CD fort, dig in, and
wait for the rest of the battalion to march out and bring us home."
A couple of troopers
perked up at that. I heard one tell his buddy, "Sure beats hell
out of marching 250 klicks."
"You'll get to
march, though," I said. "The plan is to land about eight
klicks from the fort and march overland to take it by surprise. I
doubt anyone is expecting us."
"Christ Johnny
strikes again," someone muttered. I couldn't see who had said
that.
"Sir?" a
corporal asked. I recognized him: Roff, the man who'd been riding the
seasick recruit in the landing boat.
"Yes, Corporal
Roff?"
"Question,
sir."
"Ask it."
"How long will
we be there, Lieutenant?"
"Until Captain
Falkenberg comes for us," I said.
"Aye, aye,
sir."
There weren't any
other questions. I thought that was strange. They must want to know
more. Some of you will get killed tonight, I thought. Why don't you
want to know more about it?
They were more
interested in the balloon. Now that it didn't look as if it would
fall, they wanted to look out over the edge. I had the non-coms
rotate the men so everyone got a chance.
I'd had my look over
the edge, and I didn't like it. Below the level of the railing it
wasn't so bad, but looking down was horrible. Besides, there wasn't
really anything to see, except a few lights, way down below, and far
behind us a dark shape that sometimes blotted out stars: Number Two,
about a klick away.
"Would the
lieutenant care for coffee?" a voice asked me. "I have
brought the flask."
I looked up to see
Hartz with my Thermos and a mess-hall cup. I'd seen him get aboard
with his communications gear, but I'd forgotten him after that.
"Thanks, I'll have some," I said.
It was about half
brandy. I nearly choked. Hartz didn't even crack a smile.
We took a roundabout
way so that we wouldn't pass over any of the river encampments. The
way led far north of the river, then angled southwest to our landing
zone. I turned to look over the edge again, and I hoped that Deane
had gotten the navigation computers tuned up properly, because there
wasn't anything to navigate by down there. Once in a while there was
an orange-yellow light, probably a farmhouse, possibly an outlaw
encampment, but otherwise all the hills looked the same.
This has got to be
the dumbest stunt in military history, I told myself, but I didn't
really believe it. The Line Marines had a long reputation for going
into battle in newly formed outfits with strange officers. Even so, I
doubted if any expedition had ever had so little going for it: a
newlie commander, men who'd never served together, and a captain
who'd plan the mission but wouldn't go on it. I told myself the time
to object had been back in the briefing. It was a bit late now.
I looked at my
watch. Another hour of flying time. "Sergeant Ardwain."
"Sir?"
"Get them out
of those work clothes and into combat leathers and armor. Weapons
check after everyone's dressed." Dressed to kill, I thought, but
I didn't say it. It was an old joke, never funny to begin with. I
wondered who thought of it first. Possibly some trooper outside the
walls of Troy.
Hartz already had my
leathers out of my pack. He helped me squirm out of my undress blues
and into the synthi-leather tunic and trousers. The platform rocked
as men tried to pull on their pants without standing up. It was hard
to dress because we were sprawled out on our packs and other
equipment. There was a lot of cursing as troopers moved around to
find their own packs and rifles.
"Get your
goddam foot out of my eye!"
"Shut up,
Traeger."
Finally everyone had
his armor on and his fatigues packed away. The troopers sat quietly
now. Even the old hands weren't joking. There's something about
combat armor that makes everything seem real.
They looked
dangerous in their bulky leathers and armor, and they were. The armor
alone gave us a big edge on anything we'd meet here. It also gives a
feeling of safety, and that can be dangerous. Nemourlon will stop
most fragments and even pistol bullets, but it won't stop a
high-velocity rifle slug.
"How you doing
down there?" Louis's voice in my phones startled me for a
moment.
"We're all
armored up," I told him. "You still think you know where
you're going?"
"Nope. But the
computer does. Got a radar check five minutes ago. Forking stream
that shows on the map. We're right on the button."
"What's our
ETA?" I asked.
"About twenty
minutes. Wind's nice and steady, not too strong. Piece of cake."
"Fuel supply?"
I asked.
"We're hip-deep
in spare cans. Not exactly a surplus, but there's enough. Quit
worrying."
"Yeah."
"You know,"
Louis said, "I never flew a chopper with one of those things
hanging off it."
"Now you tell
me."
"Nothing to
it," Louis said. "Handles a bit funny, but I got used to
it."
"You'd better
have."
"Just leave the
driving to us. Out."
The next twenty
minutes seemed like a week. I guarantee one way to stretch time is to
sit on an open platform at thirty-three hundred meters and watch the
night sky while you wait to command your first combat mission. I
tried to think of something cheerful to say, but I couldn't, and I
thought it was better just to be quiet. The more I talked, the more
chance I'd show some kind of strain in my voice.
"Your job is to
look confident," Falkenberg had told me. I hoped I was doing
that.
"Okay, you can
get your first look now," Louis said.
"Rojj." I
got my night glasses from Hartz. They were better than issue
equipment, a pair of ten-cm Leica light-amplifying glasses I bought
myself when I left the Academy. A lot of officers do, because Leica
makes a special offer for graduating cadets. I clipped them onto my
helmet and scanned the hillside. The landing zone was the top of a
peak which was the highest point on a ridge leading from the river. I
turned the glasses to full power and examined the area carefully.
It looked deserted.
There was some kind of scrubby chaparral growing all over it, and it
didn't look as if anybody had ever been to the peak.
"Looks good to
me," I told Louis. "What do you have?"
"Nothing on IR,
nothing on low-light TV," he said. "Nothing barring a few
small animals and some birds roosting in the trees. I like that. If
there're animals and birds, there's probably no people."
"Yeah - "
"Okay, that's
passive sensors. Should I take a sweep with K-band?"
I thought about it.
If there were anyone down there, and that theoretical someone had a
radar receiver, the chopper would give itself away with the first
pulse. Maybe that would be better. "Yes."
"Rojj,"
Louis said. He was silent a moment. "Hal, I get nothing. If
there's anybody down there, he's dug in good and expecting us."
"Let's go in,"
I said.
And now, I thought,
I'm committed.
IX
"OVER THE
SIDE!" Ardwain shouted. "Get those tethers planted! First
squad take perimeter guard! Move, damn you!"
The men scrambled
off the platform. Some of them had tether stakes, big aluminum
corkscrews, which they planted in the ground. Others lashed the
platform to the stakes. The first squad, two maniples, fanned out
around the area with their rifles ready.
There wasn't much
wind, but that big gas bag had a lot of surface area, and I was
worried about it. I got off and moved away to look at it. It didn't
seem to be too much strain on the tether stakes. The hillside was
quiet and dark. We'd set down on top of some low bushes with stiff
branches. The leaves felt greasy when they were crushed. I listened,
then turned my surveillance amplifier to high gain. Still nothing,
not even a bird. Nothing but my own troops moving about. I switched
to general command frequency. "Freeze," I said.
The noise stopped.
There was silence except for the low "whump!" of the
chopper blades, and a fainter sound from Number Two out there
somewhere.
"Carry on,"
I said.
Ardwain came up to
me. "Nobody here, sir. Area secure."
"Thank you."
I thumbed my command set onto the chopper's frequency. "You can
cut yourself loose, and bring in Number Two."
"Aye, aye,
sir," Louis said.
We began pulling
gear off the platform. After a few moments, Number Two chopper came
in. We couldn't see the helicopter at all, only the huge gas bag with
its platform dangling below it. The Skyhook settled onto the
chaparral and men bailed out with tether stakes. Centurion Lieberman
watched until he was sure the platform was secure, then ran over to
me. "All's well?" I asked him.
"Yes, sir."
His tone made it obvious he'd wanted to say "of course."
"Get
'em saddled up," I said. "We're moving out." "Aye,
aye, sir. I still think Ardwain would be all right here, sir."
"No.
I'll want an experienced man in case something happens. If we don't
send for the heavy equipment, or if something happens to me, call
Falkenberg for instructions. "
"Aye,
aye, sir.'" He still didn't like it. He wanted to come
with us. For that matter, I wanted him along, but I had to leave a
crew with the Skyhooks and choppers. If the wind came up so tethers
wouldn't hold, those things had to get airborne fast, and the rest of
us would be without packs and supplies. There were all kinds of
contingencies, and I wanted a reliable man I could trust to deal with
them.
"We're ready,
sir," Ardwain said. "Right. Let's move out." I
switched channels. "Here we go, Louis."
"I'll be
ready," Bonneyman said. "Thanks. Out." I moved up
toward the head of the column. Ardwain had already gone up. "Let's
get rolling," I said.
"Sir. Question,
sir," Ardwain said. "Yeah?"
"Men would
rather take their packs, sir. Don't like to leave their gear behind."
"Sergeant,
we've got eight kilometers to cover in less than three hours. No
way."
"Yes, sir.
Could we take our cloaks? Gets cold without 'em - "
"Sergeant
Ardwain, we're leaving Centurion Lieberman and four maniples of
troops here. Just what's going to happen to your gear? Get them
marching."
"Sir. All
right, you bastards, move out."
I could hear
grumbling as they started along the ridge. Crazy, I thought. They
want to carry packs in this.
The brush was thick,
and we weren't making any progress at all. Then the scouts found a
dry stream bed, and we moved into that. It was filled with boulders
the size of a desk, and we hopped from one to another, moving
slightly downhill. It was pitch-black, the boulders no more than
shapes I could barely see. This wasn't going to work. I was already
terrified.
But thank God for
all that exercise in high gravity, I thought. We'll make it, but
we've got to have light. I turned my set to low-power command
frequency. "NCO's turn on lowest-power infrared illumination,"
I said. "No visible light."
I pulled the IR
screen down in front of my eyes and snapped on my own IR helmet
light. The boulders became pale green shapes in front of me, and I
could just see them well enough to hop from one to another. Ahead of
me the screen showed bright green moving splotches, my scouts and
NCO's with their illuminators.
I didn't think
anybody would be watching this hill with IR equipment. It didn't seem
likely, and we were far from the fort where the only equipment would
be - if the River Pack had any to begin with. I told myself it would
take extremely good gear to spot us from farther than a klick.
Eight klicks to go
and three hours to do it. Shouldn't be hard. Men are in good
condition, no packs - damned fools wanted to carry them! - only
rifles and ammunition. And the weapons troops, of course. They'd be
slowest. Mortarmen with twenty-two kilos each to carry, and the
recoilless riflemen with twenty-four.
We were sweating in
no time. I opened all the vents in my armor and leathers and wondered
if I ought to tell the troops to do the same. Don't be stupid, I told
myself. Most of them have done this a dozen times. I can't tell them
anything they don't know.
But it's my command,
I kept thinking. Anything goes wrong, it's your responsibility, Hal
Slater. You asked for it, too, when you took the commission.
I kept thinking of
the millions of things that could go wrong. The plan didn't look
nearly so good from here as it had when we were studying maps. Here
we are, seventy-six men, about to try to take a fort that probably
has us outnumbered. Falkenberg estimated 125 men in there. I'd asked
him how he got the number.
"Privies, Mr.
Slater. Privies. Count the number of outhouses, guess the number of
bottoms per hole, and you've got a good estimate of the number of
men." He hadn't even cracked a grin.
One hell of a way to
guess, and Falkenberg wasn't coming along. We'd find out the hard way
how accurate his estimate was. -
I kept telling
myself what we had going for us. The satellite photos showed nobody
lived on this ridge. No privies, I thought, and grinned in the dark.
But I'd gone over the pix, and I hadn't seen any signs that people
were ever here. Why should they be? There was no water except for the
spring inside the fort itself. There was nothing up here, not even
proper firewood, only these pesky shrubs that stab at your ankles.
I came around a bend
in the stream bed and found a monitor waiting. His maniple stood
behind him. He had three recruits in it: one NCO, one long-term
private, and three recruits. The usual organization is only one or
two recruits to a maniple, and I wondered why Lieberman had set this
one up this way.
The monitor motioned
uphill. We had to leave the stream bed here. Far ahead of me I could
see the dull green glow of my lead men's lanterns. They were pulling
ahead of me, and I strained to keep up with them. I left the stream,
and after a few meters the only man near me was Hartz. He struggled
along with twenty kilos of communications gear on his back and a
rifle in his right hand, but if he had any trouble keeping up with
me, he didn't say anything. I was glad I didn't have to carry all
that load.
The ridge flattened
out after a hundred meters. The cover was only about waist-high. The
green lights went out on my IR screen as up ahead the scouts cut
their illuminators. I ordered the others turned off, as well. Then I
crouched under a bush and used the map projector to show me where we
were. The helmet projected the map onto the ground, a dim patch of
light that couldn't have been seen except from close up and directly
above.
I was surprised to
see we'd come better than halfway.
Fort Beersheba
hadn't been much to start with. It had a rectangle of low walls with
guard towers in the corners, a miniature of the larger fort at
Garrison. Then somebody had improved it, with a ditch and parapet out
in front of the walls, and a concertina of rusting barbed wire
outside of that. I couldn't see inside the walls, but I knew there
were four above-ground buildings and three large bunkers. The
buildings were adobe. The bunkers were logs and earth. They wouldn't
burn. The logs were a local wood with a high metallic content.
The bunkers were
going to be a problem, but they'd have to wait. Right now we had to
get inside the walls of the fort. There was a gate in the wall in
front of me. It was made of the same wood as the bunkers. It had a
ramp across the ditch, and it looked like our best bet, except that
inside the fort one of the bunkers faced the gate, and it would be
able to fire through the opening once the gate was gone.
I had seventy-five
men lying flat in the scrub brush three hundred meters from the fort.
The place looked deserted. My IR pickups didn't show anyone in the
guard towers or on the walls. Nothing. I glanced at my watch. Less
than an hour before dawn.
I hadn't the
faintest idea of what to do, but it was time to make up my mind.
"Don't get
fancy," Falkenberg had told me. "Get the men to the fort
and turn them loose. They'll take it for you."
Sure, I thought.
Sure. You're not here, you bloody coward, and I am, and it's my
problem, and I don't know what the hell I'm doing.
I didn't like the
looks of that ditch and barbed-wire concertina. It would take a while
getting through it. If we crawled up to the ditch, we'd be spotted.
They couldn't be that sloppy; if there weren't any guards, there had
to be a surveillance system. Body capacitance, maybe. Or radar.
Something. They'd have guards posted unless they had reason to
believe nobody could sneak up on them.
To hell with it.
We've got to do something, I thought. I nodded to Hartz and he handed
me a mike. His radio was set to a narrow-beam directional antenna,
and we'd left relays along the line of sight back to the landing
area. I could talk to the choppers without alerting the fort's
electronic watchdogs.
"Nighthawk,
this is Blackeagle," I said. "Blackeagle go."
"We can see the
place, Louis. Nothing moving at all. I'd say it was deserted if I
didn't know better." "Want me to come take a look?" It
was a thought. The chopper could circle high above the fort and scan
with IR and low-light TV. We'd know who was in the open. But there
was a good chance it would be spotted, and we'd throw away our best
shot. "Don't get fancy," Falkenberg had said. "Surprise
- that's your big advantage. Don't blow it."
But
he wasn't here. There didn't seem to be any right decision. "No,"
I told Louis. "That's a negative. Load up with troops and get
airborne, but stay out of line of sight. Be ready to dash. When I
want you, I'll want you bad." "Aye, aye,
sir."
"Blackeagle
out." I gave Hartz the mike. Okay, I told myself, this is it. I
waved forward to Sergeant Ardwain. He half rose from the ground and
waved. The line moved ahead, slowly. Behind us the mortar and
recoil-less rifle teams had set up their weapons and lay next to them
waiting for orders.
Corporal Roff was
just to my left. He was directly in front of the gate. He waved his
troops on and we crawled toward the gate.
We'd gotten to
within a hundred meters when there appeared a light at the top of the
wall by the gate. Someone up there was shining a spot out onto the
field. There was another light, and then another, all handheld
spotlights, powerful, but not very wide beams.
Corporal Roff stood
up and waved at them "Hello, there!" he shouted. "Whatcha
doin'?" He sounded drunk. I wanted to tell him to get down, but
it was too late.
"You guys okay
in there?" Roff shouted. "Got anything to drink?"
The others were
crouched now, up from a crawl, and running forward.
"Who the hell
are you?" someone on the wall demanded.
"Who the
flippin' hell are you?" Roff answered. "Gimme a drink!"
The lights converged toward him.
I thumbed on my
command set. "Nighthawk, this is Blackeagle. Come a-runnin'!"
"Roger dodger."
I switched to the
general channel. "Roff, hit the dirt! Fire at will. Charge!"
I was shouting into the helmet radio loud enough to deafen half the
command.
Roff dove sideways
into the dirt. There were orange spurts from all over the field as
the troopers opened fire. The lights tumbled off the walls. Two went
out. One stayed on. It lay in the dirt just outside the gate.
Troopers rose from
the field and ran screaming toward the fort. They sounded like
madmen. Then a light machine gun opened from behind me, then another.
Trumpet notes
sounded. I hadn't ordered it. I didn't even know we had a trumpet
with us. The sound seemed to spur the men on. They ran toward the
wire as the mortars fired their first rounds. Seconds later I saw
spurts of fire from inside the walls as the shells hit. Just as they
did, the recoilless opened behind me and I heard the shell pass not
more than a couple of meters to my left. It hit the gates and there
was a flash, then another hit the gates, and another. The trumpeter
was sounding the charge over and over again, while mortars dropped
more V.T. fused to go off a meter above ground into the fort itself.
The recoilless fired again.
The gates couldn't
take that punishment and fell open. There was smoke inside. One of
the mortarmen must have dropped smoke rounds between the gates and
the bunker. Streams of tracers came out of the gates, but the men
avoided them easily. They ran up on either side of the gates.
Others charged
directly at the wire. The first troopers threw themselves onto the
concertina. The next wave stepped on their backs and dived into the
ditch. More waves followed, and men in the ditches heaved their
comrades up onto the narrow strip between the ditch and the walls.
They stopped just
long enough to throw grenades over the wall. Then two men grabbed a
third and flung him up to where he could catch the top of the wall.
They stood and boosted him on until he pulled himself up and could
stand on top of it. More men followed, then leaned down to pull up
their mates from below. I couldn't believe it was happening so
quickly.
The men on the wire
were struggling to get loose before there was no one below to boost
them over. Those were recruits, I thought. Of course. The monitors
had sent the recruits first, with a simple job. Lie down and get
walked on.
The helicopter came
roaring in, pouring streams of twenty-mm cannon fire into the fort.
The tracers were bright against the night sky.
And I was still
standing there, watching, amazed at how fast it was all happening. I
shook myself and turned on my command set. "I.F.F. beacons on!
General order, turn on I.F.F. beacons." I changed channels.
"Night-hawk, this is Blackeagle. For God's sake, Louis, be
careful! Some of ours are already inside!"
"I see the
beacons," Louis said. "Relax, Hal, we watched them going
in."
The chopper looped
around the fort in a tight orbit, still firing into the fort. Then it
plunged downward.
"Mortarmen,
hold up on that stuff," Sergeant Ardwain's voice said. "We're
inside the fort now and the chopper's going in."
Christ, I thought,
something else I forgot. One hell of a commander I've made. I can't
even remember the most elementary things.
The chopper dropped
low and even before it vanished behind the walls it was spewing men.
I ran up to the
gate, staying to one side to avoid the tracers that were still coming
out. Corporal Roff was there ahead of me. "Careful here, sir."
He ducked around the gatepost and vanished. I followed him into the
smoke, running around to my right, where other troopers had gone over
the wall.
The scene inside was
chaotic. There were unarmored bodies everywhere, probably cut down by
the mortars. Men were running and firing in all directions. I didn't
think any of the defenders had helmets. "Anybody without a
helmet is a hostile," I said into the command set. Stupid. They
know that. "Give 'em hell, lads!" That was another silly
thing to say, but at least it was a better reason for shouting in
their ears than telling them something they already knew.
A satchel charge
went off at one of the bunkers. A squad rushed the entrance and threw
grenades into it. That was all I could see from where I stood, but
there was firing all over the enclosure.
Now what? I
wondered. Even as I did, the firing died out until there were only a
few rifle shots now and then, and the futile fire of the machine gun
in the bunker covering the gate.
"Lieutenant?"
It was Ardwain's voice.
"Yes,
Sergeant."
"There's some
people in that main bunker, sir. You can hear 'em talking in there.
Sound like women. We didn't want to blow it in, not just yet,
anyway."
"What about the
rest of the fort?"
"Cleared out,
sir. Bunkers and barracks, too. We got about twenty prisoners."
That quick. Like
automatic magic. "Sergeant, make sure there's nothing that can
fire onto the area northwest of the fort. I want to bring the Skyhook
in there."
"Aye, aye,
sir."
I thumbed my command
set to the chopper frequency. "We've got the place, all except
one bunker, and it'll be no problem. Bring Number Two in to land in
the area northwest of the fort, about three hundred meters out from
the wall. I want you to stay up there and cover Number Two. Anything
that might hit it, you take care of. Keep scanning. I can't believe
somebody won't come up here to see what's happening."
X
THAT WAS MY first
fire fight. I wasn't too proud of my part in it. I hadn't given a
single order once the rush started, and I was very nearly the last
man into the fort. Some leader.
But there was no
time to brood. Dawn was a bright smear off in the east. The first
thing was to check on the butcher's bill. Four men killed, two of
them recruits. Eleven wounded. After a quick conference with our
paramedic I sent three to the helicopters. The others could fight, or
said they could. Then I sent the two choppers east toward Harmony,
while we ferried the rest of our gear into the fort. We were on our
own.
Sergeant Doc Crisp
had another dozen patients, defenders who'd been wounded in the
assault. We had thirty prisoners, thirty-seven wounded, and over
fifty dead. One of the wounded was the former commander of the fort.
"Got bashed
with a rifle butt outside his quarters," Ardwain told me. "He's
able to talk now."
"I'll see him."
"Sir."
Ardwain went into the hospital bunker and brought out a man about
fifty, dark hair in a ring around a bald head. He had thin, watery
eyes. He didn't look like a soldier or an outlaw.
"He says his
name's Flawn, sir," Ardwain told me.
"Marines,"
Flawn said. "CoDominium Marines. Didn't know there were any on
the planet. Just why the hell is this place worth the Grand Senate's
attention again?"
"Shut up,"
Ardwain said.
"I've got a
problem, Flawn," I said. We were standing in the open area in
the center of the fort. "That bunker over there's still got some
of your people in it. It'd be no problem to blast it open, but the
troopers think they heard women talking in there."
"They did,"
Flawn said. "Our wives."
"Can you talk
them into coming out, or do we set fire to it?"
"Christ!"
he said. "What happens to us now?"
"Macht nichts
to me," I told him. "My orders are to disarm you people.
You're free to go anywhere you want to without weapons. Northwest if
you like."
"Without
weapons. You know what'll happen to us out there without weapons?"
"No, and I
don't really care."
"I know,"
Flawn said. "You bastards never have cared - "
"Mind how you
talk to the lieutenant," Ardwain said. He ground his rifle on
the man's instep. Flawn gasped in pain.
"Enough of
that, Sergeant," I said. "Flawn, you outlaws - "
"Outlaws.
Crap!" Flawn said. "Excuse me. Sir, you are mistaken."
He eyed Ardwain warily, his lip curled in contempt. "You brought
me here as a convict for no reason other than my opposition to the
CoDominium. You turned me loose with nothing. Nothing at all,
Lieutenant. So we try to build something. Politics here aren't like
at home. Or maybe they are, same thing, really, but here it's all out
in the open. I managed something, and now you've come to take it away
and send me off unarmed, with no more than the clothes on my back,
and you expect me to be respectful." He glanced up at the
CoDominium banner that flew high above the fort. "You'll excuse
me if I don't show 'more enthusiasm.’ "
"My orders are
to disarm you," I said. "Now, will you talk your friends
out of that bunker, or do we blow it in?"
"You'll let us
go?"
"Yes."
"Your word of
honor, Lieutenant?"
I nodded.
"Certainly."
"I guess I
can't ask for any other guarantees." Flawn looked at Sergeant
Ardwain and grimaced. "I wish I dared. All right, let me talk to
them."
By noon we had Fort
Beersheba to ourselves. Flawn and the others had left. They insisted
on carrying their wounded with them, even when Doc Crisp told them
most would probably die on the road. The women had been a varied
assortment, from teenagers to older women. All had gone with Flawn,
to my relief and the troopers' disappointment.
Centurion Lieberman
organized the defenses. He put men into the bunkers, set up
revetments for the mortars, found material to repair the destroyed
gates, stationed more men on the walls, got the mess tents put up,
put the liquor we'd found into a strong room and posted guards over
it -
I was feeling
useless again.
In another hour
there were parties coming up the road. I sent Sergeant Ardwain and a
squad down there to set up a roadblock. We could cover them from the
fort, and the mortars were set up to spray the road. The river was
about three hundred meters away and one hundred meters below us, and
the fort had a good field of fire all along the road for a klick in
either direction. It was easy to see why this bluff had been chosen
for a strong point.
As parties of
refugees came through, Ardwain disarmed them. At first they went
through, anyway, but after a while they began to turn back rather
than surrender their weapons. None of them caused any problems, and I
wouldn't let Ardwain pursue any that turned away. We had far too few
men to risk any in something senseless like that.
"Good work,"
Falkenberg told me when I made the afternoon report. "We've made
forty kilometers so far, and we've got a couple of hours of daylight
left. It's a bit hard to estimate how fast we'll be able to march."
"Yes, sir. The
first party we disarmed had three Skyhawk missiles. There were five
here at the fort, but nobody got them out in time to use them. Couple
of guys who tried were killed by the mortars. It doesn't look good
for helicopters in this area, though, not now that they're warned."
"Yes,"
Falkenberg said. "I suspected as much. We'll retire the choppers
for a while. You've done well, Slater. I caution you not to relax,
though. At the moment we've had no opposition worth mentioning, but
that will change soon enough, and after that there may be an effort
to break past your position. They don't seem to want to give up their
weapons."
"No, sir."
And who can blame them? I thought. Eric Flawn had worried me. He
hadn't seemed like an outlaw. I don't know what I'd expected here at
Beersheba. Kidnapped girls. Scenes of rape and debauchery, I suppose.
I'd never seen a thieves' government in operation. Certainly I hadn't
expected what I'd found, a group of middle-aged men in control of
troops who looked a lot like ours, only theirs weren't very well
equipped.
"I understand
you liberated some wine," Falkenberg said.
"Yes, sir."
"That'll help.
Daily ration of no more than half a liter per man, though."
"Sir? I wasn't
planning on giving them any of it until you got here."
"It's theirs,
Slater," Falkenberg said. "You could get away with holding
on to it, but it wouldn't be best. It's your command. Do as you think
you should, but if you want advice, give the troops half a liter
each."
"Yes, sir."
There's no regulation against drinking in the Line Marines, not even
on duty. There are severe penalties for rendering yourself unfit for
duty. Men have even been shot for it. "Half a liter with supper,
then."
"I think it's
wise," Falkenberg said. "Well, sounds as if you're doing
well. We'll be along in a few days. Out."
There were a million
other details. At noon I'd been startled to hear a trumpet sound mess
call, and I went out to see who was doing it. A corporal I didn't
recognize had a polished brass trumpet.
"Take me a few
days to get everyone's name straight, Corporal," I said.
"Yours?"
"Corporal
Brady, sir."
"You play that
well."
"Thank you,
sir."
I looked at him
again. I was sure his face was familiar. I thought I remembered that
he'd been on Tri-v. Had his own band and singing group. Nightclub
performances, at least one Tri-v special. I wondered what he was
doing as an enlisted man in the Line Marines, but I couldn't ask. I
tried to remember his real name, but that escaped me, too. It hadn't
been Brady, I was sure of that. "You'll be sounding all calls
here?"
"Yes, sir.
Centurion says I'm to do it."
"Right. Carry
on, Brady."
All through the
afternoon the trumpet calls sent men to other duties. An hour before
the evening meal there was a formal retreat. The CoDominium banner
was hauled down by a color guard while all the men not on sentry
watch stood in formation and Brady played Colors. As they folded the
banner I remembered a lecture in Leadership class back at the
Academy.
The instructor had
been a dried-up Marine major with one real and one artificial arm. We
were supposed to guess which was which, but we never did. The lecture
I remembered had been on ceremonials. "Always remember,"
he'd said, "the difference between an army and a mob is
tradition and discipline. You cannot enforce discipline on troops who
do not feel that they are being justly treated. Even the man who is
wrongly punished must feel that what he is accused of deserves
punishment. You cannot enforce discipline on a mob, and so your men
must be reminded that they are soldiers. Ceremonial is one of your
most powerful tools for doing that. It is true that we are
perpetually accused of wasting money. The Grand Senate annually
wishes to take away our dress uniforms, our badges and colors, and
all the so-called nonfunctional items we employ. They are fortunate,
because they have never been able to do that. The day that they do,
they will find themselves with an army that cannot defend them.
"Soldiers will
complain about ceremonials and spit-and-polish, and such like, but
they cannot live as an army without them. Men fight for pride, not
for money, and no service that does not give them pride will last
very long."
Maybe, I thought.
But with a thousand things to do, I could have passed up a formal
retreat on our first day at Fort Beersheba. I hadn't been asked about
it. By the time I knew it was to happen, Lieberman had made all the
arrangements and given the orders.
By suppertime we
were organized for the night. Ardwain had collected about a hundred
weapons, mostly obsolete rifles - there were even muzzle-loaders,
handmade here on Arrarat - and passed nearly three hundred people
through the roadblock.
We closed the road
at dusk. Searchlights played along it, and we had a series of
roadblocks made of log stacks. Ardwain and his troops were dug in
where they could cover the whole road area, and we could cover them
from the fort. It looked pretty good.
Tattoo sounded, and
Fort Beersheba began to settle in for the night.
I made my rounds,
looking into everything. The body-capacitance system the previous
occupants had relied on was smashed when we blew open their bunker,
but we'd brought our own surveillance gear. I didn't really trust
passive systems, but I needn't have worried. Lieberman had guards in
each of the towers. They were equipped with light-amplifying
binoculars. There were more men to watch the IR screens.
"We're safe
enough," Lieberman said. "If the lieutenant would care to
turn in, I'll see the guard's changed properly."
He followed me back
to my quarters. Hartz had already fixed the place up. There were
fresh adobe patches over the bullet holes in the walls. My gear was
laid out where I could get it quickly. Hartz had his cloak and pack
spread out in the anteroom.
There was even
coffee. A pot was kept warm over an alcohol lamp.
"You can leave
it to us," Lieberman said.
Hartz grinned.
"Sure. Lieutenants come out of the Academy without any calluses,
and we make generals out of them."
"That may take
some doing," I said. I invited Lieberman into my sitting room.
There was a table there, with a scale model of the fort on it. Flawn
had made it, but it hadn't done him much good. "Have a seat,
Centurion. Coffee?"
"Just a little,
sir. I'd best get back to my duties."
"Call me for
the next watch, Centurion."
"If the
lieutenant orders it."
"I just - what
the hell, Lieberman, why don't you want me to take my turn on guard?"
"No need, sir.
May I make a suggestion?"
"Sure."
"Leave it to
us, sir. We know what we're doing."
I nodded and stared
into my coffee cup. I didn't feel I was really in command here. They
tell you everything in the Academy: leadership, communications, the
precise form of a regimental parade, laser range-finding systems,
placement of patches on uniforms, how to compute firing patterns for
mortars, wine rations for the troops, how to polish a pair of boots,
servicing recoilless rifles, delivery of calling cards to all senior
officers within twenty-four hours of reporting to a new post,
assembly and maintenance of helicopters, survival on rocks with
poisonous atmosphere or no atmosphere at all, shipboard routines, and
a million other details. You have to learn them all, and they get
mixed up until you don't know what's trivial and what's important.
They're just things you have to know to pass examinations. "You
know what you're doing, Centurion, but I'm not sure I do."
"Sir, I've
noticed something about young officers," Lieberman said. "They
all take things too serious."
"Command's a
serious business." Damn, I thought. That's pompous. Especially
from a young kid to an older soldier.
He didn't take it
that way. "Yes, sir. Too damned serious to let details get in
the way. Lieutenant, if it was just things like posting the guard and
organizing the defense of this place, the service wouldn't need
officers. We can take care of that. What we need is somebody to tell
us what the hell to do. Once that's done, we know how."
I didn't say
anything. He looked at me closely, probably trying to figure out if I
was angry. He didn't seem very worried.
"Take me, for
instance," he said. "I don't know why the hell we came to
this place, and I don't care. Everybody's got his reasons for joining
up. Me, I don't know what else to do. I've found something I'm good
at, and I can do it. Officers tell me where to fight, and that's one
less damn thing to worry about."
The trumpet sounded
outside. Last Post. It was the second time we'd heard it today. The
first was when we'd buried our dead.
"Got my rounds
to make," Lieberman said. "By your leave, sir."
"Carry on,
Centurion." A few minutes later Hartz came in to help me get my
boots off. He wouldn't hear of letting me turn in wearing them.
"We'll hold 'em
off long enough to get your boots on, zur. Nobody's going to catch a
Marine officer in the sack."
He'd sleep with his
boots on so that I could take mine off. It didn't make a lot of
sense, but I wasn't going to win any arguments with him about it. I
rolled into the sack and stared at the ceiling. My first day of
command. I was still thinking about that when I went to sleep.
The attacks started
the next day. At first it was just small parties trying to force the
roadblock, and they never came close to doing that. We could put too
much fire onto them from the fort.
That night they
tried the fort itself. There were a dozen mortars out there. They
weren't very accurate, and our radar system worked fine. They would
get off a couple of rounds, and then we'd have them backtracked to
the origin point and our whole battery would drop in on them. We
couldn't silence them completely, but we could make it unhealthy for
the crews servicing their mortars, and after a while the fire
slackened. There were rifle attacks all through the night, but
nothing in strength.
"Just testing
you," Falkenberg said in the morning when I reported to him.
"We're pressing hard from this end. They'll make a serious try
before long."
"Yes, sir. How
are things at your end?"
"We're moving,"
Falkenberg said. "There's more resistance than the colonel
expected, of course. With you stopping up their bolt hole, they've
got no route to retreat through. Fight or give up - that's all the
choice we left them. You can look for their real effort to break past
you in a couple of days. By then we'll be close enough to really
worry them."
He was right. By the
fourth day we were under continuous attack from more than a thousand
hostiles.
It was a strange
situation. No one was really worried. We were holding them off. Our
ammunition stocks were running low, but Lieberman's answer to that
was to order the recruits to stop using their weapons. They were put
to serving mortars and recoilless rifles, with an experienced NCO in
charge to make sure there was a target worth the effort before they
fired. The riflemen waited for good shots and made each one count.
As long as the
ammunition held out, we were in no serious danger. The fort had a
clear field of fire, and we weren't faced by heavy artillery. The
best the enemy had was mortars, and our counterbattery radar and
computer system was more than a match for that.
"No
discipline," Lieberman said. "They got no discipline. Come
in waves, run in waves, but they never press the attack. Damned glad
there's no Marine deserters in that outfit. They'd have broke through
if they'd had good leadership."
"I'm worried
about our ammunition supplies," I said.
"Hell,
Lieutenant, Cap'n Falkenberg will get here. He's never let anybody
down yet."
"You've served
with him before?"
"Yes, sir, in
that affair on Domingo. Christian Johnny, we called him. He'll be
here."
Everyone acted that
way. It made the situation unreal. We were under fire. You couldn't
put your head above the wall or outside the gate. Mortars dropped in
at random intervals, sometimes catching men in the open and wounding
them despite their body armor. We had four dead and nine more in the
hospital bunker. We were running low on ammunition, and we faced
better than ten-to-one odds, and nobody was worried.
"Your job is to
look confident," Falkenberg had told me. Sure.
On the fifth day
things were getting serious for Sergeant Ardwain and his men at the
roadblock. They were running out of ammunition and water.
"Abandon it,
Ardwain," I told him. "Bring your troops up here. We can
keep the road closed with fire from the fort."
"Sir. I have
six casualties that can't walk, sir."
"How many
total?"
"Nine, sir -
two walking and one dead."
Nine out of a total
of twelve men. "Hold fast, Sergeant. We'll come get you."
"Aye, aye,
sir."
I wondered who I
could spare. There wasn't much doubt as to who was the most useless
man on the post. I sent for Lieberman.
"Centurion, I
want a dozen volunteers to go with me to relieve Ardwain's group.
We'll take full packs and extra ammunition and supplies."
"Lieutenant - "
"Damn it, don't
tell me you don't want me to go. You're capable enough. You told me
that you need officers to tell you what to do, not how to do it.
Fine. Your orders are to hold this post until Falkenberg comes. One
last thing - you will not send or take any relief forces down the
hill. I won't have this command further weakened. Is that
understood?"
"Sir."
"Fine. Now get
me a dozen volunteers."
I decided to go down
the hill just after moonset. We got the packs loaded and waited at
the gate. One of my volunteers was Corporal Brady. He stood at the
gate, chatting with the sentry there.
"Quiet
tonight," Brady said.
"They're still
there, though," the sentry said. "You'll know soon enough.
Bet you tomorrow's wine ration you don't make it down the hill."
"Done.
Remember, you said down the hill. I expect you to save that wine for
me."
"Yeah. Hey,
this is a funny place, Brady."
"How's that?"
"A holy Joe
planet, and no Marine chaplain."
"You want a
chaplain?"
The sentry shrugged.
He had a huge black beard that he fingered, as if feeling for lice.
"Good idea, isn't it?"
"They're all
right, but we don't need a chaplain. What we need is a good Satanist.
No Satanist in this battalion."
"What do you
need one of them for?"
Brady laughed.
"Stands to reason, don't it? God's good, right? He'll treat you
okay. It's the other guy you have to watch out for." He laughed
again. "Got three days on bread and no wine for saying that
once. Told it to Chaplain Major McCrory, back at Sector H.Q. He
didn't appreciate it."
"Time to move
out," I said. I shouldered my heavy pack.
"Do we run or
walk, zur?" Hartz asked.
"Walk until
they know we're there. And be quiet about it."
"Zur."
"Move out,
Brady. Quietly."
"Sir." The
sentry opened the gate, just a crack. Brady went through, then
another trooper, and another. Nothing happened, and finally it was my
turn. Hartz was last in the line.
The trail led
steeply down the side of the cliff. It was about two meters wide,
just a slanting ledge, really. We were halfway down when there was a
burst of machine-gun fire. One of the troopers went down.
"Move like
hell!" I said.
Two men grabbed the
fallen trooper and hauled him along. We ran down the cliff face,
jumping across shortcuts at the switchbacks. There was nothing we
could see to shoot at, but more bullets sent chips flying from the
granite cliff.
The walls above us
spurted flame. It looked like the whole company was up there covering
us. I hoped not. One of our recoilless men found a target and for a
few moments we weren't under fire. Then the rifles opened up.
Something zinged past my ear. Then I felt a hard punch in the gut and
went down.
I lay there sucking
air. Hartz grabbed one arm and shouted to another private. "Jersey!
Lieutenant's down. Give me a hand."
"I'm all
right," I said. I felt my stomach area. There wasn't any blood.
"Armor stopped it. Just knocked the wind out of me." I was
still gasping, and I couldn't get my breath.
They dragged me
along to Ardwain's command post. "How would we explain to the
Centurion if we didn't get you down?" Hartz asked.
The CP was a trench
roofed over with ironwood logs. There were three wounded men at one
end. Brady took our wounded trooper there. He'd been hit in both
legs. Brady put tourniquets on them.
Hartz had his own
ideas about first aid. He had a brandy flask. It was supposed to be a
universal cure. After he poured two shots down me, he went over to
the other end of the bunker to pass the bottle among the other
wounded.
"Only three of
them, Ardwain?" I said. I was still gasping for air. "I
thought you had six."
"Six who cannot
walk, sir. But three of them can still fight."
XI
"WE'RE NOT
GOING to get up that bluff Not carrying wounded," I said.
"No, sir."
Ardwain had runners carrying ammunition to his troopers. "We're
dug in good, sir. With the reinforcements you brought, we'll hold
out."
"We damned well
have to," I said.
"Not so bad,
sir. Most of our casualties came from recoilless and mortars. They've
stopped using them. Probably low on ammunition."
"Let's hope
they stay that way." I had another problem. The main defense for
the roadblock was mortar fire from the fort. Up above they were
running low on mortar shells. In another day we'd be on our own. No
point in worrying about it, I decided. We'll just have to do the best
we can.
The next day was the
sixth we'd been in the fort. We were low on rations. Down at the
roadblock we had nothing to eat but a dried meat that the men called
"monkey." It didn't taste bad, but it had the peculiar
property of expanding when you chewed it, so that after a while it
seemed as if you had a mouthful of rubber bands. It was said that
Line Marines could march a thousand kilometers if they had coffee,
wine, and monkey.
We reached
Falkenberg by radio at noon. He was still forty kilometers away, and
facing the hardest fighting yet. They had to go through villages
practically house by house.
"Can you hold?"
he asked me.
"The rest of
today and tonight, easily. By noon tomorrow we'll be out of mortar
shells. Sooner, maybe. When that happens, our outpost down at the
roadblock will be without support." I hadn't told him where I
was.
"Can you hold
until 1500 hours tomorrow?" he asked.
"The fort will
hold. Don't know about the roadblock."
"We'll see what
we can do," Falkenberg said. "Good luck."
"Christian
Johnny'll get us out," Brady said.
"You know him?"
"Yes, sir.
He'll get us out."
I wished I were as
sure as he was.
They tried
infiltrating during the night. I don't know how many crept up along
the riverbank, but there were a lot of them. Some went on past us.
The others moved in on our bunkers. The fighting was hand to hand,
with knives and bayonets and grenades doing most of the work, until
we got our foxholes clear and I was able to order the men down into
them. Then I had Lieberman drop mortar fire in on our own positions
for ten minutes. When it lifted, we went out to clear the area.
When morning came we
had three more dead, and every man in the section was wounded. I'd
got a grenade fragment in my left upper arm just below where the
armor left off. It was painful, but nothing to worry about.
There were twenty
dead in our area, and bloody trails were leading off where more
enemies had crawled away.
An hour after dawn
they rushed us again. The fort had few mortar shells left. We called
each one in carefully. They couldn't spare us too much attention,
though, because there was a general attack on the fort, as well. When
there were moments of quiet in the firing around Fort Beersheba, we
could hear more distant sounds to the east. Falkenberg's column was
blasting its way through another village.
Ardwain got it just
at noon. A rifle bullet in the neck. It looked bad. Brady dragged him
into the main bunker and put a compress on. Ardwain's breath rattled
in his throat, and his mouth oozed blood. That left Roff and Brady as
NCO's, and Roff was immobile, with fragments through his left leg.
At 1230 hours we had
four effectives, and no fire support from the fort. We'd lost the
troops down by the riverbank, and we could hear movement there.
"They're
getting past us, damn it!" I shouted. "All this for
nothing! Hartz, get me Lieberman."
"Zur."
Hartz was working one-handed. His right arm was in shreds. He
insisted on staying with me, but I didn't count him as one of my
effectives.
"Sergeant
Roszak," the radio said.
"Where's
Lieberman?"
"Dead, sir. I'm
senior NCO."
"What mortar
ammunition have you?"
"Fourteen
rounds, sir."
"Drop three
onto the riverbank just beyond us, and stand by to use more."
"Aye,
aye, sir. One moment." There was silence. Then he said,
"On the way."
"How is it up
there?"
"We're fighting
at the walls, sir. We've lost the north section, but the bunkers are
covering that area."
"Christ. You'll
need the mortars to hold the fort. But there's no point in holding
that fort if the roadblock goes. Stand by to use the last mortar
rounds at my command."
"Aye,
aye, sir. We can hold."
"Sure you can."
Sure.
I looked out through
the bunker's firing slit. There were men coming up the road. Dozens
of them. I had one clip left in my rifle, and I began trying to pick
them off with slow fire. Hartz used his rifle with his left hand,
firing one shot every two seconds, slow, aimed fire.
There were more
shots from off to my left. Corporal Brady was in a bunker over there,
but his radio wasn't working. Attackers moved toward his position. I
couldn't hear any others of my command.
Suddenly Brady's
trumpet sounded. The brassy notes cut through the battle noises. He
played "To Arms!," then settled into the Line Marine march.
"We've left blood in the dirt of twenty-five worlds - "
There was a movement
in the bunker. Recruit Dietz, hit twice in the stomach, had dragged
himself over to Sergeant Ardwain and found Ardwain's pistol. He
crawled up to the firing slit and began shooting. He coughed blood
with each round. Another trooper staggered out of the bush. He reeled
like a drunk as he lurched toward the road. He carried a rack of
grenades strung around his neck and threw them mechanically,
staggering forward and throwing grenades. He had only one arm. He was
hit a dozen times and fell, but his arm moved to throw the last
grenade before he died.
More attackers moved
toward Brady's bunker. The trumpet call wavered for a moment as Brady
fired, and then the notes came as clear as ever.
"Roszak! I've
got a fire mission," I said.
"Sir."
"Let me
describe the situation down here." I gave him the positions of
my CP, Brady's bunker, and the only other one I thought might have
any of our troops in it. "Everyplace else is full of hostiles,
and they're getting past us along the riverbank. I want you to drop a
couple of mortar rounds forty meters down the road from the CP, just
north of the road, but not too far north. Corporal Brady's in there
and it would be a shame to spoil his concert."
"We hear him up
here, sir. Wait one." There was silence. "On the way."
The mortar shells
came in seconds later. Brady was still playing. I remembered his name
now. It was ten years ago on Earth. He'd been a famous man until he
dropped out of sight. Roszak had left his mike open, and in the
background I could hear the men in the fort cheering wildly.
Roszak's voice came
in my ears. "General order from battalion headquarters, sir.
You're to stay in your bunkers. No one to expose himself. Urgent
general order, sir.
I wondered what the
hell Falkenberg was doing giving me general orders, but I used my
command set to pass them along. I doubted if anyone heard, but it
didn't matter. No one was going anywhere.
Suddenly the road
exploded. The whole distance from fifty meters away down as far as I
could see vanished in a line of explosions. They kept coming,
pounding the road; then the riverbank was lifted in great clods of
mud. The road ahead was torn to bits; then the pieces were lifted by
another salvo, and another. I drove into the bottom of the bunker and
held my ears while shells dropped all around me.
Finally it lifted. I
could hear noises in my phones, but my ears were ringing, and I
couldn't understand. It wasn't Roszak's voice. Finally it came
through. "Do you need more fire support, Mr. Slater?"
"No. Lord, what
shooting - "
"I'll tell the
gunners that," Falkenberg said. "Hang on, Hal. We'll be
another hour, but you'll have fire support from now on."
Outside, Brady's
trumpet sang out another march.
XII
THEY SENT ME back to
Garrison to get my arm fixed. There's a fungus infection on Arrarat
that makes even minor wounds dangerous. I spent a week in surgery
getting chunks cut out of my arm, then another week in regeneration
stimulation. I wanted to get back to my outfit, but the surgeon
wouldn't hear of it. He wanted me around to check up on the regrowth.
Sergeant Ardwain was
in the next bay. It was going to take a while to get him back
together, but he'd be all right. With Lieberman dead, Ardwain would
be up for a Centurion's badges.
It drove me crazy to
be in Garrison while my company, minus its only officer and both its
senior NCO's, was out at Fort Beersheba. The day they let me out of
sick bay I was ready to mutiny, but there wasn't any transportation,
and Major Lorca made it clear that I was to stay in Garrison until
the surgeon released me. I went to my quarters in a blue funk.
The place was all
fixed up. Private Hartz was there grinning at me. His right arm was
in an enormous cast, bound to his chest with what seemed like a mile
of gauze.
"How did you
get out before I did?" I asked him.
"No infection,
zur. I poured brandy on the wounds." He winced. "It was a
waste, but there was more than enough for the few of us left."
There was another
surprise. Irina Swale came out of my bedroom.
"Miss Swale has
been kind enough to help with the work here, zur," Hartz said.
He seemed embarrassed. "She insisted, zur. If the lieutenant
will excuse me, I have laundry to pick up, zur."
I grinned at him and
he left. Now what? I wondered. "Thanks."
"It's the least
I could do for Arrarat's biggest hero," Irina said.
"Hero? Nonsense
- "
"I suppose it's
nonsense that my father is giving you the military medal, and that
Colonel Harrington has put in for something else; I forget what, but
it can't be approved here - it has to come from Sector Headquarters."
"News to me,"
I said. "And I still don't think - "
"You don't have
to. Aren't you going to ask me to sit down? Would you like something
to drink? We have everything here. Private Hartz is terribly
efficient."
"So are you.
I'm not doing well, am I? Please have a seat. I'd get you a drink,
but I don't know where anything is."
"And you
couldn't handle the bottles, anyway. I'll get it." She went into
the other room and came out with two glasses. Brandy for me and that
Jericho wine she liked. Hartz at work, I thought. I'll be drinking
that damned brandy the rest of my life.
"It was pretty
bad, wasn't it?" she said. She sat on the couch that had
appeared while I was gone.
"Bad enough."
Out of my original ninety, there were only twelve who hadn't been
wounded. Twenty-eight dead, and another dozen who wouldn't be back on
duty for a long time. "But we held." I shook my head. "Not
bragging, Irina. Amazed, mostly. We held."
"I've been
wondering about something," she said. "I asked Louis
Bonneyman, and he wouldn't answer me. Why did you have to hold the
fort? It was much the hardest part of the campaign, wasn't it? Why
didn't Captain Falkenberg do it?"
"Had other
things to do, I suppose. They haven't let me off drugs long enough to
learn anything over in sick bay. What's happening out there?"
"It went
splendidly," she said. "The Harmony militia are in control
of the whole river. The boats are running again, grain prices have
fallen here in the city - "
"You don't
sound too happy."
"Is it that
obvious?" She sat quietly for a moment. She seemed to be trying
to control her face. Her lips were trembling. "My father says
you've accomplished your mission. He won't let Colonel Harrington
send you out to help the other farmers. And the River Pack weren't
the worst of the convict governments! In a lot of ways they weren't
even so bad. I thought ... I'd hoped you could go south, to the
farmlands, where things are really bad, but Hugo has negotiated a
steady supply of grain and he says it's none of our business."
"You're
certainly anxious to get us killed."
She looked at me
furiously. Then she saw my grin. "By the way," she said,
"you're expected at the palace for dinner tonight. I've already
cleared it with the surgeon. And this time I expect you to come! All
those plans for my big party, and it was nothing but a trick your
Captain Falkenberg had planned! You will come, won't you? Please?"
We ate alone.
Governor Swale was out in the newly taken territory trying to set up
a government that would last. Irina's mother had left him years
before, and her only brother was a Navy officer somewhere in Pleiades
Sector.
After dinner I did
what she probably expected me to. I kissed her, then held her close
to me and hoped to go to something a bit more intimate. She pushed me
away. "Hal, please."
"Sorry."
"Don't be. I
like you, Hal. It's just that - "
"Deane
Knowles," I said.
She gave me a
puzzled look. "No, of course not. But ... I do like your friend
Louis. Can't we be friends, Hal? Do we have to - "
"Of course we
can be friends."
I saw a lot of her
in the next three weeks. Friends. I found myself thinking about her
when I wasn't with her, and I didn't like that. The whole thing's
silly, I told myself. Junior officers have no business getting
involved with Governors' daughters. Nothing can come of it, and you
don't want anything to come of it to begin with. Your life's
complicated enough as it is.
I kept telling
myself that right up to the day the surgeon told me I could rejoin my
outfit. I was glad to go. It was still my company. I hadn't been with
most of them at all, and I'd been with the team at the fort only a
few days, but A Company was mine. Every man in the outfit thought so.
I wondered what I'd done right. It didn't seem to me that I'd made
any good decisions, or really any at all.
"Luck,"
Deane told me. "They think you're lucky." That explained
it. Line Marines are probably the most superstitious soldiers in
history. And we'd certainly had plenty of luck.
I spent the next six
weeks honing the troops into shape. By that time Ardwain was back,
with Centurion's badges. He was posted for light duty only, but that
didn't stop him from working the troops until they were ready to
drop. We had more recruits, recently arrived convicts, probably men
who’d been part of the River Pack at one time. It didn't
matter. The Marine Machine takes over, and if it doesn't break you,
you come out a Marine.
Falkenberg had a
simple solution to the problem of deserters. He offered a reward, no
questions asked, to anyone who brought in a deserter - and a larger
reward for anyone bringing in the deserter's head. It wasn't an
original idea, but it was effective.
Or had been
effective. As more weeks went by with nothing to do but make patrols
along the river, drill and train, stand formal retreat and parades
and inspections, men began to think of running.
They also went
berserk. They'd get drunk and shoot a comrade. Steal. We couldn't
drill them forever, and when we gave them any time off, they'd get
the bug.
The day the main
body had reached Fort Beersheba, the 501st had been combat-weary,
with a quarter of its men on the casualty list. It was an exhausted
battalion, but it had high spirits. Now, a few months later, it was
up to strength, trained to perfection, well-organized and well-fed -
and unhappy.
I found a trooper
painting I.H.T.F.P. on the orderly room wall. He dropped the paint
bucket and stood to attention as I came up.
"And what does
that mean, Hora?"
He stood straight as
a ramrod. "Sir, it means 'I Have Truly Found Paradise.' "
"And what's
going to happen to you if Sergeant Major truly finds Private Hora
painting on the orderly room wall?"
"Cells,
Lieutenant."
"If you're
lucky. More likely you'll get to dig a hole and live in it a week.
Hora, I'm going to the club for a drink. I don't expect to see any
paint on that wall when I come back."
Deane laughed when I
told him about it. "So they're doing that already. 'I hate this
fucking place.' He means it, too."
"Give us
another six weeks and I'll be painting walls," I said. "Only
I'll put mine on the Governor's palace."
"You'll have to
wait your turn," Deane said.
"Goddamn it,
Deane, what can we do? The NCO's have gotten so rough I think I'll
have to start noticing it, but if we relax discipline at all, things
will really come apart."
"Yeah. Have you
spoken to Falkenberg about it?"
"Sure I have,"
I told him. "But what can he do? What we need is some combat,
Deane. I never thought I'd say that. I thought that was all garbage
that they gave us at the Academy, that business about le cafard and
losing more men to it than to an enemy, but I believe it now."
"Cheer up,"
Deane said. "Louis is officer of the day, and I just heard the
word from him. We've got a break in the routine. Tomorrow Governor
Hugo Swale, Hisself, is coming to pay a visit to the gallant troops
of the 501st. He's bringing your medal, I make no doubt."
"How truly
good," I said. "I'd rather he brought us a good war."
"Give him
time," Deane said. "The way those damned merchants from
Harmony are squeezing the farmers, they're all ready to revolt."
"Just what we
need. A campaign to put down the farmers," I said. "Poor
bastards. They get it from everybody, don't they? Convicts that call
themselves tax collectors. Now you say the Harmony merchants - "
"Yeah,"
Deane said. "Welcome to the glory of CoDominium Service."
Sergeant Major
Ogilvie's baritone rang out across the Fort Beersheba parade ground.
"Battalion, attenhut! A Company color guard, front and center,
march!"
That was a surprise.
Governor Swale had just presented me with the military medal, which
isn't the Earth, but I was a bit proud of it. Now our color guard
marched across the hard adobe field to the reviewing stand.
"Attention to
orders," Ogilvie said. "For conspicuous gallantry in the
face of the enemy, A Company, 501st Provisional Battalion, is awarded
the Unit Citation of Merit. By order of Rear Admiral Sergei
Lermontov, Captain of the Fleet, Crucis Sector Headquarters. A
Company, pass in review!"
Bits of cloth and
metal, and men will die for them, I thought. The old military game.
It's all silly. And we held our heads high as we marched past the
reviewing stand.
Falkenberg had found
five men who could play bagpipes, or claimed they could - how can you
tell if they're doing it right? - and they had made their own pipes.
Now they marched around the table in the officers' mess at Fort
Beersheba. Stewards brought whiskey and brandy.
Governor Hugo Swale
sat politely, trying not to show any distress as the pipers thundered
past him. Eventually they stopped. "I think we should join the
ladies," Swale said. He looked relieved when Falkenberg stood.
We went into the
lounge. Irina had brought another girl, a visitor from one of the
farm areas. She was about nineteen, I thought, with red-brown hair
and blue eyes. She would have been beautiful if she didn't have a
perpetual haunted look. Irina had introduced her as Kathryn Malcolm.
Governor Swale was
obviously embarrassed to have her around. He was a strange little
man. There was no resemblance between him and Irina, nothing that
would make you think he was her father. He was short and dumpy,
almost completely bald, with wrinkles on his high forehead. He had a
quick nervous manner of speaking and gesturing. He so obviously
disliked Kathryn that I think only the bagpipes could have driven him
to want to get back to her company. I wondered why. There'd been no
chance to talk to any of them at dinner.
We sat around the
fireplace. Falkenberg gave a curt nod, and all the stewards left
except Monitor Lazar, Falkenberg's own orderly. Lazar brought a round
of drinks and went off into the pantry.
"Well. Here's
to A Company and its commander," Falkenberg said. I sat
embarrassed as the others stood and lifted their glasses.
"Good work,
indeed," Hugo Swale said. "Thanks to this young man, the
Jordan Valley is completely pacified. It will take a long time before
there's any buildup of arms here again. I want to thank you gentlemen
for doing such a thorough job."
I'd had a bit too
much to drink with dinner, and there'd been brandy afterward, and the
pipers with their wild war sounds. My head was buzzing. "Perhaps
too thorough," I muttered as the others sat down. I honestly
don't know whether I wanted the others to hear me or not. Deane and
Louis threw me sharp looks.
"What do you
mean, Hal?" Irina asked.
"Nothing."
"Spit it out,"
Falkenberg said. The tone made it an order.
"I've a dozen
good men in cells and three more in a worse kind of punishment, half
my company is on extra duty, and the rest of them are going slowly
mad," I said. "If we'd left a bit of the fighting to do,
we'd at least have employment." I tried to make it a joke.
Governor Swale took
it seriously. "It's as much a soldier's job to prevent trouble
as to fight," he said.
You pompous ass, I
thought. But of course he was right.
"There's plenty
that needs doing," Kathryn Malcolm said. "If your men are
spoiling to fight somebody, loan them to us for a while." She
wasn't joking at all.
Governor Swale
wasn't pleased at all. "That will do, Kathryn. You know we can't
do that."
"And why not?"
she demanded. "You're supposed to be Governor of this whole
planet, but the only people you care about are the merchants in
Harmony - those sanctimonious hymn-singers! You know the grain
they're buying is stolen. Stolen from us, by gangsters who claim to
be our government, and if we don't give them what they want, they
take it anyway, and kill everyone who tries to stop them. And then
you buy it from them!"
"There is
nothing I can do," Swale protested. "I don't have enough
troops to govern the whole planet. The Grand Senate explicitly
instructed me to deal with local governments - "
"The way you
did with the River Pack," Kathryn said. Her voice was bitter.
"All they did was try to make some money by charging tolls for
river traffic. They wouldn't deal with your damned merchants, so you
sent the Marines to bargain with them. Just how many people in the
Jordan Valley thanked you for that, Governor? Do they think you're
their liberator?"
"Kathryn,
that's not fair," Irina protested. "There are plenty of
people glad to be free of the River Pack. You shouldn't say things
like that."
"All I meant
was that the River Pack wasn't so bad.
Not compared to what
we have to live with. But his Excellency isn't concerned about us,
because his merchants can buy their grain at low prices. He doesn't
care that we've become slaves."
Swale's lips
tightened, but he didn't say anything.
"Local
governments," Kathryn said. "What you've done, Governor, is
recognize one gang. There's another gang, too, and both of them
collect taxes from us! It's bad enough with just one, but it can't
even protect us from the other! If you won't give us our land back,
can't you at least put down the rival gangsters so we only have one
set of crooks stealing from us?"
Swale kept his voice
under control. He was elaborately polite as he said, "There is
nothing we can do, Miss Malcolm. I wish there were. I suggest you
people help yourselves."
"That isn't
fair, either," Irina said. "You know it isn't. They didn't
ask for all those convicts to be sent here. I think Kathryn has a
very good idea. Loan her the 501st. Once those hills are cleaned out
and the gangsters are disarmed, the farmers can protect themselves.
Can't they, Kathryn?"
"I think so.
We'd be ready, this time."
"See? And Hal
says his men are spoiling for a good fight. Why not let them do it?"
"Irina, I have
to put up with that from Miss Malcolm because she is a guest, but I
do not have to take it from you, and I will not. Captain, I thought I
was an invited guest on this post."
Falkenberg nodded.
"I think we'd best change the subject," he said.
There was an
embarrassed silence. Then Kathryn got up and went angrily to the
door. "You needn't bother to see me to my room," she said.
"I can take care of myself. I've had to do it often enough. I'm
not surprised that Captain Falkenberg isn't eager to lead his troops
into the hills. I notice that he sent a newly commissioned lieutenant
to do the tough part of Governor Swale's dirty work. I'm not
surprised at all that he doesn't want any more fighting." She
left, slamming the door behind her.
Falkenberg acted as
if he hadn't heard her. I don't suppose there was anything else he
could do. The party didn't last much longer.
I went to my rooms
alone. Deane and Louis offered to stay with me, but I didn't want
them. I told them I'd had enough celebrating.
Hartz had left the
brandy bottle on the table, and I poured myself another drink,
although I didn't want it. The table was Arrarat ironwood, and God
knows how the troops had managed to cut planks out of it. My company
had built it, and a desk, and some other furniture, and put them in
my rooms while I was in hospital. I ran my hand along the polished
tabletop.
She should never
have said that, I thought. And I expect it's my fault. I remembered
Irina saying much the same thing back in Garrison, and I hadn't
protested. My damned fault. Falkenberg never explained anything about
himself, and I'd never learned why he hadn't come with us the night
we attacked the fort, but I was damned sure it wasn't cowardice.
Louis and Deane had straightened me out about that. No one who'd been
with him on the march up the river could even suspect it.
And why the hell
didn't I tell Irina that? I wondered. Cocky kid, trying to impress
the girl. Too busy being proud of himself to -
There was a knock on
the door. "Come in," I said.
It was Sergeant
Major Ogilvie. There were some others in the hall. "Yes,
Sergeant Major?"
"If we could
have a word with the lieutenant. We have a problem, sir."
"Come in."
Ogilvie came inside.
When his huge shoulders were out of the doorway, I saw Monitor Lazar
and Kathryn Malcolm behind him. They all came in, and Kathryn stood
nervously, her hands twisted together. "It's all my fault,"
she said.
Ogilvie ignored her.
"Sir, I have to report that Monitor Lazar has removed certain
orders from the battalion files without authorization."
"Why tell me?"
I asked. "He's Captain Falkenberg's orderly."
"Sir, if you'll
look at the papers. He showed them to this civilian. If you say we
should report it to the captain, we'll have to." Ogilvie's voice
was carefully controlled. He handed me a bound stack of papers.
They were orders
from Colonel Harrington to Falkenberg as commander of the 501st, and
they were dated the first day we'd arrived on Arrarat. I'd never seen
them myself. No reason I should, unless Falkenberg were killed and I
had to take over as his deputy.
Lazar stood at rigid
attention. He wasn't looking at me, but seemed fascinated with a spot
on the wall above me.
"You say Miss
Malcolm has read these, Sergeant Major?"
"Yes, sir."
"Then it will
do no harm if I read them, I suppose." I opened the order book.
The first pages were general orders commanding Falkenberg to organize
the 501st. There was more, about procedures for liaison with Major
Lorca and the Garrison supply depot. I'd seen copies of all those.
"Why the devil did you think Miss Malcolm would be interested in
this stuff, Lazar?" I asked.
"Not that,
sir," Ogilvie said. "Next page."
I thumbed through
the book again. There it was.
Captain John
Christian Falkenberg, Commanding Officer, 501st Provisional Battalion
of Line Marines:
1. These orders are
written confirmation of verbal orders issued in conference with
above-named officer.
2. The 501st Bn. is
ordered to occupy Fort Beersheba at earliest possible moment
consistent with safety of the command and at the discretion of Bn.
CO.
3. Immediate
airborne assault on Fort Beersheba is authorized, provided that
assault risks no more than 10% of effective strength of 501st Bn.
4. Any assault on
Fort Beersheba in advance of main body of 501st Bn. shall be
commanded by officer other than CO 501st Bn., and request of Captain
Falkenberg to accompany assault and return to Bn. after Fort
Beersheba is taken is expressly denied.
NOTE: It is the
considered judgment of undersigned that officers assigned to 501st
would not be competent to organize Bn. and accomplish main objective
of pacification of Jordan Valley without supervision of experienced
officer. It is further considered judgment of undersigned that
secondary objective of early capture of Fort Beersheba does not
justify endangering main mission of occupation of Jordan Valley.
Captain Falkenberg is therefore ordered to refrain from exposing
himself to combat risks until such time as primary mission is
assured.
By Order of
Planetary Military Commander
Nicholas Harrington,
Colonel, CoDominium Marines
"Lazar, I take
it you were listening to our conversation earlier," I said.
"No way to
avoid it, sir. The lady was shouting." Lazar's expression didn't
change.
I turned the book
over and over in my hands. "Sergeant Major."
"Sir."
"I'm finished
with this order book. Would you please see that it's returned to the
battalion safe? Also, I think I forgot to log it out. You may do as
you see fit about that."
"Sir."
"Thank you. You
and Lazar may go now. I see no reason why the captain should be
disturbed because I wanted a look at the order book."
"Yes, sir.
Let's go, Monitor." Ogilvie started to say something else, but
he stopped himself. They left, closing the door behind them.
"That was nice
of you," Kathryn said.
"About all I
could do," I said. "Would you like a drink?"
"No, thank you.
I feel like a fool - "
"You're not the
only one. I was just thinking the same thing, and for about the same
reasons, when Ogilvie knocked. Won't you sit down? I suppose we
should open the door."
"Don't be
silly." She pulled a chair up to the big table. She was wearing
a long plaid skirt, like a very long kilt, with a shiny blouse of
some local fabric, and a wool jacket that didn't close at the front.
Her hair was long, brown with red in it, but I thought it might be a
wig. A damned pretty girl, I thought. But there was that haunted look
in her eyes, and her hands were scarred, tiny scars that showed
regeneration therapy by unskilled surgeons.
"I think Irina
said you're a farmer. You don't look like a farmer."
She didn't smile. "I
own a farm ... or did. It's been confiscated by the government - one
of our governments." Her voice was bitter. "The Mission
Hills Protective Association. A gang of convicts. We used to fight
them. My grandfather and my mother and my brother and my fiance were
all killed fighting them. Now we don't do anything at all."
"How many of
these gangsters are there?"
She shrugged. "I
guess the Protectionists have about four thousand. Something like
that, anyway. Then there is the True Brotherhood. They have only a
few hundred, maybe a thousand. No one really knows. They aren't
really very well organized."
"Seems like
they'd be no problem."
"They wouldn't
be, if we could deal with them, but the Protective Association keeps
our farmers disarmed and won't let us go on commando against the
Brotherhood. They're afraid we'll throw the Association out, as well.
The Brotherhood isn't anything real - they're closer to savages than
human beings - but we can't do anything about them because the
Association won't let us."
"And how many
of you are there?"
"There are
twenty thousand farmers in the Valley," she said. "And
don't tell me we ought to be able to run both gangs off. I know we
should be able to. But we tried it, and it didn't work. Whenever they
raided one of our places, we'd turn out to chase them down, but
they'd run into the hills, where it would take weeks to find them.
Then they'd wait until we came down to grow crops again, then come
down and kill everyone who resisted them, families and all."
"Is that what
happened to your grandfather?"
"Yes. He'd been
one of the Valley leaders. They weren't really trying to loot his
place; they just wanted to kill him. I tried to organize resistance
after that, and then - " She looked at her hands. "They
caught me. I guess I will have that drink, after all."
"There's only
brandy, I'm afraid. Or coffee."
"Brandy is all
right."
I got another glass
and poured. Her hands didn't shake as she lifted it.
"Aren't you
going to ask?" she said. "Everyone wants to know, but
they're afraid to ask." She shuddered. "They don't want to
embarrass me. Embarrass!"
"Look, you
don't want to talk about - "
"I don't want
to, but I have to. Can you understand that?"
"Yes."
"Hal, there's
very little you can imagine that they didn't do to me. The only
reason I lived through it was that they wanted me to live. Afterward,
they put me in a cage in the village square. As an example. A
warning."
"I'd have
thought that would have the opposite effect." I was trying to
speak calmly, but inside I was boiling with hatred.
"No. I wish it
had. It would have been worth it. Maybe - I don't know. The second
night I was there, two men who'd been neighbors killed one of their
guards and got me out. The Protectionists shot thirty people the next
day in reprisal." She looked down at her hands. "My friends
got me to a safe place. The doctor wasn't very well trained, they
tell me. He left scars. If they could see what I was like when I got
to him, they wouldn't say that."
I didn't know what
to say. I didn't trust myself to say anything. I wanted to take her
in my arms and hold her, not anything else, just hold her and protect
her. And I wanted to get my hands on the people who'd done this, and
on anyone who could have stopped it and didn't. My God, what are
soldiers for, if not to put a stop to things like that? But all I
could do was pour her another drink. I tried to keep my voice calm.
"What will you do now?"
"I don't know.
When Father Reedy finally let me leave his place, I went to Harmony.
I guess I hoped I could get help. But . . . Hal, why won't Governor
Swale do something? Anything?"
"More a matter
of why should he," I said. "God, Kathryn, how can I say it?
From his view, things are quiet. He can report that all's well here.
They don't promote troublemakers in BuColonial, and Hugo Swale
doesn't strike me as the kind of man who wants to retire on Arrarat."
I drained my brandy glass. "Maybe I'm not being fair to him.
Somehow I don't even want to be."
"But you'd help
us if you could. Wouldn't you?"
"My God, yes.
At least you're safe now."
She had a sad little
smile. "Yes, nothing but a few scars. Come here. Please."
She stood. I went to her. "Put your hands on my shoulders,"
she said.
I reached out to
her. She stood rigidly. I could feel her trembling as I touched her.
"It happens
every time," she said. "Even now, and I like you. I ...
Hal, I'd give anything if I could just relax and let you hold me. But
I can't. It's all I can do to sit here and talk to you."
"Then I'd
better let you go."
"No. Please.
Please understand. I like you. I want to talk with you. I want to
show myself there are men I can trust. Just . . . don't expect too
much ... not for a while. I keep telling myself I'm going to get over
it. I don't want to be alone, but I'm afraid to be with anyone, and
I'm going to get over that."
XIII
WE HAD MORE weeks of
parades and training. Falkenberg had a new scheme. He bought two
hundred mules and assigned my company the job of learning to live
with them. The idea was to increase our marching capability by using
pack mules, and to teach the men to hang on to the pack saddles so
they could cover more kilometers each day. It worked fine, but it
only increased the frustration because there was nothing to march
toward.
Governor Swale had
gone back to Garrison, but Irina and Kathryn stayed as guests of the
battalion. The men were pleased to have them on the post, and there
was much less of a problem with discipline. They particularly adopted
Kathryn. She was interested in everything they did, and the troops
thought of her as a mascot. She was young and vulnerable, and she
didn't talk down to them, and they were half in love with her.
I was more than
that. I saw so much of her that Falkenberg thought it worthwhile to
remind me that the service does not permit lieutenants to marry. That
isn't strictly true, of course, but it might as well be. There's no
travel allowance and it takes an appeal to Saint Peter or perhaps an
even higher level to get married quarters. The rule is, "Captains
may marry, Majors should marry, Colonels must marry," and there
aren't many exceptions to it.
"Not much
danger of that," I told him.
"Yes?" He
raised an eyebrow. It was an infuriating gesture.
I blurted out her
story.
He only nodded. "I
was aware of most of it, Mr. Slater."
"How in God's
name can you be so cool about it?" I demanded. "I know you
don't like her after that outburst - "
"Miss Malcolm
has been very careful to apologize and to credit you with the
explanation," Falkenberg said. "And the next time you take
the order book out of the safe, I'll expect you to log it properly.
Now tell me why we have three men of your company sleeping under
their bunks without blankets."
He didn't really
want an explanation, of course, and for that matter he probably
already knew. There wasn't much about the battalion that he didn't
know. It made a smooth change of subject, but I wasn't having any. I
told him, off the record, what the charges would have been if I'd
officially heard what the men had done. "Centurion Ardwain
preferred not to report it," I said. "Captain, I still
cannot understand how you can be so calm when you know that not two
hundred kilometers from here - "
"Mr. Slater, I
remain calm because at the moment there is very little I can do. What
do you want? That we lead the 501st in a mutiny? If it is any comfort
to you, I do not think the situation will last. It is my belief that
Governor Swale is living in a fool's paradise. You cannot deal with
criminal gangs on any permanent basis, and I believe the situation
will explode. Until it does, there is not one damned thing we can do,
and I prefer not to be reminded of my helplessness."
"But, sir - "
"But nothing,
Mr. Slater. Shut up and soldier."
Falkenberg had
guessed right. Although we didn't know it, about the time we had that
conversation the Protective Association had decided to raise the
price of grain. Two weeks later they hiked the price again and held
up the shipments to show the Governor they meant it.
It wasn't long after
that the Governor paid another visit to Fort Beersheba.
Deane Knowles found
me in the club. "His Excellency has arrived," he said.
"He's really come with full kit this time. He's brought Colonel
Harrington and a whole company of militia."
"What the devil
are they for?" I asked.
"Search me."
"I thought you
knew everything, well, well. I suppose we will know soon enough.
There's Officers' Call."
The Governor,
Colonel Harrington, and Falkenberg were all in the staff conference
room. There was also a colonel of militia. He didn't look very
soldierly. His uniform was baggy, and he had a bulge around his
middle. The Governor introduced him as Colonel Trevor.
"I'll come
right to the point, gentlemen," Swale said. "Due to certain
developments in the southern areas, I am no longer confident that
food supply for the cities of Harmony and Garrison is assured. The
local government down there has not negotiated in good faith. It's
time to put some pressure on them."
"In other
words," Colonel Harrington said, "he wants to send the
Marines down to bash heads so the Harmony merchants won't have to pay
so much."
"Colonel, that
remark was not called for," Governor Swale said.
"Certainly it
was." There was no humor in Harrington's voice. "If we can
send my lads down to get themselves killed, we can tell them why
they're going. It's hardly a new mission for the Line Marines."
"Your orders
are to hold the cities," Swale said. "That cannot be done
without adequate food supplies. I think that justifies using your
troops for this campaign."
"Sure it does,"
Harrington said. "And after the CD pulls both of us out of here,
what happens? Doesn't that worry you a bit, Colonel Trevor?"
"The CoDominium
won't abandon Arrarat." Trevor sounded very positive.
"You're betting
a lot on that," Colonel Harrington told him.
"If you two are
quite through," Swale said. "Captain, how soon can your
battalion be ready to march?"
Falkenberg looked to
Colonel Harrington. "Are we to hold the Jordan area, as well,
sir?"
"You won't need
much here," Harrington said. "The militia can take over
now."
"And what
precisely are we to accomplish in the southern farm area?"
Falkenberg asked.
"I just told
you," Swale said. "Go down and put some pressure on the
Protective Association so they'll see reason."
"And how am I
to do that?"
"For heaven's
sake, Falkenberg, it's a punitive expedition. Go hurt them until
they're ready to give in."
"Burn farms and
towns. Shoot livestock. Destroy transport systems. That sort of
thing?"
"Well ... I'd
rather you didn't do it that way." "Then, Governor, exactly
what am I to do?" Falkenberg demanded. "I remind you that
the Protective Association is itself an occupying power. They don't
really care what we do to the farmers. They don't work that land;
they merely expropriate from those who do."
"Then confine
your punitive actions to the Protective Association - " Swale's
voice trailed off.
"I do not even
know how to identify them, sir. I presume that anyone I find actually
working the land is probably not one of the criminal element, but I
can hardly shoot everyone who happens to be idle at the moment I pass
through."
"You needn't be
sarcastic with me, Captain."
"Sir, I am
trying to point out the difficulties inherent in the orders you gave
me. If I have been impertinent, you have my apology."
Sure you do, I
thought. Deane and Louis grinned at each other and at me. Then we
managed to get our faces straight. I wondered what Falkenberg was
trying to do. I found out soon enough.
"Then what the
devil do you suggest?" Swale demanded.
"Governor,
there is a way I can assure you a reasonable and adequate grain
supply. It requires your cooperation. Specifically, you must withdraw
recognition from the Protective Association."
"And recognize
whom? An unorganized bunch of farmers who couldn't hold on to the
territory in the first place? Captain, I have sympathy for those
people, even if all of you here do suspect me of being a monster with
no feelings. My sympathy is of no matter. I must feed the people of
Harmony, and to do that I'll deal with the devil himself if that's
what it takes."
"And you very
nearly have," I muttered.
"What's that,
Lieutenant Slater?"
"Nothing,
Governor. Excuse me."
"I expect I
know what you said. Captain, let's suppose I do what you ask and
withdraw recognition from the Protective Association. Now what do I
do? We are not in the democracy-building business. My personal
sympathies may well lie with what we are pleased to call 'free and
democratic institutions,' but I happen to be an official of the
CoDominium, not of the United States. So, by the way, do you. If this
planet had been settled by Soviets, we wouldn't even be having this
conversation. There would be an assured grain supply, and no nonsense
about it."
"I hardly think
the situations are comparable," Colonel Harrington said.
"Nor I,"
Trevor added. That surprised me.
"I ask again,
what do we do?" the Governor said.
"Extend
CoDominium protection to the area," Harrington said. "It
needn't be permanent. I make no doubt that Colonel Trevor's people
have friends among the farmers. We may not be in the
democracy-building business, but there are plenty who'd like to try."
"You are asking
for all-out war on the Protective Association," Swale said.
"Colonel Harrington, have you any idea of what that will cost?
The Senate is very reluctantly paying the basic costs of keeping
these Marines on Arrarat. They have not sent one deci-credit to pay
for combat actions. How am I supposed to pay for this war?"
"You’ll
just have to tax the grain transactions, that's all," Harrington
said.
"I can't do
that."
"You're going
to have to do it. Captain Falkenberg is right. We can drive out the
Protective Association - with enough local cooperation - but we sure
as hell can't grow wheat for you. I suppose we could exterminate
everyone in the whole damned valley and repopulate it - "
"Now you're
being impertinent."
"My apologies,"
Harrington said. "Governor, just what do you want? Those farmers
aren't going to grow crops just to have a bunch of gangsters take the
profits. They'll move out first, or take the land out of cultivation.
Then what happens to your grain supply?"
"The situation
is more complex than you think, Colonel. Believe me, it is. Your
business is war and violence. Mine is politics, and I tell you that
things aren't always what they seem. The Protective Association can
keep Harmony supplied with grain at a reasonable price. That's what
we must have, and it's what you re going to get for me. Now you tell
me that my only alternatives are a war I can't pay for, or starvation
in the city. Neither is acceptable. I order you to send an
expeditionary force to Allansport. It will have the limited objective
of demonstrating our intent and putting sufficient pressure on the
Protective Association to make them reasonable, and that is the whole
objective."
Harrington studied
his fingernails for a moment. "Sir, I cannot accept the
responsibility."
"Damn you.
Captain Falkenberg, you will - "
"I can't accept
the responsibility, either, Governor."
"Then, by God,
I'll have Colonel Trevor lead it. Trevor, if you say you can't
accept responsibility, I damned well know a dozen militia officers
who can."
"Yes, sir.
Who'll command the Marines sir? They won't take orders from me. Not
directly."
"The
lieutenants will - " He stopped, because one by one, Deane,
Louis, and I all shook our heads.
"This is
blackmail! I'll have every one of you cashiered!"
Colonel Harrington
laughed. "Now, you know, I really doubt that. Me you might
manage to get at. But junior officers for refusing an assignment
their colonel turned down? Try peddling that to Admiral Lermontov and
he'll laugh like hell."
Swale sat down. He
struggled for a moment until he was in control of his voice. "Why
are you doing this?"
Colonel Harrington
shook his head slowly. "Governor, everything you said about the
service is true. We're used. They use us to bash heads so that some
senator's nephew can make a mega-credit. They hand people a raw deal
and then call on us to make the victims stay in the game. Most of the
time we have to take it. It doesn't mean we like it much. Once in a
while, just every now and then, the Fleet gets a chance to put
something right after you civilians mess it up. We don't pass up such
chances." Harrington's voice had been quiet, but now he let it
rise slightly. "Governor, just what the hell do you think men
become soldiers for? So that you can get promoted to a cushy job?"
"I have told
you, I would like to help those farmers. I can't do it. Cannot you
understand? We can't pay for a long campaign. Can't. Not won't.
Can't."
"Yes, sir,"
Colonel Harrington said. "I expect I'd better get back to
Garrison. The staffs going to have to work out a pretty strict
rationing plan."
"You think you
have won," the Governor said. "Not yet, Colonel. Not yet.
Colonel Trevor, I asked you to put a battalion of militia on
riverboats. How long will it take for them to get here?"
"Be here
tomorrow, sir."
"When they
arrive, I want you to have made arrangements for more fuel and
supplies. We are taking that battalion to Allansport, where I will
personally direct operations. I've no doubt we can make the
Protective Association see reason. As to the rest of you, you will
sit in this fort and rot for all I care. Good afternoon, gentlemen."
I told Kathryn about
the conference when I met her for supper that night. She listened
with bewilderment.
"I don't
understand, Hal," she finally blurted. "All that fuss about
costs. We'd pay for the campaign and be happy to do it."
"Do you think
the Governor knows that?" I asked.
"Of course he
knows it. I've told him, and I've brought him offers from some of the
other farmers. Don't you remember I asked him to loan us the 501st?"
"Sure, but you
weren't serious."
"I wasn't then,
but it sounded like such a good idea that later on we really tried to
hire you. He wasn't interested."
"Wasn't
interested in what?" Louis Bonneyman asked. "Is this an
intimate conversation, or may I join you?"
"Please do,"
Kathryn said. "We're just finishing - "
"I've had my
dinner, also," Louis said. "But I'll buy you a drink. Hal,
did you ever think old Harrington had that land of guts?"
"No. Surprised
me. So what happens next?"
"Beats me,"
Louis said. "But I'll give you a hint. I just finished helping
Sergeant Major cut orders putting this whole outfit on full field
alert as of reveille tomorrow."
"Figures. I
wonder just how much trouble His Excellency will get himself into."
Louis grinned. "With
any luck, he'll get himself killed and Colonel Harrington becomes
Acting Governor. Then we can really clean house."
"You can't wish
that on Irina's father," Kathryn protested. "I thought you
liked her, Louis."
"Her, yes. Her
old man I can live without. I'd have thought you'd share the
sentiment."
"He was kind
enough to let me live in his home," Kathryn said. "I don't
understand him at all. He seems like a good man. It's only when - "
"When he puts
on his Governor's hat," I said. "I keep wondering if we
blew it, Kathryn. If we'd taken the Governor up on his offer, we
could at least have gotten down there to do something. I might even
have caught the bastard that - You know who I mean."
"I'm glad you
didn't, Hal. It would have been horrible. Anything you did to those
gangsters they'd take out on my friends as soon as you'd left. I
wouldn't have helped you, and I don't think anyone else would,
because anybody that did would be signing death warrants for his
whole family, and all his friends, too."
"Sounds like a
rough gang," Louis said. "Thorough. If you're going to use
terror, go all the way. Unfortunately, it works."
Kathryn nodded.
"Yes. I've tried to explain it to Governor Swale. If he sends an
expedition there, a lot of my friends will try to help. They'll be
killed if he leaves those hoodlums in control when it's over. It
would be better if none of you ever went there."
"But the
Harmony merchants don't like the prices," Louis said. "They
want their grain cheaper, and Swale's got to worry about them, too. A
complaint from the Harmony city council wouldn't look too good on his
record. Somebody at BuColonial might take it seriously."
"Politics,"
Kathryn said. "Why can't - "
"Be your age,"
Louis said. "There's politics in the CoDominium, sure, but we
still keep the peace. And it's not all that bad, anyway. Swale was
appointed by Grand Senator Bronson's people."
"An unsavory
lot," I said.
"Maybe,"
Louis admitted. "Anyway, of course that means that Bronson's
enemies will be looking for reasons to discredit Swale. He's got to
be careful. The Harmony merchants still have friends at American
Express - and AmEx hates Bronson with a passion."
"I'd say our
Governor has problems, then," I said. "From the looks of
the troops he took with him, he won't scare the Association much. The
militia have pretty uniforms, but they're all city kids. All right
for holding walls and cruising along the Jordan now that we've
disarmed everybody here, but they're unlikely to scare anybody with
real combat experience."
XIV
WE PUT THE entire
battalion on ready alert, but nothing happened for a week. Colonel
Harrington stayed at Fort Beersheba and joined us in the officers'
mess in the evenings. Like Falkenberg, he liked bagpipes. To my
horror, so did Kathryn. I suppose every woman has some major failing.
"What the hell
is he doing?" Colonel Harrington demanded. "I'd have sworn
he'd have gotten himself into trouble by now. Maybe we've
overestimated the Mission Hills Protective Association. Why the hell
did they come up with that name? There aren't any Mission Hills on
this planet, to the best of my knowledge."
"They brought
the name with them, Colonel," Louis told him. "There's a
Southern California gang with that name. Been around for two or three
generations. A number of them happened to be on the same prison ship,
and they stuck together when they got there."
"How the hell
did you find that out?" Harrington demanded.
"Captain
Falkenberg insists that his people be thorough," Louis said. "It
was a matter of sifting through enough convicts until I found one who
knew, and then finding some corroboration."
"Well,
congratulations, Louis," Harrington said. "John, you've
done well with your collection of newlies."
"Thank you,
Colonel."
"Real test's
coming up now, though. What the hell is happening down there?
Steward, another whiskey, all around. If we can't fight, we can still
drink."
"Maybe Governor
Swale will come to terms with them," I said.
The colonel gave me
a sour look. "Doubt it, Hal. He's between a rock and a hard
place. The merchants won't stand for the prices those goons want, and
they think they've got him by the balls. They're not afraid of us,
you know. They've got a good idea of what's going on in Harmony. They
know damned well that Fleet isn't sending any more support to
Arrarat, and what the hell can a thousand men do? Even a thousand
Line Marines?"
"I hope they
think that way," Deane said. "If they'll stand and fight,
they're finished - "
"But they
won't," John Falkenberg said. "They're no fools. They won't
stand and fight, they'll run like hell as soon as we get close to
them. They've only to sit up in the hills and avoid us. Eventually
we'll have to leave, but they won't."
Harrington nodded.
"Yeah. In the long run those poor damned farmers will have to
cut it for themselves. Maybe they'll make it. At least we can try to
set things right for them. John, do you think the pipers have had
their drink by now?"
"I'm certain of
it, Colonel. Lazar! Have Pipe Major bring us a tune!"
Eight days after the
Governor left Fort Beersheba, we still had no word. That night there
was the usual drinking with the pipers in the mess. I excused myself
early and went up to my rooms with Kathryn. I still couldn't touch
her without setting her to trembling, but we were working on it. I'd
decided I was in love with her, and I could wait for the physical
aspects to develop. I didn't dare think very far ahead. We had no
real future that I could see, but for the moment just being together
was enough. It wasn't a situation either of us enjoyed, but we hated
to be separated.
The phone buzzed.
"Slater," I told it.
"Sergeant Major
Ogilvie, sir. You're wanted in the staff room immediately."
"Hallelujah. Be
right there, Sergeant Major." As I hung up, Brady's trumpet
sounded "On Full Kits." I turned to Kathryn. We were both
grinning like idiots. "This is it, sweetheart."
"Yes. Now that
it's happened, I'm scared."
"So am I. As
Falkenberg says, we're all scared, but it's an officer's job not to
show it. Be back when I can - "
"Just a
second." She came to me and put her hands on my shoulders. Her
arms went around me, and she pulled me against herself. "See?
I'm hardly shaking at all." She kissed me, quickly, then a long,
lingering kiss. "This is one hell of a time for a miraculous
psychiatric cure," I said.
"Shut up and
get out of here."
"Aye,
aye, ma'am." I went out quickly. Hartz was in the
hallway. "I will have our gear ready, zur," he said. "And
now we fight." "I hope so."
As I walked across
the parade ground, I wondered why I felt so good. We were about to go
kill and maim a lot of people, and give them the chance to do it to
us. For a million reasons we ought to have been afraid, and we ought
to dread what was coming, but we didn't.
Is it that what we
think we ought to do is so thoroughly alien to what we really feel? I
couldn't kid myself that this time was different because our cause
was just. We say we love peace, but it doesn't excite us. Even
pacifists talk more about the horrors of war than about the glories
of peace.
And you're not
supposed to solve the problems of the universe, I told myself. But
you do get to kill the man that raped your girl.
The others were
already in the conference room, with Colonel Harrington at the head
of the table.
"The expected
has happened," Harrington said. I knew for a fact that he'd
drunk four double whiskeys since supper, but there wasn't a trace of
it in his speech.
I'd swallowed two
quick-sober pills on the way over. I really hadn't needed them. I was
sure they hadn't had time to dissolve, but I felt fine.
"Our Governor
has managed to get himself besieged in Allansport," Harrington
said. "With half of his force outside the town. He wants us to
bail him out. I have told him we will march immediately - for a
price."
"Then he's
agreed to withdraw recognition of the Association?" Deane asked.
"Agreed to,
yes. He hasn't done it yet. I think he's afraid that the instant he
does, they will get really nasty. However, I have his word on it, and
I will hold him to it. Captain Falkenberg, the 501st is hereby
ordered to drive the Mission Hills Protective Association out of the
Allan River Valley by whatever means you think best. You may
cooperate with local partisan forces in the area and make reasonable
agreements with them. The entire valley is to be placed under
CoDominium protection."
"Aye,
aye, sir." Falkenberg's detached calm broke for a moment
and he let a note of triumph get into his voice.
"Now, Captain,
if you will be kind enough to review your battle plan,"
Harrington said.
"Sir."
Falkenberg used the console to project a map onto the briefing
screen.
I'd already
memorized the area, but I examined it again. About ten kilometers
upriver from Beersheba, the Jordan was joined by a tributary known as
the Allan River. The Allan runs southwest through forest lands for
about fifty kilometers, then turns and widens in a valley that lies
almost due north-south. The east side of the Allan Valley is narrow,
because no more than twenty klicks from the river there's a high
mountain range and east of that is high desert. Nobody lives there
and nobody would want to. The west side, though, is some of the most
fertile land on Arrarat. The valley is irregularly shaped, narrowing
to no more than twenty-five klicks wide in places, but opening out to
more than one hundred klicks in others. It reminded me of the San
Joaquin Valley of California, a big fertile bowl with rugged
mountains on both sides of it.
Allansport is 125
klicks upriver from where the Allan runs into the Jordan. Falkenberg
left the big valley map on one screen and projected a detail onto the
other. He fiddled with the console to bring red and green lines
representing friendly and hostile forces onto the map.
"As you can
see, Governor Swale and one company of militia have taken a defensive
position in Allansport," Falkenberg said. "The other two
militia companies are south of him, actually upriver. How the devil
he ever got himself into such a stupid situation, I cannot say."
"Natural
talent," Colonel Harrington muttered.
"No doubt,"
Falkenberg said. "We have two objectives. The minor, but most
urgent, is to rescue Governor Swale. The major objective is
pacification of the area. It seems very unlikely that we can
accomplish that without a general uprising of the locals in our
favor. Agreed?"
We were all silent
for a moment. "Mr. Bonneyman, I believe you're the junior,"
Colonel Harrington said.
"Agreed, sir,"
Louis said.
Deane and I spoke at
once. "Agreed."
"Excellent. I
remind you that this conference is recorded," Falkenberg said.
Of course, I
thought. All staff conferences are. It didn't seem like Falkenberg
and Harrington to spread responsibility around by getting our
opinions on record, but I was sure they had their reasons.
"The best way
to stimulate a general uprising would be to inflict an immediate and
major defeat on the Protective Association," Falkenberg said. "A
defeat, not merely driving them away, but bringing them to battle and
eliminating a large number of them. It is my view that this is
sufficiently important to justify considerable risks. Is that agreed
to?"
Aha! I thought.
Starting with Louis, we all stated our agreements.
"Then we can
proceed to the battle plan," Falkenberg said. "It is
complex, but I think it is worth a try. You will notice that there is
a pass into the hills west of Allensport. Our informants tell us that
this is the route the Association forces will take if they are forced
to retreat. Furthermore, there is a sizable militia force south of
Allansport. If the militia were strengthened with local partisans,
and if we can take the pass before the besieging hostiles realize
their danger, we will have them trapped. The main body of the
battalion will march upriver, approach from the north, and engage
them. We won't get them all, but we should be able to eliminate quite
a lot of them. With that kind of victory behind us, persuading the
other ranchers to rise up and join us should not be difficult."
As he talked he
illustrated the battle plan with lights on the map. He was right. It
was complex.
"Questions?"
Falkenberg asked.
"Sir," I
said, "I don't believe those two militia companies can take the
pass. I certainly wouldn't count on it."
"They can't,"
Harrington said. "But they're pretty steady on defense. Give 'em
a strong position to hold and those lads will give a good account of
themselves."
"Yes,"
Falkenberg said. "I propose to stiffen the militia outside the
city with two sections of Marines. We still have our Skyhooks, and I
see no reason why we can't use them again."
"Here we go
again," I muttered. "Even so, sir, it all depends on how
strongly that pass is held, and we don't know that. Or do we?"
"Only that it
will be defended," Falkenberg said. "The attack on the pass
will have to be in the nature of a probe, ready to be withdrawn if
the opposition is too stiff."
"I see." I
thought about that for a while. I'd never done anything like that, of
course. I might have a military medal, but I couldn't kid myself
about my combat experience. "I think I can manage that, sir,"
I said.
Falkenberg gave me
his half grin, the expression he used when he was springing one of
his surprises. "I'm afraid you won't have all the fun this time,
Mr. Slater. I intend to lead the Skyhook force myself. You'll have
command of the main body."
There was more to
his plan, including a part I didn't like at all. He was taking
Kathryn with him on the Skyhook. I couldn't really object. She'd
already volunteered. Falkenberg had called her in my rooms while I
was on the way over to the conference.
"I really have
little choice," Falkenberg said. "We must have someone
reliable who is known to the locals. The whole plan depends on
getting enough local assistance to seal off the valley to the south
of Allansport. Otherwise, there's no point to it."
I had to agree. I
didn't have to like it. I could imagine what she'd say if I tried to
stop her.
Falkenberg finished
with the briefing. "Any more questions? No? Then once again I'll
ask for your opinions."
"Looks all
right to me," Louis said. Of course he would. He was going with
Falkenberg in the Skyhooks.
"No problem
with heavy weapons," Deane said. "I like it."
"Mr. Slater?"
"My operation
looks straightforward enough. No problems."
"It's
straightforward," Colonel Harrington said, "but not
trivial. You've got the trickiest part of the job. You have to seal
off the northern escape route, engage the enemy, rescue the Governor,
and then swing around like a hammer to smash the hostiles against the
anvil Captain Falkenberg will erect at the passes. The timing is
critical."
"I have
confidence in Lieutenant Slater," Falkenberg said.
"So have I, or
I wouldn't approve this plan," Harrington said. "But don't
ignore what we're doing here. In order to carry out the major
objective of clearing the hostiles from the whole valley, we're
leaving Governor Swale in a rather delicate situation. If something
goes wrong, Sector will have our heads - with justice, I might add."
He stood, and we all got to our feet. "But I like it. No doubt
the Association thinks we'll be rushing directly to the Governor's
aid, and their people are prepared for that. I hate to be obvious."
"So do I,"
Falkenberg said.
Harrington nodded
curtly. "Gentlemen, you have your orders."
The riverboats
looked like something out of the American Civil War as they puffed
their way down the dark river. We'd had a rainstorm when we left the
fort, but now the sky was clear and dark, with bright stars overhead.
My rivercraft were really nothing more than barges with steam engines
and enough superstructure to get cargo under cover. They were made of
wood, of course; there wasn't enough of a metal industry on Arrarat
to build steel hulls, and not much reason to want to.
I had three barges,
each about fifty meters long and twenty wide, big rectangular
floating platforms with cabins whose roofs served as raised decks,
and a central bridge to control them. Every centimeter of available
space was covered with troops, mules, guns, supply wagons,
ammunition, tentage, and rations. The 501st was going to the Allan
Valley to stay.
The barges burned
wood, which we had to stop and cut with chain saws. In addition, I
had one amphibious hovercraft with light armor. It could make
fifty-five kilometers an hour compared to the eleven kilometers an
hour the barges got under full steam. Perched on top of the third
barge was Number Three helicopter, which could make a couple of
hundred kilometers an hour. The discrepancies in speeds would have
been amusing if they weren't so frustrating.
"One goddamned
DC-45," Deane said. "One. That's all, one Starlifter, and
we could be there in an hour."
"We make do
with what we got," I told him. "Besides, think how romantic
it all is. Pity we don't have a leadsman up in the bows singing out
the river depth, instead of a sonar depth finder."
The hovercraft ran
interference to be sure there weren't any nasty surprises waiting for
us. As we got closer to Allansport, I sent up the chopper to make a
high-altitude survey of the landing area. We were landing a good
twenty klicks downriver from Allansport. Not only were the banks a
lot steeper farther upriver, but we didn't want to scare the
Association off by landing too close. Governor Swale was screaming at
me hourly, of course. He wanted us in Allansport right now. When I
told him where we were putting ashore, he was almost hysterical.
"What the hell
are you doing?" he demanded. "All you have to do is show
up! They won't stand and fight you. This is all a political maneuver.
Put heavy pressure on them and they'll come to terms."
I didn't point out
that we didn't intend to come to terms with the Association. "Sir,
Colonel Harrington approved the battle plan."
"I don't care
if God the Father approved it!" Swale shouted. "What are
you doing? I know Falkenberg is south of here with troops he brought
in by helicopter, but he won't tell me what he's doing! And now he's
withdrawn the militia! I'm trapped in here, and you're playing some
kind of game! I demand to know what you intend!"
"Governor, I
don't know myself," I said. "I just know what my orders
are. We'll have you out of there in a few hours. Out." I
switched off the set and turned to Deane.
"Well," I
said, "we know Louis and Falkenberg are doing something down
south of us. Wish I knew how they're making out."
"If there's
something we need to know, they'll tell us," Deane said.
"Worried about Kathryn?"
"Some."
"Never get so
attached to anyone that you worry about her. Saves a lot of skull
sweat."
"Yeah, sure.
Helmsman, that looks like our landing area. Look sharp."
"Aye, aye,
sir."
"Hartz, get me
the chopper pilot."
"Zur."
Hartz fiddled with the radio for a moment, then handed me the mike.
"Sergeant
Stragoff, sir."
"Stragoff, I
want you to make a complete sweep of our landing area. There should
be two unarmed people there to meet us. They'll show you a blue
light. If they show any other color, spray the whole area and get the
hell out of there. If they show blue, tell me about it, but I still
want a complete survey."
"Aye, aye,
sir."
"And just who
is meeting us?" Deane asked.
"Don't know
their names," I said. "Falkenberg said he'd try to set up a
welcoming committee of local resistance types. If we're satisfied
with them, we help 'em arm some of their neighbors. That's why we
brought those extra rifles."
The radio came to
life again. "Two people with a blue light, sir. Nothing else on
radar or IR."
"Good. Okay,
now make a wider sweep. I don't want to find out there's an artillery
battery registered on our landing area."
"Sir."
"Sergeant
Major," I said.
"Sir."
"You can take
the hovercraft in to occupy the landing area. Treat the welcoming
committee politely, but keep an eye on them. When the area's secure,
we'll all go ashore."
"Sir."
I looked up at the
stars. There was no moon. About five hours to dawn. With any luck
we'd be deployed and ready for combat by first light. "Okay,
Deane, you're in charge," I said. "Hartz, you stay with
him."
"If the
lieutenant orders it."
"Damn it, I did
order it. Belay that. All right, come with me."
We went to the deck
level. The river was less than a meter below us. It wasn't a river to
swim in; there are aquatic snakes on Arrarat, and their poison will
finish off anything that has protein in it. It acts as a catalyst to
coagulate cell bodies. I had no real desire to be a hard rubber lump.
We had one canoe on
board. I'd already found troopers who knew something about handling
them. We had a dozen men familiar with the screwy watercraft, which
didn't surprise me. The story is that you can find any skill in a
Line Marine regiment, and it seems to be true. In my own company I
had two master masons, an artist, a couple of electronic techs
(possibly engineers, but they weren't saying), at least one disbarred
lawyer, a drunken psychiatrist, and a chap the men claimed was a
defrocked preacher.
Corporal Anuraro
showed me how to get into the canoe without swamping it. We don't
have those things in Arizona. As they paddled me ashore, I thought
about how silly the situation was. I was being paddled in a canoe, a
device invented at least ten thousand years ago. I was carrying a
pair of light-amplifying field glasses based on a principle not
discovered until after I was born. Behind me was a steamboat that
might have been moving up the Missouri River at the time of Custer's
last stand, and I got to this planet in a starship.
The current was
swift, and I was glad to have experienced men at the paddles. The
water flowed smoothly alongside. Sometimes an unseen creature made
riffles in it. Over on the shore the hovercraft had already landed,
and someone was signaling us with a light. When we got to the bank I
was glad to be on dry land.
"Where are our
visitors, Roszak?" I asked.
"Over here,
sir."
Two men, both
ranchers or farmers. One was Oriental. They looked to be about fifty
years old. As agreed, they weren't armed.
"I'm Lieutenant
Slater," I said.
The Oriental
answered. "I am Wan Loo. This is Harry Seeton."
"I've heard of
you. Kathryn says you helped her, once."
"Yes. To escape
from a cage," Wan Loo said.
"You're
supposed to prove something," I said.
Wan Loo smiled
softly. "You have a scar on your left arm. It is shaped like a
scimitar. When you were a boy you had a favorite horse named
Candybar."
"You've seen
Kathryn," I said. "Where is she?"
"South of
Allansport. She is trying to raise a force of ranchers to reinforce
Captain Falkenberg. We were sent here to assist you."
"We've done
pretty well," Harry Seeton added. "A lot of ranchers will
fight if you can furnish weapons. But there's something else."
"Yes?"
"Please do not
think we are not grateful," Wan Loo said. "But you must
understand. We have fought for years, and we cannot fight any longer.
We have an uneasy peace in this valley. It is the peace of
submission, and we do not care for it, but we will not throw it away
simply to help you. If you have not come to stay, please take your
soldiers, rescue your Governor, and go away without involving us."
"That's blunt
enough," I said.
"We have to be
blunt," Harry Seeton said. "Wan Loo isn't talking for us.
We're outlaws, anyway. We're with you no matter what happens. But we
can't go ask our friends to join if you people don't mean it when you
say you'll stay and protect them."
"It is an old
story," Wan Loo said. "You cannot blame the farmers. They
would rather have you than the Association, but if you are here only
for a little while, and the Association is here forever, what can
they do? My ancestors were faced with the same problem on Earth. They
chose to support the West, and when the Americans, who had little
stake in the war, withdrew their forces, my great-grandfather gave up
land his family had held for a thousand years to go with them. He had
no choice. Do you think he would have chosen the American side if he
had known that would happen?"
"The CoDominium
has extended protection to this valley," I said.
"Governments
have no honor," Wan Loo said. "Many people have none,
either, but at least it is possible for a man to have honor. It is
not possible for a government. Do you pledge that you will not
abandon our friends if we arouse them for you?"
"Yes."
"Then we have
your word. Kathryn says you are an honorable man. If you will help us
with transportation and radio, by noon tomorrow I believe we will
have five hundred people to assist you."
"And God help
'em if we lose," Seeton said. "God help 'em."
"We won't
lose," I said.
"A battle is
not a war," Wan Loo said. "And wars are not won by weapons,
but by the will to win them. We will go now."
XV
IT IS A basic
military maxim that no battle plan ever survives contact with the
enemy, but by noon it looked as if this operation would be an
exception. Falkenberg's combat team - two platoons of B Company,
brought down by Skyhook after we were aboard our barges - struck at
the passes just before dawn and in three hours of sharp fighting had
taken them over. He brought up two companies of militia to dig in and
hold them.
Meanwhile, the
ranchers in the south were armed and turned out on command to block
any southward retreat. I had only scattered reports from that sector,
but all seemed under control. Kathryn had raised a force of nearly
five hundred, which ought to be enough to hold the southern defensive
line.
Then it was my turn.
Two hours after dawn I had a skirmish line stretching eight
kilometers into the valley. My left flank was anchored on the river.
There'd be no problem there. The right flank was a different story.
"It bothers
me," I told Falkenberg when I reported by radio. "My right
flank is hanging in thin air. The only thing protecting us is Wan
Loo's ranchers, and there's no more than three hundred of them - if
that many." Wan Loo hadn't been as successful as Kathryn had
been. Of course, he'd had a lot less time.
"And just what
do you expect to hit you in the flank?" Falkenberg asked.
"I don't know.
I just don't like it when we have to depend on other people - and on
the enemy doing what we want them to do."
"Neither do I,
but do you have an alternative to suggest?"
"No, sir."
"Then carry out
your orders, Mr. Slater. Advance on Allansport."
"Aye, aye,
sir."
It wasn't an easy
battle line to control. I had units strung all across the valley,
with the major strength on the left wing that advanced along the
river. The terrain was open, gently rolling hills with lines of
hedges and eucalyptus trees planted as windbreaks. The fields were
recently harvested, and swine had been turned loose in the wheat
stubble. The fields were muddy, but spread as we were, we didn't
churn them up much.
The farmhouses were
scattered at wide intervals. These had been huge farm holdings. The
smallest were over a kilometer square, and some were much larger. A
lot of the land was unworked. The houses were stone and earth, partly
underground, built like miniature fortresses. Some had sections of
wall blown out by explosives.
Harry Seeton was
with me in my ground-effects caravan. When we came to a farmhouse,
he'd try to persuade the owner and his children and relatives to join
us. If they agreed, he'd send them off to join the growing number on
our right wing.
"Something
bothers me," I told Seeton. "Sure, you have big families
and everybody works, but how did you cultivate all this land? That
last place was at least five hundred hectares."
"Rainfall
here's tricky," Seeton said. "Half the time we've got
swamp, and the other half we have drought. The only fertilizer is
manure. We ve got to leave a lot of the land fallow, or planted in
legumes to be plowed under."
"It still seems
like a lot of work for just one family."
"Well, we had
hired help. Convicts, mostly. Ungrateful bastards joined the
Association gangs first chance they got. Tell me something,
Lieutenant."
"Yes?"
"Are your men
afraid they'll starve to death? I never saw anything like it, the way
they pick up anything they can find." He pointed to one B
Company trooper who was just ahead of us. He wasn't a large man to
begin with, and he had his pockets stuffed with at least three
chickens, several ears of corn, and a bottle he'd liberated
somewhere. There were bulges in his pack that couldn't have come from
regulation equipment, and he'd even strapped firewood on top of it so
that we couldn't see his helmet from behind him. "They're like a
plague of locusts," Seeton said.
"Not much I can
do about it," I said. "I can't be everywhere, and the Line
Marines figure anything that's not actually penned up and watched is
fair game. They'll eat well for a few days - it beats monkey and
greasy rice." I didn't add that if he thought things were bad
now, with the troops on the way to a battle, he'd really be horrified
after the troops had been in the field a few weeks.
There were shots
from ahead. "It's started," I said. "How many of these
farm areas are still inhabited by your people?"
"Not many, this
close to Allansport. The town itself is almost all Association
people. Or goddamned collaborators, which is the same thing. I expect
that's why they haven't blasted it down. They outnumber your
Governor's escort by quite a lot."
"Yeah."
That bothered me. Why hadn't the Association forces simply walked in
and taken Governor Swale? As Seeton said, Swale had only a couple of
companies of militia with him, yet the siege had been a stalemate. As
if they hadn't really wanted to capture him.
Of course, they had
problems no matter what they did. If they killed the Governor,
Colonel Harrington would be in control. I had to assume the
Protective Association had friends in Harmony, possibly even inside
the palace. Certainly there were plenty of leaks. They'd know that
Harrington was a tougher nut than Swale.
The resistance was
stronger as we approached Allansport. The Association forces were far
better armed than we'd expected them to be. They had mortars and
light artillery, and plenty of ammunition for both.
We had two close
calls with the helicopters. I'd sent them forward as gunships to
support the advancing infantry. We found out the Association had
target-seeking missiles, and the only reason they didn't get the
choppers was that their gunners were too eager. They fired while the
helicopters still had time to maneuver. I pulled the choppers back to
headquarters. I could use them for reconnaissance, but I wasn't going
to risk them in combat.
We silenced their
artillery batteries one by one. They had plenty of guns, but their
electronics were ineffective. Their counterbattery fire was pathetic.
We'd have a couple of exchanges, our radars would backtrack their
guns, and that would be the end of it.
"Where the hell
did they get all that stuff?" I asked Seeton.
"They've always
had a lot of equipment. Since the first time they came out of the
hills, they've been pretty well armed. Lately it's gotten a lot
worse. One reason we gave up."
"It had to come
from off-planet," I said. "How?"
"I don't know.
Ask your governor."
"I intend to.
That stuff had to come through the spaceport. Somebody's getting rich
selling guns to the Protective Association."
We moved up to the
outer fringes of Allensport. The town was spread across low hills
next to the river. It had a protective wall made of brick and adobe,
like the houses. Deane's artillery tore huge gaps in the wall and the
troops moved into the streets beyond. The fighting was fierce. Seeton
was right about the sentiments of the townspeople. They fought from
house to house, and the Marines had to move cautiously, with plenty
of artillery support. We were flattening the town as we moved into
it.
Governor Swale and
two companies of Harmony militia were dug in on the bluffs
overlooking the river, very nearly in the center of the semicircular
town. They held the riverfront almost to the steel bridge that
crossed the Allan. I'd hoped to reach the Governor by dark, but the
fighting in the town was too severe. At dusk I called to report that
I wouldn't reach him for another day.
"However, we're
within artillery range of your position," I told him. "We
can give you fire support if there's any serious attempt to take your
position by storm."
"Yes. You've
done well," he told me.
That was a surprise.
I'd expected him to read me off for not getting there sooner. Live
and learn, I told myself. "I'm bringing the right flank around
in an envelopment," I told Swale. "By morning we'll have
every one of them penned in Allansport, and we can deal with them at
our leisure."
"Excellent,"
Swale said. "My militia officers tell me the Association forces
have very little strength in the southern part of the town. You may
be able to take many of the streets during the night."
We halted at dark. I
sent Ardwain forward with orders to take A Company around the edges
of the town and occupy sections at the southern end. Then I had
supper with the troops. As Seeton had noticed, they'd provisioned
themselves pretty well. No monkey and rice tonight! We had roast
chicken and fresh corn.
After dark I went
back to my map table. I'd parked the caravan next to a stone
farmhouse two klicks from the outskirts of Allansport. Headquarters
platoon set up the C.P., and there were a million details to attend
to: supply, field hospitals, plans to evacuate wounded by helicopter,
shuffling ammunition around to make sure each unit had enough of the
right kind. The computers could handle a lot of it, but there were
decisions to be made and no one to make them but me. Finally I had
time to set up our positions into the map table computer and make new
plans. By feeding the computer the proper inputs, it would show the
units on the map, fight battles and display the probable outcomes,
move units around under fire and subtract our casualties. . . .
It reminded me of
the afternoon's battles. There'd been fighting going on, but I'd seen
almost none of it.
Just more lines on
the map table, and later the bloody survivors brought back to the
field hospital. Tri-V war, none of it real. The observation satellite
had made a pass over the Allan Valley just before dark, and the new
pictures were relayed from Garrison. They weren't very clear. There'd
been low clouds, enough to cut down the resolution and leave big gaps
in my data about the Association forces.
"Number One
chopper's coming in, sir," Sergeant Jaski reported. He was a
headquarters platoon communications expert, an elderly wizened chap
who ran the electronics section with smiles and affection until
something went wrong. Then he could be as rough as any NCO in the
Fleet.
Number One was
Falkenberg's. I wasn't surprised when the captain came in a few
minutes later. He'd said he might join the main body if things were
quiet up at the pass. I got up from the map table to give him the
command seat. It hadn't fit me too well, anyway; I was glad to have
someone else take charge.
"Just going
over the satellite pix," I told him.
"One reason I
came by. Things are going well. When that happens I wonder what I've
overlooked." He keyed the map table to give him the current
positions of our troops. "Ardwain having any problem with the
envelopment?" he asked.
"No, sir."
He grunted and
played with the console keys. Then he stared at the satellite
pictures. "Mr. Slater, why haven't the Association troops taken
the riverbank areas behind the Governor?"
"I don't know,
sir."
"Any why didn't
His Excellency withdraw by water? He could certainly have gotten out,
himself and a few men."
"Didn't want to
abandon the militia, sir?"
"Possibly."
I looked at the
time. Two hours after dark. The troops were well dug in along the
perimeter, except for Ardwain's mobile force moving toward the
southern edge of the town.
Falkenberg went
through the day's reports and looked up, frowning. "Mr. Slater,
why do I have the impression that there's something phony about this
whole situation?"
"In what way,
sir?"
"It's been too
easy. We've been told the Association is a tough outfit, but so far
the only opposition has been some infantry screens that withdrew
before you made real contact, and the first actual hard fighting was
when you reached the town."
"There were the
artillery duels, sir."
"Yes. All won
by a few exchanges of fire. Doesn't that seem strange?"
"No, sir."
I had good reason to know that Deane's lads could do some great
shooting. After the support they gave me at the roadblock below.
Beersheba, I was ready to believe they could do anything. "I
hadn't thought about it, sir, but now that you ask - well, it was
easy. A couple of exchanges and their guns are quiet."
Falkenberg was
nodding. "Knocked out, or merely taken out of action? Looking at
this map, I'd say you aren't ready for the second alternative."
"I - "
"You've done
well, Lieutenant. It's my nasty suspicious mind. I don't like
surprises. Furthermore, why hasn't the Governor asked to be evacuated
by water? Why is he sitting there in Allansport?"
"Sir - "
He wouldn't let me
finish. "I presume you've reported your positions and plans to
the Governor?"
"Certainly,
sir."
"And we took
the pass with very little effort. Next to no casualties. Yet the
Association is certainly aware that we hold it. Why haven't their
town forces done something? Run, storm the bluffs and take the
Governor for a hostage - something!" He straightened in
decision. "Sergeant Major!"
"Sir!"
I want a message
taken to Centurion Ardwain. I don't want any possibility of it being
intercepted."
"Sir."
"He's to hold
up on the envelopment. Send a couple of patrols forward to dig in
where they can observe, but keep our forces out of Allansport. He can
move around out there and make a lot of noise. I want them to think
we've continued the envelopment, but, in fact, Ardwain is to take his
troops northwest and dig in no closer than two klicks to the town.
They're to do that as quietly and invisibly as possible."
"Yes, sir."
Ogilvie went out.
"Insurance, Mr.
Slater," Falkenberg said. "Insurance. We didn't need your
envelopment."
"Yes, sir."
"Confused,
Mister?"
"Yes, sir."
"Just
preserving options, Lieutenant. I don't like to commit my forces
until I'm certain of my objectives."
"But the
objective is to trap the Association forces and neutralize them,"
I said. "The envelopment would have done that. We wouldn't have
to trust to the ranchers to keep them from escaping to the south."
"I understood
that, Lieutenant. Now, if you'll excuse me, we've both got work to
do."
"Yes, sir."
I left the caravan to find another place to work. There was plenty to
do. I set up shop in one of the farmhouse rooms and went back to
shuffling papers. About an hour later Deane Knowles came in.
"I got the
change of orders," he said. "What's up?"
"Damfino. Have
a seat? Coffee's over there."
"I'll have
some, thanks." He poured himself a cup and sat across from me.
The room had a big wooden table, rough-hewn from a single tree. That
table would have been worth a fortune on Earth. Except for a few
protected redwoods, I doubted there was a tree that size in the
United States.
"Don't you
think I ought to know what's going on?" Deane asked. His voice
was friendly, but there was a touch of sarcasm in it.
"Bug Falkenberg
if you really want answers," I said. "He doesn't tell me
anything, either. All I know is he's sent A Company out into the
boonies, and when I asked him to let me join my company, he said I
was needed here."
"Tell me about
it," Deane said.
I described what had
happened.
Deane blew on the
hot coffee, then took a sip. "You're telling me that Falkenberg
thinks we've put our heads in a trap."
"Yes. What do
you think?"
"Good point
about the artillery. I thought things were going too well myself.
Let's adopt his theory and see where it leads."
"You do
understand there's only one person who could have set this
theoretical trap," I said.
"Yes."
"What possible
motive could he have?" I demanded.
Deane shrugged.
"Even so, let's see where it leads. We assume for the purposes
of discussion that Governor Hugo Swale has entered into a conspiracy
with a criminal gang to inflict anything from a defeat to a disaster
on the 501st - "
"And you see
how silly it sounds," I said. "Too silly to discuss."
"Assume it,"
Deane insisted. "That means that the Protective Association is
fully aware of our positions and our plans. What could they do with
that information?"
"That's why
it's so stupid," I said. "So what if they know where we
are? If they come out and fight, they'll still get a licking. They
can't possibly expect to grind up professional troops! They may be
great against ranchers and women and children, but this is a
battalion of Line Marines."
"A provisional
battalion."
"Same thing."
"Is it? Be
realistic, Hal. We've had one campaign, a short one. Otherwise, we're
still what came here - a random assortment of troops, half of them
recruits, another quarter scraped out of guardhouses, commanded by
three newlie lieutenants and the youngest captain in the Fleet. Our
colonel's a superannuated military policeman, and we've not a quarter
of the equipment a regular line battalion carries."
"We're a match
for anything a criminal gang can put in the field - "
"A well-armed
criminal gang," Deane said. "Hold onto your regimental
pride, Hal. I'm not downgrading the 501st. The point is that we may
know we're a damned good outfit, but there's not much reason for
anyone else to believe it."
"They'll soon
have reason to think differently."
"Maybe."
Deane continued to study the maps. "Maybe."
XVI
THE NIGHT WAS quiet.
I went on patrol about midnight, not to inspect the guard - we could
depend on the NCO's for all that - but mostly to see what it was like
out there. The troops were cheerful, looking forward to the next
day's battles. Even the recruits grinned wolfishly. They were facing
a disorganized mob, and we had artillery superiority. They'd pitched
tents by maniples, and inside each tent they'd set up their tiny
field stoves so there was hot coffee and chicken stew - and they'd
found wine in some of the farmhouses. Our bivouac had more the
atmosphere of a campout than an army just before a battle.
Underneath it all
was the edge that men have when they're going to fight, but it was
well hidden. You're sure it's the other guy who'll buy the farm.
Never you. Deep down you know better, but you never talk about that.
An hour before dawn
every house along the southern edge of Allansport exploded in red
fire. In almost the next instant a time-on-target salvo fell just
outside the walls. The bombardment continued, sharp thunder in the
night, with red flashes barely visible through the thick mist rising
up off the river. I ran to the command caravan.
Falkenberg was
already there, of course. I doubt if he'd ever gone to bed. Sergeant
Jaski had gotten communications with one of the forward patrols.
"Corporal
Levine, sir. I'm dug in about five hundred meters outside the walls.
Looks like it was mines in the houses, Captain. Then they dropped a
hell of a load onto where we'd have been if we'd moved up last
night."
"What's your
situation, Levine?" Falkenberg demanded.
"Dug in deep,
sir. They killed a couple of my squad even so. It's thick out here,
sir. Big stuff. Not just mortars."
That was obvious
from the sound, even as far away as we were. No light artillery makes
that kind of booming sound.
"A moment,
Captain," Levine said. There was a long silence. "Can't
keep my head up long, Captain. They're still pounding the area. I see
movement in the town. Looks like assault troops coming out the gate.
The fire's lifting now. Yeah, those are assault troops. A lot of
'em."
"Sergeant
Major, put the battalion on alert for immediate advance,"
Falkenberg said. "Jaski, when's the next daylight pass of the
spy satellite over this area?"
"Seventy
minutes after daylight, sir."
"Thank you.
Levine, you still there?"
"Yes, Captain.
There's more troops moving out of Allansport. Goddamn, there's a
couple of tanks. Medium jobs. Suslov class, I'd say. I didn't know
them bastards had tanks! Where'd they get them?"
"Good question.
Levine, keep your head down and stay out of sight. I want you to stay
alive."
"Won't fight
over those orders, Captain."
"They're
breaking out toward the south," Falkenberg said. "Jaski,
get me Lieutenant Bonneyman."
"Sir."
"While you're
at it, see if you can raise Centurion Cernan at the pass."
"Aye,
aye, sir." Jaski worked at the radio for a moment. "No
answer from Mr. Bonneyman, sir. Here's Cernan."
"Thank you."
Falkenberg paused. "Mr. Slater, stay here for a moment. You'll
need instructions. Centurion Cernan, report."
"Not much to
report, Captain. Some movement up above us."
"Above you.
Hostiles coming down the pass?"
"Could be,
Captain, but I don't know. I have patrols up that way, but they
haven't reported yet."
"Dig in,
Cernan," Falkenberg said. "I'll try to send you some
reinforcements. You've got to hold that pass no matter which
direction it's attacked from."
"Aye, aye,
sir."
Falkenberg nodded.
The map board was crawling with symbols and lights as reports came in
to Jaski's people and they were programmed onto the display. "Wish
I had some satellite pix," Falkenberg said. "There's only
one logical move the Association can be making at this point."
He was talking to
himself. Maybe he wasn't. Maybe he thought I understood him, but I
didn't.
"In any event,
we have the only sizable military force on the entire planet,"
Falkenberg said. "We can't risk its destruction."
"But we've got
to relieve Bonneyman and the ranchers," I protested. I didn't
mention Kathryn. Falkenberg might think it was just a personal
problem. Maybe it was. "Those tanks are headed south, right for
their lines."
"I know. Jaski,
keep trying to get Bonneyman."
"Sir!"
Outside the trumpets
were sounding. "On Full Kits." Brady's sang louder than the
rest.
"And we must
rescue the Governor," Falkenberg said. "Indeed, we must."
He came to a decision. "Jaski, get me Mr. Wan Loo."
While Jaski used the
radio, Falkenberg said, "I want you to talk to him, Mr. Slater.
He has met you and he has never met me. His first impulse will be to
rush to the aid of his friends in the south. He must not do that. His
forces, what there are of them, will be far more useful as
reinforcements for Centurion Cernan at the pass."
"Mr. Wan Loo,
sir," Jaski said.
Falkenberg handed me
the mike.
"I don't have
time to explain," I said. "You're to take everything you've
got and move up to the pass. There are mixed Marine and militia units
holding it, and there's a chance Association forces are moving down
the pass toward them. Centurion Cernan is in command up there, and
he'll need help."
"But what is
happening?" Wan Loo asked.
"The
Association forces in Allansport have broken loose and are heading
south," I said.
"But our
friends to the south - "
Falkenberg took the
mike. "This is Captain John Christian Falkenberg. We'll assist
your friends, but we can do nothing if the forces coming down the
pass are not contained. The best way you can help your friends is to
see that no fresh Association troops get into this valley."
There was a long
pause. "You would not abandon us, Captain?"
"No. We won't
abandon you," Falkenberg said.
"Then I have
assurances from two honorable men. We will help your friends,
Captain. And go with God."
"Thank you.
Out." He gave the mike back to Jaski. "Me, I'd rather have
a couple of anti-tank guns - or, better still, tanks of our own.
How's Old Beastly?"
"Still running,
sir." Old Beastly was the 501st's only tank, a relic of the days
when CD regulars had come to Arrarat. It was kept going by constant
maintenance.
"Where the
devil are the Protective Association people getting fuel for tanks?"
Falkenberg said. "To hell with it. Sergeant Major, I want
Centurion Ardwain to take two platoons of A Company and Old Beastly.
Their mission is to link up with Governor Swale. They're to attack
through the north end of the town along the riverbank, and they're to
move cautiously."
"Captain,
that's my company," I said. "Shouldn't I go with them?"
"No. I have a
number of operations to perform, and I'll need help. Don't you trust
Ardwain?"
"Of course I
trust him, sir - "
"Then let him
do his job. Sergeant Major. Ardwain's mission is to simulate at least
a company. He's to keep the men spread out and moving around. The
longer it takes for the enemy to tumble to how small his force is,
the better. And he's not to take chances. If they gang up on him, he
can run like hell."
"Sir,"
Ogilvie said. He turned to a waiting runner.
"Ardwain's got
a radio, sir," I said.
"Sure he has."
Falkenberg's voice was conversational. "Know much about the
theory of the scrambler codes we use, Mr. Slater?"
"Well, no, sir
- "
"You know this
much: in theory any message can be recorded off the air and
unscrambled with a good enough computer."
"Yes, sir. But
the only computer on Arrarat that could do that is ours, in
Garrison."
"And the
Governor's in the palace at Harmony," Falkenberg said. "And
those two are the ones we know about."
"Sir, you're
saying that Governor - "
"No," he
interrupted. "I have said nothing at all. I merely choose to be
certain that my orders are not intercepted. Jaski, where the hell is
Bonneyman?"
"Still trying
to raise him, sir."
"Any word from
Miss Malcolm or the other ranchers in the southern area?"
"No, sir."
More information
appeared on the map board. Levine was still reporting. There were
only the two tanks, but a sizable infantry force had come out of
Allansport and was headed south along the riverbank. If Levine was
right, there'd been more troops in Allansport than we'd ever
suspected.
"I have
Lieutenant Bonneyman, sir."
"Thank God."
Falkenberg grabbed the mike. "Mr. Bonneyman, nearly one thousand
hostiles have broken free from Allansport and are moving south. They
have with them at least two medium tanks and an appreciable artillery
train. Are you well dug in?"
"Yes, sir.
We'll hold them."
"The devil, you
will. Not with riflemen against that."
"We have to
hold, sir," Louis said. "Miss Malcolm and an escort moved
about twenty kilometers south during the night in the hopes of
raising more reinforcements. She was not successful, but she has
reports of hostile activities south of us. At least two, possibly
more, groups of Association forces are moving north. We must hold
them or they'll break through and link up with the Allansport groups.
"One moment,"
Falkenberg said. "Sergeant Major, I want helicopter observation
of the area to the south of Lieutenant Bonneyman and his ranchers.
Send Stragoff. He's to stay at high altitude, but it's vital that I
find out what's coming north at us out of Denisburg. All right, Mr.
Bonneyman. At the moment you don't know what you're facing."
"No, sir, but
I'm in a pretty good position. Rifle pits, and we're strengthening
the southern perimeter."
"All right.
You're probably safer there than anywhere else. If you get into
trouble, your escape route is east, toward the river. I'm bringing
the 501st around the town. We'll skirt it wide to stay away from
their artillery. Then we'll cut in toward the river and stay right
along the bank until we reach your position. If necessary, our
engineers can throw up a pontoon bridge and we'll go out across the
river to escape."
"Do we need to
run, Captain?" Louis sounded dismayed.
"As I have
explained to Mr. Slater, our prime objective is to retain the 501st
as a fighting unit. Be prepared to withdraw eastward on command, Mr.
Bonneyman. Until then, you're to hold that position no matter what
happens, and it's likely to be rough."
"Can do,
Captain."
"Excellent.
Now, what about Miss Malcolm?"
"I don't know
where she is, sir. I can send a patrol - "
"No. You have
no forces to spare. If you can get a message to her, have her rejoin
you if that's possible.
Otherwise, she's on
her own. You understand your orders, Mister?"
"Yes, sir."
"Excellent.
Out."
"So Kathryn's
expendable," I said.
"Anyone is
expendable, Mister. Sergeant Major, have Stragoff listen on Miss
Malcolm's frequency. If he can locate her, he can try to evacuate her
from the southern area, but he is not to compromise the
reconnaissance mission in doing it."
"Sir."
"You are one
hard-nosed son-of-a-bitch," I said.
His voice was calm
as he said, "Mister, I get paid to take responsibilities, and at
the moment I'm earning my keep. I'll overlook that remark. Once."
And if I say
anything else, I'll be in arrest while my troops are fighting. Got
you. "What are my orders, sir?"
"For the moment
you're to lead the forward elements of the 501st. I want the
battalion to move in column around the town, staying outside
artillery range. When you've reached a point directly southwest of
Allansport, halt the lead elements and gather up the battalion as I
send it to you. I'll stay here until this has been accomplished. I
still must report to the Governor and I want the daylight satellite
pictures."
I looked at my
watch. Incredibly, it was still a quarter-hour before dawn. A lot had
happened in the last forty-five minutes. When I left the caravan,
Falkenberg was playing games on the map board. More bloodless
battles, with glowing lights and wriggling lines crawling across the
map at lightning speed, simulations of hours of bloody combat and
death and agony.
And what the hell
are you accomplishing? I thought. The computer can't give better
results than the input data, and your intelligence about the hostiles
is plain lousy. How many Association troops are coming down the pass
toward Centurion Cernan? No data. How many more are in those
converging columns moving toward Louis and Kathryn and their
ranchers? Make a guess What are their objectives? Another guess.
Guess and guess again, and Kathryn's out there, and instead of
rescuing her, we're keeping the battalion intact. I wanted to mutiny,
to go to Kathryn with all the men I could get to follow me, but I
wasn't going to do that. I blinked back tears. We had a mission, and
Falkenberg was probably right. He was going to the aid of the
ranchers, and that's what Kathryn would want. She'd pledged her honor
to those people, and it was up to us to make that good. Maybe
Stragoff will find her, I thought. Maybe.
I went to my room
and let Hartz hang equipment onto my uniform. It was time to move
out, and I was glad of something, anything, to do.
XVII
THE VALLEY WAS
filled with a thick white mist. The fog boiled out of the river and
flowed across the valley floor. In the two hours since dawn, the
501st had covered nine kilometers. The battalion was strung out in a
long column of men and mules and wagons on muddy tracks that had once
been roads and now had turned into sloppy gunk. The men strained at
ropes to pull the guns and ammunition wagons along, and when we found
oxen or mules in the fields, we hitched them up as well. The
rainstorm that had soaked us two days before at Beersheba had passed
across the Allan Valley, and the fields were squishy marshlands.
Out in the distance
we could hear the sound of guns: Ardwain's column, the Allansport
garrison trying to get through Louis's position - or someone else a
world away. In the fog we couldn't know. The sound had no direction,
and out here there was no battle, only mud.
There were no
enemies here in the valley. There weren't any friends, either. There
were only refugees, pathetic families with possessions piled on their
mules and oxen, or carried in their arms. They didn't know where they
were going, and I had no place to send them. Sometimes we passed
farms, and we could see women and children staring at us from the
partly open doors or from behind shuttered windows. Their eyes had no
expression in them. The sound of the guns over the horizon, and the
curses of the men as they fought to move our equipment through the
mud; more curses as men whipped oxen we'd found and hitched to the
wagons; shrill cries from farmers protesting the loss of their stock;
everything dripping wet in white swirling fog, all blended together
into a long nightmare of outraged feelings and senselessness. I felt
completely alone, alien to all this. Where were the people we'd come
to set free?
We reached the map
point Falkenberg had designated, and the troops rested in place while
the rest of the column caught up with us. The guns were just moving
in when Falkenberg's command caravan roared up. The ground-effects
machine could move across the muddy fields with no problems, while we
had to sweat through them.
He sent for Deane
Knowles and had us both come into the caravan. Then he sent out all
the NCO's and enlisted men. The three of us were alone with the map
table.
"I've held off
explaining what I've been doing until the last minute," he said.
"As it is, this is for your ears only. If something happens, I
want someone to know I haven't lost my mind."
"Yes, sir,"
I said. Deane and I looked at each other.
"Some
background," Falkenberg said. "There's been something
peculiar about the Allan Valley situation for years. The convict
groups have been too well armed, for a beginning. Governor Swale was
too eager to recognize them as a legitimate local government. I think
both of you have remarked on that before."
Deane and I looked
at each other again.
"This morning's
satellite pictures," Falkenberg said. "There's too much
mist to show any great details, but there are some clear patches.
This strip was taken in the area south of Mr. Bonneyman. I invite
your comments."
He handed us the
photos. Most were of patches of mist, with the ground below
completely invisible. Others showed patches where the mist was thin,
or there wasn't any. "Nothing at all," Deane said.
"Precisely,"
Falkenberg said. "Yet we have reports of troop movements in that
area. It is as if the hostiles knew when the satellite would be
overhead, and avoided clear patches."
"As well they
might," Deane said. "It shouldn't be hard to work out the
ephemeris of the spy-eye."
"Correct. Now
look at the high resolution enlargements of those clear areas."
We looked again.
"The roads are chewed up," I said. "Mud and ruts. A
lot of people and wagons have passed over them."
"And recently,
I'd say." Falkenberg nodded in satisfaction. If this had been a
test, we'd passed. "Now another datum. I have had Sergeant
Jaski's people monitoring all transmissions from Allansport. It may
or may not be significant that shortly after every communication
between 501st headquarters and outlying commands, there has been a
transmission from the Governor to the palace at Harmony - and, within
half an hour, a reply. Not an immediate reply, gentlemen, but a reply
within half an hour. And shortly after that, there is traffic on the
frequencies the Association forces use."
There wasn't
anything to say to that. The only explanation made no sense.
"Now, let's see
what the hostiles have in mind," Falkenberg said. "They
besiege the Governor in Allan-sport. Our initial orders are to send a
force to relieve him. We don't know what they would have done, but
instead we devised a complex plan to trap them. We take the initial
steps, and what happens? The hostiles invite us to continue. They do
nothing. Later we learn that a considerable force, possibly the major
part of their strength, is marching northward. Their evident
objective is Mr. Bonneyman's mixed group of Marines and ranchers. I
point out that the elimination of those ranchers would be significant
to the Association. They would not only be rid of potential
opposition to their rule, but I think it would in future be
impossible to persuade any significant group of ranchers to rise
against them. The Association would be the only possible government
in the Allan Valley."
"Yes, sir, but
why?" Deane said. "What could be ... why would Governor
Swale cooperate with them?"
"We'll leave
that for the moment, Mr. Knowles. One thing at a time. Now for the
present situation. Centurion Ardwain has done an excellent job of
simulating a large force cautiously advancing into Allansport from
the north. Governor Swale seems convinced that we've committed at
least half our strength there. I have further informed him that we
will now bring the balance of the 501st from its present position
directly east to the riverbank, where we will once again divide out
troops, half going south to aid Mr. Bonneyman, the other half moving
into the town. The Governor thought that a splendid plan. Have you an
opinion, Mr. Slater?"
"It's the
dumbest thing I ever heard of," I said. "Especially if he
thinks you've already divided the force! If you do that, you'll be
inviting defeat in detail."
"Precisely,"
Falkenberg said. "Of course Governor Swale has no military
background."
"He doesn't
need one to know that plan's a bust," I said. "Lousy
traitor - "
"No
accusations," Falkenberg said. "We've no proof of anything.
In any event, I am making the assumption that the Association is
getting decoded copies of all my transmissions. I don't need to know
how they get them. You'll remember that whenever you use radio
signals that might be overheard."
"Yes, sir."
Deane looked thoughtful. "That limits our communications
somewhat."
"Yes. I hope
that won't matter. Next problem. Under my assumption, the hostiles
expect me to send a force eastward toward the river. That expectation
must be met. I need Mr. Knowles to handle the artillery. It leaves
you, Mr. Slater. I want you to take a platoon and simulate two
companies with it. You'll send back a stream of reports, as if you're
the main body of the battalion reporting to me at a headquarters left
safely out of the combat zone." Falkenberg grinned slightly. "To
the best of my knowledge, Irina's opinion of me is shared by her
father. He won't find it at all hard to believe that I'm avoiding a
combat area."
"But what if I
really have a message?" I asked.
"You're
familiar with O'Grady drill?" Falkenberg asked.
"Yes, sir."
O'Grady drill is a form of torture devised by drill sergeants. You're
supposed to obey only the commands that begin with "O'Grady
says:." Then the sergeant snaps out a string of orders.
"We'll play
that little game," Falkenberg said. "Now your mission is to
get to the river, make a short demonstration, as if you're about to
attack the southern edge of Allansport, and then move directly south,
away from the town, until you link up with Mr. Bonneyman. You will
then aid in his defense until you are relieved."
"But - Captain,
you're assuming they know your orders."
He nodded. "Of
course they'll put out an ambush. In this fog it will be a natural
thing for them to do. Since they'll assume you have a much larger
force with you, they'll probably use all the force that left
Allansport this morning. I can't think they're stupid enough to try
it with less."
"And we're to
walk into it," I said.
"Yes. With your
eyes open, but walk into it. You're bait, Mr. Slater. Get out there
and wiggle."
I remembered an old
comic strip. I quoted a line from it. "Don't much matter whether
you catch a fish or not; once you been used for bait, you ain't much
good for nothing else nohow."
"Maybe,"
Falkenberg said. "Maybe. But I remind you that you'll be keeping
a major column of Association forces off Mr. Bonneyman's back."
"We will so
long as we survive - "
"Yes. So I'll
expect you to survive as long as possible."
"Can't quarrel
with those orders, Captain."
The fog was thicker
when we reached the river. The troops were strung out along almost a
full kilometer route, each maniple isolated from the others in the
dripping-white blanket that lay across the valley. The troops were
enjoying themselves, with monitors reporting as if they were platoon
sergeants, and corporals playing centurion. They kept up a steady
stream of chatter on the radio, while two men back at Falkenberg's
headquarters sent orders that we paid no attention to. So far it was
easy enough, because we hadn't run into anything at all.
"There's the
city wall." Roszak pointed leftward. I could barely see a darker
shape in the fog. "We'll take a quick look over. All right,
Lieutenant?"
"Yes. Be
careful."
"Always am,
sir. Brady, bring your squad. Let's see what's over there." They
vanished into the fog.
It seemed like
hours, but it was only a few minutes before Brady returned. "Nothing,
sir. Nothing and nobody, at least not close to the walls. May be a
lot of them farther in. I got a feeling."
Roszak's voice came
into my command set. "Moved fifty meters in. No change from what
Brady reported."
"Did he have
your feeling, Brady?" I asked.
"Yes, sir."
I switched the set
back on. "Thank you, Roszak. Rejoin your company."
"Aye, aye,
sir."
There were distant
sounds of firing from the north. Ardwain's group was doing a good job
of simulating a company. They were still moving into the town house
by house. I wondered if he was running into opposition, or if that
was all his own doing. He was supposed to go cautiously, and his men
might be shooting up everything in sight. They were making a lot of
noise. "Get me Falkenberg," I told Hartz.
"Yes, Mr.
Slater?"
"Captain,
Monitor O'Grady reports the south end of the town has been abandoned.
I can hear the A Company combat team up at the north end, but I don't
know what opposition they've encountered."
"Very light,
Mister. You leave a company to assist A Company just in case, and
continue south. Exactly as planned, Mr. Slater. No change. Got that?"
"Yes, sir."
"Having any
trouble with the guns?"
"A little, sir.
Roads are muddy. It's tough going, but we're moving."
"Excellent.
Carry on, then. Out."
And that, I told
myself, is that. I told off a monitor to dig in just outside the town
and continue making reports. "You've just become B Company
centurion," I said.
He grinned. "Yes,
sir. Save a few of 'em for me."
"I'll do that,
Yokura. Good luck." I waved the rest of my command down the
road. We were strung out in a long column. The fog was a little
thinner. Now I could see over twenty meters before the world was
blotted out in swirling white mist.
What's the safest
way to walk into an ambush? I asked myself. The safest way is not to
do it. Bar that solution and you don't have a lot of choices. I used
the helmet projector to show me a map of the route.
The first test was a
hill just outside of town: Hill 509, called the Rockpile, a warren of
jumbled boulders and flinty ledges. It dominated the road into the
southern gate of Allansport. Whoever owned it controlled traffic into
and out of the town.
If the Association
only wanted to block us from moving south, that's where they'd have
their strong point. If they were out to ambush the whole battalion,
they'd leave it bare and set the trap farther on. Either way, they'd
never expected me to go past it without having a look.
Four kilometers past
the Rockpile there was a string of low hills. The road ran through a
valley below them. It was an ideal place for an ambush. That's where
they'll be, I decided. Only they must know we'll expect them to be
along there somewhere. Bait should wiggle, but it shouldn't too
obviously be bait. How would I act if I really had most of a
battalion with me?
Send a strong
advance guard, of course. An advance guard about as strong as the
whole force I've got. Anything less won't make any sense.
"Roszak, start
closing them up. Leave the wagons and half a dozen men with radios
strung out along the line of march, and get everyone else up here.
We'll form up as an advance guard and move south."
"Aye, aye,
sir."
When I had the
troops assembled, I led them up on the Rockpile. Nothing there, of
course. I'd gauged it right. They were waiting for us up ahead.
Roszak nudged me and
turned his head slightly to the right. I nodded, carefully. "Don't
point, Sergeant. I saw something move up there myself."
We had reached the
hills.
"Christ, what
are they waiting for?" Roszak muttered.
"For the rest
of the battalion. They don't want us; they want the whole 501st."
"Yes, sir."
We moved on ahead.
The fog was lifting; visibility was over fifty meters already. It
wouldn't be long before it would be obvious there weren't any troops
following me, despite the loud curses and the squeals of wagon wheels
back there. It's amazing how much noise a couple of wagons can make
if the troops work at it.
To hell with it, I
thought. We've got to find a good position and try to hold it. It'll
do no good to keep walking farther into their trap. There was a rocky
area ahead. It wasn't perfect, but it was the best spot I'd seen in
half an hour. I nudged Roszak. "When we get up to there, start
waving the men off into the rocks. The fog's thicker there."
"What if
there's hostiles there already?" Roszak demanded.
"Then we'll
fight for the ground, but I doubt they'll be there. I expect they've
been moving out of our way as we advance. They still think there's a
column a whole klick long behind us." Sound confident, I told
myself. "We'll take up a defensive perimeter in there and wait
the war out."
"Sure."
Roszak moved to his right and spoke to the next man. The orders were
passed along the line.
Three more minutes,
I told myself. Three minutes and we'll at least have some cover. The
area I'd chosen was a saddle, a low pass between the hills to either
side of us. Not good, but better than the road. I could feel rifles
aimed at me from the rocks above, but I saw nothing but grotesque
shapes, boulders dripping in the fog. We climbed higher, moving
steadily toward the place I'd chosen.
Maybe there's nobody
up there watching at all. They may be on the other side of the
valley. You only saw one man. Maybe not even a man. Just something
moving. A wild animal. A dog. A blowing patch of fog.
Whatever it was, I
can't take this much longer. You don't have to. Another minute. That
boulder up there, the big one. When you reach it, you've finished.
Don't run. Keep it slow -
"All right, you
can fall out and take a break!" I shouted. "Hartz, tell the
column to rest in place. We'll take ten. Companies should close up
and gather in the stragglers. They'll assemble here after the break."
"Zur."
"Better get a
perimeter guard out, Sergeant."
"Sir,"
Roszak called.
"Corporal
Brady, how about a little coffee? You can set up the stove in the lee
of that rock."
"Right,
Lieutenant."
The men vanished
into the fog. There were scrambling noises as they found hiding
places. I moved out of the open and hunkered down in the rocks with
Corporal Brady. "You didn't really have to make coffee," I
said.
"Why not,
Lieutenant? We have a while to wait, don't we?"
"I hope so,
Corporal. I hope so. But that fog's lifting fast."
Ten minutes later we
heard the guns. It was difficult to tell the direction of the sound
in the thick fog, but I thought they were ahead of us, far to the
south. There was no way to estimate the range.
"O'Grady
message from Captain Falkenberg," Hartz said. "Lieutenant
Bonneyman's group is under heavy attack from the south."
"Acknowledge."
From the south. That meant the columns coming north out of Denisburg
had made contact with Louis's ranchers. Falkenberg had guessed that
much right. Maybe this whole screwy plan would work, after all.
"Anything new on Ardwain's situation?"
"No messages,
zur."
I thumbed my command
set to the general frequency. "All units of the 501st, there is
heavy fighting to the south. Assemble immediately. We'll be moving
south to provide fire support. Get those guns rolling right now."
There was a chorus
of radio answers. Only a dozen men, but they sounded like hundreds.
I'd have been convinced it was a battalion combat team. I was
congratulating myself when a shaft of sunlight broke through the mist
and fell on the ground at my feet.
XVIII
ONCE THE SUN had
broken through, the fog lifted fast. In seconds visibility went from
fifty meters to a hundred, then two hundred. In minutes the road for
a kilometer north of us was visible - and empty. One wagon struggled
along it, and far back in the distance a single man carried a radio.
"O'Grady says
hit the dirt!" I yelled. "Hartz, tell Falkenberg the
deception's over."
And still there was
nothing. I took out my glasses and examined the rocks above and
behind us. They were boiling with activity. "Christ," I
said. "Roszak, we've run into the whole Allansport outfit.
Damned near a thousand men! Dig in and get your heads down!"
A mortar shell
exploded on the road below. Then another, and then a salvo. Not bad
shooting, I said to myself. Of course it didn't hit anything, because
there was nothing to hit except the one wagon, but they had it
registered properly. If we'd been down there, we'd have had it.
Rifle bullets zinged
overhead. The Association troops were firing at last. I tried to
imagine the feelings of the enemy commander, and I found myself
laughing. He'd waited patiently all this time for us to walk into his
trap, and all he'd caught was something less than a platoon. He was
going to be mad.
He was also going to
chew up my sixty men, two mortars, and four light machine guns. It
would take him a little time, though. I'd picked a good spot to wait
for him. Now that the fog had cleared, I saw it was a better place
than I'd guessed from the map. We had reasonably clear fields of
fire, and the rocks were large and sturdy. They'd have to come in and
get us. All we had to do was keep our heads down.
No point in
deception anymore. "O'Grady says stay loose and let 'em come to
us."
There was a chorus
of shouted responses. Then Brady's trumpet sounded, beginning with
"On Full Kits" and running through half the calls in the
book before he settled onto the Line Marines' March. A favorite, I
thought. Damned right. Then I heard the whistle of incoming
artillery, and I dove for the tiny shelter between my rocks as
barrage after barrage of heavy artillery dropped onto our position.
Riflemen swarmed
down onto the road behind me. My radiomen and the two wagoneers were
cut down in seconds. At least a company of Association troops started
up the gentle slope toward us.
The Association
commander made his first mistake then. His artillery had been
effective enough for making us keep our heads down, but the rocks
gave us good cover and we weren't taking many casualties. When the
Association charged us, their troops held back until the artillery
fire lifted. It takes experienced non-coms and a lot of discipline to
get troops to take casualties from their own artillery. It pays off,
but our attackers didn't know or believe it.
They were too far
away when the artillery fire lifted. My lads were out of their hiding
places in an instant. They poured fire on the advancing troops -
rifles and the light machine guns, then both mortars. Few of the
enemy had combat armor, and our fire was devastating.
"Good men,"
Hartz grunted. "They keep coming."
They were, but not
for long. Too many of them were cut down. They swept to within fifty
meters, wavered, and dropped back, some dragging their wounded with
them, others running for it. When the attack was broken, we dropped
back into the rocks to wait for the next barrage. "Score one for
the Line Marines," I called.
Brady answered with
the final fanfare from the March. "And there's none that can
face us - "
"They won't try
that again," Roszak said. He grinned with satisfaction. "Lads
are doing right well, Mr. Slater."
"Well, indeed."
Our area was quiet,
but there were sounds of heavy fighting in the south: artillery,
rifle and machine gun fire, mortars and grenades. It sounded louder,
as if it were coming closer to us. Louis and his commando of ranchers
were facing big odds. I wondered if Kathryn were with him.
"They'll try
infiltration next," Roszak predicted.
"What makes you
think so?" Hartz asked.
"No discipline.
After what happened last time, they'll never get a full attack
going."
"No, they will
have one more try in force. Perhaps two," Hartz argued.
"Never. Bet on
it? Tomorrow's wine ration."
"Done,"
Hartz said. He was quiet for a moment, then handed me the handset.
"Captain Falkenberg."
"Thank you.
Yes, Captain?"
"O'Grady says
the O'Grady drill is over. Understood?"
"Yes, sir."
"What's your
situation?"
"We're in the
saddle notch of Hill 239, seven klicks south of Allansport," I
said. "Holding all right for now, but we're surrounded. Most of
the hostiles are between us and Allansport. They let us right through
for the ambush. They've tried one all-out attack and that didn't
work. Roszak and Hartz are arguing over what they'll try next."
"How long can
you hold?"
"Depends on
what losses they're willing to take to get us out of here."
"You don't have
to hold long," Falkenberg said. "A lot has happened.
Ardwain broke through to the Governor and brought him out, but he ran
into a strong force in Allansport. There's more coming over the
bridge from the east side of the river."
"Sounds like
they're bringing up everything they have."
"They are, and
we're beating all of it. The column that moved north from Denisburg
ran into Bonneyman's group. They deployed to break through that, and
we circled around to their west and hit them in the flank. They
didn't expect us. Your maneuver fooled them completely. They thought
the 501st was with you until it was too late. They know better now,
but we've broken them. Of course, there's a lot more of them than of
us, and we couldn't hold them. They've broken through between
Bonneyman and the river, and you're right in their path."
"How truly
good."
"I think you'd
do well to get out of their way," Falkenberg said. "I doubt
you can stop them."
"If they link
up with the Allansport force, they'll get away across the bridge. I
can't hold them, but if you can get some artillery support here, I
can spot for the guns. We might delay them."
"I was going to
suggest that," Falkenberg said, "I've sent Ardwain and the
Governor's escort toward that hill outside Allansport - the Rockpile.
It looks like a dominant position."
"It is, sir.
I've seen it. If we held that, we could keep this lot from getting
into Allansport. We might bag the whole lot."
"Worth a try,
anyway," Falkenberg said. "Provided you can hold on. It
will be nearly an hour before I can get artillery support to you."
"We'll hold,
sir."
"Good luck."
Roszak lost his wine
ration. They tried one more assault. Two squads of Association troops
got within twenty meters of our position before we threw them back.
Of my sixty men, I had fewer than thirty effectives when it was over.
That was their last
try, though. Shortly after, they regrouped. The elements which had
been south of us had already skirted around the hills to join the
main body, and now the whole group was moving north. They were headed
for Allansport.
The sounds of
fighting to the south were coming closer all the time. Falkenberg had
Deane moving parallel to the Association troops, racing to get close
enough to give us support, but it wouldn't arrive in time.
I sent our wounded
up the hill away from the road with orders to dig in and lie low. The
rest of us followed the retreating force. We were now sandwiched
between the group ahead of us and the Denisburg column behind.
The first elements
of Association forces were headed up the Rockpile when Deane came in
range. He was still six kilometers southeast of us, long range and
long time of flight, but we were in a good position to spot for him.
I called in the first salvo on the advancing Association troops. The
shells went beyond their target, and before I could walk them back
down the hill, the Association forces retreated.
"They'll send
another group around behind the hill," Roszak said. "We'll
never stop them."
"No." So
damned near. A few minutes' difference and we'd have bagged them all.
The column Falkenberg was chasing was now no more than two kilometers
south of us and moving fast.
"Hold one,"
Deane said. "I've got a Corporal Dangier calling in. Claims to
be in position to spot targets for me."
"He's one of
the wounded we left behind," I said. "He can see the road
from his position, all right, but he won't last long once they know
we've got a spotter in position to observe them."
"Do I fire the
mission?" Deane demanded.
"Yes."
Scratch Corporal Dangier, who had a girl in Harmony and a wife on
Earth.
"I'll leave one
gun at your disposal," Deane said. "I'm putting the rest on
Dangier's mission."
A few minutes later
we heard the artillery falling on the road behind us. That would play
hell with the Association retreat. It kept up for ten minutes; then
Deane called in again. "Can't raise Dangier any longer."
"No. There's
nothing we can do here. They're staying out of sight. I'll call in
some fire in places that might do some good, but it's shooting
blind."
I amused myself with
that for a while. It was frustrating. Once that force got to the top
of the Rockpile, the route into Allansport would be secure. I was
still cursing when Hartz shouted urgently.
"Centurion
Ardwain on the line, sir."
"Ardwain, where
are you?"
"Less than a
klick west of you, Lieutenant. We moved around the edge of the town.
Can't get inside without support. Militia won't try it, anyway."
"How many
Marines do you have?" I demanded.
"About eighty
effective. And Old Beastly."
"By God!
Ardwain, move in fast. We'll join you as you come by. We're going
right up to the top of the Rockpile and sit there until Falkenberg
gets here. With Deane's artillery support we can hold that hill."
"Aye,
aye, sir. We're coming."
"Let's go!"
I shouted. "Who's been hit and can't run?"
No one answered.
"Sergeant Roszak took one in the leg an hour ago, Lieutenant,"
Hartz said.
"I can still
travel," Roszak said.
"Bullshit.
You'll stay here and spot artillery for us. All the walking wounded
stay with him. The rest of you get moving. We want to be in position
when Centurion Ardwain comes."
"But - "
"Shut up and
soldier, Roszak." I waved and we moved down from our low
hilltop. We were panting when we got to the base of the Rockpile.
There were already Association forces up there. I didn't know how
many. We had to get up there before more joined them. The way up just
ahead of me was clear, because it was in direct view of Roszak and
his artillery spotters. We could use it and they couldn't.
I waved the men
forward. Even a dozen of us on top of the Rockpile might be enough if
Ardwain came up fast. We started up. Two men went down, then another,
and my troops began to look around for shelter. I couldn't blame
them, but I couldn't let them do it. Getting up that hill had become
the only thing in my life. I had to get them moving again.
"Brady!" I
shouted. "Corporal, sound the charge!" The trumpet notes
sang out. A monitor whipped out a banner and waved it above his head.
I shouted "Follow me!" and ran up the hill. Then a mortar
shell exploded two meters away. I had time to see bright red blotches
spurt across my trousers legs and to wonder if that was my own blood;
then I fell. The battle noises dimmed out.
"Lieutenant!
Mr. Slater!"
I was in the bottom
of a well. It was dark down there, and it hurt to look up at the
light. I wanted to sink back into the well, but someone at the top
was shouting at me. "Mr. Slater!"
"He's coming
around, Centurion."
"He's got to,
Crisp! Mr. Slater!"
There were people
all around me. I couldn't see them very clearly, but I could
recognize the voice. "Yes, Centurion."
"Mr. Slater,"
Ardwain said. "The Governor says we shouldn't take the hill!
What do we do, sir?"
It didn't make
sense. Where am I? I wondered. I had just sense enough not to ask.
Everybody asks that, I thought. Why does everybody ask that? But I
don't know -
I was pulled to a
sitting position. My eyes managed to focus again, just for a moment.
I was surrounded by people and rocks. Big rocks. Then I knew where I
was. I'd passed these rocks before. They were at the base of the
hill. Rocks below the Rockpile.
"What's that?
Don't take the hill?" I said.
"Yes, sir - "
"Lieutenant, I
have ordered your men to pull back. There are not enough to take this
hill, and there's no point in wasting them."
That wasn't the
Governor, but I'd heard the voice before. Trevor. Colonel Trevor of
the militia. He'd been with Swale at the staff meeting back at
Beersheba. Bits of the staff meeting came back to me, and I tried to
remember more of them. Then I realized that was silly.
The staff meeting
wasn't important, but I couldn't think. What was important? There was
something I had to do.
Get up the hill. I
had to get up the hill. "Get me on my feet, Centurion."
"Sir - "
"Do it!" I
was screaming. "I'm going up there. We have to take the
Rockpile."
"You heard the
company commander!" Ardwain shouted. "Move out!"
"Slater, you
don't know what you're saying!" Trevor shouted.
I ignored him. "I've
got to see," I said. I tried to get up, but my legs weren't
working. Nothing happened when I tried to move them. "Lift me
where I can see," I said.
"Sir - "
"Crisp, don't
argue with me. Do it."
"You're crazy,
Slater!" Trevor shouted. "Delirious. Sergeant Crisp, put
him down. You'll kill him."
The medics hauled me
to the edge of the boulder patch. Ardwain was leading men up the
hill. Not just Marines, I saw. The militia had followed, as well.
Insane, something whispered in the back of my mind. All insane. It's
a disease, and they've caught it, too. I pushed the thought away.
They were falling,
but they were still moving forward as they fell. I didn't know if
they'd get to the top.
"You wanted to
see!" Trevor shouted. "Now you've seen it! You can't send
them up there. It's suicide, and they won't even listen to me! You've
got to call them back, Slater. Make them retreat."
I looked at the
fallen men. Some were just ahead of me. They hadn't even gotten
twenty meters. There was one body blown in half. Something bright lay
near it. I saw what it was and turned to Trevor.
"Retreat,
Colonel? See that? Our trumpeter was killed sounding the charge. I
don't know how to order a retreat."
XIX
I WAS DEEP in the
well again, and it was dark, and I was afraid. They reached down into
it after me, trying to pull me up, and I wanted to come. I knew I'd
been in there a long time, and I wanted out, because I could hear
Kathryn calling for me. I reached for her hand, but I couldn't find
it. I remember shouting, but I don't know what I said. The nightmare
went on for a long time.
Then it was daytime.
The light was orange-red, very bright, and the walls were splashed
with the orange light. I tried to move my head.
"Doc!"
someone shouted. His voice was very loud.
"Hal?"
"I can't see
you," I said. "Where are you, Kathryn? Where are you?"
"I'm here, Hal.
I'll always be here."
And then it was dark
again, but it wasn't so lonely in there.
I woke up several
times after that. I couldn't talk much, and when I did I don't
suppose I made much sense, but finally things were clear. I was in
the hospital in Garrison, and I'd been there for weeks. I wasn't sure
just how long. Nobody would tell me anything, and they talked in
hushed tones so that I was sure I was dying, but I didn't.
"What the
hell's wrong with me?" I demanded.
"Just take it
easy, young fellow." He had a white coat, thick glasses, and a
brown beard with white hairs in it.
"Who the hell
are you?"
"That's Dr.
Cechi," Kathryn told me.
"Well, why
won't he tell me what's wrong with me?"
"He doesn't
want to worry you."
"Worry me? Do
you think not knowing gives peace of mind? Tell me."
"All right,"
Cechi said. "Nothing permanent. Understand that first. Nothing
permanent, although it's going to take a while to fix you up. We
almost lost you a couple of times, you know. Multiple perforations of
the gut, two broken vertebrae, compound fracture of the left femur,
and assorted scrapes, punctures, bruises, abrasions, and contusions.
Not to mention almost complete exsanguination when they brought you
in. It's nothing we can't fix, but you're going to be here a while,
Captain." He was holding my arm, and I felt pressure there, a
hypo-spray. "You just go to sleep and we'll tell you the rest
tomorrow."
"But - "
Whatever I was going to say never got out. I sank back, but it wasn't
into the well. It was just sleep, and I could tell the difference.
The next time I
awoke, Falkenberg was there. He grinned at me.
I grinned back. "Hi,
Captain."
"Major. You're
the captain."
"Uh? Run that
past - "
"Just brevet
promotions, but Harrington thinks they'll stick."
"We must have
won."
"Oh, yeah."
He sat where I could see him. His eyes looked pale blue in that
light. "Lieutenant Ardwain took the Rockpile, but he said it was
all your doing."
"Lieutenant
Ardwain. Lot of promotions out of this," I said.
"Some. The
Association no longer exists as an organized military force. Your
girl's friends are in control. Wan Loo is the acting president, or
supervisor, or whatever they call him. Governor Swale's not too happy
about it, but officially he has to be. He didn't like endorsing
Harrington's report, either, but he had no choice."
"But he's a
lousy traitor. Why's he still governor?"
"Act your age,
Captain." There wasn't any humor in Falkenberg's voice now. "We
have no proof. I know the story, if you'd like to hear it. In fact,
you'd better. You're popular enough with the Fleet, but there'll be
elements of the Grand Senate that'll hate your guts."
"Tell me."
"Swale has
always been part of the Bronson faction," Falkenberg said. "The
Bronson family is big in Dover Mineral Development Inc. Seems there's
more to this place than either American Express or Kennicott ever
knew. Dover found out and tried to buy mineral rights. The holy Joes
wouldn't sell - especially the farmers like Wan Loo and Seeton. They
don't want industrial development here, and it was obvious to Swale
that they wouldn't sell any mining rights to Dover. Swale's policy
has been to help groups like the Association in return for their
signatures on mining rights contracts. If enough of those outfits are
recognized as legitimate local governments, there won't be any
trouble over the contracts. You can probably figure out the rest."
"Maybe it's my
head," I told him, "but I can't. What the devil did he let
us into the valley for, then? Why did he go down there at all?"
"Just because
they signed over some mining rights didn't make them his slaves. They
were trying to jack up the grain prices. If the Harmony merchants
complained loud enough, Swale wouldn't be governor here, and what use
would he be to Dover then? He had to put some pressure on them -
enough to make them sell, not so much that they'd be thrown out."
"Only we threw
them out," I said.
"Only we threw
them out. This time. Don't imagine that it's over."
"It has to be
over," I said. "He couldn't pull that again."
"Probably he
won't. Bronson hasn't much use for failures. I expect Governor Swale
will shortly be on his way to a post as First Secretary on a mining
asteroid. There'll be another governor, and if he's not a Bronson
client, he'll be someone else's. I'm not supposed to depress you.
You've got a decision to make. I've been assigned to a regular Line
Regiment as adjutant. The 42nd. It's on Kennicott. Tough duty.
Probably a lot of fighting, good opportunities, regular troops. I've
got room on the staff. Want to come along? They tell me you'll be fit
to move by the time the next ship gets here."
"I'll think
about it."
"Do that.
You've got a good career ahead of you. Now you're the youngest
captain in the Fleet. Couldn't swing the Military Star, but you'll
get another medal."
"I'll think
about it. I have to talk with Kathryn - "
He shrugged.
"Certainly, Captain." He grinned and went out.
Captain. Captains
may marry, Majors should marry, Colonels must marry -
But that was soldier
talk, and I wasn't sure I was a soldier. Strange, I thought. Everyone
says I am. I've done well, and I have a great career, and it all
seems like a fit of madness. Corporal Brady won't be playing his
trumpet any longer because of me. Dangier, wounded but alive, until
he volunteered to be an artillery spotter. And all the others, Levine
and Lieberman and recruit - no, Private - Dietz, and the rest, dead
and blended together in my memory until I can't remember where they
died or what for, only that I killed them.
But we won. It was a
glorious victory. That was enough for Falkenberg. He had done his job
and done it well. Was it enough for me? Would it be in the future?
When I was up and
around, I couldn't avoid meeting Governor Swale. Irina was nursing
Louis Bonneyman. Louis was worse off than I was. Sometimes they can
grow you a new leg, but it takes time, and it's painful. Irina saw
him every day, and when I could leave the hospital she insisted that
I come to the palace. It was inevitable that I would meet the
Governor.
"I hope you're
proud of yourself," Swale said. "Everyone else is."
"Hugo, that's
not fair," Irina protested.
"Not fair?"
Swale said. "How isn't it fair?"
"I did the job
I was paid to do, sir," I said.
"Yes. You did,
indeed - and thereby made it impossible for me to do mine. Sit down,
Captain Slater. Your Major Falkenberg has told you plenty of stories
about me. Now let me tell you my side of it."
"There's no
need, Ggovernor," I said.
"No, there
isn't. Are you afraid to find out just what you've done?"
"No. I've
helped throw out a gang of convicts who pretended to be a government.
And I'm proud enough of that."
"Are you? Have
you been to the Allan Valley lately, Captain? Of course you haven't.
And I doubt Kathryn Malcolm has told you what's happening there - how
Wan Loo and Harry Seeton and a religious fanatic named Brother Dornan
have established commissions of deacons to inquire into the morals
and loyalties of everyone in the valley; how anyone they find
deficient is turned off the land to make room for their own people.
No, I don't suppose she told you any of that."
"I don't
believe you."
"Don't you? Ask
Miss Malcolm. Or would you believe Irina? She knows it's true."
I looked to Irina.
The pain in her eyes was enough. She didn't have to speak.
"I was governor
of the whole planet, Slater. Not just Harmony, not just the Jordan
and Allan valleys, but all of the planet. Only they gave me
responsibilities and no authority, and no means to govern. What am I
supposed to do with the convicts, Slater? They ship them here by the
thousands, but they give me nothing to feed them with. You've seen
them. How are they supposed to live?"
"They can work
- "
"At what? As
farmhands on ranches of five hundred hectares? The best land on the
planet, doled out as huge ranches with half the land not worked
because there's no fertilizer, no irrigation, not even decent
drainage systems. They sure as hell can't work in our nonexistent
industries. Don't you see that Arrarat must industrialize? It doesn't
matter what Allan Valley farmers want, or what the other holy Joes
want. It's industrialize or face famine, and, by God, there'll be no
famines while I can do something about them."
"So you were
willing to sell out the 501st. Help the Association defeat us. An
honorable way to achieve an honorable end."
"As honorable
as yours. Yours is to kill and destroy. War is honorable, but deceit
isn't. I prefer my way, Captain."
"I expect you
do."
Swale nodded
vigorously, to himself, not to me. "Smug. Proud and smug. Tell
me, Captain, just how are you better than the Protective Association?
They fought. Not for the honor of the corps, but for their land,
their families, for friends. They lost. You had better men, better
officers, better training. A lot better equipment. If you'd lost,
you'd have been returned to Garrison under terms. The Association
troops were shot out of hand. All of them. Be proud, Slater. But you
make me sick. I'll leave you now. I don't care to argue with my
daughter's guests."
"That's true
also, isn't it?" I asked Irina. "They shot all the
Association troops?"
"Not all,"
Irina said. "The ones that surrendered to Captain Falkenberg are
still alive. He even recruited some of them."
He would. The
battalion would need men after those battles. "What's happened
to the rest?"
"They're under
guard at Beersheba. It was after your Marines left the valley that
the real slaughter began."
"Sure. People
who wouldn't turn out to fight for their homes when we needed their
help got real patriotic after it was over," I said. "I'm
going back to my quarters, Irina. Thank you for having me over."
"But Kathryn is
coming. She'll be here - "
"I don't want
to see anyone just now. Excuse me." I left quickly and wandered
through the streets of Harmony. People nodded and smiled as I passed.
The Marines were still popular. Of course. We'd opened the trade
route up the Jordan, and we'd cleared out the Allan Valley. Grain was
cheap, and we'd held the convicts at bay. Why shouldn't the people
love us?
Tattoo sounded as I
entered the fort. The trumpets and drums sounded through the night,
martial and complex and the notes were sweet. Sentries saluted as I
passed. Life here was orderly and there was no need to think.
Hartz had left a
full bottle of brandy where I could find it. It was his theory that
the reason I wasn't healing fast was that I didn't drink enough. The
surgeons didn't share his opinion. They were chopping away at me,
then using the regeneration stimulators to make me grow better parts.
It was a painful process, and they didn't think liquor helped it
much.
To hell with them, I
thought, and poured a double. I hadn't finished it when Kathryn came
in.
"Irina said -
Hal, you shouldn't be drinking."
"I doubt that
Irina said that."
"You know -
what's the matter with you, Hal?"
"Why didn't you
tell me?" I asked.
"I was going
to. Later. But there never was a right time."
"And it's all
true? Your friends are driving the families of everyone who
cooperated with the Association out into the hills? And they've shot
all the prisoners?"
"It's - yes.
It's true."
"Why didn't you
stop them?"
"Should I have
wanted to?" She looked at the scars on her hands. "Should
I?"
There was a knock at
the door. "Come in," I said.
It was Falkenberg.
"Thought you were alone," he said.
"Come in. I'm
confused."
"I expect you
are. Got any more of that brandy?"
"Sure. What did
you mean by that?"
"I understand
you've just learned what's happening out in the Allan Valley."
"Crapdoodle!
Has Irina been talking to everyone in Garrison? I don't need a
convention of people to cheer me up."
"You don't eh?"
He made no move to leave. "Spit it out, Mister."
"You don't call
Captains 'Mister.' "
He grinned. "No.
Sorry. What's the problem, Hal? Finding out that things aren't as
simple as you'd like them to be?"
"John, what the
hell were we fighting for out there? What good do we do?"
He stretched a long
arm toward the brandy bottle and poured for both of us. "We
threw a gang of criminals out. Do you doubt that's what they were? Do
you insist that the people we helped be saints?"
"But the women.
And children. What will happen to them? And the Governor's right -
something's got to be done for the convicts. Poor bastards are sent
here, and we can't just drown them."
"There's land
to the west," Kathryn said. "They can have that. My
grandfather had to start from the beginning. Why can't the new
arrivals?"
"The Governor's
right about a lot of things," Falkenberg said. "Industry's
got to come to Arrarat someday. Should it come just to make the
Bronson family rich? At the expense of a bunch of farmers who bought
their land with one hell of a lot of hard work and blood? Hal, if
you're having second thoughts about the action here on Arrarat,
what'll you do when the Fleet's ordered to do something completely
raw?"
"I don't know.
That's what bothers me."
"You asked what
good we do," Falkenberg said. "We buy time. Back on Earth
they're ready to start a war that won't end until billions are dead.
The Fleet's the only thing preventing that. The only thing, Hal. Be
as cynical about the CoDominium as you like. Be contemptuous of Grand
Senator Bronson and his friends - yes, and most of his enemies, too,
damn it. But remember that the Fleet keeps the peace, and as long as
we do, Earth still lives. If the price of that is getting our hands
dirty out here on the frontiers, then it's a price we have to pay.
And while we're paying it, just once in a while we do something
right. I think we did that here. For all that they've been vicious
enough now that the battle's over, Wan Loo and his people aren't
evil. I'd rather trust the future to them than to people who'd do ...
that." He took Kathryn's hand and turned it over in his. "We
can't make things perfect, Hal. But we can damned sure end some of
the worst things people do to each other. If that's not enough, we
have our own honor, even if our masters have none. The Fleet is our
country, Hal, and it's an honorable fatherland." Then he laughed
and drained his glass. "Talking's dry work. Pipe Major's learned
three new tunes. Come and hear them. You deserve a night in the club,
and the drinks are on the battalion. You've friends here, and you've
not seen much of them."
He stood, the half
smile still on his lips. "Good evening, Hal. Kathryn."
"You're going
with him, aren't you?" Kathryn said when he'd closed the door.
"You know I
don't care all that much for bagpipes - "
"Don't be
flippant with me. He's offered you a place with his new regiment, and
you're going to take it."
"I don't know.
I've been thinking about it - "
"I know. I
didn't before, but I do now. I watched you while he was talking.
You're going."
"I guess I am.
Will you come with me?"
"If you'll have
me, yes. I can't go back to the ranch. I'll have to sell it. I
couldn't ever live there now. I'm not the same girl I was when this
started."
"I'll always
have doubts," I said. "I'll need - " I couldn't finish
the thought, but I didn't have to. She came to me, and she wasn't
trembling at all, not the way she'd been before, anyway. I held her
for a long time.
"We should go
now," she said finally. "They'll be expecting you."
"But - "
"We've plenty
of time, Hal. A long time."
As we left the room,
Last Post sounded across the fort.
PART TWO - MERCENARY
FROM THE LAST West
Point lecture by Professor John Christian Falkenberg, II, delivered
at the United States Military Academy immediately prior to the
reorganization of the Academy. After the Academy was restructured to
reflect rising nationalism in the United States, Falkenberg as a
CoDominium Professor was unwelcome in any event; but the content of
this lecture would have assured that anyway. Crofton's Essays and
Lectures in Military History, 2nd Edition.
"All large and
important institutions change slowly. It is probably as well that
this is true for the military; but well or not, it is inevitable. It
takes time to build history and traditions, and military
organizations with no history and traditions are generally
ineffective.
"There are of
course notable exceptions to this rule, although some of the more
popular cases do not bear examination. For example, Colonel Michael
Hoare's Fifth Commando in Katanga in the 1960s, while rightly studied
as a harbinger of the growth of mercenary organizations in this
century, owed much of its justly celebrated success to the
incompetence - including frequent drunkenness - of its opposition.
Moreover, Hoare, by recruiting most of his officers and non-coms, and
many of his troopers, from British veterans, was able to draw on the
long history and tradition of the British Army.
"I dare say
something of this sort will happen in the future, as many CoDominium
military units are disbanded. It is conceivable that entire units
will be hired on by one or another patron. Certainly a small cohesive
unit accustomed to working together would be preferable to a larger
group of mercenaries.
"The building
of the CoDominium military forces is itself an illustrative case;
once again, by incorporating disbanded units such as the French
L'egion E'trangère, [['denotes accent mark]] the Cameron
Highlanders, and the Cossack Adventurers, was able to appropriate to
itself considerable history and tradition. Even so, it has taken
decades to build the CoDominium Line Marines into the formidable
force they have become.
"However, I
bring up the subject of changing institutions for another reason. We
are seeing, I believe, the completion of yet another full cycle in
the history of violence and civilization. As late as the turn of the
Millennium, most military organizations were motivated by national
patriotism, and the 'Laws of War' were treated either as a joke, as
unwanted restrictions on military action, or, as in the case of the
infamous 'War Crimes' trials following World War II, as a means of
retaliation against a defeated enemy.
"Then, during
the course of this century, the Laws of War have become quite
important, and have often been observed; and where they are not
observed there is a good chance that the CoDominium Fleet will punish
those who violate them - particularly if the violation involves
CoDominium citizens, and inevitably if it involves a member of the
Fleet.
"Now I believe
we are entering a new period; one in which the nationalist forces
will pursue a new policy of expediency, while the CoDominium and
mercenary units continue to observe and insist on the Laws of War.
Now it would appear that the outcome of such a conflict is
predictable: that the organizations which recognize no limitations
save expediency will always triumph over those which restrict their
uses of military power. This is impossible. I do not believe it will
be inevitable.
However, many do
believe that the Laws of War will go the way of the Rights of
Neutrals in the last century.
After all, the
United States, having entered World War I ostensibly to protect the
rights of neutral vessels on the high seas, within days of entering
World War II declared unrestricted submarine warfare against Germany
and Japan; while the Allied powers, having denounced Japanese actions
against Nanking in the 1930s, had no scruples about bombing civilians
and open cities as the war progressed, culminating in Hiroshima,
Nagasaki, and the fire raids against Tokyo.
"By the end of
World War II, few observed any limits on the use of military power.
Allied units regularly took civilian hostages and exposed civilian
officials to danger as a means of discouraging partisan activity.
Most of these actions had been taken by the German Army and of course
had been denounced at the time.
"That expedient
view became so widespread that for decades no one could conceive of
another.
"However, it
has not always been thus. Prior to the present era there were at
least three periods in which war became stylized and subject to
rules. These eras have been described well enough by Martin Van
Creveld in his definitive Technology and War.
"The first such
era was the Hellenistic period from about 300 to 200 B.C. During that
time there were essentially no differences among the successor
states. Each was ruled by despotism built around a dynasty and
generally ruled by a single man. The ordinary citizen had no stake in
this government, and cared not a whit whether this man or that held
the throne. The military units were composed of professionals who had
no personal stake in the outcome of a campaign. As Creveld says:
" 'Accordingly,
there applied among those states a fairly strict code which dictated
what was and was not permissible in regard to the treatment of
prisoners, the enslavement of captured cities, the robbery for
military purposes of temples dedicated to the gods (this was
legitimate provided that restitution was subsequently made, or at any
rate promised), and so on.
" 'The
application of rules to warfare was, however, extended further than
this. While it would be imprecise to say that there existed an
explicit international agreement concerning the types of military
technology that might or might not be used, the various contestants
shared a common material civilization and knew what to expect of each
other. Since they fielded much the same weapons and equipment, but
also because commanders and technical experts frequently transferred
from one army to another, they found themselves operating on broadly
similar tactical and strategic codes . . .'
"The second
period of warfare treated as a game with rules was, of course, the
period of feudal chivalry, and probably quite enough has been said
about it in previous lectures. For the third, I quote again from
Creveld: " 'The play-element often present in armed conflict
was, however, probably never as pronounced as in the eighteenth
century, when war became popularly known as the game of kings. It was
an age in which, according to Voltaire, all Europeans lived under the
same kind of institutions, believed in the same kind of ideas, and
fornicated with the same kind of women. Most states were ruled by
absolute monarchs. Even those who were not so ruled neither expected
nor demanded the lump-in-the-throat type of allegiance later to be
associated with the nationalist states. Armies were commanded by
members of an international nobility who spoke French as their lingua
franca and switched sides as they saw fit. There were manned by
personnel who, often enlisted by trickery and kept in the ranks by
main force, cared nothing for honor, duty, or country ..."
" 'In each of
the three above periods, as well as in many others which witnessed
the same phenomenon, the transformation of war into something akin to
a game did not pass without comment. What some people took as a sign
of piety or reason or progress, other saw as proof of stupidity,
effeminacy, and degeneration. During the last years before the French
Revolution, Gibbons praised war for its moderation and expressed the
hope that it would soon disappear altogether. Simultaneously, a
French nobleman, the Comte de Guibet, was cutting a figure among the
ladies of the salons by denouncing the prevailing military practices
as degenerate and calling for a commander and a people who, to use
his own words, would tear apart the feeble constitution of Europe
like the north wind bending the reeds . . .'
"Gentlemen and
ladies, I invite you to reflect on this. We live in a time when the
major powers of the Earth are governed by what can only be called
self perpetuating oligarchies. While there is more ostensible
turnover in the compositions of the Congress of the United States and
the Supreme Soviet than there was in the last decade of the twentieth
century, there is not a lot more, and what turnover there is happens
to be meaningless; the new master is indistinguishable from the old.
"Nor is it
important that these oligarchs think themselves important doing
important work - indeed that they are important and do important
work. The effect has been to alienate the Citizen entirely; while the
taxpayer supports the present system only because he fears the loss
of his privileges - because he fears he will be cast into the lot of
the Citizen. The same is true in the Soviet system, where Party
Members have long ago lost confidence in the possibility of reform,
and now do no more than jealously hold onto their privileges.
"Yet - while it
is easy to denounce the CoDominium and its endless cynicism, it is
not so certain that whatever replaces it will be better. Indeed, we
must wonder just what would survive the collapse of the CoDominium
..."
Twenty years later
...
EARTH FLOATED
ETERNALLY lovely above bleak lunar mountains. Daylight lay across
California and most of the Pacific, and the glowing ocean made an
impossibly blue backgound for a vortex of bright clouds swirling in a
massive tropical storm. Beyond the lunar crags, man's home was a
fragile ball amidst the black star-studded velvet of space; a ball
that a man might reach out to grasp and crush in his bare hands.
Grand Admiral Sergei
Lermontov looked at the bright viewscreen image and thought how easy
it would be for Earth to die. He kept her image on the viewscreen to
remind himself of that every time he looked up.
"That's all we
can get you, Sergei." His visitor sat with hands carefully
folded in his lap. A photograph would have shown him in a relaxed
position, seated comfortably in the big visitor's chair covered with
leathers from animals that grew on planets a hundred light years from
Earth. Seen closer, the real man was not relaxed at all. He looked
that way from his long experience as a politician.
"I wish it
could be more." Grand Senator Martin Grant shook his head slowly
from side to side. "At least it's something."
"We will lose
ships and disband regiments. I cannot operate the Fleet on that
budget." Lermontov's voice was flat and precise. He adjusted his
rimless spectacles to a comfortable position on his thin nose. His
gestures, like his voice, were precise and correct, and it was said
in Navy wardrooms that the Grand Admiral practiced in front of a
mirror.
"You'll have to
do the best you can. It's not even certain the United Party can
survive the next election. God knows we won't be able to if we give
any more to the Fleet." "But there is enough money for
national armies." Lermontov looked significantly at Earth's
image on the viewscreen. "Armies that can destroy earth. Martin,
how can we keep the peace if you will not let us have ships and men?"
"You can't keep
the peace if there's no CoDominium." Lermontov frowned. "Is
there a real chance that the United Party will lose, then?"
Martin Grant's head
bobbed in an almost imperceptible movement. "Yes."
"And the United
States will withdraw from the CD." Lermontov thought of all that
would mean, for Earth and for the nearly hundred worlds where men
lived. "Not many of the colonies will survive without us. It is
too soon. If we did not suppress science and research it might be
different, but there are so few independent worlds - Martin, we are
spread thin across the colony worlds. The CoDominium must help them.
We created their problems with our colonial governments. We gave them
no chances at all to live without us. We cannot let them go
suddenly." Grant sat motionless, saying nothing. "Yes, I am
preaching to the converted. But it is the Navy that gave the Grand
Senate this power over the colonies. I cannot help feeling
responsible."
Senator Grant's head
moved slightly again, either a nod or a tremor. "I would have
thought there was a lot you could do, Sergei. The Fleet obeys you,
not the Senate. I know my nephew has made that clear enough. The
warriors respect another warrior, but they've only contempt for us
politicians." "You are inviting treason?"
"No. Certainly
I'm not suggesting that the Fleet try running the show. Military rule
hasn't worked very well for us, has it?" Senator Grant turned
his head slightly to indicate the globe behind him. Twenty nations on
Earth were governed by armies, none of them very well.
On the other hand,
the politicians aren't doing a much better job, he thought. Nobody
is. "We don't seem to have any goals, Sergei. We just hang on,
hoping that things will get better. Why should they?"
"I have almost
ceased to hope for better conditions," Lermontov replied. "Now
I only pray they do not get worse." His lips twitched slightly
in a thin smile. "Those prayers are seldom answered."
"I spoke with
my brother yesterday," Grant said. "He's threatening to
retire again. I think he means it this time."
"But he cannot
do that!" Lermontov shuddered. "Your brother is one of the
few men in the U.S. government who understands how desperate is our
need for time."
"I told him
that."
"And?"
Grant shook his
head. "It's the rat race, Sergei. John doesn't see any end to
it. It's all very well to play rear guard, but for what?"
"Isn't the
survival of civilization a worthwhile goal?"
"If that's
where we're headed, yes. But what assurance do we have that we'll
achieve even that?"
The Grand Admiral's
smile was wintry. "None, of course. But we may be sure that
nothing will survive if we do not have more time. A few years of
peace, Martin. Much can happen in a few years. And if nothing does -
why, we will have had a few years."
The wall behind
Lermontov was covered with banners and plaques. Centered among them
was the CoDominium Seal: American eagle, Soviet sickle and hammer,
red stars and white stars. Beneath it was the Navy's official motto:
PEACE IS OUR PROFESSION.
We chose that motto
for them, Grant thought. The Senate made the Navy adopt it. Except
for Lermontov I wonder how many Fleet officers believe it? What would
they have chosen if left to themselves?
There are always the
warriors, and if you don't give them something worthwhile to fight
for. . . . But we can't live without them, because there comes a time
when you have to have warriors. Like Sergei Lermontov.
But do we have to
have politicians like me? "I'll talk to John again. I've never
been sure how serious he is about retiring anyway. You get used to
power, and it's hard to lay it down. It only takes a little
persuasion, some argument to let you justify keeping it. Power's more
addicting than opiates."
"But you can do
nothing about our budget."
"No. Fact is,
there's more problems. We need Bronson's votes, and he's got
demands."
Lermontov's eyes
narrowed, and his voice was thick with distaste. "At least we
know how to deal with men like Bronson." And it was strange,
Lermontov thought, that despicable creatures like Bronson should be
so small as problems. They could be bribed. They expected to be
bought.
It was the men of
honor who created the real problems. Men like Harmon in the United
States and Kaslov in the Soviet Union, men with causes they would die
for - they had brought mankind to this.
But I would rather
know Kaslov and Harmon and their friends than Bronson's people who
support us.
"You won't like
some of what he's asked for," Grant said. "Isn't Colonel
Falkenberg a special favorite of yours?"
"He is one of
our best men. I use him when the situation seems desperate. His men
will follow him anywhere, and he does not waste lives in achieving
our objectives."
"He's
apparently stepped on Bronson's toes once too often. They want him
cashiered."
"No."
Lermontov's voice was firm.
Martin Grant shook
his head. Suddenly he felt very tired, despite the low gravity of the
moon. "There's no choice, Sergei. It's not just personal
dislike, although there's a lot of that too. Bronson's making up to
Harmon, and Harmon thinks Falkenberg's dangerous."
"Of course he
is dangerous. He is a warrior. But he is a danger only to enemies of
the CoDominium. ..."
"Precisely."
Grant sighed again. "Sergei, I know. We're robbing you of your
best tools and then expecting you to do the work without them."
"It is more
than that, Martin. How do you control warriors?"
"I beg your
pardon?"
"I asked, 'How
do you control warriors?' "Lermontov adjusted his spectacles
with the tips of the fingers of both hands. "By earning their
respect, of course. But what happens if that respect is forfeit?
There will be no controlling him; and you are speaking of one of the
best military minds alive. You may live to regret this decision,
Martin."
"Can't be
helped. Sergei, do you think I like telling you to dump a good man
for a snake like Bronson? But it doesn't matter. The Patriot Party's
ready to make a big thing out of this, and Falkenberg couldn't
survive that kind of political pressure anyway, you know that. No
officer can. His career's finished no matter what."
"You have
always supported him in the past."
"Goddamn it,
Sergei, I appointed him to the Academy in the first place. I cannot
support him, and you can't either. He goes, or we lose Bronson's vote
on the budget."
"But why?"
Lermontov demanded. "The real reason."
Grant shrugged.
"Bronson's or Harmon's? Bronson has hated Colonel Falkenberg
ever since that business on Kennicott. The Bronson family lost a lot
of money there, and it didn't help that Bronson had to vote in favor
of giving Falkenberg his medals either. I doubt there's any more to
it than that.
"Harmon's a
different matter. He really believes that Falkenberg might lead his
troops against Earth. And once he asks for Falkenberg's scalp as a
favor from Bronson - "
"I see. But
Harmon's reasons are ludicrous. At least at the moment they are
ludicrous - "
"If he's that
damned dangerous, kill him," Grant said. He saw the look on
Lermontov's face. "I don't really mean that, Sergei, but you'll
have to do something."
"I will."
"Harmon thinks
you might order Falkenberg to march on Earth."
Lermontov looked up
in surprise.
"Yes. It's come
to that. Not even Bronson's ready to ask for your scalp. Yet. But
it's another reason why your special favorites have to take a low
profile right now."
"You speak of
our best men."
Grant's look was
full of pain and sadness. "Sure. Anyone who's effective scares
hell out of the Patriots. They want the CD eliminated entirely, and
if they can't get that, they'll weaken it. They'll keep chewing away,
too, getting rid of our most competent officers, and there's not a
lot we can do. Maybe in a few years things will be better."
"And perhaps
they will be worse," Lermontov said.
"Yeah. There's
always that, too."
Sergei Lermontov
stared at the viewscreen long after Grand Senator Grant had left the
office. Darkness crept slowly across the Pacific, leaving Hawaii in
shadow, and still Lermontov sat without moving, his fingers drumming
restlessly on the polished wood desktop.
I knew it would come
to this, he thought. Not so soon, though, not so soon. There is still
so much to do before we can let go.
And yet it will not
be long before we have no choice. Perhaps we should act now.
Lermontov recalled
his youth in Moscow, when the Generals controlled the Presidium, and
shuddered. No, he thought. The military virtues are useless for
governing civilians. But the politicians are doing no better.
If we had not
suppressed scientific research. But that was done in the name of the
peace. Prevent development of new weapons. Keep control of technology
in the hands of the government, prevent technology from dictating
policy to all of us; it had seemed so reasonable, and besides, the
policy was very old now. There were few trained scientists, because
no one wanted to live under the restrictions of the Bureau of
Technology.
What is done is
done, he thought, and looked around the office. Open cabinets held
shelves covered with the mementos of a dozen worlds. Exotic shells
lay next to reptilian stuffed figures and were framed by gleaming
rocks that could bring fabulous prices if he cared to sell.
Impulsively he
reached toward the desk console and turned the selector switch.
Images flashed across the viewscreen until he saw a column of men
marching through a great open bubble of rock. They seemed dwarfed by
the enormous cave.
A detachment of
CoDominium Marines marching through the central area of Luna Base.
Senate chamber and government offices were far below the cavern,
buried so deeply into rock that no weapon could destroy the
CoDominium's leaders by surprise. Above them were the warriors who
guarded, and this group was marching to relieve the guard.
Lermontov turned the
sound pickup but heard no more than the precise measured tramp of
marching boots. They walked carefully in low gravity, their pace
modified to accommodate their low weight; and they would, he knew, be
just as precise on a high-gravity world.
They wore uniforms
of blue and scarlet, with gleaming buttons of gold, badges of the
dark rich bronze alloys found on Kennicott, berets made from some
reptile that swam in Tanith's seas. Like the Grand Admiral's office,
the CoDominium Marines showed the influence of worlds light years
away.
"Sound off!"
The order came
through the pickup so loud that it startled the Admiral, and he
turned down the volume as the men began to sing.
Lermontov smiled to
himself. That song was officially forbidden, and it was certainly not
an appropriate choice for the guard mount about to take posts outside
the Grand Senate chambers. It was also very nearly the official
marching song of the Marines. And that, Admiral Lermontov thought,
ought to tell something to any Senator listening.
If Senators ever
listened to anything from the military people.
The measured verses
came through, slowly, in time with the sinister gliding step of the
troops.
"We've left
blood in the dirt of twenty-five worlds, we've built roads on a dozen
more, and all that we have at the end our hitch, buys a night with a
second-class whore.
"The Senate
decrees, the Grand Admiral calls, the orders come down from on high,
It's 'On Full Kits'
and sound 'Board Ships,' We're sending you where you can die.
"The lands that
we take, the Senate gives back, rather more often than not, so the
more that are killed, the less share the loot, and we won't be back
to this spot.
"We'll break
the hearts of your women and girls, we may break your arse as well,
Then the Line Marines with their banners unfurled, will follow those
banners to Hell.
"We know the
devil, his pomps and his works, Ah yes! we know them well!
When we've served
out our hitch as Line Marines, we can bugger the Senate of Hell!
"Then we'll
drink with our comrades and lay down our packs, we'll rest ten years
on the flat of our backs, then it's 'On Full Kits' and 'Out of Your
Racks,' you must build a new road through Hell!
"The Fleet is
our country, we sleep with a rifle, no one ever begot a son on his
rifle, they pay us in gin and curse when we sin, there's not one that
can stand us unless we're down wind, we're shot when we lose and
turned out when we win, but we bury our comrades wherever they fall,
and there's none that can face us though we've nothing at all."
The verse ended with
a flurry of drums, and Lermontov gently changed the selector back to
the turning Earth.
Perhaps, he thought.
Perhaps there's hope, but only if we have time.
Can the politicians
buy enough time?
II
THE HONORABLE JOHN
Rogers Grant laid a palm across a winking light on his desk console
and it went out, shutting off the security phone to Luna Base. His
face held an expression of pleasure and distaste, as it always did
when he was through talking with his brother.
I don't think I've
ever won an argument with Martin, he thought. Maybe it's because he
knows me better than I know myself.
Grant turned toward
the Tri-V, where the speaker was in full form. The speech had begun
quietly as Harmon's speeches always did, full of resonant tones and
appeals to reason. The quiet voice had asked for attention, but now
it had grown louder and demanded it.
The background
behind him changed as well, so that Harmon stood before the stars and
stripes covering the hemisphere, with an American eagle splendid over
the Capitol. Harmon was working himself into one of his famous
frenzies, and his face was contorted with emotion.
"Honor? It is a
word that Lipscomb no longer understands! Whatever he might have been
- and my friends, we all know how great he once was - he is no longer
one of us! His cronies, the dark little men who whisper to him, have
corrupted even as great a man as President Lipscomb!
"And our nation
bleeds! She bleeds from a thousand wounds! People of America, hear
me! She bleeds from the running sores of these men and their
CoDominium!
"They say that
if we leave the CoDominium it will mean war. I pray God it will not,
but if it does, why these are hard times. Many of us will be killed,
but we would die as men! Today our friends and allies, the people of
Hungary, the people of Rumania, the Czechs, the Slovaks, the Poles,
all of them groan under the oppression of their Communist masters.
Who keeps them there? We do! Our CoDominium!
"We have become
no more than slavemasters. Better to die as men.
"But it will
not come to that. The Russians will never fight. They are soft, as
soft as we, their government is riddled with the same corruptions as
ours. People of America, hear me! People of America, listen!"
Grant spoke softly
and the Tri-V turned itself off. A walnut panel slid over the
darkened screen, and Grant spoke again.
The desk opened to
offer a smal bottle of milk. There was nothing he could do for his
ulcer despite the advances in medical science. Money was no problem,
but there was never time for surgery and weeks with the regeneration
stimulators.
He leafed through
papers on his desk. Most were reports with bright red security
covers, and Grant closed his eyes for a moment. Harmon's speech was
important and would probably affect the upcoming elections. The man
is getting to be a nuisance, Grant thought.
I should do
something about him.
He put the thought
aside with a shudder. Harmon had been a friend, once. Lord, what have
we come to? He opened the first report.
There had been a
riot at the International Federation of Labor convention. Three
killed and the smooth plans for the reelection of Matt Brady thrown
into confusion. Grant grimaced again and drank more milk. The
Intelligence people had assured him this one would be easy.
He dug through the
reports and found that three of Harvey Bertram's child crusaders were
responsible.
They'd bugged
Brady's suite. The idiot hadn't known better than to make deals in
his room. Now Bertram's people had enough evidence of sellouts to
inflame floor sentiment in a dozen conventions.
The report ended
with a recommendation that the government drop Brady and concentrate
support on MacKnight, who had a good reputation and whose file in the
CIA building bulged with information. MacKnight would be easy to
control. Grant nodded to himself and scrawled his signature on the
action form.
He threw it into the
"Top Secret: Out" tray and watched it vanish. There was no
point in wasting time. Then he wondered idly what would happen to
Brady. Matt Brady had been a good United Party man; blast Bertram's
people anyway.
He took up the next
file, but before he could open it his secretary came in. Grant looked
up and smiled, glad of his decision to ignore the electronics. Some
executives never saw their secretaries for weeks at a time.
"Your
appointment, sir," she said. "And it's time for your nerve
tonic."
He grunted. "I'd
rather die." But he let her pour a shot glass of evil-tasting
stuff, and he tossed it off and chased it with milk. Then he glanced
at his watch, but that wasn't necessary. Miss Ackridge knew the
travel time to every Washington office. There'd be no time to start
another report, which suited Grant fine.
He let her help him
into his black coat and brush off a few silver hairs. He didn't feel
sixty-five, but he looked it now. It happened all at once. Five years
ago he could pass for forty. John saw the girl in the mirror behind
him and knew that she loved him, but it wouldn't work.
And why the hell
not? he wondered. It isn't as if you're pining away for Priscilla. By
the time she died you were praying it would happen, and we married
late to begin with. So why the hell do you act as if the great love
of your life has gone out forever? All you'd have to do is turn
around, say five words, and - and what? She wouldn't be the perfect
secretary any longer, and secretaries are harder to find than
mistresses. Let it alone.
She stood there a
moment longer, then moved away. "Your daughter wants to see you
this evening," she told him. "She's driving down this
afternoon and says it's important."
"Know why?"
Grant asked. Ackridge knew more about Sharon than Grant did. Possibly
a lot more.
"I can guess. I
think her young man has asked her."
John nodded. It
wasn't unexpected, but still it hurt. So soon, so soon. They grow so
fast when you're an old man. John Jr. was a commander in the
CoDominium Navy, soon to be a captain with a ship of his own.
Frederick was dead in the same accident as his mother. And now
Sharon, the baby, had found another life . . . not that they'd been
close since he'd taken this job.
"Run his name
through CIA, Flora, I meant to do that months ago. They won't find
anything, but we'll need it for the records."
"Yes, sir.
You'd better be on your way now. Your drivers are outside."
He scooped up his
briefcase. "I won't be back tonight. Have my car sent around to
the White House, will you? I'll drive myself home tonight."
He acknowledged the
salutes of the driver and armed mechanic with a cheery wave and
followed them to the elevator at the end of the long corridor.
Paintings and photographs of ancient battles hung along both sides of
the hall, and there was carpet on the floor, but otherwise it was
like a cave. Blasted Pentagon, he thought for the hundredth time.
Silliest building ever constructed. Nobody can find anything, and it
can't be guarded at any price. Why couldn't someone have bombed it?
They took a surface
car to the White House. A flight would have been another detail to
worry about, and besides, this way he got to see the cherry trees and
flower beds around the Jefferson. The Potomac was a sludgy brown
mess. You could swim in it if you had a strong stomach, but the Army
Engineers had "improved" it a few administrations back.
They'd given it concrete banks. Now they were ripping them out, and
it brought down mudslides.
They drove through
rows of government buildings, some abandoned. Urban renewal had given
Washington all the office space the Government would ever need, and
more, so that there were these empty buildings as relics of the time
when D.C. was the most crime-ridden city in the world. Sometime in
Grant's youth, though, they'd hustled everyone out of Washington who
didn't work there, with bulldozers quickly following to demolish the
tenements. For political reasons the offices had gone in as quickly
as the other buildings were torn down.
They passed the
Population Control Bureau and drove around the Elipse and past Old
State to the gate. The guard carefully checked his identity and made
him put his palm on the little scanning plate. Then they entered the
tunnel to the White House basement.
The President stood
when Grant entered the Oval Office, and the others shot to their feet
as if they had ejection charges under them. Grant shook hands around
but looked closely at Lipscomb. The President was feeling the strain,
no question about it. Well, they all were.
The Secretary of
Defense wasn't there, but then he never was. The Secretary was a
political hack who controlled a bloc of Aerospace Guild votes and an
even larger bloc of aerospace industry stocks. As long as government
contracts kept his companies busy employing his men, he didn't give a
danm about policy. He could sit in on formal Cabinet sessions where
nothing was ever said, and no one would know the difference. John
Grant was Defense as much as he was CIA.
Few of the men in
the Oval Office were well known to the public. Except for the
President any one of them could have walked the streets of any city
except Washington without fear of recognition. But the power they
controlled, as assistants and deputies, was immense, and they all
knew it. There was no need to pretend here.
The servitor brought
drinks and Grant accepted Scotch. Some of the others didn't trust a
man who wouldn't drink with them. His ulcer would give him hell, and
his , doctor more, but doctors and ulcers didn't understand - the
realities of power. Neither, thought Grant, do I or any of us, but
we've got it.
"Mr. Karins,
would you begin?" the President asked. Heads swiveled to the
west wall where Karins stood at the briefing screen. To his right a
polar projection of Earth glowed with lights showing the status of
the forces that the President ordered, but Grant controlled.
Karins stood
confidently, his paunch spilling out over his belt. The fat was an
obscenity in so young a man. Herman Karins was the second youngest
man in the room, Assistant Director of the Office of Management and
Budget, and said to be one of the most brilliant economists Yale had
ever produced. He was also the best political technician in the
country, but he hadn't learned that at Yale.
He activated the
screen to show a set of figures. "I have the latest poll
results," Karins said too loudly. "This is the real stuff,
not the slop we give the press. It stinks."
Grant nodded. It
certainly did. The Unity Party was hovering around thirty-eight
percent, just about evenly divided between the Republican and
Democratic wings. Harmon's Patriot Party had just over twenty-five.
Millington's violently left wing Liberation Party had its usual ten,
but the real shocker was Bertram's Freedom Party. Bertram's
popularity stood at an unbelievable twenty percent of the population.
"These are
figures for those who have an opinion and might vote," Karins
said. "Of course there's the usual gang that doesn't give a
damn, but we know how they split off. They go to whomever got to 'em
last anyway. You see the bad news."
"You're sure of
this?" the Assistant Postmaster General asked. He was the leader
of the Republican wing of Unity, and it hadn't been six months since
he had told them they could forget Bertram.
"Yes, sir,"
Karins said. "And it's growing. Those riots at the labor
convention probably gave 'em another five points we don't show. Give
Bertram six months and he'll be ahead of us. How you like them
apples, boys and girls?"
"There is no
need to be flippant, Mr. Karins," the President said.
"Sorry, Mr.
President." Karins wasn't sorry at all and he grinned at the
Assistant Postmaster General with triumph. Then he flipped the
switches to show new charts.
"Soft and
hard," Karins said. "You'll notice Bertram's vote is pretty
soft, but solidifying. Harmon's is so hard you couldn't get 'em away
from him without you use nukes. And ours is a little like butter. Mr.
President, I can't even guarantee we'll be the largest party after
the election, much less that we can hold a majority."
"Incredible,"
the Chairman of the Joint Chiefs muttered.
"Worse than
incredible." The Commerce rep shook her head in disbelief. "A
disaster. Who will win?"
Karins shrugged.
"Toss-up, but if I had to say, I'd pick Bertram. He's getting
more of our vote than Harmon."
"You've been
quiet, John," the President said. "What are your thoughts
here?"
"Well, sir,
it's fairly obvious what the result will be no matter who wins as
long as it isn't us." Grant lifted his Scotch and sipped with
relish. He decided to have another and to hell with the ulcer. "If
Harmon wins, he pulls out of the CoDominium, and we have war. If
Bertram takes over, he relaxes security, Harmon drives him out with
his storm troopers, and we have war anyway."
Karins nodded. "I
don't figure Bertram could hold power more'n a year, probably not
that long. Man's too honest."
The President sighed
loudly. "I can recall a time when men said that about me, Mr.
Karins."
"It's still
true, Mr. President." Karins spoke hurriedly. "But you're
realistic enough to let us do what we have to do. Bertram wouldn't."
"So what do we
do about it?" the President asked gently.
"Rig the
election," Karins answered quickly. "I give out the
popularity figures here." He produced a chart indicating a
majority popularity for Unity. "Then we keep pumping out more
faked stuff while Mr. Grant's people work on the vote-counting
computers. Hell, it's been done before."
"Won't work
this time." They turned to look at the youngest man in the room.
Larry Moriarty, assistant to the President, and sometimes called the
"resident heretic," blushed at the attention. "The
people know better. Bertram's people are already taking jobs in the
computer centers, aren't they, Mr. Grant? They'll see it in a
minute."
Grant nodded. He'd
sent the report over the day before; interesting that Moriarty had
already digested it.
"You make this
a straight rigged election, and you'll have to use CoDominium Marines
to keep order," Moriarty continued.
"The day I need
CoDominium Marines to put down riots in the United States is the day
I resign," the President said coldly. "I may be a realist,
but there are limits to what I will do. You'll need a new chief,
gentlemen."
"That's easy to
say, Mr. President," Grant said. He wanted his pipe, but the
doctors had forbidden it. To hell with them, he thought, and took a
cigarette from a pack on the table. "It's easy to say, but you
can't do it."
The President
frowned. "Why not?"
Grant shook his
head. "The Unity Party supports the CoDominium, and the
CoDominium keeps the peace. An ugly peace, but by God, peace. I wish
we hadn't got support for the CoDominium treaties tied so thoroughly
to the Unity Party, but it is and that's that. And you know damn well
that even in the Party it's only a thin majority that supports the
CoDominium. Right, Harry?"
The Assistant
Postmaster General nodded. "But don't forget, there's support
for the CD in Bertram's group."
"Sure, but they
hate our guts," Moriarty said. "They say we're corrupt. And
they're right."
"So flipping
what if they're right?" Karins snapped. "We're in, they're
out. Anybody who's in for long is corrupt. If he isn't, he's not in."
"I fail to see
the point of this discussion," the President interrupted. "I
for one do not enjoy being reminded of all the things I have done to
keep this office. The question is, what are we going to do? I feel it
only fair to warn you that nothing could make me happier than to have
Mr. Bertram sit in this chair. I've been President for a long time,
and I'm tired. I don't want the job anymore."
III
EVERYONE SPOKE AT
once, shouting to the President, murmuring to their neighbors, until
Grant cleared his throat loudly. "Mr. President," he said
using the tone of command he'd been taught during his brief tour in
the Army Reserve. "Mr. President, if you will pardon me, that is
a ludicrous suggestion. There is no one else in the Unity Party who
has even a ghost of a chance of winning. You alone remain popular.
Even Mr. Harmon speaks as well of you as he does of anyone not in his
group. You cannot resign without dragging the Unity Party with you,
and you cannot give that chair to Mr. Bertram because he couldn't
hold it six months."
"Would that be
so bad?" President Lipscomb leaned toward Grant with the
confidential manner he used in his fireside chats to the people. "Are
we really so sure that only we can save the human race, John? Or do
we only wish to keep power?"
"Both, I
suppose," Grant said. "Not that I'd mind retiring myself."
"Retire!"
Karins snorted. "You let Bertram's clean babies in the files for
two hours, and none of us will retire to anything better'n a CD
prison planet. You got to be kidding, retire."
"That may be
true," the President said.
"There's other
ways," Karins suggested. "General, what happens if Harmon
takes power and starts his war?"
"Mr. Grant
knows better than I do," General Carpenter said. When the others
stared at him, Carpenter continued. "No one has ever fought a
nuclear war. Why should the uniform make me more of an expert than
you? Maybe we could win. Heavy casualties, very heavy, but our
defenses are good."
Carpenter gestured
at the moving lights on the wall projection. "We have better
technology than the Russia's. Our laser guns ought to get most of
their missiles. CD Fleet won't let either of us use space weapons. We
might win."
"We might."
Lipscomb was grim. "John?"
"We might not
win. We might kill more than half the human race. We might get more.
How in God's name do I know what happens when we throw nuclear
weapons around?"
"But the
Russians aren't prepared," Commerce said. "If we hit them
without warning - people never change governments in the middle of a
war."
President Lipscomb
sighed. "I am not going to start a nuclear war to retain power.
Whatever I have done, I have done to keep peace. That is my last
excuse. I could not live with myself if I sacrifice peace to keep
power."
Grant cleared his
throat gently. "We couldn't do it anyway. If we start converting
defensive missiles to offensive, CoDominium Intelligence would hear
about it in ten days. The Treaty prevents that, you know."
He lit another
cigarette. "We aren't the only threat to the CD, anyway. There's
always Kaslov."
Kaslov was a pure
Stalinist, who wanted to liberate Earth for Communism. Some called
him the last Communist, but of course he wasn't the last. He had
plenty of followers. Grant could remember a secret conference with
Ambassador Chernikov only weeks ago.
The Soviet was a
polished diplomat, but it was obvious that he wanted something
desperately. He wanted the United States to keep the pressure on, not
relax her defenses at the borders of the U.S. sphere of influence,
because if the Communist probes ever took anything from the U.S.
without a hard fight, Kaslov would gain more influence at home. He
might even win control of the Presidium.
"Nationalism
everywhere," the President sighed. "Why?"
No one had an answer
to that. Harmon gained power in the U.S. and Kaslov in the Soviet
Union; while a dozen petty nationalist leaders gained power in a
dozen other countries. Some thought it started with Japan's
nationalistic revival.
"This is all
nonsense," said the Assistant Postmaster General. "We
aren't going to quit and we aren't starting any wars. Now what does
it take to get the support away from Mr. Clean Bertram and funnel it
back to us where it belongs? A good scandal, right? Find Bertram's
dirtier than we are, right? Worked plenty of times before. You can
steal people blind if you scream loud enough about how the other
guy's a crook."
"Such as?"
Karins prompted.
"Working with
the Japs. Giving the Japs nukes, maybe. Supporting Meiji's
independence movement. I'm sure Mr. Grant can arrange something."
Karins nodded
vigorously. 'That might do it. Disillusion his organizers. The
pro-CoDominium people in his outfit would come to us like a shot."
Karins paused and
chuckled. "Course some of them will head for Millington's bunch,
too."
They all laughed. No
one worried about Millington's Liberation Party. His madmen caused
riots and kept the taxpayers afraid, and made a number of security
arrangements highly popular. The Liberation Party gave the police
some heads to crack, nice riots for Tri-V to keep the Citizens amused
and the taxpayers happy.
"I think we can
safely leave the details to Mr. Grant." Karins grinned broadly.
"What will you
do, John?" the President asked.
"Do you really
want to know, Mr. President?" Moriarty interrupted."I
don't."
"Nor do I, but
if I can condone it, I can at least find out what it is. What will
you do, John?"
"Frame-up, I
suppose. Get a plot going, then uncover it."
"That?"
Moriarty shook his head. "It's got to be good. The people are
beginning to wonder about all these plots."
Grant nodded. "There
will be evidence. Hard-core evidence. A secret arsenal of nuclear
weapons."
There was a gasp.
Then Karins grinned widely again. "Oh, man, that's tore it.
Hidden nukes. Real ones, I suppose?"
"Of course."
Grant looked with distaste at the fat youth. What would be the point
of fake nuclear weapons? But Karins lived in a world of deception, so
much so that fake weapons might be appropriate in it.
"Better have
lots of cops when you break that story," Karins said. "People
hear that, they'll tear Bertram apart."
True enough, Grant
thought. It was a point he'd have to remember. Protection of those
kids wouldn't be easy. Not since one militant group atom-bombed
Bakersfield, California, and a criminal syndicate tried to hold
Seattle for a hundred million ransom. People no longer thought of
private stocks of atomic weapons as something to laugh at.
"We won't
involve Mr. Bertram personally," the President said grimly. "Not
under any circumstances. Is that understood?"
"Yes, sir,"
John answered quickly. He hadn't liked the idea either. "Just
some of his top aides." Grant stubbed out the cigarette. It, or
something, had left a foul taste in his mouth. "I'll have them
end up with the CD for final custody. Sentenced to transportation. My
brother can arrange it so they don't have hard sentences."
"Sure. They can
be independent planters on Tanith if they'll cooperate," Karins
said. "You can see they don't suffer."
Like hell, Grant
thought. Life on Tanith was no joy under the best conditions.
"There's one
more thing," the President said. "I understand Grand
Senator Bronson wants something from the CD. Some officer was a
little too efficient at uncovering the Bronson family deals, and they
want him removed." The President looked as if he'd tasted sour
milk. "I hate this, John. I hate it, but we need Bronson's
support. Can you speak to your brother?"
"I already
have," Grant said."It will be arranged."
Grant left the
meeting a few minutes later. The others could continue in endless
discussion, but Grant saw no point to it. The action needed was
clear, and the longer they waited the more time Bertram would have to
assemble his supporters and harden his support. If something were to
be done, it should be now.
Grant had found all
his life that the wrong action taken decisively and in time was
better than the right action taken later. After he reached the
Pentagon he summoned his deputies and issued orders. It took no more
than an hour to set the machinery in motion.
Grant's colleagues
always said he was rash, too quick to take action without examining
the consequences. They also conceded that he was lucky. To Grant it
wasn't luck, and he did consider the consequences; but he anticipated
events rather than reacted to crisis. He had known that Bertram's
support was growing alarmingly for weeks and had made contingency
plans long before going to the conference with the President.
Now it was clear
that action must be taken immediately. Within days there would be
leaks from the conference. Nothing about the actions to be taken, but
there would be rumors about the alarm and concern. A secretary would
notice that Grant had come back to the Pentagon after dismissing his
driver. Another would see that Karins chuckled more than usual when
he left the Oval Office, or that two political enemies came out
together and went off to have a drink. Another would hear talk about
Bertram, and soon it would be all over Washington: the President was
worried about Bertram's popularity.
Since the leaks were
inevitable, he should act while this might work. Grant dismissed his
aides with a sense of satisfaction. He had been ready, and the crisis
would be over before it began. It was only after he was alone that he
crossed the paneled room to the teak cabinet and poured a double
Scotch.
The Maryland
countryside slipped past far below as , the Cadillac cruised on
autopilot. A ribbon antenna ran almost to Grant's house, and he
watched the twilight scene with as much relaxation as he ever
achieved lately. House lights blinked below, and a few surface cars
ran along the roads. Behind him was the sprawling mass of Columbia
Welfare Island where most of those displaced from Washington had
gone. Now the inhabitants were third generation and had never known
any other life.
He grimaced. Welfare
Islands were lumps of concrete buildings and roof parks, containers
for the seething resentment of useless lives kept placid by
Government furnished supplies of Tanith hashpot and borloi and
American cheap booze. A man born in one of those complexes could stay
there all his life, and many did.
Grant tried to
imagine what it would be like there, but he couldn't. Reports from
his agents gave an intellectual picture, but there was no way to
identify with those people. He could not feel the hopelessness and
dulled senses, burning hatreds, terrors, bitter pride of street
gangs.
Karins knew, though.
Karins had begun his life in a Welfare Island somewhere in the
Midwest. Karins clawed his way through the schools to a scholarship
and a ticket out forever. He'd resisted stimulants and dope and
Tri-V. Was it worth it? Grant wondered. And of course there was
another way out of Welfare, as a voluntary colonist; but so few took
that route now. Once there had been a lot of them.
The speaker on the
dash suddenly came to life cutting off Beethoven in mid bar.
"WARNING. YOU ARE APPROACHING A GUARDED AREA. UNAUTHORIZED CRAFT
WILL BE DESTROYED WITHOUT FURTHER WARNING. IF YOU HAVE LEGITIMATE
ERRANDS IN THIS RESTRICTED AREA, FOLLOW THE GUIDE BEAM TO THE POLICE
CHECK STATION. THIS IS A FINAL WARNING."
The Cadillac
automatically turned off course to ride the beam down to State Police
headquarters, and Grant cursed. He activated the mike and spoke
softly. "This is John Grant of Peachem's Bay. Something seems to
be wrong with my transponder."
There was a short
pause, then a soft feminine voice came from the dash speaker. "We
are very sorry, Mr. Grant. Your signal is correct. Our identification
unit is out of order. Please proceed to your home."
"Get that
damned thing fixed before it shoots down a taxpayer," Grant
said. Ann Arundel County was a Unity stronghold. How long would that
last after an accident like that? He took the manual controls and cut
across country, ignoring regulations. They could only give him a
ticket now that they knew who he was, and his banking computer would
pay it without bothering to tell him of it.
It brought a grim
smile to his face. Traffic regulations were broken, computers noted
it and levied fines, other computers paid them, and no human ever
became aware of them. It was only if there were enough tickets
accumulated to bring a warning of license suspension that a taxpayer
learned of the things - unless he liked checking his bank statements
himself.
His home lay ahead,
a big rambling early twentieth-century place on the cove. His yacht
was anchored offshore, and it gave him a guilty twinge. She wasn't
neglected, but she was too much in the hands of paid crew, too long
without attention from her owner.
Carver, the
chauffeur, rushed out to help Grant down from the Cadillac. Hapwood
was waiting in the big library with a glass of sherry. Prince
Bismark, shivering in the presence of his god, put his Doberman head
on Grant's lap, ready to leap into the fire at command.
There was irony in
the situation, Grant thought. At home he enjoyed the power of a
feudal lord, but it was limited by how strongly the staff wanted to
stay out of Welfare. But he only had to lift the Security phone in
the corner, and his real power, completely invisible and limited only
by what the President wanted to find out, would operate. Money gave
him the visible power, heredity gave him the power over the dog; what
gave him the real power of the Security phone?
"What time
would you like dinner, sir?" Hapwood asked. "And Miss
Sharon is here with a guest."
"A guest?"
"Yes, sir. A
young man, Mr. Allan Torrey, sir."
"Have they
eaten?"
"Yes, sir. Miss
Ackridge called to say that you would be late for dinner."
"All right,
Hapwood. I'll eat now and see Miss Grant and her guest afterwards."
"Very good,
sir. I will inform the cook." Hapwood left the room invisibly.
Grant smiled again.
Hapwood was another figure from Welfare and had grown up speaking a
dialect Grant would never recognize. For some reason he had been
impressed by English butlers he'd seen on Tri-V and cultivated their
manner - and now he was known all over the county as the perfect
household manager.
Hapwood didn't know
it, but Grant had a record of every cent his butler took in:
kickbacks from grocers and caterers, contributions from the
gardeners, and the surprisingly well-managed investment portfolio.
Hapwood could easily retire to his own house and live the life of a
taxpayer investor.
Why? Grant wondered
idly. Why does he stay on? It makes life easier for me, but why? It
had intrigued Grant enough to have his agents look into Hapwood, but
the man had no politics other than staunch support for Unity. The
only suspicious thing about his contacts was the refinement with
which he extracted money from every transaction involving Grant's
house. Hapwood had no children, and his sexual needs were satisfied
by infrequent visits to the fringe areas around Welfare.
Grant ate
mechanically, hurrying to be through and see his daughter, yet he was
afraid to meet the boy she had brought home. For a moment he thought
of using the Security phone to find out more about him, but he shook
his head angrily. Too much security thinking wasn't good. For once he
was going to be a parent, meeting his daughter's intended and nothing
more.
He left his dinner
unfinished without thinking how much the remnants of steak would have
cost, or that Hapwood would probably sell them somewhere, and went to
the library. He sat behind the massive Oriental fruitwood desk and
had a brandy.
Behind him and to
both sides the walls were lined with book shelves, immaculate
dust-free accounts of the people of dead empires. It had been years
since he had read one. Now all his reading was confined to reports
with bright red covers. The reports told live stories about living
people, but sometimes, late at night, Grant wondered if his country
was not as dead as the empires in his books.
Grant loved his
country but hated her people, all of them: Karins and the new breed,
the tranquilized Citizens in their Welfare Islands, the smug
taxpayers grimly holding onto their privileges. What, then, do I
love? he wondered. Only our history, and the greatness that once was
the United States, and that's found only in those books and in old
buildings, never in the security reports.
Where are the
patriots? All of them have become Patriots, stupid men and women
following a leader toward nothing. Not even glory.
Then Sharon came in.
She was a lovely girl, far prettier than her mother had ever been,
but she lacked her mother's poise. She ushered in a tall boy in his
early twenties.
Grant studied the
newcomer as they came toward him. Nice-looking boy. Long hair, neatly
trimmed, conservative mustache for these times. Blue and violet
tunic, red scarf ... a little flashy, but even John Jr. went in for
flashy clothes when he got out of CD uniform.
The boy walked
hesitantly, almost timidly, and Grant wondered if it were fear of him
and his position in the government, or only the natural nervousness
of a young man about to meet his fiancee's wealthy father. The tiny
diamond on Sharon's hand sparkled in the yellow light from the
fireplace, and she held the hand in an unnatural position.
"Daddy, I ...
I've talked so much about him, this is Allan. He's just asked me to
marry him!" She sparkled, Grant saw; and she spoke trustingly,
sure of his approval, never thinking he might object. Grant wondered
if Sharon weren't the only person in the country who didn't fear him.
Except for John Jr., who didn't have to be afraid. John was out of
the reach of Grant's Security phone. The CD Fleet takes care of its
own.
At least he's asked
her to marry him. He might have simply moved in with her. Or has he
already? Grant stood and extended his hand. "Hello, Allan."
Torrey's grip was
firm, but his eyes avoided Grant's. "So you want to marry my
daughter." Grant glanced pointedly at her left hand. "It
appears that she approves the idea."
"Yes, sir. Uh,
sir, she wanted to wait and ask you, but I insisted. It's my fault,
sir." Torrey looked up at him this time, almost in defiance.
"Yes."
Grant sat again. "Well, Sharon, as long as you're home for the
evening, I wish you'd speak to Hapwood about Prince Bismark. I do not
think the animal is properly fed."
"You mean right
now?" she asked. She tightened her small mouth into a pout.
"Really, Daddy, this is Victorian! Sending me out of the room
while you talk to my fiance!"
"Yes, it is,
isn't it?" Grant said nothing else, and finally she turned away.
Then: "Don't
let him frighten you, Allan. He's about as dangerous as that - as
that moosehead in the trophy room!" She fled before there could
be any reply.
IV
THEY SAT AWKWARDLY.
Grant left his desk to sit near the fire with Torrey. Drinks, offer
of a smoke, all the usual amenities - he did them all; but finally
Hapwood had brought their refreshments and the door was closed.
"All right,
Allan," John Grant began. "Let us be trite and get it over
with. How do you intend to support her?"
Torrey looked
straight at him this time. His eyes danced with what Grant was
certain was concealed amusement. "I expect to be appointed to a
good post in the Department of the Interior. I'm a trained engineer."
"Interior?"
Grant thought for a second. The answer surprised him - he hadn't
thought the boy was another office seeker. "I suppose it can be
arranged."
Torrey grinned. It
was an infectious grin, and Grant liked it. "Well, sir, it's
already arranged. I wasn't asking for a job."
"Oh?"
Grant shrugged. "I hadn't heard." "Deputy Assistant
Secretary for Natural Resources. I took a master's in ecology."
"That's
interesting, but I would have thought I'd have heard of your coming
appointment."
"It won't be
official yet, sir. Not until Mr. Bertram is elected President. For
the moment I'm on his staff." The grin was still there, and it
was friendly, not hostile. The boy thought politics was a game. He
wanted to win, but it was only a game.
And he's seen real
polls, Grant thought. "Just what do you do for Mr. Bertram,
then?"
Allan shrugged.
"Write speeches, carry the mail, run the Xerox - you've been in
campaign headquarters. I'm the guy who gets the jobs no one else
wants."
Grant laughed. "I
did start as a gopher, but I soon hired my own out of what I once
contributed to the Party. They did not try that trick again with me.
I don't suppose that course is open to you."
"No, sir. My
father's a taxpayer, but paying taxes is pretty tough just now - "
"Yes."
Well, at least he wasn't from a Citizen family. Grant would learn the
details from Ackridge tomorrow, for now the important thing was to
get to know the boy.
It was difficult,
Allan was frank and relaxed, and Grant was pleased to see that he
refused a third drink, but there was little to talk about. Torrey had
no conception of the realities of politics. He Was one of Bertram's
child crusaders, and he was out to save the United States from people
like John Grant, although he was too polite to say so.
And I was once that
young, Grant thought. I wanted to save the world, but it was so
different then. No one wanted to end the CoDominium when I was young.
We were too happy to have the Second Cold War over with. What
happened to the great sense of relief when we could stop worrying
about atomic wars? When I was young that was all we thought of, that
we would be the last generation. Now they take it for granted that
we'll have peace forever. Is peace such a little thing?
"There s so
much to do," Torrey was saying. "The Baja Project, thermal
pollution of the Sea of Cortez! They're killing off a whole ecology
just to create estates for the taxpayers.
"I know it
isn't your department, sir, you probably don't even know what they're
doing. But Lipscomb has been in office too long! Corruption, special
interests, it's time we had a genuine two-party system again instead
of things going back and forth between the wings of Unity. It's time
for a change, and Mr. Bertram's the right man, I know he is."
Grant's smile was
thin, but he managed it. "You'll hardly expect me to agree with
you," Grant said.
"No, sir."
Grant sighed. "But
perhaps you're right at that. I must say I wouldn't mind retiring, so
that I could live in this house instead of merely visiting it on
weekends."
What was the point?
Grant wondered. He'd never convince this boy, and Sharon wanted him.
Torrey would drop Bertram after the scandals broke.
And what
explanations were there anyway? The Baja Project was developed to aid
a syndicate of taxpayers in the six states of the old former Republic
of Mexico. The Government needed them, and they didn't care about
whales and fish. Shortsighted, yes, and Grant had tried to argue them
into changing the project, but they wouldn't, and politics is the art
of the possible.
Finally, painfully,
the interview ended. Sharon came in, grinning sheepishly because she
was engaged to one of Bertram's people, but she understood that no
better than Allan Torrey. It was only a game. Bertram would win and
Grant would retire, and no one would be hurt.
How could he tell
them that it didn't work that way any longer? Unity wasn't the
cleanest party in the world, but at least it had no fanatics - and
all over the world the causes were rising again. The Friends of the
People were on the move, and it had all happened before, it was all
told time and again in those aseptically clean books on the shelves
above him.
BERTRAM AIDES
ARRESTED BY INTERCONTINENTAL BUREAU OF INVESTIGATION!! IBI RAIDS
SECRET WEAPONS CACHE IN BERTRAM HEADQUARTERS. NUCLEAR WEAPONS
HINTED!!!
Chicago, May 15,
(UPI) - IBI agents here have arrested five top aides to Senator
Harvey Bertram in what government officials call one of the most
despicable plots ever discovered. . . .
Grant read the
transcript on his desk screen without satisfaction. It had all gone
according to plan, and there was nothing left to do, but he hated it.
At least it was
clean. The evidence was there. Bertram's people could have their
trial, challenge jurors, challenge judges. The Government would waive
its rights under the Thirty-first Amendment and let the case be tried
under the old adversary rules. It wouldn't matter. Then he read the
small type below. "Arrested were Gregory Kalamintor, nineteen,
press secretary to Bertram; Timothy Giordano, twenty-two, secretary;
Allan Torrey, twenty-two, executive assistant - " The page
blurred, and Grant dropped his face into his hands. "My God,
what have we done?" He hadn't moved when Miss Ackridge buzzed.
"Your daughter on four, sir. She seems upset."
"Yes."
Grant punched savagely at the button. Sharon's face swam into view.
Her makeup was ruined by long streaks of tears. She looked older,
much like her mother during one of their -
"Daddy! They've
arrested Allan! And I know it isn't true, he wouldn't have anything
to do with nuclear weapons! A lot of Mr. Bertram's people said there
would never be an honest election in this country. They said John
Grant would see to that! I told him they were wrong, but they
weren't, were they? You've done this to stop the election, haven't
you?"
There was nothing to
say because she was right. But who might be listening? "I don't
know what you're talking about. I've only seen the Tri-V casts about
Allan's arrest, nothing more. Come home, kitten, and we'll talk about
it."
"Oh no! You're
not getting me where Dr. Pollard can give me a nice friendly little
shot and make me forget about Allan! No! I'm staying with my friends,
and I won't be home, Daddy. And when I go to the newspapers, I think
they'll listen to me. I don't know what to tell them yet, but I'm
sure Mr. Bertram's people will think of something. How do you like
that, Mr. God?"
"Anything you
tell the press will be lies, Sharon. You know nothing." One of
his assistants had come in and now left the office.
"Lies? Where
did I learn to lie?" The screen went blank.
And is it that thin?
he wondered. All the trust and love, could it vanish that fast, was
it that thin? "Sir?" It was Hartman, his assistant. "Yes?"
"She was
calling from Champaign, Illinois. A Bertram headquarters they think
we don't know about. The phone had one of those guaranteed no-trace
devices."
"Trusting lot,
aren't they?" Grant said. "Have some good men watch that
house, but leave her alone." He stood and felt a wave of nausea
so strong that he had to hold the edge of the desk. "MAKE DAMNED
SURE THEY LEAVE HER ALONE. DO YOU UNDERSTAND?" he shouted.
Hartman went as pale
as Grant. The chief hadn't raised his voice to one of his own people
in five years. "Yes, sir, I understand."
"Then get out
of here." Grant spoke carefully, in low tones, and the cold
mechanical voice was more terrifying than the shout.
He sat alone and
stared at the telephone. What use was its power now?
What can we do? It
wasn't generally known that Sharon was engaged to the boy. He'd
talked them out of a formal engagement until the banns could be
announced in the National Cathedral and they could hold a big social
party. It had been something to do for them at the time, but . . .
But what? He
couldn't have the boy released. Not that boy. He wouldn't keep silent
as the price of his own freedom. He'd take Sharon to a newspaper
within five minutes of his release, and the resulting headlines would
bring down Lipscomb, Unity, the CoDominium - and the peace. Newsmen
would listen to the daughter of the top secret policeman in the
country.
Grant punched a code
on the communicator, then another. Grand Admiral Lermontov appeared
on the screen.
'Yes, Mr. Grant?"
"Are you alone?"
"Yes."
The conversation was
painful, and the long delay while the signals reached the moon and
returned didn't make it easier.
"When is the
next CD warship going outsystem? Not a colony ship, and most
especially not a prison ship. A warship."
Another long pause,
longer even than the delay. "I suppose anything could be
arranged," the Admiral said. "What do you need?"
"I want ..."
Grant hesitated, but there was no time to be lost. No time at all. "I
want space for two very important political prisoners. A married
couple. The crew is not to know their identity, and anyone who does
learn their identity must stay outsystem for at least five years. And
I want them set down on a good colony world, a decent place. Sparta,
perhaps. No one ever returns from Sparta. Can you arrange that?"
Grant could see the
changes in Lermontov's face as the words reached him. The Admiral
frowned. "It can be done if it is important enough. It will not
be easy."
"It's important
enough. My brother Martin will explain everything you'll need to know
later. The prisoners will be delivered tonight, Sergei. Please have
the ship ready. And - and it better not be Saratoga. My son's in that
one and he - he will know one of the prisoners." Grant swallowed
hard. "There should be a chaplain aboard. The kids will be
getting married."
Lermontov frowned
again, as if wondering if John Grant had gone insane. Yet he needed
the Grants, both of them, and certainly John Grant would not ask such
a favor if it were not vital.
"It will be
done," Lermontov said.
"Thank you.
I'll also appreciate it if you will see they have a good estate on
Sparta. They are not to know who arranged it. Just have it taken care
of and send the bill to me."
It was all so very
simple. Direct his agents to arrest Sharon and conduct her to CD
Intelligence. He wouldn't want to see her first. The attorney general
would send Torrey to the same place and announce that he had escaped.
It wasn't as neat as
having all of them convicted in open court, but it would do, and
having one of them a fugitive from justice would even help. It would
be an admission of guilt.
Something inside him
screamed again and again that this was his little girl, the only
person in the world who wasn't afraid of him, but Grant refused to
listen. He leaned back in the chair and almost calmly dictated his
orders.
He took the flimsy
sheet from the writer and his hand didn't tremble at all as he signed
it.
All right, Martin,
he thought. All right. I've bought the time you asked for, you and
Sergei Lermontov. Now can you do something with it?
2087 A.D.
V
THE LANDING BOAT
fell away from the orbiting warship. When it had drifted -to a safe
distance, retros fired, and after it had entered the thin reaches of
the planet's upper atmosphere, scoops opened in the bows. The thin
air was drawn in and compressed until the stagnation temperature in
the ramjet chamber was high enough for ignition.
The engines lit with
a roar of flame. Wings swung out to provide lift at hypersonic
speeds, and the spaceplane turned to streak over empty ocean toward
the continental land mass two thousand kilometers away.
The ship circled
over craggy mountains twelve kilometers high, then dropped low over
thickly forested plains. It slowed until it was no longer a danger to
the thin strip of inhabited lands along the ocean shores. The
planet's great ocean was joined to a smaller sea by a nearly
landlocked channel no more than five kilometers across at its widest
point, and nearly all of the colonists lived near the junction of the
waters.
Hadley's capital
city nestled on a long peninsula at the mouth of that channel, and
the two natural harbors, one in the sea, the other in the ocean, gave
the city the fitting name of Refuge. The name suggested a tranquility
the city no longer possessed.
The ship extended
its wings to their fullest reach and floated low over the calm water
of the channel harbor. It touched and settled in. Tugboats raced
across clear blue water. Sweating seamen threw lines and towed the
landing craft to the dock where they secured it.
A long line of
CoDominium Marines in garrison uniform marched out of the boat. They
gathered on the gray concrete piers into neat brightly colored lines.
Two men in civilian clothing followed the Marines from the flyer.
They blinked at the
unaccustomed blue-white of Hadley's sun. The sun was so far away that
it would have been only a small point if either of them were foolish
enough to look directly at it. The apparent small size was only an
illusion caused by distance; Hadley received as much illumination
from its hotter sun as Earth does from Sol.
Both men were tall
and stood as straight as the Marines in front of them, so that except
for their clothing they might have been mistaken for a part of the
disembarking battalion. The shorter of the two carried luggage for
both of them, and stood respectfully behind; although older he was
obvioualy a subordinate. They watched as two younger men came
uncertainly along the pier. The newcomers' unadorned blue uniforms
contrasted sharply with the bright reds and golds of the CoDominium
Marines milling around them. Already the Marines were scurrying back
into the flyer to carry out barracks bags, weapons, and all the other
personal gear of a light infantry battalion.
The taller of the
two civilians faced the uniformed newcomers. "I take it you're
here to meet us?" he asked pleasantly. His voice rang through
the noise on the pier, and it carried easily although he had not
shouted. His accent was neutral, the nearly universal English of
non-Russian officers in the CoDominium Service, and it marked his
profession almost as certainly as did his posture and the tone of
command.
The newcomers were
uncertain even so. There were a lot of ex-officers of the CoDominium
Space Navy on the beach lately. CD budgets were lower every year. "I
think so," one finally said. "Are you John Christian
Falkenberg?"
His name was
actually John Christian Falkenberg III, and he suspected that his
grandfather would have insisted on the distinction. "Right. And
Sergeant Major Calvin."
"Pleasure to
meet you, sir. I'm Lieutenant Banners, and this is Ensign Mowrer.
We're on President Budreau's staff." Banners looked around as if
expecting other men, but there were none except the uniformed
Marines. He gave Falkenberg a slightly puzzled look, then added, "We
have transportation for you, but I'm afraid your men will have to
walk. It's about eleven miles."
"Miles."
Falkenberg smiled to himself. This was out in the boondocks. "I
see no reason why ten healthy mercenaries can't march eighteen
kilometers, Lieutenant." He turned to face the black shape of
the landing boat's entry port and called to someone inside. "Captain
Fast. There is no transportation, but someone will show you where to
march the men. Have them carry all gear."
"Uh, sir, that
won't be necessary," the lieutenant protested. "We can get
- well, we have horse-drawn transport for baggage." He looked at
Falkenberg as if he expected him to laugh.
"That's hardly
unusual on colony worlds," Falkenberg said. Horses and mules
could be carried as frozen embryos, and they didn't require
high-technology industries to produce more, nor did they need an
industrial base to fuel them.
"Ensign Mowrer
will attend to it," Lieutenant Banners said. He paused again and
looked thoughtful as if uncertain how to tell Falkenberg something.
Finally he shook his head. "I think it would be wise if you
issued your men their personal weapons, sir. There shouldn't be any
trouble on their way to barracks, but - anyway, ten armed men
certainly won't have any problems."
"I see. Perhaps
I should go with my troops, Lieutenant. I hadn't known things were
quite this bad on Hadley." Falkenberg's voice was calm and even,
but he watched the junior officers carefully.
"No, sir. They
aren't, really. . . . But there's no point in taking chances."
He waved Ensign Mowrer to the landing craft and turned back to
Falkenberg. A large black shape rose from the water outboard of the
landing craft. It splashed and vanished. Banners seemed not to
notice, but the Marines shouted excitedly. "I'm sure the ensign
and your officers can handle the disembarkation, and the President
would like to see you immediately, sir."
"No doubt. All
right, Banners, lead on. I'll bring Sergeant Major Calvin with me."
He followed Banners down the pier.
There's no point to
this farce, Falkenberg thought. Anyone seeing ten armed men conducted
by a Presidential ensign will know they're mercenary troops, civilian
clothes or not. Another case of wrong information.
Falkenberg had been
told to keep the status of himself and his men a secret, but it
wasn't going to work. He wondered if this would make it more
difficult to keep his own secrets.
Banners ushered them
quickly through the bustling CoDominium Marine barracks, past bored
guards who half-saluted the Presidential Guard uniform. The Marine
fortress was a blur of activity, every open space crammed with packs
and weapons; the signs of a military force about to move on to
another station.
As they were leaving
the building, Falkenberg saw an elderly Naval officer. "Excuse
me a moment, Banners." He turned to the CoDominium Navy captain.
"They sent someone for me. Thanks, Ed."
"No problem.
I'll report your arrival to the Admiral. He wants to keep track of
you. Unofficially, of course. Good luck, John. God knows you need
some right now. It was a rotten deal."
"It's the way
it goes."
"Yeah, but the
Fleet used to take better care of its own than that. I'm beginning to
wonder if anyone is safe. Damn Senator - "
"Forget it,"
Falkenberg interrupted. He glanced back to be sure Lieutenant Banners
was out of earshot. "Pay my respects to the rest of your
officers. You run a good ship."
The captain smiled
thinly. "Thanks. From you that's quite a compliment." He
held out his hand and gripped John's firmly. "Look, we pull out
in a couple of days, no more than that. If you need a ride on
somewhere I can arrange it. The goddam Senate won't have to know. We
can fix you a hitch to anywhere in CD territory."
"Thanks, but I
guess I'll stay."
"Could be rough
here," the captain said.
"And it won't
be everywhere else in the CoDominium?" Falkenberg asked. "Thanks
again, Ed." He gave a half-salute and checked himself.
Banners and Calvin
were waiting for him, and Falkenberg turned away. Calvin lifted three
personal effects bags as if they were empty and pushed the door open
in a smooth motion. The CD captain watched until they had left the
building, but Falkenberg did not look back.
"Damn them,"
the captain muttered. "Damn the lot of them."
"The car's
here." Banners opened the rear door of a battered ground effects
vehicle of no discoverable make. It had been cannibalized from a
dozen other machines, and some parts were obviously cut-and-try jobs
done by an uncertain machinist. Banners climbed into the driver's
seat and started the engine. It coughed twice, then ran smoothly, and
they drove away in a cloud of black smoke.
They drove past
another dock where a landing craft with wings as large as the entire
Marine landing boat was unloading an endless stream of civilian
passengers. Children screamed, and long lines of men and women stared
about uncertainly until they were ungently hustled along by guards in
uniforms matching Banners'. The sour smell of unwashed humanity
mingled with the crisp clean salt air from the ocean beyond. Banners
rolled up the windows with an expression of distaste.
"Always like
that," Calvin commented to no one in particular. "Water
discipline in them CoDominium prison ships bein' what it is, takes
weeks dirtside to get clean again."
"Have you ever
been in one of those ships?" Banners asked.
"No, sir,"
Calvin replied. "Been in Marine assault boats just about as bad,
I reckon. But I can't say I fancy being stuffed into no cubicle with
ten, fifteen thousand civilians for six months."
"We may all see
the inside of one of those," Falkenberg said. "And be glad
of the chance. Tell me about the situation here, Banners."
"I don't even
know where to start, sir," the lieutenant answered. "I - do
you know about Hadley?"
"Assume I
don't," Falkenberg said. May as well see what kind of estimate
of the situation the President's officers can make, he thought. He
could feel the Fleet Intelligence report bulging in an inner pocket
of his tunic, but those reports always left out important details;
and the attitudes of the Presidential Guard could be important to his
plans.
"Yes, sir.
Well, to begin with, we're a long way from the nearest shipping lanes
- but I guess you knew that. The only real reason we had any merchant
trade was the mines. Thorium, richest veins known anywhere for a
while, until they started to run out.
"For the first
few years that's all we had. The mines are up in the hills, about
eighty miles over that way." He pointed to a thin blue line just
visible at the horizon.
"Must be pretty
high mountains," Falkenberg said. "What's the diameter of
Hadley? About eighty percent of Earth? Something like that. The
horizon ought to be pretty close."
"Yes, sir. They
are high mountains. Hadley is small, but we've got bigger and better
everything here." There was pride in the young officer's voice.
"Them bags seem
pretty heavy for a planet this small," Calvin said.
"Hadley's very
dense," Banners answered. "Gravity nearly ninety percent
standard. Anyway, the mines are over there, and they have their own
spaceport at a lake nearby. Refuge - that's this city - was founded
by the American Express Company. They brought in the first colonists,
quite a lot of them."
"Volunteers?"
Falkenberg asked.
"Yes. All
volunteers. The usual misfits. I suppose my father was typical
enough, an engineer who couldn't keep up with the rat race and was
tired of Bureau of Technology restrictions on what he could learn.
They were the first wave, and they took the best land. They founded
the city and got an economy going. American Express was paid back all
advances within twenty years." Banners' pride was evident, and
Falkenberg knew it had been a difficult job.
"That was,
what, fifty years ago?" Falkenberg asked.
"Yes."
They were driving
through crowded streets lined with wooden houses and a few stone
buildings. There were rooming houses, bars, sailors' brothels, all
the usual establishments of a dock street, but there were no other
cars on the road. Instead the traffic was all horses and oxen pulling
carts, bicycles, and pedestrians.
The sky above Refuge
was clear. There was no trace of smog or industrial wastes. Out in
the harbor tugboats moved with the silent efficiency of electric
power, and there were also wind-driven sailing ships, lobster boats
powered by oars, even a topsail schooner lovely against clean blue
water. She threw up white spume as she raced out to sea. A
three-masted, full-rigged ship was drawn up to a wharf where men
loaded her by hand with huge bales of what might have been cotton.
They passed a
wagonload of melons. A gaily dressed young couple waved cheerfully at
them, then the man snapped a long whip at the team of horses that
pulled thir wagon. Falkenberg studied the primitive scene and said,
"It doesn't look like you've been here fifty years."
"No."
Banners gave them a bitter look. Then he swerved to avoid a group of
shapeless teenagers lounging in the dockside street. He had to swerve
again to avoid the barricade of paving stones that they had masked.
The car jounced wildly. Banners gunned it to lift it higher and
headed for a low place in the barricade. It scraped as it went over
the top, then he accelerated away.
Falkenberg took his
hand from inside his shirt jacket.
Behind him Calvin
was inspecting a submachine gun that had appeared from the oversized
barracks bag he'd brought into the car with him. When Banners said
nothing about the incident, Falkenberg frowned and leaned back in his
seat, listening. The Intelligence reports mentioned lawlessness, but
this was as bad as a Welfare Island on Earth.
"No, we're not
much industrialized," Banners continued. "At first there
wasn't any need to develop basic industries. The mines made everyone
rich, so we imported everything we needed. The farmers sold fresh
produce to the miners for enormous prices. Refuge was a service
industry town. People who worked here could soon afford farm animals,
and they scattered out across the plains and into the forests."
Falkenberg nodded.
"Many of them wouldn't care for cities."
"Precisely.
They didn't want industry, they'd come here to escape it."
Banners drove in silence for a moment. "Then some blasted
CoDominium bureaucrat read the ecology reports about Hadley. The
Population Control Bureau in Washington decided this was a perfect
place for involuntary colonization. The ships were coming here for
the thorium anyway, so instead of luxuries and machinery they were
ordered to carry convicts. Hundreds of thousands of them, Colonel
Falkenberg. For the last ten years there have been better than fifty
thousand people a year dumped in on us."
"And you
couldn't support them all," Falkenberg said gently.
"No, sir."
Banners' face tightened. He seemed to be fighting tears. "God
knows we try. Every erg the fusion generators can make goes into
converting petroleum into basic protocarb just to feed them. But
they're not like the original colonists! They don't know anything,
they won't do anything! Oh, not really, of course. Some of them work.
Some of our best citizens are transport-ees. But there are so many of
the other kind."
"Why'n't you
tell 'em to work or starve?" Calvin asked bluntly. Falkenberg
gave him a cold look, and the sergeant nodded slightly and sank back
into his seat.
"Because the CD
wouldn't let us!" Banners shouted. "Damn it, we didn't have
self-government. The CD Bureau of Relocation people told us what to
do. They ran everything ..."
"We know,"
Falkenberg said gently. "We've seen the results of Humanity
League influence over BuRelock. My sergeant major wasn't asking you a
question, he was expressing an opinion. Nevertheless, I am surprised.
I would have thought your farms could support the urban population."
"They should be
able to, sir." Banners drove in grim silence for a long minute.
"But there's no transportation. The people are here, and most of
the agricultural land is five hundred miles inland. There's arable
land closer, but it isn't cleared. Our settlers wanted to get away
from Refuge and BuRelock. We have a railroad, but bandit gangs keep
blowing it up. We can't rely on Hadley's produce to keep Refuge
alive. There are a million people on Hadley, and half of them are
crammed into this one ungovernable city."
They were
approaching an enormous bowl-shaped structure attached to a massive
square stone fortress. Falkenberg studied the buildings carefully,
them asked what they were.
"Our stadium,"
Banners replied. There was no pride in his voice now. "The CD
built it for us. We'd rather have had a new fusion plant, but we got
a stadium that can hold a hundred thousand people."
"Built by the
GLC Construction and Development Company, I presume," Falkenberg
said.
"Yes . . . how
did you know?"
"I think I saw
it somewhere." He hadn't, but it was an easy guess: GLC was
owned by a holding company that was in turn owned by the Bronson
family. It was easy enough to understand why aid sent by the CD Grand
Senate would end up used for something GLC might participate in.
"We have very
fine sports teams and racehorses," Banners said bitterly. "The
building next to it is the Presidential Palace. Its architecture is
quite functional."
The Palace loomed up
before them, squat and massive; it looked more fortress than capital
building.
The city was more
thickly populated as they approached the Palace. The buildings here
were mostly stone and poured concrete instead of wood. Few were more
than three stories high, so that Refuge sprawled far along the shore.
The population density increased rapidly beyond the stadium-palace
complex. Banners was watchful as he drove along the wide streets, but
he seemed less nervous than he had been at dockside.
Refuge was a city of
contrasts. The streets were straight and wide, and there was
evidently a good waste-disposal system, but the lower floors of the
buildings were open shops, and the sidewalks were clogged with market
stalls. Clouds of pedestrians moved through the kiosks and shops.
There was still no
motor traffic and no moving ped-ways. Horse troughs and hitching
posts had been constructed at frequent intervals along with starkly
functional street lights and water distribution towers. The few signs
of technology contrasted strongly with the general primitive air of
the city.
A contingent of
uniformed men thrust their way through the crowd at a street
crossing. Falkenberg looked at them closely, then at Banners. "Your
troops?"
"No, sir.
That's the livery of Glenn Foster's household. Officially they're
unorganized reserves of the President's Guard, but they're household
troops all the same." Banners laughed bitterly. "Sounds
like something out of a history book, doesn't it? We're nearly back
to feudalism, Colonel Falkenberg. Anyone rich enough keeps hired
bodyguards. They have to. The criminal gangs are so strong the police
don't try to catch anyone under organized protection, and the judges
wouldn't punish them if they were caught."
"And the
private bodyguards become gangs in their own right, I suppose,"
Banners looked at
him sharply. "Yes, sir. Have you seen it before?"
"Yes. I've seen
it before." Banners was unable to make out the expression on
Falkenberg's lips.
VI
THEY DROVE INTO the
Presidential Palace and received the salutes of the blue uniformed
troopers. Falkenberg noted the polished weapons and precise drill of
the Presidential Guard. There were well-trained men on duty here, but
the unit was small. Falkenberg wondered if they could fight as well
as stand guard. They were local citizens, loyal to Hadley, and would
be unlike the CoDominium Marines he was accustomed to.
He was conducted
through a series of rooms in the stone fortress. Each had heavy metal
doors, and several were guardrooms. Falkenberg saw no signs of
government activity until they had passed through the outer layers of
the enormous palace into an open courtyard, and through that to an
inner building.
Here there was
plenty of activity. Clerks bustled through the halls, and girls in
the draped to gas fashionable years before on Earth sat at desks in
offices. Most seemed to be packing desk contents into boxes, and
other people scurried through the corridors. Some offices were empty,
their desks covered with fine dust, and there were plastiboard moving
boxes stacked outside them.
There were two
anterooms to the President's office. President Budreau was a tall,
thin man with a red pencil mustache and quick gestures. As they were
ushered into the overly ornate room the President looked up from a
sheaf of papers, but his eyes did not focus immediately on his
visitors. His face was a mask of worry and concentration.
"Colonel John
Christian Falkenberg, sir," Lieutenant Banners said. "And
Sergeant Major Calvin."
Budreau got to his
feet. "Pleased to see you, Falkenberg." His expression told
them differently; he looked at his visitors with faint distaste and
motioned Banners out of the room. When the door closed he asked, "How
many men did you bring with you?"
"Ten, Mr.
President. All we could bring aboard the carrier without arousing
suspicion. We were lucky to get that many. The Grand Senate had an
inspector at the loading docks to check for violation of the
anti-mercenary codes. If we hadn't bribed a port official to distract
him we wouldn't be here at all. Calvin and I would be on Tanith as
involuntary colonists."
"I see."
From his expression he wasn't surprised. John thought Budreau would
have been more pleased if the inspector had caught them. The
President tapped the desk nervously. "Perhaps that will be
enough. I understand the ship you came with also brought the Marines
who have volunteered to settle on Hadley. They should provide the
nucleus of an excellent constabulary. Good troops?"
"It was a
demobilized battalion," Falkenberg replied. "Those are the
troops the CD didn't want anymore. Could be the scrapings of every
guardhouse on twenty Planets. We'll be lucky if there's a real
trooper in the lot." Budreau's face relaxed into its former mask
of depression. Hope visibly drained from him.
"Surely you
have troops of your own," Falkenberg said.
Budreau picked up a
sheaf of papers. "It's all here. I was just looking it over when
you came in." He handed the report to Falkenberg. "There's
little encouragement in it, Colonel. I have never thought there was
any military solution to Hadley's problems, and this confirms that
fear. If you have only ten men plus a battalion of forced-labor
Marines, the military answer isn't even worth considering."
Budreau returned to
his seat. His hands moved restlessly over the sea of papers on his
desk. "If I were you, Falkenberg, I'd get back on that Navy boat
and forget Hadley."
"Why don't
you?"
"Because
Hadley's my home! No rabble is going to drive me off the plantation
my grandfather built with his own hands. They will not make me run
out." Budreau clasped his hands together until the knuckles were
white with the strain, but when he spoke again his voice was calm.
"You have no stake here. I do."
Falkenberg took the
report from the desk and leafed through the pages before handing it
to Calvin. "We've come a long way, Mr. President. You may as
well tell me what the problem is before I leave."
Budreau nodded
sourly. The red mustache twitched and he ran the back of his hand
across it. "It's simple enough. The ostensible reason you're
here, the reason we gave the Colonial Office for letting us recruit a
planetary constabulary, is the bandit gangs out in the hills. No one
knows how many of them there are, but they are strong enough to raid
farms. They also cut communications between Refuge and the
countryside whenever they want to."
"Yes."
Falkenberg stood in front of the desk because he hadn't been invited
to sit. If that bothered him it did not show. "Guerrilla
gangsters have no real chance if they've no political base."
Budreau nodded.
"But, as I am sure Vice President Bradford told you, they are
not the real problem." The President's voice was strong, but
there was a querulous note in it, as if he was accustomed to having
his conclusions argued against and was waiting for Falkenberg to
begin. "Actually, we could live with the bandits, but they get
political support from the Freedom Party. My Progressive Party is
larger than the Freedom Party, but the Progressives are scattered all
over the planet. The FP is concentrated right here in Refuge, and
they have God knows how many voters and about forty thousand
loyalists they can concentrate whenever they want to stage a riot."
"Do you have
riots very often?" John asked.
"Too often.
There's not much to control them with. I have three hundred men in
the Presidential Guard, but they're CD recruited and trained like
young Banners. They're not much use at riot control, and they're
loyal to the job, not to me, anyway. The FP's got men inside the
guard."
"So we can
scratch the President's Guard when it comes to controlling the
Freedom Party," John observed.
"Yes."
Budreau smiled without amusement. "Then there's my police force.
My police were all commanded by CD officers who are pulling out. My
administrative staff was recruited and trained by BuRelock, and all
the competent people have been recalled to Earth."
"I can see that
would create a problem."
"Problem? It's
impossible," Budreau said."There's nobody left with skill
enough to govern, but I've got the job and everybody else wants it. I
might be able to scrape up a thousand Progressive partisans and
another fifteen thousand party workers who would fight for us in a
pinch, but they have no training. How can they face the FP's forty
thousand?"
"You seriously
believe the Freedom Party will revolt?"
"As soon as the
CD's out, you can count on it. They've demanded a new constitutional
convention to assemble just after the CoDominium Governor leaves. If
we don't give them the convention they'll rebel and carry a lot of
undecided with them. After all, what's unreasonable about a
convention when the colonial governor has gone?"
"I see."
"And if we do
give them the convention they want, they'll drag things out until
there's nobody left in it but their people. My Party is composed of
working voters. How can they stay on day after day? The FR's
unemployed will sit it out until they can throw the Progressives out
of office. Once they get in they'll ruin the planet. Under the
circumstances I don't see what a military man can do for us, but Vice
President Bradford insisted that we hire you."
"Perhaps we can
think of something," Falkenberg said smoothly. "I've no
experience in administration as such, but Hadley is not unique. I
take it the Progressive Party is mostly old settlers?"
"Yes and no.
The Progressive Party wants to industrialize Hadley, and some of our
farm families oppose that. But we want to do it slowly. We'll close
most of the mines and take out only as much thorium as we have to
sell to get the basic industrial equipment. I want to keep the rest
for our own fusion generators, because we'll need it later.
"We want to
develop agriculture and transport, and cut the basic citizen ration
so that we'll have the fusion power available for our new industries.
I want to close out convenience and consumer manufacturing and keep
it closed until we can afford it." Budreau's voice rose and his
eyes shone; it was easier to see why he had become popular. He
believed in his cause.
"We want to
build the tools of a self-sustaining world and get along without the
CoDominium until we can rejoin the human race as equals!"
Budreau caught himself and frowned. "Sorry. Didn't mean to make
a speech. Have a seat, won't you?"
"Thank you."
Falkenberg sat in a heavy leather chair and looked around the room.
The furnishings were ornate, and the office decor had cost a fortune
to bring from Earth; but most of it was tasteless - spectacular
rather than elegant. The Colonial Office did that sort of thing a
lot, and Falkenberg wondered which Grand Senator owned the firm that
supplied office furnishings. "What does the opposition want?"
"I suppose you
really do need to know all this." Budreau frowned and his
mustache twitched nervously. He made an effort to relax, and John
thought the President had probably been an impressive man once. "The
Freedom Party's slogan is 'Service to the People.' Service to them
means consumer goods now. They want strip mining. That's got the
miners' support, you can bet. The FP will rape this planet to buy
goods from other systems, and to hell with how they're paid for.
Runaway inflation will be only one of the problems they'll create."
"They sound
ambitious."
"Yes. They even
want to introduce internal combustion engine economy. God knows how,
there's no support technology here, but there's oil. We'd have to buy
all that from off planet, there's no heavy industry here to make
engines even if the ecology could absorb them, but that doesn't
matter to the FP. They promise cars for everyone. Instant
modernization. More food, robotic factories, entertainment ... in
short, paradise and right now."
"Do they mean
it, or is that just slogans?" "I think most of them mean
it," Budreau answered. "It's hard to believe, but I think
they do." "Where do they say they'll get the money?"
"Soaking the rich, as if there were enough wealthy people here
to matter. Total confiscation of everything everyone owns wouldn't
pay for all they promise. Those people have no idea of the realities
of our situation, and their leaders are ready to blame anything
that's wrong on the Progressive Party, CoDominium administrators,
anything but admit that what they promise just isn't possible. Some
of the Party leaders may know better, but they don't admit it if they
do."
"I take it that
program has gathered support." "Of course it has,"
Budreau fumed. "And every BuRelock ship brings thousands more
ready to vote the FP line."
Budreau got up from
his desk and went to a cabinet on the opposite wall. He took out a
bottle of brandy and three glasses and poured, handing them to Calvin
and Falkenberg. Then he ignored the sergeant but waited for
Falkenberg to lift his glass.
"Cheers."
Budreau drained the glass at one gulp. "Some of the oldest
families on Hadley have joined the damned Freedom Party. They're
worried about the taxes I've proposed! The FP won't leave them
anything at all, but they still join the opposition in hopes of
making deals. You don't look surprised."
"No, sir. It's
a story as old as history, and a military man reads history."
Budreau looked up in
surprise. "Really?"
"A smart
soldier wants to know the causes of wars.
Also how to end
them. After all, war is the normal state of affairs, isn't it? Peace
is the name of the ideal we deduce from the fact that there have been
interludes between wars." Before Budreau could answer,
Falkenberg said, "No matter. I take it you expect armed
resistance immediately after the CD pulls out."
"I hoped to
prevent it. Bradford thought you might be able to do something, and
I'm gifted at the art of persuasion." The President sighed. "But
it seems hopeless. They don't want to compromise. They think they can
get a total victory."
"I wouldn't
think they'd have much of a record to run on," Falkenberg said.
Budreau laughed.
“The FP partisans claim credit for driving the CoDominium out,
Colonel."
They laughed
together. The CoDominium was leaving because the mines were no longer
worth enough to make it pay to govern Hadley. If the mines were as
productive as they'd been in the past, no partisans would drive the
Marines away.
Budreau nodded as if
reading his thoughts. "Well, they have people believing it
anyway. There was a campaign of terrorism for years, nothing very
serious. It didn't threaten the mine shipments, or the Marines would
have put a stop to it. But they have demoralized the capital police.
Out in the bush people administer their own justice, but here in
Refuge the FP gangs control a lot of the city."
Budreau pointed to a
stack of papers on one corner of the desk. "Those are
resignations from the force. I don't even know how many police I'll
have left when the CD pulls out." Budreau's fist tightened as if
he wanted to pound on the desk, but he sat rigidly still. "Pulls
out. For years they ran everything, and now they're leaving us to
clean up. I'm President by courtesy of the CoDominium. They put me in
office, and now they're leaving."
"At least
you're in charge," Falkenberg said. "The BuRelock people
wanted someone else. Bradford talked them out of it."
"Sure. And it
cost us a lot of money. For what? Maybe it would have been better the
other way."
"I thought you
said their policies would ruin Hadley."
"I did say
that. I believe it. But the policy issues came after the split, I
think." Budreau was talking to himself as much as to John. "Now
they hate us so much they oppose anything we want out of pure spite.
And we do the same thing."
"Sounds like
CoDominium politics. Russkis and U.S. in the Grand Senate. Just like
home." There was no humor in the polite laugh that followed.
Budreau opened a
desk drawer and took out a parchment. "I'll keep the agreement,
of course. Here's your commission as commander of the constabulary.
But I still think you might be better off taking the next ship out.
Hadley's problems can't be solved by military consultants."
Sergeant Major
Calvin snorted. The sound was almost inaudible, but Falkenberg knew
what he was thinking. Budreau shrank from the bald term "mercenary,"
as if "military consultant" were easier on his conscience.
John finished his drink and stood.
"Mr. Bradford
wants to see you," Budreau said. "Lieutenant Banners will
be outside to show you to his office."
"Thank you,
sir." Falkenberg strode from the big room. As he closed the door
he saw Budreau going back to the liquor cabinet.
Vice President
Ernest Bradford was a small man with a smile that never seemed to
fade. He worked at being liked, but it didn't always work. Still, he
had gathered a following of dedicated party workers, and he fancied
himself an accomplished politician.
When Banners showed
Falkenberg into the office, Bradford smiled even more broadly, but he
suggested that Banners should take Calvin on a tour of the Palace
guardrooms. Falkenberg nodded and let them go.
The Vice President's
office was starkly functional. The desks and chairs were made of
local woods with an indifferent finish, and a solitary rose in a
crystal vase provided the only color. Bradford was dressed in the
same manner, shapeless clothing bought from a cheap store.
"Thank God
you're here," Bradford said when the door was closed. "But
I'm told you only brought ten men. We can't do anything with just ten
men! You were supposed to bring over a hundred men loyal to us!"
He bounced up excitedly from his chair, then sat again. "Can you
do something?"
"There were ten
men in the Navy ship with me," Falkenberg said. "When you
show me where I'm to train the regiment I'll find the rest of the
mercenaries."
Bradford gave him a
broad wink and beamed. "Then you did bring more! We'll show them
- all of them. We'll win yet. What did you think of Budreau?"
"He seems
sincere enough. Worried, of course. I think I would be in his place."
Bradford shook his
head. "He can't make up his mind. About anything! He wasn't so
bad before, but lately he's had to be forced into making every
decision. Why did the Colonial Office pick him? I thought you were
going to arrange for me to be President. We gave you enough money."
"One thing at a
time," Falkenberg said. "The Undersecretary couldn't
justify you to the Minister. We can't get to everyone, you know. It
was hard enough for Professor Whitlock to get them to approve
Budreau, let alone you. We sweated blood just getting them to let go
of having a Freedom Party President."
Bradford's head
bobbed up and down like a puppet's. "I knew I could trust you,"
he said. His smile was warm, but despite all his efforts to be
sincere it did not come through. "You have kept your part of the
bargain, anyway. And once the CD is gone - "
"We'll have a
free hand, of course."
Bradford smiled
again. "You are a very strange man, Colonel Falkenberg. The talk
was that you were utterly loyal to the CoDominium. When Dr. Whitlock
suggested that you might be available I was astounded."
"I had very
little choice," Falkenberg reminded him.
"Yes."
Bradford didn't say that Falkenberg had little more now, but it was
obvious that he thought it. His smile expanded confidentially. "Well,
we have to let Mr. Hamner meet you now. He's the Second Vice
President. Then we can go to the Warner estate. I've arranged for
your troops to be quartered there, it's what you wanted for a
training ground. No one will bother you. You can say your other men
are local volunteers."
Falkenberg nodded.
"I'll manage. I'm getting rather good at cover stories lately."
"Sure."
Bradford beamed again. "By God, we'll win this yet." He
touched a button on his desk. "Ask Mr. Hamner to come in,
please." He winked at Falkenberg and said, "Can't spend too
long alone. Might give someone the idea that we have a conspiracy."
"How does
Hamner fit in?" Falkenberg asked.
"Wait until you
see him. Budreau trusts him, and he's dangerous. He represents the
technology people in the Progressive Party. We can't do without him,
but his policies are ridiculous. He wants to turn loose of
everything. If he has his way, there won't be any government. And his
people take credit for everything - as if technology was all there
was to government. He doesn't know the first thing about governing.
All the people we have to keep happy, the meetings, he thinks that's
all silly, that you can build a party by working like an engineer."
"In other
words, he doesn't understand the political realities,"
Falkenberg said. "Just so. I suppose he has to go, then."
Bradford nodded,
smiling again. "Eventually. But we do need his influence with
the technicians at the moment. And of course, he knows nothing about
any arrangements you and I have made."
"Of course."
Falkenberg sat easily and studied maps until the intercom announced
that Hamner was outside. He wondered idly if the office was safe to
talk in. Bradford was the most likely man to plant devices in other
people's offices, but he couldn't be the only one who'd benefit from
eavesdropping, and no place could be absolutely safe.
There isn't much I
can do if it is, Falkenberg decided. And it's probably clean.
George Hamner was a
large man, taller than Falkenberg and even heavier than Sergeant
Major Calvin. He had the relaxed movements of a big man, and much of
the easy confidence that massive size usually wins. People didn't
pick fights with George Hamner. His grip was gentle when they shook
hands, but he closed his fist relentlessly, testing Falkenberg
carefully. As he felt answering pressure he looked surprised, and the
two men stood in silence for a long moment before Hamner relaxed and
waved to Bradford.
"So you're our
new colonel of constabulary," Hamner said. "Hope you know
what you're getting into. I should say I hope you don't know. If you
know about our problems and take the job anyway, we'll have to wonder
if you're sane."
"I keep hearing
about how severe Hadley's problems are," Falkenberg said. "If
enough of you keep saying it, maybe I'll believe it's hopeless, but
right now I don't see it. So we're outnumbered by the Freedom Party
people. What kind of weapons do they have to make trouble with?"
Hamner laughed.
"Direct sort of guy, aren't you? I like that. There's nothing
spectacular about their weapons, just a lot of them. Enough small
problems make a big problem, right? But the CD hasn't permitted any
big stuff. No tanks or armored cars, hell, there aren't enough cars
of any kind to make any difference. No fuel or power distribution net
ever built, so no way cars would be useful. We've got a subway,
couple of monorails for in-city stuff, and what's left of the
railroad . . . you didn't ask for a lecture on transportation, did
you?"
"No."
Hamner laughed.
"It's my pet worry at the moment. We don't have enough. Let's
see, weapons. ..." The big man sprawled into a chair. He hooked
one leg over the arm and ran his fingers through thick hair just
receding from his large brows. "No military aircraft, hardly any
aircraft at all except for a few choppers. No artillery, machine
guns, heavy weapons in general.
Mostly light-caliber
hunting rifles and shotguns. Some police weapons. Military rifles and
bayonets, a few, and we have almost all of them. Out in the streets
you can find anything, Colonel, and I mean literally anything. Bows
and arrows, knives, swords, axes, hammers, you name it."
"He doesn't
need to know about obsolete things like that," Bradford said.
His voice was heavy with contempt, but he still wore his smile.
"No weapon is
ever really obsolete," Falkenberg said. "Not in the hands
of a man who'll use it. What about body armor? How good a supply of
Nemourlon do you have?"
Hamner looked
thoughtful for a second. "There's some body armor in the
streets, and the police have some. The President's Guard doesn't use
the stuff. I can supply you with Nemourlon, but you'll have to make
your own armor out of it. Can you do that?"
Falkenberg nodded.
"Yes. I brought an excellent technician and some tools.
Gentlemen, the situation's about what I expected. I can't see why
everyone is so worried. We have a battalion of CD Marines, not the
best Marines perhaps, but they're trained soldiers. With the weapons
of a light infantry battalion and the training I can give the
recruits we'll add to the battalion, I'll undertake to face your
forty thousand Freedom Party people. The guerrilla problem will be
somewhat more severe, but we control all the food distribution in the
city. With ration cards and identity papers it should not be
difficult to set up controls."
Hamner laughed. It
was a bitter laugh. "You want to tell him, Ernie?"
Bradford looked
confused. "Tell him what?"
Hamner laughed
again. "Not doing your homework. It's in the morning report for
a couple of days ago. The Colonial Office has decided, on the advice
of BuRelock, that Hadley does not need any military weapons. The CD
Marines will be lucky to keep their rifles and bayonets. All the rest
of their gear goes out with the CD ships."
"But this is
insane." Bradford protested. He turned to Falkenberg. "Why
would they do that?"
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Perhaps some Freedom Party manager got to a Colonial Office
official. I assume they are not above bribery?"
"Of course
not," Bradford said. "We've got to do something!"
"If we can. I
suspect it will not be easy." Falkenberg pursed his lips into a
tight line. "I hadn't counted on this. It means that if we
tighten up control through food rationing and identity documents, we
face armed rebellion. How well organized are these FP partisans,
anyway?"
"Well organized
and well financed," Hamner said. "And I'm not so sure about
ration cards being the answer to the guerrilla problem anyway. The
CoDominium was able to put up with a lot of sabotage because they
weren't interested in anything but the mines, but we can't live with
the level of terror we have right now in this city. Some way or other
we have to restore order - and justice, for that matter."
"Justice isn't
something soldiers ordinarily deal with," Falkenberg said.
"Order's another matter. That I think we can supply."
"With a few
hundred men?" Hamner's voice was incredulous. "But I like
your attitude. At least you don't sit around and whine for somebody
to help you. Or sit and think and never make up your mind."
"We will see
what we can do," Falkenberg said.
"Yeah."
Hamner got up and went to the door. "Well, I wanted to meet you,
Colonel. Now I have. I've got work to do. I'd think Ernie does too,
but I don't notice him doing much of it." He didn't look at them
again, but went out, leaving the door open.
"You see,"
Bradford said. He closed the door gently. His smile was knowing. "He
is useless. We'll find someone to deal with the technicians as soon
as you've got everything else under control."
"He seemed to
be right on some points," Falkenberg said. "For example, he
knows it won't be easy to get proper police protection established. I
saw an example of what goes on in Refuge on the way here, and if it's
that bad all over - "
"You'll find a
way," Bradford said. He seemed certain. "You can recruit
quite a large force, you know. And a lot of the lawlessness is
nothing more than teenage street gangs. They're not loyal to
anything. Freedom Party, us, the CD, or anything else. They merely
want to control the block they live on."
"Sure. But
they're hardly the whole problem." "No. But you'll find a
way. And forget Hamner. His whole group is rotten. They're not real
Progressives, that's all." His voice was emphatic, and his eyes
seemed to shine. Bradford lowered his voice and leaned forward.
"Hamner used to be in the Freedom Party, you know. He claims to
have broken with them over technology policies, but you can never
trust a man like that."
"I see.
Fortunately, I don't have to trust him." Bradford beamed.
"Precisely. Now let's get you started. You have a lot of work,
and don't forget now, you've already agreed to train some party
troops for me."
VII
THE ESTATE WAS
large, nearly five kilometers on a side, located in low hills a day's
march from the city of Refuge. There was a central house and barns,
all made of local wood that resembled oak. The buildings nestled in a
wooded bowl in the center of the estate.
"You're sure
you won't need anything more?" Lieutenant Banners asked.
"No, thank
you," Falkenberg said. "The few men we have with us carry
their own gear. We'll have to arrange for food and fuel when the
others come, but for now we'll make do."
"All right,
sir," Banners said. "I'll go back with Mowrer and leave you
the car, then. And you've the animals. ..."
"Yes. Thank
you, Lieutenant."
Banners saluted and
got into the car. He started to say something else, but Falkenberg
had turned away and Banners drove off the estate.
Calvin watched him
leave. "That's a curious one," he said. "Reckon he'd
like to know more about what we're doing."
Falkenberg's lips
twitched into a thin smile. "I expect he would at that. You will
see to it that he learns no more than we want him to."
"Aye
aye, sir. Colonel, what was that Mr. Bradford was saying about
Party troopers? We going to have many of them?"
"I think so."
Falkenberg walked up the wide lawn toward the big ranch house.
Captain Fast and several of the others were waiting on the porch, and
there was a bottle of whiskey on the table.
Falkenberg poured a
drink and tossed it off. "I think we'll have quite a few
Progressive Party loyalists here once we start, Calvin. I'm not
looking forward to it, but they were inevitable."
"Sir?"
Captain Fast had been listening quietly.
Falkenberg gave him
a half-smile. "Do you really think the governing authorities are
going to hand over a monopoly of military force to us?"
"You think they
don't trust us."
"Amos, would
you trust us?"
"No sir,"
Captain Fast said. "But we could hope."
"We will not
accomplish our mission on hope, Captain. Sergeant Major."
"Sir."
"I have an
errand for you later this evening. For the moment, find someone to
take me to my quarters and then see about our dinner." "Sir."
Falkenberg woke to a
soft rapping on the door of his room. He opened his eyes and put his
hand on the pistol under his pillow, but made no other movement.
The rap came again.
"Yes," Falkenberg called softly.
"I'm back,
Colonel," Calvin answered.
"Right, Come
in." Falkenberg swung his feet out of his bunk and pulled on his
boots. He was fully dressed otherwise.
Sergeant Major
Calvin came in. He was dressed in the light synthetic leather tunic
and trousers of the CD Marine battledress. The total black of a night
combat coverall protruded from the war bag slung over his shoulder.
He wore a pistol on his belt and a heavy trench knife was slung in a
holster on his left breast.
A short wiry man
with a thin brown mustache came in with Calvin.
"Glad to see
you," Falkenberg said. "Have any trouble?"
"Gang of toughs
tried to stir up something as we was coming through the city,
Colonel," Calvin replied. He grinned wolfishly. "Didn't
last long enough to set any records."
"Anyone hurt?"
"None that
couldn't walk away."
"Good. Any
problem at the relocation barracks?"
"No, sir,"
Calvin replied. "They don't guard them places. Anybody wants to
get away from BuRelock's charity, they let 'em go. Without ration
cards, of course. This was just involuntary colonists, not convicts."
As he took Calvin's
report, Falkenberg was inspecting the man who had come in with him.
Major Jeremy Savage looked tired and much older than his forty-five
years. He was thinner than John remembered him.
"Bad as I've
heard?" Falkenberg asked him.
"No picnic,"
Savage replied in the clipped accents he'd learned when he grew up on
Churchill. "Didn't expect it to be. We're here, John Christian."
"Yes, and thank
God. Nobody spotted you? The men behave all right?"
"Yes, sir. We
were treated no differently from any other involuntary colonists. The
men behaved splendidly, and a week or two of hard exercise should get
us all back in shape. Sergeant Major tells me the battalion arrived
intact."
"Yes. They're
still at Marine barracks. That's our weak link, Jeremy. I want them
out here where we control who they talk to, and as soon as possible."
"You've got the
best ones. I think they'll be all right."
Falkenberg nodded.
"But keep your eyes open, Jerry, and be careful with the men
until the CD pulls out. I've hired Dr. Whitlock to check things for
us. He hasn't reported in yet, but I assume he's on Hadley."
Savage acknowledged
Falkenberg's wave and sat in the room's single chair. He took a glass
of whiskey from Calvin with a nod of thanks.
"Going all out
hiring experts, eh? He's said to be the best available. . . . My,
that's good. They don't have anything to drink on those BuRelock
ships."
"When Whitlock
reports in we'll have a full staff meeting," Falkenberg said.
"Until then, stay with the plan. Bradford is supposed to send
the battalion out tomorrow, and soon after that he'll begin
collecting volunteers from his party. We're supposed to train them.
Of course, they'll all be loyal to Bradford. Not to the Party and
certainly not to us."
Savage nodded and
held out the glass to Calvin for a refill.
"Now tell me a
bit about those toughs you fought on the way here, Sergeant Major,"
Falkenberg said.
"Street gang,
Colonel. Not bad at individual fightin', but no organization. Hardly
no match for near a hundred of us."
"Street gang."
John pulled his lower lip speculatively, then grinned. "How many
of our battalion used to be punks just like them, Sergeant Major?"
"Half anyway,
sir. Includin' me."
Falkenberg nodded.
"I think it might be a good thing if the Marines got to meet
some of those kids, Sergeant Major. Informally, you know."
"Sir!"
Calvin's square face beamed with anticipation.
"Now,"
Falkenberg continued. "Recruits will be our real problem. You
can bet some of them will try to get chummy with the troops. They'll
want to pump the men about their backgrounds and outfits. And the men
will drink, and when they drink they talk. How will you handle that,
Top Soldier?"
Calvin looked
thoughtful. "Won't be no trick for a while. We'll keep the
recruits away from the men except drill instructors, and DI's don't
talk to recruits. Once they've passed basic it'll get a bit stickier,
but hell, Colonel, troops like to lie about their campaigns. We'll
just encourage 'em to fluff it up a bit. The stories'll be so tall
nobody'll believe 'em."
"Right. I don't
have to tell both of you we're skating on pretty thin ice for a
while."
"We'll manage,
Colonel." Calvin was positive. He'd been with Falkenberg a long
time, and although any man can make mistakes, it was Calvin's
experience that Falkenberg would find a way out of any hole they
dropped into.
And if they didn't -
well, over every CD orderly room door was a sign. It said, "You
are Marines in order to die, and the Fleet will send you where you
can die." Calvin had walked under that sign to enlist, and
thousands of times since.
"That's it,
then, Jeremy," Falkenberg said.
"Yes, sir,"
Savage said crisply. He stood and saluted. "Damned if it doesn't
feel good to be doing this again, sir." Years fell away from his
face.
"Good to have
you back aboard," Falkenberg replied. He stood to return the
salute. "And thanks, Jerry. For everything. ..."
The Marine battalion
arrived the next day. They were marched to the camp by regular CD
Marine officers, who turned them over to Falkenberg. The captain in
charge of the detail wanted to stay around and watch, but Falkenberg
found an errand for him and sent Major Savage along to keep him
company. An hour later there was no one in the camp but Falkenberg's
people.
Two hours later the
troops were at work constructing their own base camp.
Falkenberg watched
from the porch of the ranch house. "Any problems, Sergeant
Major?" he asked.
Calvin fingered the
stubble on his square jaw. He shaved twice a day on garrison duty,
and at the moment he was wondering if he needed his second. "Nothing
a trooper's blast won't cure, Colonel. With your permission I'll draw
a few barrels of whiskey tonight and let 'em tie one on before the
recruits come in."
"Granted."
"They won't be
fit for much before noon tomorrow, but we're on schedule now. The
extra work'll be good for 'em."
"How many will
run?"
Calvin shrugged.
"Maybe none, Colonel. We got enough to keep 'em busy, and they
don't know this place very well. Recruits'll be a different story,
and once they get in we may have a couple take off."
"Yes. Well, see
what you can do. We're going to need every man. You heard President
Budreau's assessment of the situation."
"Yes, sir.
That'll make the troops happy. Sounds like a good fight comin' up."
"I think you
can safely promise the men some hard fighting, Sergeant Major. They'd
also better understand that there's no place to go if we don't win
this one. No pickups on this tour."
"No pickups on
half the missions we've been on, Colonel. I better see Cap'n Fast
about the brandy. Join us about midnight, sir? The men would like
that."
"I'll be along,
Sergeant Major."
Calvin's prediction
was wrong: the troops were useless throughout the entire next day.
The recruits arrived the day after.
The camp was a
flurry of activity. The Marines re-learned lessons of basic training.
Each maniple of five men cooked for itself, did its own laundry, made
its own shelters from woven synthetics and rope, and contributed men
for work on the encampment revetments and palisades.
The recruits did the
same kind of work under the supervision of Falkenberg's mercenary
officers and NCO's. Most of the men who had come with Savage on the
BuRelock colony transport were officers, centurions, sergeants, and
technicians, while there was an unusual number of monitors and
corporals within the Marine battalion. Between the two groups there
were enough leaders for an entire regiment.
The recruits learned
to sleep in their military great-cloaks, and to live under field
conditions with no uniform but synthi-leather battledress and boots.
They cooked their own food and constructed their own quarters and
depended on no one outside the regiment. After two weeks they were
taught to fashion their own body armor from Nemourlon. When it was
completed they lived in it, and any man who neglected his duties
found his armor weighted with lead. Maniples, squads, and whole
sections of recruits and veterans on punishment marches became a
common sight after dark.
The volunteers had
little time to fraternize with the Marine veterans. Savage and Calvin
and the other cadres relentlessly drove them through drills, field
problems, combat exercises, and maintenance work. The recruit
formations were smaller each day as men were driven to leave the
service, but from somewhere there was a steady supply of new troops.
These were all
younger men who came in small groups directly to the camp. They would
appear before the regimental orderly room at reveille, and often they
were accompanied by Marine veterans. There was attrition in their
formations as well as among the Party volunteers, but far fewer left
the service - and they were eager for combat training.
After six weeks Vice
President Bradford visited the camp. He arrived to find the entire
regiment in formation, the recruits on one side of a square, the
veterans on the other.
Sergeant Major
Calvin was reading to the men.
"Today is April
30 on Earth." Calvin's voice boomed out; he had no need for a
bullhorn. "It is Camerone Day. On April 30, 1863, Captain Jean
Danjou of the Foreign Legion, with two officers and sixty-two
legionnaires, faced two thousand Mexicans at the farmhouse of
Camerone.
"The battle
lasted all day. The legionnaires had no food or water, and their
ammunition was low. Captain Danjou was killed. His place was taken by
Lieutenant Villain. He also was killed.
"At five in the
afternoon all that remained were Lieutenant Clement Maudet and four
men. They had one cartridge each. At the command each man fired his
last round and charged the enemy with the bayonet.
"There were no
survivors."
The troops were
silent. Calvin looked at the recruits. They stood at rigid attention
in the hot sun. Finally Calvin spoke. "I don't expect none of
you to ever get it. Not the likes of you. But maybe one of you'll
someday know what Camerone is all about.
"Every man will
draw an extra wine ration tonight. Combat veterans will also get a
half-liter of brandy. Now attention to orders."
Falkenberg took
Bradford inside the ranch house. It was now fitted out as the
Officers' Mess, and they sat in one corner of the lounge. A steward
brought drinks.
"And what was
all that for?" Bradford demanded. "These aren't Foreign
Legionnaires! You're supposed to be training a planetary
constabulary."
"A constabulary
that has one hell of a fight on its hands," Falkenberg reminded
him. "True, we don't have any continuity with the Legion in this
outfit, but you have to remember that our basic cadre are CD Marines.
Or were. If we skipped Camerone Day, we'd have a mutiny."
"I suppose you
know what you're doing." Bradford sniffed. His face had almost
lost the perpetual half-smile he wore, but there were still traces of
it. "Colonel, I have a complaint from the men we've assigned as
officers. My Progressive Party people have been totally segregated
from the other troops, and they don't like it. I don't like it."
Falkenberg shrugged.
"You chose to commission them before training, Mr. Bradford,
That makes them officers by courtesy, but they don't know anything.
They would look ridiculous if I mixed them with the veterans, or even
the recruits, until they've learned military basics."
"You've got rid
of a lot of them, too - "
"Same reason,
sir. You have given us a difficult assignment. We're outnumbered and
there's no chance of outside support. In a few weeks we'll face forty
thousand Freedom Party men, and I won't answer for the consequences
if we hamper the troops with incompetent officers."
"All right. I
expected that. But it isn't just the officers, Colonel. The
Progressive volunteers are being driven out as well. Your training is
too hard. Those are loyal men, and loyalty is important here!"
Falkenberg smiled
softly. "Agreed. But I'd rather have one battalion of good men I
can trust than a regiment of troops who might break under fire. After
I've a bare minimum of first-class troops, I'll consider taking on
others for garrison duties. Right now the need is for men who can
fight."
"And you don't
have them yet - those Marines seemed well disciplined."
"In ranks,
certainly. But do you really think the CD would let go of reliable
troops?"
"Maybe not,"
Bradford conceded. "OK. You're the expert. But where the hell
are you getting the other recruits? Jailbirds, kids with police
records. You keep them while you let my Progressives run!"
"Yes, sir."
Falkenberg signaled for another round of drinks. "Mr. Vice
President - "
"Since when
have we become that formal?" Bradford asked. His smile was back.
"Sorry. I
thought you were here to read me out."
"No, of course
not. But I've got to answer to President Budreau, you know. And
Hamner. I've managed to get your activities assigned to my
department, but it doesn't mean I can tell the Cabinet to blow it."
"Right,"
Falkenberg said. "Well, about the recruits. We take what we can
get. It takes time to train green men, and if the street warriors
stand up better than your party toughs, I can't help it. You can tell
the Cabinet that when we've a cadre we can trust, we'll be easier on
volunteers. We can even form some kind of part-time militia. But
right now the need is for men tough enough to win this fight coming
up, and I don't know any better way to do it."
After that
Falkenberg found himself summoned to report to the Palace every week.
Usually he met only Bradford and Hamner; President Budreau had made
it clear that he considered the military force as an evil whose
necessity was not established, and only Bradford's insistence kept
the regiment supplied.
At one conference
Falkenberg met Chief Horgan of the Refuge police.
"The Chiefs got
a complaint, Colonel," President Budreau said.
"Yes sir?"
Falkenberg asked.
"It's those
damned Marines," Horgan said. He rubbed the point of his chin.
"They're raising hell in the city at night. We've never hauled
any of them in because Mr. Bradford wants us to go easy, but it's
getting rough."
"What are they
doing?" Falkenberg asked.
"You name it.
They've taken over a couple of taverns and won't let anybody in
without their permission, for one thing. And they have fights with
street gangs every night.
"We could live
with all that, but they go to other parts of town, too. Lots of them.
They go into taverns and drink all night, then say they can't pay. If
the owner gets sticky, they wreck the place. ..."
"And they're
gone before your patrols get there," Falkenberg finished for
him. "It's an old tradition. They call it System D, and more
planning effort goes into that operation than I can ever get them to
put out in combat. I'll try to put a stop to System D, anyway."
"It would help.
Another thing. Your guys go into the roughest parts of town and start
fights whenever they can find anyone to mix with."
"How are they
doing?" Falkenberg asked interestedly.
Horgan grinned, then
caught himself after a stern look from Budreau. "Pretty well. I
understand they've never been beaten. But it raises hell with the
citizens, Colonel. And another trick of theirs is driving people
crazy! They march through the streets fifty strong at all hours of
the night playing bagpipes! Bagpipes in the wee hours, Colonel, can
be a frightening thing."
Falkenberg thought
he saw a tiny flutter in Horgan's left eye, and the police chief was
holding back a wry smile.
"I wanted to
ask you about that, Colonel," Second Vice President Hamner said.
"This is hardly a Scots outfit, why do they have bagpipes
anyway?"
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Pipes are standard with many Marine regiments. Since the Russki
CD outfits started taking up Cossack customs, the Western bloc
regiments adopted their own. After all, the Marines were formed out
of a number of old military units. Foreign Legion, Highlanders - a
lot of men like the pipes. I'll confess I do myself."
"Sure, but not
in my city in the middle of the night," Horgan said.
John grinned openly
at the chief of police. "I'll try to keep the pipers off the
streets at night. I can imagine they're not good for civilian morale.
But as to keeping the Marines in camp, how do I do it? We need every
one of them, and they're volunteers. They can get on the CD carrier
and ship out when the rest go, and there's not one damned thing we
can do about it."
"There's less
than a month until they haul down that CoDominium flag,"
Bradford added with satisfaction. He glanced at the CD banner on its
staff outside. Eagle with red shield and black sickle and hammer on
its breast; red stars and blue stars around it. Bradford nodded in
satisfaction. It wouldn't be long.
That flag meant
little to the people of Hadley. On Earth it was enough to cause riots
in nationalistic cities in both the U.S. and the Soviet Union, while
in other countries it was a symbol of the alliance that kept any
other nation from rising above second-class status. To Earth the
CoDominium Alliance represented peace at a high price, too high for
many.
For Falkenberg it
represented nearly thirty years of service ended by court martial.
Two weeks to go.
Then the CoDominium governor would leave, and Hadley would be
officially independent. Vice President Bradley visited the camp to
speak to the recruits.
He told them of the
value of loyalty to the government, and the rewards they would all
have as soon as the Progressive Party was officially in power. Better
pay, more liberties, and the opportunity for promotion in an
expanding army; bonuses and soft duty. His speech was full of
promises, and Bradford was quite proud of it.
When he had
finished, Falkenberg took the Vice President into a private room in
the Officers' Mess and slammed the door.
"Damn you, you
don't ever make offers to my troops without my permission." John
Falkenberg's face was cold with anger.
"I'll do as I
please with my army, Colonel," Bradford replied smugly. The
little smile on his face was completely without warmth. "Don't
get snappy with me, Colonel Falkenberg. Without my influence Budreau
would dismiss you in an instant."
Then his mood
changed, and Bradford took a flask of brandy from his pocket. "Here,
Colonel, have a drink." The little smile was replaced with
something more genuine. "We have to work together, John. There's
too much to do, even with both of us working it won't all get done.
Sorry, I'll ask your advice in future, but don't you think the
troops, should get to know me? I'll be President soon." He
looked to Falkenberg for confirmation.
"Yes, sir,"
John took the flask and held it up for a toast. "To the new
president of Hadley. I shouldn't have snapped at you, but don't make
offers to troops who haven't proved themselves. If you give men
reason to think they're good when they're not, you'll never have an
army worth its pay."
"But they've
done well in training. You said so."
"Sure, but you
don't tell them that. Work them until they've nothing more to give,
and let them know that's just barely satisfactory. Then one day
they'll give you more than they knew they had in them. That's the day
you can offer rewards, only by then you won't need to."
Bradford nodded
grudging agreement. "If you say so. But I wouldn't have thought
- "
"Listen,"
Falkenberg said.
A party of recruits
and their drill masters marched past outside. They were singing and
their words came in the open window.
"When you've
blue'd your last tosser, on the brothel and the booze, and you're out
in the cold on your ear, you hump your bundle on the rough, and tell
the sergeant that you're tough, and you'll do him the favor of his
life. He will cry and he will scream, and he'll curse his rotten
luck, and he'll ask why he was ever born. If you're lucky he will
take you, and he'll do his best to break you, and they'll feed you
rotten monkey on a knife."
"Double time,
heaow!" The song broke off as the men ran across the central
parade ground.
Bradford turned away
from the window. "That sort of thing is all very well for the
jailbirds, Colonel, but I insist on keeping my loyalists as well. In
future you will dismiss no Progressive without my approval. Is that
understood?"
Falkenberg nodded.
He'd seen this coming for some time. "In that case, sir, it
might be better to form a separate battalion. I will transfer all of
your people into the Fourth Battalion and put them under the officers
you've appointed. Will that be satisfactory?"
"If you'll
supervise their training, yes."
"Certainly,"
Falkenberg said.
"Good."
Bradford's smile broadened, but it wasn't meant for Falkenberg. "I
will also expect you to consult me about any promotions in that
battalion. You agree to that, of course."
"Yes, sir.
There may be some problems about finding locals to fill the senior
NCO slots. You've got potential monitors and corporals, but they've
not the experience to be sergeants and centurions."
"You'll find a
way, I'm sure," Bradford said carefully. "I have some
rather, uh, special duties for the Fourth Battalion, Colonel. I'd
prefer it to be entirely staffed by Party loyalists of my choosing.
Your men should only be there to supervise training, not as their
commanders. Is this agreed?"
"Yes, sir."
Bradford's smile was
genuine as he left the camp.
Day after day the
troops sweated in the bright blue-tinted sunlight. Riot control,
bayonet drill, use of armor in defense and attacks against men with
body armor; and more complex exercises as well. There were forced
marches under the relentless direction of Major Savage, the harsh
shouts of sergeants and centurions, Captain Amos Fast with his tiny
swagger stick and biting sarcasm. . . .
Yet the number
leaving the regiment was smaller now, and there was still a flow of
recruits from the Marine's nocturnal expeditions. The recruiting
officers could even be selective, although they seldom were. The
Marines, like the Legion before it, took anyone willing to fight; and
Falkenberg's officers were all Marine trained.
Each night groups of
Marines sneaked past sentries to drink and carouse with the field
hands of nearby ranchers. They gambled and shouted in local taverns,
and they paid little attention to their officers. There were many
complaints, and Bradford's protests became stronger.
Falkenberg always
gave the same answer. "They always come back, and they don't
have to stay here. How do you suggest I control them? Flogging?"
The constabulary
army had a definite split personality, with recruits treated harsher
than veterans. Meanwhile the Fourth Battalion grew larger each day.
VIII
GEORGE HAMNER TRIED
to get home for dinner every night, no matter what it might cost him
in night work later. He thought he owed at least that to his family.
His walled estate
was just outside the Palace district. It had been built hy his
grandfather with money borrowed from American Express. The old man
had been proud of paying back every cent before it was due. It was a
big comfortable place which cunningly combined local materials and
imported luxuries, and George was always glad to return there.
At home he felt he
was master of something, that at least one thing was under his
control. It was the only place in Refuge where he could feel that
way.
In less than a week
the CoDominium Governor would leave. Independence was near, and it
should be a time of hope, but George Hamner felt only dread. Problems
of public order were not officially his problem. He held the Ministry
of Technology, but the breakdown in law and order couldn't be
ignored. Already half of Refuge was untouched by government.
There were large
areas where the police went only in squads or not at all, and
maintenance crews had to be protected or they couldn't enter. For now
the CoDominium Marines escorted George's men, but what would it be
like when the Marines were gone?
George sat in the
paneled study and watched lengthening shadows in the groves outside.
They made dancing patterns through the trees and across neatly
clipped lawns. The outside walls spoiled the view of Raceway Channel
below, and Hamner cursed them.
Why must we have
walls? Walls and a dozen armed men to patrol them. I can remember
when I sat in this room with my father, I was no more than six, and
we could watch boats in the Channel. And later, we had such big
dreams for Hadley. Grandfather telling why he had left Earth, and
what we could do here. Freedom and plenty. We had a paradise, and
Lord, Lord, what have we done with it?
He worked for an
hour, but accomplished little. There weren't any solutions, only
chains of problems that led back into a circle. Solve one and all
would fall into place, but none were soluble without the others. And
yet, if we had a few years, he thought. A few years, but we aren't
going to get them.
In a few years the
farms will support the urban population if we can move people out to
the agricultural interior and get them working - but they won't leave
Refuge, and we can't make them do it.
If we could, though.
If the city's population could be thinned, the power we divert to
food manufacture can be used to build a transport net. Then we can
get more to live in the interior, and we can get more food into the
city. We could make enough things to keep country life pleasant, and
people will want to leave Refuge. But there's no way to the first
step. The people don't want to move and the Freedom Party promises
they won't have to.
George shook his
head. Can Falkenberg's army make them leave? If he gets enough
soldiers can he forcibly evacuate part of the city? Hamner shuddered
at the thought. There would be resistance, slaughter, civil war.
Hadley's independence can't be built on a foundation of blood. No.
His other problems
were similar. The government was bandaging Hadley's wounds, but no
more. Treating symptoms because there was never enough control over
events to treat causes.
He picked up a
report on the fusion generators. They needed spare parts, and he
wondered how long even this crazy standoff would last. He couldn't
really expect more than a few years even if everything went well. A
few years, and then famine because the transport net couldn't be
built fast enough. And when the generators failed, the city's food
supplies would be gone, sanitation services crippled . . . famine and
plague. Were those horsemen better than conquest and war?
He thought of his
interview with the Freedom Party leaders. They didn't care about the
generators because they were sure that Earth wouldn't allow famines
on Hadley. They thought Hadley could use her own helplessness as a
weapon to extract payments from the CoDominium.
George cursed under
his breath. They were wrong. Earth didn't care, and Hadley was too
far away to interest anyone. But even if they were right they were
selling Hadley's independence, and for what? Didn't real independence
mean anything to them?
Laura came in with a
pack of shouting children.
"Already time
for bed?" he asked. The four-year-old picked up his pocket
calculator and sat on his lap, punching buttons and watching the
numbers and lights flash.
George kissed them
all and sent them out, wondering as he did what kind of future they
had.
I should get out of
politics, he told himself. I'm not doing any good, and I'll get Laura
and the kids finished along with me. But what happens if we let go?
What future will they have then?
"You look
worried." Laura was back after putting the children to bed.
"It's only a few days - "
"Yeah."
"And what
really happens then?" she asked. "Not the promises we keep
hearing. What really happens when the CD leaves? It's going to be
bad, isn't it?"
He pulled her to
him, feeling her warmth, and tried to draw comfort from her nearness.
She huddled against him for a moment, then pulled away.
"George,
shouldn't we take what we can and go east? We wouldn't have much, but
you'd be alive."
"It won't be
that bad," he told her. He tried to chuckle, as if she'd made a
joke, but the sound was hollow. She didn't laugh with him.
"There'll be
time for that later," he told her. "If things don't work.
But it should be all right at first. We've got a planetary
constabulary. It should be enough to protect the government - but I'm
moving all of you into the palace in a couple of days."
"The army,"
she said with plenty of contempt. "Some army, Georgie.
Bradford's volunteers who'd kill you - and don't think he wouldn't
like to see you dead, either. And those Marines! You said yourself
they were the scum of space."
"I said it. I
wonder if I believe it. There's something strange happening here,
Laura. Something I don't understand."
She sat on the couch
near his desk and curled her legs under herself. He'd always liked
that pose. She looked up, her eyes wide with interest. She never
looked at anyone else that way.
"I went to see
Major Karantov today," George said. "Thought I'd presume on
an old friend to get a little information about this man Falkenberg.
Boris wasn't in his office, but one of the junior lieutenants, fellow
named Kleist - "
"I've met him,"
Laura said. "Nice boy. A little young."
"Yes. Anyway,
we got into a conversation about what happens after independence. We
discussed street fighting, and the mob riots, you know, and I said I
wished we had some reliable Marines instead of the demobilized outfit
they were leaving here. He looked funny and asked just what did I
want, the Grand Admiral's Guard?"
"That's
strange."
"Yes, and when
Boris came in and I asked what Kleist meant, Boris said the kid was
new and didn't know what he was talking about."
"And you think
he did?" Laura asked. "Boris wouldn't lie to you. Stop
that!" she added hastily. "You have an appointment."
"It can wait."
"With only a
couple of dozen cars on this whole planet and one of them coming for
you, you will not keep it waiting while you make love to your wife,
George Hamner!" Her eyes flashed, but not with anger. "Besides,
I want to know what Boris told you." She danced away from him,
and he went back to the desk.
"It's not just
that," George said. "I've been thinking about it. Those
troops don't look like misfits to me. Off duty they drink, and
they've got the field hands locking their wives and daughters up, but
you know, come morning they're out on that drill field. And
Falkenberg doesn't strike me as the type who'd put up with
undisciplined men."
"But - "
He nodded. "But
it doesn't make sense. And there's the matter of the officers. He's
got too many, and they're not from Hadley. That's why I'm going out
there tonight, without Bradford."
"Have you asked
Ernie about it?"
"Sure. He says
he's got some Party loyalists training as officers. I'm a little
slow, Laura, but I'm not that stupid. I may not notice everything,
but if there were fifty Progressives with military experience I'd
know. Bradford is lying, and why?"
Laura looked
thoughtful and pulled her lower lip in a gesture that Hamner hardly
noticed now, although he'd kidded her about it before they were
married. "He lies for practice," she said. "But his
wife has been talking about independence, and she let something slip
about when Ernie would be President she'd make some changes."
"Well, Ernie
expects to succeed Budreau."
"No,"
Laura said. "She acted like it would be soon. Very soon."
George Hamner shook
his massive head. "He hasn't the guts for a coup," he said
firmly. "And the technicians would walk out in a second. They
can't stand him and he knows it."
"Ernest
Bradford has never recognized any limitations," Laura said. "He
really believes he can make anyone like him if he'll just put out the
effort. No matter how many times he's kicked a man, he thinks a few
smiles and apologies will fix it. But what did Boris tell you about
Falkenberg?"
"Said he was as
good as we can get. A top Marine commander, started as a Navy man and
went over to Marines because he couldn't get fast enough promotions
in the Navy."
"An ambitious
man. How ambitious?"
"Don't know."
"Is he
married?"
"I gather he
once was, but not for a long time. I got the scoop on the court
martial. There weren't any slots open for promotion. But when a
review board passed Falkenberg over for a promotion that the admiral
couldn't have given him in the first place, Falkenberg made such a
fuss about it that he was dismissed for insubordination."
"Can you trust
him, then?" Laura asked. "His men may be the only thing
keeping you alive - "
"I know. And
you, and Jimmy, and Christie, and Peter. ... I asked Boris that, and
he said there's no better man available. You can't hire CD men from
active duty. Boris recommends him highly. Says troops love him, he's
a brilliant tactician, has experience in troop command and staff work
as well - "
"Sounds like
quite a catch."
"Yes. But
Laura, if he's all that valuable, why did they boot him out? My God,
it all sounds so trivial - "
The interphone
buzzed, and Hamner answered it absently. It was the butler to
announce that his car and driver were waiting. "I'll be late,
sweetheart. Don't wait up for me. But you might think about it ... I
swear Falkenberg is the key to something, and I wish I knew what."
"Do you like
him?" Laura asked.
"He isn't a man
who tries to be liked."
"I asked if you
like him."
"Yes. And
there's no reason to. I like him, but can I trust him?"
As he went out he
thought about that. Could he trust Falkenberg? With Laura's life ...
and the kids . . . and for that matter, with a whole planet that
seemed headed for hell and no way out.
The troops were
camped in an orderly square. Earth ramparts had been thrown up around
the perimeter, and the tents were pitched in lines that might have
been laid with a transit.
The equipment was
scrubbed and polished, blanket rolls were tight, each item in the
same place inside the two-man tents . . . but the men were milling
about, shouting, gambling openly in front of the campfires. There
were plenty of bottles in evidence even from the outer gates.
"Halt! Who's
there?"
Hamner started. The
car had stopped at the barricaded gate, but Hamner hadn't seen the
sentry. This was his first visit to the camp at night, and he was
edgy. "Vice President Hamner," he answered.
A strong light
played on his face from the opposite side of the car. Two sentries,
then, and both invisible until he'd come on them. "Good evening,
sir," the first sentry said. "I'll pass the word you're
here."
He raised a small
communicator to his lips. "Corporal of the Guard. Post Number
Five." Then he shouted the same thing, the call ringing clear in
the night. A few heads around campfires turned toward the gate, then
went back to their other activities.
Hamner was escorted
across the camp to officers' row. The huts and tent stood across a
wide parade ground from the densely packed company streets of the
troops and had their own guards.
Over in the company
area the men were singing, and Hamner paused to listen.
"I've a head
like a concertina, and I think I'm ready to die, and I'm here in the
clink for a thundrin' drink and blacking the Corporal's eye,
With another man's
cloak underneath of my head and a beautiful view of the yard, it's
the crapaud for me, and no more System D,
I was Drunk and
Resistin' the Guard!
Mad drunk and
resistin' the guard!
It's the crapaud for
me, and no more System D, I was Drunk and Resistin' the Guard."
Falkenberg came out
of his hut. "Good evening, sir. What brings you here?"
I'll just bet you'd
like to know, Hamner thought. "I have a few things to discuss
with you, Colonel. About the organization of the constabulary."
"Certainly."
Falkenberg was crisp and seemed slightly nervous. Hamner wondered if
he were drunk. "Shall we go to the Mess?" Falkenberg asked.
"More comfortable there, and I haven't got my quarters made up
for visitors."
Or you've got
something here I shouldn't see, George thought. Something or someone.
Local girl? What difference does it make? God, I wish I could trust
this man.
Falkenberg led the
way to the ranch house in the center of officers' row. The troops
were still shouting and singing, and a group was chasing each other
on the parade ground. Most were dressed in the blue and yellow
garrison uniforms Falkenberg had designed, but others trotted past in
synthi-leather battledress. They carried rifles and heavy packs.
"Punishment
detail," Falkenberg explained. "Not as many of those as
there used to be."
Sound crashed from
the Officers' Mess building: drums and bagpipes, a wild sound of war
mingled with shouted laughter. Inside, two dozen men sat at a long
table as white-coated stewards moved briskly about with whiskey
bottles and glasses.
Kilted bandsmen
marched around the table with pipes. Drummers stood in one corner.
The deafening noise stopped as Falkenberg entered, and everyone got
to his feet. Some were quite unsteady.
"Carry on,"
Falkenberg said, but no one did. They eyed Hamner nervously, and at a
wave from the mess president at the head of the table the pipers and
drummers went outside. Several stewards with bottles followed them.
The other officers sat and talked in low tones. After all the noise
the room seemed very quiet.
"We'll sit over
here, shall we?" the colonel asked. He led Hamner to a small
table in one corner. A steward brought two glasses of whiskey and set
them down.
The room seemed
curiously bare to Hamner. A few banners, some paintings; very little
else. Somehow, he thought, there ought to be more. As if they're
waiting. But that's ridiculous.
Most of the officers
were strangers, but George recognized half a dozen Progressives, the
highest rank a first lieutenant. He waved at the ones he knew and
received brief smiles that seemed almost guilty before the Party
volunteers turned back to their companions.
"Yes, sir?"
Falkenberg prompted.
"Just who are
these men?" George demanded. "I know they're not native to
Hadley. Where did they come from?"
"CoDominium
officers on the beach," Falkenberg answered promptly. "Reduction
in force. Lots of good men got riffed into early retirement. Some of
them heard I was coming here and chose to give up their reserve
ranks. They came out on the colony ship on the chance I'd hire them."
"And you did."
"Naturally I
jumped at the chance to get experienced men at prices we could
afford."
"But why all
the secrecy? Why haven't I heard about them before?"
Falkenberg shrugged.
"We've violated several of the Grand Senate's regulations on
mercenaries, you know. It's best not to talk about these things until
the CD has definitely gone. After that, the men are committed.
They'll have to stay loyal to Hadley." Falkenberg lifted his
whiskey glass. "Vice President Bradford knew all about it."
"I'll bet he
did." Hamner lifted his own glass. "Cheers."
"Cheers."
And I wonder what
else that little snake knows about, Hamner wondered. Without his
support Falkenberg would be out of here in a minute . . . and what
then?
"Colonel, your
organization charts came to my office yesterday. You've kept all the
Marines in one battalion with these newly hired officers. Then you've
got three battalions of locals, but all the Party stalwarts are in
the Fourth. The Second and Third are local recruits, but under your
own men."
"That's a fair
enough description, yes, sir," Falkenberg said.
And you know my
question, George thought. "Why, Colonel? A suspicious man would
say that you've got your own little army here, with a structure set
so that you can take complete control if there's ever a difference of
opinion between you and the government."
"A suspicious
man might say that," Falkenberg agreed. He drained his glass and
waited for George to do the same. A steward came over with freshly
filled glasses.
"But a
practical man might say something else," Falkenberg continued.
"Do you expect me to put green officers in command of those
guardhouse troops? Or your good-hearted Progressives in command of
green recruits?"
"But you've
done just that - "
"On Mr.
Bradford's orders I've kept the Fourth Battalion as free of my
mercenaries as possible. That isn't helping their training, either.
But Mr. Bradford seems to have the same complaint as you."
"I haven't
complained."
"I thought you
had," Falkenberg said. "In any event, you have your Party
force, if you wish to use it to control me. Actually you have all the
control you need anyway. You hold the purse strings. Without supplies
to feed these men and money to pay them, I couldn't hold them an
hour."
"Troops have
found it easier to rob the paymaster than fight for him before now,"
Hamner observed. "Cheers." He drained the glass, then
suppressed a cough. The stuff was strong, and he wasn't used to
drinking neat whiskey. He wondered what would happen if he ordered
something else, beer, or a mixed drink. Somehow it didn't seem to go
with the party.
"I might have
expected that remark from Bradford," Falkenberg said.
Hamner nodded.
Bradford was always suspicious of something. There were times when
George wondered if the First Vice President were quite sane, but that
was silly. Still, when the pressure was on, Ernie Bradford did manage
to get on people's nerves with his suspicions, and he would rather
see nothing done than give up control of anything.
"How am I
supposed to organize this coup?" Falkenberg demanded. "I
have a handful of men loyal to me. The rest are mercenaries, or your
locals. You've paid a lot to bring me and my staff here. You want us
to fight impossible odds with nonexistent equipment. If you also
insist on your own organization of forces, I cannot accept the
responsibility."
"I didn't say
that."
Falkenberg shrugged.
"If President Budreau so orders, and he would on your
recommendation, I'll turn command over to anyone he names."
And he'd name
Bradford, Hamner thought. I'd rather trust Falkenberg. Whatever
Falkenberg does will at least be competently done; with Ernie there
was no assurance he wasn't up to something, and none that he'd be
able to accomplish anything if he wasn't.
But. "What do
you want out of this, Colonel Falkenberg?"
The question seemed
to surprise the colonel. "Money, of course." Falkenberg
answered. "A little glory, perhaps, although that's not a word
much used nowadays. A position of responsibility commensurate with my
abilities. I've always been a soldier, and I know nothing else."
"And why didn't
you stay with the CD?"
"It is in the
record," Falkenberg said coldly. "Surely you know."
"But I don't."
Hamner was calm, but the whiskey was enough to make him bolder than
he'd intended to be, even in this camp surrounded by Falkenberg's
men. "I don't know at all. It makes no sense as I've been told
it. You had no reason to complain about promotions, and the admiral
had no reason to prefer charges. It looks as if you had yourself
cashiered."
Falkenberg nodded.
"You're nearly correct. Astute of you." The soldier's lips
were tight and his gray eyes bored into Hamner. "I suppose you
are entitled to an answer. Grand Senator Bronson has sworn to ruin me
for reasons you needn't know. If I hadn't been dismissed for a
trivial charge of technical insubordination, I'd have faced a series
of trumped-up charges. At least this way I'm out with a clean
record."
A clean record and a
lot of bitterness. "And that's all there is to it?"
"That's all."
It was plausible. So
was everything else Falkenberg said. Yet Hamner was sure that
Falkenberg was lying. Not lying directly, but not telling everything
either. Hamner felt that if he knew the right questions he could get
the answers, but there weren't any questions to ask.
And, Hamner thought,
I must either trust this man or get rid of him; and to irritate him
while keeping him is the stupidest policy of all.
The pipers came back
in, and the mess president looked to Falkenberg. "Something
more?" Falkenberg asked.
"No."
"Thank you."
The colonel nodded to the junior officer. The mess president waved
approval to the pipe major. Pipe major raised his mace, and the drums
crashed. The pipers began, standing in place at first, then marching
around the table. Officers shouted, and the room was filled with
martial cries. The party was on again.
George looked for
one of his own appointees and discovered that every Progressive
officer in the room was one of his own. There wasn't a single man
from Bradford's wing of the Party. Was that significant?
He rose and caught
the eye of a Progressive lieutenant. "I'll let Farquhar escort
me out, Colonel," Hamner said.
"As you
please."
The noise followed
them out of the building and along the regimental street. There were
more sounds from the parade ground and the camp beyond. Fires burned
brightly in the night.
"All right,
Jamie, what's going on here?" Hamner demanded.
"Going on, sir?
Nothing that I know of. If you mean the party, we're celebrating the
men's graduation from basic training. Tomorrow they'll start advanced
work."
"Maybe I meant
the party," Hamner said. "You seem pretty friendly with the
other officers."
"Yes, sir."
Hamner noted the enthusiasm in Jamie Farquhar's voice. The boy was
young enough to be caught up in the military mystique, and George
felt sorry for him. "They're good men," Jamie said.
"Yes, I suppose
so. Where are the others? Mr. Bradford's people?"
"They had a
field problem that kept them out of camp until late," Farquhar
said. "Mr. Bradford came around about dinner time and asked that
they be sent to a meeting somewhere. He spends a lot of time with
them."
"I expect he
does," Hamner said. "Look, you've been around the Marines,
Jamie. Where are those men from? What CD outfits?"
"I really don't
know, sir. Colonel Falkenberg has forbidden us to ask. He says that
the men start with a clean record here."
Hamner noted the
tone Farquhar used when he mentioned Falkenberg. More than respect.
Awe, perhaps. "Have any of them served with the colonel before?"
"I think so,
yes, sir. They don't like him. Curse the colonel quite openly. But
they're afraid of that big sergeant major of his. Calvin has offered
to whip any two men in the camp, and they can choose the rules. A few
of the newcomers tried it, but none of the Marines would. Not one."
"And you say
the colonel's not popular with the men?"
Farquhar was
thoughtful for a moment. "I wouldn't say he was popular, no
sir."
Yet, Hamner thought,
Boris had said he was. Whiskey buzzed in George's head. "Who is
popular?"
"Major Savage,
sir. The men like him. And Captain Fast, the Marines particularly
respect him. He's the adjutant."
"All right.
Look, can this outfit fight? Have we got a chance after the CD
leaves?" They stood and watched the scenes around the campfires.
Men were drinking heavily, shouting and singing and chasing each
other through the camp. There was a fist fight in front of one tent,
and no officer moved to stop it.
"Do you allow
that?" Hamner demanded.
"We try not to
interfere too much." Farquhar said. "The colonel says half
an officer's training is learning what not to see. Anyway, the
sergeants have broken up the fight, see?"
"But you let
the men drink."
"Sir, there's
no regulation against drinking. Only against being unfit for duty.
And these men are tough. They obey orders and they can fight. I think
we'll do rather well."
Pride. They've put
some pride into Jamie Farquhar, and maybe into some of those
jailbirds out there too. "All right, Jamie. Go back to your
party. I'll find my driver."
As he was driven
away, George Hamner felt better about Hadley's future, but he was
still convinced something was wrong; and he had no idea what it was.
IX
THE STADIUM HAD been
built to hold one hundred thousand people. There were at least that
many jammed inside it now, and an equal number swarmed about the
market squares and streets adjacent to it. The full CoDominium Marine
garrison was on duty to keep order, but it wasn't needed.
The celebration was
boisterous, but there wouldn't be any trouble today. The Freedom
Party was as anxious to avoid an incident as the Marines on this, the
greatest day for Hadley since Discovery. The CoDominium was turning
over power to local authority and getting out; and nothing must spoil
that.
Hamner and
Falkenberg watched from the upper tiers of the Stadium. Row after row
of plastisteel seats cascaded like a giant staircase down from their
perch to the central grassy field below. Every seat was filled, so
that the Stadium was a riot of color.
President Budreau
and Governor Flaherty stood in the Presidential box directly across
from Falkenberg and Hamner. The President's Guard, in blue uniforms,
and the CoDominium Marines, in their scarlet and gold, stood at rigid
attention around the officials.
The President's box
was shared by Vice President Bradford, the Freedom Party opposition
leaders, Progressive officials, officers of the retiring CoDominium
government, and everyone else who could beg an invitation. George
knew that some of them were wondering where he had got off to.
Bradford would
particularly notice Hamner's absence. He might, George thought, even
think the Second Vice President was out stirring up opposition or
rebellion. Ernie Bradford had lately been accusing Hamner of every
kind of disloyalty to the Progressive Party, and it wouldn't be long
before he demanded that Budreau dismiss him.
To the devil with
the little man! George thought. He hated crowds, and the thought of
standing there and listening to all those speeches, of being polite
to party officials whom he detested, was just too much. When he'd
suggested watching from another vantage point, Falkenberg had quickly
agreed. The soldier didn't seem to care too much for formal
ceremonies either. Civilian ceremonies, Hamner corrected himself;
Falkenberg seemed to like military parades.
The ritual was
almost over. The CD Marine bands had marched through the field, the
speeches had been made, presents delivered and accepted. A hundred
thousand people had cheered, and it was an awesome sound. The raw
power was frightening.
Hamner glanced at
his watch. As he did the Marine band broke into a roar of drums. The
massed drummers ceased to beat one by one until there was but a
single drum roll that went on and on and on, until finally it too
stopped. The entire Stadium waited.
One trumpet, no
more. A clear call, plaintive but triumphant, the final salute to the
CoDominium banner above the Palace. The notes hung in Hadley's air
like something tangible, and slowly, deliberately, the crimson and
blue banner floated down from the flagpole as Hadley's blazing gold
and green arose.
Across the city
uniformed men saluted these flags, one rising, the other setting. The
blue uniforms of Hadley saluted with smiles, the red-uniformed
Marines with indifference. The CoDominium banner rose and fell across
two hundred light years and seventy worlds in this year of Grace;
what difference would one minor planet make?
Hamner glanced at
John Falkenberg. The colonel had no eyes for the rising banners of
Hadley. His rigid salute was given to the CD flag, and as the last
note of the final trumpet salute died away Hamner thought he saw
Falkenberg wipe his eyes.
The gesture was so
startling that George looked again, but there was nothing more to
see, and he decided that he had been mistaken.
"That's it,
then," Falkenberg snapped. His voice was strained. "I
suppose we ought to join the party. Can't keep His Nibs waiting."
Hamner nodded. The
Presidential box connected directly to the Palace, and the officials
would arrive at the reception quickly while Falkenberg and Hamner had
the entire width of the crowded Stadium to traverse. People were
already streaming out to join the festive crowds on the grass in the
center of the bowl.
"Let's go this
way," George said. He led Falkenberg to the top of the Stadium
and into a small alcove where he used a key to open an inconspicuous
door. "Tunnel system takes us right into the Palace, across and
under the Stadium," he told Falkenberg. "Not exactly
secret, but we don't want the people to know about it because they'd
demand we open it to the public. Built for maintenance crews,
mostly." He locked the door behind them and waved expressively
at the wide interior corridor. "Place was pretty well designed,
actually."
The grudging tone of
admiration wasn't natural to him. If a thing was well done, it was
well done . . . but lately he found himself talking that way about
CoDominium projects. He resented the whole CD administration and the
men who'd dumped the job of governing after creating problems no one
could solve.
They wound down
stairways and through more passages, then up to another set of locked
doors. Through those was the Palace courtyard. The celebrations were
already under way, and it would be a long night.
George wondered what
would come now. In the morning the last CD boat would rise, and the
CoDominium would be gone. Tomorrow, Hadley would be alone with her
problems.
"Tensh-Hut!"
Sergeant Major Calvin's crisp command cut through the babble.
"Please be
seated, gentlemen." Falkenberg took his place at the head of the
long table in the command room of what had been the central
headquarters for the CoDominium Marines.
Except for the
uniforms and banners there were few changes from what people already
called "the old days." The officers were seated in the
usual places for a regimental staff meeting. Maps hung along one
wall, and a computer output screen dominated another. Stewards in
white coats brought coffee and discreetly retired behind the armed
sentries outside.
Falkenberg looked at
the familiar scene and knew the constabulary had occupied the Marine
barracks for two days; the Marines had been there twenty years.
A civilian lounged
in the seat reserved for the regimental intelligence officer. His
tunic was a riot of colors; he was dressed in current Earth fashions,
with a brilliant cravat and baggy sleeves. A long sash took the place
of a belt and concealed his pocket calculator. Hadley's upper classes
were only just beginning to wear such finery.
"You all know
why we're here," Falkenberg told the assembled officers. "Those
of you who've served with me before know I don't hold many staff
councils. They are customary among mercenary units, however. Sergeant
Major Calvin will represent the enlisted personnel of the regiment."
There were faint
titters. Calvin had been associated with John Falkenberg for eighteen
standard years. Presumably they had differences of opinion, but no
one ever saw them. The idea of the RSM opposing his colonel in the
name of the troops was amusing. On the other hand, no colonel could
afford to ignore the views of his sergeants' mess.
Falkenberg's frozen
features relaxed slightly as if he appreciated his own joke. His eyes
went from face to face. Everyone in the room was a former Marine, and
all but a very few had served with him before. The Progressive
officers were on duty elsewhere - and it had taken careful planning
by the adjutant to accomplish that without suspicion.
Falkenberg turned to
the civilian. "Dr. Whitlock, you've been on Hadley for
sixty-seven days. That's not very long to make a planetary study, but
it's about all the time we have. Have you reached any conclusions?"
"Yeah."
Whitlock spoke with an exaggerated drawl that most agreed was
affected. "Not much different from Fleet's evaluation, Colonel.
Can't think why you went to the expense of bringin' me out here. Your
Intelligence people know their jobs about as well as I know mine."
Whitlock sprawled
back in his seat and looked very relaxed and casual in the midst of
the others' military formality. There was no contempt in his manner.
The military had one set of rules and he had another, and he worked
well with soldiers.
"Your
conclusions are similar to Fleet's, then," Falkenberg said.
"With the
limits of analysis, yes, sir. Doubt any competent man could reach a
different conclusion. This planet's headed for barbarism within a
generation."
There was no sound
from the other officers but several were startled. Good training kept
them from showing it.
Whitlock produced a
cigar from a sleeve pocket and inspected it carefully. "You want
the analysis?" he asked.
"A summary,
please." Falkenberg looked at each face again. Major Savage and
Captain Fast weren't surprised; they'd known before they came to
Hadley. Some of the junior officers and company commanders had
obviously guessed.
"Simple
enough," Whitlock said. "There's no self-sustaining
technology for a population half this size. Without imports the
standard of livin's bound to fall. Some places they could take that,
but not here.
"Here, when
they can't get their pretty gadgets, 'stead of workin' the people
here in Refuge will demand the Government do something about it.
Guv'mint's in no position to refuse, either. Not strong enough.
"So they'll
have to divert investment capital into consumer goods. There'll be a
decrease in technological efficiency, and then fewer goods, leadin'
to more demands, and another cycle just like before. Hard to predict
just what comes after that, but it can't be good.
"Afore long,
then, they won't have the technological resources to cope even if
they could get better organized. It's not a new pattern, Colonel.
Fleet saw it comin' a while back. I'm surprised you didn't take their
word for it."
Falkenberg nodded.
"I did, but with something this important I thought I better get
another opinion. You've met the Freedom Party leaders, Dr. Whitlock.
Is there any chance they could keep civilization if they governed?"
Whitlock laughed. It
was a long drawn-out laugh, relaxed, totally out of place in a
military council. " 'Bout as much chance as for a 'gator to turn
loose of a hog, Colonel. Even assumin' they know what to do, how can
they do it? Suppose they get a vision and try to change their
policies? Somebody'll start a new party along the lines of the
Freedom Party's present thinkin'.
"Colonel, you
will never convince all them people there's things the Guv'mint just
cain't do. They don't want to believe it, and there's always goin' to
be slick talkers willin' to say it's all a plot. Now, if the
Progressive Party, which has the right ideas already, was to set up
to rule strong, they might be able to keep something goin' a while
longer."
"Do you think
they can?" Major Savage asked.
"Nope. They
might have fun tryin'," Whitlock answered. "Problem is that
independent countryside. There's not enough support for what they'd
have to do in city or country. Eventually that's all got to change,
but the revolution that gives this country a real powerful
government's going to be one bloody mess, I can tell you. A long
drawn-out bloody mess at that."
"Haven't they
any hope at all?" The questioner was a junior officer newly
promoted to company commander.
Whitlock sighed.
"Every place you look, you see problems. City's vulnerable to
any sabotage that stops the food plants, for instance. And the fusion
generators ain't exactly eternal, either. They're runnin' 'em hard
without enough time off for maintenance. Hadley's operating on its
capital, not its income, and pretty soon there's not goin' to be any
capital to operate off of."
"And that's
your conclusion," Falkenberg said. "It doesn't sound
precisely like the perfect place for us to retire to."
"Sure doesn't,"
Whitlock agreed. He stretched elaborately. "Cut it any way you
want to, this place isn't going to be self-sufficient without a lot
of blood spilled."
"Could they ask
for help from American Express?" the junior officer asked.
"They could
ask, but they won't get it," Whitlock said. "Son, this
planet was neutralized by agreement way back when the CD Governor
came aboard. Now the Russians aren't going to let a U.S. company like
AmEx take it back into the U.S. sphere, same as the U.S. won't let
the Commies come in and set up shop. Grand Senate would order a
quarantine on this system just like that." The historian snapped
his fingers. "Whole purpose of the CoDominium."
"One thing
bothers me," Captain Fast said. "You've been assuming that
the CD will simply let Hadley revert to barbarism. Won't BuRelock and
the Colonial Office come back if things get that desperate?"
"No."
"You seem
rather positive," Major Savage observed.
"I'm positive."
Dr. Whitlock said. "Budgets got cut again this year. They don't
have the resources to take on a place like Hadley. BuRelock's got its
own worries."
"But - "
The lieutenant who'd asked the questions earlier sounded worried.
"Colonel, what could happen to the Bureau of Relocation?"
"As Dr.
Whitlock says, no budget," Falkenberg answered. "Gentlemen,
I shouldn't have to tell you about that. You've seen what the Grand
Senate did to the Fleet. That's why you're demobilized. And Kaslov's
people have several new seats on the Presidium next year, just as
Harmon's gang has won some minor elections in the States. Both those
outfits want to abolish the CD, and they've had enough influence to
get everyone's appropriations cut to the bone."
"But population
control has to ship people out, sir," the lieutenant protested.
"Yes."
Falkenberg's face was grim; perhaps he was recalling his own
experiences with population control's methods. "But they have to
employ worlds closer to Earth, regardless of the problems that may
cause for the colonists. Marginal exploitation ventures like Hadley's
mines are being shut down. This isn't the only planet the CD's
abandoning this year." His voice took on a note of thick irony.
"Excuse me. Granting independence."
"So they can't
rely on CoDominium help," Captain Fast said.
"No. If
Hadley's going to reach takeoff, it's got to do it on its own."
"Which Dr.
Whitlock says is impossible," Major Savage observed. "John,
we've got ourselves into a cleft stick, haven't we?"
"I said it was
unlikely, not that it was impossible," Whitlock reminded them.
"It'll take a government stronger than anything Hadley's liable
to get, though. And some smart people making the right moves. Or
maybe there'll be some luck. Like a good, selective plague. Now
that'd do it. Plague to kill off the right people - but if it got too
many, there wouldn't be enough left to take advantage of the
technology, so I don't suppose that's the answer either."
Falkenberg nodded
grimly. "Thank you, Dr. Whitlock. Now, gentlemen, I want
battalion commanders and headquarters officers to read Dr. Whitlock's
report. Meanwhile, we have another item. Major Savage will shortly
make a report to the Progressive Party Cabinet, and I want you to pay
attention. We will have a critique after his presentation. Major?"
Savage stood and
went to the readout screen. "Gentlemen." He used the wall
console to bring an organization chart onto the screen.
"The regiment
consists of approximately two thousand officers and men. Of these,
five hundred are former Marines, and another five hundred are
Progressive partisans organized under officers appointed by Mr. Vice
President Bradford.
"The other
thousand are general recruits. Some of them are passable mercenaries,
and some are local youngsters who want to play soldier and would be
better off in a national guard. All recruits have received basic
training comparable to CD Marine ground basic without assault, fleet,
or jump schooling. Their performance has been somewhat better than we
might expect from a comparable number of Marine recruits in CD
service.
"This morning,
Mr. Bradford ordered the Colonel to remove the last of our officers
and noncoms from the Fourth Battalion, and as of this P.M. the Fourth
will be totally under the control of officers appointed by First Vice
President Bradford. He has not informed us of the reason for this
order."
Falkenberg nodded.
"In your estimate, Major, are the troops ready for combat
duties?" Falkenberg listened idly as he drank coffee. The
briefing was rehearsed, and he knew what Savage would answer. The men
were trained, but they did not as yet make up a combat unit.
Falkenberg waited until Savage had finished the presentation.
"Recommendations?"
"Recommended
that the Second Battalion be integrated with the First, sir. Normal
practice is to form each maniple with one recruit, three privates,
and a monitor in charge. With equal numbers of new men and veterans
we will have a higher proportion of recruits, but this will give us
two battalions of men under our veteran NCO's, with Marine privates
for leavening.
"We will thus
break up the provisional training organization and set up the
regiment with a new permanent structure, First and Second Battalions
for combat duties, Third composed of locals with former Marine
officers to be held in reserve. The Fourth will not be under our
command."
"Your reasons
for this organization?" Falkenberg asked.
"Morale, sir.
The new troops feel discriminated against. They're under harsher
discipline than the former Marines, and they resent it. Putting them
in the same maniples with the Marines will stop that."
"Let's see the
new structure. "
Savage manipulated
the input console and charts swam across the screen. The
administrative structure was standard, based in part on the CD
Marines and the rest on the national armies of Churchill. That wasn't
the important part. It wasn't obvious, but the structure demanded
that all the key posts be held by Falkenberg's mercenaries.
The best Progressive
appointees were either in the Third or Fourth Battalions, and there
were no locals with the proper command experience; so went the
justification. It looked good to Falkenberg, and there was no sound
military reason to question it. Bradford would be so pleased about
his new control of the Fourth that he wouldn't look at the rest; not
yet, anyway. The others didn't know enough to question it.
Yes, Falkenberg
thought. It ought to work. He waited until Savage was finished and
thanked him, then addressed the others. "Gentlemen, if you have
criticisms, let's hear them now. I want a solid front when we get to
the Cabinet meeting tomorrow, and I want every one of you ready to
answer any question. I don't have to tell you how important it is
that they buy this."
They all nodded.
"And another
thing," Falkenberg said. "Sergeant Major."
"As soon as the
Cabinet has bought off on this new organization plan, I want this
regiment under normal discipline."
"Break it to
'em hard, Top Soldier. Tell the Forty-second the act's over. From
here on recruits and old hands get treated alike, and the next man
who gives me trouble will wish he hadn't been born."
"Sir!"
Calvin smiled happily. The last months had been a strain for
everyone. Now the colonel was taking over again, thank God. The men
had lost some of the edge, but he'd soon put it back again. It was
time to take off the masks, and Calvin for one was glad of it.
X
THE SOUND OF fifty
thousand people shouting in unison can be terrifying. It raises fears
at a level below thought; creates a panic older than the fear of
nuclear weapons and the whole panoply of technology. It is raw, naked
power from a cauldron of sound.
Everyone in the
Palace listened to the chanting crowd. The Government people were
outwardly calm, but they moved quietly through the halls, and spoke
in low tones - or shouted for no reason. The Palace was filled with a
nameless fear.
The Cabinet meeting
started at dawn and continued until late in the morning. It had gone
on and on without settling anything. Just before noon Vice President
Bradford stood at his place at the council table with his lips tight
in rage. He pointed a trembling finger at George Hamner.
"It's your
fault!" Bradford shouted. "Now the technicians have joined
in the demand for a new constitution, and you control them. I've
always said you were a traitor to the Progressive Party!"
"Gentlemen,
please," President Budreau insisted. His voice held infinite
weariness. "Come now, that sort of language - "
"Traitor?"
Hamner demanded. "If your blasted officials would pay a little
attention to the technicians, this wouldn't have happened. In three
months you've managed to convert the techs from the staunchest
supporters of this Party into allies of the rebels despite everything
I could do."
"We need strong
government," Bradford said. His voice was contemptuous, and the
little half-smile had returned.
George Hamner made a
strong effort to control his anger. "You won't get it this way.
You've herded my techs around like cattle, worked them overtime for
no extra pay, and set those damned soldiers of yours onto them when
they protested. It's worth a man's life to have your constabulary mad
at him."
"Resisting the
police," Bradford said. "We can't permit that."
"You don't know
what government is!" Hamner said. His control vanished and he
stood, towering above Bradford. The little man retreated a step, and
his smile froze. "You've got the nerve to call me a traitor
after all you've done! I ought to break your neck!"
"Gentlemen!"
Budreau stood at his place at the head of the table. "Stop it!"
There was a roar from the Stadium. The Palace seemed to vibrate to
the shouts of the constitutional convention.
The Cabinet room
became silent for a moment. Wearily, Budreau continued. "This
isn't getting us anywhere. I suggest we adjourn for half an hour to
allow tempers to cool."
There was murmured
agreement from the others. "And I want no more of these
accusations and threats when we convene again," President
Budreau said. "Is that understood?"
Grudgingly the
others agreed. Budreau left alone. Then Bradford, followed by a
handful of his closest supporters. Other ministers rushed to be seen
leaving with him, as if it might be dangerous to be thought in
opposition to the First Vice President.
George Hamner found
himself alone in the room. He shrugged, and went out. Ernest Bradford
had been joined by a man in uniform. Hamner recognized Lieutenant
Colonel Cordova, commander of the Fourth Battalion of constabulary,
and a fanatic Bradford supporter. Hamner remembered when Bradford had
first proposed a commission for Cordova, and how unimportant it had
seemed then.
Bradford's group
went down the hall. They seemed to be whispering something together
and making a point of excluding the Second Vice President. Hamner
merely shrugged.
"Buy you a
coffee?" The voice came from behind and startled George. He
turned to see Falkenberg.
"Sure. Not that
it's going to do any good. We're in trouble, Colonel."
"Anything
decided?" Falkenberg asked. "It's been a long wait."
"And a useless
one. They ought to invite you into the Cabinet meetings. You might
have some good advice. There's sure as hell no reason to keep you
waiting in an anteroom while we yell at each other. I've tried to
change that policy, but I'm not too popular right now." There
was another shout from the Stadium.
"Whole
government's not too popular," Falkenberg said. "And when
that convention gets through ..."
"Another thing
I tried to stop last week," George told him. "But Budreau
didn't have the guts to stand up to them. So now we've got fifty
thousand drifters, with nothing better to do, sitting as an assembly
of the people. That ought to produce quite a constitution."
Falkenberg shrugged.
He might have been about to say something, George thought, but if he
were, he changed his mind. They reached the executive dining room and
took seats near one wall. Bradford's group had a table across the
room from them, and all of Bradford's people looked at them with
suspicion.
"You'll get
tagged as a traitor for sitting with me, Colonel." Hamner
laughed, but his voice was serious. "I think I meant that, you
know. Bradford's blaming me for our problems with the techs, and
between us he's also insisting that you aren't doing enough to
restore order in the city."
Falkenberg ordered
coffee. "Do I need to explain to you why we haven't?"
"No."
George Hamner's huge hand engulfed a water glass. "God knows
you've been given almost no support the last couple of months.
Impossible orders, and you've never been allowed to do anything
decisive. I see you've stopped the raids on rebel headquarters."
Falkenberg nodded.
"We weren't catching anyone. Too many leaks in the Palace. And
most of the time the Fourth Battalion had already muddied the water.
If they'd let us do our job instead of having to ask permission
through channels for every operation we undertake, maybe the enemy
wouldn't know as much about what we're going to do. Now I've quit
asking."
"You've done
pretty well with the railroad."
"Yes. That's
one success, anyway. Things are pretty quiet out in the country where
we're on our own. Odd, isn't it, that the closer we are to the expert
supervision of the government, the less effective my men seem to be?"
"But can't you
control Cordova's men? They're causing more people to desert us for
the rebels than you can count. I can't believe unrestrained brutality
is useful."
"Nor I. Unless
there's a purpose to it, force isn't a very effective instrument of
government. But surely you know, Mr. Hamner, that I have no control
over the Fourth. Mr. Bradford has been expanding it since he took
control, and it's now almost as large as the rest of the regiment -
and totally under his control, not mine."
"Bradford
accused me of being a traitor," Hamner said carefully. "With
his own army, he might have something planned. ..."
"You once
thought that of me," Falkenberg said.
"This is very
serious," Hamner said. "Ernie Bradford has built an army
only he controls, and he's making wild accusations."
Falkenberg smiled
grimly. "I wouldn't worry about it too much."
"You wouldn't?
No. You wouldn't. But I'm scared, Colonel. I've got my family to
think of, and I'm plenty scared." Well, George thought, now it's
out in the open; can I trust him not to be Ernie Bradford's man?
"You believe
Bradford is planning an illegal move?" Falkenberg asked.
"I don't know."
Suddenly George was afraid again.
He saw no sympathy
in the other man's eyes. And just who can I trust? Who? Anyone?
"Would you feel
safer if your family were in our regimental barracks?"
Falkenberg asked. "It could be arranged."
"It's about
time we had something out," George said at last. "Yes, I'd
feel safer with my wife and children under protection. But I'd feel
safer yet if you'd level with me."
"About what?"
Falkenberg's expression didn't change.
"Those Marines
of yours, to begin with," George said. "Those aren't penal
battalion men. I've watched them, they're too well disciplined. And
the battle banners they carry weren't won in any peanut actions, on
this planet or anywhere else. Just who are those men, Colonel?"
John Falkenberg
smiled thinly. "I've been wondering when you'd ask. Why haven't
you brought this up with President Budreau?"
"I don't know.
I think because I trust you more than Bradford, and the President
would only ask him . . . besides, if the President dismissed you
there'd be nobody able to oppose Ernie. If you will oppose him that
is - but you can stand up to him, anyway."
"What makes you
think I would?" Falkenberg asked. "I obey the lawful orders
of the civilian government - "
"Yeah, sure.
Hadley's going downhill so fast another conspiracy more or less can't
make any difference anyway ... you haven't answered my question."
"The battle
banners are from the Forty-second CD Marine Regiment,"
Falkenberg answered slowly. "It was decommissioned as part of
the budget cuts."
Forty-second, Hamner
thought for a second. He searched through his mental files to find
the information he'd seen on Falkenberg. "That was your
regiment."
"Certainly."
"You brought it
with you."
"A battalion of
it," John Falkenberg agreed. "Their women are waiting to
join them when we get settled. When the Forty-second was
decommissioned, the men decided to stay together if they could."
"So you brought
not only the officers, but the men as well."
"Yes."
There was still no change in Falkenberg's expression, although Hamner
searched the other man's face closely.
George felt both
fear and relief. If those were Falkenberg's men - "What is your
game, Colonel? You want more than just pay for your troops. I wonder
if I shouldn't be more afraid of you than of Bradford."
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Decisions you have to make, Mr. Hamner. I could give you my
word that we mean you no harm, but what would that be worth? I will
pledge to take care of your family. If you want us to."
There was another
shout from the Stadium, louder this time. Bradford and Lieutenant
Colonel Cordova left their table, still talking in low tones. The
conversation was animated, with violent gestures, as if Cordova were
trying to talk Bradford into something. As they left, Bradford
agreed.
George watched them
leave the room. The mob shouted again, making up his mind for him.
"I'll send Laura and the kids over to your headquarters this
afternoon."
"Better make it
immediately," Falkenberg said calmly.
George frowned. "You
mean there's not much time? Whatever you've got planned, it'll have
to be quick, but this afternoon?"
John shook his head.
"You seem to think I have some kind of master plan, Mr. Vice
President. No. I suggest you get your wife to our barracks before I'm
ordered not to undertake her protection, that's all. For the rest,
I'm only a soldier in a political situation."
"With Professor
Whitlock to advise you," Hamner said. He looked closely at
Falkenberg.
"Surprised you
with that one, didn't I?" Hamner demanded. "I've seen
Whitlock moving around and wondered why he didn't come to the
President. He must have fifty political agents in the convention
right now."
"You do seem
observant," Falkenberg said.
"Sure."
Hamner was bitter. "What the hell good does it do me? I don't
understand anything that's going on, and I don't trust anybody. I see
pieces of the puzzle, but I can't put them together. Sometimes I
think I should use what influence I've got left to get you out of the
picture anyway."
"As you will."
Falkenberg's smile was coldly polite. "Whom do you suggest as
guards for your family after that? The Chief of Police? Listen."
The Stadium roared
again in an angry sound that swelled in volume.
"You win,"
Hamner left the table and walked slowly back to the council room. His
head swirled.
Only one thing stood
out clearly. John Christian Falkenberg controlled the only military
force on Hadley that could oppose Bradford's people - and the Freedom
Party gangsters, who were the original enemies in the first place.
Can't forget them just because I'm getting scared of Ernie, George
thought.
He turned away from
the council room and went downstairs to the apartment he'd been
assigned. The sooner Laura was in the Marine barracks, the safer he'd
feel.
But am I sending her
to my enemies? O God, can I trust anyone at all? Boris said he was an
honorable man. Keep remembering that, keep remembering that. Honor.
Falkenberg has honor, and Ernie Bradford has none.
And me? What have I
got for leaving the Freedom Party and bringing my technicians over to
the Progressives? A meaningless title as Second Vice President, and -
The crowd screamed
again. "POWER TO THE PEOPLE!"
George heard and
walked faster.
Bradford's grin was
back. It was the first thing George noticed as he came into the
council chamber. The little man stood at the table with an amused
smile. It seemed quite genuine, and more than a little frightening.
"Ah, here is
our noble Minister of Technology and Second Vice President,"
Bradford grinned. "Just in time. Mr. President, that gang out
there is threatening the city. I am sure you will all be pleased to
know that I've taken steps to end the situation."
"What have you
done?" George demanded.
Bradford's smile
broadened even more. "At this moment, Colonel Cordova is
arresting the leaders of the opposition. Including, Mr. President,
the leaders of the Engineers' and Technicians' Association who have
joined them. This rebellion will be over within the hour."
Hamner stared at the
man. "You fool! You'll have every technician in the city joining
the Freedom Party gang! And the techs control the power plants, our
last influence over the crowd. You bloody damned fool!"
Bradford spoke with
exaggerated politeness. "I thought you would be pleased, George,
to see the rebellion end so easily. Naturally I've sent men to secure
the power plants. Ah, listen."
The crowd outside
wasn't chanting anymore. There was a confused babble, then a welling
of sound that turned ugly. No coherent words reached them, only the
ugly, angry roars. Then there was a rapid fusillade of shots.
"My God!"
President Budreau stared wildly in confusion. "What's happening?
Who are they shooting at? Have you started open war?"
"It takes stern
measures, Mr. President," Bradford said. "Perhaps too stern
for you?" He shook his head slightly. "The time has come
for harsh measures, Mr. President. Hadley cannot be governed by
weak-willed men. Our future belongs to those who have the will to
grasp it!"
George Hamner turned
toward the door. Before he could reach it, Bradford called to him.
"Please, George." His voice was filled with concern. "I'm
afraid you can't leave just yet. It wouldn't be safe for you. I took
the liberty of ordering Colonel Cordova's men to, uh, guard this room
while my troops restore order."
An uneasy quiet had
settled on the Stadium, and they waited for a long time. Then there
were screams and more shots.
The sounds moved
closer, as if they were outside the Stadium as well as in it.
Bradford frowned, but no one said anything. They waited for what
seemed a lifetime as the firing continued. Guns, shouts, screams,
sirens, and alarms - those and more, all in confusion.
The door burst open.
Cordova came in. He now wore the insignia of a full colonel. He
looked around the room until he found Bradford. "Sir, could you
come outside a moment, please?"
"You will make
your report to the Cabinet," President Budreau ordered. Cordova
glanced at Bradford. "Now, sir."
Cordova still looked
to Bradford. The Vice President nodded slightly.
"Very well,
sir," the young officer said. "As directed by the Vice
President, elements of the Fourth Battalion proceeded to the Stadium
and arrested some fifty leaders of the so-called constitutional
convention.
"Our plan was
to enter quickly and take the men out through the Presidential box
and into the Palace. However, when we attempted to make the arrests
we were opposed by armed men, many in the uniforms of household
guards. We were told there were no weapons in the Stadium, but this
was in error.
"The crowd
overpowered my officers and released their prisoners. When we
attempted to recover them, we were attacked by the mob and forced to
fight our way out of the Stadium."
"Good Lord,"
Budreau sighed. "How many hurt?"
"The power
plants! Did you secure them?" Hamner demanded.
Cordova looked
miserable. "No, sir. My men were not admitted. A council of
technicians and engineers holds the power plants, and they threaten
to destroy them if we attempt forcible entry. We have tried to seal
them off from outside support, but I don't think we can keep order
with only my battalion. We will need all the constabulary army to - "
"Idiot."
Hamner clutched at his left fist with his right, and squeezed until
it hurt. A council of technicians. I'll know most of them. My
friends. Or they used to be. Will any of them trust me now? At least
Bradford didn't control the fusion plants.
"What is the
current status outside?" President Budreau demanded. They could
still hear firing in the streets.
"Uh, there's a
mob barricaded in the market, and another in the theater across from
the Palace, sir. My troops are trying to dislodge them."
Cordova's voice was apologetic.
"Trying. I take
it they aren't likely to succeed." Budreau rose and went to the
anteroom door. "Colonel Falkenberg?" he called.
"Yes, sir?"
Falkenberg entered the room as the President beckoned.
"Colonel, are
you familiar with the situation outside?"
"Yes, Mr.
President."
"Damn it, man,
can you do something?"
"What does the
President suggest I do?" Falkenberg looked at the Cabinet
members. "For three months we have attempted to preserve order
in this city. We were not able to do so even with the cooperation of
the technicians."
"It wasn't my
fault - " Lieutenant Colonel Cordova began.
"I did not
invite you to speak." Falkenberg's lips were set in a grim line.
"Gentlemen, you now have open rebellion and simultaneously have
alienated one of the most powerful blocs within your Party. We no
longer control either the power plants or the food processing
centers. I repeat, what does the President suggest I do?"
Budreau nodded. "A
fair enough criticism."
He was interrupted
by Bradford. "Drive that mob off the streets! Use those precious
troops of yours to fight, that's what you're here for."
"Certainly,"
Falkenberg said. "Will the President sign a proclamation of
martial law?"
Budreau nodded
reluctantly. "I suppose I have to."
"Very well,"
Falkenberg said.
Hamner looked up
suddenly. What had he detected in Falkenberg's voice and manner?
Something important?
"It is standard
for politicians to get themselves into a situation that only the
military can get them out of. It is also standard for them to blame
the military afterwards," Falkenberg said. "I am willing to
accept responsibility for enforcing martial law, but I must have
command of all government forces. I will not attempt to restore order
when some of the troops are not responsive to my policies."
"No!"
Bradford leaped to his feet. The chair crashed to the floor behind
him. "I see what you're doing! You're against me too! That's why
it was never time to move, never time for me to be President, you
want control of this planet for yourself! Well, you won't get away
with it, you cheap dictator. Cordova, arrest that man!"
Cordova licked his
lips and looked at Falkenberg. Both soldiers were armed. Cordova
decided not to chance it. "Lieutenant Hargreave!" he
called. The door to the anteroom opened wide.
No one came in.
"Hargreave!" Cordova shouted again. He put his hand on the
pistol bolstered at his belt. "You're under arrest, Colonel
Falkenberg."
"Indeed?"
"This is
absurd," Budreau shouted. "Colonel Cordova, take your hand
off that weapon! I will not have my Cabinet meeting turned into a
farce."
For a moment nothing
happened. The room was very still, and Cordova looked from Budreau to
Bradford, wondering what to do now.
Then Bradford faced
the President. "You too, old man? Arrest Mr. Budreau as well,
Colonel Cordova. As for you, Mr. Traitor George Hamner, you'll get
what's coming to you. I have men all through this Palace. I knew I
might have to do this."
"You knew -
what is this, Ernest?" President Budreau seemed bewildered, and
his voice was plaintive. "What are you doing?"
"Oh, shut up,
old man," Bradford snarled. "I suppose you'll have to be
shot as well."
"I think we
have heard enough," Falkenberg said distinctly. His voice rang
through the room although he hadn't shouted. "And I refuse to be
arrested."
"Kill him!"
Bradford shouted. He reached under his tunic.
Cordova drew his
pistol. It had not cleared the holster when there were shots from the
doorway. Their sharp barks filled the room, and Hamner's ears rang
from the muzzle blast.
Bradford spun toward
the door with a surprised look. Then his eyes glazed and he slid to
the floor, the half-smile still on his lips. There were more shots
and the crash of automatic weapons, and Cordova was flung against the
wall of the council chamber. He was held there by the smashing
bullets. Bright red blotches spurted across his uniform.
Sergeant Major
Calvin came into the room with three Marines in battle dress, leather
over bulging body armor. Their helmets were dull in the bright
blue-tinted sunlight streaming through the chamber's windows.
Falkenberg nodded
and holstered his pistol. "All secure, Sergeant Major?"
"Sir!"
Falkenberg nodded
again. "To quote Mr. Bradford, I took the liberty of securing
the corridors, Mr. President. Now, sir, if you will issue that
proclamation, I'll see to the situation in the streets outside.
Sergeant Major."
"Sir!"
"Do you have
the proclamation of martial law that Captain Fast drew up?"
"Sir."
Calvin removed a rolled document from a pocket of his leather tunic.
Falkenberg took it and laid it on the table in front of President
Budreau.
"But - "
Budreau's tone was hopeless. "All right. Not that there's much
chance." He looked at Bradford's body and shuddered. "He
was ready to kill me." Budreau muttered. The President seemed
confused. Too much had happened, and there was too much to do.
The battle sounds
outside were louder, and the council room was filled with the sharp
copper odor of fresh blood. Budreau drew the parchment toward himself
and glanced at it, then took out a pen from his pocket.
He scrawled his
signature across it and handed it to Hamner to witness.
"You'd better
speak to the President's Guard," Falkenberg said. "They
won't know what to do."
"Aren't you
going to use them in the street fight?" Hamner asked.
Falkenberg shook his
head. "I doubt if they'd fight. They have too many friends among
the rebels. They'll protect the Palace, but they won't be reliable
for anything else."
"Have we got a
chance?" Hamner asked.
Budreau looked up
from his reverie at the head of the table. "Yes. Have we?"
"Possibly,"
Falkenberg said. "Depends on how good the people we're fighting
are. If their commander is half as good as I think he is, we won't
win this battle."
XI
"GODDAMN it, we
won't do it!" Lieutenant Martin Latham stared in horror at
Captain Fast. "That market's a death trap. These men didn't join
to attack across open streets against rioters in safe positions - "
"No. You joined
to be glorified police," Captain Fast said calmly. "Now
you've let things get out of hand. Who better to put them right
again?"
"The Fourth
Battalion takes orders from Colonel Cordova, not you." Latham
looked around for support. Several squads of the Fourth were within
hearing, and he felt reassured.
They stood in a deep
indentation of the Palace wall. Just outside and around the corner of
the indentation they could hear sporadic firing as the other units of
the regiment kept the rebels occupied. Latham felt safe here, but out
there -
"No," he
repeated. "It's suicide."
"So is refusal
to obey orders," Amos Fast said quietly. "Don't look around
and don't raise your voice. Now, glance behind me at the Palace
walls."
Latham saw them. A
flash from a gun barrel; blurs as leather-clad figures settled in on
the walls and in the windows overlooking the niche.
"If you don't
make the attack, you will be disarmed and tried for cowardice in the
face of the enemy," Fast said quietly. "There can be only
one outcome of that trial. And only one penalty. You're better off
making the assault. We'll support you in that."
"Why are you
doing this?" Martin Latham demanded.
"You caused the
problem," Fast said. "Now get ready. When you've entered
the market square the rest of the outfit will move up in support."
The assault was
successful, but it cost the Fourth heavily. After that came another
series of fierce attacks. When they were finished the rioters had
been driven from the immediate area of the Palace, but Falkenberg's
regiment paid for every meter gained.
Whenever they took a
building, the enemy left it blazing. When the regiment trapped one
large group of rebels, Falkenberg was forced to abandon the assault
to aid in evacuating a hospital that the enemy put to the torch.
Within three hours, fires were raging all around the Palace.
There was no one in
the council chamber with Budreau and Hamner. The bodies had been
removed, and the floor mopped, but it seemed to George Hamner that
the room would always smell of death; and he could not keep his eyes
from straying from time to time, from staring at the neat line of
holes stitched at chest height along the rich wood paneling.
Falkenberg came in.
"Your family is safe, Mr. Hamner." He turned to the
President. "Ready to report, sir."
Budreau looked up
with haunted eyes. The sound of gunfire was faint, but still audible.
"They have good
leaders," Falkenberg reported. "When they left the Stadium
they went immediately to the police barracks. They took the weapons
and distributed them to their allies, after butchering the police."
"They murdered
- "
"Certainly,"
Falkenberg said. "They wanted the police building as a fortress.
And we are not fighting a mere mob out there, Mr. President. We have
repeatedly run against well-armed men with training. Household
forces. I will attempt another assault in the morning, but for now,
Mr. President, we don't hold much more than a kilometer around the
Palace."
The fires burned all
night, but there was little fighting. The regiment held the Palace,
with bivouac in the courtyard; and if anyone questioned why the
Fourth was encamped in the center of the courtyard with other troops
all around them, they did so silently.
Lieutenant Martin
Latham might have had an answer for any such questioner, but he lay
under Hadley's flag in the honor hall outside the hospital.
In the morning the
assaults began again. The regiment moved out in thin streams,
infiltrating weak spots, bypassing strong, until it had cleared a
large area outside the Palace again. Then it came against another
well-fortified position.
An hour later the
regiment was heavily engaged against rooftop snipers, barricaded
streets, and everywhere burning buildings. Maniples and squads
attempted to get through and into the buildings beyond but were
turned back.
The Fourth was
decimated in repeated assaults against the barricades.
George Hamner had
come with Falkenberg and stood in the field headquarters. He watched
another platoon assault of the Fourth beaten back. "They're
pretty good men," he mused.
"They'll do.
Now," Falkenberg said.
"But you've
used them up pretty fast."
"Not entirely
by choice," Falkenberg said. "The President has ordered me
to break the enemy resistance. That squanders soldiers. I'd as soon
use the Fourth as blunt the fighting edge of the rest of the
regiment."
"But we're not
getting anywhere."
"No. The
opposition's too good, and there are too many of them. We can't get
them concentrated for a set battle, and when we do catch them they
set fire to part of the city and retreat under cover of the flames."
A communications
corporal beckoned urgently, and Falkenberg went to the low table with
its array of electronics. He took the offered earphone and listened,
then raised a mike.
"Fall back to
the Palace," Falkenberg ordered.
"You're
retreating?" Hamner demanded.
Falkenberg shrugged.
"I have no choice. I can't hold this thin a perimeter, and I
have only two battalions. Plus what's left of the Fourth."
"Where's the
Third? The Progressive partisans? My people?"
"Out at the
power plants and food centers," Falkenberg answered. "We
can't break in without giving the techs time to wreck the place, but
we can keep any more rebels from getting in. The Third isn't as well
trained as the rest of the regiment - and besides, the techs may
trust them."
They walked back
through burned-out streets. The sounds of fighting followed them as
the regiment retreated. Civilian workers fought the fires and cared
for the wounded and dead.
Hopeless, George
Hamner thought. Hopeless. I don't know why I thought Falkenberg would
pull some kind of rabbit out of the hat once Bradford was gone. What
could he do? What can anyone do?
Worried-looking
Presidential Guards let them into the Palace and swung the heavy
doors shut behind them. The guards held the Palace, but would not go
outside.
President Budreau
was in his ornate office with Lieutenant Banners. "I was going
to send for you," Budreau said. "We can't win this, can
we?"
"Not the way
it's going," Falkenberg answered. Hamner nodded agreement.
Budreau nodded
rapidly, as if to himself. His face was a mask of lost hopes. "That's
what I thought. Pull your men back to barracks, Colonel. I'm going to
surrender."
"But you
can't," George protested. "Everything we've dreamed of ...
You'll doom Hadley. The Freedom Party can't govern."
"Precisely. And
you see it too, don't you, George? How much governing are we doing?
Before it came to an open break, perhaps we had a chance. Not now.
Bring your men back to the Palace, Colonel Falkenberg. Or are you
going to refuse?"
"No, sir. The
men are retreating already. They'll be here in half an hour."
Budreau sighed
loudly. "I told you the military answer wouldn't work here,
Falkenberg."
"We might have
accomplished something in the past months if we'd been given the
chance."
"You might."
The President was too tired to argue. "But putting the blame on
poor Ernie won't help. He must have been insane.
"But this isn't
three months ago, Colonel. It's not even yesterday. I might have
reached a compromise before the fighting started, but I didn't, and
you've lost. You're not doing much besides burning down the city ...
at least I can spare Hadley that. Banners, go tell the Freedom Party
leaders I can't take anymore."
The Guard officer
saluted and left, his face an unreadable mask. Budreau watched him
leave the office. His eyes focused far beyond the walls with their
Earth decorations.
"So you're
resigning," Falkenberg said slowly.
Budreau nodded.
"Have you
resigned, sir?" Falkenberg demanded.
"Yes, blast
you. Banners has my resignation."
"And what will
you do now?" George Hamner asked. His voice held both contempt
and amazement. He had always admired and respected Budreau. And now
what had Hadley's great leader left them?
"Banners has
promised to get me out of here," Budreau said. "He has a
boat in the harbor. We'll sail up the coast and land, then go inland
to the mines. There'll be a starship there next week, and I can get
out on that with my family. You'd better come with me, George."
The President put both hands over his face, then looked up. "There's
a lot of relief in giving in, did you know? What will you do, Colonel
Falkenberg?"
"We'll manage.
There are plenty of boats in the harbor if we need one. But it is
very likely that the new government will need trained soldiers."
"The perfect
mercenary," Budreau said with contempt. He sighed, then sent his
eyes searching around the office, lingering on familiar objects.
"It's a relief. I don't have to decide things anymore." He
stood and his shoulders were no longer stooped. "I'll get the
family. You'd better be moving too, George."
"I'll be along,
sir. Don't wait for us. As the Colonel says, there are plenty of
boats." He waited until Budreau had left the office, then turned
to Falkenberg. "All right, what now?"
"Now we do what
we came here to do," Falkenberg said. He went to the President's
desk and examined the phones, but rejected them for a pocket
communicator. He lifted it and spoke at length.
"Just what are
you doing?" Hamner demanded.
"You're not
president yet," Falkenberg said. "You won't be until you're
sworn in, and that won't happen until I've finished. And there's
nobody to accept your resignation, either."
"What the
hell?" Hamner looked closely at Falkenberg, but he could not
read the officer's expression. "You do have an idea. Let's hear
it."
"You're not
president yet," Falkenberg said. "Under Budreau's
proclamation of martial law, I am to take whatever actions I think
are required to restore order in Refuge. That order is valid until a
new President removes it. And at the moment there's no President."
"But Budreau's
surrendered! The Freedom Party will elect a President."
"Under Hadley's
constitution only the Senate and Assembly in joint session can alter
the order of succession. They're scattered across the city and their
meeting chambers have been burned."
Sergeant Major
Calvin and several of Falkenberg's aides came to the door. They
stood, waiting.
"I'm playing
guardhouse lawyer," Falkenberg said. "But President Budreau
doesn't have the authority to appoint a new president. With Bradford
dead, you're in charge here, but not until you appear before a
magistrate and take the oath of office."
"This doesn't
make sense," Hamner protested. "How long do you think you
can stay in control here, anyway?" "As long as I have to."
Falkenberg turned to an aide. "Corporal, I want Mr. Hamner to
stay with me and you with him. You will treat him with respect, but
he goes nowhere and sees no one without my permission. Understood?"
"Sir!"
"And now what?"
Hamner asked. "And now we wait," John Falkenberg said
softly. "But not too long ..."
George Hamner sat in
the council chambers with his back to the stained and punctured wall.
He tried to forget those stains, but he couldn't.
Falkenberg was
across from him, and his aides sat at the far end of the table.
Communications gear had been spread across one side table, but there
was no situation map; Falkenberg had not moved his command post here.
From time to time
officers brought him battle reports, but Falkenberg hardly listened
to them. However, when one of the aides reported that Dr. Whitlock
was calling, Falkenberg took the earphones immediately.
George couldn't hear
what Whitlock was saying and Falkenberg's end of the conversation
consisted of monosyllables. The only thing George was sure of was
that Falkenberg was very interested in what his political agent was
doing.
The regiment had
fought its way back to the Palace and was now in the courtyard. The
Palace entrances were held by the Presidential Guard, and the
fighting had stopped. The rebels left the guardsmen alone, and an
uneasy truce settled across the city of Refuge.
"They're going
into the Stadium, sir," Captain Fast reported. "That cheer
you heard was when Banners gave 'em the President's resignation."
"I see. Thank
you, Captain." Falkenberg motioned for more coffee. He offered a
cup to George, but the Vice President didn't want any.
"How long does
this go on?" George demanded.
"Not much
longer. Hear them cheering?"
They sat for another
hour, Falkenberg with outward calm, Hamner with growing tension. Then
Dr. Whitlock came to the council room.
The tall civilian
looked at Falkenberg and Hamner, then sat easily in the President's
chair. "Don't reckon I'll have another chance to sit in the seat
of the mighty," he grinned.
"But what is
happening?" Hamner demanded.
Whitlock shrugged.
"It's 'bout like Colonel Falkenberg figured. Mob's moved right
into the Stadium. Nobody wants to be left out now they think they've
won. They've rounded up what senators they could find and now they're
fixin' to elect themselves a new president."
"But that
election won't be valid," Hamner said.
"No, suh, but
that don't seem to slow 'em down a bit. They figure they won the
right, I guess. And the Guard has already said they're goin' to honor
the people's choice." Whitlock smiled ironically.
"How many of my
technicians are out there in that mob?" Hamner asked. "They'd
listen to me, I know they would."
"They might at
that," Whitlock said. "But there's not so many as there
used to be. Most of 'em couldn't stomach the burnin' and looting.
Still, there's a fair number."
"Can you get
them out?" Falkenberg asked.
"Doin' that
right now," Whitlock grinned. "One reason I come up here
was to get Mr. Hamner to help with that. I got my people goin' round
tellin' the technicians they already got Mr. Hamner as President, so
why they want somebody else? It's workin' too, but a few words from
their leader here might help."
"Right,"
Falkenberg said. "Well, sir?"
"I don't know
what to say," George protested.
Falkenberg went to
the wall control panel. "Mr. Vice President, I can't give you
orders, but I'd suggest you simply make a few promises. Tell them you
will shortly assume command, and that things will be different. Then
order them to go home or face charges as rebels. Or ask them to go
home as a favor to you. Whatever you think will work."
It wasn't much of a
speech, and from the roar outside the crowd did not hear much of it
anyway. George promised amnesty for anyone who left the Stadium and
tried to appeal to the Progressives who were caught up in the
rebellion. When he put down the microphone, Falkenberg seemed
pleased.
"Half an hour,
Dr. Whitlock?" Falkenberg asked.
"About that,"
the historian agreed. "All that's leavin will be gone by then."
"Let's go, Mr.
President." Falkenberg was insistent.
"Where?"
Hamner asked.
"To see the end
of this. Do you want to watch, or would you rather join your family?
You can go anywhere you like except to a magistrate - or to someone
who might accept your resignation."
"Colonel, this
is ridiculous! You can't force me to be president, and I don't
understand what's going on."
Falkenberg's smile
was grim. "Nor do I want you to understand. Yet. You'll have
enough trouble living with yourself as it is. Let's go."
George Hamner
followed. His throat was dry, and his guts felt as if they'd knotted
themselves into a tight ball.
The First and Second
Battalions were assembled in the Palace courtyard. The men stood in
ranks. Their synthileather battledress was stained with dirt and
smoke from the street fighting. Armor bulged under their uniforms.
The men were silent,
and Hamner thought they might have been carved from stone.
"Follow me,"
Falkenberg ordered. He led the way to the Stadium entrance.
Lieutenant Banners stood in the doorway.
"Halt,"
Banners commanded.
"Really,
Lieutenant? Would you fight my troops?" Falkenberg indicated the
grim lines behind him.
Lieutenant Banners
gulped. Hamner thought the Guard officer looked very young. "No,
sir," Banners protested. "But we have barred the doors. The
emergency meeting of the Assembly and Senate is electing a new
President out there, and we will not permit your mercenaries to
interfere."
"They have not
elected anyone," Falkenberg said.
"No, sir, but
when they do, the Guard will be under his command."
"I have orders
from Vice President Hamner to arrest the leaders of the rebellion,
and a valid proclamation of martial law," Falkenberg insisted.
"I'm sorry,
sir." Banners seemed to mean it. "Our Council of officers
has decided that President Budreau's surrender is valid. We intend to
honor it."
"I see,"
Falkenberg withdrew. He motioned to his aides, and Hamner joined the
group. No one objected.
"Hadn't
expected this," Falkenberg said. "It would take a week to
fight through those guardrooms." He thought for a moment. "Give
me your keys," he snapped at Hamner.
Bewildered, George
took them out. Falkenberg grinned widely. "There's another way
into there, you know. Major Savage! Take G and H Companies of Second
Battalion to secure the Stadium exits. Dig yourselves in and set up
all weapons. Arrest anyone who comes out."
"Sir."
"Dig in pretty
good, Jeremy. They may be coming out fighting. But I don't expect
them to be well organized."
"Do we fire on
armed men?"
"Without
warning, Major. Without warning. Sergeant Major, bring the rest of
the troops with me. Major, you'll have twenty minutes."
Falkenberg led his
troops across the courtyard to the tunnel entrance and used Hamner's
keys to unlock the doors. Falkenberg ignored him. He led the troops
down the stairway and across, under the field.
George Hamner stayed
close to Falkenberg. He could hear the long column of armed men tramp
behind him. They moved up stairways on the other side, marching
briskly until George was panting. The men didn't seem to notice.
Gravity difference, Hamner thought. And training.
They reached the top
and deployed along the passageways. Falkenberg stationed men at each
exit and came back to the center doors. Then he waited. The tension
grew.
"But - "
Falkenberg shook his
head. His look demanded silence. He stood, waiting, while the seconds
ticked past.
"MOVE OUT!"
Falkenberg commanded.
The doors burst
open. The armed troopers moved quickly across the top of the Stadium.
Most of the mob was below, and a few unarmed men were struck down
when they tried to oppose the regiment. Rifle butts swung, then there
was a moment of calm. Falkenberg took a speaker from his corporal
attendant.
"ATTENTION.
ATTENTION. YOU ARE UNDER ARREST BY THE AUTHORITY OF THE MARTIAL LAW
PROCLAMATION OF PRESIDENT BUDREAU. LAY DOWN ALL WEAPONS AND YOU WILL
NOT BE HARMED. IF YOU RESIST, YOU WILL BE KILLED."
There was a moment
of silence, then shouts as the mob realized what Falkenberg had said.
Some laughed. Then shots came from the field and the lower seats of
the Stadium. Hamner heard the flat snap of a bullet as it rushed past
his ear. Then he heard the crack of the rifle.
One of the leaders
on the field below had a speaker. He shouted to the others. "ATTACK
THEM! THERE AREN'T MORE THAN A THOUSAND OF THEM, WE'RE THIRTY
THOUSAND STRONG. ATTACK, KILL THEM!" There were more shots. Some
of Falkenberg's men fell. The others stood immobile, waiting for
orders.
Falkenberg raised
the speaker again. "PREPARE FOR VOLLEY FIRE. MAKE READY. TAKE
AIM. IN VOLLEY, FIRE!"
Seven hundred rifles
crashed as one.
"FIRE!"
Someone screamed, a long drawn-out cry, a plea without words.
"FIRE!"
The line of men
clambering up the seats toward them wavered and broke. Men screamed,
some pushed back, dove under seats, tried to hide behind their
friends, tried to get anywhere but under the unwavering muzzles of
the rifles.
"FIRE!"
It was like one
shot, very loud, lasting far longer than a rifle shot ought to, but
it was impossible to hear individual weapons. "FIRE!"
There were more
screams from below. "In the name of God - "
"THE
FORTY-SECOND WILL ADVANCE. FIX BAYONETS. FORWARD, MOVE. FIRE. FIRE AT
WILL."
Now there was a
continuous crackle of weapons. The leather-clad lines moved forward
and down, over the stadium seats, flowing down inexorably toward the
press below on the field.
"Sergeant
Major!"
"SIR!"
"Marksmen and
experts will fall out and take station. They will fire on all armed
men."
"Sir!"
Calvin spoke into
his communicator. Men dropped out of each section and took position
behind seats. They began to fire, carefully but rapidly. Anyone below
who raised a weapon died. The regiment advanced onward.
Hamner was sick. The
screams of wounded could be heard everywhere. God, make it stop, make
it stop, he prayed.
"GRENADIERS
WILL PREPARE TO THROW." Falkenberg's voice boomed from the
speaker. "THROW!"
A hundred grenades
arched out from the advancing line. They fell into the milling crowds
below. The muffled explosions were masked by screams of terror.
"IN VOLLEY,
FIRE!"
The regiment
advanced until it made contact with the mob. There was a brief
struggle. Rifles fired, and bayonets flashed red. The line halted but
momentarily. Then it moved on, leaving behind a ghastly trail.
Men and women jammed
in the Stadium exits. Others frantically tried to get out, clambering
over the fallen, tearing women out of their way to push past,
trampling each other in their scramble to escape. There was a rattle
of gunfire from outside. Those in the gates recoiled, to be crushed
beneath others trying to get out.
"You won't even
let them out!" Hamner screamed at Falkenberg.
"Not armed. And
not to escape." The Colonel's face was hard and cold, the eyes
narrowed to slits. He watched the slaughter impassively, looking at
the entire scene without expression.
"Are you going
to kill them all?"
"All who
resist."
"But they don't
deserve this!" George Hamner felt his voice breaking. "They
don't!"
"No one does,
George. SERGEANT MAJOR!"
"SIR!"
"Half the
marksmen may concentrate on the leaders now."
"SIR!"
Calvin spoke quietly into his command set. The snipers concentrated
their fire on the Presidential box across from them. Centurions ran
up and down the line of hidden troops, pointing out targets. The
marksmen kept up a steady fire.
The leather lines of
armored men advanced inexorably. They had almost reached the lower
tier of seats. There was less firing now, but the scarlet-painted
bayonets flashed in the afternoon sun.
Another section fell
out of line and moved to guard a tiny number of prisoners at the end
of the Stadium. The rest of the line moved on, advancing over seats
made slick with blood.
When the regiment
reached ground level their progress was slower. There was little
opposition, but the sheer mass of people in front of them held up the
troopers. There were a few pockets of active resistance, and flying
squads rushed there to reinforce the line. More grenades were thrown.
Falkenberg watched the battle calmly, and seldom spoke into his
communicator. Below, more men died.
A company of
troopers formed and rushed up a stairway on the opposite side of the
Stadium. They fanned out across the top. Then their rifles leveled
and crashed in another terrible series of volleys.
Suddenly it was
over. There was no opposition. There were only screaming crowds. Men
threw away weapons to run with their hands in the air. Others fell to
their knees to beg for their lives. There was one final volley, then
a deathly stillness fell over the Stadium.
But it wasn't quiet,
Hamner discovered. The guns were silent, men no longer shouted
orders, but there was sound. There were screams from the wounded.
There were pleas for help, whimpers, a racking cough that went on and
on as someone tried to clear punctured lungs.
Falkenberg nodded
grimly. "Now we can find a magistrate, Mr. President. Now."
"I - Oh my
God!" Hamner stood at the top of the Stadium. He clutched a
column to steady his weakened legs. The scene below seemed unreal.
There was too much blood, rivers of blood, blood cascading down the
steps, blood pouring down stairwells to soak the grassy field below.
"It's over,"
Falkenberg said gently. "For all of us. The regiment will be
leaving as soon as you're properly in command. You shouldn't have any
trouble with your power plants. Your technicians will trust you now
that Bradford's gone. And without their leaders, the city people
won't resist.
"You can ship
as many as you have to out to the interior. Disperse them among the
loyalists where they won't do you any harm. That amnesty of yours -
it's only a suggestion, but I'd renew it."
Hamner turned dazed
eyes toward Falkenberg. "Yes. There's been too much slaughter
today. Who are you, Falkenberg?"
"A mercenary
soldier, Mr. President. Nothing more."
"But - then who
are you working for?"
"That's the
question nobody asked before. Grand Admiral Lermontov."
"Lermontov? But
you were drummed out of the CO-Dominium! You mean that you were hired
- by the admiral? As a mercenary?"
"More or less."
Falkenberg nodded coldly. "The Fleet's a little sick of being
used to mess up people's lives without having a chance to - to leave
things in working order."
"And now you're
leaving?"
"Yes. We
couldn't stay here, George. Nobody is going to forget today. You
couldn't keep us on and build a government that works. I'll take
First and Second Battalions, and what's left of the Fourth. There's
more work for us."
"And the
others?"
"Third will
stay on to help you," Falkenberg said. "We put all the
married locals, the solid people, in Third, and sent it off to the
power plants. They weren't involved in the fighting." He looked
across the Stadium, then back to Hamner. "Blame it all on us,
George. You weren't in command. You can say Bradford ordered this
slaughter and killed himself in remorse. People will want to believe
that. They'll want to think somebody was punished for - for this."
He waved toward the field below. A child was sobbing out there
somewhere.
"It had to be
done," Falkenberg insisted. "Didn't it? There was no way
out, nothing you could do to keep civilization. ... Dr. Whitlock
estimated a third of the population would die when things collapsed.
Fleet Intelligence put it higher than that. Now you have a chance."
Falkenberg was
speaking rapidly, and George wondered whom he was trying to convince.
"Move them
out," Falkenberg said. "Move them out while they're still
dazed. You won't need much help for that. They won't resist now. And
we got the railroads running for you. Use the railroads and ship
people out to the farms. It'll be rough with no preparation, but it's
a long time until winter - "
"I know what to
do," Hamner interrupted. He leaned against the column, and
seemed to gather new strength from the thought. Yes. I do know what
to do. Now. "I've known all along what had to be done. Now we
can get to it. We won't thank you for it, but - you've saved a whole
world, John."
Falkenberg looked at
him grimly, then pointed to the bodies below. "Damn you, don't
say that!" he shouted. His voice was almost shrill. "I
haven't saved anything. All a soldier can do is buy time. I haven't
saved Hadley. You have to do that. God help you if you don't."
XII
Crofton's
Encyclopedia of Contemporary History and Social Issues (2nd Edition)
MERCENARY FORCES
PERHAPS THE MOST
disturbing development arising from CoDominium withdrawal from most
distant colony worlds (see Independence Movements) has been the rapid
growth of purely mercenary military units. The trend was predictable
and perhaps inevitable, although the extent has exceeded
expectations.
Many of the former
colony worlds do not have planetary governments. Consequently, these
new nations do not possess sufficient population or industrial
resources to maintain large and effective national military forces.
The disbanding of numerous CoDominium Marine units left a surplus of
trained soldiers without employment, and it was inevitable that some
of them would band together into mercenary units.
The colony
governments are thus faced with a cruel and impossible dilemma. Faced
with mercenary troops specializing in violence, they have had little
choice but to reply in kind. A few colonies have broken this cycle by
creating their own national armies, but have then been unable to pay
for them.
Thus, in addition to
the purely private mercenary organizations such as Falkenberg's
Mercenary Legion, there are now national forces hired out to reduce
expenses to their parent governments. A few former colonies have
found this practice so lucrative that the export of mercenaries has
become their principal source of income, and the recruiting and
training of soldiers their major industry.
The CoDominium Grand
Senate has attempted to maintain its presence in the former colonial
areas through promulgation of the so-called Laws of War (q.v.), which
purport to regulate the weapons and tactics mercenary units may
employ. Enforcement of these regulations is sporadic. When the Senate
orders Fleet intervention to enforce the Laws of War the suspicion
inevitably arises that other CoDominium interests are at stake, or
that one or more Senators have undisclosed reasons for their
interest.
Mercenary units
generally draw their recruits from the same sources as the CoDominium
Marines, and training stresses loyalty to comrades and commanders
rather than to any government. The extent to which mercenary
commanders have successfully separated their troops from all normal
social intercourse is both surprising and alarming.
The best-known
mercenary forces are described in separate articles. See: Covenant;
Friedland; Xanadu; Falkenbergs Mercenary Legion; Nouveau Legion
Etran-gere; Katanga Gendarmerie; Moolman's Commandos . . .
FALKENBERG'S MERCENARY
LEGION
Purely private
military organization formed from the former Forty-second CoDominium
Line Marines under Colonel John Christian Falkenberg III. Falkenberg
was cashiered from the CoDominium Fleet under questionable
circumstances, and his regiment disbanded shortly thereafter. A large
proportion of former Forty-second officers and men chose to remain
with Falkenberg.
Falkenberg's Legion
appears to have been first employed by the government of the then
newly independent former colony of Hadley (q.v.) for suppression of
civil disturbances. There have been numerous complaints that
excessive violence was used by both sides in the unsuccessful
rebellion following CoDominium withdrawal, but the government of
Hadley has expressed satisfaction with Falkenberg's efforts there.
Following its
employment on Hadley, Falkenberg's Legion took part in numerous small
wars of defense and conquest on at least five planets, and in the
process gained a reputation as one of the best-trained and most
effective small military units in existence.
It was then engaged
by the CoDominium Governor on the CD prison planet of Tanith.
This latter
employment caused great controversy in the Grand Senate, as Tanith
remains under CD control. However, Grand Admiral Lermontov pointed
out that his budget did not permit his stationing regular Marine
forces on Tanith owing to other commitments mandated by the Grand
Senate; after lengthy debate the employment was approved as an
alternative to raising a new regiment of CD Marines.
At last report
Falkenberg's Legion remains on Tanith. Its contract with the Governor
there is said to have expired.
Tanith's bright
image had replaced Earth's on Grand Admiral Lermontov's view screen.
The planet might have been Earth: it had bright clouds obscuring the
outlines of land and sea, and they swirled in typical cyclonic
patterns.
A closer look showed
differences. The sun was yellow: Tanith's star was not as hot as Sol,
but Tanith was closer to it. There were fewer mountains, and more
swamplands steaming in the yellow-orange glare.
Despite its
miserable climate, Tanith was an important world. It was first and
foremost a convenient dumping ground for Earth's disinherited. There
was no better way to deal with criminals than to send them off to
hard - and useful - labor on another planet. Tanith received them
all: the rebels, the criminals, the malcontents, victims of
administrative hatred; all the refuse of a civilization that could no
longer afford misfits.
Tanith was also the
main source of borloi, which the World Pharmaceutical Society called
"the perfect intoxicating drug." Given large supplies of
borloi the lid could be kept on the Citizens in their Welfare
Islands. The happiness the drug induced was artificial, but it was
none the less real.
"And so I am
trading in drugs," Lermontov told his visitor. "It is
hardly what I expected when I became Grand Admiral."
"I'm sorry,
Sergei." Grand Senator Martin Grant had aged; in ten years he
had come to look forty years older. "The fact is, though, you're
better off with Fleet ownership of some of the borloi plantations
than you are relying on what I can get for you out of the Senate."
Lermontov nodded in
disgust. "It must end, Martin. Somehow, somewhere, it must end.
I cannot keep a fighting service together on the proceeds of drug
sales - drugs grown by slaves! Soldiers do not make good
slavemasters."
Grant merely
shrugged.
"Yes, it is
easy to think, is it not?" The admiral shook his head in
disgust. "But there are vices natural to the soldier and the
sailor. We have those, in plenty, but they are not vices that corrupt
his ability as a fighting man. Slaving is a vice that corrupts
everything it touches."
"If you feel
that way, what can I say?" Martin Grant asked. "I can't
give you an alternative."
"And I cannot
let go," Lermontov said. He punched viciously at the console
controls and Tanith faded from the screen. Earth, bluer and to
Lermontov far more lovely, swam out of the momentary blackness. "They
are fools down there," Sergei Lermontov muttered. "And we
are no better. Martin, I ask myself again and again, why can we not
control - anything? Why are we caught like chips in a rushing stream?
Men can guide their destinies. I know that. So why are we so
helpless?"
"You don't ask
yourself more often than I do," Senator Grant said. His voice
was low and weary. "At least we still try. Hell, you've got more
power than I have. You've got the Fleet, and you've got the secret
funds you get from Tanith - Christ, Sergei, if you can't do
something with that - "
"I can urinate
on fires," Lermontov said. "And little else." He
shrugged. "So, if that is all I can do, then I will continue to
make water. Will you have a drink?"
"Thanks."
Lermontov went to
the sideboard and took out bottles. His conversations with Grand
Senator Grant were never heard by anyone else, not even his orderlies
who had been with him for years.
"Prosit."
"Prosit!"
They drank. Grant
took out a cigar. "By the way, Sergei, what are you going to do
with Falkenberg now that the trouble on Tanith is finished?"
Lermontov smiled
coldly. "I was hoping that you would have a solution to that. I
have no more funds - "
"The Tanith
money - "
"Needed
elsewhere, just to keep the Fleet together," Lermontov said
positively.
"Then
Falkenberg'll just have to find his own way. Shouldn't be any
problem, with his reputation," Grant said. "And even if it
is, he's got no more troubles than we have."
XIII
HEAT BEAT DOWN on
sodden fields. Two hours before the noon of Tanith's fifteen plus
hours of sunshine the day was already hot; but all of Tanith's days
are hot. Even in midwinter the jungle steams in late afternoon.
The skies above the
regiment's camp were yellow-gray. The ground sloped off to the west
into inevitable swamp, where Weem's Beasts snorted as they burrowed
deeper into protective mud. In the camp itself the air hung hot and
wet, heavy, with a thick smell of yeast and decay.
The regiment's camp
was an island of geometrical precision in the random tumble of
jungles and hilltops. Each yellow rammed-earth barrack was set in an
exact relationship with every other, each company set in line from
its centurion's hut at one end to the senior platoon sergeant's at
the other.
A wide street
separated Centurion's Row from the Company Officers Line, and beyond
that was the shorter Field Officers Line, the pyramid narrowing
inevitably until at its apex stood a single building where the
colonel lived. Other officers lived with their ladies, and married
enlisted men's quarters formed one side of the compound; but the
colonel lived alone.
The visitor stood
with the colonel to watch a mustering ceremony evolved in the days of
Queen Anne's England when regimental commanders were paid according
to the strength of their regiments, and the Queen's muster masters
had to determine that each man drawing pay could indeed pass muster -
or even existed.
The visitor was an
amateur historian and viewed the parade with wry humor. War had
changed and men no longer marched in rigid lines to deliver volleys
at word of command - but colonels were again paid according to the
forces they could bring into battle.
"Report!"
The adjutant's command carried easily across the open parade field to
the rigidly immobile blue and gold squares.
"First
Battalion, B Company on patrol. Battalion present or accounted for,
sir!"
"Second
Battalion present or accounted for, sir." "Third Battalion
present or accounted for, sir!"
"Fourth
Battalion, four men absent without leave, sir."
"How
embarrassing," the visitor said sotto voce. The colonel tried to
smile but made a bad job of it.
"Artillery
present or accounted for, sir!" "Scout Troop all present,
sir!" "Sappers all present, sir!"
"Weapons
Battalion, Aviation Troop on patrol. Battalion present or accounted
for, sir!"
"Headquarters
Company present or on guard, sir!"
The adjutant
returned each salute, then wheeled crisply to salute the colonel.
"Regiment has four men absent without leave, sir."
Colonel Falkenberg
returned the salute. "Take your post."
Captain Fast pivoted
and marched to his place. "Pass in review!"
"Sound off!"
The band played a
military march that must have been old in the twentieth century as
the regiment formed column to march around the field. As each company
reached the reviewing stand and men snapped their heads in unison,
guidons and banners lowered in salute, and officers and centurions
whirled sabers with flourishes.
The visitor nodded
to himself. No longer very appropriate. In the eighteenth century,
demonstrations of the men's ability to march in ranks, and of the
noncoms and officers to use a sword with skill, were relevant to
battle capabilities. Not now. Still, it made an impressive ceremony.
"Attention to
orders!" The sergeant major read from his clipboard. Promotions,
duty schedules, the daily activities of the regiment, while the
visitor sweated.
"Very
impressive, Colonel," he said. "Our Washingtonians couldn't
look that sharp on their best day."
John Christian
Falkenberg nodded coldly. "Implying that they mightn't be as
good in the field. Mr. Secretary? Would you like another kind of
demonstration?"
Howard Bannister
shrugged. "What would it prove, Colonel? You need employment
before your regiment goes to hell. I can't imagine chasing escapees
on the CoDominium prison planet has much attraction for good
soldiers."
"It doesn't.
When we first came things weren't that simple."
"I know that
too. The Forty-second was one of the best outfits of the CD Marine -
I've never understood why it was disbanded instead of one of the
others. I'm speaking of your present situation with your troops stuck
here without transport - surely you're not intending to make Tanith
your lifetime headquarters?"
Sergeant Major
Calvin finished the orders of the day and waited patiently for
instructions. Colonel Falkenberg studied his bright-uniformed men as
they stood rigidly in the blazing noon of Tanith. A faint smile might
have played across his face for a moment. There were few of the four
thousand whose names and histories he didn't know.
Lieutenant Farquhar
was a party hack forced on him when the Forty-second was hired to
police Hadley. He became a good officer and elected to ship out after
the action. Private Alcazar was a brooding giant with a raging
thirst, the slowest man in K Company, but he could lift five times
his own mass and hide in any terrain. Dozens, thousands of men, each
with his own strengths and weaknesses, adding up to a regiment of
mercenary soldiers with no chance of going home, and an unpleasant
future if they didn't get off Tanith.
"Sergeant
Major."
"Sir!"
"You will stay
with me and time the men. Trumpeter, sound Boots and Saddles, On Full
Kits, and Ready to Board Ship."
"Sir!" The
trumpeter was a grizzled veteran with corporal's stripes. He lifted
the gleaming instrument with its blue and gold tassels, and martial
notes poured across the parade ground. Before they died away the
orderly lines dissolved into masses of running men.
There was less
confusion than Howard Bannister had expected. It seemed an incredibly
short time before the first men fell back in. They came from their
barracks in small groups, some in each company, then more, a rush,
and finally knots of stragglers. Now in place of bright colors there
was the dull drab of synthetic leather bulging over Nemourlon body
armor. The bright polish was gone from the weapons. Dress caps were
replaced by bulging combat helmets, shining boots by softer leathers.
As the regiment formed, Bannister turned to the colonel.
"Why trumpets?
I'd think that's rather out of date."
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Would you prefer shouted orders? You must remember, Mr.
Secretary, mercenaries live in garrison as well as in combat.
Trumpets remind them that they're soldiers."
"I suppose."
"Time, Sergeant
Major," the adjutant demanded.
"Eleven
minutes, eighteen seconds, sir."
"Are you trying
to tell me the men are ready to ship out now?" Bannister asked.
His expression showed polite disbelief.
"It would take
longer to get the weapons and artillery battalion equipment together,
but the infantry could board ship right now."
"I find that
hard to believe - of course the men know this is only a drill."
"How would they
know that?"
Bannister laughed.
He was a stout man, dressed in expensive business clothes with cigar
ashes down the front. Some of the ash floated free when he laughed.
"Well, you and the sergeant major are still in parade uniform."
"Look behind
you," Falkenberg said.
Bannister turned.
Falkenberg's guards and trumpeter were still in their places, their
blue and gold dress contrasting wildly with the grim synthi-leathers
of the others who had formed up with them. "The headquarters
squad has our gear," Falkenberg explained. "Sergeant
Major."
"Sir!"
"Mr. Bannister
and I will inspect the troops."
"Sir!" As
Falkenberg and his visitor left the reviewing stand Calvin fell in
with the duty squad behind him.
"Pick a couple
at random," Falkenberg advised. "It's hot out here. Forty
degrees anyway."
Bannister was
thinking the same thing. "Yes. No point in being too hard on the
men. It must be unbearable in their armor."
"I wasn't
thinking of the men," Falkenberg said.
The Secretary for
War chose L Company of Third Battalion for review. The men all looked
alike, except for size. He looked for something to stand out - a
strap not buckled, something to indicate an individual difference -
but he found none. Bannister approached a scarred private who looked
forty years old. With regeneration therapy he might have been half
that again. "This one."
"Fall out,
Wiszorik!" Calvin ordered. "Lay out your kit."
"Sir!"
Private Wiszorik might have smiled thinly, but if he did Bannister
missed it. He swung the packframe easily off his shoulders and stood
it on the ground. The headquarters squad helped him lay out his nylon
shelter cloth, and Wiszorik emptied the pack, placing each item just
so.
Rifle: a New
Aberdeen seven-mm semi-automatic, with ten-shot clip and fifty-round
box magazine, both full and spotlessly clean like the rifle. A
bandolier of cartridges. Five grenades. Nylon belt with bayonets,
canteen, spoon, and stainless cup that served as a private's entire
mess kit. Great-cloak and poncho, string net underwear, layers of
clothing -
"You'll note
he's equipped for any climate," Falkenberg commented. "He'd
expect to be issued special gear for a non-Terran environment, but he
can live on any inhabitable world with what he's got."
"Yes."
Bannister watched interestedly. The pack hadn't seemed heavy, but
Wiszorik kept withdrawing gear from it. First aid kit, chemical
warfare protection drugs and equipment, concentrated field rations,
soup and beverage powders, a tiny gasoline-burning field stove -
"What's that?" Bannister asked. "Do all the men carry
them?"
"One to each
maniple, sir," Wiszorik answered.
"His share of
five men's community equipment," Falkenberg explained. "A
monitor, three privates, and a recruit make up the basic combat unit
of this outfit, and we try to keep the maniples self-sufficient."
More gear came from
the pack. Much of it was light alloys or plastic, but Bannister
wondered about the total weight. Trowel, tent pegs, nylon cordage, a
miniature cutting torch, more group equipment for field repairs to
both machinery and the woven Nemourion armor, night sights for the
rifle, a small plastic tube half a meter long and eight centimeters
in diameter - "And that?" Bannister asked.
"Anti-aircraft
rocket," Falkenberg told him. "Not effective against fast
jets, but it'll knock out a chopper ninety-five percent of the time.
Has some capability against tanks, too. We don't like the men too
dependent on heavy weapons units."
"I see. Your
men seem well equipped, Colonel," Bannister commented. "It
must weight them down badly."
"Twenty-one
kilograms in standard g field," Falkenberg answered. "More
here, less by a lot on Washington. Every man carries a week's
rations, ammunition for a short engagement, and enough equipment to
live in the field."
"What's the
little pouch on his belt?" Bannister asked interestedly.
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Personal possessions. Probably everything he owns. You'll have
to ask Wiszorik's permission if you want to examine that."
"Never mind.
Thank you, Private Wiszorik." Howard Bannister produced a
brightly colored bandanna from an inner pocket and mopped his brow.
"All right, Colonel. You're convincing - or your men are. Let's
go to your office and talk about money."
As they left,
Wiszorik and Sergeant Major Calvin exchanged knowing winks, while
Monitor Hartzinger breathed a sigh of relief. Just suppose that
visiting panjandrum had picked Recruit Latterby! Hell, the kid
couldn't find his arse with both hands.
XIV
FALKENBERG'S OFFICE
WAS hot. It was a large room, and a ceiling fan tried without success
to stir up a breeze. Everything was damp from Tanith's wet jungle
air. Howard Bannister thought he saw fungus growing in the narrow
space between a file cabinet and the wall.
In contrast to the
room itself, the furniture was elaborate. It had been hand carved and
was the product of hundreds of hours' labor by soldiers who had
little else but time to give their commanding officer. They'd taken
Sergeant Major Calvin into a conspiracy, getting him to talk
Falkenberg into going on an inspection tour while they scrapped his
functional old field gear and replaced it with equipment as light and
useful, but hand carved with battle scenes.
The desk was large
and entirely bare. To one side a table, in easy reach, was covered
with papers. On the other side a two-meter star cube portrayed the
known stars with inhabited planets. Communication equipment was built
into a spindly legged sideboard that also held whiskey. Falkenberg
offered his visitor a drink.
"Could we have
something with ice?"
"Certainly."
Falkenberg turned toward his sideboard and raised his voice, speaking
with a distinct change in tone. "Orderly, two gin and tonics,
with much ice, if you please. Will that be satisfactory, Mr.
Secretary?"
"Yes, thank
you." Bannister wasn't accustomed to electronics being so
common. "Look, we needn't spar about. I need soldiers and you
need to get off this planet. It's as simple as that."
"Hardly,"
Falkenberg replied. "You've yet to mention money."
Howard shrugged. "I
don't have much. Washington has damned few exports. Franklin's dried
those up with the blockade. Your transport and salaries will use up
most of what we've got. But you already know this, I suppose - I'm
told you have access to Fleet Intelligence sources."
Falkenberg shrugged.
"I have my ways. You're prepared to put our return fare on
deposit with Dayan, of course.
"Yes."
Bannister was startled. "Dayan? You do have sources. I thought
our negotiations with New Jerusalem were secret. All right - we have
arrangements with Dayan to furnish transportation. It took all our
cash, so everything else is contingency money. We can offer you
something you need, though. Land, good land, and a permanent base
that's a lot more pleasant than Tanith. We can also offer - well, the
chance to be part of a free and independent nation, though I'm not
expecting that to mean much to you."
Falkenberg nodded.
"That's why you - excuse me." He paused as the orderly
brought in a tray with tinkling glasses. The trooper wore
battledress, and his rifle was slung across his shoulder.
"Will you be
wanting the men to perform again?" Falkenberg asked.
Bannister hesitated.
"I think not."
"Orderly, ask
Sergeant Major to sound recall. Dismissed." He looked back to
Bannister. "Now. You chose us because you've nothing to offer.
The New Democrats on Friedland are happy enough with their base, as
are the Scots on Covenant. Xanadu wants hard cash before they throw
troops into action. You could find some scrapings on Earth, but we're
the only first-class outfit down on its luck at the moment - what
makes you think we're that hard up, Mr. Secretary? Your cause in
Washington is lost, isn't it?"
"Not for us."
Howard Bannister sighed. Despite his bulk he seemed deflated. "All
right. Franklin's mercenaries have defeated the last organized field
army we had. The resistance is all guerrilla operations, and we both
know that won't win. We need an organized force to rally around, and
we haven't got one." Dear God, we haven't got one. Bannister
remembered rugged hills and forests, weathered mountains with snow on
their tops, and in the valleys were ranches with the air crisp and
cool. He remembered plains golden with mutated wheat and the swaying
tassels of Washington's native corn plant rippling in the wind. The
Patriot army marched again to the final battle.
They'd marched with
songs in their hearts. The cause was just and they faced only
mercenaries after defeating Franklin's regular army. Free men against
hirelings in one last campaign.
The Patriots entered
the plains outside the capital city, confident that the mercenaries
could never stand against them - and the enemy didn't run. The
humorless Covenant Scots regiments chewed through their infantry,
while Friedland armor squadrons cut across the flank and far into the
rear, destroying their supply lines and capturing the headquarters.
Washington's army had not so much been defeated as dissolved, turned
into isolated groups of men whose enthusiasm was no match for the
iron discipline of the mercenaries. In three weeks they'd lost
everything gained in two years of war.
But yet - the planet
was still only thinly settled. The Franklin Confederacy had few
soldiers and couldn't afford to keep large groups of mercenaries on
occupation duty. Out in the mountains and across the plains the
settlements were seething, and ready to revolt again. It would only
take a tiny spark to arouse them.
"We've a
chance, Colonel. I wouldn't waste our money and risk my people's
lives if I didn't think so. Let me show you. I've a map in my gear."
"Show me on
this one." Falkenberg opened a desk drawer to reveal a small
input panel. He touched keys and the translucent gray of his desk top
dissolved into colors. A polar projection of Washington formed.
There was only one
continent, an irregular mass squatting at the top of the planet. From
25° North to the South Pole there was nothing but water. The land
above that was cut by huge bays and nearly landlocked seas. Towns
showed as a network of red dots across a narrow band of land jutting
down to the 30° to 50° level.
"You sure don't
have much land to live on," Falkenberg observed. "A strip a
thousand kilometers wide by four thousand long - why Washington,
anyway?"
"Original
settlers had ancestors in Washington state. The climate's similar
too. Franklin's the companion planet. It's got more industry than we
do, but even less agricultural land. Settled mostly by Southern U.S.
people - they call themselves the Confederacy. Washington's a
secondary colony from Franklin."
Falkenberg chuckled.
"Dissidents from a dissident colony. You must be damned
independent chaps."
"So independent
that we're not going to let Franklin run our lives! They treat us
like a wholly owned subsidiary, and we are not going to take it!"
"You'll take it
if you can't get somebody to fight for you," Falkenberg reminded
him brutally. "Now, you are offering us transport out, a deposit
against our return, minimum troop pay, and land to settle on?"
"Yes, that's
right. You can use the return deposit to transport your noncombatants
later. Or cash it in. But it's all the money we can offer, Colonel."
And be damned to you. You don't care at all, but I have to deal with
you. For now.
"Yeah."
Falkenberg regarded the map sourly. "Are we facing nukes?"
"They've got
some but so do we. We concealed ours in Franklin's capital to make it
a standoff."
"Uh-huh."
Falkenberg nodded. The situation wasn't that unusual. The CD Fleet
still tried to enforce the ban for that matter. "Do they still
have those Covenant Highlanders that whipped you last time?"
Bannister winced at
the reminder. "Goddamn it, good men were killed in that fight,
and you've got no right to - "
"Do they still
have the Covenanters, Mr. Secretary?" Falkenberg repeated.
"Yes. Plus a
brigade of Friedland armor and another ten thousand Earth mercenaries
on garrison duty."
Falkenberg snorted.
No one thought much of Earth's cannon fodder. The best Earth recruits
joined the growing national armies. Bannister nodded agreement. "Then
there are about eight thousand Confederate troops, native Franklin
soldiers who'd be no match for our Washingtonians."
"You hope.
Don't play Franklin down. They're putting together the nucleus of a
damned good fighting force, Mr. Bannister - as you know. It is my
understanding that they have plans for further conquests once they've
consolidated their hold on New Washington. "
Bannister agreed
carefully. "That's the main reason we're so desperate, Colonel.
We won't buy peace by giving in to the Confederacy because they're
set to defy the CoDominium when they can build a fleet. I don't
understand why the CD Navy hasn't put paid to Franklin's little
scheme, but it's obvious Earth isn't going to do anything. In a few
years the Confederates will have their fleet and be as strong as
Xanadu or Danube, strong enough to give the CD a real fight."
"You're too
damn isolated," Falkenberg replied. "The Grand Senate won't
even keep the Fleet up to enough strength to protect what the CD's
already got - let alone find the money to interfere in your sector.
The shortsighted bastards run around putting out fires, and the few
Senators who look ten years ahead don't have any influence." He
shook his head suddenly. "But that's not our problem. Okay, what
about landing security? I don't have any assault boats, and I doubt
you've the money to hire those from Dayan."
"It's tough,"
Bannister admitted. "But blockade runners can get through. Tides
on New Washington are enormous, but we know our coasts. The Dayan
captain can put you down at night here, or along there ..." The
rebel war secretary indicated a number of deep bays and fiords on the
jagged coast, bright blue spatters on the desk map. "You'll have
about two hours of slack water. That's all the time you'd have anyway
before the Confederate spy satellites detect the ship."
XV
ROGER HASTINGS DREW
his pretty brunette wife close to him and leaned against the barbecue
pit. It made a nice pose and the photographers took several shots.
They begged for more, but Hastings shook his head. "Enough,
boys, enough! I've only been sworn in as mayor of Allansport - you'd
think I was Governor General of the whole planet!"
"But give us a
statement," the reporters begged. "Will you support the
Confederacy's rearmament plans? I understand the smelter is tooling
up to produce naval armament alloys - "
"I said
enough," Roger commanded. "Go have a drink." The
reporters reluctantly scattered. "Eager chaps," Hastings
told his wife. "Pity there's only the one little paper."
Juanita laughed.
"You'd make the capital city Times if there was a way to get the
pictures there. But it was a fair question, Roger. What are you going
to do about Franklin's war policies? What will happen to Harley when
they start expanding the Confederacy?" The amusement died from
her face as she thought of their son in the army.
"There isn't
much I can do. The mayor of Allansport isn't consulted on matters of
high policy. Damn it, sweetheart, don't you start in on me too. It's
too nice a day."
Hastings' quarried
stone house stood high on a hill above Nanaimo Bay. The city of
Allansport sprawled across the hills below them, stretching almost to
the high water mark running irregularly along the sandy beaches
washed by endless surf. At night they could hear the waves crashing.
They held hands and
watched the sea beyond the island that formed Allansport Harbor.
"Here it comes!" Roger said. He pointed to a wall of
rushing water two meters high. The tide bore swept around the end of
Waada Island, then curled back toward the city.
"Pity the poor
sailors," Juanita said.
Roger shrugged. "The
packet ship's anchored well enough."
They watched the
150-meter cargo vessel tossed about by the tidal force. The tide bore
caught her nearly abeam and she rolled dangerously before swinging on
her chains to head into the flowing tide water. It seemed nothing
could hold her, but those chains had been made in Roger's foundries,
and he knew their strength.
"It has been a
nice day." Juanita sighed. Their house was on one of the large
greensward commons running up the hill from Allansport, and the
celebrations had spilled out of their yard, across the greens, and
into their neighbors' yards as well. Portable bars manned by Roger's
campaign workers dispensed an endless supply of local wines and
brandies.
To the west New
Washington's twin companion, Franklin, hung in its eternal place.
When sunset brought New Washington's twenty hours of daylight to an
end it passed from a glowing ball in the bright day sky to a gibbous
sliver in the darkness, then rapidly widened. Reddish shadows danced
on Franklin's cloudy face.
Roger and Juanita
stood in silent appreciation of the stars, the planet, the sunset.
Allansport was a frontier town on an unimportant planet, but it was
home and they loved it.
The inauguration
party had been exhaustingly successful. Roger gratefully went to the
drawing room while Juanita climbed the stairs to put their sleepy
children to bed. As manager of the smelter and foundry, Roger had a
home that was one of the finest on all the Ranier Peninsula. It stood
tall and proud - a big stone Georgian mansion with wide entry hall
and paneled rooms. Now, he was joined by Martine Ardway in his
favorite, the small conversation-sized drawing room.
"Congratulations
again, Roger," Colonel Ardway boomed. "We'll all be behind
you." The words were more than the usual inauguration day
patter. Although Ardway's son Johann was married to Roger's daughter,
the Colonel had opposed Hastings' election, and Ardway had a large
following among the hard-line Loyalists in Allansport. He was also
commander of the local militia. Johann held a captain's commission.
Roger's own boy Harley was only a lieutenant, but in the Regulars.
"Have you told
Harley about your winning?" Ardway asked.
"Can't. The
communications to Vancouver are out. As a matter of fact, all our
communications are out right now."
Ardway nodded
phlegmatically. Allansport was the only town on a peninsula well over
a thousand kilometers from the nearest settlements. New Washington
was so close to its red dwarf sun that loss of communications was
standard through much of the planet's fifty-two standard-day year. An
undersea cable to Preston Bay had been planned when the rebellion
broke out, and now that it was over work could start again.
"I mean it
about being with you," Ardway repeated. "I still think
you're wrong, but there can't be more than one policy about this. I
just hope it works."
"Look, Martine,
we can't go on treating the rebels like traitors. We need'em too
much. There aren't many rebels here, but if I enforce the
confiscation laws it'll cause resentment in the East. We've had
enough bloody war." Roger stretched and yawned. "Excuse me.
It's been a hard day and it's a while since I was a rock miner. There
was once a time when I could dig all day and drink all night."
Ardway shrugged.
Like Hastings, he had once been a miner, but unlike the mayor he
hadn't kept in shape. He wasn't fat, but he had become a large,
balding, round man with a paunch that spilled over his wide garrison
belt. It spoiled his looks when he wore military uniform, which he
did whenever possible. "You're in charge, Roger. I won't get in
your way. Maybe you can even get the old rebel families on your side
against this stupid imperialistic venture Franklin's pushing. God
knows we've enough problems at home without looking for more. I
think. What in hell's going on out there?"
Someone was yelling
in the town below. "Good God, were those shots?" Roger
asked. "We better find out." Reluctantly he pushed himself
up from the leather easy chair. "Hello - hello - what's this?
The phone is out, Martine. Dead."
"Those were
shots," Colonel Ardway said. "I don't like this - rebels?
The packet came in this afternoon, but you don't suppose there were
rebels on board her? We better go down and see to this. You sure the
phone's dead?"
"Very dead,"
Hastings said quietly. "Lord, I hope it's not a new rebellion.
Get your troops called out, though."
"Right."
Ardway took a pocket communicator from his belt pouch. He spoke into
it with increasing agitation. "Roger, there is something wrong!
I'm getting nothing but static. Somebody's jamming the whole
communications band."
"Nonsense.
We're near periastron. The sunspots are causing it." Hastings
sounded confident, but he was praying silently. Not more war. It
wouldn't be a threat to Allansport and the Peninsula - there weren't
more than a handful of rebels out here, but they'd be called on for
troops to go east and fight in rebel areas like Ford Heights and the
Columbia Valley. It was so damn rotten! He remembered burning ranches
and plantations during the last flareup.
"Goddamn it,
don't those people know they lose more in the wars than Franklin's
merchants are costing them?" But he was already speaking to an
empty room. Colonel Ardway had dashed outside and was calling to the
neighbors to fall out with military equipment.
Roger followed him
outside. To the west Franklin flooded the night with ten thousand
times Luna's best efforts on Earth. There were soldiers coming up the
broad street from the main section of town.
"Who in hell -
those aren't rebels," Hastings shouted. They were men in
synthi-leather battledress, and they moved too deliberately. Those
were Regulars.
There was a roar of
motors. A wave of helicopters passed overhead. Roger heard ground
effects cars on the greensward, and at least two hundred soldiers
were running purposefully up the street toward his house. At each
house below a knot of five men fell out of the open formation.
"Turn out!
Militia turn out! Rebels!" Colonel Ardway was shouting. He had a
dozen men, none in armor, and their best weapons were rifles.
"Take cover!
Fire at will!" Ardway screamed. His voice carried determination
but it had an edge of fear. "Roger, get the hell inside, you
damn fool!"
"But - "
The advancing troops were no more than a hundred meters away. One of
Ardway's militia fired an automatic rifle from the house next door.
The leather-clad troops scattered and someone shouted orders.
Fire lashed out to
rake the house. Roger stood in his front yard, dazed, unbelieving, as
under Franklin's bright reddish light the nightmare went on. The
troops advanced steadily again and there was no more resistance from
the militia.
It all happened so
quickly. Even as Roger had that thought, the leather lines of men
reached him. An officer raised a megaphone.
"I CALL ON YOU
TO SURRENDER IN THE NAME OF THE FREE STATES OF WASHINGTON. STAY IN
YOUR HOMES AND DO NOT TRY TO RESIST. ARMED MEN WILL BE SHOT WITHOUT
WARNING."
A five-man
detachment ran past Roger Hastings and through the front door of his
home. It brought him from his daze. "Juanita!" He screamed
and ran toward his house.
"HALT! HALT OR
WE FIRE! YOU MAN, HALT!"
Roger ran on
heedlessly.
"SQUAD FIRE."
"BELAY THAT
ORDER!"
As Roger reached the
door he was grabbed by one of the soldiers and flung against the
wall. "Hold it right there," the trooper said grimly.
"Monitor, I have a prisoner."
Another soldier came
into the broad entryway. He held a clipboard and looked up at the
address of the house, checking it against his papers. "Mr. Roger
Hastings?" he asked.
Roger nodded
dazedly. Then he thought better of it.
"No. I'm - "
"Won't do,"
the soldier said. "I've your picture, Mr. Mayor." Roger
nodded again. Who was this man? There had been many accents, and the
officer with the clipboard had yet another. "Who are you?"
he demanded.
"Lieutenant
Jaimie Farquhar of Falkenberg's Mercenary Legion, acting under
authority of the Free States of Washington. You're under military
detention, Mr. Mayor."
There was more
firing outside. Roger's house hadn't been touched. Everything looked
so absolutely ordinary. Somehow that added to the horror.
A voice called from
upstairs. "His wife and kids are up here, Lieutenant."
"Thank you,
Monitor. Ask the lady to come down, please. Mr. Mayor, please don't
be concerned for your family. We do not make war on civilians."
There were more shots from the street.
A thousand questions
boiled in Roger's mind. He stood dazedly trying to sort them into
some order. "Have you shot Colonel Ardway? Who's fighting out
there?"
"If you mean
the fat man in uniform, he's safe enough. We've got him in custody.
Unfortunately, some of your militia have ignored the order to
surrender, and it's going to be hard on them."
As if in emphasis
there was the muffled blast of a grenade, then a burst from a machine
pistol answered by the slow deliberate fire of an automatic rifle.
The battle noises swept away across the brow of the hill, but sounds
of firing and shouted orders carried over the pounding surf.
Farquhar studied his
clipboard. "Mayor Hastings and Colonel Ardway. Yes, thank you
for identifying him. I've orders to take you both to the command
post. Monitor!"
"Sir!"
"Your maniple
will remain here on guard. You will allow no one to enter this house.
Be polite to Mrs. Hastings, but keep her and the children here. If
there is any attempt at looting you will prevent it. This street is
under the protection of the Regiment. Understood?"
"Sir!"
The slim officer
nodded in satisfaction. "If you'll come with me, Mr. Mayor,
there's a car on the greensward." As Roger followed numbly he
saw the hall clock. He had been sworn in as mayor less than eleven
hours ago.
The Regimental
Command Post was in the city council meeting chambers, with
Falkenberg's office in a small connecting room. The council room
itself was filled with electronic gear and bustled with runners,
while Major Savage and Captain Fast controlled the military conquest
of Allansport. Falkenberg watched the situation develop in the maps
displayed on his desk top.
"It was so
fast!" Howard Bannister said. The pudgy secretary of war shook
his head in disbelief. "I never thought you could do it."
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Light infantry can move, Mr. Secretary. But it cost us. We had
to leave the artillery train in orbit with most of our vehicles. I
can equip with captured stuff, but we're a bit short on transport."
He watched lights flash confusedly for a second on the display before
the steady march of red lights blinking to green resumed.
"But now you're
without artillery," Bannister said. "And the Patriot army's
got none."
"Can't have it
both ways. We had less than an hour to offload and get the Dayan
boats off planet before the spy satellites came over. Now we've got
the town and nobody knows we've landed. If this goes right the first
the Confederates'll know about us is when their spy snooper stops
working."
"We had some
luck," Bannister said. "Boat in harbor, communications out
to the mainland - "
"Don't confuse
luck with decision factors," Falkenberg answered. "Why
would I take an isolated hole full of Loyalists if there weren't some
advantages?" Privately he knew better. The telephone exchange
taken by infiltrating scouts, the power plant almost unguarded and
falling to three minutes' brief combat - it was all luck you could
count on with good men, but it was luck. "Excuse me." He
touched a stud in response to a low humming note. "Yes?"
"Train coming
in from the mines, John Christian," Major Savage reported. "We
have the station secured, shall we let it go past the block outside
town?"
"Sure, stick
with the plan, Jerry. Thanks." The miners coming home after a
week's work on the sides of Ranier Crater were due for a surprise.
They waited until
all the lights changed to green. Every objective was taken. Power
plants, communications, homes of leading citizens, public buildings,
railway station and airport, police station . . . Allansport and its
eleven thousand citizens were under control. A timer display ticked
off the minutes until the spy satellite would be overhead.
Falkenberg spoke to
the intercom. "Sergeant Major, we have twenty-nine minutes to
get this place looking normal for this time of night. See to it."
"Sir!"
Calvin's unemotional voice was reassuring.
"I don't think
the Confederates spend much time examining pictures of the boondocks
anyway," Falkenberg told Bannister. "But it's best not to
take any chances." Motors roared as ground cars and choppers
were put under cover. Another helicopter flew overhead looking for
telltales.
"As soon as
that thing's past get the troops on the packet ship," Falkenberg
ordered. "And send in Captain Svoboda, Mayor Hastings, and the
local militia colonel - Ardway, wasn't it?"
"Yes, sir,"
Calvin answered. "Colonel Martine Ardway. I'll see if he's up to
it, Colonel."
"Up to it,
Sergeant Major? Was he hurt?"
"He had a
pistol, Colonel. Twelve millimeter thing, big slug, slow bullet,
couldn't penetrate armor but he bruised hell out of two troopers.
Monitor Badnikov laid him out with a rifle butt. Surgeon says he'll
be all right."
"Good enough.
If he's able to come I want him here."
"Sir."
Falkenberg turned
back to the desk and used the computer to produce a planetary map.
"Where would the supply ship go from here, Mr. Bannister?"
The secretary traced
a course. "It would - and will - stay inside this island chain.
Nobody but a suicide takes ships into open water on this planet. With
no land to interrupt them the seas go sixty meters in storms."
He indicated a route from Allansport to Cape Titan, then through an
island chain in the Sea of Mariners. "Most ships stop at Preston
Bay to deliver metalshop goods for the ranches up on Ford Heights
Plateau. The whole area's Patriot territory and you could liberate it
with one stroke."
Falkenberg studied
the map, then said, "No. So most ships stop there - do some go
directly to Astoria?" He pointed to a city eighteen hundred
kilometers east of Preston Bay.
"Yes, sometimes
- but the Confederates keep a big garrison in Astoria, Colonel. Much
larger than the one in Preston Bay. Why go twenty-five hundred
kilometers to fight a larger enemy force when there's good Patriot
country at half the distance?"
"For the same
reason the Confederates don't put much strength at Preston Bay. It's
isolated. The Ford Heights ranches are scattered - look, Mr.
Secretary, if we take Astoria we have the key to the whole Columbia
River Valley. The Confederates won't know if we're going north to
Doak's Ferry, east to Grand Forks and on into the capital plains, or
west to Ford Heights. If I take Preston Bay first they'll know what I
intend because there's only one thing a sane man could do from
there."
"But the
Columbia Valley people aren't reliable! You won't get good recruits -
"
They were
interrupted by a knock. Sergeant Major Calvin ushered in Roger
Hastings and Martine Ardway. The militiaman had a lump over his left
eye, and his cheek was bandaged.
Falkenberg stood to
be introduced and offered his hand, which Roger Hastings ignored.
Ardway stood rigid for a second, then extended his own. "I won't
say I'm pleased to meet you, Colonel Falkenberg, but my compliments
on an operation well conducted."
"Thank you,
Colonel. Gentlemen, please be seated. You have met Captain Svoboda,
my Provost?" Falkenberg indicated a lanky officer in battledress
who'd come in with them. "Captain Svoboda will be in command of
this town when the Forty-second moves out."
Ardway's eyes
narrowed with interest. Falkenberg smiled. "You'll see it soon
enough, Colonel. Now, the rules of occupation are simple. As
mercenaries, gentlemen, we are subject to the CoDominium's Laws of
War. Public property is seized in the name of the Free States.
Private holdings are secure, and any property requisitioned will be
paid for. Any property used to aid resistance, whether directly or as
a place to make conspiracy, will be instantly confiscated."
Ardway and Hastings
shrugged. They'd heard all this before. At one time the CD tried to
suppress mercenaries. When that foiled the Fleet rigidly enforced the
Grand Senate's Laws of War, but now the Fleet was weakened by budget
cuts and a new outbreak of U.S.Soviet hatred. New Washington was
isolated and it might be years before CD Marines appeared to enforce
rules the Grand Senate no longer cared about.
"I have a
problem, gentlemen," Falkenberg said. "This city is
Loyalist, and I must withdraw my regiment. There aren't any Patriot
soldiers yet. I'm leaving enough force to complete the conquest of
this peninsula, but Captain Svoboda will have few troops in
Allansport itself. Since we cannot occupy the city, it can
legitimately be destroyed to prevent it from becoming a base against
me."
"You can't!"
Hastings protested, jumping to his feet, shattering a glass ashtray.
"I was sure all that talk about preserving private property was
a lot of crap!" He turned to Bannister. "Howard, I told you
last time all you'd succeed in doing was burning down the whole
goddamn planet! Now you import soldiers to do it for you! What in
God's name can you get from this war?"
"Freedom,"
Bannister said proudly. "Allansport is a nest of traitors
anyway."
"Hold it,"
Falkenberg said gently.
"Traitors!"
Bannister repeated. "You'll get what you deserve, you - "
"TENSH-HUT!"
Sergeant Major Calvin's command startled them. "The Colonel said
you was to hold it."
"Thank you,"
Falkenberg said quietly. The silence was louder than the shouts had
been. "I said I could burn the city, not that I intended to.
However, since I won't I must have hostages." He handed Roger
Hastings a computer typescript. "Troops are quartered in homes
of these persons. You will note that you and Colonel Ardway are at
the top of my list. All will be detained, and anyone who escapes will
be replaced by members of his family. Your property and ultimately
your lives are dependent on your cooperation with Captain Svoboda
until I send a regular garrison here. Is this understood?"
Colonel Ardway
nodded grimly. "Yes, sir. I agree to it."
"Thank you,"
Falkenberg said."And you, Mr. Mayor?"
"I understand."
"And?"
Falkenberg prompted.
"And what? You
want me to like it? What kind of sadist are you?"
"I don't care
if you like it, Mr. Mayor. I am waiting for you to agree."
"He doesn't
understand, Colonel," Martine Ardway said. "Roger, he's
asking if you agree to serve as a hostage for the city. The others
will be asked as well. If he doesn't get enough to agree he'll burn
the city to the ground."
"Oh."
Roger felt a cold knife of fear. What a hell of a choice.
"The question
is," Falkenberg said, "will you accept the responsibilities
of the office you hold and keep your damn people from making
trouble?"
Roger swallowed
hard. I wanted to be mayor so I could erase the hatreds of the
rebellion. "Yes. I agree,"
"Excellent.
Captain Svoboda."
"Sir."
"Take the mayor
and Colonel Ardway to your office and interview the others. Notify me
when you have enough hostages to ensure security."
"Yes, sir.
Gentlemen?" It was hard to read his expression as he showed them
to the door. The visor of his helmet was up, but Svoboda's angular
face remained in shadow. As he escorted them from the room the
intercom buzzed.
"The
satellite's overhead," Major Savage reported. "All correct,
John Christian. And we've secured the passengers off that train."
The office door
closed. Roger Hastings moved like a robot across the bustling city
council chamber room, only dimly aware of the bustle of headquarters
activities around him. The damn war, the fools, the bloody damned
fools - couldn't they ever leave things alone?
XVI
A DOZEN MEN in
camouflage battledress led a slim pretty girl across hard-packed
sands to the water's edge. They were glad to get away from the softer
sands above the highwater mark nearly a kilometer from the pounding
surf. Walking in that had been hell, with shifting powder sands
infested with small burrowing carnivores too stupid not to attack a
booted man.
The squad climbed
wordlessly into the waiting boat while their leader tried to assist
the girl. She needed no help. Glenda Ruth wore tan nylon coveralls
and an equipment belt, and she knew this planet and its dangers
better than the soldiers. Glenda Ruth Horton had been taking care of
herself for twenty-four of her twenty-six years.
White sandy beaches
dotted with marine life exposed by the low tide stretched in both
directions as far as they could see. Only the boat and its crew
showed that the planet had human life. When the coxswain started the
boat's water jet the whirr sent clouds of tiny sea birds into frantic
activity.
The fast packet
Maribell lay twelve kilometers offshore, well beyond the horizon.
When the boat arrived deck cranes dipped to seize her and haul the
flat-bottomed craft to her davits. Captain lan Frazer escorted Glenda
Ruth to the chart room.
Falkenberg's battle
staff waited there impatiently, some sipping whiskey, others staring
at charts whose information they had long since absorbed. Many showed
signs of seasickness: the eighty-hour voyage from Allansport had been
rough, and it hadn't helped that the ship pushed along at
thirty-three kilometers an hour, plowing into big swells among the
islands.
lan saluted, then
took a glass from the steward and offered it to Glenda Ruth. "Colonel
Falkenberg, Miss Horton. Glenda Ruth is the patriot leader in the
Columbia Valley. Glenda Ruth, you'll know Secretary Bannister."
She nodded coldly as
if she did not care for the rebel minister, but she put out her hand
to Falkenberg and shook his in a thoroughly masculine way. She had
other masculine gestures, but even with her brown hair tucked neatly
under a visored cap no one would mistake her for a man. She had a
heart-shaped face and large green eyes, and her weathered tan might
have been envied by the great ladies of the CoDominium.
"My pleasure,
Miss Horton," Falkenberg said perfunctorily. "Were you
seen?"
lan Frazer looked
pained. "No, sir. We met the rebel group and it seemed safe
enough, so Centurion Michaels and I borrowed some clothing from the
ranchers and let Glenda Ruth take us to town for our own look."
lan moved to the chart table.
"The fort's up
here on the heights." Frazer pointed to the coastal chart.
"Typical wall and trench system. Mostly they depend on the
Friedlander artillery to control the city and river mouth."
"What's in
there, lan?" Major Savage asked.
"Worst thing is
artillery," the Scout Troop commander answered. "Two
batteries of 105's and a battery of 155's, all self-propelled. As
near as we can figure it's a standard Friedland detached battalion."
"About six
hundred Friedlanders, then," Captain Rottermill said
thoughtfully. "And we're told there's a regiment of Earth
mercenaries. Anything else?"
lan glanced at
Glenda Ruth. "They moved in a squadron of Confederate Regular
Cavalry last week," she said. "Light armored cars. We think
they're due to move on, because there's nothing for them to do here,
but nobody knows where they're going."
"That is odd,"
Rottermill said. "There's not a proper petrol supply for them
here - where would they go?"
Glenda Ruth regarded
him thoughtfully. She had little use for mercenaries. Freedom was
something to be won, not bought and paid for. But they needed these
men, and at least this one had done his homework. "Probably to
the Snake Valley. They've got wells and refineries there." She
indicated the flatlands where the Snake and Columbia merged at Doak's
Ferry six hundred kilometers to the north. "That's Patriot
country and cavalry could be useful to supplement the big fortress at
the Ferry."
"Damn bad luck
all the same, Colonel," Rottermill said. "Nearly three
thousand men in that damned fortress and we've not a lot more. How's
the security, lan?"
Frazer shrugged.
"Not tight. The Earth goons patrol the city, doing MP duty,
checking papers. No trouble avoiding them."
"The Earthies
make up most of the guard details too," Glenda Ruth added.
"They've got a whole rifle regiment of them."
"We'll not take
that place by storm, John Christian," Major Savage said
carefully. "Not without losing half the regiment."
"And just what
are your soldiers for?" Glenda Ruth demanded. "Do they
fight sometimes?"
"Sometimes."
Falkenberg studied the sketch his scout commander was making. "Do
they have sentries posted, Captain?"
"Yes, sir.
Pairs in towers and walking guards. There are radar dishes every
hundred meters, and I expect there are body capacitance wires strung
outside as well." "I told you," Secretary Bannister
said smugly. There was triumph in his voice, in contrast to the grim
concern of Falkenberg and his officers. "You'll have to raise an
army to take that place. Ford Heights is our only chance, Colonel.
Astoria's too strong for you."
"No!"
Glenda Ruth's strong, low-pitched voice commanded attention. "We've
risked everything to gather the Columbia Valley Patriots. If you
don't take Astoria now, they'll go back to their ranches. I was
opposed to starting a new revolution, Howard Bannister. I don't think
we can stand another long war like the last one. But I've organized
my father's friends, and in two days I'll command a fighting force.
If we scatter now I'll never get them to fight again."
"Where is your
army - and how large is it?" Falkenberg asked.
"The assembly
area is two hundred kilometers north of here. I have six hundred
riflemen now and another five thousand coming. A force that size
can't hide!" She regarded Falkenberg without enthusiasm. They
needed a strong organized nucleus to win, but she was trusting her
friends' lives to a man she'd never met. "Colonel, my ranchers
can't face Confederate Regulars or Friedland armor without support,
but if you take Astoria we'll have a base we can hold."
"Yes."
Falkenberg studied the maps as he thought about the girl. She had a
more realistic appreciation of irregular forces than Bannister - but
how reliable was she? "Mr. Bannister, we can't take Astoria
without artillery even with your Ford Heights ranchers. I need
Astoria's guns, and the city's the key to the whole campaign anyway.
With it in hand
there's a chance to win this war quickly."
"But it can't
be done!" Bannister insisted.
"Yet it must be
done," Falkenberg reminded him. "And we do have surprise.
No Confederate knows we're on this planet and won't for - " he
glanced at his pocket computer - "twenty-seven hours, when
Weapons Detachment knocks down the snooper. Miss Horton, have you
made trouble for Astoria lately?"
"Not for
months," she said. Was this mercenary, this man Falkenberg,
different? "I only came this far south to meet you."
Captain Frazer's
sketch of the fort lay on the table like a death warrant. Falkenberg
watched in silence as the scout drew in machine-gun emplacements
along the walls.
"I forbid you
to risk the revolution on some mad scheme!" Bannister shouted.
"Astoria's far too strong. You said so yourself."
Glenda Ruth's rising
hopes died again. Bannister was giving the mercenaries a perfect out.
Falkenberg
straightened and took a brimming glass from the steward. "Who's
junior man here?" He looked around the steel-riveted chart room
until he saw an officer near the bulkhead. "Excellent.
Lieutenant Fuller was a prisoner on Tanith, Mr. Bannister. Until we
caught him - Mark, give us a toast."
"A toast,
Colonel?"
"Montrose's
toast, Mister. Montrose's toast."
Fear clutched
Bannister's guts into a hard ball. Montrose! And Glenda Ruth stared
uncomprehendingly, but there was reborn hope in her eyes. . . .
"Aye
aye, Colonel." Fuller raised his glass. "He either
fears his fate too much, or his desserts are small, who dares not put
it to the touch, to win or lose it all."
Bannister's hands
shook as the officers drank. Falkenberg's wry smile, Glenda Ruth's
answering look of comprehension and admiration - they were all crazy!
The lives of all the patriots were at stake, and the man and the
girl, both of them, they were insane!
Maribell swung to
her anchors three kilometers offshore from Astoria. The fast-moving
waters of the Columbia swept around her toward the ocean some nine
kilometers downstream, where waves crashed in a line of breakers five
meters high. Getting across the harbor bar was a tricky business, and
even in the harbor itself the tides were too fierce for the ship to
dock.
Maribell's cranes
hummed as they swung cargo lighters off her decks. The air-cushion
vehicles moved grace-lessly across the water and over the sandy
beaches to the corrugated aluminum warehouses, where they left cargo
containers and picked up empties.
In the fortress
above Astoria the officer of the guard dutifully logged the ship's
arrival into his journal. It was the most exciting event in two
weeks. Since the rebellion had ended there was little for his men to
do.
He turned from the
tower to look around the encampment. Blasted waste of good armor, he
thought. No point in having self-propelled guns as harbor guards. The
armor wasn't used, since the guns were in concrete revetments. The
lieutenant had been trained in mobile war, and though he could
appreciate the need for control over the mouth of New Washington's
largest river, he didn't like this duty. There was no glory in
manning an impregnable fortress.
Retreat sounded and
all over the fort men stopped to face the flags. The Franklin
Confederacy colors fluttered down the staff to the salutes of the
garrison. Although as guard officer he wasn't supposed to, the
lieutenant saluted as the trumpets sang.
Over by the guns men
stood at attention, but they didn't salute. Friedland mercenaries,
they owed the Confederacy no loyalty that hadn't been bought and paid
for. The lieutenant admired them as soldiers, but they were not
likable. It was worth knowing them, though, since nobody else could
handle armor like them. He had managed to make friends with a few.
Someday, when the Confederacy was stronger, they would dispense with
mercenaries, and until then he wanted to learn all he could. There
were rich planets in this sector of space, planets that Franklin
could add to the Confederacy now that the rebellion was over. With
the CD Fleet weaker every year, opportunities at the edges of
inhabited space grew, but only for those ready for them.
When retreat ended
he turned back to the harbor. An ugly cargo lighter was coming up the
broad roadway to the fort. He frowned, puzzled, and climbed down from
the tower.
When he reached the
gate the lighter had halted there. Its engine roared, and it was very
difficult to understand the driver, a broad-shouldered
seaman-stevedore who was insisting on something.
"I got no
orders," the Earth mercenary guardsman was protesting. He turned
to the lieutenant in relief.
"Sir, they say
they have a shipment for us on that thing."
"What is it?"
the lieutenant shouted. He had to say it again to be heard over the
roar of the motors. "What is the cargo?"
"Damned if I
know," the driver said cheerfully. "Says on the manifest
'Astoria Fortress, attention supply officer.' Look, Lieutenant, we
got to be moving. If the captain don't catch the tide he can't cross
the harbor bar tonight and he'll skin me for squawrk bait! Where's
the supply officer?"
The lieutenant
looked at his watch. After retreat the men dispersed rapidly and
supply officers kept short hours. "There's nobody to offload,"
he shouted.
"Got a crane
and crew here," the driver said. "Look, just show me where
to put this stuff. We got to sail at slack water."
"Put it out
here," the lieutenant said.
"Right. You'll
have a hell of a job moving it though." He turned to his
companion in the cab. "OK, Charlie, dump it!"
The lieutenant
thought of what the supply officer would say when he found he'd have
to move the ten-by-five-meter containers. He climbed into the bed of
the cargo lighter. In the manifest pocket of each container was a
ticket reading "COMMISSARY SUPPLIES."
"Wait," he
ordered. "Private, open the gates. Driver, take this over
there." He indicated a warehouse near the center of the camp.
"Offload at the big doors."
"Right. Hold
it, Charlie," Sergeant Major Calvin said cheerfully. "The
lieutenant wants the stuff inside." He gave his full attention
to driving the ungainly GEM.
The lighter crew
worked the crane efficiently, stacking the cargo containers by the
warehouse doors. "Sign here," the driver said.
"I - perhaps I
better get someone to inventory the cargo."
"Aw, for
Christ's sake," the driver protested. "Look, you can see
the seals ain't broke - here, I'll write it in. 'Seals intact, but
cargo not inspected by recip - ' How you spell 'recipient,'
Lieutenant?"
"Here, I'll
write it for you" He did, and signed with his name and rank.
"Have a good voyage?"
"Naw. Rough out
there, and getting worse. We got to scoot, more cargo to offload."
"Not for us!"
"Naw, for the
town. Thanks, Lieutenant." The GEM pivoted and roared away as
the guard lieutenant shook his head. What a mess. He climbed into the
tower to write the incident up in the day book. As he wrote he
sighed. One hour to dark, and three until he was off duty. It had
been a long, dull day.
Three hours before
dawn the cargo containers silently opened, and Captain lan Frazer led
his scouts onto the darkened parade ground. Wordlessly they moved
toward the revetted guns. One squad formed ranks and marched toward
the gates, rifles at slope arms.
The sentries turned.
"What the hell?" one said. "It's not time for our
relief, who's there?"
"Can it,"
the corporal of the squad said. "We got orders to go out on some
goddam perimeter patrol. Didn't you get the word?"
"Nobody tells
me anythin' - uh." The sentry grunted as the corporal struck him
with a leather bag of shot. His companion turned quickly, but too
late. The squad had already reached him.
Two men stood erect
in the starlight at the posts abandoned by the sentries. Astoria was
far over the horizon from Franklin, and only a faint red glow to the
west indicated the companion planet.
The rest of the
squad entered the guardhouse. They moved efficiently among the
sleeping relief men, and when they finished the corporal took a
communicator from his belt. "Laertes."
On the other side of
the parade ground, Captain Frazer led a group of picked men to the
radar control center. There was a silent flurry of bayonets and rifle
butts. When the brief struggle ended lan spoke into his communicator.
"Hamlet."
There was no answer,
but he hadn't expected one.
Down in the city
other cargo containers opened in darkened warehouses. Armed men
formed into platoons and marched through the dockside streets. The
few civilians who saw them scurried for cover; no one had much use
for the Earthling mercenaries the Confederates employed.
A full company
marched up the hill to the fort. On the other side, away from the
city, the rest of the regiment crawled across plowed fields, heedless
of radar alarms but careful of the sentries on the walls above. They
passed the first line of capacitance wires and Major Savage held his
breath. Ten seconds, twenty. He sighed in relief and motioned the
troops to advance.
The marching company
reached the gate. Sentries challenged them while others in guard
towers watched in curiosity. When the gates swung open the tower
guards relaxed. The officer of the watch must have had special orders
. . .
The company moved
into the armored car park. Across the parade ground a sentry peered
into the night. Something out there? "Halt! Who's there?"
There was only silence.
"See something,
Jack?" his companion asked.
"Dunno - look
out there. By the bushes. Somethin' - My God, Harry! The field's full
of men! CORPORAL OF THE GUARD! Turn out the Guard!" He hesitated
before taking the final step, but he was sure enough to risk his
sergeant's scathing displeasure. A stabbing finger hit the red alarm
button, and lights blazed around the camp perimeter. The sirens
hooted, and he had time to see a thousand men in the field near the
camp; then a burst of fire caught him, and he fell.
The camp erupted
into confusion. The Friedland gunners woke first. They wasted less
than a minute before their officers realized the alarm was real. Then
the gunners boiled out of the barracks to save their precious armor,
but from each revetment, bursts of machine-gun fire cut into them.
Gunners fell in heaps as the rest scurried for cover. Many had not
brought personal weapons in their haste to serve the guns, and they
lost time going back for them.
Major Savage's men
'reached the walls and clambered over. Alternate sections kept the
walls under a ripple of fire, and despite their heavy battle armor
the men climbed easily in Washington's lower gravity. Officers sent
them to the parade ground where they added their fire to that of the
men in the revetments. Hastily set machine guns isolated the
artillery emplacements with a curtain of fire.
That artillery was
the fort's main defense. Once he was certain it was secure, Major
Savage sent his invaders by waves into the camp barracks. They burst
in with grenades and rifles ready, taking whole companies before
their officers could arrive with the keys to their weapons racks.
Savage took the Confederate Regulars that way, and only the
Freidlanders had come out fighting; but their efforts were directed
toward their guns, and there they had no chance.
Meanwhile the Earth
mercenaries, never very steady troops at best, called for quarter;
many had not fired a shot. The camp defenders fought as disorganized
groups against a disciplined force whose communications worked
perfectly.
At the fortress
headquarters building the alarms woke Commandant Albert Morris. He
listened in disbelief to the sounds of battle, and although he rushed
out half-dressed, he was too late. His command was engulfed by nearly
four thousand screaming men. Morris stood a moment in indecision,
torn by the desire to run to the nearest barracks and rally what
forces he could, but he decided his duty was in the communications
room. The Capital must be told. Desperately he ran to the radio
shack.
Everything seemed
normal inside, and he shouted orders to the duty sergeant before he
realized he had never seen the man before. He turned to face a squad
of leveled rifles. A bright light stabbed from a darker corner of the
room.
"Good morning,
sir," an even voice said.
Commandant Morris
blinked, then carefully raised his hands in surrender. "I've no
sidearms. Who the hell are you, anyway?"
"Colonel John
Christian Falkenberg, at your service. Will you surrender this base
and save your men?"
Morris nodded
grimly. He'd seen enough outside to know the battle was hopeless. His
career was finished too, no matter what he did, and there was no
point in letting the Friedlanders be slaughtered. "Surrender to
whom?"
The light flicked
off and Morris saw Falkenberg. There was a grim smile on the
Colonel's lips. "Why, to the Great Jehovah and the Free States
of Washington, Commandant. ..."
Albert Morris, who
was no historian, did not understand the reference. He took the
public address mike the grim troopers handed him. Fortress Astoria
had fallen.
Twenty-three hundred
kilometers to the west at Allansport, Sergeant Sherman White slapped
the keys to launch three small solid rockets. They weren't very
powerful birds, but they could be set up quickly, and they had the
ability to loft a hundred kilos of tiny steel cubes to 140
kilometers. White had very good information on the Confederate
satellite's ephemeris; he'd observed it for its past twenty orbits.
The target was
invisible over the horizon when Sergeant White launched his
interceptors. As it came overhead the small rockets had climbed to
meet it. Their radar fuses sought the precise moment, then they
exploded in a cloud of shot that rose as it spread. It continued to
climb, halted, and began to fall back toward the ground. The
satellite detected the attack and beeped alarms to its masters. Then
it passed through the cloud at fourteen hundred meters per second
relative to the shot. Four of the steel cubes were in its path.
XVII
FALKENBERG STUDIED
THE manuals on the equipment in the Confederate command car as it
raced northward along the Columbia Valley road toward Doak's Ferry.
Captain Frazer's scouts were somewhere ahead with the captured
cavalry equipment and behind Falkenberg the regiment was strung out
piecemeal. There were men on motorcycles, in private trucks,
horse-drawn wagons, and on foot.
There'd be more
walking soon. The captured cavalry gear was a lucky break, but the
Columbia Valley wasn't technologically developed. Most local
transport was by animal power, and the farmers relied on the river to
ship produce to the deepwater port at Astoria. The river boats and
motor fuel were the key to the operation. There wasn't enough of
either.
Glenda Ruth Horton
had surprised Falkenberg by not arguing about the need for haste, and
her ranchers were converging on all the river ports, taking heavy
casualties in order to seize boats and fuel before the scattered
Confederate occupation forces could destroy them. Meanwhile
Falkenberg had recklessly flung the regiment northward.
"Firefight
ahead," his driver said. "Another of them one battery
posts."
"Right."
Falkenberg fiddled with the unfamiliar controls until the map came
into sharper focus, then activated the comm circuit.
"Sir,"
Captain Frazer answered. "They've got a battery of 105's and an
MG Company in there. More than I can handle."
"Right, pass it
by. Let Miss Horton's ranchers keep it under siege. Found any more
fuel?"
Frazer laughed
unpleasantly. "Colonel, you can adjust the carburetors in these
things to handle a lot, but Christ, they bloody well won't run on
paraffin. There's not even farm machinery out here! We're running on
fumes now, and damned low-grade fumes at that."
"Yeah."
The Confederates were getting smarter. For the first hundred
kilometers they took fueling stations intact, but now, unless the
patriots were already in control, the fuel was torched before
Frazer's fast-moving scouts arrived. "Keep going as best you
can, Captain."
"Sir. Out."
"We got some
reserve fuel with the guns," Sergeant Major Calvin reminded him.
The big RSM sat in the turret of the command caravan and at frequent
intervals fondled the thirty-mm cannon there. It wasn't much of a
weapon, but it had been a long time since the RSM was gunner in an
armored vehicle. He was hoping to get in some fighting.
"No. Those guns
have to move east to the passes. They're sure to send a reaction
force from the capital, Top Soldier."
But would they?
Falkenberg wondered. Instead of moving northwest from the capital to
reinforce the fortress at Doak's Ferry, they might send troops by sea
to retake Astoria. It would be a stupid move, and Falkenberg counted
on the Confederates acting intelligently. As far as anyone knew, the
Astoria Fortress guns dominated the river mouth.
A detachment of
Weapons Battalion remained there with antiaircraft rockets to keep
reconnaissance at a distance, but otherwise Astoria was held only by
a hastily raised Patriot force stiffened with a handful of
mercenaries. The Friedlander guns had been taken out at night.
If Falkenberg's plan
worked, by the time the Confederates knew what they faced, Astoria
would be strongly held by Valley Patriot armies, and other Patriot
forces would have crossed the water to hold Allansport. It was a
risky battle plan, but it had one merit: it was the only one that
could succeed.
Leading elements of
the regiment covered half the six hundred kilometers north to Doak's
Ferry in ten hours. Behind Falkenberg's racing lead groups the main
body of the regiment moved more ponderously, pausing to blast out
pockets of resistance where that could be quickly done, otherwise
bypassing them for the Patriot irregulars to starve into submission.
The whole Valley was rising, and the further north Falkenberg went
the greater the number of Patriots he encountered. When they reached
the four-hundred-kilometer point, he sent Glenda Ruth Horton eastward
toward the passes to join Major Savage and the Friedland artillery.
Like the regiment, the ranchers moved by a variety of means:
helicopters, GEM's, trucks, mules, and on foot.
"Real boot
straps," Hiram Black said. Black was a short, wind-browned
rancher commissioned colonel by the Free States Council and sent with
Falkenberg to aid in controlling rebel forces. Falkenberg liked the
man's dry humor and hard realism. "General Falkenberg, we got
the damnedest collection in the history of warfare."
"Yes."
There was nothing more to say. In addition to the confused transport
situation, there was no standardization of weapons: they had hunting
pieces, weapons taken from the enemy, the regiment's own equipment,
and stockpiles of arms smuggled in by the Free States before
Falkenberg's arrival. "That's what computers are for,"
Falkenberg said.
"Crossroad
coming up," the driver warned. "Hang on." The crossing
was probably registered by the guns of an untaken post eight
kilometers ahead. Frazer's cavalry had blinded its hilltop
observation radars before passing it by, but the battery would have
had brief sights of the command car.
The driver suddenly
halted. There was a sharp whistle, and an explosion rocked the
caravan. Shrapnel rattled off the armored sides. The car bounded into
life and accelerated.
"Ten credits
you owe me, Seregant Major," the driver said. "Told you
they'd expect me to speed up."
"Think I wanted
to win the bet, Carpenter?" Calvin asked.
They drove through
rolling hills covered with the golden tassels of corn plants. Genetic
engineering had made New Washington's native grain one of the most
valuable food crops in space. Superficially similar to Earth maize,
this corn had a growing cycle of two local years. Toward the end of
the cycle hydrostatic pressures built up until it exploded, but if
harvested in the dry period New Washington corn was high-protein
dehydrated food energy, palatable when cooked in water, and good
fodder for animals as well.
"Ought to be
getting past the opposition now," Hiram Black said. "Expect
the Feddies'll be pulling back to the fort at Doak's Ferry from here
on."
His estimate was
confirmed a half hour later when Falkenberg's comm set squawked into
action. "We're in a little town called Madselin, Colonel,"
Frazer said. "Used to be a garrison here, but they're running up
the road. There's a citizen's committee to welcome us."
"To hell with
the citizen's committee," Falkenberg snapped. "Pursue the
enemy!"
"Colonel, I'd
be very pleased to do so, but I've no petrol at all."
Falkenberg nodded
grimly. "Captain Frazer, I want the scouts as far north as they
can get. Isn't there any transport?"
There was a long
silence. "Well, sir, there are bicycles ..."
"Then use
bicycles, by God! Use whatever you have to, Captain, but until you
are stopped by the enemy you will continue the advance, bypassing
concentrations. Snap at their heels. lan, they're scared. They don't
know what's chasing them, and if you keep the pressure on they won't
stop to find out. Keep going, laddie. I'll bail you out if you get in
trouble."
"Aye,
aye, Colonel. See you in Doak's Ferry."
"Correct. Out."
"Can you keep
that promise, General?" Hiram Black asked.
Falkenberg's pale
blue eyes stared through the rancher. "That depends on how
reliable your Glenda Ruth Horton is, Colonel Black. Your ranchers are
supposed to be gathering along the Valley. With that threat to their
flanks the Confederates will not dare form a defense line south of
Doak's Ferry. If your Patriots don't show up then it's another story
entirely." He shrugged. Behind him the Regiment was strung out
along three hundred kilometers of roads, its only flank protection
its speed and the enemy's uncertainties. "It's up to her in more
ways than one," Falkenberg continued. "She said the main
body of Friedland armor was in the capital area."
Hiram Black sucked
his teeth in a very unmilitary way. "General, if Glenda Ruth's
sure of something, you can damn well count on it."
Sergeant Major
Calvin grunted. The noise spoke his thoughts better than words. It
was a hell of a thing when the life of the Forty-second had to depend
on a young colonial girl.
"How did she
come to command the Valley ranchers, anyway?" Falkenberg asked.
"Inherited it,"
Black answered. "Her father was one hell of a man, General. Got
himself killed in the last battle of the first revolution. She'd been
his chief of staff. Old Josh trusted her more'n he did most of his
officers. So would I, if I was you, General." -
"I already do."
To Falkenberg the regiment was more than a mercenary force. Like any
work of art, it was an instrument perfectly forged - its existence
and perfection its own reason for existence.
But unlike any work
of art, because the regiment was a military unit, it had to fight
battles and take casualties. The men who died in battle were mourned.
They weren't the regiment, though, and it would exist when every man
now in it was dead. The Forty-second had faced defeat before and
might find it again - but this time the regiment itself was at
hazard. Falkenberg was gambling not merely their lives, but the
Forty-second itself.
He studied the
battle maps as they raced northward. By keeping the enemy off
balance, one regiment could do the work of five. Eventually, though,
the Confederates would no longer retreat. They were falling back on
their fortress at Doak's Ferry, gathering strength and concentrating
for a battle that Falkenberg could never win. Therefore that battle
must not be fought until the ranchers had concentrated. Meanwhile,
the regiment must bypass Doak's Ferry and turn east to the mountain
passes, closing them before the Friedland armor and Covenant
Highlanders could debauch onto the western plains.
"Think you'll
make it?" Hiram Black asked. He watched as Falkenberg
manipulated controls to move symbols across the map tank in the
command car. "Seems to me the Friedlanders will reach the pass
before you can."
"They will,"
Falkenberg said. "And if they get through, we're lost." He
twirled a knob, sending a bright blip representing Major Savage with
the artillery racing diagonally from Astoria to Hillyer Gap, while
the main force of the regiment continued up the Columbia, then turned
east to the mountains, covering two legs of a triangle. "Jerry
Savage could be there first, but he won't have enough force to stop
them." Another set of symbols crawled across the map. Instead of
a distinctly formed body, this was a series of rivulets coming
together at the pass. "Miss Horton has also promised to be there
with reinforcements and supplies - enough to hold in the first
battle, anyway. If they delay the Friedlanders long enough for the
rest of us to get there, we'll own the entire agricultural area of
New Washington. The revolution will be better than half over."
"And what if
she can't get there - or they can't hold the Friedlanders and
Covenant boys?" Hiram Black asked.
Sergeant Major
Calvin grunted again.
XVIII
HILLYER GAP WAS a
six-kilometer-wide hilly notch in the high mountain chain. The Aldine
Mountains ran roughly northwest to southeast, and were joined at
their midpoint by the southward stretching Temblors. Just at the join
was the Gap that connected the capital city plain to the east with
the Columbia Valley to the west.
Major Jeremy Savage
regarded his position with satisfaction. He not only had the
twenty-six guns taken from the Friedlanders at Astoria, but another
dozen captured in scattered outposts along the lower Columbia, and
all were securely dug in behind hills overlooking the Gap. Forward of
the guns were six companies of infantry, Second Battalion and half of
Third, with a thousand ranchers behind in reserve.
"We won't be
outflanked, anyway," Centurion Bryant observed. "Ought to
hold just fine, sir."
"We've a
chance," Major Savage agreed. "Thanks to Miss Horton. You
must have driven your men right along."
Glenda Ruth
shrugged. Her irregulars had run low on fuel 180 kilometers west of
the Gap, and she'd brought them on foot in one forced march of thirty
hours, after sending her ammunition supplies ahead with the last
drops of gasoline. "I just came on myself, Major. Wasn't a
question of driving them, the men followed right enough."
Jeremy Savage looked
at her quickly. The slender girl was not very pretty at the moment,
with her coveralls streaked with mud and grease, her hair falling in
strings from under her cap, but he'd rather have seen her just then
than the current Miss Universe. With her troops and ammunition
supplies he had a chance to hold this position. "I suppose they
did at that." Centurion Bryant turned away quickly with
something caught in his throat.
"Can we hold
until Colonel Falkenberg gets here?" Glenda Ruth asked. "I
expect them to send everything they've got."
"We sincerely
hope they do," Jeremy Savage answered. "It's our only
chance, you know. If that armor gets onto open ground ..."
"There's no
other way onto the plains, Major," she replied. "The
Temblors go right on down to the Matson swamplands, and nobody's fool
enough to risk armor there. Great Bend's Patriot country. Between the
swamps and the Patriot irregulars it'd take a week to cross the
Matson. If they're comin' by land, they're comin' through here."
"And they'll be
coming," Savage finished for her. "They'll want to relieve
the Doak's Ferry fortress before we can get it under close siege. At
least that was John Christian's plan, and he's usually right."
Glenda Ruth used her
binoculars to examine the road. There was nothing out there - yet.
"This colonel of yours. What's in this for him? Nobody gets rich
on what we can pay."
"I should think
you'd be glad enough we're here," Jeremy said.
"Oh, I'm glad
all right. In 240 hours Falkenberg's isolated every Confederate
garrison west of the Temblors. The capital city forces are the only
army left to fight - you've almost liberated the planet in one
campaign."
"Luck,"
Jeremy Savage murmured."Lots of it, all good."
"Heh."
Glenda Ruth was contemptuous. "I don't believe in that, no more
do you. Sure, with the Confederates scattered out on occupation duty
anybody who could get troops to move fast enough could cut the
Feddies up before they got into big enough formations to resist. The
fact is, Major, nobody believed that could be done except on maps.
Not with real troops - and he did it. That's not luck, that's
genius."
Savage shrugged. "I
wouldn't dispute that."
"No more would
I. Now answer this - just what is a real military genius doing
commanding mercenaries on a jerkwater agricultural planet? A man like
that should be Lieutenant General of the CoDominium."
"The CD isn't
interested in military genius, Miss Horton. The Grand Senate wants
obedience, not brilliance."
"Maybe. I
hadn't heard Lermontov was a fool, and they made him Grand Admiral.
O. K, the CoDominium had no use for Falkenberg. But why Washington,
Major? With that regiment you could take anyplace but Sparta and give
the Brotherhoods a run for it there." She swept the horizon with
the binoculars, and Savage could not see her eyes.
This girl disturbed
him. No other Free State official questioned the good fortune of
hiring Falkenberg. "The regimental council voted to come here
because we were sick of Tanith, Miss Horton."
"Sure."
She continued to scan the bleak foothills in front of them. "Look,
I'd better get some rest if we've got a fight coming - and we do.
Look just at the horizon on the left side of the road." As she
turned away Centurion Bryant's communicator buzzed. The outposts had
spotted the scout elements of an armored task force.
As Glenda Ruth
walked back to her bunker, her head felt as if it would begin
spinning. She had been born on New Washington and was used to the
planet's forty-hour rotation period, but lack of sleep made her
almost intoxicated even so.
Walking on pillows,
she told herself. That had been Harley Hastings' description of how
they felt when they didn't come in until dawn.
Is Harley out there
with the armor? she wondered.
She hoped not. It
would never have worked, but he's such a good boy. Too much of a boy
though, trying to act like a man. While it's nice to be treated like
a lady sometimes, he could never believe I could do anything for
myself at all. . . .
Two ranchers stood
guard with one of Falkenberg's corporals at her bunker. The corporal
came to a rigid present; the ranchers called a greeting. Glenda Ruth
made a gesture, halfway between a wave and a return of the corporal's
salute and went inside. The contrast couldn't have been greater, she
thought. Her ranchers weren't about to make themselves look silly,
with present arms, and salutes, and the rest of it.
She stumbled inside
and wrapped herself in a thin blanket without undressing. Somehow the
incident outside bothered her. Falkenberg's men were military
professionals. All of them. What were they doing on New Washington?
Howard Bannister
asked them here. He even offered them land for a permanent settlement
and he had no right to do that. There's no way to control a military
force like that without keeping a big standing army, and the cure is
worse than the disease.
But without
Falkenberg the revolution's doomed.
And what happens if
we win it? What will Falkenberg do after it's over? Leave? I'm afraid
of him because he's not the type to just leave.
And, she thought, to
be honest Falkenberg's a very attractive man. I liked just the way he
toasted. Howard gave him the perfect out, but he didn't take it.
She could still
remember him with his glass lifted, an enigmatic smile on his lips -
and then he went into the packing crates himself, along with lan and
his men.
But courage isn't
anything special. What we need here is loyalty, and that he's never
promised at all ...
There was no one to
advise her. Her father was the only man she'd ever really respected.
Before he was killed, he'd tried to tell her that winning the war was
only a small part of the problem. There were countries on Earth that
had gone through fifty bloody revolutions before they were lucky
enough to have a tyrant gain control and stop them. Revolution's the
easy part, as her father used to say. Ruling afterwards - that's
something else entirely.
As she fell asleep
she saw Falkenberg in a dream. What if Falkenberg wouldn't let them
keep their revolution? His hard features softened in a swirling mist.
He was wearing military uniform and sat at a desk, Sergeant Major
Calvin at his side.
"These can
live. Kill those. Send these to the mines," Falkenberg ordered.
The big sergeant
moved tiny figures that looked like model soldiers, but they weren't
all troops. One was her father. Another was a group of her ranchers.
And they weren't models at all. They were real people reduced to
miniatures whose screams could barely be heard as the stern voice
continued to pronounce their dooms. . . .
Brigadier Wilfred
von Mellenthin looked up the hill toward the rebel troop
emplacements, then climbed back down into his command caravan to wait
for his scouts to report. He had insisted that the Confederacy send
his armor west immediately after the news arrived that Astoria had
fallen, but the General Staff wouldn't let him go.
Fools, he thought.
The staff said it was too big a risk. Von Mellenthin's Friedlander
armored task force was the Confederacy's best military unit, and it
couldn't be risked in a trap.
Now the General
Staff was convinced that they faced only one regiment of mercenaries.
One regiment, and that must have taken heavy casualties in storming
Astoria. So the staff said. Von Mellenthin studied the map table and
shrugged.
Someone was holding
the Gap, and he had plenty of respect for the New Washington
ranchers. Given rugged terrain like that in front of him, they could
put up a good fight. A good enough fight to blunt his force. But, he
decided, it was worth it. Beyond the Gap was open terrain, and the
ranchers would have no chance there.
The map changed and
flowed as he watched. Scouts reported, and Von Mellenthin's staff
officers checked the reports, correlated the data, and fed it onto
his displays. The map showed well-dug-in infantry, far more of it
than von Mellenthin had expected. That damned Falkenberg. The man had
an uncanny ability to move troops.
Von Mellenthin
turned to the Chief of Staff. "Horst, do you think he has heavy
guns here already?"
Oberst Carnap
shrugged. "Weiss nicht, Brigadier. Every hour gives Falkenberg
time to dig in at the Gap, and we have lost many hours."
"Not
Falkenberg," von Mellenthin corrected. "He is now investing
the fortress at Doak's Ferry. We have reports from the commandant
there. Most of Falkenberg's force must be far to the west."
He turned back to
his maps. They were as complete as they could be without closer
observation.
As if reading his
mind, Carnap asked, "Shall I send scouting forces, Brigadier?"
Von Mellenthin
stared at the map as if it might tell him one more detail, but it
would not. "No. We go through with everything," he said in
sudden decision. "Kick their arses, don't pee on them."
"Jawohl."
Carnap spoke quietly into the command circuit. Then he looked up
again. "It is my duty to point out the risk, Brigadier. We will
take heavy losses if they have brought up artillery."
"I know. But if
we fail to get through now, we may never relieve the fortress in
time. Half the war is lost when Doak's Ferry is taken. Better heavy
casualties immediately than a long war. I will lead the attack
myself. You will remain with the command caravan."
"Jawohl,
Brigadier."
Von Mellenthin
climbed out of the heavy caravan and into a medium tank. He took his
place in the turret, then spoke quietly to the driver. "Forward."
The armor brushed
the infantry screens aside as if they had not been there. Von
Mellenthin's tanks and their supporting infantry cooperated perfectly
to pin down and root out the opposition. The column moved swiftly
forward to cut the enemy into disorganized fragments for the
following Covenanter infantry to mop up.
Von Mellenthin was
chewing up the blocking force piecemeal as his brigade rushed deeper
into the Gap. It was all too easy, and he thought he knew why.
The sweating tankers
approached the irregular ridge at the very top of the pass. Suddenly
a fury of small arms and mortar fire swept across them. The tanks
moved on, but the infantry scrambled for cover. Armor and infantry
were separated for a moment, and at that instant his lead tanks
reached the mine fields.
Brigadier von
Mellenthin began to worry. Logic told him the mine fields couldn't be
wide or dense, and if he punched through he would reach the soft
headquarters areas of his enemies. Once there his tanks would make
short work of the headquarters and depots, the Covenanter infantry
would secure the pass, and his brigade could charge across the open
fields beyond.
But - if the
defenders had better transport than the General Staff believed, and
thus had thousands of mines, he was dooming his armor.
"Evaluation,"
he demanded. The repeater screen in his command tank swam, then
showed the updated maps. His force was bunched up, and his supporting
infantry was pinned and taking casualties. "Recommendation?"
"Send scouting
forces," Oberst Carnap's voice urged.
Von Mellenthin
considered it for a moment. Compromises in war are often worse than
either course of action. A small force could be lost without gaining
anything. Divided forces can be defeated in detail. He had only
moments to reach a decision. "Boot, don't spatter," he
said. "We go forward."
They reached the
narrowest part of the Gap. His force now bunched together even more,
and his drivers, up to now automatically avoiding terrain features
that might be registered by artillery, had to approach conspicuous
landmarks. Brigadier von Mellenthin gritted his teeth.
The artillery salvo
was perfectly delivered. The brigade had less than a quarter-minute
warning as the radars picked up the incoming projectiles. Then the
shells exploded all at once, dropping among his tanks to brush away
the last of the covering infantry.
As the barrage
lifted, hundreds of men appeared from the ground itself. A near
perfect volley of infantry-carried anti-tank rockets slammed into his
tanks. Then the radars showed more incoming mail - and swam in
confusion.
"Ja, that too,"
von Mellenthin muttered. His counter-battery screens showed a shower
of gunk.
The defenders were
firing chaff, hundreds of thousands of tiny metal chips which slowly
drifted to the ground. Neither side could use radar to aim indirect
fire, but von Mellenthin's armor was under visual observation, while
the enemy guns had never been precisely located.
Another
time-on-target salvo landed. "Damned good shooting," von
Mellenthin muttered to his driver. There weren't more than five
seconds between the first and the last shell's arrival.
The brigade was
being torn apart on this killing ground. The lead elements ran into
more mine fields. Defending infantry crouched in holes and ditches,
tiny little groups that his covering infantry could sweep aside in a
moment if it could get forward, but the infantry was cut off by the
barrages falling behind and around the tanks.
There was no room to
maneuver and no infantry support, the classic nightmare of an armor
commander. The already rough ground was strewn with pits and ditches.
High explosive antitank shells fell all around his force. There were
not many hits yet, but any disabled tanks could be pounded to pieces,
and there was nothing to shoot back at. The lead tanks were under
steady fire, and the assault slowed.
The enemy expended
shells at a prodigal rate. Could they keep it up? If they ran out of
shells it was all over. Von Mellenthin hesitated. Every moment kept
his armor in hell.
Doubts undermined
his determination. Only the Confederate General Staff told him he
faced no more than Falkenberg's Legion, and the staff had been wrong
before. Whatever was out there had taken Astoria before the
commandant could send a single message. At almost the same moment the
observation satellite was killed over Allansport. Every fortress
along the Columbia was invested within hours. Surely not even
Falkenberg could do that with no more than one regiment!
What was he
fighting? If he faced a well-supplied force with transport enough to
continue this bombardment for hours, not minutes, the brigade was
lost. His brigade, the finest armor in the worlds, lost to the faulty
intelligence of these damned colonials!
"Recall the
force. Consolidate at Station Hildebrand." The orders flashed
out, and the tanks fell back, rescuing the pinned infantry and
covering their withdrawal. When the brigade assembled east of the
Gap, von Mellenthin had lost an eighth of his tanks, and he doubted
if he would recover any of them.
XIX
THE HONOR GUARD
presented arms as the command caravan unbuttoned. Falkenberg
acknowledged their salutes and strode briskly into the staff bunker.
"Tensh-Hut!" Sergeant Major Calvin commanded.
"Carry on,
gentlemen. Major Savage, you'll be pleased to know I've brought the
regimental artillery. We landed it yesterday. Getting a bit thin,
wasn't it?"
"That it was,
John Christian," Jeremy Savage answered grimly. "If the
battle had lasted another hour we'd have been out of everything. Miss
Morton, you can relax now - the colonel said carry on."
"I wasn't
sure," Glenda Ruth huffed. She glanced outside where the honor
guard was dispersing and scowled in disapproval. "I'd hate to be
shot for not bowing properly."
Officers and
troopers in the CP tensed, but nothing happened. Falkenberg turned to
Major Savage. "What were the casualties, Major?"
"Heavy, sir. We
have 283 effectives remaining in Second Battalion."
Falkenberg's face
was impassive. "And how many walking wounded?"
"Sir, that
includes the walking wounded."
"I see."
Sixty-five percent casualties, not including the walking wounded.
"And Third?"
"I couldn't put
together a corporal's guard from the two companies. The survivors are
assigned to headquarters duties."
"What's holding
the line out there, Jerry?" Falkenberg demanded.
"Irregulars and
what's left of Second Battalion, Colonel. We are rather glad to see
you, don't you know?"
Glenda Ruth Horton
had a momentary struggle with herself. Whatever she might think about
all the senseless militaristic rituals Falkenberg was addicted to,
honesty demanded that she say something. "Colonel, I owe you an
apology. I'm sorry I implied that your men wouldn't fight at
Astoria."
"The question
is, Miss Horton, will yours? I have two batteries of the
Forty-second's artillery, but I can add nothing to the line itself.
My troops are investing Doaks Ferry, my cavalry and First Battalion
are on Ford Heights, and the regiment will be scattered for three
more days. Are you saying your ranchers can't do as well as my
mercenaries?"
She nodded
unhappily. "Colonel, we could never have stood up to that
attack. The Second's senior centurion told me many of his mortars
were served by only one man before the battle ended. We'll never have
men that steady."
Falkenberg looked
relieved. "Centurion Bryant survived, then."
"Why - yes."
"Then the
Second still lives." Falkenberg nodded to himself in
satisfaction.
"But we can't
stop another attack by that armor!" Glenda Ruth protested.
"But maybe we
won't have to," Falkenberg said. "Miss Horton, I'm betting
that von Mellenthin won't risk his armor until the infantry has
cleared a hole. From his view he's tried and run into something he
can't handle. He doesn't know how close it was.
"Meanwhile,
thanks to your efforts in locating transport, we have the artillery
partly resupplied. Let's see what we can do with what we've got."
Three hours later
they looked up from the maps. "That's it, then," Falkenberg
said.
"Yes."
Glenda Ruth looked over the troop dispositions. "Those forward
patrols are the key to it all," she said carefully.
"Of course."
He reached into his kit bag. "Have a drink?"
"Now?" But
why not? "Thank you, I will." He poured two mess cups
partly full of whiskey and handed her one. "I can't stay long,
though," she said.
He shrugged and
raised the glass. "A willing foe. But not too willing," he
said.
She hesitated a
moment, then drank. "It's a game to you, isn't it?"
"Perhaps. And
to you?"
"I hate it. I
hate all of it. I didn't want to start the rebellion again." She
shuddered. "I've had enough of killing and crippled men and
burned farms - "
"Then why are
you here?" he asked. There was no mockery in his voice - and no
contempt. The question was genuine.
"My friends
asked me to lead them, and I couldn't let them down."
"A good
reason," Falkenberg said.
"Thank you."
She drained the cup."I've got to go now. I have to get into my
battle armor."
"That seems
reasonable, although the bunkers are well built."
"I won't be in
a bunker, Colonel. I'm going on patrol with my ranchers."
Falkenberg regarded
her critically. "I wouldn't think that wise, Miss Horton.
Personal courage in a commanding officer is an admirable trait, but -
"
"I know."
She smiled softly. "But it needn't be demonstrated because it is
assumed, right? Not with us. I can't order the ranchers, and I don't
have years of tradition to keep them - that's the reason for all the
ceremonials, isn't it?" she asked in surprise.
Falkenberg ignored
the question. "The point is, the men follow you. I doubt they'd
fight as hard for me if you're killed."
"Irrelevant,
Colonel. Believe me, I don't want to take this patrol out, but if I
don't take the first one, there may never be another. We're not used
to holding lines, and it's taking some doing to keep my troops
steady."
"And so you
have to shame them into going out."
She shrugged. "If
I go, they will."
"I'll lend you
a Centurion and some headquarters' guards."
"No. Send the
same troops with me that you'll send with any other Patriot force."
She swayed for a moment. Lack of sleep and the whiskey and the knot
of fear in her guts combined for a moment. She held the edge of the
desk for a second while Falkenberg looked at her.
"Oh damn,"
she said. Then she smiled slightly. "John Christian Falkenberg,
don't you see why it has to be this way?"
He nodded. "I
don't have to like it. All right, get your final briefing from the
sergeant major in thirty-five minutes. Good luck, Miss Horton."
"Thank you."
She hesitated but there was nothing more to say.
The patrol moved
silently through low scrub brush. Something fluttered past her face;
a flying squirrel, she thought. There were a lot of gliding creatures
on New Washington.
The low hill smelled
of toluenes from the shells and mortars that had fallen there in the
last battle. The night was pitch dark, with only Franklin's dull red
loom at the far western horizon, so faint that it was sensed, not
seen. Another flying fox chittered past, darting after insects and
screeching into the night.
A dozen ranchers
followed in single file. Behind them came a communications maniple
from the Forty-second's band. Glenda wondered what they did with
their instruments when they went onto combat duty, and wished she'd
asked. The last man on the trail was a Sergeant Hruska, who'd been
sent along by Sergeant Major Calvin at the last minute. Glenda Ruth
had been glad to see him, although she felt guilty about having him
along.
And that's silly,
she told herself. Men think that way. I don't have to. I'm not trying
to prove anything.
The ranchers carried
rifles. Three of Falkenberg's men did also. The other two had
communications gear, and Sergeant Hruska had a submachine gun. It
seemed a pitifully small force to contest ground with Covenant
Highlanders.
They passed through
the final outposts of her nervous ranchers and moved into the valleys
between the hills. Glenda Ruth felt completely alone in the silence
of the night. She wondered if the others felt it too. Certainly the
ranchers did. They were all afraid. What of the mercenaries? she
wondered. They weren't alone, anyway. They were with comrades who
shared their meals and their bunkers.
As long as one of
Falkenberg's men was alive, there would be someone to care about
those lost. And they do care, she told herself. Sergeant Major
Calvin, with his gruff dismissal of casualty reports. "Bah.
Another trooper," he'd said when they told him an old messmate
had bought it in the fight with the armor. Men.
She tried to imagine
the thoughts of a mercenany soldier, but it was impossible. They were
too alien.
Was Falkenberg like
the rest of them?
They were nearly a
kilometer beyond the lines when she found a narrow gulley two meters
deep. It meandered down the hillsides along the approaches to the
outposts behind her, and any attacking force assaulting her sector
would have to pass it. She motioned the men into the ditch.
Waiting was hardest
of all. The ranchers continually moved about, and she had to crawl
along the gulley to whisper them into silence. Hours went by, each an
agony of waiting. She glanced at her watch to see that no time had
elapsed since the last time she'd looked, and resolved not to look
again for a full fifteen minutes.
After what seemed
fifteen minutes, she waited for what was surely another ten, then
looked to see that only eleven minutes had passed altogether. She
turned in disgust to stare into the night, blinking against the
shapes that formed; shapes that couldn't be real.
Why do I keep
thinking about Falkenberg? And why did I call him by his first name?
The vision of him in
her dream still haunted her as well. In the starlit gloom she could
almost see the miniature figures again. Falkenberg's impassive orders
rang in her ears. "Kill this one. Send this one to the mines."
He could do that, she thought. He could -
The miniatures were
joined by larger figures in battle armor. With a sudden start she
knew they were real. Two men stood motionless in the draw below her.
She touched Sergeant
Hruska and pointed. The trooper looked carefully and nodded. As they
watched, more figures joined the pair of scouts, until soon there
were nearly fifty of them in the fold of the hill two hundred meters
away. They were too far for her squad's weapons to have much effect,
and a whispered command sent Hruska crawling along the gulley to
order the men to stay down and be silent.
The group continued
to grow. She couldn't see them all, and since she could count nearly
a hundred she must be observing the assembly area of a full company.
Were these the dreaded Highlanders? Memories of her father's defeat
came unwanted, and she brushed them away. They were only hired men -
but they fought for glory, and somehow that was enough to make them
terrible.
After a long time
the enemy began moving toward her.
They formed a
V-shape with the point aimed almost directly at her position, and she
searched for the ends of the formation. What she saw made her gasp.
Four hundred meters
to her left was another company of soldiers in double file. They
moved silently and swiftly up the hill, and the lead elements were
already far beyond her position. Frantically she looked to the right,
focusing the big electronic light-amplifying glasses - and saw
another company of men half a kilometer away. A full Highlander
Battalion was moving right up her hill in an inverted M, and the
group in front of her was the connecting sweep to link the assault
columns. In minutes they would be among the ranchers in the defense
line.
Still she waited,
until the dozen Highlanders of the point were ten meters from her.
She shouted commands. "Up and at them! Fire!" From both
ends of her ditch the mercenaries' automatic weapons chattered, then
their fire was joined by her riflemen. The point was cut down to a
man, and Sergeant Hruska directed fire on the main body, while Glenda
Ruth shouted into her communicator.
"Fire Mission.
Flash Uncle Four!"
There was a moment's
delay which seemed like years. "Flash Uncle Four." Another
long pause. "On the way," an unemotional voice answered.
She thought it sounded like Falkenberg, but she was too busy to care.
"Reporting,"
she said. "At least one battalion of light infantry in assault
columns is moving up Hill 905 along ridges Uncle and Zebra."
"They're
shifting left." She looked up to see Hruska. The noncom pointed
to the company in front of her position. Small knots of men curled
leftward. They hugged the ground and were visible only for seconds.
"Move some men
to that end of the gulley," she ordered. It was too late to
shift artillery fire. Anyway, if the Highlanders ever got to the top
of the ridge, the ranchers wouldn't hold them. She held her breath
and waited.
There was the scream
of incoming artillery, then the night was lit by bright flashes. VT
shells fell among the distant enemy on the left flank. "Pour it
on!" she shouted into the communicator. "On target!"
"Right. On the
way."
She was sure it was
Falkenberg himself at the other end. Catlike she grinned in the dark.
What was a colonel doing as a telephone orderly? Was he worried about
her? She almost laughed at the thought. Certainly he was, the
ranchers would be hard to handle without her.
The ridge above
erupted in fire. Mortars and grenades joined the artillery pounding
the leftward assault column. Glenda Ruth paused to examine the
critical situation to the right. The assault force five hundred
meters away was untouched and continued to advance toward the top of
the ridge. It was going to be close.
She let the
artillery hold its target another five minutes while her riflemen
engaged the company in front of her, then took up the radio again.
The right-hand column had nearly reached the ridges, and she wondered
if she had waited too long.
"Fire mission.
Flash Zebra Nine."
"Zebra Nine,"
the emotionless voice replied. There was a short delay, then, "On
the way." The fire lifted from the left flank almost
immediately, and two minutes later began to fell five hundred meters
to the right.
"They're
flanking us, Miss," Sergeant Hruska reported. She'd been so busy
directing artillery at the assaults against the ridge line that she'd
actually forgotten her twenty men were engaged in a firefight with
over a hundred enemies. "Shall we pull back?" Hruska asked.
She tried to think,
but it was impossible in the noise and confusion. The assault columns
were still moving ahead, and she had the only group that could
observe the entire attack. Every precious shell had to count "No.
We'll hold on here."
"Right, Miss."
The sergant seemed to be enjoying himself. He moved away to direct
the automatic weapons and rifle fire. How long can we hold? Glenda
Ruth wondered.
She let the
artillery continue to pound the right-hand assault force for twenty
minutes. By then the Highlanders had nearly surrounded her and were
ready to assault from the rear. Prayerfully she lifted the radio
again.
"Fire Mission.
Give me everything you can on Jack Five - and for God's sake don't go
over. We're at Jack Six."
"Flash Jack
Five," the voice acknowledged immediately. There was a pause.
"On the way." They were the most beautiful words she'd ever
heard.
Now they waited. The
Highlanders rose to charge. A wild sound filled the night. MY GOD,
PIPES! She thought. But even as the infantry moved the pipes were
drowned by the whistle of artillery. Glenda Ruth dove to the bottom
of the gulley and saw that the rest of her command had done the same.
The world erupted in
sound. Millions of tiny fragments at enormous velocity filled the
night with death. Cautiously she lifted a small periscope to look
behind her.
The Highlander
company had dissolved. Shells were falling among dead men, lifting
them to be torn apart again and again as the radar-fused shells fell
among them. Glenda Ruth swallowed hard and swept the glass around.
The left assault company had reformed and was turning back to attack
the ridge. "Fire Flash Uncle Four," she said softly.
"Interrogative."
"FLASH UNCLE
FOUR!"
"Uncle Four. On
the way."
As soon as the fire
lifted from behind them her men returned to the lip of the gulley and
resumed firing, but the sounds began to die away.
"We're down to
the ammo in the guns now, Miss," Hruska reported. "May I
have your spare magazines?"
She realized with a
sudden start that she had yet to fire a single shot.
The night wore on.
Whenever the enemy formed up to assault her position he was cut apart
by the merciless artillery. Once she asked for a box barrage all
around her gulley - by that time the men were down to three shots in
each rifle, and the automatic weapons had no ammo at all. The
toneless voice simply answered, "On the way."
An hour before dawn
nothing moved on the hill.
XX
THE THIN NOTES of a
military trumpet sounded across the barren hills of the Gap. The
ridges east of Falkenberg's battle line lay dead, their foliage cut
to shreds by shell fragments, the very earth thrown into crazy-quilt
craters partly burying the dead. A cool wind blew through the Gap,
but it couldn't dispel the smells of nitro and death.
The trumpet sounded
again. Falkenberg's glasses showed three unarmed Highlander officers
carrying a white flag. An ensign was dispatched to meet them, and the
young officer returned with a blindfolded Highlander major.
"Major MacRae,
Fourth Covenant Infantry," the officer introduced himself after
the blindfold was removed. He blinked at the bright lights of the
bunker. "You'll be Colonel Falkenberg."
"Yes. What can
we do for you, Major?"
"I've orders to
offer a truce for burying the dead. Twenty hours, Colonel, if that's
agreeable."'
"No. Four days
and nights - 160 hours, Major," Falkenberg said.
"A hundred
sixty hours, Colonel?" The burly Highlander regarded Falkenberg
suspiciously. "You'll want that time to complete your defenses."
"Perhaps. But
twenty hours is not enough time to transfer the wounded men. I'll
return all of yours - under parole, of course. It's no secret I'm
short of medical supplies, and they'll receive better care from their
own surgeons."
The Highlander's
face showed nothing, but he paused. "You wouldn't tell me how
many there be?" He was silent for a moment, then speaking very
fast, he said, "The time you set is within my discretion,
Colonel." He held out a bulky dispatch case. "My
credentials and instructions. " 'Twas a bloody battle, Colonel.
How many of my laddies have ye killed?"
Falkenberg and
Glenda Ruth glanced at each other. There is a bond between those who
have been in combat together, and it can include those of the other
side. The Covenant officer stood impassively, unwilling to say more,
but his eyes pleaded with them.
"We counted 409
bodies, Major," Glenda Ruth told him gently. "And - "
she looked at Falkenberg, who nodded. "We brought in another 370
wounded." The usual combat ratio is four men wounded to each
killed; nearly sixteen hundred Covenanters must have been taken out
of action in the assault. Toward the end the Highlanders were losing
men in their efforts to recover their dead and wounded.
"Less than four
hundred," the major said sadly. He stood to rigid attention.
"Hae your men search the ground well, Colonel. There's aye more
o' my lads out there." He saluted and waited for the blindfold
to be fixed again. "I thank you, Colonel."
As the mercenary
officer was led away Falkenberg turned to Glenda Ruth with a wistful
smile. "Try to bribe him with money and he'd challenge me, but
when I offer him his men back - " He shook his head sadly.
"Have they
really given up?" Glenda Ruth asked.
"Yes. The truce
finishes it. Their only chance was to break through before we brought
up more ammunition and reserves, and they know it."
"But why? In
the last revolution they were so terrible, and now - why?"
"It's the
weakness of mercenaries," Falkenberg explained crisply. "The
fruits of victory belong to our employers, not us. Friedland can't
lose her armor and Covenant can't lose her men, or they've nothing
more to sell."
"But they
fought before!"
"Sure, in a
fluid battle of maneuver. A frontal assault is always the most costly
kind of battle. They tried to force the passage, and we beat them
fairly. Honor is satisfied. Now the Confederacy will have to bring up
its own Regulars if they want to force a way through the Gap. I don't
think they'll squander men like that, and anyway it takes time.
Meanwhile we've got to go to Allansport and deal with a crisis."
"What's wrong
there?" she asked.
This came in
regimental code this morning." He handed her a message flimsy.
FALKENBERG FROM
SVOBODA BREAK PATRIOT ARMY LOOTING ALLANSPORT STOP REQUEST COURT OF
INQUIRY INVESTIGATE POSSIBLE VIOLATIONS OF LAWS OF WAR STOP EXTREMELY
INADVISABLE FOR ME TO COMPLY WITH YOUR ORDERS TO JOIN REGIMENT STOP
PATRIOT ARMY ACTIONS PROVOKING SABOTAGE AND REVOLT AMONG TOWNSPEOPLE
AND MINERS STOP MY SECURITY FORCES MAY BE REQUIRED TO HOLD THE CITY
STOP AWAIT YOUR ORDERS STOP RESPECTFULLY ANTON SVOBODA BREAK BREAK
MESSAGE ENDSXXX
She read it twice.
"My God, Colonel - what's going on there?"
"I don't know,"
he said grimly. "I intend to find out. Will you come with me as
a representative of the Patriot Council?"
"Of course -
but shouldn't we send for Howard Bannister? The Council elected him
President."
"If we need him
we'll get him. Sergeant Major."
"Sir!"
"Put Miss
Horton's things on the troop carrier with mine. I'll take the
Headquarters Guard platoon to Allansport."
"Sir. Colonel,
you'll want me along." "Will I? I suppose so, Sergeant
Major. Get your gear aboard."
"Sir."
"It's probably
already there, of course. Let's move out."
The personnel
carrier took them to a small airfield where a jet waited. It was one
of forty on the planet, and it would carry a hundred men; but it
burned fuel needed for ammunition transport. Until the oil fields
around Doak's Ferry could be secured it was fuel they could hardly
afford.
The plane flew
across Patriot-held areas, staying well away from the isolated
Confederate strongpoints remaining west of the Gap. Aircraft had
little chance of surviving in a combat environment when any
infantryman could carry target-seeking rockets, while trucks could
carry equipment to defeat airborne countermea-sures. They crossed the
Columbia Valley and turned southwest over the broad forests of Ford
Heights Plateau, then west again to avoid Preston Bay where pockets
of Confederates remained after the fall of the main fortress.
"You do the
same thing, don't you?" Glenda Ruth said suddenly. "When we
assaulted Preston Bay you let my people take the casualties."
Falkenberg nodded.
"For two reasons. I'm as reluctant to lose troops as the
Highlanders - and without the regiment you'd not hold the Patriot
areas a thousand hours. You need us as an intact force, not a pile of
corpses."
"Yes." It
was true enough, but those were her friends who'd died in the
assault. Would the outcome be worth it? Would Falkenberg let it be
worth it?
Captain Svoboda met
them at the Allansport field. "Glad to see you, sir. It's pretty
bad in town."
"Just what
happened, Captain?" Svoboda looked critically at Glenda Ruth,
but Falkenberg said, "Report."
"Yes, sir. When
the provisional governor arrived I turned over administration of the
city as ordered. At that time the peninsula was pacified, largely due
to the efforts of Mayor Hastings, who wants to avoid damage to the
city. Hastings believes Franklin will send a large army from the home
planet and says he sees no point in getting Loyalists killed and the
city burned in resistance that won't change the final outcome
anyway."
"Poor Roger -
he always tries to be reasonable, and it never works," Glenda
Ruth said. "But Franklin will send troops."
"Possibly,"
Falkenberg said. "But it takes time for them to mobilize and
organize transport. Continue, Captain Svoboda."
"Sir. The
Governor posted a list of proscribed persons whose property was
forfeit. If that wasn't enough, he told his troops that if they found
any Confederate government property, they could keep half its value.
You'll see the results when we get to town, Colonel. There was
looting and fire that my security forces and the local fire people
only barely managed to control."
"Oh, Lord,"
Glenda Ruth murmured. "Why?"
Svoboda curled his
lip. "Looters often do that, Miss Horton. You can't let troops
sack a city and not expect damage. The outcome was predictable,
Colonel. Many townspeople took to the hills, particularly the miners.
They've taken several of the mining towns back."
Captain Svoboda
shrugged helplessly. "The railway is cut. The city itself is
secure, but I can't say how long. You only left me 150 troops to
control eleven thousand people, which I did with hostages. The
Governor brought another nine hundred men and that's not enough to
rule their way. He's asked Preston Bay for more soldiers."
"Is that where
the first group came from?" Glenda Ruth asked.
"Yes, Miss. A
number of them, anyway."
"Then its
understandable if not excusable, Colonel," she said. "Many
ranches on Ford Heights were burned out by Loyalists in the first
revolution. I suppose they think they're paying the Loyalists back."
Falkenberg nodded.
"Sergeant Major!"
"Sir!"
"Put the Guard
in battle armor and combat weapons. Captain, we are going to pay a
call on your provisional governor. Alert your men."
"Colonel!"
Glenda Ruth protested. "You - what are you going to do?"
"Miss Horton, I
left an undamaged town, which is now a nest of opposition. I'd like
to know why. Let's go, Svoboda."
City Hall stood
undamaged among burned-out streets. The town smelled of scorched wood
and death, as if there'd been a major battle fought in the downtown
area. Falkenberg sat impassive as Glenda Ruth stared unbelievingly at
what had been the richest city outside the capital area.
"I tried,
Colonel," Svoboda muttered. He blamed himself anyway. "I'd
have had to fire on the Patriots and arrest the governor. You were
out of communication, and I didn't want to take that responsibility
without orders. Should I have, sir?"
Falkenberg didn't
answer. Possible violations of mercenary contracts were always
delicate situations. Finally he said, "I can hardly blame you
for not wanting to involve the regiment in war with our sponsors."
The Patriot
irregular guards at City Hall protested as Falkenberg strode briskly
toward the Governor's office. They tried to bar the way, but when
they saw his forty guardsmen in battle armor they moved aside.
The governor was a
broad-shouldered former rancher who'd done well in commodities
speculation. He was a skilled salesman, master of the friendly grip
on the elbow and pat on the shoulder, the casual words in the right
places, but he had no experience in military command. He glanced
nervously at Sergeant Major Calvin and the grimfaced guards outside
his office as Glenda introduced Falkenberg.
"Governor Jack
Silana," she said. "The governor was active in the first
revolution, and without his financial help we'd never have been able
to pay your passage here, Colonel."
"I see."
Falkenberg ignored the governor's offered hand. "Did you
authorize more looting, Governor?" he asked. "I see some's
still going on."
"Your
mercenaries have all the tax money," Silana protested. He tried
to grin."My troops are being ruined to pay you. Why shouldn't
the Fedsymps contribute to the war? Anyway, the real trouble began
when a town girl insulted one of my soldiers. He struck her. Some
townspeople interfered, and his comrades came to help. A riot started
and someone called out the garrison to stop it - "
"And you lost
control," Falkenberg said.
"The traitors
got no more than they deserve anyway! Don't think they didn't loot
cities when they won, Colonel. These men have seen ranches burned
out, and they know Allansport's a nest of Fedsymp traitors."
"I see."
Falkenberg turned to his Provost. "Captain, had you formally
relinquished control to Governor Silana before this happened?"
"Yes, sir. As
ordered."
"Then it's none
of the regiment's concern. Were any of our troops involved?"
Svoboda nodded
unhappily. "I have seven troopers and Sergeant Magee in arrest,
sir. I've held summary court on six others myself."
"What charges
are you preferring against Magee?" Falkenberg had personally
promoted Magee once. The man had a mean streak, but he was a good
soldier.
"Looting. Drunk
on duty. Theft. And conduct prejudicial. "
"And the
others?"
"Three rapes,
four grand theft, and one murder, sir. They're being held for a
court. I also request an inquiry into my conduct as commander."
"Granted.
Sergeant Major."
"Sir!"
"Take custody
of the prisoners and convene a General Court. What officers have we
for an investigation?"
"Captain
Greenwood's posted for light duty only by the surgeon, sir."
"Excellent.
Have him conduct a formal inquiry into Captain Svoboda's
administration of the city."
"Sir."
"What will happen to those men?" Glenda Ruth asked.
"The rapists
and murderer will be hanged if convicted. Hard duty for the rest."
"You'd hang
your own men?" she asked. She didn't believe it, and her voice
showed it.
"I cannot allow
rot in my regiment," Falkenberg snapped. "In any event the
Confederacy will protest this violation of the Laws of War to the
CD."
Governor Silana
laughed. "We protested often enough in the last revolution, and
nothing came of it. I think we can chance it."
"Perhaps. I
take it you will do nothing about this?"
"I'll issue
orders for the looting to stop."
"Haven't you
done so already?"
"Well, yes,
Colonel - but the men, well, they're about over their mad now, I
think."
"If previous
orders haven't stopped it, more won't. You'll have to be prepared to
punish violators. Are you?"
"I'll be damned
if I'll hang my own soldiers to protect traitors!"
"I see.
Governor, how do you propose to pacify this area?"
"I've sent for
reinforcements - "
"Yes. Thank
you. If you'll excuse us, Governor, Miss Horton and I have an
errand." He hustled Glenda Ruth out of the office. "Sergeant
Major, bring Mayor Hastings and Colonel Ardway to Captain Svoboda's
office."
"They shot
Colonel Ardway," Svoboda said. "The mayor's in the city
jail."
"Jail?"
Falkenberg muttered.
"Yes, sir. I
had the hostages in the hotel, but Governor Silana - "
"I see. Carry
on, Sergeant Major."
"Sir!"
"What do you
want now, you bloody bastard?" Hastings demanded ten minutes
later. The mayor was haggard, with several days' growth of stubble,
and his face and hands showed the grime of confinement without proper
hygiene facilities.
"One thing at a
time, Mr. Mayor. Any trouble, Sergeant Major?"
Calvin grinned. "Not
much, sir. The officer didn't want no problems with the Guard -
Colonel, they got all them hostages crammed into cells."
"What have you
done with my wife and children?" Roger Hastings demanded
frantically. "I haven't heard anything for days."
Falkenberg looked
inquiringly at Svoboda but got only a headshake. "See to the
mayor's family, Sergeant Major. Bring them here. Mr. Hastings, do I
understand that you believe this is my doing?"
"If you hadn't
taken this city ..."
"That was a
legitimate military operation. Have you charges to bring against my
troops?"
"How would I
know?" Hastings felt weak. He hadn't been fed properly for days,
and he was sick with worry about his family. As he leaned against the
desk he saw Glenda Ruth for the first time. "You too, eh?"
"It was none of
my doing, Roger." He had almost become her father-in-law. She
wondered where young Lieutenant Harley Hastings was. Although she'd
broken their engagement long ago, their disagreements had mostly been
political, and they were still friends. "I'm sorry."
"It was your
doing, you and the damned rebels. Oh, sure, you don't like burning
cities and killing civilians, but it happens all the same - and you
started the war. You can't shed the responsibility."
Falkenberg
interrupted him. "Mr. Mayor, we have mutual interests still.
This peninsula raises little food, and your people cannot survive
without supplies, I'm told over a thousand of your people were killed
in the riots, and nearly that many are in the hills. Can you get the
automated factories and smelters operating with what's left?"
"After all this
you expect me to - I won't do one damn thing for you, Falkenberg!"
"I didn't ask
if you would, only if it could be done."
"What
difference does it make?"
"I doubt you
want to see the rest of your people starving, Mr. Mayor. Captain,
take the mayor to your quarters and get him cleaned up. By the time
you've done that Sergeant Major Calvin will know what happened to his
family." Falkenberg nodded dismissal and turned to Glenda Ruth.
"Well, Miss Horton? Have you seen enough?"
"I don't
understand."
"I am
requesting you to relieve Silana of his post and return
administration of this city to the regiment. Will you do it?"
Good Lord! she
thought. "I haven't the authority."
"You've got
more influence in the Patriot army than anyone else. The Council may
not like it, but they'll take it from you. Meanwhile, I'm sending for
the Sappers to rebuild this city and get the foundries going."
Everything moves so
fast. Not even Joshua Horton had made things happen like this man.
"Colonel, what is your interest in Allansport?"
"It's the only
industrial area we control. There will be no more military supplies
from off planet. We hold everything west of the Temblors. The Matson
Valley is rising in support of the revolution, and we'll have it
soon. We can follow the Matson to Vancouver and take that - and then
what?"
"Why - then we
take the capital city! The revolution's over!"
"No. That was
the mistake you made last time. Do you really think your farmers,
even with the Forty-second, can move onto level, roaded ground and
fight set-piece battles? We've no chance under those conditions."
"But - "
He was right. She'd always known it. When they defeated the
Friedlanders at the Gap she'd dared hope, but the capital plains were
not Hillyer Gap. "So it's back to attrition."
Falkenberg nodded.
"We do hold all the agricultural areas. The Confederates will
begin to feel the pinch soon enough. Meanwhile we chew around the
edges. Franklin will have to let go - there's no profit in keeping
colonies that cost money. They may try landing armies from the home
world, but they'll not take us by surprise and they don't have that
big an army. Eventually we'll wear them down."
She nodded sadly. It
would be a long war after all, and she'd have to be in it, always
raising fresh troops as the ranchers began to go home again - it
would be tough enough holding what they had when people realized what
they were in for. "But how do we pay your troops in a long war?"
"Perhaps you'll
have to do without us." "You know we can't. And you've
always known it. What do you want?"
"Right now I
want you to relieve Silana. Immediately." "What's the
hurry? As you say, it's going to be a long war.
"It'll be
longer if more of the city is burned." He almost told her more,
and cursed himself for the weakness of temptation. She was only a
girl, and he'd known thousands of them since Grace left him all those
years ago. The bond of combat wouldn't explain it, he'd known other
girls who were competent officers, many of them - so why was he
tempted at all? "I'm sorry," he said gruffly. "I must
insist. As you say, you can't do without us."
Glenda Ruth had
grown up among politicians and for four years had been a
revolutionary leader herself. She knew Falkenberg's momentary
hesitation was important, and that she'd never find out what it
meant.
What was under that
mask? Was there a man in there making all those whirlwind decisions?
Falkenberg dominated every situation he fell into, and a man like
that wanted more than money. The vision of Falkenberg seated at a
desk pronouncing dooms on her people haunted her still.
And yet. There was
more. A warrior leader of warriors who had won the adoration of
uneducated privates - and men like Jeremy Savage as well. She'd never
met anyone like him.
"I'll do it."
She smiled and walked across the room to stand next to him. "I
don't know why, but I'll do it. Have you got any friends, John
Christian Falkenberg?"
The question
startled him. Automatically he answered. "Command can have no
friends, Miss Horton."
She smiled again.
"You have one now. There's a condition to my offer. From now on,
you call me Glenda Ruth. Please?"
A curious smile
formed on the soldier's face. He regarded her with amusement, but
there was something more as well. "It doesn't work, you know."
"What doesn't
work?"
"Whatever
you're trying. Like me, you've command responsibilities. It's lonely,
and you don't like that. The reason command has no friends, Glenda
Ruth, is not merely to spare the commander the pain of sending
friends to their death. If you haven't learned the rest of it, learn
it now, because some day you'll have to betray either your friends or
your command, and that's a choice worth avoiding."
What am I doing? Am
I trying to protect the revolution by getting to know him better - or
is he right, I've no friends either, and he's the only man I ever met
who could be - She let the thought fade out, and laid her hand on
his for a brief second. "Let's go tell Governor Silana, John
Christian. And let the little girl worry about her own emotions, will
you? She knows what she's doing."
He stood next to
her. They were very close and for a moment she thought he intended to
kiss her. "No, you don't."
She wanted to
answer, but he was already leaving the room and she had to hurry to
catch him.
XXI
"I SAY WE only
gave the Fedsymp traitors what they deserved!" Jack Silana
shouted. There was a mutter of approval from the delegates, and open
cheers in the bleachers overlooking the gymnasium floor. "I have
great respect for Glenda Ruth, but she is not old Joshua,"
Silana continued. "Her action in removing me from a post given
by President Bannister was without authority. I demand that the
Council repudiate it." There was more applause as Silana took
his seat.
Glenda Ruth remained
at her seat for a moment. She looked carefully at each of the thirty
men and women at the horseshoe table, trying to estimate just how
many votes she had. Not a majority, certainly, but perhaps a dozen.
She wouldn't have to persuade more than three or four to abandon the
Bannister-Silana faction, but what then? The bloc she led was no more
solid than Bannister's coalition. Just who would govern the Free
States?
More men were seated
on the gymnasium floor beyond the council table. They were witnesses,
but their placement at the focus of the Council's attention made it
look as if Falkenberg and his impassive officers might be in the
dock. Mayor Hastings sat with Falkenberg, and the illusion was
heightened by the signs of harsh treatment he'd received. Some of his
friends looked even worse.
Beyond the witnesses
the spectators chattered among themselves as if this were a
basketball game rather than a solemn meeting of the supreme authority
for three-quarters of New Washington. A gymnasium didn't seem a very
dignified place to meet anyway, but there was no larger hall in
Astoria Fortress.
Finally she stood.
"No, I am not my father," she began. "He would have
had Jack Silana shot for his actions!"
"Give it to
'em, Glenda Ruth!" someone shouted from the balcony.
Howard Bannister
looked up in surprise. "We will have order here!"
"Hump it, you
Preston Bay bastard!" the voice replied. The elderly rancher was
joined by someone below. "Damn right, Ford Heights don't control
the Valley!" There were cheers at that.
"Order! Order!"
Bannister's commands drowned the shouting as the technicians turned
up the amplifiers to full volume. "Miss Horton, you have the
floor."
"Thank you.
What I was trying to say is that we did not start this revolution to
destroy New Washington! We must live with the Loyalists once it is
over, and - "
"Fedsymp! She
was engaged to a Feddie soldier!" "Shut up and let her
talk!" "Order! ORDER!"
Falkenberg sat
motionless as the hall returned to silence, and Glenda Ruth tried to
speak again. "Bloody noisy lot," Jeremy Savage murmured.
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Victory does that to politicians."
Glenda Ruth
described the conditions she'd seen in Allansport. She told of the
burned-out city, hostages herded into jail cells -
"Serves the
Fedsymps right!" someone interrupted, but she managed to
continue before her supporters could answer.
"Certainly they
are Loyalists. Over a third of the people in the territory we control
are. Loyalists are a majority in the capital city. Will it help if we
persecute their friends here?"
"We won't ever
take the capital the way we're fighting!" "Damn right! Time
we moved on the Feddies." "Send the mercenaries in there,
let 'em earn the taxes we pay!"
This time Bannister
made little effort to control the crowd. They were saying what he had
proposed to the Council, and one reason he supported Silana was
because he needed the governor's merchant bloc with him on the war
issue. After the crowd had shouted enough about renewing the war,
Bannister used the microphone to restore order and let Glenda Ruth
speak.
The Council
adjourned for the day without deciding anything. Falkenberg waited
for Glenda Ruth and walked out with her. "I'm glad we didn't get
a vote today," she told him. "I don't think we'd have won."
"Noisy
beggars," Major Savage observed again.
"Democracy at
work," Falkenberg said coldly. "What do you need to
convince the Council that Silana is unfit as a governor?"
"That's not the
real issue, John," she answered. "It's really the war. No
one is satisfied with what's being done."
"I should have
thought we were doing splendidly," Savage retorted. "The
last Confederate thrust into the Matson ran into your ambush as
planned."
"Yes, that was
brilliant," Glenda Ruth said.
"Hardly. It was
the only possible attack route," Falkenberg answered. "You're
very quiet, Mayor Hastings." They had left the gymnasium and
were crossing the parade ground to the barracks where the
Friedlanders had been quartered. Falkenberg's troops had it now, and
they kept the Allansport officials with them.
"I'm afraid of
that vote," Hastings said. "If they send Silana back, we'll
lose everything."
"Then support
me!" Falkenberg snapped. "My engineers already have the
automated factories and mills in reasonable shape. With some help
from you they'd be running again. Then I'd have real arguments
against Silana's policies."
"But that's
treason," Hastings protested. "You need the Allansport
industry for your war effort. Colonel, it's a hell of a way to thank
you for rescuing my family from that butcher, but I can't do it."
"I suppose
you're expecting a miracle to save you?" Falkenberg asked.
"No. But what
happens if you win? How long will you stay on the Ranier Peninsula?
Bannister's people will be there one of these days - Colonel, my only
chance is for the Confederacy to bring in Franklin troops and crush
the lot of you!"
"And you'll be
ruled from Franklin," Glenda Ruth said. "They won't give
you as much home rule as you had last time."
"I know,"
Roger said miserably. "But what can I do? This revolt ruined our
best chance. Franklin might have been reasonable in time - I was
going to give good government to everyone. But you finished that."
"All of
Franklin's satraps weren't like you, Roger," Glenda Ruth said.
"And don't forget their war policies! They'd have got us sucked
into their schemes and eventually we'd have been fighting the
CoDominum itself. Colonel Falkenberg can tell you what it's like to
be victim of a CD punitive expedition!"
"Christ, I
don't know what to do," Roger said unhappily.
Falkenberg muttered
something which the others didn't catch, then said, "Glenda
Ruth, if you will excuse me, Major Savage and I have administrative
matters to discuss. I would be pleased if you'd join me for dinner in
the Officers' Mess at nineteen hundred hours."
"Why - thank
you, John. I'd like to, but I must see the other delegates tonight.
We may be able to win that vote tomorrow."
Falkenberg shrugged.
"I doubt it. If you can't win it, can you delay it?"
"For a few
days, perhaps - why?"
"It might help,
that's all. If you can't make dinner, the regiment's officers are
entertaining guests in the mess until quite late. Will you join us
when you're done with politics?"
"Thank you.
Yes, I will." As she crossed the parade ground to her own
quarters, she wished she knew what Falkenberg and Savage were
discussing. It wouldn't be administration - did it matter what the
Council decided?
She looked forward
to seeing John later, and the anticipation made her feel guilt. What
is there about the man that does this to me? He's handsome enough,
broad shoulders and thoroughly military - nonsense. I am damned if
I'll believe in some atavistic compulsion to fall in love with
warriors, I don't care what the anthropologists say. So why do I want
to be with him? She pushed the thought away. There was something more
important to think about. What would Falkenberg do if the Council
voted against him? And beyond that, what would she do when he did it?
Falkenberg led Roger
Hastings into his office. "Please be seated, Mr. Mayor."
Roger sat
uncomfortably. "Look, Colonel, I'd like to help, but - "
"Mayor
Hastings, would the owners of the Allansport industries rather have
half of a going concern, or all of nothing?"
"What's that
supposed to mean?"
"I will
guarantee protection of the foundries and smelters in return for a
half interest in them." When Hastings looked up in astonishment,
Falkenberg continued. "Why not? Silana will seize them anyway.
If my regiment is part owner, I may be able to stop him."
"It wouldn't
mean anything if I granted it," Hastings protested. "The
owners are on Franklin."
"You are the
ranking Confederate official for the entire Ranier Peninsula,"
Falkenberg said carefully. "Legal or not, I want your signature
on this grant." He handed Roger a sheaf of papers.
Hastings read them
carefully. "Colonel, this also confirms a land grant given by
the rebel government! I can't do that!"
"Why not? It's
all public land - and that is in your power. The document states that
in exchange for protection of lives and property of the citizens of
Allansport you are awarding certain lands to my regiment. It notes
that you don't consider a previous grant by the Patriot Government to
be valid. There's no question of treason - you do want Allansport
protected against Silana, don't you?"
"Are you
offering to double-cross the Patriots?"
"No. My
contract with Bannister specifically states that I cannot be made
party to violations of the Laws of War. This document hires me to
enforce them in an area already pacified. It doesn't state who might
violate them."
"You're skating
on damned thin ice, Colonel. If the Council ever saw this paper
they'd hang you for treason!" Roger read it again. "I see
no harm in signing, but I tell you in advance the Confederacy won't
honor it. If Franklin wins this they'll throw you off this planet -
if they don't have you shot."
"Let me worry
about the future, Mr. Mayor. Right now your problem is protecting
your people. You can help with that by signing."
"I doubt it,"
Hastings said. He reached for a pen. "So long as you know there
isn't a shadow of validity to this because I'll be countermanded from
the home world - " he scrawled his name and title across the
papers and handed them back to Falkenberg.
Glenda Ruth could
hear the regimental party across the wide parade ground. As she
approached with Hiram Black they seemed to be breasting their way
upstream through waves of sound, the crash of drums, throbbing,
wailing bagpipes, mixed with off-key songs from intoxicated male
baritones.
It was worse inside.
As they entered a flashing saber swept within inches of her face. A
junior captain saluted and apologized in a stream of words. "I
was showing Oberleutnant Marcks a new parry I learned on Sparta,
Miss. Please forgive me?" When she nodded the captain drew his
companion to one side and the saber whirled again.
"That's a
Friedland officer - all the Friedlanders are here," Glenda Ruth
said. Hiram Black nodded grimly. The captured mercenaries wore dress
uniform, green and gold contrasting with the blue and gold of
Falkenberg's men. Medals flashed in the bright overhead lights. She
looked across the glittering room and saw the colonel at a table on
the far side.
Falkenberg and his
companion stood when she reached the table after a perilous journey
across the crowded floor. Pipers marched past pouring out more sound.
Falkenberg's face
was flushed, and she wondered if he were drunk. "Miss Morton,
may I present Major Oscar von Thoma," he said formally. "Major
von Thoma commands the Friedland artillery battalion."
"I - " She
didn't know what to say. The Friedlanders were enemies, and
Falkenberg was introducing her to the officer as his guest. "My
pleasure," she stammered. "And this is Colonel Hiram
Black."
Von Thoma clicked
his heels The men stood stiffly until she was seated next to
Falkenberg. That kind of chivalry had almost vanished, but somehow it
seemed appropriate here. As the stewards brought glasses von Thoma
turned to Falkenberg. "You ask too much," he said.
"Besides, you may have fired the lands from the barrels by
then."
"If we have
we'll reduce the price," Falkenberg said cheerfully. He noted
Glenda Ruth's puzzled expression. "Major von Thoma has asked if
he can buy his guns back when the campaign is ended. He doesn't care
for my terms."
Hiram Black observed
drily, "Seems to me the Council's goin' to want a say in fixin'
that price, General Falkenberg."
Falkenberg snorted
contemptuously. "No."
He is drunk, Glenda
Ruth thought. It doesn't show much, but - do I know him that well
already?
"Those guns
were taken by the Forty-second without Council help. I will see to it
that they aren't used against Patriots, and the Council has no
further interest in the matter." Falkenberg turned to Glenda
Ruth. "Will you win the vote tomorrow?"
"There won't be
a vote tomorrow."
"So you can't
win," Falkenberg muttered. "Expected that. What about the
war policy vote?"
"They'll be
debating for the next two days - " she looked nervously at Major
von Thoma. "I don't want to be impolite, but should we discuss
that with him at the table?"
"I understand."
Von Thoma got unsteadily to his feet. "We will speak of this
again, Colonel. It has been my pleasure, Miss Horton. Colonel Black."
He bowed stiffly to each and went to the big center table where a
number of Friedland officers were drinking with Falkenberg's.
"John, is this
wise?" she asked. "Some of the Councillors are already
accusing you of not wanting to fight - "
"Hell, they're
callin' him a traitor," Black interrupted. "Soft on
Fedsymps, consortin' with the enemy - they don't even like you
recruitin' new men to replace your losses." Black hoisted a
glass of whiskey and drained it at one gulp. "I wish some of 'em
had been ridin' up the Valley with us! Glenda Ruth, that was some
ride. And when Captain Frazer runs out of fuel, Falkenberg tells him,
cool as you please, to use bicycles!" Black chuckled in
rememberance.
"I'm serious!"
Glenda Ruth protested. "John, Bannister hates you. I think he
always has." The stewards brought whiskey for Falkenberg. "Wine
or whiskey, Miss?" one asked.
"Wine - John,
please, they're going to order you to attack the capital!"
"Interesting."
His features tightened suddenly, and his eyes became alert. Then he
relaxed and let the whiskey take effect. "If we obey those
orders I'll need Major von Thoma's good offices to get my equipment
back. Doesn't Bannister know what will happen if we let them catch us
on those open plains?"
"Howie
Bannister knows his way 'round a conspiracy better'n he does a
battlefield, General," Black observed. "We give him the
secretary of war title 'cause we thought he'd drive a hard bargain
with you, but he's not much on battles."
"I've noticed,"
Falkenberg said. He laid his hand on Glenda Ruth's arm and gently
stroked it. It was the first time he'd ever touched her, and she sat
very still. "This is supposed to be a party," Falkenberg
laughed. He looked up and caught the mess president's eye.
"Lieutenant, have Pipe Major give us a song!"
The room was
instantly still. Glenda Ruth felt the warmth of Falkenberg's hand.
The soft caress promised much more, and she was suddenly glad, but
there was a stab of fear as well. He'd spoken so softly, yet all
those people had stopped their drinking, the drums ceased, the pipes,
everything, at his one careless nod. Power like that was frightening.
The burly Pipe Major
selected a young tenor. One pipe and a snare drum played as he began
to sing. "Oh Hae ye nae heard o' the false Sakeld, Hae ye nae
heard o' the keen Lord Scroop? For he ha' ta'en the Kinmont Willie,
to Haribee for to hang him up . . ."
"John, please
listen," she pleaded.
"They hae ta'en
the news to the Bold Bacleugh, in Branksome Ha where he did lay, that
Lord Scroop has ta'en the Kinmont Willie, between the hours of night
and day.
He has ta'en the
table wi' his hand, he has made the red wine spring on hie. Now
Christ's curse be on my head, he said, but avenged of Lord Scroop I
will be."
"John, really."
"Perhaps you
should listen," he said gently. He raised his glass as the young
voice rose and the tempo gathered.
"O is my basnet
a widow's curch?
Or my lance the Wand
o' the willow tree?
And is my hand a
lady's lilly hand,
That this English
lord should lightly me?"
The song ended.
Falkenberg signaled to the steward. "We'll have more to drink,"
he said. "And no more talk of politics."
They spent the rest
of the evening enjoying the party. Both the Friedlanders and
Falkenberg's mercenary officers were educated men, and it was a very
pleasant evening for Glenda Ruth to have a room full of warriors
competing to please her. They taught her the dances and wild songs of
a dozen cultures, and she drank far too much.
Finally he stood.
"I'll see you back to your quarters," Falkenberg told her.
"All right."
She took his arm, and they went through the thinning crowd. "Do
you often have parties like this?" she asked.
"When we can."
They reached the door. A white-coated private appeared from nowhere
to open it for them. He had a jagged scar across his face that ran
down his neck until it disappeared into his collar, and she thought
she would be afraid to meet him anywhere else.
"Good night,
Miss," the private said. His voice had a strange quality, almost
husky, as if he were very concerned about her.
They crossed the
parade ground. The night was clear, and the sky was full of stars.
The sounds of the river rushing by came faintly up to the old
fortress.
"I didn't want
it ever to end," she said.
"Why?"
"Because -
you've built an artificial world in there. A wall of glory to shut
out the realities of what we do. And when it ends we go back to the
war." And back to whatever you meant when you had that boy sing
that sinister old border ballad.
"That's well
put. A wall of glory. Perhaps that's what we do."
They reached the
block of suites assigned to the senior officers. Her door was next to
his. She stood in front of it, reluctant to go inside. The room would
be empty, and tomorrow there was the Council, and - she turned to him
and said bitterly, "Does it have to end? I was happy for a few
minutes. Now - "
"It doesn't
have to end, but do you know what you're doing?"
"No." She
turned away from her own door and opened his. He followed, but didn't
go inside. She stood in the doorway for a moment, then laughed. "I
was going to say something silly. Something like, 'Let's have a last
drink.' But I wouldn't have meant that, and you'd have known it, so
what's the point of games?"
"There is no
point to games. Not between us. Games are for soldiers' girls and
lovers."
"John - my God,
John, are you as lonely as I am?"
"Yes. Of
course."
"Then we can't
let the party end. Not while there's a single moment it can go on."
She went inside his room.
After a few moments
he followed and closed the door.
During the night she
was able to forget the conflict between them, but when she left his
quarters in the morning the ballad returned to haunt her.
She knew she must do
something, but she couldn't warn Bannister. The Council, the
revolution, independence, none of them had lost their importance; but
though she would serve those causes she felt apart from them.
"I'm a perfect
fool," she told herself. But fool or not, she could not warn
Bannister. Finally she persuaded the President to meet John away from
the shouting masses of the Council Chamber.
Bannister came
directly to the point. "Colonel, we can't keep a large army in
the field indefinitely. Miss Morton's Valley ranchers may be willing
to pay these taxes, but most of our people can't."
"Just what did
you expect when you began this?" Falkenberg asked.
"A long war,"
Bannister admitted. "But your initial successes raised hopes,
and we got a lot of supporters we hadn't expected. They demand an
end."
"Fair-weather
soldiers." Falkenberg snorted: "Common enough, but why did
you let them gain so much influence in your Council?"
"Because there
were a lot of them."
And they all support
you for President, Glenda Ruth thought. While my friends and I were
out at the front, you were back here organizing the newcomers,
grabbing for power . . . you're not worth the life of one of those
soldiers. John's or mine.
"After all,
this is a democratic government," Bannister said.
"And thus quite
unable to accomplish anything that takes sustained effort. Can you
afford this egalitarian democracy of yours?"
"You were not
hired to restructure our government!" Bannister shouted.
Falkenberg activated
his desktop map. "Look. We have the plains ringed with troops.
The irregulars can hold the passes and swamps practically forever.
Any real threat of a breakthrough can be held by my regiment in
mobile reserve. The Confederates can't get at us - but we can't risk
a battle in the open with them."
"So what can we
do?" Bannister demanded. "Franklin is sure to send
reinforcements. If we wait, we lose."
"I doubt that.
They've no assault boats either. They can't land in any real force on
our side of the line, and what good does it do them to add to their
force in the capital? Eventually we starve them out. Franklin itself
must be hurt by the loss of the corn shipments. They won't be able to
feed their army forever."
"A mercenary
paradise," Bannister muttered. "A long war and no fighting.
Damn it, you've got to attack while we've still got troops! I tell
you, our support is melting away."
"If we put our
troops out where von Mellenthin's armor can get at them with room to
maneuver, they won't melt, they'll burn."
"You tell him,
Glenda Ruth," Bannister said. "He won't listen to me."
She looked at
Falkenberg's impassive face and wanted to cry. "John, he may be
right. I know my people, they can't hold on forever. Even if they
could, the Council is going to insist ..."
His look didn't
change. There's nothing I can say, she thought, nothing I know that
he doesn't, because he's right but he's wrong too. These are only
civilians in arms. They're not iron men. All the time my people are
guarding those passes their ranches are going to ruin.
Is Howard right? Is
this a mercenary paradise, and you're not even trying? But she didn't
want to believe that.
Unwanted, the vision
she'd had that lonely night at the pass returned. She fought it with
the memory of the party, and afterwards . . .
"Just what the
hell are you waiting on, Colonel Falkenberg?" Bannister
demanded.
Falkenberg said
nothing, and Glenda Ruth wanted to cry; but she did not.
XXII
THE COUNCIL HAD not
voted six days later. Glenda Ruth used every parliamentary trick her
father had taught her during the meetings, and after they adjourned
each day she hustled from delegate to delegate. She made promises she
couldn't keep, exploited old friends and made new ones, and every
morning she was sure only that she could delay a little longer.
She wasn't sure
herself why she did it. The war vote was linked to the reappointment
of Silana as governor in Allansport, and she did know that the man
was incompetent; but mostly, after the debates and political
meetings, Falkenberg would come for her, or send a junior officer to
escort her to his quarters - and she was glad to go. They seldom
spoke of politics, or even talked much at all. It was enough to be
with him - but when she left in the mornings, she was afraid again.
He'd never promised her anything.
On the sixth night
she joined him for a late supper. When the orderlies had taken the
dinner cart she sat moodily at the table. "This is what you
meant, isn't it?" she asked.
"About what?"
"That I'd have
to betray either my friends or my command - but I don't even know if
you're my friend. John, what am I going to do?"
Very gently he laid
his hand against her cheek. "You're going to talk sense - and
keep them from appointing Silana in Allansport."
"But what are
we waiting for?"
He shrugged. "Would
you rather it came to an open break? There'll be no stopping them if
we lose this vote. The mob's demanding your arrest right now - for
the past three days Calvin has had the Headquarters Guard on full
alert in case they're fool enough to try it."
She shuddered, but
before she could say more he lifted her gently to her feet and
pressed her close to him. Once again her doubts vanished but she knew
they'd be back. Who was she betraying? And for what?
The crowd shouted
before she could speak. "Mercenary's whore!" someone
called. Her friends answered with more epithets, and it was five
minutes before Bannister could restore order.
How long can I keep
it up? At least another day or so, I suppose. Am I his whore? If I'm
not, I don't know what I am. He's never told me. She carefully took
papers from her briefcase, but there was another interruption. A
messenger strode quickly, almost running, across the floor to hand a
flimsy message to Howard Bannister. The pudgy President glanced at
it, then began to read more carefully.
The hall fell silent
as everyone watched Bannister's face. The President showed a gamut of
emotions: surprise, bewilderment, then carefully controlled rage. He
read the message again and whispered to the messenger, who nodded.
Bannister lifted the microphone.
"Councillors, I
have - I suppose it would be simpler to read this to you.
'PROVISIONAL GOVERNMENT FREE STATES OF WASHINGTON FROM CDSN CRUISER
INTREPID BREAK BREAK WE ARE IN RECEIPT OF DOCUMENTED COMPLAINT FROM
CONFEDERATE GOVERNMENT THAT FREE STATES ARE IN VIOLATION OF LAWS OF
WAR STOP THIS VESSEL ORDERED TO INVESTIGATE STOP LANDING BOAT ARRIVES
ASTORIA SIXTEEN HUNDRED HOURS THIS DAY STOP PROVISIONAL GOVERNMENT
MUST BE PREPARED TO DISPATCH ARMISTICE COMMISSION TO MEET WITH
DELEGATES FROM CONFEDERACY AND CODOMINIUM INVESTIGATING OFFICERS
IMMEDIATELY UPON ARRIVAL OF LANDING BOAT STOP COMMANDING OFFICERS ALL
MERCENARY FORCES ORDERED TO BE PRESENT TO GIVE EVIDENCE STOP BREAK
BREAK JOHN GRANT CAPTAIN CODOMINIUM SPACE NAVY BREAK MESSAGE ENDS' "
There was a moment
of hushed silence, then the gymnasium erupted in sound. "Investigate
us?" "Goddamn CD is - " "Armistice hell!"
Falkenberg caught
Glenda Ruth's eye. He gestured toward the outside and left the hall.
She joined him minutes later. "I really ought to stay, John.
We've got to decide what to do."
"What you
decide has just become unimportant," Falkenberg said. "Your
Council doesn't hold as many cards as it used to."
"John, what
will they do?"
He shrugged. "Try
to stop the war now that they're here. I suppose it never occurred to
Silana that a complaint from Franklin industrialists is more likely
to get CD attention than a similar squawk from a bunch of farmers.
..."
"You expected
this! Was this what you were waiting for?"
"Something like
this."
"You know more
than you're saying! John, why won't you tell me? I know you don't
love me, but haven't I a right to know?"
He stood at stiff
attention in the bright reddish-tinted sunlight for a long time.
Finally he said, "Glenda Ruth, nothing's certain in politics and
war. I once promised something to a girl, and I couldn't deliver it."
"But - "
"We've each
command responsibilities - and each other. Will you believe me when I
say I've tried to keep you from having to choose - and keep myself
from the same choice? You'd better get ready. A CD Court of Inquiry
isn't in the habit of waiting for people, and they're due in little
more than an hour."
The Court was to be
held aboard Intrepid. The four-hundred-meter bottle-shaped warship in
orbit around New Washington was the only neutral territory available.
When the Patriot delegates were piped aboard, the Marines in the
landing dock gave Bannister the exact honors they'd given the
Confederate Governor General, then hustled the delegation through
gray steel corridors to a petty officer's lounge reserved for them.
"Governor
General Forrest of the Confederacy is already aboard, sir," the
Marine sergeant escort told them. "Captain would like to see
Colonel Falkenberg in his cabin in ten minutes."
Bannister looked
around the small lounge. "I suppose it's bugged," he said.
"Colonel, what happens now?"
Falkenberg noted the
artficially friendly tone Bannister had adopted, "The Captain
and his advisors will hear each of us privately. If you want
witnesses summoned, hell take care of that. When the Court thinks the
time proper, he'll bring both parties together. The CD usually tries
to get everyone to agree rather than impose some kind of settlement."
"And if we
can't agree?"
Falkenberg shrugged.
"They might let you fight it out. They might order mercenaries
off planet and impose a blockade. They could even draw up their own
settlement and order you to accept it."
"What happens
if we just tell them to go away? What can they do?" Bannister
demanded.
Falkenberg smiled
tightly. "They can't conquer the planet because they haven't
enough Marines to occupy it - but there's not a lot else they can't
do, Mr. President. There's enough power aboard this cruiser to make
New Washington uninhabitable.
"You don't have
either planetary defenses or a fleet. I'd think a long time before I
made Captain Grant angry - and on that score, I've been summoned to
his cabin." Falkenberg saluted. There was no trace of mockery in
the gesture, but Bannister grimaced as the soldier left the lounge.
Falkenberg was
conducted past Marine sentries to the captain's cabin. The orderly
opened the door and let him in, then withdrew.
John Grant was a
tall, thin officer with premature graying hair that made him look
older than he was. As Falkenberg entered, Grant stood and greeted him
with genuine warmth. "Good to see you, John Christian." He
extended his hand and looked over his visitor with pleasure. "You're
keeping fit enough."
"So are you,
Johnny." Falkenberg's smile was equally genuine. "And the
family's well?"
"Inez and the
kids are fine. My father's dead."
"Sorry to hear
that."
Captain Grant
brought his chair from behind his desk and placed it facing
Falkenberg's. Unconsciously he dogged it into place. "It was a
release for him, I think. Single-passenger flier accident."
Falkenberg frowned,
and Grant nodded. "Coroner said accident," the Captain
said. "But it could have been suicide. He was pretty broken up
about Sharon. But you don't know that story, do you? No matter. My
kid sister's fine. They've got a good place on Sparta."
Grant reached to his
desk to touch a button. A steward brought brandy and glasses. The
Marine set up a collapsible table between them, then left.
"The Grand
Admiral all right?" Falkenberg asked.
"He's hanging
on." Grant drew in a deep breath and let it out quickly. "Just
barely, though. Despite everything Uncle Martin could do the budget's
lower again this year. I can't stay here long, John. Another patrol,
and it's getting harder to cover these unauthorized missions in the
log. Have you accomplished your job?"
"Yeah. Went
quicker than I thought. I've spent the last hundred hours wishing
we'd arranged to have you arrive sooner." He went to the screen
controls on the cabin bulkhead.
"Got that
complaint signaled by a merchantman as we came in," Grant said.
"Surprised hell out of me. Here, let me get that, they've
improved the damned thing and it's tricky." He played with the
controls until New Washington's inhabited areas showed on the screen.
"OK?"
"Right."
Falkenberg spun dials to show the current military situation on the
planet below. "Stalemate," he said. "As it stands. But
once you order all mercenaries off planet, we won't have much trouble
taking the capital area."
"Christ, John,
I can't do anything as raw as that! If the Friedlanders go, you have
to go as well. Hell, you've accomplished the mission. The rebels may
have a hell of a time taking the capital without you, but it doesn't
really matter who wins. Neither one of 'em's going to build a fleet
for a while after this war's over. Good work."
Falkenberg nodded.
"That was Sergei Lermontov's plan. Neutralize this planet with
minimum CD investment and without destroying the industries.
Something came up, though, Johnny, and I've decided to change it a
bit. The regiment's staying."
"But I - "
"Just hold on,"
Falkenberg said. He grinned broadly. "I'm not a mercenary within
the meaning of the act. We've got a land grant, Johnny. You can leave
us as settlers, not mercenaries."
"Oh, come off
it." Grant's voice showed irritation. "A land grant by a
rebel government not in control? Look, nobody's going to look too
dose at what I do, but Franklin can buy one Grand Senator anyway. I
can't risk it, John. Wish I could."
"What if the
grant's confirmed by the local Loyalist government?" Falkenberg
asked impishly.
"Well, then
it'd be OK - how in hell did you manage that?" Grant was
grinning again. "Have a drink and tell me about it." He
poured for both of them. "And where do you fit in?"
Falkenberg looked up
at Grant and his expression changed to something like astonishment.
"You won't believe this, Johnny."
"From the look
on your face you don't either."
"Not sure I do.
Johnny, I've got a girl. A soldier's girl, and I'm going to marry
her. She's leader of most of the rebel army. There are a lot of
politicians around who think they count for something, but - "
He made a sharp gesture with his right hand.
"Marry the
queen and become king, uh?"
"She's more
like a princess. Anyway, the Loyalists aren't going to surrender to
the rebels without a fight. That complaint they sent was quite
genuine. There's no rebel the Loyalists will trust, not even Glenda
Ruth."
Grant nodded
comprehension. "Enter the soldier who enforced the Laws of War.
He's married to the princess and commands the only army around.
What's your real stake here, John Christian?"
Falkenberg shrugged.
"Maybe the princess won't leave the kingdom. Anyway. Lermontov's
trying to keep the balance of power. God knows, somebody's got to.
Fine. The Grand Admiral looks ten years ahead - but I'm not sure the
CoDominium's going to last ten years, Johnny."
Grant slowly nodded
agreement. His voice fell and took on a note of awe. "Neither am
I. It's worse just in the last few weeks. The Old Man's going out of
his mind. One thing, though. There are some Grand Senators trying to
hold it together. Some of them have given up the Russki-American
fights to stand together against their own governments."
"Enough? Can
they do it?"
"I wish I
knew." Grant shook his head in bewilderment. "I always
thought the CoDominium was the one stable thing on old Earth,"
he said wonderingly. "Now it's all we can do to hold it
together. The nationalists keep winning, John, and nobody knows how
to stop them." He drained his glass. "The Old Man's going
to hate losing you."
"Yeah. We've
worked together a long time." Falkenberg looked wistfully around
the cabin. Once he'd thought this would be the high point of his
life, to be captain of a CD warship. Now he might never see one
again.
Then he shrugged.
"There's worse places to be, Johnny," Falkenberg said. "Do
me a favor, will you? When you get back to Luna Base, ask the admiral
to see that all copies of that New Washington mineral survey are
destroyed. I'd hate for somebody to learn there really is something
here worth grabbing."
"OK. You're a
long way from anything, John."
"I know. But if
things break up around Earth, this may be the best place to be. Look,
Johnny, if you need a safe base some day, we'll be here. Tell the Old
Man that."
"Sure."
Grant gave Falkenberg a twisted grin. "Can't get over it. Going
to marry the girl are you? I'm glad for both of you."
"Thanks."
"King John I.
What kind of government will you set up, anyway?"
"Hadn't
thought. Myths change. Maybe people are ready for monarchy again at
that. We'll think of something, Glenda Ruth and I."
"I just bet you
will. She must be one hell of a girl."
"She is that."
"A toast to the
bride, then." They drank, and Grant refilled their glasses. Then
he stood. "One last, eh? To the CoDominium."
Falkenberg stood and
raised his glass. They drank the toast while below them New
Washington turned, and a hundred parsecs away Earth armed for her
last battle.
The End